A* AA W 
 
 
 / 
 
 
 ^ ' i 
 
 AA- , V 
 
 A 4 An 
 
 fmwwtiWm 
 
 , PA ~W*/\ tf ' 
 
*WP 
 
 -mM 
 
 '^f&mz 
 ^^^ffil 
 
 TO^^SSftfc./ 
 
 
 MAM* 
 
 1 .AA 
 
 Al^^^^lS ^ilffiiP 
 
 rasmMMaMfl^?^ 
 
 
 
 
 

 A STUDENTS' 
 
 TEXT-BOOK OF BOTANY 
 
 BY 
 
 SYDNEY H. VINES M.A., D.Sc., F.R.S. 
 
 Fellow of Magdalen College and Sherardian Professor of Botany in the University of 
 
 Oxford ; formerly Fellow of Christ 's College and Reader in Botany in the 
 
 University of Cambridge ; Fellow of the University of London 
 
 WITH 483 ILLUSTRATIONS 
 
 Hontjon 
 
 AN SONNENSCHEIN & CO LIMP 
 NEW YORK: MACMILLAN & CO 
 1896 
 
PART L, January, 1894; PART II., March, 1895. 
 COMPLETE EDITION, March, 1895; Iteprinted 
 with corrections, January, 1896. 
 
V71I 
 
 PREFACE. 
 
 WHEN, some few years ago, it became necessary to revise 
 the English Edition of the late Prof. Prantl's Lehrbuch der 
 Botanik, it appeared to me that the requirements of English 
 students would be more satisfactorily met if the scope of the 
 work were so extended that, whilst retaining all that has 
 made it of value to beginners, it might be more useful to 
 those engaged in the advanced study of the science. With 
 this object in view, the number of pages has been doubled 
 by additions to all four parts of the book, but more especially 
 to Part III. dealing with the Classification of Plants. 
 
 Though the form of Prof. Prantl's book is still retained, 
 and here and there paragraphs from the English edition 
 have been inserted, the present is essentially a new and 
 distinct work for which I alone am responsible, and, con- 
 sequently, on the title-page of which my name alone 
 appears. 
 
 I would most gratefully acknowledge the assistance 
 which I have received from my friend Dr. D. H. Scott, 
 F.R.S., Honorary Keeper of the Jodrell Laboratory, Royal 
 Gardens, Kew, who has kindly read the proofs, and has 
 furnished me with many valuable suggestions and criti- 
 cisms. The usefulness of the book is enhanced by the 
 incorporation of a number of additional illustrations : most 
 of these are placed at my disposal by the publishers, from 
 their English edition of Prof. Strasburger's Practical Botany] 
 a few are taken from various other sources which are duly 
 acknowledged. 
 
 S. H. V. 
 
CONTENTS. 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 PAGE 
 
 Introductory ,1 
 
 CHAPTER L GENERAI, MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 1. The Segmentation of the Body , 5 
 
 2. Symmetry of the Body and of the Members ..... 7 
 
 3. The Development of the Body and of the Members , . . 13 
 
 4. Arrangement of Lateral Members on a Common Axis .... 23 
 
 5. The Mutual Relations of Dissimilar Secondary Members ... 31 
 
 6. Branch-Systems ........ f . . 32 
 
 7. Cohesion and Adhesion ..,,,.... 36 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 
 A. VEGETATIVE ORGANS. 
 
 8. The Thallus . , 37 
 
 9. The Thalloid Shoot . 38 
 
 10. The Leafy Shoot ..... 38 
 
 11. The Stem . . , ..... 44 
 
 12. The Leaf . 45 
 
 13. The Root . 61 
 
 14. Hairs and Emergences 64 
 
 B. REPRODUCTIVE ORGANS. 
 
 15. Reproduction 67 
 
 16. General Morphology of the Asexual Reproductive Organs ... 70 
 
 17. General Morphology of the Sexual Reproductive Orgaus ... 80 
 
 18. Apospory and Apogamy 87 
 
 19. The Fruit 88 
 
 20. The Seed 88 
 
 PART XLTHE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 (ANATOMY AND HISTOLOGY). 
 
 21. Introductory .89 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 22. The Structure and Form of the Cell 93 
 
 23. The Protoplasm 95 
 
 24. The Cell-Wall 103 
 
 25. Cell-Contents 108 
 
 26. Cell-Formation 114 
 
 vii 
 
viil CONTENTS. 
 
 CHAPTEK II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 27. The Connexion of the Cells 128 
 
 28. Intercellular Spaces 130 
 
 29. Forms of Tissue 131 
 
 30. General Morphology of the Tissue-Systems 144 
 
 31. The Primary Tegumentary Tissue 153 
 
 32. The Fundamental Tissue-System 159 
 
 33. The Vascular Tissue-System . 170 
 
 34. Histology of the Development of Secondary Members .... 184 
 
 35. The Formation of Secondary Tissue 191 
 
 36. Formation of Tissue in consequence of Injury 213 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Introductory 216 
 
 GEOUP I. THALLOPHYTA 220 
 
 Class I. Algae 221 
 
 Sub-Class I. Cyanophyceae (Phycochromaceoa) .... 231 
 
 Order 1. Chroococcaceae 233 
 
 2. Nostocaceae 233 
 
 3. Oscillariaceaa 233 
 
 4. Eivulariaceae 233 
 
 5. Scytonemaceae 233 
 
 Sub-Class II. Chlorophycese 234 
 
 Series I. Protococcoideae 236 
 
 Order 1. Pleurococcaceae 236 
 
 2. Protococcaceae ....... 236 
 
 Series II. Volvocoideae ..*...,. 237 
 
 Order 1. Chlamydomonadaceae 237 
 
 2. Volvocacese 237 
 
 Series III. Siphonoidete ..... 238 
 
 Order 1. Siphonaceae 238 
 
 2. CladophoracesB 241 
 
 3. Hydrodictyaceaa 242 
 
 Series IV. Confervoideae , . 243 
 
 Order 1. Conjugataa 244 
 
 2. Ulothrichaceae 246 
 
 3. Chaetophoraceae 247 
 
 4. Ulvacete 248 
 
 5. (Edogoniaceae 248 
 
 6. Coleochaetaceaa ....... 249 
 
 Series V. Charoideae 251 
 
 Order 1. Characeae . 251 
 
 Sub-Class III. Phaeophyceae ... , 255 
 
 Order 1. Syngeneticae ....... 257 
 
 2. Diatomaceae . 258 
 
 Series (a). Phaeosporeae , 258 
 
 Order 3. Ectocarpaceae .... , 259 
 
CONTENTS. IX 
 
 PAGE 
 
 Order 4. Encoeliaceae . . .' . . . . 259 
 
 ,. 5. Laminariaceae . . . . . . . 259 
 
 6. Cutleriaceae . .259 
 
 Series (6). Phaeogamae . .262 
 
 Order 7. Tilopteridaceae 262 
 
 8. Dictyotaceae 262 
 
 9. Fucaceae 266 
 
 Sub-Class IV. Rhodophycese . . 267 
 
 Series I. Nemalioninae ........ 272 
 
 Order 1. Helminthocladiaceae 272 
 
 2. Lemaneaceae 272 
 
 ,, 3. Gelidiaceae . 272 
 
 Series II. Gigartininse 272 
 
 Order 4. Gigartinaceae 272 
 
 5. Rhodophyllidaceae 272 
 
 Series III. Rhodymeninse . . . . . . . . 272 
 
 Order 6. Sphaerococcaceae 272 
 
 7. Rhodymeniaceae 272 
 
 8. Delesseriaceaa . . . . . . 272 
 
 9. Bonnemaisoniaceaa 272 
 
 10. Rhodomelaceae 272 
 
 11. Ceramiaceae 272 
 
 Series IV. Cryptoneminae 272 
 
 Order 12. Glceosiphoniacese ...... 272 
 
 13. Grateloupiaceae ....... 272 
 
 14. Dumontiaceae 272 
 
 ,, 15. Nemastomacege 272 
 
 16. Rhizophyllidacese 272 
 
 17. Squamariaceaa ....... 272 
 
 18. Corallinaceae 272 
 
 Series V. PorphyrinaB ........ 272 
 
 Order 19. Bangiaceae 272 
 
 Class II. Fungi . . .273 
 
 Sub-Class I. Schizomycetes 280 
 
 II. Myxomycetes 283 
 
 III. Phycomycetes ........ 285 
 
 Section A. Zygomycetes . . . . . 285 
 
 Order 1. Chytridiaceaa 285 
 
 ,, 2. MucorinaB 287 
 
 ,, 8. EntomophthoraceEe ...... 289 
 
 Section B. Oomycetes 290 
 
 Order 1. Ancylistaceae ....... 290 
 
 2. Peronosporacese 291 
 
 3. Saprolegniacese ....... 293 
 
 Sub-Class IV. Ascomycetes ........ 294 
 
 Order 1. Gymnoasceae 300 
 
 ,, 2. Pyrenomycetes ,,*.... 301 
 
 3. Discomycetes 302 
 
 Sub-Class V. ^Ecidiomycetes 303 
 
 Order 1. Uredinese 303 
 
X CONTENTS. 
 
 PAGB 
 
 Order 2. Ustilaginese 308 
 
 Sub-Class VI. Basidiomycetes 310 
 
 Series I. Protobasidioinycetes . 315 
 
 II. Autobasidiomycetes 315 
 
 Order 1. Hymenomycetes 315 
 
 2. Gasteromycetes 317 
 
 Subsidiary Group. Lichenes 319 
 
 GEOUP II. BEYOPHYTA (MUSCINE^) 324 
 
 Class III. Hepaticae (Liverworts) 333 
 
 Order 1. Marchantiaceae 336 
 
 2. Jungermanniaceae , ... 343 
 
 ,, 3. AnthocerotaceaB 352 
 
 Class IV. Musci (Mosses) 354 
 
 Order 1. Sphagnaceae ,,.,,.. 363 
 
 2. Andreaeaceae 365 
 
 ,, 3. Archidiacese , , . . . . 366 
 
 4. Bryineaa t 367 
 
 GEOUP III. PTEEIDOPHYTA (VASCULAE CEYPTOGAMS) . . 372 
 
 Class V. Filicinae , 381 
 
 Sub-Class. Eusporangiatee , t , f 381 
 
 Homosporeaa, 
 
 Order 1. Ophioglossace .,,,,.. 381 
 
 ,, 2. Marattiaceee . . . . f t 333 
 
 Heterosporeae. 
 
 ,, 3. Isoetaceaa f 334 
 
 Sub-Class. Leptosporangiatee , . . . . . 333 
 
 Homosporeae (Filices) . 333 
 
 Order 1. Hymenophyllaceae .... . 494 
 
 2. Polypodiaceae f , ' . . r f 494 
 
 3. Cyatheacea3 -.,..,., 405 
 
 4. Gleicheniaceae .... 495 
 
 ,, 5. Schizaeaceas , , f f 40g 
 
 ,, 6. Osmundaceae . . . 4Q^ 
 
 Heterosporeae (Hydropterideaa) . . 406 
 
 ,, 7. Salviniacese ..... ' 415 
 
 ,, 8. Marsileaceae t - ? 
 
 Class VI. Equisetinae i f , , , 
 
 Order 1. Equisetaceae t 
 
 Class VII. Lycopodinae ..,.,' 431 
 
 Sub- Class. Homosporeae t 491 
 Order 1. Lycopodiaceaa '.,'', 
 
 ,, 2. Psilotaceae , 49 _ 
 Sub-Clas*. Heterosporesa .... 
 Orders. Selaginellaceaa 
 

 CONTENTS. XI 
 
 PAGB 
 
 GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA (SPERM APHYTA) . . . .431 
 
 DIVISION A. GYMNOSPEBM.SJ 463 
 
 Class VIII. Gymnospermae 463 
 
 Order 1. Cycadacese 480 
 
 2. Coniferse 481 
 
 3. Gnetacese 488 
 
 DIVISION B. ANGIOSPEBM^E 489 
 
 Class IX. Monocotyledones 533 
 
 Sub-Class I. Spadiciflorse 539 
 
 COHUBT 1. ABALES 539 
 
 Order 1. Araceea 539 
 
 2. LemnacesB 541 
 
 3. Pandanaceae 541 
 
 4. Cyclanthacese 542 
 
 5. Typhacese 542 
 
 COHOBT 2. PALMALES 542 
 
 Order 1. Palmacese 542 
 
 Sub-Class II. Gluruiflorps , 545 
 
 COHOBT 1. GLUI^ALES 545 
 
 Order 1, Graminacese , 545 
 
 ,, 2, Cyperaceas 550 
 
 COHOBT 2. RESTIALES 552 
 
 Order 1, Eriocaulonacese , 552 
 
 ,, 2, Eestiaceee , 552 
 
 Sub-Class III. Petaloidess 553 
 
 Series I. Hypogynsq. Sub-Series Apocarpce . . 553 
 
 COHOBT 1. ALISMALES 553 
 
 Order J. Naiadaceee , 553 
 
 2- Juncaginacese .,,.... 554 
 
 ,, 3. Alismacepe , 554 
 
 ,, 4 f ButomacesB 555 
 
 Sub-Series Syncarpa;. 
 
 COHOBT 1. COMMELYNALES 555 
 
 Order 1. Xyridacese 555 
 
 ,, 2. Commelynacese , 556 
 
 COHOBT 2. LILIALES 556 
 
 Order 1. Liliaceaa 556 
 
 ,, 2. Juncaceee . , . . . 559 
 
 ,, 3. Pontederiacese , 559 
 
 Series II. Epigynss. 
 
 COHOBT 1. HYDBALES 560 
 
 Order 1. Hydrocharidacese 560 
 
 COHOBT 2. DIOSCOBEALES ' 560 
 
 Order 1. Dioscoreacese 560 
 
 ,, 2. Taccacese 560 
 
 3. Bromeliacese 561 
 
 COHOBT 3. AMOMALES (SCITAMINE^E) 561 
 
 Order 1. Musacese . * 561 
 
 ,, 2. Zingiberacese 562 
 
 ,, 3. Marantacese (Cannaceas) 562 
 
CONTENTS. 
 
 PAGE 
 
 COHORT 4. ORCHIDALES 563 
 
 Order 1. Orchidacese 563 
 
 COHORT 5. NARCISSALES 567 
 
 Order 1. Amaryllidaceee 567 
 
 2. Iridaceffi .568 
 
 Class X. Dicotyledones 570 
 
 Sub-Class I. Monochlamydese . . 575 
 
 COHORT I. PIPERALES 576 
 
 Order 1. Piperaceee 576 
 
 2. Chloranthaceae . . . . .576 
 
 ,, 3. Saururacese 576 
 
 COHORT II. URTICALES 576 
 
 Order 1. Urticacese 577 
 
 2. Horaces . .577 
 
 ,, 3. Cannabinacese 578 
 
 4. Ulmaceaj 579 
 
 COHORT III. AMENTALES . 579 
 
 Order 1. Betulace 580 
 
 2. Corylacese 581 
 
 3. Fagacero 582 
 
 ,, 4. Juglandacese 584 
 
 5. Myricacese ....... 584 
 
 ,, 6. Casuarinaceae ....... 585 
 
 ,, 7. Salicacese . . . ... . . 585 
 
 COHORT IV. PROTEALES ....... 586 
 
 Order 1. Proteacera 586 
 
 COHORT V. CHENOPODIALES ....... 586 
 
 Order 1. Chenopodiaceas 587 
 
 2. Amarantacese ....... 587 
 
 3. Phytolaccacese 587 
 
 4. Nyctaginaceee . ...... 588 
 
 COHORT VI. ASARALES 588 
 
 Order 1. Aristolochiacese ...... 588 
 
 2. Cytinacese 589 
 
 COHORT VII. SANTALALES 589 
 
 Order 1. Santalacese 589 
 
 ,, 2. Loranthaceee 589 
 
 3. Balanophoraceee ...... 590 
 
 Sub-Class II. Polypetalee 591 
 
 Series I. Thalamifloras .... 591 
 
 COHORT I. RANAUES 591 
 
 Order 1. Ranunculacesa 591 
 
 ,, 2. Magnoliacese 593 
 
 ,, 3. Calycanthaceas 594 
 
 ,, 4. NympheeacesB ...".... 594 
 
 COHORT II. MENISPERMALES . . . . . . . 594 
 
 Order 1. MenispermaceBe 595 
 
 2. Berberidacese 595 
 
 3. Lauracese 596 
 
 4. Myristicaceea 596 
 
CONTENTS. xiii 
 
 PAGE 
 
 Order 5. Polygonaceaa 597 
 
 ,, 6. Ceratophyllacese 598 
 
 COHORT III. CARYOPHYLLALES 598 
 
 Order 1. CaryophyllacesB 599 
 
 2. Portulaceas 600 
 
 3. Aizoacese (Ficoidese) 600 
 
 COHORT IV. PARIETALES 600 
 
 Order 1. Papaveracese 600 
 
 2. Fumariaceea 601 
 
 3. Cruciferse . . . . . . .602 
 
 4. Capparidacesa 605 
 
 ,, 5. Besedaceee 606 
 
 6. Cistaceaj .606 
 
 7. Bixaceea 606 
 
 8. Violacesa 606 
 
 COHORT V. SARRACENIALES 607 
 
 Order 1. Sarraceniacese 607 
 
 2. Nepenthacese 607 
 
 3. DroseracesB ....... 608 
 
 COHORT VI. GUTTIFERALES 608 
 
 Order 1. Hypericacere ....... 608 
 
 2. TamaricacesB 609 
 
 3. Elatinacese 609 
 
 ,, 4. Ternstroemiacese 609 
 
 ,, 5. ClusiaceaB (Guttiferse) 609 
 
 ,, 6. Dipterocarpace 609 
 
 COHORT VII. MALVALES . 609 
 
 Order 1. Tiliacea> . . . . . . . .609 
 
 2. Sterculiaceae 610 
 
 3. MalvaceaB 611 
 
 Series II. Disciflorae 612 
 
 COHORT I. GERANIALES 612 
 
 Order 1. Geraniace . 612 
 
 ,, 2. Linacese . 613 
 
 ,, 3. ErythroxylacesB 613 
 
 ,, 4. Oxalidaceae 613 
 
 ,, 5. BalsaminacesB 613 
 
 ,, 6. Tropceolaceaa 614 
 
 7. ZygophyllacesB 614 
 
 8. KutacesB 614 
 
 9. Meliacese 615 
 
 10. SimarubacesB 615 
 
 ,, 11. Burseracero 615 
 
 COHORT II. SAPINDALES 615 
 
 Order 1. Sapindacese . . . . . . .616 
 
 2. Aceracesa . . ^ . . . .616 
 
 3. Polygalaceea 617 
 
 4. Anacardiaceaa 617 
 
 COHORT III. CELASTRALES 618 
 
 Order 1. Celastracero . 618 
 
XIV CONTENTS. 
 
 PAGB 
 
 Order 2. Stapbyleacero 618 
 
 3. Bhamriaceee 618 
 
 4. Ampelidacesa 619 
 
 5. Aquifoliaceee 619 
 
 6. Thymelffiaceaa 619 
 
 7. Elteagnaceee 620 
 
 COHORT IV. EUPHORBIALES 620 
 
 Order 1. Eupborbiacese 621 
 
 2. Buxacesa 622 
 
 3. Empetracese 623 
 
 4. Callitrichacese 623 
 
 Series III. Calyciflorso .... 623 
 
 COHORT I. UMBELLALES 623 
 
 Order 1. Umbelliferte 624 
 
 2. AraliaceaB 626 
 
 3. Cornaceee 626 
 
 COHORT II. PASSIFLORALES 626 
 
 Order 1. Passifloracea 627 
 
 2. Papayacese 627 
 
 3. Begoniacete 627 
 
 4. Cucurbitacese 627 
 
 ,, 5. Cactaceae 628 
 
 COHOBT III. MYRTALES 629 
 
 Order 1. Onagraceee 629 
 
 2. Haloragidacees 630 
 
 3. Lythracese 630 
 
 4. Myrtaceae 631 
 
 ,, 5. Khizophoraceoj ...... 632 
 
 COHORT IV. BOSALES 632 
 
 Order 1. Kosaceae 632 
 
 2. Leguminosaa 635 
 
 ,, 3. Platanacese 638 
 
 COHORT V. SAXIFRAGALES 638 
 
 Order 1. Saxifragacesa 638 
 
 2. CrassulaceEe 640 
 
 3. Cephalotaceaa 640 
 
 ,, 4. Pittosporacero 640 
 
 ,, 5. HamamelidaceEe 641 
 
 ,, 6. Podostemaceee 641 
 
 Sub-Class II. Gamopetalse . 641 
 
 Series I. Hypogynce . . . . . 641 
 
 COHORT I. LAMIALES 641 
 
 Order 1. Labiates 642 
 
 2. Verbenaceee . . . . . . 643 
 
 3. GlobulariflceaB . ' 643 
 
 COHORT II. PERSONALES .... 643 
 
 Order 1. Scrophulariacesa .... 644 
 
 2. Plautaginact 83 645 
 
 8. Bignoniaceee 646 
 
 ,, 4. Acanthaceae 646 
 
CONTENTS. XV 
 
 PA OB 
 
 Order 5. Gesneracese ....... 646 
 
 6. Orobanchaceaa 646 
 
 7. Lentibulariacese 647 
 
 COHORT III. POLEMONIALES 647 
 
 Order 1. Convolvulace 647 
 
 2. Polemouiacese 648 
 
 3. Solanacese 648 
 
 4. Boraginacese 649 
 
 COHOUT IV. GENTIANALES 650 
 
 Order 1. Gentianacese . . 650 
 
 ,, 2. Loganiacese 651 
 
 ,, 3. Apocynaceaa 651 
 
 4. Asclepiadac( se . . . . . . 651 
 
 ,, 5. Oleaceaj 652 
 
 COHORT V. EBENALES 653 
 
 Order 1. Sapotacese 653 
 
 2. Ebenacesa 653 
 
 3. Styracese 653 
 
 COHORT VI. PRIMULALES 653 
 
 Order 1. Primulaceaa 653 
 
 ,, 2. Myrsinacesa 654 
 
 3. Plumbaginacese 654 
 
 COHORT VII. ERICALES . . . . . . . .654 
 
 Order 1. Ericaceae ........ 655 
 
 2. Epacridacese 655 
 
 ,, 3. Diapensiaceae 656 
 
 4. Pyrolacesa 656 
 
 ,, 5. Vacciniacess 656 
 
 Series II. Epigyrue 656 
 
 COHORT I. CAMPANALES 656 
 
 Order 1. Campanulaceaa 656 
 
 2. Lobeliaceas 657 
 
 COHORT II. KUBIALES . 658 
 
 Order 1. Kubiacese 658 
 
 ,, 2. Caprifoliaceaa 659 
 
 COHORT III. ASTERALES * 660 
 
 Order 1. Valerianacera 660 
 
 2. Dipsacese 661 
 
 3. Composite 661 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 1. Introductory 666 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENEKAL PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 2. The Functions 666 
 
 3. The External Conditions 671 
 
 4. The Functions of the Tissues 674 
 
 5. The Functions of the Members 680 
 
XVI CONTENTS. 
 
 CHAPTER II.-SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTEITIVE 
 FUNCTIONS. 
 
 PAGK 
 
 6. Absorption 692 
 
 7. Transpiration 696 
 
 8. Distribution of Water and otber Substances 700 
 
 9. Metabolism .... 706 
 
 CHAPTEE III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 
 
 10. Introductory 735 
 
 11. Automatism (Spontaneous Movements) 735 
 
 12. Irritability (Induced Movements) 742 
 
 13. Localisation of Irritability 755 
 
 14. Transmission of Stimuli 756 
 
 15. Combined Effect of Different Stimuli 757 
 
 16. Conditions of Movement 760 
 
 17. Mechanism of tbe Movements 761 
 
 CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF EEPEODUCTION. 
 
 18. Introductory 766 
 
 19. Vegetative Multiplication 767 
 
 20. Spore-Eeproduction 768 
 
 21. Sexual Eeproduction 772 
 
 22. Heredity and Variation 777 
 
 23. The Theory of Reproduotion 780 
 
 INDEX, PABT I. Classification and Nomenclature 785 
 
 II. Morphology, Anatomy, and Physiology . . .805 
 
PAKT L 
 MORPHOLOGY, 
 
 Introductory. The province of morphology is the study of 
 the form of the body of plants, including the development of the 
 body, the segmentation of the body into members, and the form 
 and mutual relations of the members, as also the intimate struc- 
 ture (Anatomy and Histology) of the body and its members in 
 so far as structure throws light upon the morphology of any part 
 of the body. It is an essentially comparative study : it classifies 
 into categories the members of a plant, or those of various plants, 
 according to their morphological nature, that is, according to the 
 mode and relations of their development. Each category consists 
 of homologous members ; of members, that is, which essentially 
 agree in the mode and relations of their development ; or, in 
 other words, which are more or less nearly equivalent morphologi- 
 cally, because they are of common descent. 
 
 There are various degrees of Homology, that is, of morphological relationship. 
 General homology exists between homologous members when the one is not 
 the precise equivalent of the other ; for instance, the sporogonium of a Moss 
 is generally homologous with a Fern-plant ; and again, the sporangium of Lyco- 
 podium, being borne singly on a sporophyll, is generally homologous with all 
 the sporangia, collectively, borne on a sporophyll of an Osmuuda. Special 
 homology exists between two homologous members when the one is the precise 
 equivalent of the other. When this is true in detail, the special homology is 
 said to be complete : for instance, the foliage-leaves, the perianth-leaves, and the 
 sporophylls of a Phanerogam are all specially homologous, they all belong to 
 the one category, leaves ; but complete special homology can only exist between 
 the members of each sub-division of the category, between foliage-leaf and 
 foliage-leaf, perianth-leaf and perianth-leaf, and so on. The special homology 
 is incomplete when the members compared present differences in detail ; thus 
 between foliage-leaves, perianth-leaves, and sporophylls there exists incomplete 
 special homology ; or again, the sporangia of eusporangiate plants are incom- 
 pletely homologous with those of leptosporangiate plants. Members may have 
 both their general and their special homologies ; thus whilst the sporangium 
 of a Lycopodium is generally homologous with all the sporangia on the 
 sporophyll of an Osmunda, it is specially homologous with each individual 
 sporangium. Homologous members are termed the homologues of eacb other. 
 
 Morphology does not, however, include the consideration of the 
 
 V. S. B. B 
 
2 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 functions of the various members of the body, except in so far 
 as the form or other morphological characters of any member may 
 be affected by special adaptation to the performance of some 
 particular function. 
 
 For instance, foliage-leaves and sporophylls are specially homologous; but 
 their special homology is incomplete on account of the differences in form, due 
 to special adaptation to their functions, which they respectively present. In 
 this case essentially similar members come to differ widely : in other cases, 
 essentially dissimilar members come to resemble each other. For instance, 
 tendrils are climbing-organs, and are all much alike ; but they may be of very 
 different morphological value ; either modified branches, or leaves, or parts of 
 leaves. Tendrils, therefore, are not all homologous ; but they are all analogous, 
 that is, whatever their morphological value may be, they are modified in the 
 same direction for the performance of the same function. Similarly the 
 flattened stem-segments of Opuntia, and the phylloclades of Buscus, are the 
 analogues of foliage-leaves ; and again, the subterranean shoots of Psilotum 
 and the submerged leaves of Salvinia, being absorbent organs, are the analo- 
 gues of roots and of each other. 
 
 From the purely morphological standpoint of development and 
 mutual relation, the various parts of a plant are regarded as 
 members of the body ; whilst from the physiological standpoint 
 of function, they are considered as organs of the body, each being 
 specially adapted for the performance of some particular kind of 
 work. The more clearly the members of the body are marked off 
 from each other, and the greater the variety of them, the higher 
 is the degree of morphological differentiation which the body pre- 
 sents; similarly, the more special the adaptation of the organs, 
 and the greater the variety of them, the more complete is the 
 physiological differentiation, or the division of the physiological 
 labour, of the body. 
 
 A remarkable fact in the general morphology of plants, is that 
 they are more or less polt/morphic : that is to say, a plant assumes, 
 as a rule, at least two different forms in the course of its life- 
 history. Most commonly it presents but two forms which, while 
 they may differ more or less widely in form and structure, differ 
 essentially in that the one, termed the sporophyte, bears asexual 
 reproductive organs which produce certain asexual reproductive 
 cells, termed spores, each of which is capable by itself of giving 
 rise to a new organism ; whilst the other, the gametophyte, bears 
 sexual reproductive organs, which, as a rule, produce sexual repro- 
 ductive cells, termed gametes, which, though each is by itself in- 
 capable of giving rise to a new organism, yet by their f usion in 
 
INTRODUCTORY. 3 
 
 pairs form cells, of the nature of spores, from each of which a 
 new organism can be developed. These two forms alternate more 
 or less regularly in different plants, the asexually-produced 
 spores of the sporophyte giving rise to gametophytes, the sexually- 
 produced spores of the gametophyte giving rise to sporophytes. 
 Such a plant is dimorjjhic, and its life-history presents an alter- 
 nation of generations, that is, an alternation of a sexual with an 
 asexual form. 
 
 A typical instance of such alternation of generations is afforded by the life- 
 history of a Moss. Tbe sexual generation (gametophyte) is the moss-plant 
 bearing the sexual reproductive organs, male (antheridium), and female 
 (archegonium), of which the former produces male reproductive cells (spermato- 
 zoids), the latter a single female cell (oosphere). As the result of the fusion of 
 the male cell with the female cell (sexual process), a cell, the oospore, is produced 
 Avhich is the origin of the asexual generation (sporophyte) known as the moss- 
 sporogonium. The sporogonium produces spores asexually, which, on germina- 
 tion, each give rise to a (at least one) moss-plant (gametophyte). The game- 
 tophyte is thus always developed from a spore produced asexually ; the sporo- 
 phyte, from a spore produced sexually. 
 
 This kind of life-history obtains in the majority of plants, but it may be com- 
 plicated in various ways. Thus, the sexual generation may be represented by 
 two distinct forms, the one male (androphyte), the other female (gynophyte). 
 Again, in some of the lower plants, the gametophyte also gives rise asexually 
 to spore-like reproductive cells (gonidia), which do not, however, enter into the 
 alternation of generations, for they give rise, not to sporophytes, but to repeti- 
 tions of the gametophyte. The sporophyte also may similarly repeat itself, 
 though not always in exactly the same form. Further, it occasionally happens 
 that the gametophyte does not actually produce sexual organs or cells at all, 
 though it is essentially capable of doing so ; and successive generations of such 
 gametophytes may be developed by means of gonidia, until at length one arises 
 which is actually sexual. Such non-sexual gametophytes are designated poten- 
 tial gametopliyfes. 
 
 Without entering into detail, the general morphological rela- 
 tions between the two generations may be briefly considered. In 
 the case of the Moss, the morphological differentiation of the 
 sporophyte is, on the whole, not much lower than that of the 
 gametophyte. In the approach to morphological equality be- 
 tween the two generations, the Mosses occupy a central position 
 in the vegetable kingdom. For in all plants higher in the scale 
 than Mosses, the morphological differentiation of the sporophyte 
 is far higher than that of the gametophyte; whilst in plants lower 
 than the Mosses, the gametophyte is, as a rule, more highly 
 differentiated than the sporophyte. In other words, whereas in 
 the higher plants, the sporophyte is the form to which the name 
 
4 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 has been given, and on which classification is based, in the Mosses 
 and the plants below them, it is to the gametophyte that the name 
 has been attached, and it is upon its characters mainly that the 
 classification of these plants depends. 
 
 At this point the question naturally arises as to the morphological 
 relation, if any, which may exist between the members of a game- 
 tophyte and those of a sporophyte. Since, speaking generally, the 
 morphological differentiation of the one form has proceeded along 
 the same lines as that of the other, a certain correspondence exists 
 between their members. For instance, a foliage-leaf of a Moss 
 (gametophyte) corresponds to that of a Fern (sporophyte) ; for, 
 in the forms to which these leaves respectively belong, they 
 stand in essentially similar relations, both of development and 
 position, to the other members of the body. But the corres- 
 pondence does not amount to relationship, and cannot be regarded 
 as constituting homology as defined above (p. 1). It is, however, 
 permissible, to this extent, to institute comparisons between the 
 various members, reproductive organs, etc., of the two generations. 
 
 The consideration of the polymorphism of plants is a most 
 important preliminary to the study of their morphology, inasmuch 
 as this knowledge facilitates precision of statement, and prevents 
 that comparison of like with unlike which has been so common 
 in this department of Botany. For instance, since the sporophyte 
 and the gametophyte of one and the same plant are generally very 
 different from each other, it conduces to clearness if, when 
 reference is made to the morphology of any plant, it be de- 
 finitely stated to which form of it the reference applies. And 
 again, it is impossible to institute sound morphological comparisons 
 between the members of different plants unless it is clearly under- 
 stood to which form, whether sporophyte or gametophyte, the 
 members to be compared belong in each case. 
 
 The most fundamental preliminary consideration is, however, 
 this that the body of a plant consists essentially of a mass, larger 
 or smaller, of living substance known as protoplasm. The body 
 may consist simply and only of protoplasm, without any investing 
 membrane to give it a determinate form (e.g. Myxomycetes) ; or 
 it may consist of protoplasm enclosed by a membrane (e.g. Phyco- 
 myoetous Fungi and Siphoiiaceous Algae) ; or it may consist, as 
 is generally the case, of a mass of protoplasm segmented by par- 
 tition-walls into structural units termed cells. In all these 
 possible cases, however, the form and segmentation of the body 
 
1.] CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 5 
 
 is determined by the protoplasm ; for the cell-walls, of which, in 
 many cases, the body largely consists, and which give to it its form, 
 are developed from and by the protoplasm. Hence the study of 
 the morphology of plants is the study of the processes and results 
 of the formative activity of their protoplasm ; and these are to be 
 traced both in the variety of form presented by different plants, 
 and in the various stages in the development of any one individual 
 plant. 
 
 CHAPTER I. 
 GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 1. The Segmentation of the Body. The body of a plant 
 may be either segmented into members, or uti segmented. The 
 members of a segmented body may either be all similar, or they 
 may be similar and dissimilar. Segmentation into similar 
 members is termed branching. 
 
 When the body is unsegmented, or segmented only into similar 
 members (i.e. branched), it is termed a thallus. A plant of this 
 constitution is termed a Thallophyte. 
 
 The primary segmentation of the body into dissimilar members 
 consists in the differentiation of shoot and root. A plant of this 
 constitution is termed a Cormophyte. 
 
 The Root is usually segmented, but only into similar members : 
 it occasionally gives rise to (adventitious) shoots. 
 
 The Shoot may be either unsegmented, or segmented into 
 similar or dissimilar members. A shoot which is either unseg- 
 mented, or segmented only into similar members, is termed a 
 thalloid shoot. A shoot which is segmented into dissimilar 
 members presents an axial member, the stem, bearing dissimilar 
 lateral members, the leaves ; stem and leaf may be further seg- 
 mented into similar members, that is, be branched ; such a shoot 
 is termed a leafy shoot. 
 
 Though the ideas of shoot and root are correlative, the one involving the 
 other, yet there are cases in which the body consists of shoot only, the root 
 being suppressed; as in the gametophyte of Mosses ; in the sporophyte of Salvinia 
 and Psilotum among Vascular Cryptogams; and in Utricularia, Epipogum,and 
 Corallorhiza among Phanerogams. In many plants no root is developed until 
 after the stem and leaves have begun to appear. The shoot, in these cases, is 
 recognized as such, and is distinguished from a thallus, by being differentiated 
 into stem and leaves. 
 
PART 1. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 1. 
 
 Three main types of morphological constitution may be dis- 
 tinguished: 
 
 1. The body is a thallus. 
 
 2. The body consists of root and thalloid shoot (two dissimilar 
 members) . 
 
 3. The body consists of root and leafy shoot (three dissimilar 
 members). 
 
 These members frequently bear others of secondary morpho- 
 logical importance, such as hairs, prickles, and reproductive 
 organs. 
 
 In highly organised plants the members can, as a rule, be 
 readily distinguished from each other; but in some cases there 
 is difficulty in distinguishing between leaves and branches of the 
 stem, between leaves and hairs or prickles, between roots and 
 branches of the stem, etc. This difficulty is especially great in the 
 study o less highly organised forms (e.g. gametophytes of Algae, 
 Bryophyta, and Pteridophyta), in which, whilst there is a certain 
 degree of morphological differentiation, it is insufficient to 
 obviously indicate the morphological nature of the members. In 
 such doubtful cases an investigation of the development, relations, 
 and structure of the member in question is the only method of 
 arriving at a conclusion as to its morphological nature. For the 
 principal members of the plant, stem, leaf, root, occupy certain 
 definite relative positions and present a general co-ordination of 
 structure, and are thus distinguishable from appendages such as 
 hairs, etc. Moreover, their relative positions serve to distinguish 
 them from each other; and though co-ordinate in structure, that 
 is, presenting a corresponding degree of complexity of internal 
 structure, yet they generally present distinguishing peculiarities 
 in the details. 
 
 The morphological characteristics of the principal members are 
 briefly these : 
 
 The shoot bears the true (spore-producing) reproductive organs. 
 It is frequently differentiated into stem and leaf. 
 
 The stem is the axial member of the shoot, and bears the leaves. 
 
 The leaf is the lateral member of the shoot; it is borne upon 
 the stem, but usually differs from it in form and details of 
 structure, though stem and leaf are co-ordinate in structure. 
 
 The ideas of stem and leaf are correlative, the one involving the other; 
 nevertheless, in some cases (e.g. Kuscus, Cacti, etc.) in which leaves are, appar- 
 ently, not present, the axis is still termed a stem, because the shoot of such 
 
2.] CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 7 
 
 plants is differentiated into stem and leaf at some stage of development, though 
 not in the adult stage ; in many such plants, members which accord with the 
 preceding definition of the leaf are present, though they do not present the 
 appearance characteristic of foliage-leaves. 
 
 The root never bears true (spore-producing) reproductive organs. 
 Like the stem, it is an axis, and it is co-ordinate with the stem 
 in structure, but it does not bear leaves, and its structure presents 
 certain characteristic peculiarities. 
 
 It occasionally happens that one member may directly assume 
 the characters of another. Thus, stems sometimes assume the 
 form of foliage-leaves ; and roots have been observed to bear 
 leaves, becoming, in fact, leafy shoots, in Anthurium longifolium 
 and Neottia Nidus- Avis. 
 
 2. Symmetry of the Body and of the Members. 
 Whatever the form of the body or of a member, it has three axes 
 at right angles to each other. When these are all three equal, 
 the body is a sphere (Ha3matococcus, Volvox, etc.) ; when two are 
 equal, and both longer than the third, the body or the member is 
 a flattened circular expansion (e.g., Pediastrum, Coleochcete scutaia) ; 
 when one is longer than either of the others, the body or the 
 member is cylindrical or prismatic when the two shorter axes are 
 equal, and flattened when one of the shorter axes is longer than 
 the other. 
 
 In most cases two opposite ends are distinguishable in the body 
 or member, a base and an apex. The base is in all cases the end 
 by which the body is attached to the substratum, and the 
 members to each other, the free end being the apex. The axis 
 joining the base and the apex is distinguished, whether or not it be 
 longer than the other axes, as the organic longitudinal axis. When 
 the body has no distinction of base and apex, there is no organic 
 longitudinal axis ; but in cases of this kind (e.g. the filaments of 
 Spirogyra) the longest axis is taken as the longitudinal axis. 
 
 Any section, real or imaginary, made parallel to the longi- 
 tudinal axis, is a longitudinal section; it is a radial longitudinal 
 section if it includes the longitudinal axis ; it is a tangential longi- 
 tudinal section if it does not include it. A section made at right 
 angles to the longitudinal axis is a transverse section ; the section 
 of the longitudinal axis is the organic centre of the transverse 
 section, and it commonly is also the geometrical centre of the 
 transverse section, but occasionally the organic and the geometrical 
 centres do not coincide. Thus, in transverse sections of tree-trunks, 
 
PART I. THE MOBPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [2. 
 
 the annual rings are comparatively rarely arranged symmetrically 
 around the geometrical centre. The longitudinal axis, then, is a 
 line passing through the organic centres of the successive trans- 
 verse sections. 
 
 Two kinds of symmetry may be distinguished ; the multilateral, 
 including the radial ; and the bilateral, including the isolilateral 
 and the zygomorpliic. The determination of the nature of the 
 symmetry of a body or member depends upon (a) its external 
 form, (6) the arrangement and form of the members which it may 
 bear, (c) its internal structure. 
 
 1. Multilateral and Radial Symmetry. Absolute multilateral 
 
 symmetry is only pre- 
 sented by a body or 
 member which is 
 spherical and has no 
 distinction between 
 base and apex. For 
 example, the body of 
 Volvox can be divided 
 into symmetrical 
 halves in any plane 
 passing through the 
 centre (Fig. 1.). 
 
 The more limited 
 form of multilateral 
 symmetry, which may 
 be conveniently dis- 
 tinguished as radial, 
 is that which obtains 
 in cylindrical bodies 
 or members. It is multilateral symmetry about the longitudinal 
 axis. In this case the body or member can be divided in various 
 planes along the longitudinal axis into a number of similar 
 halves. 
 
 A mushroom with a central stalk, an apple, a cylindrical tree- 
 trunk, are radially symmetrical as regards their external form. 
 
 As regards the position of the lateral members, the trunks of 
 Firs and Spruces, with branches arising on all sides, are radially 
 symmetrical ; and, as regards the form of the lateral members, 
 the flowers of the Rose and of the Tulip are radial (see page 507, 
 Symmetry of the Flower). 
 
 FIG. I. Volvox Glolator (after Cohn ; x about 100), 
 illustrating multilateral symmetry. 
 
2.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 
 The transverse section usually shows complete radial symmetry 
 of structure, at least when the member is young ; it may become 
 somewhat asymmetrical when older, as in the case of the tree- 
 trunks mentioned above. 
 
 A radial body or member can be divided by radial longitudinal 
 sections in two or more planes, into symmetrical halves, which are 
 to each other as an object and its image reflected in a mirror 
 (in Fig. 2, J, the halves obtained by the sections 1-1, 2-2, 3-3, 
 4-4, 5-5). The possible number of such similar halves is not 
 always the same, but it is in any case at least four. In a mush- 
 room or a fir-stem, there are many possible planes of symmetrical 
 section ; but in a Tulip, the sections being taken through the 
 longitudinal axis of the floral leaves, only three are possible ; and 
 
 FJG. 2. Diagrammatic transverse sections of A. an apple ; B, a walnut ; C, a peach ; 1-1, 
 6-5, are the planes of symmetry. A, with five planes of symmetry, is radially symmetrical ; 
 7r, carpel. B, with two planes of symmetry, is isobilateral ; /, tbe suture ; s, the seed. 
 C, with a single plane of symmetry, is dorsiventral ; R, dorsal surface ; B, ventral surface ; 
 r, right, and I, left flanks ; 7c, stone. 
 
 in an apple, if they pass through the loculi of the core, only five 
 (Fig. 2 A). 
 
 The two halves are not always as exactly alike as an object and its reflected 
 image ; this is not the case, for instance, in a fir-trunk, because the lateral 
 branches are not borne at the same level. The two halves are, however, essen- 
 tially similar. When, however, a body is divisible in at least two planes into 
 precisely similar halves, it is said to be poly symmetrical. 
 
 2. Bilateral Symmetry. A body or member is said to be bilate- 
 rally symmetrical when it presents an anterior, a posterior, and 
 two lateral surfaces; the lateral surfaces, or flanks, being different 
 from the anterior and posterior. Such a body or member is 
 divisible into two symmetrical halves, either in two planes, or in 
 
10 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 2. 
 
 one plane only; when it is so divisible in two planes, the halves 
 resulting from the section in one plane, are different from the 
 halves resulting from section in the other. 
 
 Bilateral members are distinguished as isobilateral or as zygo- 
 morphic (or monosymmetrical), accordingly as they are symmetri- 
 cally divisible in two planes or in one plane. 
 
 a. Tsobilateral Symmetry. Isobilateral symmetry is usually mani- 
 fested in the external form. Thus, a walnut is at once seen to be 
 divisible into two symmetrical halves by section, either through 
 the suture, or at right angles to this plane (Fig. 2, B) ; so also a 
 flattened erect leaf like that of the Iris. 
 
 It may be manifested by the position of the lateral members ; for 
 instance, in many shoots (e.g. the Elm) the leaves are borne in two 
 rows, right and left, one row on each flank. 
 
 It may be manifested also in the internal structure. Thus, a 
 transverse section of a walnut (Fig. 2 S) shows that internal, as 
 well as external, isobilateral symmetry exists. But this does not 
 obtain in all cases ; the internal structure of isobilateral leaves is 
 often not strictly isobilaterally symmetrical. 
 
 b. Zygomorphic Symmetry. A zygomorphic or monosymmetri- 
 cal body or member is divisible into two similar halves in one 
 plane only. Of this there are two principal cases : first, that in 
 which the anterior and posterior halves are similar, whilst the 
 right and left halves are dissimilar, in other words, when the 
 plane of symmetry is lateral ; the body or member is then laterally 
 zygomorphic (e.g. flower of Corydalis) : secondly, that in which 
 the anterior and posterior halves are dissimilar whilst the right 
 and left halves are similar, in other words, when the plane of 
 symmetry is antero-posterior ; the body or member is then said 
 to be dorsiventrally zygomorphic, or, briefly dorsiventral. Less fre- 
 quently, as in some flowers (see page 508, Symmetry of the Flower), 
 the plane of symmetry is neither lateral nor antero-posterior, but 
 intermediate between the two, the zygomorphy being oblique. 
 
 Of these possible forms of zygomorphic symmetry the dorsi- 
 ventral is the most common. The term is derived from the use of 
 the terms dorsal and ventral to indicate, respectively, the dissimilar 
 anterior and posterior halves of the body. 
 
 The application of the terms dorsal and ventral to the two dissimilar halves 
 of the body or a member requires some explanation. Generally speaking the 
 under surface of a dorsiventi al body is the ventral, the upper the dorsal. In 
 the case of leaves, however, the terms dorsal and ventral are used with reference 
 
2.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 11 
 
 to the parent stem : the upper or inner surface is here the ventral, the outer 
 or loiver, the dorsal. 
 
 The difference between the dorsal and ventral halves may be 
 exhibited in their external form. Thus, the dorsal and ventral 
 halves of many fruits (Peach, Fig. 2 G ; or a pea-pod) may be 
 distinguished at once by their form. Or the difference may be 
 in the nature of the members which they bear (Fig. 3) ; thus, 
 creeping dorsiventral shoots commonly bear (adventitious) roots or 
 root-hairs on their ventral, and branches or leaves on their dorsal 
 surface ; or the one surface may bear lateral members, and the 
 other none. Or, finally, the difference may exist in their internal 
 structure; thus, in dorsiventral foliage-leaves, the internal structure 
 of the dorsal half is different from that of the ventral half. 
 
 It must not be overlooked 
 that the terms radial, isobi- 
 lateral, and dorsiventral, may 
 be all applicable to one and 
 the same body or member, 
 according to the particular 
 feature winch is taken into 
 consideration. For example, 
 a branch of the Silver Fir is, 
 in its general appearance, 
 dorsiventral ; a dorsal and a 
 ventral half are readily dis- 
 tinguishable. But, since tho 
 leaves are arranged sym- 
 metrically around it, it is in 
 this respect radial. Again, 
 since the lateral branches 
 arise right and left upon its 
 flanks, it is in this respect 
 isobilateral. Hence it is im- 
 portant to distinguish clearly 
 between the symmetry of any 
 part of the body as a whole, and that of its constituent members. 
 Thus in many isobilateral and dorsiventral shoots, the stem, 
 regarded by itself, is radially symmetrical ; the isobilaterality or 
 dorsiventrality of the shoot being, in these cases, indicated only by 
 the mode of arrangement of the leaves upon the stem. 
 
 The symmetry of a body or of a member may change in the 
 
 FIG. 3. Polysiphonia (Herposiphonia) (after 
 Naegeli). To illustrate dorsiventrality. The 
 horizontal stem bears the leaves (f) on the 
 dorsal surface ; the root-hairs (r) on the ventral 
 surface; and the branches (a b c) on the flanks. 
 
12 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 2. 
 
 course of its development. For instance, the originally radial 
 lateral shoots of many trees and shrubs eventually become isobi- 
 lateral in consequence of twisting or torsion, by which the leaves 
 come to lie in two rows, one on each flank of the branch (e.g. Elm, 
 Hornbeam). Again, originally radial lateral shoots may become 
 dorsiventral. Thus, in many Coniferse, the lateral shoots become 
 dorsiventral, as is shown by the position and the size of the leaves. 
 The leaves twist so that their ventral surfaces are directed up- 
 wards, and the leaves on the upper are considerably shorter than 
 those borne on the under surface of the branch. The same thing 
 occurs in many flowers (e.g. Epilobium) ; they are at first radial, 
 but they become dorsiventral. Similarly, an isobilateral member 
 may become dorsiventral. The most familar instance of this is 
 the development of the dorsiventral shoot of Marchantia from the 
 isobilateral gemma; again, many dorsiventral leaves become 
 
 FIG. 4 Isobilateral gemma of Marchantia in tranverse section; a, cells capable of 
 developing into root-hairs ; e, growing-point of one side ; d, the margin of the gemma 
 projecting on the further side of the depression in which the growing-point is situated 
 (after Pfeffer). 
 
 isobilateral under certain conditions of exposure to light. Further, 
 creeping shoots (e.g. Acorus and Butomus) may, in consequence 
 of torsion, bear all their leaves on the upper (dorsal) surface, 
 whilst the ventral surface bears roots. Again, an isobilateral 
 member may become radial ; a stem which bears leaves originally 
 in two rows, and is therefore isobilateral, may subsequently bear 
 leaves in many rows, thereby manifesting its radial symmetry. 
 Finally, a dorsiventral member may become radial. For instance, 
 the fertile branches of the dorsiventral Marchantia-thallus are 
 radial ; again, the branches of Phyllocladus trichomanoides, are 
 under ordinary circumstances dorsiventral, but if they are espe- 
 cially vigorous they may become radial. 
 
 The causes which determine the symmetry of the body or of a 
 
3.] CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 13 
 
 member are mainly inherent ; but it has been ascertained in many 
 cases that external conditions have a preponderating influence, as 
 is well shown in the preceding instances of a change of symmetry 
 due to the intensity and direction of the incident rays of light, or 
 (as in certain dorsiventral flowers) to the action of gravity. 
 
 When a body or a member cannot be symmetrically divided into 
 two similar halves in any plane whatever, it is said to be asymmetric. 
 The asymmetry in these cases is frequently associated with dorsi- 
 ventrality ; as in some Mushrooms (e.g. Lenzites dbietina) ; in 
 some foliage-leaves which are oblique, 
 that is, the right and left halves of 
 which are not symmetrical (e.g. Elm, 
 some Begonias) ; and in some flowers 
 (e.g. Aconitum, Delphinium). 
 
 3. The Development of the 
 Body and of the Members, It 
 is explained in a subsequent para- 
 graph dealing with Reproduction , 
 that new organisms are developed 
 either from what are termed vegetative 
 reproductive organs, or from specialized 
 reproductive cells termed spores: the 
 latter case only is now considered. 
 
 There are certain important varia- 
 tions in the mode of development of 
 the body from the spore. As a rule, 
 the whole spore takes part in the de- 
 velopment of the body ; whereas in a 
 few plants (Characese, Gymnosperms 
 generally) only a portion of the spore 
 is actively concerned in the process. 
 In the former case the embryogeny is 
 said to be lioloblastic ; in the latter 
 meroblastic. 
 
 Again, the spore gives rise, as a 
 rule, to an embryo which presents a 
 general similarity to the adult form into which it gradually and 
 directly developes : such an embryogeny is direct or homoblastic. 
 But in certain cases the embryo produced by the spore differs 
 more or less widely from the adult form, and does not directly de- 
 velope into it, but bears it as a lateral outgrowth ; this mode of 
 
 s.r 
 
 FIG. 5. Chara frag His (after Prings- 
 heim, x4). Heteroblastic embryo- 
 geny : ap, apical portion of shoot of 
 the embryo ; r, primary root of em- 
 bryo, springing from the oospore ; 
 sr, secondary roots ; I, leaves amongst 
 which lies the growing-point of the 
 adult shoot. 
 
14 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 3. 
 
 embryogeny is indirect or heteroblastic. In illustration of hetero- 
 blastic embryogeny may be mentioned the Characeae, where the 
 oospore gives rise to an embryo (sometimes termed proembryo) of 
 limited development, upon which the adult sexual form arises as a 
 lateral branch (Fig. 5) ; the Mosses, where the spore gives rise to 
 a filamentous embryo (the protonema), upon which the adult 
 Moss-plants arise as lateral branches : similarly, Lemanea and 
 Batrachospermum among the Red Seaweeds, where the spore gives 
 rise to a filamentous embryonic form (Chantransia-forrn) which 
 bears the adult form as lateral branches. Traces, more or less 
 distinct, of this mode of embryogeny are also to be found in the 
 development of the prothallium of some Ferns, which, in its early 
 stages at least, is filamentous and pro tone uial (see further under 
 Filicinoe). 
 
 Whilst the foregoing striking instances of heteroblastic embryo- 
 geny all refer to the gametophyte or sexual generation, indications 
 of a similar embryogeny are not wanting in the case of the sporo- 
 phyte. Among the lower plants something of the kind is offered 
 by Cutleria ( Phasophyceee) where, from the zygospore, a club- 
 shaped body is developed, from which spring the flat horizontal 
 branches constituting the sporophyte. But a more important in- 
 stance is that of certain of the higher Pteridophyta (Selaginella 
 and Lycopodium) and of the Phanerogams generally, where the 
 oospore gives rise^ on germination, in the first instance, to a more 
 or less elongated filamentous body termed the suspensor, at the ex- 
 tremity of which the embryo is eventually developed. 
 
 From these forms the transition is easy to those in which the 
 embryo, whilst developing directly and continuously into the adult 
 form, possesses organs which are limited in their duration to the 
 embryonic stage : such are the foot of Bryophyta and of most 
 Pteridophyta; the pegs or feeders of the seedlings of Welwitschia, 
 Gnetum, Cucmnis, etc. ; and the primary leaves (cotyledons), 
 though in some forms they persist for a considerable time. 
 
 Without entering at present into the details of embryogeny, it 
 may be pointed out that there are three principal modes in which 
 the development of the embryo from the spore may take place. 
 There is, first, that in which the spore grows out into a filament, 
 septate or unseptate, as generally in the Fungi, the filamentous 
 Algae, the gametophyte of the Mosses and Ferns, the male game- 
 tophyte (pollen-tube) of Phanerogams, the sporophyte of most 
 Phanerogams (suspensor) ; secondly, that in which the spore grows 
 
3.] CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 15 
 
 at first in all dimensions and undergoes repeated division in two 
 or three perpendicular meridian planes, thus giving rise to a body 
 which is either a flattened expansion (e.g. species of Coleocheete) ; 
 or a mass of cells (e.g. Volvox, Fucus; sporophyte of Mosses and 
 Vascular Cryptogams) ; thirdly, that in which free cell-formation 
 takes place within the spore, the cells eventually forming the 
 body of the embryo (e.g. Hydrodictyon ; female gametophyte of 
 Phanerogams ; sporophyte of Cycadaceaa and of Ginkgo). 
 
 a. The Development of the Primary Members. With regard to 
 thallophytic plants, it suffices to state that the primary member of 
 the thallus takes origin from the spore in one or other of the pre- 
 ceding modes. 
 
 In the case of cormophytic plants, the first step is the differentia- 
 tion of the body of the embryo into primary shoot and the primary 
 root. 
 
 In unseptate plants, such as the Siphonacese (Algse), the process 
 of segmentation into primary shoot and root is simple ; the spore 
 merely grows out into the shoot at one end, and into the root at 
 the opposite end. In septate plants the segmentation is in many 
 cases clearly indicated (as in Fucus, sporophyte of most Vascular 
 Cryptogams, etc.), by the formation of a wall, termed the basal 
 ivall, which divides the spore into two cells. From, one of these, 
 termed the epibasal cell, the shoot is developed ; from the other, 
 termed the hypobasal cell, the root is developed. 
 
 Whatever the mode in which the differentiation of the primary 
 shoot and of the primary root takes place, the relation between 
 them is in all cases such that their longitudinal axes form one straight 
 line, with the growing-point of the shoot at one end, and that of 
 the root at the other. 
 
 The segmentation of the body of the embryo into root and shoot is usually 
 permanent, but in many plants which do not grow attached (e.g. Spirogyra, 
 [Fig. 6] , and other Zygnemeoe) it is onl/ to be observed iu the early stages of 
 development. 
 
 In some cormophytic plants no primary root is developed, e.g. gametophyte 
 of Mosses ; sporophyte of Salvinia and Psilotum, among Vascular Cryptogams ; 
 Woffia arrhiza, Utri.cularia, and Orchidd, among Phanerogams. 
 
 In those cormophytes in which the shoot is differentiated into 
 stem and leaf, the differentiation takes place at an early stage of 
 development. The primary shoot undergoes differentiation into a 
 primary stem, and one, two, or more, primary leaves. A primary 
 
16 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 3. 
 
 leaf which is thus contemporary in origin with the primary stem 
 is termed a cotyledon. The cotyledons, as embryonic members, 
 differ more or less widely in form from the ordinary foliage-leaves 
 of the adult plant. 
 
 b. Growth. The development of the embryo into the ad alt or- 
 ganism is effected by the further growth of the primary members, 
 and by the development of secondary members. 
 
 When the adult form is small and lowly organised, the process 
 of growth may consist merely in a slight increase in size of the 
 cell or cells constituting the embryo. But where the adult form 
 is relatively large, the process of growth involves also a consider- 
 able increase in the mass of the protoplasm of the embryo. Thus, 
 in the development of a tree such as an Oak, not only is there an 
 
 Fie. 6. Yonng plant of Spirogyra, showing temporary differentiation into root and 
 shoot j the root-end is still in the zygospore (after Pringsheim, x 125). 
 
 increase in size of the cells of the embryo, but there is also a 
 formation of additional protoplasm and therefore also a formation 
 of additional cells. The formation of new protoplasm takes place 
 at first throughout the body of the embryo, that is, inter stitially, 
 the whole protoplasm being in the embryonic condition; but 
 gradually more or less of the protoplasm 'passes over into the 
 adult condition, arid in those parts no further formation of addi- 
 tional protoplasm or cells takes place. In some cases (e.g. Volvox) 
 the whole protoplasm passes over simultaneously into the adult 
 condition ; bat more commonly certain portions of the protoplasm 
 remain embryonic for a longer or shorter time. These persistent 
 embryonic regions are termed growing -points. At first they are 
 
3.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 17 
 
 near together, but as growth proceeds they become more and 
 mere widely separated by the increase in the adult portion of the 
 body. In a few cases (e.g. Spirogyra, and some other filamentous 
 Algae) all the cells remain embryonic, the growth in length of the 
 filament being effected by the transverse division of the cells and 
 the subsequent elongation of the new cells formed. 
 
 The primary function of the growing-point is to increase the 
 size, more especially the length, of the member to which it be- 
 longs ; but where the body is segmented, the growing-points are 
 also the seat of development of the secondary members. 
 
 The embryonic regions of the body are termed " growing-points " 
 because they are most commonly situated at the apex of the mem- 
 bers. Thus, in a cormophytic embryo, there is a grow ing- point at 
 the apex of the primary stem, and one at the apex of the primary 
 
 B. 
 
 FIG. 7. Growing-points showing development of secondary members. A, apical grow- 
 ing point, with apical cell, of Stypocaulon scoparium (x30). JB, intercalary growing-point 
 (where the transverse lines are close together) of Desmarestia ligulata in longitudinal 
 section (x60). C, apical growing-point, with apical cell, of Choetopteris plumosa (x40), 
 (after Falkenberg). 
 
 root. But this is not necessarily the case. The growing-point 
 may be situated between the base and the apex, as in some Algce 
 (e.g. Ectocarpus and Laminaria), and in leaves (e.g. Grasses, 
 Onion, Iris, etc.), when it is termed an intercalary growing-point. 
 In some cases both an apical and one or more intercalary grow- 
 ing-points co-exist, as in the stem of Hippuris, Myriophyllum, etc. 
 
 One of the most remarkable instances of an intercalary grow- 
 ing-point is that occurring in connection with the development 
 of hollow, more or less tubular structures (e.g. inferior ovaries, 
 "calyx-tube " of Rosaceoe, gamopetalous corollas, inflorescence of 
 the Fig, pitchered leaves of Nepenthes, Utricularia, etc.). Taking 
 
 v. s. B. C 
 
18 PAET I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 3. 
 
 the case of a hollow floral receptacle (whether inferior ovary or 
 " calyx-tube "), when the apical growth of the axis is arrested, a 
 zone of embryonic tissue lying close behind the apex gives rise to 
 a projecting ring of tissue, which, by continued basal growth, be- 
 comes a tube enveloping the apex of the shoot. (For the case of a 
 gamopetalous corolla, see Fig. 21, p. 37). 
 
 In the case of a body or a member which assumes a flattened 
 expanded form, the peripheral growth is effected by the marginal 
 cells, which remain embryonic for a longer or a shorter time ; when 
 the body or member has no definite axis of growth (e.g. gametophyte 
 of Coleochcete scutata, and that of Anthoceros) the growth is en- 
 tirely marginal ; but where there are special axes of growth (e.g. 
 foliage-leaves, some fern-pro thallia, sexual plant of Marchantiaceae) 
 growth takes place both marginally and by means of definite 
 growing-points. 
 
 The occurrence of apical, intercalary, or marginal growing- 
 points is general; but it is only in a few cases that there is in a 
 member a growing-point which effects growth in thickness. It 
 is, in fact, the general rule that, when a member has attained its 
 definitive size, it does not increase in thickness. But to this rule 
 there are certain constant exceptions. Thus, the stems and roots 
 of perennial Dicotyledons and Gymnosperms, as well as those of a 
 few Monocotyledons and Pteridophyta, grow thicker year by year 
 by means of a layer of embryonic cells, forming a hollow cylinder, 
 and lying at some little distance within the external surface 
 (see Part II.). This layer, unlike other growing-points, does not, 
 however, give rise to secondary members. 
 
 In the apical growing-point of many inulticellular plants, as in 
 those of some Algae (e.g. Sphacelaria, Chara) of the Bryophyta, 
 and of most Pteridophyta, there is one cell, situated in the organic 
 centre of the growing-point, and distinguished from the other 
 embryonic cells by its size (Fig. 3 J., C). This is the apical cell. 
 In some cases there is a group of such apical cells (e.g. species 
 of Selaginella). In these cases, all the new cells formed in the 
 growing-point are derived from the apical cell or cells, from 
 which, as they grow, segments are continually being cut off by 
 cell-division. 
 
 The length of time during which a growing-point remains em- 
 bryonic is not the same in all cases. It may either persist through- 
 out the life of the plant, as is often the case in primary shoots 
 and roots, when the growth of the member is said to be unlimited; 
 
3.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 19 
 
 or it may sooner or later pass over into the adult condition, when 
 the growth of the member is said to be limited. Leaves usually 
 hav^e limited growth ; occasionally roots (e.g. the primary roots of 
 Monocotyledons), and also shoots (e.g. dwarf-shoots). 
 
 c. The Development of the Secondary Members. After the differ- 
 entiation of the primary members of the embryo, all other members 
 are developed from them and are generally termed secondary. 
 
 When the segmentation of the body is complex, various orders of members 
 may be distinguished. Members borne directly on the primary members are 
 said to be secondary members of the first order ; those borne on secondary 
 members of the nrst order are said to be of the second order, and so on. 
 
 Two kinds of secondary members may be distinguished: the 
 normal and the adventitious. The distinction depends upon (a) 
 the place of origin, and (6) the order of development of the mem- 
 bers. For instance, when a stem or a leaf bears a root, that root 
 is adventitious, because secondary roots are typically only pro- 
 
 A B C 
 
 FIG. 8. Dichotomous branching of Dictyota dichotoma (after Naegeli). A, growing- 
 point with apical cell before division; JB, growing-point with divided apical cell; C, de- 
 velopment of the dichotomous branches. 
 
 duced by primary roots ; again, when a member is developed out 
 of its proper order, that member is adventitious. 
 
 Secondary members may or may not be developed from the 
 growing-point of the parent member. 
 
 The normal secondary members are developed from the growing- 
 point of the parent member. 
 
 The growing-point may produce secondary members either by 
 dividing into two (dichotomy) or by lateral outgrowth. 
 
 The result of dichotomy is, in all cases, to give rise to new mem- 
 bers, which are similar to the parent member and to each other. 
 In no case are morphologically dissimilar members produced by 
 dichotomy. Dichotomy is therefore a form of branching (see p. 5). 
 
 The product of lateral development may be either a similar or a 
 dissimilar member ; if the former, ifc is a case of lateral branching. 
 
 The normal secondary lateral members of the shoot (i.e., leaves and 
 branches) make their appearance, in most casss, as outgrowths 
 
20 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [3. 
 
 from the growing-point of the parent member, whether the 
 growing- point be apical or intercalary (as in Ectocarpus and 
 other Phaeosporese (Fig. 7) ; in other words, they are developed 
 exogenously. This is always true of leaves, but there are cases in 
 which normal branches are developed from internal cells of the 
 growing- point, and have -therefore to penetrate the external layers 
 of tissue before reaching the surface (e.g. Polyzonia, Amansia, 
 Vidalia, Rhytiphlcea among the Red Seaweeds). 
 
 When, as is commonly the case, the leaves are formed in rapid 
 
 succession at the growing- 
 point of a developing leafy 
 shoot, it makes its appear- 
 ance in the first instance as 
 a bad, consisting of a short 
 axis bearing a number of 
 young and still small leaves 
 closely packed together. In 
 consequence of the more 
 active growth at this stage 
 of the under (dorsal) sides 
 of the leaves, they bend 
 ever the apical growing- 
 
 \ \H \1IIII I'll /// 'P intof th s^ot, and over- 
 V Witmf/ la P ea< *? ther ; Commonly 
 
 X _ ^7 some ot the external leaves, 
 
 or portions of them, are 
 
 FIG. 9. Diagrammatic longitudinal section ^j-t* i , 7 -, 1 
 
 through the growing-point of a stem; 6, the m dined lnto bud-scales for 
 
 leaves ; fcn, their axillary buds ; e, epidermis ; /, the protection of the bud 
 
 fibrovascul , ea ; r, the cortex ; pl.plerome; Ag ft T ^ ^ le&fy branch 
 
 does not develope in the 
 first year beyond the bud-stage. 
 
 Buds may be distinguished, according to their position, as 
 terminal or lateral; but it must be borne in mind that a bud 
 which is lateral on the parent shoot is the terminal bud of a 
 lateral shoot. Sometimes the primary shoot of the embryo has a 
 terminal bud, which is designated the plumule. The terminal bud 
 may either pass gradually over into the fully grown portion of the 
 shoot behind it, as in the herbaceous shoots of annual plants; or 
 it may be sharply marked off from the older part of the shoot, as 
 may be clearly seen in the winter-buds of shrubs and trees, in 
 consequence of the periodical arrest of the growth of the shoot. 
 
3.] CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 21 
 
 The point at which a leaf is developed on the stem and remains 
 attached is termed the insertion of the leaf ; and the insertion of a 
 leaf, or those of two or more if at the same level, marks a node of 
 the stem, and the portion of the stera^ whether long or short, be- 
 tween two consecutive nodes is the internode. When two or more 
 leaves are inserted at each node, or when the single leaf has a 
 broad sheathing insertion- (e.g. Grasses), the nodes of the stem are 
 strongly marked, giving it a jointed appearance. 
 
 The normal secondary lateral members of the root are not developed 
 directly from the growing-point of the parent root, but at some 
 distance behind it where the tissues are already differentiated. 
 They are developed endogenously ; that is to say, the growing-point 
 is formed by the division of one or more cells belonging to an in- 
 ternal layer of tissue of the parent root, so that the young root 
 has to penetrate the cortical tissue before reaching the surface.. 
 
 Adventitious members are of frequent occurrence, and are 
 generally not developed from the growing-point of the parent 
 member, but their growing-points are new formations. 
 
 Adventitious branches may be developed on the margin or sur- 
 face of a thallus (e.g. Metzgei'ia, Pellia, etc.). 
 
 Adventitious shoots are commonly developed from the callus (see 
 page 214) which covers the cut surfaces of wounded parts (e.g. 
 development of shoots from pieces of leaves of Begonia, Achimenes, 
 etc.) ; or they may be developed, independently of any injury, 
 on a leaf (e.g. Aspidium Filix Mas, Bryophyllum calycinum, 
 Gardamine pratensis, etc.) ; or on a root, as in a large number of 
 trees and other plants : the development of adventitious branches 
 on a stem is comparatively rare {e.g. Psilotum, Begonia; some 
 Liverworts, such as Jungermannia bicuspidata, etc.). 
 
 Adventitious shoots are, in most cases, developed exogenously ; 
 but endogenous development has been observed (e.g. in some 
 Liverworts, in roots of Anemone sylvestris, Ailanthus glandulosa, 
 Sium latifolium). In some cases they are formed by the direct 
 conversion of the growing-point of a root (e.g. Neottia Nidus-Avis, 
 Oatasetum tridentatum, see p. 7). 
 
 The true adventitious shoots should be clearly distinguished from those 
 apparently adventitious shoots which are due to the overgrowth of a normal 
 but dormant bud (see p. 32) by the surroundiug tissues (e.g. Equisetum, 
 Gleditschia sinensis and triacanthus, Symphoricarpus vulgaris, etc.). 
 
 Adventitious roots may be developed from a callus, or from.leaves 
 
22 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [3. 
 
 (e.g. Cardamine pratensis), or, more commonly, from stems, some- 
 times from the growing-point of the stem (e.g. Isoetes, Angio- 
 pteris, etc.) ; they are usually of endogenous origin, but some- 
 times of exogenous (e.g. Nasturtium ojficinale, Gardnmine pratensis, 
 Neottia Nidus-Avis, Pbylloglossum, Lycopodium cernuum). 
 
 In some few cases, the segmentation of a member into similar members, 
 takes place neither by lateral nor by dichotomous development, but by an alto- 
 gether peculiar process. For 
 instance, a portion of the full- 
 grown thalloid shoot of some 
 Laminarieae is segmented into 
 similar members. To begin 
 with it is unsegmented; but 
 it gradually splits, by degener- 
 ation of rows of cells, into seg- 
 ments which remain united 
 only at the base. The same 
 thing occurs in the leaves of 
 some Palms and Aroids (e.g. 
 Philodendron). 
 
 The members when 
 once formed commonly 
 persist ; but frequently 
 they become separated 
 and fall off after a time, 
 when they are said to be 
 deciduous. The most 
 common instance is that 
 of foliage -leaves. In 
 most perennial plants 
 the foliage-leaves all fall 
 off in the autumn ; but 
 in some the evergreen 
 trees and shrubs the 
 leaves, which may last 
 for more than one year, 
 do not all fall off at the 
 same time. Those parts of the plant which are connected with 
 reproduction are especially deciduous; for instance, shoots which 
 subserve vegetative reproduction, the leaves constituting the peri- 
 anth of flowers, sometimes the whole inflorescence (e.g. catkin), 
 sometimes the fruit (e.g. cherry), seeds, etc. When a member 
 
 FIG. 10. Lamina-rid digitata (after Harvey ; much 
 reduced). The intercalary growing-point is situated 
 at the junction of the old frond (6) with the new frond 
 () ; a is gradually splitting into segments. 
 
4.] CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 23 
 
 thus falls off it leaves a more or less permanent scar; the scar on 
 a node which marks the position of a fallen leaf is termed a leaf- 
 scar (see p. 215). 
 
 Hairs and reproductive organs are generally developed as 
 lateral outgrowths upon the members, but occasionally they are 
 developed terminally from the apical growing-point, in some 
 cases directly from the apical cell. They are commonly de- 
 veloped from one or more superficial cells, but in some cases the 
 deeper layers of cells take part in their formation. 
 
 d. The Order of Development of the Lateral Members. Lateral 
 members, with the exception of those which are developed adven- 
 titiously, are developed in a definite order. The rule is that they 
 are developed in such an order that the youngest are nearest to 
 the growing-point, whether the growing-point be apical or inter- 
 calary. This order is termed progressive succession. 
 
 When the growing-point is apical, the youngest lateral members 
 are nearest the apex ; this form of progressive succession is termed 
 acropetal (see Fig. 7 C). 
 
 When the growing-point is intercalary (Fig. 7 1?), the lateral 
 members may be developed on one side, or on both sides, of the 
 growing-point. When the growing-point is near to the base of 
 the parent member, the lateral members are developed above it ; 
 that is, in basipetal succession. When the growing-point is in 
 the middle of the parent member, the lateral members are de- 
 veloped both above and below it. 
 
 Occasionally, particularly in the lower plants and in connexion 
 with the production of the reproductive organs, the law of pro- 
 gressive succession is deviated from by the intercalary develop- 
 ment of members between those already formed. 
 
 4. Arrangement of Lateral Members on a Common 
 Axis. The relative position of members borne on a parent mem- 
 ber, which may be conveniently designated the common axis, may 
 be regarded from two points of view: in relation either to the 
 long axis, or to the surface of the parent member. 
 
 In the former case, similar lateral members may arise singly, 
 at any given level, or several together ; the former is termed the 
 scattered arrangement, the latter the whorled, the group of lateral 
 members at the same level constituting a whorl (Fig. 11). In 
 accordance with the law of progressive development, it may be 
 inferred that the members of a whorl, inasmuch as they are all at 
 the same distance from the growing-point, are all of the same age. 
 
24 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [4- 
 
 This- is actually true in many cases, and such whorls are said to 
 be simultaneous. There are, however, what are termed successive 
 whorls; whorls, that is-,, the constituent members of which are not 
 developed simultaneously, but in a definite sequence (e.g. leaf- 
 whorls of Characese). These must not be confounded with spuri- 
 ous whorls, which arise in this way, that members which were 
 originally developed at different levels, come, by subsequent dis- 
 placement, so to approach each other that they appear to stand 
 at the same level (e.g. the uppermost leaves on the stem of Lilium 
 bulbiferum, and the so-called whorls of branches of the Conifers). 
 
 The arrangement of the lateral members upon the surface of 
 the parent member is intimately connected with the symmetry 
 
 of the parent member, as already 
 indicated in 2. The three forms 
 of symmetry will be considered 
 separately, regard being had ex- 
 clusively to lateral members de- 
 veloped in progressive succession. 
 
 1. Radial Arrangement. Begin- 
 ning with 1 the whorled arrange- 
 *ment, it must be noticed, in the 
 first place, that the members of a 
 whorl are all similar, and are 
 arranged symmetrically on the cir- 
 cumference of the parent member. 
 If a whorl consists, for instance, of 
 two members, they are placed ex- 
 actly opposite to each other on the 
 surface of the stem, and the dis- 
 tance between them, measured from 
 the points of insertion, will amount 
 to just half the circumference of 
 the stem. Similarly, if the whorl consist of three or four members, 
 the distance between any two adjacent members will be one-third 
 or one- fourth of the circumference, and so forth. The lateral 
 distance between the points of insertion of two adjacent mem- 
 bers, measured on the circumference of the stem, is called their 
 divergence, and it is expressed in fractions of the circumference. 
 
 Moreover, it is a rule, though not without exceptions, that the 
 successive whorls alternate, so that the members of any whorl lie 
 opposite to the intervals between the members of the whorls above 
 
 FIG. 11. Stem of Lamium with whorls 
 of two leaves j 1-1, 2-2, 3-3, the succes- 
 sive whorls. 
 
4.] CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 25 
 
 and below it. Thus the members of alternate whorls are exactly 
 above each other (Fig. 11). 
 
 This arrangement, as in fact all relations of position, may be 
 very plainly exhibited by means of diagrams (e.g. Figs. 12-14). 
 Such a diagram consists of a ground-plan of the stem, regarded as 
 being a cone, and looked at from above : the insertion of each 
 member will lie upon one of a series of concentric circles, and the 
 higher the insertion of the member upon the stem, the nearer to 
 the centre will be the circle of the diagram upon which its 
 insertion is indicated. 
 
 It maybe perceived in the diagram Fig. 12-, that when the mem- 
 bers are arranged in alternate whorls they form twice as many 
 longitudinal series on the stem as there are members in each 
 whorl, provided, of course, that the number of members in each 
 whorl is the same. The longitudinal series, which are indicated 
 in the diagram by radii, are called or* 
 thostichies. 
 
 This particular arrangement of alter- 
 nate whorls of two members occurs very 
 frequently, arid is termed the decussate 
 arrangement. The two members of each 1 
 whorl are said to be opposite. 
 
 FIG. 12! Diagram of a shoot 
 with alternate two - leaved 
 whorls. 0, 0, 0, 0, the four or- 
 thostichies. 1,1, 2, 2, 3, 3, etc., 
 the successive whorls. 
 
 Examples of alternating whorls are afforded. 
 by the leaves of the Characese, of Equisetum, and 
 of Hippuris. Instances of whorls of three mem- 
 bers are found in the leaves of the common 
 Juniper. Decussate leaves occur in most Caryo- 
 phyllaceffi, Syringa (Lilac)y Lonicera (Honey- 
 suckle), Ash, Maple ; in the last named the lateral branches are also decussate. 
 
 It is comparatively rare for equal successive whorls to be super- 
 posed ; that is, that the members of each whorl lie exactly above 
 or below those of the others, so that there are only as many ortho- 
 stichies as there are members in each whorl. This is the case, 
 however, in some flowers (see page 496, Phyllotaxtj of the Flower). 
 
 When the successive whorls consist of different numbers of 
 members, as on the stem of Polygonatum verticillatum, in the 
 flowers of Pomaces, etc., complicated relations of alternation are 
 induced which need not be further considered here. 
 
 When the similar lateral members are arranged in a scattered 
 manner, it is easy to detect that, within a certain region of the 
 
26 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [4. 
 
 FIG. 13. Diagi-am of mul- 
 tilateral scattered arrange- 
 ment, with divergence of . 
 
 common axis, their divergence is constant; that is, that the distance 
 between any member and its immediate predecessor and successor is 
 a certain fraction of the circumference. In a simple case, when the 
 divergence is -^ (Fig. 13), starting with any 
 member 0, the insertion of the next mem- 
 ber developed in acropetal succession on 
 the common axis, which may be numbered 
 1, will be separated from that of by just 
 |- of the circumference, and the next mem- 
 ber, numbered 2, will be separated from 1 
 by I of the circumference, and 3 from 2, 
 and so on. Hence 3 lies directly over 0, 
 4 over 1, 5 over 2, and so on ; so that there 
 are three orthostichies. In proceeding from 
 to 1, 2, 3, and so on, always in the same 
 direction, the circumference of the common axis is traversed in a 
 spiral which, in the course of each whole turn, touches the bases 
 of three lateral members and intersects the same orthostichy. 
 This spiral will pass through the insertion of every lateral mem- 
 ber, and as it does so in the order of their development, it is 
 known as the genetic spiral. The number of lateral members 
 through which the genetic spiral passes in its course between any 
 
 two on the same ortho- 
 stichy, is termed a cycle. 
 
 It might, however, be 
 said with equal accuracy, 
 that the divergence is ^, 
 and that by passing from 
 member to member by | 
 of the circumference, a 
 spiral would be traced 
 which connects the mem- 
 bers in genetic sequence. 
 But in this case two turns 
 of the spiral would have 
 to be traversed before re- 
 turning to the orthostichy 
 started from ; i.e. the 
 cycle will consist of two 
 
 turns of the spiral instead of one. For the sake of simplicity, the 
 spiral is not traced in this longer way, but in the shorter wny. 
 
 FIG. 14. Diagram of a shoot with a constant 
 divergence of |. I, II, III, etc., the orthostichous 
 lines. (Alter Sachs.) 
 
4-] 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 27 
 
 However, this example will serve to indicate the relation between 
 the construction of the spiral and the fraction which is used to 
 express the divergence. The denominator of this fraction gives 
 the number of the orthostichies, the numerator the number of 
 turns of the spiral in the cycle. 
 
 Another very common divergence is -, the geometrical condi- 
 tions of which are readily intelligible. From the Figures 14 and 
 15, which represent a divergence of f , it is easy to see that in this 
 case there are eight orthostichies, that 
 number 9 stands over 1, 10 over 2, and so 
 on, and further, that the spiral passes 
 through the insertion of a member at every 
 third orthosticby, and turns three times 
 round the axis in the course of one cycle. 
 
 If, for instance, it is required to determine 
 the arrangement of the leaves (phyllota&is) 
 on a stem, it is necessary to find the leaf 
 which is exactly above the one, numbered 0, 
 selected as a starting-point, and then to 
 count the number of leaves which are met 
 with in following the shorter spiral round 
 the stem between these two leaves. The 
 number of the leaf which lies in the same 
 ortTiostichy is the denominator of the frac- 
 tion of divergence, and the numerator is the 
 number of turns made by the spiral be- 
 tween the two leaves. 
 
 When the number of orthostichies is 
 greater than eight, it becomes very diffi- 
 cult to detect them, particularly when the 
 lateral members are closely arranged, as the 
 leaves in the rosettes of the House-leek, as 
 the flowers in the capitulum of the Sun- 
 flower, or as the scales in a fir-cone. 
 Another set of lines, lying obliquely, then 
 strike the eye, called parastichies, which 
 also run round the stem in a spiral, but 
 touch only some of the lateral members ; 
 for instance, in Fig. 15, a line which con- 
 nects the members 3, 6, 9, and 12. It is evident that the number 
 of parallel parastichies must be as great as the difference between 
 
 VJ[. 
 
 FIG. 15. Diagram of an 
 axis, the lateral members of 
 which have the constant di- 
 vergence of f : those of the 
 anterior surface are indi- 
 cated by their insertions, 
 t^ose of the posterior by 
 circles ; they are connected 
 by the genetic spiral. I, 
 II, Iir, etc., are the eight 
 orthostichies. 
 
28 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 4. 
 
 the numbers of the members in any one such line. Thus in Fig. 
 15, again, another parastichy connects the members 2, 5, 8, 11, 
 and so on ; and a third, the members 1, 4, 7, 10, etc. From 
 this it is possible to deduce a simple method for ascertaining 
 the arrangement in complicated cases ; the parastichies which run 
 parallel in one direction are counted, and the members in one of 
 them are numbered according to the above-mentioned rule ; by 
 repeating the process in another system of parastichies which in- 
 tersects the first, the number of each member will be found. 
 
 As an illustration : In Fig. 15 there are three left hand parastichies ; taking 
 the members of any one of them, we mark the first 1, the second 4, and so 
 on: there are two right-hand parastichies; so beginning with the member 
 already marked 1, we mark the next 3,. the next 5, and thus complete the num- 
 bering of the members. Having numbered them, it is at once apparent that 
 9 is ou the same orthostichy as 1, and that the divergence is |. 
 
 The commonest divergences are the following : 
 
 11235 81 3 
 
 > Tf> - T 2T> ~3~4- 
 
 This series is easy to remember, for the numerator of each fraction 
 is the sum of those of the two preceding, and it is the same with 
 the denominators. There are, however, divergences which do not 
 enter into this series, namely , f , -*-,. etc. 
 
 As examples of the divergence ,. the leaves of many Mosses, of the Sedges, 
 and the leaves and branches of the Alder, may be mentioned : is a very 
 common divergence for leaves on herbaceous stems, and those of Willows, Oaks, 
 etc. ; the needle-like leaves of Firs and Spruces have commonly the divergences 
 and fy ; ^-, ^j, occur in pine-cones, in the capitula of many Composite, 
 etc. ; the leaves of some Algae, such as Pulysiphonia, have the divergence . 
 
 It has been already pointed out that these laws of position stand 
 in the closest relation to the progressive development of the lateral 
 members. It can be demonstrated that the relation of position, 
 when once established, is maintained, for each new lateral member 
 arises just at the spot on the growing-point where there is the 
 greatest amount of space between the members already formed, 
 and that it thus falls into the order which its predecessors have 
 established. So long as the relation of size between the rudiments 
 of the lateral members and the surface of the common axis remains 
 constant, the divergence likewise remains constant ; but if the 
 former condition be altered, if, for example, the newly developed 
 members are smaller than their predecessors, it will be readily 
 understood that the number of orthostichies and parastichies must 
 
4.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 29 
 
 be increased. Hence we find changes in the divergence taking 
 place jusfc in those regions in which the size of the lateral members 
 alters, for instance, at the base and at the apex of pine-cones, and 
 at the base of the inflorescences of Compositae. Furthermore, 
 subsequent alterations may be induced by growth, either of the 
 axis or of the developing lateral members. 
 
 2. Isobilateral Arrangement. Isobilaterally arranged similar 
 lateral members arise on two diametrically opposite sides of the 
 common axis, and thus form two rows or orfchostichies. Usually 
 the members of the two rows arise at different levels, so that they 
 alternate (Fig. 16). In this case, also, it is 
 
 possible to construct a genetic spiral ; and it 
 will be such, that at every half- turn it passes 
 through the insertion of a lateral member, 
 and connects all the existing members in 
 the order of their age. It is obviously 
 quite immaterial in which direction this 
 spiral may be traced. Examples of alter- 
 nate arrangement are afforded by the leaves 
 of many Mosses (Fissidens) and Ferns, the 
 leaves and branches of many trees such as 
 Elm, Hornbeam, Lime, and the leaves of 
 the Grasses. It is only rarely that the members of the two rows 
 stand in pairs at the same level, thus forming superposed whorls 
 of two members each ; this is the case with the leaves of some 
 Algae (Pterothamnion), and of many Naiadacese, in the latter, pro- 
 bably in consequence of subsequent displacement. 
 
 3. Dorsiventral Arrangement. This arrangement of lateral mem- 
 bers may be manifested in very different ways. In some cases the 
 common axis bears lateral members on one side only ; in others, 
 the common axis bears dissimilar lateral members on its different 
 sides. As examples of the former, the flowering shoots of Vetches 
 and their allies, which bear flowers on one side only, may be men- 
 tioned, as also the thallus of Marchantia and similar Liverworts 
 which bear scales and root-hairs on the ventral surface only. The 
 stem of Marsilea is an example of the latter; it bears leaves on the 
 dorsal surface, lateral branches on the flanks, right and left, and 
 roots on the ventral surface : this relation holds good also in the 
 case of Azolla and Pilularia, and in Caulerpa among Algae. Jn 
 Salvinia the dorsal surface of the stem bears the foliage-leaves, 
 the flanks the branches, and the ventral surface the aquatic leaves ; 
 
 FIG. 16. Diagram of 
 alternating distichous (\) 
 arrangement. 
 
30 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [4. 
 
 in Selaginella, likewise, the leaves are borne on the dorsal and 
 ventral surfaces, and the branches on the flanks. In Utricularia, 
 and in the inflorescences of the Boraginacese, the branches are 
 borne on the dorsal surface, the leaves (when present) on the 
 flanks. In the Lemnaceae, the branches are produced on the dor- 
 sal, the roots on the ventral, side of the shoot. 
 
 The members borne on the flanks, in these cases, are in rows, one 
 on each flank ; and a similar serial arrangement can usually be 
 traced in the members borne on the dorsal and ventral surfaces. 
 Thus, in the inflorescences of the Boraginacese, tbe flowers are ar- 
 ranged in two longitudinal rows ; in those of the Vetches there 
 may be two rows (Vicia Faba, commonly), or many rows (Vicia 
 Cracca). The leaves of some Algae such as Caulerpa (Fig. 17) and 
 
 Fig. 17. A portion of the body of Caulerpa plumaris showing dorsiventral arrangement 
 of members. The horizontal stem bears leaves on its upper (dorsal) surface, and roots on its 
 lower (ventral) surface. 
 
 Herposiphonia (Fig. 3) are borne in one row on the dorsal, and 
 the roots in one row on the ventral surface of the stem ; similarly 
 in some Ferns (Lygodium palmatum, Polypodlum Heracleum) there 
 is a single dorsal row of leaves. In Azolla, Pilularia, and Marsilea, 
 there are two dorsal row of leaves, in Selaginella there are two 
 ventral and two dorsal rows of leaves, and in Salvinia two ventral 
 and four dorsal rows. 
 
 The whorled arrangement is not excluded by dorsiventrality : 
 for instance, in Salvinia, the leaves are arranged in alternating 
 whorls of three, two of the leaves being borne dorsally, and the 
 third ventrally, and thus the four dorsal and the two ventral rows 
 of leaves are produced. 
 
5.] CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 31 
 
 The affinity between the dorsiventral arrangement and the 
 isobilateral is indicated by the fact that many axes develope their 
 lateral appendages on their flanks, though they eventually come to 
 be dorsal. For instance, the creeping shoots of Butomus and other 
 plants prod ace their leaves in two lateral rows, which, however, 
 eventually undergo displacement on to the dorsal surface : again, 
 in the twigs of the Beech, the two rows of leaves approach each 
 other on the ventral surface, and the lateral branches approach 
 each other on the dorsal. 
 
 Dorsiventral or bilateral arrangement may not uncommonly be 
 found in the same plant with radial arrangement, but in different 
 parts : thus in the Hornbeam and the Elm the leaves of the pri- 
 mary shoot of the seedling are arranged radially, whilst on the twigs 
 of the adult plant the leaves are arranged bilaterally (see p. 12). 
 
 5. The Mutual Relations of Dissimilar Secondary 
 Members. In most plants the position of the lateral branches of 
 the shoot is closely related to the arrangement of the leaves. In 
 radial and isobilateral shoots it is the general rule that the lateral 
 buds are developed in the angle, termed the axil, made by a leaf, the 
 subtending leaf, with the portion of the stem above its insertion 
 (see Fig. 9 kn). This kind of branching is termed axillary. 
 
 Other relations, leading to what is termed extra-axillary branch- 
 ing, may however obtain in these shoots. This may be due to 
 displacement, so that the branch springs either from the parent 
 shoot above the axil, or from the surface of the subtending leaf. 
 It may also be due to the suppression of the subtending leaf, as 
 is frequently the case in inflorescences. In some cases (e.g. Poly- 
 siphonia elongata) a branch may be developed in the place of a 
 leaf, occupying its position in the genetic spiral. In other cases, 
 as in many Mosses and Ferns, the bud is developed below the in- 
 sertion of the corresponding leaf ; and in some Mosses, by the side 
 of it. 
 
 Axillary branching sometimes occurs in dorsiventral sho'ots (e.g. 
 Naiadaceae)', but the lateral branches are more frequently developed 
 by the side of the leaves. Thus, in Pilularia, Marsilea, Azolla, etc., 
 where the leaves are borne dorsal! J and the branches on the flanks 
 of the stem, each branch is in relation with the lower edge of the 
 corresponding leaf; and in Utricularia and the inflorescences of 
 the Boraginacese, where the branches are borne dorsally and the 
 leaves laterally, each branch is in relation with the upper edge of 
 the corresponding leaf. 
 
32 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 6. 
 
 There may, however be no definite relation between the branches 
 and the leaves. For instance, the lateral branches of Lycopodiurn 
 are developed without any relation to the position of the leaves, 
 and in dichotomo us branching no such relation can exist. 
 
 When the shoot grows by means of a single apical cell, a direct 
 genetic relation can be traced between a branch and its correspond- 
 ing leaf. Thus, in Mosses, Equisetum, etc., the branch and the 
 leaf are both derived from the same segment of the apical cell. 
 
 It does not necessarily follow, in those cases in which there is a 
 definite relation between leaf and branch, that every leaf has a 
 branch developed in relation with it, though this is frequently the 
 case. Floral and scaly leaves, for instance, have, as a rule, no buds 
 in their axils. 
 
 It occasionally happens, in axillary .branching, that more than 
 one bud is developed in the axil of a leaf. These buds may be ar- 
 ranged either one above the other, (e.g. Aristolocliia Sipho, Meni- 
 spermum canadense, Juglans regia in the axils of the cotyledons, 
 Honeysuckle, Gleditschia sinensis) in progressive succession, so 
 that the youngest is lowest in the axil ; or side by side (as in Allium 
 nigrum, bulbs of Muscari botryoides, inflorescences of species of 
 Musa, among Monocotyledons.; and in some Willows, Poplars, and 
 Maples, among Dicotyledons). In some cases, however (e.g. 
 Cuscufa), the presence of several buds in one axil is not due to in- 
 dependent development, but to the .branching of a single original 
 bud. 
 
 All the shoots that originate ,as lateral buds are not necessarily 
 developed into branches ; thus, in most trees, the buds which are 
 formed in the axils of the lowest leaves of the shoots of each year 
 usually remain undeveloped, and are only incited to growth when 
 the other buds are destroyed. Buds which thus remain unde- 
 veloped for a long period, of ten for years, are called dormant, and 
 the shoots which are ultimately produced from them are said to be 
 deferred. 
 
 6. Branch-Systems. The development from a parent 
 member of members similar to itself is termed branching, and it 
 frequently takes place in such a way as to lead to an aggregate 
 of similar members, constituting a branch-system. The morpho- 
 logical nature of the member does not determine the form of 
 branch-system to which it gives rise; the leaf, the stem, the 
 root, the thallus, all present essentially the same types of branch- 
 systems. 
 
6.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 33 
 
 Two principal types of branching may be distinguished (see 
 p. 19), the dichotomous and the lateral; but it must be borne in 
 mind that this distinction is somewhat arbitrary, and that these 
 types are connected by intermediate forms. 
 
 1. In dichotomous branching, the apical growing-point divides 
 into two new growing-points (Fig. 8) which are at first equally 
 vigorous ; and they may (a) either remain so, or (6) the one may 
 develope more vigorously than the other. 
 
 (a,) When the former is the case, the dichotomy developes in 
 a bifurcate manner (Fig. 18 A). The subsequent dichotomies 
 may all take place in the same 
 plane, as in the thallus of many 
 Liverworts, and in the leaves 
 of Schizcea dichotoma (Fern), so 
 that the whole branch- system 
 lies in one plane, and is bi- 
 lateral. Or the subsequent 
 dichotomies may take place in 
 various planes, which com- 
 monly intersect at right an- 
 gles, as in the roots of Isoetes, 
 where the branch-system is 
 radial. 
 
 (6) When the latter is the 
 case, the branch-system be- 
 comes sympodial. The basal 
 portions, or podia, of the suc- 
 cessive bifurcations constitute 
 an axis, termed a pseud-axis, 
 or sympodium, on which the 
 weaker branches appear as 
 lateral out-growths (Fig. 18 
 B, (7). The more vigorous 
 branches may be always those 
 of one side, producing what is termed a helicoid or hostrychoid 
 dichotomous branch-system (Fig. 18, B}, as in the thalloid shoot 
 of Fucus ; or they may be developed alternately on opposite sides, 
 when a scorpioid or cincinnal dichotomous branch-system is pro- 
 duced (Fig. 18, 0). 
 
 Dichotomous branching is the less common type. It occurs in some Algae, 
 (e.g. Cladostephus, Dictyota dichotoma. Fucus, some Floridese) ; in some Liver- 
 V. S. B. D 
 
 FIG 18. Diagram of the various modes of 
 development of a Dichotomy. A Bifurcate 
 dichotomy. B Helicoid dichotomy; here 
 the left-hand (I) branch is always more 
 vigorous than the right (r). C Scorpioid 
 dichotomy ; the right and left branches are 
 alternately more vigorous in their growth. 
 
34 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [. 
 
 worts (e.g. Marchantiaceae) ; in the leaves of some Ferns ; in the roots of 
 Lycopodium and Isoetes ; in the stem of some Lycopodiums (L. alpinum, 
 dichotoma). In the Phanerogams it only occurs in inflorescences and flowers. 
 
 It will be observed that dichotomous branching necessarily 
 involves the limitation of growth of the branching member. 
 
 2. In lateral branching, the new members are developed 
 laterally from the parent member. Two forms may be distin- 
 guished, the monopodial and the cymose. 
 
 a. Monopodial branching. The characteristic feature of a mono- 
 podial branch-system is the presence of a main axis (monopo- 
 dium), formed by the continued elongation of the branching 
 
 ff S 
 
 FIG. 19. Cymose branch-systems represented diagrammatically. When the branches 
 are regarded as all lying in one plane (that of the paper), A and B represent the Rhipi- 
 dium, and D the Drepanium. When the branches are regarded as lying in various planes, 
 A and B represent the scorpioid (cincinnal) cyme, and D the helicoid (bostrychoid) cyme ; 
 C, the dichasial cyme, the branches being regarded as lying in various planes. 
 
 member, bearing a number of less highly developed lateral axes. 
 This is due either to the greater rapidity, or longer duration, of 
 the growth of the branching member as compared with that of the 
 lateral members. 
 
 A good example of the former case is afforded by Firs. Here 
 both the primary shoot and the main lateral shoots have un- 
 limited growth ; but the former grows more rapidly than the latter, 
 and so constitutes a main axis. 
 
 A good example of the latter is afforded by racemose inflores- 
 cences. Here the growth of each of the members of the branch- 
 
6.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. GENERAL MORPHOLOGY. 
 
 35 
 
 system is limited by the formation of a terminal flower; but 
 the terminal flower is developed last at the apex of the main 
 axis ; hence it grows for a longer period than the lateral axes, 
 although, as is commonly the case, the rapidity of the growth of 
 the lateral axes may have been greater than that of the main 
 axis. 
 
 b. Cymose branching. The characteristic feature of a cymose 
 branch-system is the absence of a main axis. This is due to the 
 diminished rapidity, or shorter duration, of the growth of the 
 branching member as compared with that of the lateral members. 
 When a main axis is formed, it is a pseud-axis, that is, it is not 
 produced by the continuous elongation of one and the same 
 member, but is built up from segments of axes of different orders. 
 Such a pseud -axis is termed a sympodium. 
 
 a. No pseud- 
 axis is formed IT* 
 when two or 
 more lateral 
 axes elongate 
 with equal 
 vigour, and 
 more vigor- 
 ously than 
 the primary 
 axis. When 
 the number 
 of vigorous 
 lateral axes 
 happens to 
 be two, the 
 branch - sys- 
 tem bears a 
 
 superficial resemblance to a true dichotomy, and is hence termed 
 a false dichotomy, or dichasium (Fig. 19 (7; Fig. 20). When 
 many lateral axes are developed close together, the branch-system 
 is termed a pleiochasium. 
 
 If the dichasial branching be repeated, the various dichasia 
 may lie in one plane (as in the Mistletoe) ; or, as is more frequently 
 the case, in different planes. Examples are afforded by the in- 
 florescences of the Spurges (Euphorbia) ; the branches of the 
 Lilac (Syringa), in which usually the terminal bud dies, and the 
 
 FIG 20. Diagram of a False Dichotomy or Dichasium ; the "Roman 
 numerals indicate the order of development of the shoots of the 
 system. Those numbered II' and II' 1 are equally vigorous, and 
 much more so than the primary axis I. (Prom Sachs.) 
 
36 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 7. 
 
 two highest lateral buds carry on the development of the branch ; 
 and in those of Rhamnus caihartica, the terminal bud of which 
 becomes a thorn. 
 
 (/3) A pseud-axis, or sympodinm, is formed when only one lateral 
 axis developes vigorously in each case. Thus, in Fig. 19 A. in 
 which the darker lines indicate the more vigorous growth, the 
 lateral axis has grown more vigorously than the parent axis, and 
 so on. The pseud-axis, which is thus formed, is at first crooked ; 
 but in most cases it subsequently becomes straight (Fig. 19 A 
 becomes B). Examples of the formation of sympodia are 
 afforded by many subterranean stems, such as that of Polygo- 
 natum (see p. 42, Fig. 23 J5), which annually come above ground, 
 whilst a lateral branch maintains the direction of growth under- 
 ground. Much the same thing may be observed, though not so 
 clearly, in the branches of many shrubs and trees. Amongst 
 inflorescences, also many examples of the formation of sympodia 
 are to be found (see Part III.). The vigorous lateral branch 
 which carries on the further growth of the plant is termed an 
 innovation- shoot. 
 
 The various forms of sympodial branch-systems maybe classified 
 as follows: 
 
 1. Sympodia in which all the branches lie in one plane, forming 
 a bilateral branch- system: 
 
 a. The Rhipidium (fan) ; the lateral branches are developed 
 
 alternately in two opposite directions (Fig. 19 A, B). 
 
 b. The Drepanium (sickle) ; the more vigorous branches are 
 
 all developed on one side (Fig. 19 D). 
 
 2. Sympodia in which the branches lie in different planes, 
 forming a radial branch-system : 
 
 a. The Scorpioid Cyme (Cincinnus) ; the lateral branches 
 
 are developed alternately on opposite sides. 
 
 b. The Helicoid Cyme (Bostryx) ; the lateral branches are 
 
 all developed on one side. 
 
 7. Cohesion and Adhesion. It sometimes happens that 
 the originally free edges of parts subsequently grow together; 
 for instance, the margins of the carpellary leaves to form ovaries. 
 In some Florideae, originally separate branches of the shoot have 
 been observed to grow together. But a more common case is that 
 the rudiments of distinct members become united into one whole 
 by the growth of their common base (see p. 17). For example, a 
 gamopetaioufJ corolla (see p. 514, Part III.) arises in th : s way, that 
 

 8-] 
 
 CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 
 
 37 
 
 the whorled leaf-rudiments are raised up by the intercalary growth 
 
 of their common base (Fig. 21 
 
 A, r), and come to be merely 
 
 lappets on the rim of a tube 
 
 (Fig. 21 J5). This explanation 
 
 applies also to perfoliate and 
 
 connate leaves (see Fig. 29). 
 
 The union brought about in 
 either of these ways may affect 
 members developed at the same 
 level, or members developed at 
 different levels ; in the former 
 case the term cohesion is used ; 
 in the latter, the term adhesion. 
 Examples of the former are 
 afforded by gamopetalons corol- 
 las, syncarpous ovaries, etc. ; 
 and of the latter by epipetalous y ^ 21 ._ Flower O f Petunia. A very 
 
 stamens, by leaves adhering to young (x50); B mature (nat. size); fc the 
 
 the shoots borne in their axils calyx; '*' the line along which the cal y* 
 
 .has been removed ; r the tube; I th^e lofyes 
 
 as in the Lime, etc. or teeth of the corolla. 
 
 CHAPTER II. 
 
 THE SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 
 A. VEGETATIVE ORGANS. 
 
 8. The Thallus. Among those plants in which an alter- 
 nation of generations is not known to occur, the body is a thallus 
 in the lower Fungi {e.g. Schizomycetes, Saccharomycetes, etc.), 
 and in many Algae (e.g. Cyanophyceae, some Chlorophyceae, such 
 as Volvox, Desmids, Confervoideae ; some PhseophyceaB, such as 
 Ectocarpus, Sphacelaria, etc.). 
 
 Among those plants in which alternation of generations is 
 known to occur, the body may ,be a tLallus in one or both genera- 
 tions ; it is, for instance, a phallus in both generations in some 
 Algas (e.g. Coleochaete, some Rhodophycese), and in Riccia among 
 the HepaticaB : the gametophyte is a thallus in some Algae, in 
 all the Hepaticse except the foliose Jungermanniaceoe, in most 
 Vascular Cryptogams, and in all Phanerogams : the sporophyte 
 is a thallus in all R-bodophyceas ; and in some Phanerogams, as 
 
38 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 9, 10. 
 
 an exception, the vegetative body, apart from the reproductive 
 organs of the sporophyte, is a thallus (e.g. Wolffia arrhiza). 
 
 The thallus offers considerable variety of form. It may be 
 spherical; or filamentous, branched or unbranched; or a flattened 
 expansion, branched or unbranched ; or a massive tuberous body. 
 It commonly bears hairs. The symmetry of the thallus is 
 multilateral, isobilateral, or dorsi ventral. Complete multilateral 
 symmetry is exhibited when the thallus is spherical (e.g. Volvox, 
 Fig. 1) ; isobilateral symmetry when the thallus is flattened 
 (e.g. Desmids, Coleochaete) with similar surfaces; dorsiventral 
 symmetry, when the thallus is flattened, with dissimilar dorsal 
 and ventral surfaces (e.g. most Hepaticae, and fern-prothallia). 
 
 The branching of the thallus takes place in accordance with the 
 general laws laid down on p. 32 ; the flattened thallus frequently 
 branches dichotomously (e.g. some thalloid Hepaticae). The main 
 axis and the branches may be either limited or unlimited in 
 growth. 
 
 The branches of the thallus may be modified in form in connexion 
 with some special function. Thus, the development of repro- 
 ductive organs is in some cases confined to certain branches, and 
 these then differ in form from the ordinary vegetative branches 
 (e.g. some Hepaticae). 
 
 9. The Thalloid Shoot. The body is differentiated into 
 a root and a thalloid shoot ; in the gametophyte of some Algae 
 (some Siphonoideae, Confervoidese, Phseophyceae, and Florideffi), 
 and of some Vascular Cryptogams (Equisetum, Osmunda, Lyco- 
 podinm) ; in the sporophyte of some Algse (e.g. Dictyotaceae) and 
 of the Bryophy ta (except Riccia) . 
 
 The vegetative body of the sporophyte has a thalloid shoot in some Phane- 
 rogams (e.y. Lemna). 
 
 The morphology of the thalloid shoot is very much the same as 
 that of the thallus. In some cases, however (e.g. Laminaria, see 
 Fig. 10, p. 22), it is differentiated into a basal cylindrical stalk- 
 like portion, and a terminal flattened thalloid expansion. The 
 branching is, not uncommonly, dichotomous (e.g. Lictijota 
 dichotoma, Fig. 8, p. 19). 
 
 10. The Leafy Shoot. The shoot is differentiated into 
 stem and leaf in some Algae (e.g. Caulerpa, Bryopsis, Cladoste- 
 phus, Sargassum, the Characeas, and the gametophyte of some 
 Floridese) ; the adult gametophytic shoots of some Hepaticro 
 
10.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 39 
 
 (foliose Jungermanniacese), and of all Mosses; the sporophyte of 
 Vascular Cryptogams and Phanerogams. 
 
 The distinction between stem and leaf is not, however, obvious 
 in all these plants. In the lower forms, this is due to the low 
 degree which the morphological differentiation has attained ; whilst 
 in the higher forms it is due to the degenerate development 
 amounting in some cases to complete suppression of the leaves ; 
 and also, in some cases, to the assumption of a more or less leaf- 
 like form by the stem or its branches. The true morphological 
 nature of the members can only be ascertained, in these cases, by 
 a study of their development and of their relation to each other. 
 
 In plants which live for more than one year, the shoot may 
 either persist from year to year, or it may die down to the surface 
 of the soil in each year, the subterranean parts being alone per- 
 sistent. Shoots which last only one year are termed annual. 
 
 The general form of the leafy shoot varies widely. Even on 
 one and the same plant there may be different forms of leafy 
 shoots, the differences being due either to peculiarities in the 
 conditions of development, or of function. Marked differences 
 exist, for instance, between submerged or subterranean and 
 aerial shoots; also between vegetative shoots and those bearing 
 the reproductive organs. 
 
 The form of the shoot depends largely upon the amount of 
 elongation which the internodes of the stem undergo. Thus, there 
 is in some plants (e.g. some Florideae ; Sphagnum, and other 
 Mosses ; the Larch, Pine, and Taxodium, among the Coniferae ; 
 and many Angiosperms) a well-marked distinction of two forms 
 of vegetative shoots. These are the ordinary elongated branched 
 shoots ; and short shoots, termed dwarf-shoots, which elongate but 
 little, branch scarcely at all, and are frequently of but short 
 duration (see p. 19). Thus, in some plants (e.g. many pleurocar- 
 pous Mosses; most Ferns, Conifers, and many other plants) the 
 primary shoot continues to grow throughout the life of the plant ; 
 whilst in others, the growth of the primary shoot is limited, 
 the further development of the shoot being effected by a lateral 
 branch, itself of limited growth ; so that, by the repetition of this 
 process a cymose branch-system is produced (see p. 35). This 
 mode of development by innovation occurs in many so-called 
 uniaxial plants whose primary shoot terminates in a flower; also 
 in the acrocarpous Mosses where the elongation of the shoot is 
 arrested by the development of the sexual reproductive organs, 
 
40 PAKT I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 10- 
 
 and, in other cases, independently of the development of repro- 
 ductive organs, as in Hyhcomium splendens, a pleurocarpous Moss, 
 the shoots of which grow for but one year; and in the seedlings 
 of the Lime, and of the Elm, which form no terminal bud at 
 the close of the first year, the further development of the shoot 
 being effected by the highest lateral bud. 
 
 In those shoots of trees which are produced in one season's growth, the lowest 
 internodes, especially those lying between the bud-scales, are very short ; so that 
 it is easy, by noticing the closely-arranged scars of the bud-scales, to deter- 
 mine, in a shoot several years old, the amount of growth during each year. 
 The terminal and the lateral buds of such an annual shoot usually remain in 
 the bud-condition during the first year until the beginning of the next 
 period of growth, so that the age of such a branch-system can be determined 
 by the extent of the branching, the number of years corresponding to the 
 number of times that branching has taken place. In some trees, however, (e.g. 
 the Oak) a second shoot, which had hitherto existed in the bud-condition, is 
 regularly developed in the middle of summer. As a general rule, it is only the 
 more anterior (near the apex) of the lateral buds on the shoot which develope 
 in the subsequent year into branches, as is very clearly seen in the whorled 
 branches of the Coniferae ; when, however, the more posterior lateral buds do 
 develope, the branches produced are successively the shorter the further they 
 are from the apex (e.g. Elm). Whilst in many trees (Conifers, Oak) the 
 terminal bud of a shoot always grows into a new shoot in the next year, in others 
 (Lime, Elm, sometimes Beech) this is not the case, but the elongation of the 
 shoot is effected in a sympodial manner by means of the highest lateral bud 
 (see p. 35). 
 
 In the Larch, the dwarf-shoots bear the fascicled leaves, and spring from the 
 axils of the leaves of an ordinary shoot of the same year ; they usually elongate 
 but slightly each year, but they may, under certain circumstances, develope 
 into ordinary shoots. In the Scots Pine, the dwarf-shoots bear only two green 
 leaves, in addition to scaly leaves ; they arise in the axils of the leaves of the 
 ordinary shoots of the same year, and they fall off when the leaves die. In 
 dicotyledonous trees, these dwarf-shoots occur especially in advanced age, or 
 when the growth of the tree is stunted. They are very conspicuous in the 
 Apple, Pear, and other similar trees, and are the only parts of the tree which 
 produce flowers and fruit. 
 
 The Bulb and the Corm are examples of shoots with short stems ; they are, 
 in fact, forms of the bud, produced underground. 
 
 The Bulb consist of a flattened discoid stem (Fig. 22 B), bearing a number of 
 scaly leaves closely arranged on its upper surface, and roots on its lower surface. 
 The leaves may either invest each other, as in the Onion, when the bulb is said 
 to be tunicate ; or they may overlap at their edges, as in the Lily, when the 
 bulb is said to be imbricate. 
 
 Aerial buds develope in some plants into small bulbs, termed bulbils, as in 
 Liliuni bulbiferum, Dentaria bulbifera, and in some species of Onion. 
 
 The Corm consists of a rounded or flattened stem which occupies a relatively 
 
10.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 41 
 
 larger proportion of space than that of the bulb, and is invested by only a few 
 scaly leaves. It occurs in Crocus and other Iridaceae. 
 
 The Tuber is likewise a shortened shoot, with a swollen stem and small scaly 
 leaves ; it is usually developed underground, as in the Potato and the Jerusalem 
 Artichoke (Helianthus tuberosus, Fig. 22 A). 
 
 The morphological nature of the tuber is readily demonstrated by uncovering 
 the underground shoots of a Potato-plant, when they develope into ordinary 
 
 FIG. 22. Various forms of shoots. A Tubers of Helianfhus iuberosus (| nat. size); 
 s lower part of the stem springing from last year's tuber fc'; in the axils of the upper 
 leaves arise the buds 1m, and in those of the lower leaves the tubers fc with very small 
 scaly leaves and buds. J5 Bulb of Hyacinthus orientalis (reduced) ; fc the discoid stem, 2 
 the scaly leaves, s the stalk which subsequently elongates and bears the flowers above 
 ground, with the buds b ; I foliage-leaves, w roots; 7cn an axillary burt which becomes 
 next year's bulb. C Elongated rhizome of Car ex arenaria (}) ; scaly leaves 71 ; o erect 
 shoot with scaly and foliage-leaves 1. 1) Runner s of the Strawberry, Fragaria (reduced), 
 springing from the plant a, with scaly leaves n, from the axil of which a new plant b 
 arises. E Creeping stem of the Ground Ivy, Nepeta Gleahvmi (reduced) ; // decussate 
 leaves; the internodes are twisted; a axillary shoot; w root. 
 
42 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 
 
 foliage-shoots. Again, if the development of tubers be prevented by cutting 
 off the underground shoots, the buds in the axils of the leaves above the ground 
 develope into tubers. 
 
 The Flower is another form of shortened shoot, the leaves of which, when 
 present, are arranged closely together. The morphology of the flower is 
 discussed in subsequent paragraphs (pp. 76, 494). 
 
 Shoots may grow erect into the air ; or they may grow horizontally either 
 above or below the surface of the soil. 
 
 A shoot which grows horizontally on the surface of the soil is termed a 
 creeping shoot (Fig. 22 E). 
 
 The Runner or Stolon is allied to the creeping shoot. It is an elongated 
 lateral shoot which takes root at some distauce from the parent plant, and 
 winch by the dying away of the intermediate portion, becomes a new individual. 
 The runner may grow either just above (Fig. 22 D), or just below the surface 
 of the soil ; it bears sometimes scaly leaves, sometimes foliage-leaves (Rieracium 
 Piloselln). Banners usually spring from shoots with limited growth, but some- 
 times from those with unlimited growth, e.g. Onoclea Struthiopteris. 
 
 FIG. 23. A Rhizome, with unlimited growth, of Oxalis Acetosella (Wood-Sorrel) ; n scaly 
 leaves ; I foliage-leaves ; I' remains of older foliage-leaves ; bl flower ; 7i bracts. B Rhizome, 
 with limited growth, of Polygonatum officinale (Solomon's Seal) ; I scar of last year's 
 herbaceous aerial shoot; II aerial shoot of this year, which is the anterior portion of the 
 shoot 2; HI bud of next year's herbaceous aerial shoot, which is the continuation of 
 the shoot 3; n scaly leaves; 6 and b' leaves from the axils of which the shoots 2 and 3 
 have ari-en; to rjots. 
 
 When a shoot grows horizontally beneath the soil, it is termed a Rhizome 
 
 is characteristic of those plants the subterranean parts of which alone are 
 
 persistent. The growth in length of the rhizome is sometimes unlimited 
 
 sometime, limited. When the former is the case, it continues to elongate' 
 
 apex and bears either only foliage-leaves (... Pteri , aquilina) .' or 
 
 e-Leaves and scales in regular alternation (Fig. 23 A, /,),* the axils 
 
 of wluoh annual shoots arise ; or only scales in the axils of which annual shoots 
 
10.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 43 
 
 bearing foliage-leaves and flowers arise, as in Herb Paris. More commonly the 
 growth in length is limited, in which case the apex grows out into an aerial 
 annual shoot, whilst from the axil of a leaf at its base one or more subterranean 
 shoots are produced which carry on by innovation the elongation of the rhizome. 
 If the older portions of the rhizome persist for a long time, the basal portions 
 of the annual shoots together form a sympodium (Fig 23 B) ; if, however, they 
 soon perish, then each annual shoot appears to constitute a distinct individual 
 (e.g. Ranunculus acris, Neottia). It is by the simultaneous formation of a number 
 of short innovation-shoots that the tufts of Grasses and Sedges are produced. 
 The innovation-shoots commonly develope roots of their own, but they may 
 remain con- 
 nected with the 
 main root of 
 the plant as in 
 Anemone Pulsa- 
 tilla. 
 
 In rare cases 
 (Haplornitrium 
 Hookcri and 
 some other foli- 
 ose Hepaticse ; 
 Psilotuui among 
 Vascular Cryp- 
 togams), the 
 functions of 
 roots are per- 
 formed by sub- 
 terranean 
 shoots ; these 
 shoots are more 
 slender than 
 the subaerial 
 shoots, and 
 bear the merest 
 rudiments of 
 leaves. 
 
 Shoots which 
 are unable to 
 grow erect by 
 themselves ob- 
 tain, in some 
 cases, the ad- 
 vantages of that position by climbing. The structure of the shoot may be 
 modified so as to subserve climbing. Branches are in some cases (Uncaria) 
 developed in the form of hooks, and may or may not bear leaves ; these hooks 
 serve to attach the plant to others. In other cases, branches bearing small scaly 
 leaves are developed into tendrils, which twine round supports. In other cases 
 the whole shoot twines round a support (Fig 24 A B). 
 
 FIG 24. A Part of the shoot of the Vine (| nat. size) with two ten- 
 drils rr ; the upper one bears small leaves Ji and branches ; the lower 
 one has become attached to a support x and hasrollei up spirally; bb 
 petioles ; in this case the tendrils are branches which are pecu- 
 liar in that they are opposite to the leaves. B Twining shoot of 
 Ipomosa s, with leaves b and a bud /; ; a; a; is the support. 
 
44 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ ll. 
 
 Branches are sometimes developed as thorns (Fig 25). Thorns are hard, 
 pointed structures ; they sometimes form the extremity of an ordinary shoot, 
 as in Rhamnus cathartica; or they are dwarf-shoots, as in Cratccgus coccinea 
 they may bear branches which spring from the axils of scaly leaves, as in 
 Gleditschia and the Sloe (Fig. 25). 
 
 The morphology of the constituent members of the leafy shoot, 
 namely the stem and the leaf, will now be considered. 
 
 11. The Stem. The stem of an annual plant or of an annual 
 shoot is succulent in texture, and is said to be herbaceous. 
 
 A primary stem which persists for several years, though it is 
 herbaceous at first, becomes hard and woody in. texture, and is 
 termed a trunk. 
 
 The stem is commonly branched ; but it may be mibranched, as 
 in Tree-Ferns, Cycads, many Palms and Grasses. 
 
 The form of the stem varies very widely. It may be short and 
 much thickened, as in the bulb, corm and tuber, mentioned 
 above (p. 40) and in some Cacti ; or a 
 portion of it may be much thickened 
 into a tuber, as in certain epiphytic 
 Orchids, where one or more of the basal 
 internodes form a pseudo-bulb ; and in 
 Vitis gongylodes, where any internode 
 may become tuberous. 
 
 The form of the elongated stem is 
 
 FIG 25. Thorn of the Sloe, -, T i i mi 
 
 Pmnus spinosa, a branch, d commonly cylindrical or prismatic. The 
 leaf-scar, from the axil of which prismatic form is, in some cases, de- 
 
 the thorny branch s springs j i 
 
 on the thorn are // leaf-scars ; tenmned by the arrangement of the 
 in the axil of the upper one is leaves; thus, stems bearing decussate 
 
 "fJd J" "'*' f tbe leaves (- Fi g- ". P- 2 *). * at . leaves 
 arranged in four orthostichies, the stem 
 
 is quadrangular. When the stem has an angular form, the edges 
 frequently grow out into a leafy expansion : such a stem is said 
 to be winged. In some cases, as in Grasses, Bamboos, Pinks, etc., 
 the stem presents a jointed appearance at the nodes ; a stem with 
 this peculiarity is termed a culm or haulm. 
 
 When the development of the foliage-leaves of a shoot is de- 
 generate, the stem performs the functions of the leaves : it is then 
 of a green colour, and generally assumes such a form as to have 
 a relatively large surface. Thus, the whole stem and its branches 
 may become flattened, as in Opuntia (Cactacese) and in Genista 
 sacjittalis (Papilionese) : or certain branches only, termed phyllo- 
 
12.] CHAPTER II. - SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 45 
 
 clades, are flattened and leaf-like as in Ruscus (Liliacene), Phyllan- 
 thus (Euphorbiaceae), Miihlenbeckia (Polygonaceoe), Carmichaelia 
 (Papilionacece), Phyllocladus (Coiiiferee), and are either isobi- 
 laterally or dorsiventrally symmetrical. The phylloclades fre- 
 quently bear flowers but not always in the same position. Thus, 
 in Ruscus androgynwB the flowers are borne on the margin of the 
 phylloclade ; in Ruscus aculeatus and R. Hypoglossum, they are 
 borne on the upper surface of the phylloclade ; and in R. 
 Hypophyllum, on the under surface. 
 
 Leaf -like branches are also formed in Asparagus ; they are not 
 flattened, but are small and acicular ; something of the same kind 
 also occurs in Equisetum. 
 
 12. The Leaf. All leaves, except the seed-leaves or coty- 
 ledons, are developed exogenously as lateral outgrowths upon the 
 growing-point of a stem : they are 
 developed, as a rule, in progressive 
 (acropetal or basipetal) succession, 
 though irregularity in this respect 
 sometimes occurs in the case of floral 
 leaves. 
 
 The leaf is developed either from 
 the superficial layer of cells only, or 
 from this and other deeper layers, 
 and soon appears as a lateral pro- 
 tuberance on the growing-point. At 
 this stage it is undifferentiated, and FIG. 26. Phylloclade of Ruscus 
 may be termed Cordial. In some !STS2-i > h 
 plants with very simple leaves (e.g. the phylloclade p is developed ; d 
 
 Chara) the developing leaf undergoes leaf of M the . *W}* beari s 
 
 ' . flowers 61 in its axil. 
 
 no further change beyond increase in 
 
 size ; but in most plants the leaf undergoes differentiation or 
 segmentation along its longitudinal axis or phyllopodium. In the 
 most complete case, the phyllopodium is differentiated into three 
 regions : a basal portion, the leaf-base or hypopodium ; an apical 
 portion, the epipodium; and an intermediate portion, the meso- 
 podinm, leaf-stalk, or petiole] but the last-named portion is fre- 
 quently absent. Most commonly the leaf assumes a flattened form 
 in consequence of the development of a relatively thin mem- 
 branous win</ along one or other of these regions in the lateral 
 plane: the epipodium is typically winged, and then constitutes 
 what is known as the blade or lamina of the leaf ; the mesopodium 
 is rarely winged, the hypopodium more frequently so. 
 
46 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [12. 
 
 The growth in length of the primordial leaf is at first apical in 
 all cases ; it may be persistently apical {e.g. Ferns, generally) ; 
 or apical growth may be early arrested, further elongation being 
 effected by basal growth {e.g. Iris, Onion, Myriophyllum, Potentilla 
 anserina) ; or, more rarely, basal and apical (e.g. Acliillea Mille* 
 folium, and other Composite) growth may occur simultaneously. 
 
 A characteristic feature of leaves is that their growth in length 
 is limited ; but this is not without exception ; in fact, there are 
 all intermediate forms between those which have limited and those 
 which have unlimited growth. Thus, in most Phanerogams the 
 leaves have limited growth; the cells of the leaf are all actually 
 formed at the time of its unfolding, and all that takes place sub- 
 sequently is that the cells grow to their definitive size. In a few 
 of these plants, however, (e.g. Guarea and 
 other Meliaceae) the pinnate leaves have an 
 apical growing-point by which new cells are 
 formed, and the growth in length of the leaf 
 and the development of lateral branches is 
 carried on after the leaf has unfolded. Long- 
 continued apical growth appears to be the 
 general rule in Ferns : in Pteris aquilina and 
 in Aspidium Filix Mas the leaf grows for 
 three years; and in Gleichenia, Lygodium, 
 many Hymenophyllaceae, and Nephrolepis, the 
 leaf grows for many years after its appear- 
 ance above the soil. The most striking ex- 
 ample of long-continued basal growth is that 
 of the two leaves of Welwitschia which persist 
 and grow basally as long as the plant lives, 
 and consequently attain a great lengih. 
 The leaves are inserted upon the nodes (p. 21) of the stem, the 
 plane of insertion being usually transverse to the longitudinal 
 axis of the parent stem ; but in some Bryophyta (Blasia, Schisto- 
 stega) the plane of insertion is parallel to the longitudinal axis of 
 the stem. 
 
 The Hypopodium or Leaf-Base. The leaf-base commonly de- 
 velopes into a cushion of tissue, termed the pulvinus, which forms 
 the articulation by which the leaf is attached to the stem ; in the 
 Gooseberry the pulvinus developes into a spine. In many cases 
 the leaf-base is sheathing, and embraces a part or the whole of the 
 circumference of the node : in the former case the leaf is said to 
 
 FIG. 27.-Leaf of Ra- 
 nunculus Ficaria: t> leaf- 
 base (hypopodium) ; p 
 petiole (mesopodium) 
 I lamina (epipodium). 
 
12.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OP THE MEMBERS. 47 
 
 be semi-amplexicaul ; in the latter, awplexicaul (e.g. Grasses, 
 Onion, Fool's Parsley). 
 
 The leaf-base sometimes produces a pair of opposite lateral 
 branches which are termed stipules ; when they are present the 
 leaf is said to be stipulate, and when they are absent, as is more 
 commonly the case, the leaf is said to be exstipulate. The stipules 
 are commonly winged appendages, similar in colour and texture to 
 the lamina, and they are then said to be leafy (Fig. 28 B, (7), as in 
 the Willow, the Violet, and the Hubiaceas where they vary in num- 
 ber, and they are especially large in plants, like the Pea, where the 
 lamina is relatively small ; in other plants, on the contrary, they 
 
 FIG. 28. -4 Part of a sessile leaf of Grass (Poa trivialis) with the ligule i ; a the haulm ; 
 v the sheathing leaf-base ; I lamina of the leaf. B Leaf of a Willow (Sato Caprea) a 
 stem ; s s stipules ; p petiole; / lamina ;' 7c axillary bud (nafc. size). C Leaf of a Pea (Pisum 
 arvense) ; a stem ; 8 s stipules ; r mesopodium or petiole ; //leafets ; rfrf the upper leaf- 
 lets metamorphosed into tendrils ; r' end of the epipodium likewise transformed into a 
 tendril. 
 
 are small brownish scales, whicli fall off soon after the leaf is un- 
 folded, as in the Beech, the Elm, and the Lime. Sometimes the 
 stipules appear as teeth on the upper margin of the sheathing leaf- 
 base, as in the Rose. Occasionally the two stipules are connate, 
 that is, they are more or less united ; when they cohere by their 
 outer margins they form a single opposite stipule, opposite, that 
 is, to the leaf to which they belong, as in Astragalus ; when they 
 cohere by their inner margins they form an axillary stipule, that is, 
 a stipule in the axil of the leaf to which they belong, as in Meli- 
 
48 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 12. 
 
 anthus and Houttynia cordata ; in the Polygonacese they cohere by 
 both their inner and outer margins, thus forming a tube, termed 
 an ocmi, which surrounds the internode above the insertion of the 
 leaf ; when the stipules of opposite leaves cohere they form on each 
 side an interpetiolar stipule, as frequently in the Rubiacese and in 
 the Hop; this may also take place when there are several leaves 
 in a whorl, as in the epicalyx of certain Rosacese. 
 
 In some cases (e.g. Smilax) the stipules seem to develope in the 
 form of tendrils, and in other cases (e.g. Robinia) as spines. 
 
 Stipules are comparatively common in Dicotyledons ; they are 
 absent in the Coniferae ; absent in Monocotyledons, except perhaps 
 Naiadaceae and Smilax ; absent in most Pteridophyta, except the 
 Marattiacese among Ferns. In Tropceolum majus only the two 
 
 leaves which 
 succeed the 
 cotyledons 
 have stipules. 
 The leaflets 
 of a compound 
 leaf sometimes 
 have stipules 
 at their bases, 
 as in Phaseo- 
 lus, which are 
 distinguished 
 as stipels. 
 In a 
 
 without 
 if 
 
 leaf 
 
 pe- 
 
 FIG. 29. The insertion of sessile leaves. A Auviculate leaf of 
 Thlaspi rerfoliatum. B perfoliateleaf of Bupleurum rotundifolium. 
 C connate leaves of Lonicera Caprifolium. 
 
 times liappens 
 
 that the leaf-base is winged in continuity with the lamina; the re- 
 sult is that' the wings extend round the stem, either incompletely 
 (Fig. 294) when the leaf is said to be auriculate; or completely 
 (B) when it is said to be perfoltate ; when this occurs in two 
 opposite leaves, the leaves become connate (C ; see p. 37). 
 
 There i<, in some cases, a delicate membranous ventral outgrowth on the leaf 
 at the junction of epipodium and hypopodium, termed the ligide ; it occurs in 
 Grasses (Fig. 28 A), in Selaginella and Isoetes, and in the perianth-leaves of 
 some flowers (Narcissus, Lychnis). 
 
 The Mesopodium or Petiole is commonly, but not always, present 
 
12.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 49 
 
 When it is present the leaf is said to petiolate ; when it is absent, 
 sessile. It is developed by intercalary growth in a portion of 
 the primordial leaf lying between the hypopodium on the one 
 side and the epi podium on the other. The most common form of 
 the petiole is somewhat cylindrical ; though, where the dorsiven- 
 trality of the leaf is well-marked, it is convex on the lower 
 (dorsal) surface, and flattened or grooved on the upper (ventral) 
 surface. In the Aspen (Pnpulns tremula) it is flattened laterally. 
 
 Occasionally (e.g. Orange, Fig. 32 Gj Nepenthes, Fig. 37; 
 Dioneea) the petiole is winged. 
 
 In some cases (e.g. Australian Acacias) the petiole has somewhat 
 the form of a lamina. Its flattened surfaces are directed laterally, 
 the edges upwards and downwards, so that the symmetry is isobi- 
 lateral. A petiole of this form is termed a phyllode. In such cases, 
 the lamina, originally present, soon falls off. 
 
 The Epipodium may be either winged or unwincjed. The winged 
 epi podium constitutes the lamina or blade of the leaf, and is 
 typically flattened and expanded in form and dorsiventral in 
 symmetry : but this is not always the case, for in some plants it 
 assumes the form of a sac or pitcher (e.g. Utricularia, Nepenthes, 
 etc.), and in others the symmetry is isobilateral (e.g. adult leaves 
 of Eucalyptus Globulus). 
 
 The form of the unwinged epipodium presents great variety ; 
 thus, in Lathyrus Aphaca the epipodium branches into leaf -tendrils, 
 and this is partially the case also in the Sweet Pea (Fig. 28 C) ; 
 it is filamentous in Chara and some other Algae ; cylindrical or 
 prismatic, as in Onion, Sedum, Mesembryanthemum, Aloe; acicular 
 as in Pin us ; narrow, and flattened antero-posteriorly (ensiform) 
 so that the margins correspond to the dorsal and ventral surfaces 
 of a dorsiventral leaf, with isobilateral symmetry, as in Iris and 
 Gladiolus. 
 
 The flattened dorsiventral lamina is normally so placed with 
 regard to the parent stem that a plane, which includes the longi- 
 tudinal axes of both the stem and the leaf, cuts the lamina into 
 two lateral halves ; in other words, it is so placed that its upper 
 (ventral) surface faces the apex of the stem, and its lower (dorsal) 
 surface is directed away from it. As a rule, the two lateral halves 
 of the lamina are symmetrical ; but in some cases (e.g. Elm, 
 Begonia) they arc unsymmctrical, when the lamina is said to be 
 oblique. 
 
 The ultimate form of the lamina mainly depends upon the 
 
 v. s. B. E 
 
50 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [12. 
 
 degree of elongation of the epipodium. When the epipodium 
 elongates considerably, the lamina has a well-marked primary 
 axis from which more or less numerous secondary axes of growth 
 successively spring, and these in turn bear lateral axes of a higher 
 order : the resulting lamina is then of the pinnate type (Fig. 30 
 ^4). When, however, the epipodium remains short, it constitutes 
 merely an intercalary growing-point from which a number of 
 equal secondary axes spring, and the resulting lamina is of the 
 palmate type (Fig. 30 2?) . 
 
 The development of the peltate lamina, closely connected with 
 that of the palmate type, is effected by a peculiar form of basipetal 
 
 FIG. 30. .4 Pinnate leaf of the Beech, Fagus syivaticc.. m mid-rib, n lateral ribe. B Pal- 
 mate leaf of Alcliemilla vulgnris (nat. size). CPedate leaf of the Plane (| nat. size). 1, 2, 
 3, are the ribs or axes of the 1st, 2nd, and 3rd order. 
 
 growth. In peltate foliage-leaves (e.g., Tropseolum, Nelumbium, 
 Hydrocotyle, Cotyledon, Lupinus, etc.) the petiole is inserted in 
 the middle of the under surface of the lamina, so that the long 
 axis of the former is perpendicular to the plane of expansion of 
 the latter. At first the development is that of a palmate leaf, 
 the petiole being inserted at the base of the lamina, and at the 
 point of insertion there is an intercalary growing- point from which 
 spring several axes (Fig. 31 #, 1.2,3) in basipetal succession. But 
 in this case the last-formed axes (4-1 5-5, in the figure) grow out 
 in front of the petiole, with the result that the whole lamina 
 firradually comes to lie -perpendicularly to the petiole. 
 
12.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 51 
 
 The main axes of growth frequently grow thicker than the 
 rest of the lamina, so that they project as ribs on the under 
 surface. The thickened primary axis (epipodium) of a pinnate 
 lamina is termed a mid-rib. 
 
 The Branching of the Leaf is commonly confined to the epipo- 
 dium, and then it takes place in the lateral plane ; less commonly 
 it occurs in the mesopodium (e.g. species of Ophioglossum, Bo- 
 trychiurn, Marsilea), and then (as in these plants), the branching 
 frequently takes place in the antero-posterior (or dorsiventral) 
 plane. As a rule the primordial leaf is unsegmented, though in the 
 folio.se Jungermanniacese it consists of two segments from the first. 
 
 The branching of the epipodium is, like that of a stem or 
 a root, either dichotomous 
 or lateral, and essentially 
 the same forms of branch- 
 systems are produced. Di- 
 chotomous branching is com- 
 paratively rare : it has been 
 observed in the Hymeno- 
 phyllacese, the branches 
 either remaining distinct or 
 forming sympodia. The two 
 first leaflets of Marsilea are 
 said to be formed by dicho- 
 tomy. Lateral branching is 
 the more common form, and 
 the resulting branch-systems 
 are typically monopodial. 
 Bat in some cases (e.g. leaf 
 of Plane, Fig. 30 (7; of Helle- 
 borus, and of some Aroids) 
 there is apparently cymose 
 branching with formation of 
 a sympodium. 
 
 The ribs of the lamina represent distinct axes of growth ; they 
 are, in fact, branches of the epipodium. The degree of seg- 
 mentation of the lamina depends upon the relation between the 
 growth of the various main axes and the marginal growth of 
 their respective wings (see Figs. 30 and 31). When these keep 
 pace with each other the lamina is altogether unsegmented, 
 that is, its margin is entire', when the growth of the axes is 
 
 FIG. 31. Development of peltate leaf of 
 Hydrocotyle : A full-grown (riat. size); livery 
 young; C somewhat older (B and Cx50); 
 S petiole ; 1-5 primary axes of growth in young 
 leaves, ribs in adult leaf; a secondary axes of 
 growth. 
 
52 . PART I. THE MOEPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 12. 
 
 rather more vigorous than that of the corresponding wings, the 
 margin becomes somewhat uneven (dentate, serrate) ; when the 
 difference between them is considerable, the lamina is lobed; and 
 when still greater, it consists of a number of distinct segments, 
 leaflets, connected only by their common attachment to the mid- 
 rib, in the case of pinnate leaves, or to the petiole in the case of 
 palmate or peltate leaves. Whilst inequalties of the margin are 
 indications of branching, the lamina is regarded as simple so long 
 as the segmentation is incomplete; it is only when the segmenta- 
 tion is complete, as in the last-mentioned case, that the leaf is 
 said to be compound. 
 
 The following examples will serve to illustrate the foregoing principles. The 
 simple leaf of the Beech (Fig. 30) has an entire pinnate lamina ; the leaf of the 
 Shepherd's Purse (Capsella Bursa-Pastoris, Fig. 32 C) is simple, but the lamina 
 is deeply pinnately lobed. Various forms of compound pinnate leaves are 
 represented by Fig. 28 C, and by Fig. 32 B, D, E, F, H, where the distinct 
 segments or leaflets, termed pinna, are inserted on the common primary axis 
 (phyllopodium). In H each pinna is itself compound, being segmented into 
 pinnules which bear the same relation to the secondary axis of each pinna as 
 that secondary axis does to the primary axis of the whole leaf ; such a leaf is 
 said to be bipinnate, and when the segmentation is carried further the leaf 
 becomes tripinnate, etc. 
 
 In compound pinnate leaves, the leaflets are commonly opposite to each 
 other. When only one pair of leaflets is present, the leaf is said to be uniju- 
 gate\ when two pairs, bijugate-, when many pairs, multijugate. When the 
 axis (whether primary or secondary) is terminated by a leaflet, the leaf is said 
 to be imparipinnate (Fig. 32 D) ; when there is no terminal leaflet, the leaf is 
 paripinnate (Fig. 32 E). When, as in the Potato and Potentilla anserina, pairs 
 of small leaflets alternate with pairs of larger ones, the compound leaf is said 
 to be interruptedly pinnate. The difference in size of the leaflets is simply 
 due to the more active growth of the larger ones. 
 
 The order of development of the leaflets of compound pinnate 
 leaves depends upon the position of the growing-point in the 
 longitudinal axis (see p. 17). When it is apical, the leaflets are 
 developed in acropetal succession (e.g. Pea, Ailanthus, etc.); 
 when it is basal, in basipetal succession (e.g. Myriophyllum, Poten- 
 tilla anserina) ; when there is both an apical and a basal growing- 
 point, in divergent succession, that is, both acropetally and basi- 
 petally (e.g. Achillea Millefolium, etc.). 
 
 With regard to palmate leaves, Fig. 32 A, is an example of a deeply lobed 
 lamina; and B, of a compound palmate leaf. It will be observed that in the 
 compound palmate lamina of the Clover (Fig. 32, B) there are three leaflets; 
 
12.] CHAPTER H. SPECTAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 53 
 
 such a leaf is said to be ternate. This segmentation may be repeated in the 
 leaflets, when the leaf is said to be biternate, triternate, etc. On comparing 
 Fig. 32 B and F, the close relation between pinnate and palmate leaves be- 
 comes apparent. A ternate leaf is usually considered to belong to the palmate 
 type, but it might almost equally well be regarded as an imparipinnate uniju- 
 gate leaf. 
 
 FIG. 32. Segmentation of leaves, p Petiole ; p' petiolule ; f leaflet ; r phyllopodium. A 
 Palmatifld or palmately lobed leaf of Geranium. B Ternate (compound palmate) leaf of 
 Clover. C Pinnatisected leaf of Shepherd's Purse (Capsella). Compound pinnate leaves : 
 D Imparipinnate leaf of Hippocrepis comosa; t terminal leaflet. E Paripinnate leaf of 
 Pistacia Leniiscus a wing of the phyllopodium. F Imparipinnate unijugate leaf of Medi- 
 cago. This differs from B, which is ternate, inasmuch as the secondary leaf-stalks p' do 
 not all spring from one point, but the common leaf-stalk p extends beyond the insertion 
 of the single pair of pinnae ; s projecting rib, or mucro. 6f Leaf of the Orange ; the articu- 
 lation, o between the blade and the winged petiole shows that it is really a compound leaf 
 with a single terminal leaflet. H Bipinnate leaf of Acacia : r' secondary axis ; /" secondary 
 pinnae or pinnules. 
 
.54 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 12. 
 
 Occasionally the margin of the lamina bears outgrowths which 
 are not connected with branching, but are of the nature of emer- 
 gences, as in Mnium serratum, the Cherry Laurel, Naias, various 
 Conifers, etc. 
 
 A number of terms are used in Descriptive Botany for the purpose of precisely 
 describing the various parts of plants. The more important of these terms, and 
 those the meaning of which is not obvious, will now be defined. 
 
 (1) The Outline of bilateral bodies, such as the lamina of the leaf, but of 
 multilateral bodies, such as fruits, as well, is said to be linear when the two 
 margins run nearly parallel to each other ; e.g. the leaves of most Grasses. 
 If the margins are curved and intersect at each end at an angle, the outline 
 is said to be lanceolate or elliptical, accordingly as the long axis is many times 
 longer than, or only twice as long as, the transverse axis. If the two curved 
 margins round off at each end, then the terms oblong and oval are to be sub- 
 stituted for tbe two preceding. 
 
 If the longest transverse diameter lies relatively near to the base, then the 
 outline is said to be ovate ; if relatively near to the apex, olovate. 
 
 (2) The Apex may be either acute or obtuse ; when it is long drawn out it is 
 said to be acuminate ; when there is a sharp projecting point, it is said to be 
 mucronate (Fig. 32 F) ; truncate, when it is, as it were, cut short across (Fig. 
 32 D) ; emarginate, when there is a depression in the obtuse apex ; obcordate, 
 when the apical depression is deep. 
 
 (3) The Base may be described by many of the preceding terms, but the 
 following are especially applied to it : it is cordate when it is deeply indented 
 in the median line ; sagittate, when the lobes on each side of the indentation are 
 angular and diverge backwards ; hastate, when the lobes diverge outwards. 
 
 (4) The Margin is said to be entire when it does not present any depressions 
 or prominences ; when the prominences are slight and rounded, the margin is 
 said to be crenate ; dentate or toothed, when the prominences are pointed and 
 stand straight outwards ; serrate, when the pointed prominences slant for- 
 ward. 
 
 If the incisions in the margin are deep, the part, a leaf-blade for instance, 
 or a gamosepalous calyx, is said to be lobed when the incisions do not extend 
 to the middle ; if they extend to the middle, it is said to be partite ; and 
 dissected when they extend nearly to the base (Fig. 32 (7). 
 
 The segmentation of the lamina takes place in some Monocotyledons (Palms) 
 in an altogether different manner from that described above. The lamina is 
 at first entire, but it becomes divided by the dying away of strips of tissue (see 
 also p. 22). 
 
 The Venation of tlie Lamina. The mid-rib and other ribs of the 
 lamina indicate the course of the larger vascular bundles; and 
 from thece, numerous branches are given off which permeate the 
 tissue of the lamina, constituting its Venation. When the leaf 
 decays, the ribs and the vascular tissue persist longer than the 
 soft parts as a skeleton which retains the general form of the lamina. 
 
12.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 55 
 
 111 Aponogeton fenestralis most of the softer tissue decays whilst 
 the leaf is still living, so that the lamina consists of little more 
 than the vascular skeleton. 
 
 The main features of the venation 
 are determined by the type of develop- 
 ment of the lamina. In a pinnate 
 lamina, the venation is pinnate ; in a 
 palmate lamina, palmate ; in a pedate 
 leaf, pedate; in a dichotomously branch- 
 ing lamina, the venation is also dicho- 
 tomous, or as it is specially termed, 
 furcate. But there is considerable 
 variety in the distribution of the smaller 
 vascular bundles : thus the venation of 
 the individual segments of a palmate or 
 a pedate leaf is frequently pinnate. 
 
 FIG. 33. Leaf of a young Fern, 
 with free pinnate venation ; m the 
 midrib ; ss the large lower lateral 
 veins ; n the weak upper lateral 
 veins (x3). 
 
 According to the distribution of the veins 
 and their branches, the following varieties of 
 
 venation may be distinguished ; they are, however, connected by intermediate 
 forms. 
 
 a. The venation is said to be free when the veins end free, without forming 
 anastomoses, at the margin of the leaf ; this is the 
 
 case in the leaves of many Ferns (Fig. 33) ; of Ginkgo 
 (Salisburia), Araucaria imbricata and others, among 
 Coniferae ; of most Cycads ; of Water-Crowfoots, etc. 
 
 b. The venation is said to be parallel, when nu- 
 merous adjacent veins run parallel to each other 
 towards either the apex (Fig. 34) or the margin of the 
 blade, and then unite by curving inwards (Fig. 34 a). 
 They are connected in their course by short veinlets 
 (Fig. 34 v.) which run usually at right angles to them. 
 This form of venation is to be found in the leaves of 
 most Monocotyledons, such as Grasses, Lilies, and 
 Palms, with various modifications. For example in 
 some cases (e.g. Orchis Morio) many veins enter the 
 blade, but they branch scarcely at all ; in other cases 
 lateral veins spring at an acute angle from a midrib 
 which is prominent at the base at least, and then 
 run towards the apex (e.g. Maize and other Grasses, 
 Dracaenas, etc.) ; in others, again, the lateral veins 
 spring almost perpendicularly from the well-developed 
 mid-rib, and run out to the margin parallel to each 
 other, and then turn towards the apex of the leaf 
 (e.g. Canna, Musa, etc.). 
 
 c. The venation is said to be reticulate, when the 
 
 Fie. 34. Apex of a 
 Grass-leaf showing paral- 
 lel venation ; m middle 
 vein; a anastomoses; v 
 veinlots (x4). 
 
56 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [12 
 
 . Portion of 
 a leaf of Salix caprea 
 with reticulate vena- 
 tion : m mid-rib ; n the 
 larger lateral ribs; v 
 the anastomosing veins 
 ,(uat. size). 
 
 veins branch repeatedly at various angles, and the branches for the most part 
 anastomose (Fig. 35). Some of them, however, end blindly in the meshes of 
 the network. This kind of venation is characteristic 
 of Dicotyledons; but it also occurs in some Mono- 
 cotyledons (e.g., Paris, Dioscorea, Smilax.many Araceae) 
 and many Ferns. 
 
 The Different Forms of Leaves. The leaves 
 of different plants, as might be expected, are 
 not alike, but differ more or less widely in 
 size, shape, colour, and textnre. Bat even the 
 leaves borne on one and the same plant are 
 not all alike, the reason of their dissimilarity 
 being that, as there are different functions to 
 be performed, the leaves are variously adapted 
 in form and structure to the performance of 
 special functions. Further than this, the 
 same leaf may present different successive 
 forms, or a difference of form in its various 
 parts, because it may perform different func- 
 tions, either at different times, or simul- 
 taneously by its different parts. 
 1. Foliage-leaves are usually known simply as leaves (Fig. 36 L). 
 They are conspicuous on account of their green colour, and in 
 accordance with their nutritive function (see Part IV.), they are 
 expanded as much as possible to the sun-light. If they are small 
 they are very numerous (Conifers), and the larger they are the fewer 
 they are (Sun-flower, Paulownia). They nearly always possess a 
 well-developed lamina, which presents the various peculiarities of 
 conformation previously described. 
 
 The texture of the leaf is dependent upon the mode and dura- 
 tion of its existence. The texture of most leaves may be described 
 as herbaceous. Leaves of this kind last usually for only a single 
 season, and die or fall off in the autumn. Leaves of firmer 
 texture, which are said to be coriaceous, survive the winter, and 
 cither, fall off when the new leaves are developed (the Privet), or 
 continue to live for several years (Holly, Box, and most Conifers) ; 
 the acicular leaves of the latter may persist for as many as twelve 
 years (Silver Fir). Fleshy or succulent leaves occur in plants 
 inhabiting dry regions or positions, such as Aloe, Sedum, etc. 
 
 It is worthy of note that foliage-leaves of different form some- 
 times occur on the same shoot. For instance, it is commonly the 
 
12.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 57 
 
 case that the first leaves of young plants are of a form different 
 from, and usually simpler than, that of those which are subse- 
 quently produced, and exhibit a greater resemblance to those of 
 allied plants. Thus, Eucalyptus Globulus has at first oval dorsi- 
 ventral leaves, and subsequently elongated isobilateral leaves. 
 Again, the primary leaves 
 or cotyledons, when they 
 develope into foliage 
 leaves, are always dif- 
 ferent in form from the 
 subsequently developed 
 foliage-leaves, being much 
 simpler. In many water- 
 plants, the submerged 
 leaves are different from 
 those which float at the sur- 
 face; thus, in many species 
 of Potamogeton, the sub- 
 merged leaves are narrow 
 and ribbon -like, whereas 
 the floating leaves are 
 broadly elliptical ; in many 
 aquatic species of Ranun- 
 culus, the former are finely 
 divided, whereas the latter 
 have a circular lamina. 
 Again, the submerged 
 leaves of Salvinia are fila- 
 mentous, whereas the float- 
 ing leaves are flattened 
 and oval. 
 
 The simultaneous occur- 
 rence of two forms of 
 foliage-leaf on a plant is 
 termed heterophylly. 
 
 In certain plants the 
 foliage-leaves assume re- 
 markable forms in connection with their adaptation for catching 
 small animals or for collecting water (e.g. Nepenthes, Cephalotus, 
 Sarracenia, Utricularia, Discbidia, etc.). In these the lamina is 
 metamorphosed into a pitcher or ascidium. The development of 
 
 FIG. 36. Three forms of leaves on the stem of 
 Maianthemum bifolium (nat. size): N cataphyllary 
 region; L region of the foliage-leaves; R hypso- 
 phyllary region; d the bracts; 6 the flowers in 
 their axils, w Roots. 
 
5S 
 
 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLAN'IS. 
 
 [ 12. 
 
 the pitcher begins in very much the same way as that of the lamina 
 of a peltate leaf ; but instead of remaining flat, it becomes tubular 
 by continued basal intercalary growth, (see p. 17). The leaf may, 
 as in Sarracenia and Darlingtonia, be sessile ; or it may be 
 petiolate, as in Cephalotus and Nepenthes : in Nepenthes (Fig. 
 37) the petiole is winged for some distance in its lower portion. 
 The lid, when present, is a development of the apical, or sub-apical 
 (Nepenthes), portion of the lamina; at its first development it 
 adheres firmly to the rim of the ascidium, from which it eventually 
 separates, except at the point of attachment ; the lid is bilobed. 
 2. Leaf-Tendfils (see p. 49) are leaves or parts of leaves which 
 have a somewhat filamentous form, and 
 which possess the property of twisting 
 spirally round foreign bodies, thus 
 fixing the plant (see Part IV.). In 
 species of Clematis, Tropeeolum, etc., 
 this function is performed by the pe- 
 tiole of the foliage-leaf ; but in the 
 Vetches and Peas there is a division 
 of labour of this kind, that the anterior 
 leaflets of the pinnate leaf are modified 
 into tendrils (Fig. 28, C, rf) ; in La- 
 thy rus Apliaca, all the leaflets undergo 
 this metamorphosis, and the special 
 functions of the foliage-leaves are dis- 
 charged by the stipules. The tendrils 
 of the Cucurbitacea3 are also metamor- 
 phosed leaves. 
 
 3. Leaf -Spines are leaves or parts of 
 leaves which are modified into pointed, 
 hard, woody structures. Spiny teeth 
 are often present on foliage leaves (e.g. 
 Holly, Thistles) ; in species of Caragana and Astragalus the phyl- 
 lopodium of the pinnate leaf becomes a spine after the falling-off 
 of the green leaflets ; finally, the entire leaf becomes spiny in 
 Berberis (Fig. 38). 
 
 4. Scales or cataphyttary leaves (Fig. 36 N). These are usually 
 of a yellow or brown colour, of simple structure, without project- 
 ing veins, and are attached to the stem by a broad base. They 
 may be regarded in some cases as leaf-bases, the laminae of which 
 have not developed ; and in other cases, as entire leaves which 
 
 FIG. 37. Pibehered leaf of Ne- 
 penthes, a Organic apex of leaf ; 
 b leaf-base ; pet petiole, winged 
 in its basal portion ; as ascidinm ; 
 I its lid; fr fringe of ascidium 
 (reduced). 
 
12.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 
 
 59 
 
 
 have remained in a rudimentary condition. They always occur 
 on subterranean stems {e.g. the scales of the Onion, see also Figs. 
 22 and 23 n), and sometimes on aerial stems. Many plants which 
 are not green (Orobanche, Neottia) produce only cataphyllary 
 leaves in addition to the floral leaves. The most common form in 
 which they occur upon aerial stems is that of scales investing the 
 buds of trees. In this case they are the lowest leaf-structures 
 borne by the annual shoot, and usually fall off as the bud developes. 
 Some few indigenous trees have naked buds without scales, as 
 Viburnum Lantana, Cornus sanguinea, Rhamnus Frangula\ their 
 buds are protected by a dense growth of hairs. 
 
 The following varieties of bud- scales may be 
 distinguished : : 
 
 a. The bud- scales are the stipules of leaves 
 which develope a lamina ; as in Alnus, Lirioden- 
 dron, Marattiacere. 
 
 b. The bud-scales are the stipules of leaves 
 which develope no lamina: Oak, Beech. 
 
 c. The bud-scales are leaf-bases, the lamina 
 ot being developed : Maple, Ash, Horse-Chestnut, 
 
 nus Padus. 
 
 d. The bud-scales are laminae or epipodia : 
 Lilac, Privet, Abietine. 
 
 In the last case the bud-scales may be caused to 
 develope into foliage-leaves by cutting off the top 
 of the branch, or removing its leaves, at the time 
 when the bud- scales are developing. 
 
 Cataphyllary leaves are sometimes 
 thickened so as to serve as depositories 
 for nutritive substances, as in the bulbs 
 of the Onion, Lily, etc. 
 
 *5. Bracts and Floral Leaves (Hypso- 
 phylh and Sporophylls ; Fig. 36 H ). These 
 leaves are generally peculiar in form, texture, and colour; their 
 morphology is discussed in connexion with that of the reproduc- 
 tive organs in 16, p. 76, as also in Part III. 
 
 Vernation and Prefoliation. The forms of young leaves and 
 their relative position in the bud, that is their vernation and 
 prefoliation (cestivation and preftoration of floral leaves), require 
 special consideration. 
 
 The vernation (or cestivation) is said to be plane when the leaf is not folded 
 at all ; it is coiidiiplicate when the two halves of the leaf are folded inwards 
 
 FIG. 38. Leaf-spines of Ber- 
 beris vidgaris, at the base of a 
 shoot of one year's growth, 
 a Leaf -spine with broad sur- 
 face ; b with a smaller surface ; 
 Tele axillary buds (nat. size). 
 
60 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 12. 
 
 face to face on the midrib as on a hinge (e.g. the Bean) ; it is plicate when the 
 leaf is folded in numerous longitudinal or oblique pleats (e.g. the Beech) ; it is 
 crumpled, when the foldings are in all directions (e.g. the petals of the Poppy) ; 
 it is involute, when the lateral halves are rolled inwards towards the mid-rib 
 on the ventral surface (e.g. the Violet) ; it is revolute, when they are rolled 
 inwards towards the mid-rib on the dorsal surface (e.g. the Dock) ; it is convolute 
 when the whole leaf is rolled up from one lateral margin to the other, so as to 
 form a single roll (e.g. Canna) ; or, finally, it is circinate, when the leaf is rolled 
 longitudinally on itself from the apex downwards (e.g. Ferns). 
 
 The form of vernation of the individual leaf is determined by 
 the relative activity of growth in its different parts. For instance, 
 the conduplicate, involute, convolute, and circinate forms are all 
 due to the fact that the leaves which present them are hyponastic, 
 that is, that the dorsal surface grows more rapidly at first than 
 the ventral ; and this may be either in the transverse plane, when 
 the infolding is lateral or transverse (conduplicate, involute, con- 
 volute) ; or in the longitudinal plane, when the infolding is longi- 
 tudinal (circinate). Revolute vernation is, on the contrary, due 
 to the fact that the leaf is transversely epinastic, that is, that the 
 ventral surface grows more rapidly at first in the transverse plane 
 than does the dorsal. The expansion of the leaf, in either case, is 
 due to a reversal of the activity of growth ; that is, the surface 
 which grew the less actively in the early stage of development, 
 grows the more actively in the later stage (see also page 742, 
 Epinasty and Hyponastij). 
 
 The prefoliation (or preparation) is said to be valvate when adjacent leaves in 
 the bud merely touch by their margins ; when some are overlapped by others it 
 is imbricate ; an intermediate form is that in which one margin of each leaf 
 is directed obliquely inwards, and the other obliquely outward overlapping the 
 inner margin of the next leaf, and is termed contorted or twitted (e.g. petals of 
 the Periwinkle). 
 
 Valvate prefoliation is only possible in the case of whorled leaves, whereas 
 imbricate prefoliation is characteristic of spirally arranged leaves. A common 
 form of imbricate prefoliation or prefloration is the quincuncial, which occurs in 
 the many dicotyledonous flowers which have a g calyx ; the five imbricate sepals 
 are so arranged that two are wholly internal, two wholly external, and one partly 
 internal and partly external, connecting the outer two with the inner two (see 
 p. 496, Phyllotaxy of tne Flower). Where the phyllotaxy is distichous (^), 
 the vernation of the leaves is generally conduplicate, and the margins of each 
 older leaf overlap those of the next younger leaf, giving rise to a form of 
 imbricate prefoliation distinguished as equitant (e.g. Iris) ; in some cases the 
 overlapping is by one margin only, in which case the prefoliation is said to be 
 semi-cquitant. 
 
13.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 61 
 
 13. The Root. It must be clearly apprehended that a 
 subterranean member is not necessarily a root ; nor can a member 
 be termed a root because it is found to absorb water and salts in 
 solution, for in rootless plants this function may be discharged by 
 shoots, or leaves, or hairs ; nor can a member be termed a root 
 because it serves as an organ of attachment to the substratum, for 
 such organs may be emergences (see p. 66) ; only such members 
 can be regarded as roots which bear neither leaves nor true 
 reproductive organs. 
 
 It is not always easy to distinguish at once between root and other members. 
 Thus, in some of the lower simpler forms of plants (e.g. Algse, gametophyets 
 of some Vascular Cryptogams) it is difficult to distinguish between roots and 
 root-hairs, for they are identical in structure, and in neither case do they bear 
 leaves or reproductive organs, But a study of their development affords the 
 distinction. For example, the first stage in the development of the gameto- 
 phyte of Equisetum, and some other Vascular Cryptogams, consists in the 
 division of the spore by a transverse wall into two halves, the epibasal and 
 the hypobasal. The former grows out into a multicellular filament which 
 developes into the thalloid shoot ; the latter grows out, in a diametrically 
 opposite direction, into a delicate unicellular filament, the primary root. It will 
 be observed that, at the time of their first development, root and shoot are here 
 co-ordinate in structure (p. 6). In the course of its growth, the thalloid shoot 
 produces outgrowths from its cells on the ventral surface, which are identical 
 in structure with the primary root. These are not, however, roots, but root-hairs ; 
 for they are not co-ordinate in structure with the shoot at the time of their 
 development. Again, the simple tubular outgrowths on the under surface of 
 the creeping stem of Caulerpa (Fig. 17), are not root-hairs, but roots, for they 
 are co-oidiuate in structure with the stem. Similarly, the distinction between 
 roots and emergences of the nature of haptera and haustoria (see p. 66) is 
 not always immediately obvious. Thus, in its endogenous development, the 
 haustorium of Cuscuta resembles a root, but it differs from a root in that it is 
 developed from the cortex. Finally, subterranean shoots often closely resemble 
 roots, but may be distinguished by the small scaly leaves which they bear. 
 
 The root is sometimes wanting in plants where it might be 
 expected to be present, in plants, that is, of which the body is not 
 a thallus (e.g. gametophyte of Mosses : sporophyte of Salvinia, 
 Psilotum, Utricularia, Epipogum, Corallorhiza). 
 
 In the sporophyte of the Vascular Cryptogams and Phanerogams, 
 there are certain peculiarities connected with the structure and 
 development of the root which contribute to its morphological 
 distinction. As a rule, the growing-point of the root is not ex- 
 posed, like that of stems or leaves, but is covered by a structure 
 termed the root-cap. As a rule also, the growing-point of the root, 
 
62 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 13. 
 
 whether normal or adventitious, is developed, not at the surface, 
 but in the interior of the tissue, that is, endogenous! y. 
 
 There are exceptions to both these rules. The primary root of some para- 
 sitic plants, such as Orobanche and Cuscuta, has no root-cap, as also the small 
 lateral roots which spring from the larger roots of the Horse-Chestnut. In some 
 cases (e.g. old roots of Azolla caroliniana, Hydrocharis, Pistia Stratiotes) a 
 root-cap is present at first, but eventually disappears, the growth in length of 
 the root being arrested. 
 
 Exogenous development has been observed in the adventitious roots of 
 Cardamine pratensis (roots of adventitious buds developed on leaves) ; of 
 Neottia Nidus Avis ; of Nasturtium officinale and silvestre ; of Euppia rostellata 
 (embryo) ; Lycopodium, Phylloglossum. 
 
 The root which is developed at the opposite pole of the embryo to 
 the shoot, is termed the primary root (see p. 15). When the primary 
 root persists and continues its growth (as in Oak, Radish, Bean, 
 etc.), it is termed a iap-root. In many cases (generally in Monocoty- 
 ledons) the growth of the primary root is limited, so that it attains 
 but feeble development. In other cases (e.g. Orchids, Phyllo- 
 glossum, Selaginella) no primary root is developed, all the roots 
 being adventitious. The symmetry of the root is most commonly 
 radial. In some cases, however, the root is isobilateral, as is shown 
 as well by its internal structure as by the development of two 
 opposite longitudinal rows of lateral roots. In other cases (e.g. 
 attached aerial roots of epiphytic Orchids ; roots of Podostemaceoe) 
 its symmetry is more or less distinctly dorsiventral. 
 
 Roots branch either dichotomously (e.g. Isoetes), or laterally 
 (see p. 33). In lateral branching the secondary roots are developed 
 in acropetal succession on the primary root, and so on. The 
 growing-points of the lateral roots are derived from that of the 
 parent root (see p. 21) ; but, since the endogenous lateral roots 
 take some time in reaching the surface, they are only perceptible 
 externally at some distance from the apex of the parent root. The 
 terminal apical portion of the parent root consequently bears no 
 lateral roots. On anatomical grounds (see- p. 186) the secondary 
 roots are arranged in longitudinal rows on the primary roots ; an 
 arrangement which also obtains in the branches of the secondary 
 roots, and of higher orders. 
 
 All roots which are not developed as branches of the primary 
 root, that is, which are developed from other members, as well as 
 all branches which are not developed in acropetal succession on 
 the primary, secondary, or higher order of branches, are said to bo 
 adventitious (see p. 21). 
 
13.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 
 
 63 
 
 Adventitious roots are most abundantly produced when the normal root- 
 system is feeble. They are usually developed by the formation of growing- 
 points in members which are adult ; but in some cases they spring from the 
 growing-point of the shoot. The roots of Marattiacese, of Lycopndiuni Plileg- 
 maria and other species, of Gunuera, of Nuphar, all take origin from the 
 growing-point of the shoot ; they may either at once grow out to the surface, or 
 they may grow down through the tissue of the stem, emerging at its base 
 (Lycopodium), or between some of the lower leaf-scars (Marattia). In Neottia 
 Nidus Avis the adventitious roots are largely developed from the intercalary 
 growing-point of the rhizome. 
 
 The form of the root is usually cylindrical ; when it is very 
 delicate, as in Grasses, it said to be fibrous; in some plants, as 
 mentioned above, it is hair-like. The primary or the secondary 
 roots may become much, swollen, serving 1 as depositories for 
 nutritive substances; the Turnip, 
 the Carrot, the Beet, the Radish, 
 have swollen primary roots ; the 
 Dahlia has swollen secondary roots. 
 
 Various terms are employed to designate 
 the different forms of swollen roots ; that of 
 the Turnip is termed nafiiform ; that of the 
 Carrot, conical ; that of the liadisb, fusi- 
 form or spindle-shaped ; those of the Dahlia 
 and of some terrestrial Orchids, tuberous. 
 
 Many plants have aerial roots 
 which are peculiar both morpho- 
 logically and physiologically. The 
 roots of epiphytes, that is, plants 
 (mostly Orchids, and Bromeliacea3) 
 which grow on trees without, how- 
 ever, being parasitic, never reach 
 the ground, but serve as a means of 
 
 attachment : they frequently contain chlorophyll and serve as 
 organs of assimilation, especially in Podostemacese. Some plants 
 climb by means of aerial roots (e.g. Ivy, Tccoma radicans), which 
 are developed on the ventral surface of the dorsiventral stem, 
 and adhere closely to the tree- trunk or wall on which the plant 
 is climbing. 
 
 In some rare cases the aerial root is a tendril, as in Vanilla 
 aromatica, Lycopodium rupestre and other species, and in some 
 Melastomacese (Medinilla radicans, Dissochseta). 
 
 FIG. 3.9. The lateral roots n aris- 
 ing endogenously from the pericycle 
 of the tap -root of Vicii Fab* (Longi- 
 tudinal sec. mag. 5 times). / Axial 
 cylinder (stele) ; r cortex of the main, 
 root; 7i root-cap of the lateral root. 
 
64 PART [. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 41. 
 
 Roots are occasionally developed as thorns, as in the Palms 
 Acanthorhiza and Iriartea, and in Myrmecodia (Rubiacece). 
 
 In some species of Jussioea (e.g. J. repens) which live in swamps, 
 some of the adventitious roots develope into floats, containing large 
 intercellular spaces. 
 
 14. Hairs and Emergences. Under these terms are 
 included various appendages of a lower morphological value than 
 the stem, the leaf, or the root, upon all of which they may be 
 borne. 
 
 They are frequently of adventitious origin, and are commonly 
 not developed in any definite order of succession. But when they 
 are developed in progressive succession, as in the gametophyte of 
 some of the lower plants, it is by no means easy to certainly 
 distinguish them from other members of the body. For instance, 
 in certain Liverworts (e.g. Riccia, Marchantia) the lower (ventral) 
 surface of the thalloid gametophyte bears one or two rows of 
 scales : from their regular arrangement these ventral scales might 
 be regarded as leaves, were it not that in other forms (e.g. Corsinia, 
 Clevea) they are arranged quite irregularly. The close relation 
 between hairs and leaves in the gametophyte is further indicated 
 by the fact that in some foliose Liverworts (e.g. Jungermannia 
 bicuspidata) the ventral leaves (amphigastria) of other forms are 
 each represented by a hair. 
 
 (a) Hairs. Hairs are always developed from superficial cells ; a 
 hair usually takes origin from a single superficial cell, but some- 
 times from more than one. Their growth is generally apical, 
 but sometimes basal. 
 
 Hairs vary in form and structure; they may be unicellular, 
 when they are termed simple ; or multicellular, when they are 
 termed compound or articulate : they may be branched or un- 
 branched ; they may be filamentous or scaly. They subserve 
 various functions, being protective, secretory, or absorbent. 
 
 Various terms are used to describe hairs : filamentous hairs which are secre- 
 tory have frequently a dilated apex, and are termed capitate ; flattened hairs 
 which are star-shaped, are termed stellate ; discoid flattened hairs are termed 
 radiate or peltate ; the erect flattened hairs of Ferns are termed palcce or 
 ramenta. When hairs are stiff they are termed bristle* or seta. 
 
 Special terms are used to indicate the nature and the distribution of the hairs 
 on a memher. A surface which bears no hairs is eaid to be glabrous ; when the 
 hairs are scattered the surface is pilose ; when the liairs are close and short, 
 villous ; when they are longer, tomentose. When the hairs are rather stiff, the 
 surface is hirsute ; when bristly, hiapid. When the hairs are borne on the 
 
14.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 
 
 65 
 
 margin only, the member is said to be ciliate. A surface with closely appressed 
 hairs is lepidote ; a member bearing ramenta is ramentaceous. 
 
 The root-hairs demand special notice. Root-hairs are hairs which perform the 
 functions of absorption and attachment ; they are commonly developed on roots, 
 
 E 
 
 FIG. 40. Different forms of hairs. A Branched compound hair (Verbascum). I? b 
 Stinging-hair with basal cushion p ; Ti simple hair (Urtica). C Branched simple hair, seen 
 from the surface; e epidermis (Matthiola). D Scaly compound hair (Hippophae) ; a seen 
 from the surface ; b seen in section ; c central cell ; r radiating cells ; s stalk-cell ; e 
 epidermis. E Ramentum (Asplenium) ; b the point of attachment. 
 
 though not always, for they are absent from the roots of a number of aquatic 
 plants (e.g. Butomus umbellatus, Caltha palustris, Hippuris, Myriophyllum, 
 Menyanthes, Nymphsea, Lemna) ; they may be developed on the thallus, or 
 the thalloid shoot, in the gametophyte of Liverworts and homosporous Vascular 
 Cryptogams ; on the stem, though rarely (e.g. Corallorhiza, Epipogum, Psilotum), 
 V. S. B. F 
 
66 
 
 PART 1. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 
 
 or even on leaves (p g. Salvinia). They are always unicellular, and it is 
 only rarely that they are found to branch. On roots, at any rate, they are 
 developed in acropetal succession. 
 
 (b) Emergences. These appendages differ from 
 hairs in that they are developed not only from super- 
 ficial cells, but from others lying beneath them. 
 
 The commoner forms of emergences are pricldes 
 (Fig. 41) and warts ; more specialised forms are 
 the tentacles of the leaf of Drosera (Figs. 42 and 
 43) ; the ligule of the leaf of Grasses (Fig. 28), 
 Selaginella, and Isoetes (see p. 48) ; the corona of 
 Narcissus ; the cupule of Lunularia and Marchantia. 
 The more highly developed emergences (e.g. many 
 prickles, tentacles of Drosera) of Vascular Plants 
 frequently contain vascular tissue. 
 A remarkable kind of emergence is the organ 
 of attachment, termed a hapteron, developed on 
 the stalks of some Algoe (e.g. Laminaria), on the 
 stems and branches of Podostemaceae and on the 
 tendrils of some Ampelidese and Bignoniaceae 
 among Phanerogams : it contains no vascular 
 tissue even in Vascular Plants. 
 
 The suckers, or haustoria, of parasitic plants, 
 (e.g. Cuscuta, Orobanche, Thesium, Rhinanthus, 
 etc.) are also emergences, being developed from 
 the cortical tissue of the root or stem bearing 
 
 FIG. 41. 
 
 Prickles on the 
 stem of the 
 Rose(nat.size). 
 
 . 42. Leaf of Drosera rotundifolia. A Expanded; d the FIG. 43. Tentacle 
 
 glandular tentacles ef the edge of the leaf ; m the short tentacles of Drosera rotundifolia. 
 
 in the middle. B The marginal tentacles have bent towards (After Strasburge*: x 
 
 the middle at the touch of an insect, a*. 60.) 
 

 
 15.] CHAPTER. II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THH MEMBERS. 67 
 
 them. Those of Rhinanthus, Thesium and Orobanche, are de- 
 veloped exogenous! j; those of Cuscuta, endogenously. They 
 contain vascular tissue. 
 
 B. REPRODUCTIVE ORGANS. 
 
 15. Reproduction. Reproduction consists essentially in 
 the development of one or more new organisms from the whole or 
 from a part of the protoplasm of a parent organism. 
 
 This may be effected either by the separation of a member or 
 a portion of the body, which, by developing the missing members^ 
 constitutes a new individual ; or by the production of special re- 
 productive cells termed spores. Two modes of reproduction are 
 therefore distinguishable : vegetative multiplication, and spore- 
 reproduction. 
 
 1. Vegetative Multiplication is essentially connected with the 
 process of growth. 
 
 The simplest modes of this occur in unicellular plants. In 
 Pleurococcus, for instance, the cell divides into two, each of which 
 constitutes a new organism. In this case the parent ceases to 
 exist as an individual. In Yeast, the cell produces out-growths 
 each of which becomes an independent unicellular organism. In 
 this ca.se the number of the progeny is not limited, and the parent 
 organism persists. This is termed multiplication by gemmation. 
 
 In more complex plants vegetative reproduction is commonly 
 effected in this way, that the main axis of the shoot or of the 
 thallus, dies away : the branches thus become isolated and consti- 
 tute independent organisms. This occurs very commonly in the 
 protonema of Mosses, in the rhizomes of many Phanerogams, 
 etc. In those cases in which the leaves produce adventitious buds 
 {e.g. Bryophyllum calycinum, many Ferris), the adventitious buds 
 develope into independent plants after the leaf has fallen from the 
 plant bearing it. 
 
 In many plants special organs for vegetative multiplication are 
 produced, which may be generally termed gemmae,. In a few 
 cases the gemmae are unicellular ; as those of Vaucheria tuberosa 
 (coenocyte), and of Monospora among the Algae, which are the 
 terminal cells of branches; those of some Fungi (Mucorinao, 
 Tremellineae, some Ascomycetes) where they are segments of 
 mycelial branches ; and those which are produced on the margins 
 of the leaves of Jungermannia ventricosa, Scapania nemorosa, and 
 other Hepatic. 
 
68 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 15. 
 
 It s not possible to discriminate absolutely between a unicellular gemma and 
 a spore. There is, in fact, a gradual transition between this form of vegetative 
 multiplication and the simpler forms of spore-reproduction. 
 
 In other plants, multicellular gemmae are produced. They are 
 two-celled in Aneura multifida and some other Hepaticae ; whilst 
 in yet others the gemmae are multicellular flattened isobilateral 
 plates (Fig. 4) ; they may be developed in special receptacles 
 (cupules) on the tipper surface of the thallus (Lunularia, Mar- 
 chantia), or on the margin of the leaves. In some Mosses flattened 
 gemmae are produced in receptacles formed of leaves at the apex of 
 the shoot, as in Tetraphis pellucida, and Aulacomnion androgynum : 
 and rounded tuberous gemmae are frequently formed on the 
 protonema. The prothallia of some Ferns (Trichomanes) are 
 reproduced by few-celled filamentous gemmae ; and that of Lyco- 
 podium Phleymaria by ovoid tuberous gemmae. 
 
 Among the Algae, Sphacelaria tribuloides, Melohesia callitham- 
 nioides (Florideae), and Chara, produce multicellular gemmae. In 
 Sphacelaria and Melobesia, they are branches of the thallus : in 
 Chara they may be peculiar branches of the shoot (embryonic 
 branches') or isolated subterranean nodes (starch-stars). 
 
 In some Fungi (Ascomycetes and Basidiomycetes) compact 
 masses of tissue, which may be regarded as organs for vegetative 
 reproduction and are termed sclerotia, are formed on the mycelium. 
 In the Lichens, rudimentary branches of the thallus, termed 
 soredia, are produced and set free. 
 
 In the Vascular Cryptogams and Phanerogams, vegetative re- 
 production of the sporophyte is generally effected by buds, the 
 leaves or stem of which have become swollen, serving as deposi- 
 tories for nutrient substances. These buds may be subterranean, 
 and then they are of considerable size, when they are termed lulus 
 or corms according to their structure (see p. 40) : or the buds may 
 be borne on a swollen subterranean stem (e.g. potato-tuber) ; or 
 be associated with tuberous roots (e.g. many terrestrial Orchids). 
 Sometimes they are aerial, being borne on the stem ; on account 
 of their small size they are termed bulbils (e.g. Lilium bulbtferum, 
 Dentaria, Nephrolepis tuberosa, etc.). In Psilotum, however, vege- 
 tative propagation is effected by small flattened gemmae, oval in 
 shape, and consisting of a few large cells forming a single layer. 
 
 2. Spore- Reproduction. The term spore is applied to a specialised 
 asexual reproductive cell which is capable, by itself, of giving rise 
 to a new organism. 
 
[ 15. CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 69 
 
 There are two principal modes of origin of spores, and all plants 
 produce spores in one or other of these modes. In the one, the 
 spores are formed from the protoplasm of any part, or of some 
 special part, of an organism ; in the other, they are formed by the 
 fusion of two masses of protoplasm derived either from two dis- 
 tinct organisms, or from distinct parts of the same organism. In 
 the former case they are said to be formed asexually; in the latter, 
 they are formed sexually, the fusion of the two masses of proto- 
 plasm being a sexual process (p. 3) ; the organs concerned are 
 distinguished respectively as asexual and sexual, and are in all 
 cases confined to the shoot. 
 
 In the Bryophyta and all the higher plants, the asexual formation 
 of spores is absolutely restricted to the sporophyte ; and the 
 sexual formation of spores is absolutely restricted to the gameto- 
 phyte. But in lower plants (Algae, Fungi), the sexuality of the 
 gametophyte is frequently so far incomplete that it still retains 
 the power of producing spores (distinguished as gonidia) in a 
 purely asexual manner (see p. 3). 
 
 The spore (or gonidium) is generally a single cell, consisting of 
 a nucleated mass of protoplasm containing various nutritive sub- 
 stances (oil, starch, etc.) : but in some cases (e.g. zoogonidium of 
 Vaucheria) where it is multinucleate, it is a ccenocyte (see Part 
 II., Introduction). 
 
 The spore frequently has a cell-wall, which is commonly thick, 
 and in some cases consists of two layers, an outer, the exine (or 
 exospore), which is cuticularised, and an inner, the intine (or en- 
 dospore), which is delicate and consists of cellulose. 
 
 In some cases the spore has no cell-wall. It may then be 
 capable or incapable of spontaneous movement. When motile, it 
 either swims by means of one, two, four, or many cilia, or it 
 creeps in an amoeboid manner by means of pseudopodia. Motile 
 spores are termed zoospores (or zoogonidia). Ciliated zoospores 
 are common among the Algae {e.g. Hsematococcus, Vaucheria, 
 Ulothrix, Botrydium, Ectocarpus), and they occur in some Fungi 
 (Saprolegnieee, Peronosporeae). Amceboid zoospores occur in the 
 Myxomycetes among the Fungi ; in Chromophyton, and in the 
 Floridean genera Helminthora, Bangia, and Porphyra (carpo- 
 spores), among the Algse. Non-motile naked spores occur only 
 in the Florideae; both the asexually-produced (tetragonidia) and 
 the sexually-produced (carpospores) spores belong to this cate- 
 gory, with the exceptions mentioned above. 
 
70 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 1C. 
 
 It may be remarked that in some Fungi and Lichens the spores are ap- 
 parently multicellular. This is, however, not actually the case. The apparently 
 inulticellular spores are really aggregates of unicellular spores. 
 
 The spores produced asexually by the sporopliyte of any one 
 plant are commonly of one kind only; when this is the case the 
 plant is said to be homosporous. Bat in some of the Pteridophyta, 
 and in all Phanerogams, which are therefore said to be hetero- 
 sporous, there are two kinds of asexually produced spores, which 
 differ in size and in the nature of the organisms to which they 
 respectively give rise, and are distinguished as microspores and 
 tnacrospores. In the Phanerogams, the microspores are commonly 
 termed pollen-grains ; and the macrospores, embryo-sacs. 
 
 16. General Morphology of the Asexual Reproductive 
 Organs. In the great majority of plants the asexual production 
 of spores takes place in the interior of an organ termed a sporan- 
 gium (gonidangium in the gametophyte) : but in some cases (e.g. 
 most Fungi) they are formed by abstriction (see Cell- formation in 
 Part II.) from branches of the shoot. 
 
 Whilst in some plants the asexual production of spores is not 
 limited to any particular portion of the body, in others it is so 
 limited. When this is the case, the portion of the body which 
 performs this function differs more or less widely in form from 
 the vegetative portions, and it is distinguished as the sporopliore. 
 When the body is differentiated into root and shoot, the sporo- 
 phore is always part of the shoot. 
 
 In those plants in which the shoot is differentiated into stem 
 and leaf, the development of spores is commonly confined to the 
 leaves. A leaf bearing one or more sporangia is termed a sporo- 
 phyll. 
 
 (a) The Sporangium (incl. Gonidangium). In unicellular plants 
 (e.g. Yeast, Ha3matococcus) the cell, that is the whole body of the 
 organism, becomes one sporangium. In this case the development 
 of spores closes the life of the organism, for the protoplasm is 
 used in the formation of the spores, and the cell- wall is ruptured 
 to allow of their escape. 
 
 In simple multicellular plants (e.g. Ulva, Ulothrix) each cell 
 eventually acts as a sporangium, giving rise to spores. With the 
 formation of spores the life of each cell is closed ; so that when all 
 the cells have formed spores the life of the organism is ended. 
 
 In plants of higher organization the formation of spores is 
 limited to certain cells, so that the formation of spores no longer 
 
16.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBEKS. 71 
 
 necessarily puts a term to the life of the organism. It is in these 
 plants that distinct sporangia are to be found. 
 
 In the Algae and Fungi, the sporangium, when present, con- 
 sists of a single cell (or a ccenocyte). It may be comparatively 
 undifferentiated, as in Bangiaceae and other Florideae, where it is 
 simply a cell of the thallus the contents of which form one or 
 more spores ; or it may be a distinctly differentiated organ as 
 in the Cutleriaceoe, Sphacelarieae, Ectocarpese, Laminariese, and 
 some Florideae, among the Algae ; and in the Phycomycetes and 
 Ascomycetes among the Fungi. 
 
 In all plants higher than the Algae and the Fungi, the sporan 
 gium is multicellular. It is, however, unilocular, that is, it contains 
 but one cavity in which spores are developed, though this is some- 
 times chambered by incomplete walls (trabeculce) as in Isoetes. 
 
 In the Bryophyta, where the sporophyte apparently produces 
 only a single sporangium, termed the capsule or tJieca, this organ 
 constitutes the whole (Riccia) or a considerable portion of the 
 sporophyte. Its structure is simple in Riccia and other Hepaticse, 
 but it becomes highly elaborate in the true Mosses (e.g. Polytri- 
 chum). It must, however, be borne in mind that the theca of the 
 Bryophyta is not completely homologous with a single sporangium 
 of a Fern or a Phanerogam, but with at least a cluster (sorus) of 
 such sporangia : hence the exceptional complexity of its structure. 
 
 In the Pteridophyta and the Phanerogams the sporophyte pro- 
 duces a number of sporangia. In the heterosporous forms there 
 are two kinds of sporangia which respectively produce the two 
 kinds of spores : those which produce macrospores are termed 
 macrosporangia ; those which produce microspores, microsporangia. 
 In the Phanerogams the macrosporangium is commonly termed 
 ovule, and the microsporangium pollen-sac. 
 
 When the shoot of the sporophyte is differentiated into stem 
 and leaf, the sporangia are generally borne on the leaves (sporo- 
 phylls) : but in some plants they are borne on the stem. This 
 is the case in most Selaginellas, among the Pteridophyta : the 
 macrosporangia (ovules) are borne on the stem in various Phane- 
 rogams ; among Gymosperms, in the Taxea3, and Gnetaceae ; among 
 Angiosperms, in the Polygonaceae, Chenopodiacese, Amaranthaceae, 
 Primulaceae, Composite, Gramineae, Naiadaceae, Piperaceae, and 
 others, the macrosporangia being either terminal or lateral : the 
 microsporangia are less commonly borne on the stem, but this is 
 the case in some Angiosperms, such as Naias and Casuarina. 
 
72 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 16. 
 
 The sporangia may be borne singly, or, as is more commonly the 
 case, in groups, each such group being termed a sorus. The spor- 
 angia of a sorus are generally quite distinct from each other ; but 
 in some cases (e.g. most Marattiacese, Psilotum, Tmesipteris) the 
 sporangia are coherent, forming what appears to be a multilocular 
 sporangium but is really a synangium. 
 
 In those heterosporous plants in which the sporangia are in 
 sori, the two kinds of sporangia are borne in distinct sori ; the 
 only exception to this rule is afforded by the Marsileaceae, where 
 each sorus includes both microsporangia and macrosporangia. 
 
 The sporangium is sometimes more or less completely covered 
 by a membranous investment to which the general term indusium 
 may be applied. In most Ferns {e.g. Hymenophyllaceae, Aspidieea, 
 AsplenieaD, etc.) and in Salvinia, the indusium covers a whole 
 sorus ; this is true also of the sori of microsporangia of Azolla, 
 and in some Cupressineae (Cupressus, Thuja, species of Juniperus) 
 the sorus of microsporangia is covered by an outgrowth which is 
 doubtless an indusium. On the other hand, when the sporangia 
 are borne singly, each individual sporangium may have its indu- 
 sium : this is the case with the macrosporangium of Azolla ; the 
 sporangia (of both kinds) of Isoetes, where the indusium is speci- 
 ally termed a velum ; the macrosporangia (ovules) of Phanerogams, 
 each of which is invested by one or two integuments, which are, 
 however, merely indusia. 
 
 The mature sporangium of these higher plants is either borne 
 upon a stalk (sometimes termed fanicle) ; or it is sessile, and then 
 it is commonly more or less imbedded in the tissue of the parent 
 member, as in the case of the sporangia of the Ophioglossacese, and 
 of the pollen-sacs of most Phanerogams. This latter arrangement 
 is due to the fact that the growth of the adjacent vegetative 
 tissue keeps pace with that of the developing sporangium, so that 
 the sporangium does not stand out on the surface. 
 
 The development of the sporangium begins,, in all cases, at the 
 surface of the parent member. The area which bears the spor- 
 angium, especially when a number of sporangia are developed 
 close together, generally projects more or less as a cushion of 
 tissue to which the term placenta is applied. In the Ferns (except 
 Marattiace83,0phioglossace8e, and Isoetacese) and in the Hydropteri- 
 deae (Rhizocarps), the sporangium is developed from a single super- 
 ficial cell : in the rest of the Pteridophyta and in the Phanerogams 
 it is developed from a group of superficial cells, and in some cases 
 
16.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 73 
 
 from cells of deeper layers as well. These Ferns and the Hydro- 
 pteridese are henee distinguished as leptosporangiate from the rest 
 of the Vascular Plants which are said to be eusporangiate. 
 
 The most important morphological feature in the development 
 of the multicellular sporangium is the differentiation of the sporo- 
 genous tissue, that is, of the mother-cells of the spores. These are 
 derived from a hypodermal cell or group of cells, termed the 
 archesporium, which may be distinguished at an early stage in 
 the development of the sporangium, by the highly granular pro- 
 toplasm and the large nucleus. The mother-cells of the spores 
 are usually formed by the division of the archesporial cell or cells, 
 but occasionally the archesporial cells themselves become spore- 
 mother-cells. The sporogenous cells, as they develope, become 
 more or less completely invested by a layer of highly granular 
 cells, forming a membrane termed the tapetum, which temporarily 
 separates them from the wall of the sporangium ; the tapetum 
 may be derived wholly or in part from the archesporium or from 
 the wall of the sporangium. 
 
 The structure and form of the archesporium varies widely in 
 the different groups of plants. It may be a solid mass of cells, as 
 in all Hepaticae except Anthoceros ; or a layer of cells, as in 
 Anthoceros, Mosses (except Archidium), Isoetes, pollen-sacs of 
 some Phanerogams ; or a row of cells, as in Lycopodinse, pollen-sacs 
 of some Phanerogams ; or a single cell, as in the Leptosporangiate 
 Filicinoe, in Equisetum, and im the macrosporangia (ovules) of 
 most Phanerogams. 
 
 The constitution of the archesporium in the Eusporangiate 
 Pteridophyta and in the Phanerogams, depends upon the form of 
 the sporangium. The young sporangium in all these plants con- 
 sists of one or more longitudinal rows of cells, covered by an 
 epidermis ; when there are several rows of cells, the lateral rows 
 radiate outwards in the apical portion of the sporangium. When 
 the sporangium is circular in transverse section, and is narrow, it 
 is only the terminal cell of the central axial row which constitutes 
 the archesporium; when the sporangium is elongated transversely, 
 the terminal cells of several of the rows lying in the plane of 
 elongation, become archesporial cells, so that the archesporium 
 consists of a row of cells ; when the sporangium is broad, the 
 terminal cells of several of the adjacent central rows become 
 archesporial cells, so that the archesporium consists of a layer of 
 cells. 
 
74 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 16. 
 
 The archesporium gives rise in some cases simply and only to 
 the mother-cells of the spores, as in Riccia among the Liverworts, 
 and in the Mosses ; but more commonly it gives rise also to cells 
 which are not sporogenous. Thus, in all Hepatica3, except Riccia, 
 the archesporium gives rise to sterile cells, which, in most 
 HepaticaB, become the elaters ; and generally in the Pteridophyta 
 and Phanerogams, some at least of the tapetal cells are derived 
 from the archesporium ; in Isoetes, the tissue of the trabeculaa is 
 derived from the archesporium. 
 
 The sporogenous cells usually divide so as to give rise each to 
 four spore-rudiments, though there are exceptions to this rule. 
 Thus, only one of the mother-cells in the macrosporangium of 
 Selaginella divides into four, the others being abortive; and in 
 that of Phanerogams the mother-cell, or cells where there is more 
 than one, does not divide, but developes directly into a single 
 macrospore (embryo-sac). In all homosporous plants, the four 
 spore-rudiments formed by each mother-cell all come to maturity ; 
 and this is the case also as regards the microsporangia of heteros- 
 porous plants. In the macrosporarigia of the heterosporous 
 Pteridophyta, the spore-rudiments all reach maturity in Sela- 
 ginella and Isoetes, so that the mature macrosporangium of 
 Selaginella contains four, and that of Isoetes many, macrospores : 
 but in the Hydropterideaa (Salvinia, Pilularia, etc.), where each 
 macrosporangium contains sixteen mother-cells, so that sixty-four 
 spore-rudiments are formed, only one of these sixty-four comes to 
 maturity, so that each macrosporangium produces only a single 
 macrospore. 
 
 In most cases the asexually-produced spores are set free from 
 the organism producing them. An exception to this is offered by 
 the macrospore (embryo-sac) of Phanerogams, in which plants 
 the macrospore remains permanently enclosed in the macrospor- 
 angium (ovule), and the macrosporangium remains attached for 
 a considerable time to the plant bearing it. It is on account of 
 this peculiarity that seeds are produced in Phanerogams. The 
 production of seeds is the characteristic difference between 
 Phanerogams and Cryptogams. 
 
 When spores are formed by abstriction, they are set free almost 
 as soon as they are formed. When they are produced in sporangia 
 they are usually set free by the rupture or dehiscence of the 
 sporangium. In some cases the wall of the sporangium simply 
 degenerates ; in other cases there is a special mechanism, some- 
 
. 16.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE .MEMBERS. 75 
 
 times very elaborate, for its dehiscence. In a few cases the whole 
 sporangium falls off from the parent plant, e.g. the microsporangia 
 and macrosporangia of Salviniaceae ; here the spores never become 
 free from the wall of the sporangium, but germinate inside it. 
 
 (/>) The Sporophore. Beginning with the lower plants, a well- 
 marked asexual spore-producing organ is, in many cases, a striking 
 feature of the incompletely sexual gametophyte ; this organ, on 
 account of its being borne by the gametophyte, is distinguished as 
 a gonidiophore, arid its spores as gonidia (see p. 3). It is to be 
 found in many Fungi, where it represents, in fact, the shoot of the 
 body, and is a specialised, erect-growing branch of the mycelium. 
 It may be simple (e.g. Mucor, Peronospora, Eurotium) or compound 
 (Agaricus) ; in some cases it bears sporangia, or rather gonidangia, 
 in which gonidia are formed (Mucor, Peronospora) ; whilst in 
 others (Eurotium, Agaricus) it bears short filaments, termed 
 sterigmata, from which the gonidia are formed by abstriction. In 
 some Ascomycetous Fungi the simple gonidiophores which form 
 gonidia by abstriction, are collected into groups (son), each of 
 which is enclosed in a receptacle, the whole constituting a pycni- 
 dium. Among the Algaa, the gonidiophore is represented in 
 certain Rhodophyceae (e.g. Dasya, species of Polysiphonia) by 
 specialised branches of the shoot, termed stichidia, which bear 
 gonidangia (tetragonidangia) . 
 
 Turning to the sporophyte, the sporophore in these lower plants 
 is not highly developed. In some few Fungi (e.g. Mucor) it is 
 essentially similar to the gonidiophore ; in other Fungi (e.g. Asco- 
 mycetes) and in certain Algae (Rhodophyceae) the whole sporo- 
 phyte is simply a sporophore in the form of a receptacle contain- 
 ing sporangia ; it is termed in the one case an ascocarp, and in the 
 other a cystocarp. 
 
 The sporophyte of the Bryophyta affords a good example of a 
 highly specialised sporophore in an organism the shoot of which 
 is not differentiated into stem and leaf. The entire shoot of the 
 sporophyte constitutes the sporophore, which consists (except in 
 Riccia) of a longer or shorter stalk (seta), bearing a terminal 
 capsule (theca) of more or less complex structure (see p. 71). 
 
 In the majority of the higher plants, in which the shoot of the 
 sporophyte is differentiated into stem and leaf, there are well- 
 marked sporophores (see Fig. 36). The sporophore may be the 
 terminal portion of the primary shoot or of a branch ; or it may 
 be an entire branch. It is commonly known, among Phanerogams, 
 
76 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 16. 
 
 as the inflorescence, but there is no reason for confining the use of 
 this term to this group of plants. The sporophore or inflorescence 
 is characterised by its limited growth in length, and can usually 
 be distinguished from a vegetative shoot by peculiarities of form 
 and, when they are present, by the nature of its leaves. 
 
 The distinction of an inflorescence from a vegetative shoot is easy when the 
 former is an entire branch borne laterally on the latter ; but when a monopo- 
 dial vegetative shoot terminates in an inflorescence, the transition from the 
 one region to the other is so gradual, that it is difficult to determine where the 
 one begins and the other ends. 
 
 The sporophore may be simple, or it may be branched, and it then 
 affords some of the most striking examples of the various branch- 
 systems (see p. 32). When the branch-system is such that there 
 is a well-defined main axis, this is termed the rhachis of the inflo- 
 rescence. The rhachis and the branches of the inflorescence are 
 commonly elongated and cylindrical, or flattened, or prismatic in 
 form ; but they are in many cases dilated at the apex into a flat- 
 tened, depressed or conical receptacle, as in the Composite, etc. 
 
 The sporophore may be destitute of leaves (e.g. Salisburia adian- 
 tifolia). When it bears leaves they usually differ more or less 
 widely in form, colour, and structure from the foliage-leaves of 
 the plant. Of these leaves there are two kinds : those which bear 
 sporangia, hence termed sporophylls ; those which do not bear spo- 
 rangia, termed hypsoplylls (see p. 59). 
 
 When no sporophylls are present, the sporangia are borne 
 directly by the rhachis or the branches of the sporophore, at or 
 near the apex, in a cluster if there are several. When sporo- 
 phylls are present, they are also usually collected together at the 
 apex of the rhachis or of a branch, in consequence of the short- 
 ness of the terminal internodes. Any axis of the sporophore, 
 bearing one or more sporangia or sporophylls, is termed & flower. 
 
 When hypsophylls are present, some of them are commonly 
 aggregated round the sporangia or the sporophylls, as in most 
 Angiosperins, constituting what is termed the perianth of the 
 flower. 
 
 When the rhachis is unbranched, it bears a single terminal 
 flower (e.g. Equisetum, Violet) ; when it branches, each axis, of 
 whatever order, terminates in a flower. It is on this account that 
 the growth of the axes of inflorescences is limited. It occasion- 
 ally happens, as a monstrosity, that the axis grows through the 
 flower and produces foliage-leaves ; this is termed proliferation. 
 
16.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY O*' THE MEMBERS. 77 
 
 When the rhachis bears a single terminal flower it is commonly termed the 
 peduncle of the flower ; when the rhachis is branched, the branches may be so 
 short that tbeir flowers appear to spring directly from the rhachis, and the 
 flowers are said to be sessile ; when the branches are longer and bear terminal 
 flowers, they are termed pedicels, and the flowers are said to be pedicillate. 
 For further details as to inflorescences, see Part III. 
 
 When no sporophylls are present, the form of the flower is ex- 
 tremely simple. When sporophylls are present, the form of the 
 flower varies with the degree of elongation attained by the termi- 
 nal internodes of the axis. When they elongate to some extent, 
 the flower forms a cone, as in Equisetum, Lycopodium, Selaginella, 
 Pinus. When they remain short, as generally in Angiosperms, 
 the apex is more or less broadened, forming a flattened, depressed, 
 or shortly conical torus on which the sporophylls and the perianth, 
 leaves are borne. The various forms of flowers are described in 
 detail in Part III. 
 
 In heterosporous plants it is commonly the case that the two 
 kinds of sporangia are borne together on the same axis of the 
 sporophore ; that is, they are included in the same flower (e.g. Sela- 
 ginella, most Angiosperms), which is then said to be ambisporangi- 
 ate; but they are frequently confined to distinct axes, as in the 
 Gymnosperms, and in some Angiosperms (e.g. Beech, Birch, Oak, 
 Walnut, etc.) ; these distinct flowers are said to be monosporangiate, 
 and are distinguished, according to the kind of sporangia which 
 they respectively bear, as microsporangiate or macrosporangiate ; in 
 some cases one individual bears exclusively microsporangiate, and 
 another exclusively macrosporangiate flowers, as in the Hemp, the 
 Yew, etc. 
 
 (c) The Sporophylls. In many cases, most Ferns and Lycopo- 
 dinae, for example, the sporophylls are similar to the foliage- 
 leaves, differing only in that they bear sporangia; but more com- 
 monly the sporophylls are distinguished by some peculiarity in 
 form or structure. Thus in the Flow,ering Fern (Osmunda regal! s) 
 the sporophylls differ from the foliage-leaves in that no green 
 leaf -tissue is developed in them. In Botrychium, Ophioglossum, 
 and the Hydropteridese (Rhizocarpse), the sporophyll is a branch 
 or segment of a foliage-leaf, characterised by a peculiar form and 
 by the absence of green leaf-tissue. In Mar^ilea and Pilularia the 
 sporophyll forms a hollow capsule, enclosing the sporangia. In 
 Equisetum, the sporophyll is a peltate scale bearing the sporangia 
 on its inner or under surface. In the Gymnosperms the sporo- 
 
78 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 16. 
 
 phylls are generally small scaly leaves ; and in the Angiosperms 
 they differ widely in form from the foliage-leaves. In some of 
 the Algae too, as in Cladostephus (Sphacelariese), there are 
 definite sporophylls. 
 
 The distribution of the sporangia among the sporophylls in 
 heterosporous plants is an important point. In the Hydropfcerideae 
 (Rhizocarpce), both the microsporangia and the macrosporangia 
 are borne by the same sporophyll ; but in all other heterosporous 
 plants they are borne by distinct sporophylls, which may be dis- 
 tinguished respectively as microsporophylls and macros porophylls. 
 In the Phanerogams the microsporophyll is termed a stamen ; the 
 macrosporophyll, a carpel] but there is no reason for confining 
 these terms to this group of plants. 
 
 The term stamen is not, however, always strictly confined to microsporo- 
 phylls, but it is also applied to portions of the axis bearing microsporangia. 
 For instance, in Callitriche, Casuarina, Naias, etc. (see p. 71), the micro- 
 sporangia (pollen-sacs) are borne on a segment of the sporophore, which is 
 termed a stamen. 
 
 In heterosporous plants, both kinds of sporophylls are gener- 
 ally present in one and the same flower: when, however, the 
 flower includes only microsporophylls, it is termed microsporophy l- 
 lanj or staminate ; and when it includes only macrosporophylls, it 
 is termed macrosporophyllary or carpellary. 
 
 In some cases the sporangia are borne, not upon, but in close relation with, a 
 leaf, which is nevertheless regarded as a sporophyll. Thus, in Selaginella, the 
 sporangium is in the axil of the sporophyll. Again, the leaves which invest the 
 macrosporangia (ovules) of Polygonacese, Primuhcese, etc., are termed carpels, 
 though they do not actually bear the sporangia. 
 
 The distribution of the sporangia on the sporophyll is various. 
 They may be borne exclusively on the under (dorsal) surface, as 
 in most Ferns, Equisetum and Gymnosperms (pollen-sacs) ; or 
 exclusively on the upper (ventral) surface, as in the Lycopodinse, 
 Marsileaceae, macrosporangia of Coniferae and of some Angiosperms 
 (e.g. Butomus) ; or on both surfaces, as in Osmunda ; or on the 
 lateral margins, as in Ophioglossum and the Hymenophyllacese, and 
 in many Angiosperms (e.g. Leguminosae, Violaceae, Liliaceae) ; or on 
 the apices of segments of the sporophyll, as in the Salviniaceee. 
 
 The number of the sporangia borne by a sporophyll also varies 
 widely. In some cases there is only one, as in Selaginella, Lyco- 
 podium, Isoetes ; or two, as in most Coniferas ; or four, as in most 
 Angiosperms (microsporangia) ; or many, as in the Filicinse. 
 
16.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 79 
 
 In most cases the sporangia are free on the surface of the 
 sporophyll ; bat in some cases they are enclosed in a cavity formed 
 either by the infolding and junction of the margins of the sporo- 
 phyll, or by the junction of the margins of adjacent sporophylls. 
 The sporangia of the Marsileacese are thus enclosed by the sporo- 
 phyll, as are also the macrosporangia of all Angiosperms. In the 
 latter group the resulting structure is termed the ovary. 
 
 (d) The Hypsophylls (Fig. 36, p. 57). Under this common term 
 are included bracts and perianth-leaves. 
 
 Bract. This term is generally applicable to the leaves, other 
 than the sporophylls and perianth-leaves, which are borne by the 
 hachis or branches of the inflorescence: those which are borne 
 >n the pedicels of individual flowers are, however, distinguished as 
 mcteoles or prophylla. 
 
 The bract is frequently not distinguishable from a foliage-leaf, 
 but it may be reduced to a scaly leaf, or it may be very large and 
 ;ven highly coloured, when it is said to be petaloid. An example 
 the occurrence of bracts in the Pteridophyta is afforded by 
 Equisetum, where there is a whorl of small bracts, forming what 
 is known as the ring, just below the cone or flower. In some 
 [onocotyledons (e.g. Palms, Arums, etc.) there is a large bract, 
 termed a spathe, which invests the whole inflorescence: it is usually 
 not green in colour, as in the Trumpet Lily (ZantedescJiia cethiopica) 
 where it is white. In some cases the bracts are arranged in whorls 
 round the inflorescence (e.g. Composite) forming an involucre. 
 
 The bracteoles sometimes form an investment, termed an epicalyx, 
 to the flower (e.g. Malva, Camellia, etc.). 
 
 The Perianth-leaves are leaves developed in immediate relation 
 with the sporophylls, or with the sporangiferous axis, of a flower, 
 to which they form a protective or attractive investment termed 
 the perianth. A perianth is present only in Phanerogams, and is 
 confined almost exclusively to the Angiosperms : the Gnctaceee are 
 the only Gymnosperms in which it is represented. The leaves may 
 be arranged in a single whorl, or in two or more ; or they may be 
 all alike, either green and inconspicuous, or of other bright colours 
 and conspicuous ; most frequently the leaves of the outer whorl 
 (sepals constituting the calyx) are small and green in colour, being 
 especially protective in function, whilst those of the inner whorl 
 (petals constituting the corolla) are large and brightly coloured, 
 being especially attractive in function. (For further details, see 
 The Flower, p. 512). 
 
80 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 17. 
 
 17. General Morphology of the Sexual Reproductive 
 Organs. The general morphology of the sexual reproductive 
 organs agrees in many respects with that of the asexual repro- 
 ductive organs. 
 
 In the great majority of plants the sexual reproductive organs 
 give rise to sexual reproductive cells, termed gametes ; hence the 
 organs may be generally termed gametangia. In some cases the 
 formation of gametaugia is limited to a certain portion of the 
 body of the gametophy te, which differs more or less from the vege- 
 tative portions of the shoot and may be distinguished as a gameto- 
 phore. When a part of the body is differentiated as a shoot, the 
 gametophore is part (or the whole) of the shoot. Since, in most 
 plants, the morphological differentiation of the gametophy te is not 
 so complete as that of the sporophyte, it follows that the game- 
 tangia are less frequently developed on leaves than are the 
 sporangia. In those cases in which the gametangia are borne by 
 leaves, the leaves may be termed gametophijlls. 
 
 (a) The Gametes. A gamete is a sexual reproductive cell a 
 reproductive cell, that is, which is incapable by itself of giving 
 rise to a new organism ; in this respect it differs from a spore. A 
 spore is, however, formed from the fusion of two gametes of 
 different sexes ; that is, by a sexual process (see p. 69). 
 
 In those of the lower Algae and Fungi in which sexual spore- 
 formation takes place, the gametes produced by the organism are 
 all externally similar ; hence these plants are termed isogamous; 
 the sexual process, which consists here in the fusion of two simi- 
 lar gametes, is termed conjugation ; and the spore formed by con- 
 jugation is termed a zygospore. 
 
 In all the higher plants, hence termed heterogamous, the gametes 
 are not all alike; but there are two kinds, the ma7e and the female. 
 The male and female gametes may be generally distinguished by 
 their difference in size, the male being the smaller, and by the 
 greater activity of the male gamete in connection with the sexual 
 process which is here termed fertilisation, the male gamete being 
 considered to fertilise the female ; product, an oospore. 
 
 The gradual transition from isogamy to heterogamy can be most clearly traced 
 in the Algae : special attention is directed to this in the account of the Algte in 
 Part III. (p. 226). 
 
 The gametes of isogamous plants, in those cases in which they are 
 set free from the gametangium and are free-swimming, are well 
 
17.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 81 
 
 defined, ciliated, somewhat pear-shaped masses of protoplasm 
 destitute of a cell-wall (e.g. Botiydium, Ulothrix, Ectocarpus, etc.), 
 and are distinguished as planogametes. When, however, they are 
 not free-swimming (as in the Conjugate Algae) they have no defined 
 form nor are they ciliated. 
 
 The gametes of heterogamous plants. The male gamete, when the 
 conditions are such that it must of necessity be free-swimming, is 
 generally a well-defined ciliated mass of protoplasm, termed a 
 spermatozoid: spermatozoids occur in the heterogamous Green and 
 Brown Algas (e.g. Yaucheria, Volvox, Sphseroplea, (Edogonium, 
 Chara, Fucus), in the Bryophyta, and in the Pteridophyta. In the 
 lower forms the spermatozoid is more or less rounded or pear- 
 shaped, somewhat resembling a planogamete of the isogamous 
 forms: but in the higher it is club-shaped or filamentous, thicker 
 at the posterior end, pointed at the anterior end where the two 
 or more cilia are borne, and more or less spirally coiled. 
 
 An exception to this form of free male gamete is afforded by 
 the lied Algse, where the gametes are small rounded or oval bodies 
 destitute of cilia, and are distinguished as spermatia when first set 
 free they have no cell- wall, but they develope one before they come 
 into contact with the female organ. Very similar to these are the 
 spermatia of certain Ascomycetous Fungi, which have, however, a 
 cell- wall from the very first ; but there is some doubt as to the 
 sexual nature of these cells. 
 
 When, owing to the proximity of the male and female organs at 
 the time of fertilisation, the male gamete has no considerable dis- 
 tance to traverse (e.g. Peronosporaceaa, Phanerogams), it is not 
 differentiated as a spermatozoid, but it is simply an amorphous cell 
 without a cell- wall. 
 
 The female gamete, or oosphere, is not ciliated, nor is it, as a rule, 
 set free, but remains in the female organ until after fertilisation : 
 but in Fucus and its allies, the oosphere is extruded from the fe- 
 male organ before fertilisation. It is, generally speaking, spheri- 
 cal in form, as its name denotes. 
 
 The gametes are developed from one or more mother-cells in 
 the gametangium. In isogamous plants, as a rule, each mother- 
 cell gives rise to more than one gamete, and commonly to a con- 
 siderable number (e.g. Botrydium, Ulothrix) ; but in Ectocarpus 
 and some other Phceosporece, each mother-cell produces but a 
 single gamete. Whilst in the higher heterogamous plants the 
 male gametes are each developed singly from a mother-cell, in the 
 
 Y. s. B. o 
 
82 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 17. 
 
 lower it is the rule that the male gametes are produced several 
 together from one mother-cell. The female gametes are de- 
 veloped singly in the mother-cell, except in the Saprolegniacese 
 among Fun^i, and in some genera of Fucacese (Pelvetia, Ozothal- 
 lia or Ascophyllum, Fucus), in which from two to eight (Fucacese) 
 or up to twenty (Saprolegniaceae) oospheres are produced from one 
 mother- cell. 
 
 With regard to the development of the gametes, it is sometimes 
 the case that the whole of the protoplasm of the mother-cell is 
 used in their formation. Thus, the gamete of Spirogyra is formed 
 by the rejuvenescence of the whole protoplasm of a cell of the 
 filament ; and the oospheres of Fucus are formed by the division 
 of the whole of the protoplasm of the mother-cell. But in most 
 cases a portion of the protoplasm, and more particularly of the 
 nuclear substance, is excluded from taking part in the formation 
 of the gametes : a portion of it is either directly cut off by 
 division, or is simply not used in the development of the gamete. 
 Thus, in the Bryophyta, Pteridophyta, and Gymnosperms, the 
 development of the oosphere begins with the division of the 
 nucleus of the mother-cell (central cell) into two ; this is followed 
 by the division of the mother-cell into two unequal parts, no 
 cell- wall being however formed ; the larger portion is the oosphere; 
 the smaller, which eventually decomposes, is termed the ventral 
 canal-cell, on account of its position in the female organ. In cer- 
 tain Algee the development of the oosphere is attended by (e.g. 
 Yaucheria, GEdogonium, Coleochsete) the discharge of a mass of 
 protoplasm from the female organ prior to fertilisation, which 
 probably corresponds to the ventral canal-cell of the higher 
 plants. 
 
 With regard to the development of the spermatozoid, it ap- 
 pears, in those cases in which it has been most fully investigated 
 (Bryophyta, Pteridophyta), that only a portion of the cytoplasm 
 and nuclear substance of the mother-cell is used in its formation ; 
 the residue is usually discharged with the spermatozoid, as a vesi- 
 cle which adheres to it, until thrown off by its active movements. 
 (For details, see Part II., Cell- Formation, p. 116.) 
 
 The masses of protoplasm which are derived from the mother- 
 cells, but are excluded in any of the above ways from entering 
 into the formation of the gametes, are termed, generally, polar 
 bodies. Their physiological significance is considered in Part 
 IV. (p. 772). 
 
17.] CHAPTER It. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 83 
 
 (6) The Gametangia. The general morphology of the gamefcangia 
 is very much the same as that of the sporangia. 
 
 With regard to the terminology employed in designating these 
 organs, they are said to be male when they contain protoplasm 
 which is capable of effecting fertilisation ; and female, when they 
 contain protoplasm capable of being fertilised. When there is no 
 external indication of the physiological nature of the organ, it 
 is simply termed a gametangium. But when the male and female 
 organs respectively are clearly differentiated, special names are 
 given to them in order to indicate peculiarities in their structure 
 or function, or the group of plants to which they belong. In 
 the first place a distinction must be drawn, in the case of these 
 differentiated gametangia, between those which give rise to clearly 
 differentiated gametes, and those the protoplasm of which does not 
 undergo such differentiation. To the former category belongs 
 the male organ, termed antlieridium, in which spermatozoids are 
 developed, and the female organs, termed oogomum or archegonium, 
 in which one or more oospheres are differentiated. To the latter 
 category belong the male organ termed pollinodium (e.g. in 
 Peronosporaceae and some Ascomycetes), and the female organs 
 termed procarp (Floridese) or archicarp (Ascomycetous Fungi). 
 
 In the lowest plants in which the sexual formation of spores 
 takes place, the whole cell, when the organism is unicellular, or 
 any cell, when the organism is multicellular, becomes a game- 
 tangium, without being specially modified for the purpose. This 
 is the case, not only in isogamous plants (e.g. Pandorina, Ulothrix, 
 Conjugates), but in some heterogamous plants (e.g. Sphaeroplea) 
 in which the gametes are perfectly differentiated into spermato- 
 zoids and oospheres. 
 
 In plants of higher organisation there are specialised game- 
 tangia. In the simpler forms of these the male and female 
 gametangia are externally similar, as in, the Volvocaceae, Ecto- 
 earpus, and Cutleria, among the Algae, and in the Zygomycetes 
 and some Ascomycetes (e.g. Eremascus) among the Fungi. In the 
 more complex forms, the male and female gametangia are dis- 
 similar. 
 
 The undifferentiated gametangia are generally unicellular and 
 unilocular; but they are multicellular and multilocular, in some 
 Pha3osporese (e.g. Ectocarpus, Giraudia, Scytosiphon, Cutleria). 
 
 The differentiated gametangia are of various structure. The 
 antheridium is unicellular in most of the lower plants (Green 
 
84 PART 1. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 17. 
 
 Algoe, except Characeoa ; Fucaceae), as also generally in Phanero- 
 gams. In all the other cases ifc is mnlticellular, and of simple 
 structure, except in the Characeae, where the structure is ex- 
 tremely complex. In some cases (Rhizocarps) the antheridium 
 consists almost entirely of the mother-cells of the spermatozoids ; 
 in most cases the mother-cells are surrounded by a parietal layer 
 of cells. The pollinodiuni is generally unicellular. 
 
 The oogonium is either unicellular, as is generally the case, or 
 it is a ccenocyte (e.g. Peronosporaceae, Vaucheria). The archegoniuin 
 is generally mnlticellular, consisting of a cellular wall investing 
 the oosphere, usually prolonged into a tubular neck; but in some 
 of the higher plants, Welwitschia among the Gymnosperms, and 
 all Angiosperms, the archegonium is reduced to a single cell, the 
 oosphere. The archicarps and procarps are unicellular in some 
 cases, multicellular in others ; in most cases the organ is pro- 
 longed into a filament, the trichogyne, by means of which fertili- 
 sation is effected. The oogonia (except those of Peronosporacea?, 
 Saprolegniaceae, and Characeae) and the archegoiiia, open, so that 
 their contents are in direct relation with the surrounding medium ; 
 in the procarps and archicarps this is not the case. 
 
 Further details are given in Part III. in connexion with the 
 plants to which the various organs belong. 
 
 (c) The Gametophore. In some plants in which the gametophyte 
 is well-developed, the sexual organs are not borne indifferently on 
 any part of the body, but are confined to particular regions or 
 branches of the thallus or of the shoot, which may be distinguished 
 as gametophores-, as in some Algae (e.g. Himanthalia lorea}, Liver- 
 worts (e.g. Marchantia), Mosses (e.g. Sphagnum), and some Ferns. 
 In Himanthalia lorea (Fig. 44) the vegetative portion of the body 
 is conical in form and is attached at its pointed end, and from the 
 middle of the cup-like upper surface there grows a long branched 
 gametophore. In Marchantia, and some other Liverworts, some 
 of the flattened prostrate branches of the thallus develope termi- 
 nally into an erect cylindrical gametophore, bearing male or female 
 organs (antheridia or archegonia) on a receptacle at its summit. 
 In Sphagnum, also, the antheridia and archegonia are borne re- 
 spectively on distinct and specialised branches. Such unisexual 
 gametophores may be specially designated antheridiophores or 
 archegoniophores. In some Ferns which have an altogether fila- 
 mentous gametophyte (e.g. Trichomanes), the female organs (ar- 
 chegonia) are borne on short multicellular lateral branches form- 
 
17.] CHAPTER JI. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 
 
 85 
 
 ing cushion-like gametophores, or, more precisely, archegonio- 
 phores. When, as in most Ferns, the adult gametophyte is a flat- 
 tened dorsiventral cellular expansion, the archegonia are borne 
 on a cellular cushion projecting on the ventral surface, which 
 constitutes the archegoniophore. This kind of archegoniophore 
 reaehes its highest development in the Fern Gymnogramme lepto- 
 phylla, where the cushion grows out into a tuberous subterra- 
 nean archegoniophore. 
 
 When the shoot is differentiated into stem and leaf, the sexual 
 organs are in some cases borne on more or less specialised leaves 
 which may be termed 
 gainetophylls, as in some 
 Algae, such as the Cha- 
 raceaa (both antheridia 
 and oogonia), the higher 
 Sphacelariese (gametan- 
 gia of Cladostephus) and 
 the Rhodomelese (e.g. 
 antheridia of Polysipho- 
 nia) . 
 
 The sexual organs may 
 cither be scattered over 
 the surface of the mem- 
 ber bearing them, or they 
 may be developed in 
 groups (sori). Occasion- 
 ally a sorus is enclosed 
 in a receptacle ; such re- 
 ceptacles are the concep- 
 tacle of the Fucaceae and 
 of the Coralline (Flori- 
 dese) ; the spermogonium of the Ascomycetous and ^Ecidiomycetous 
 Fungi ; the receptacle of many Hepaticae. 
 
 In some Hepaticae (e.g. foliose Jungermanniaceaa), and in all 
 Mosses, the sorus of sexual organs is surrounded by leaves, which 
 may differ more or less from the ordinary foliage leaves. The 
 investment thus formed is termed a perichcetium, and the leaves are 
 termed perichcetial leaves. 
 
 Since, as has been pointed out, the gametangia correspond to 
 the sporangia, the gamctophore corresponds also to the sporophore ; 
 they are both portions of the shoot, or of the thallus, which are 
 
 Fig. 44. Himanflialia lorea (mu^h reduced). ( 
 vegetative part of body; b branched gametophore. 
 
86 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGY OF PLANTS. [ 17. 
 
 specially adapted to bear the reproductive organs, in the one case 
 sexual, in the other, asexual. And just as an axis of the sporo- 
 phore bearing one or more sporangia (whether directly or on spon- 
 phylls) is termed a flower, and the sporophore itself an inflorescence ; 
 so these terms may be applied to the gametophore, though the 
 physiological differences between the sporangia and gametangia 
 must be borne in mind. It has, in fact, long been customary with 
 reference to Mosses, to speak of the sori of sexual organs, with 
 their pericheetia, as " flowers." 
 
 (d.) The distribution of the Sexual Organs. The male and female 
 organs are either borne by the same gametophyte, or they are 
 borne by distinct male or female gametophytes ; in the former 
 case the organism is said to be monoecious, in the latter dioecious. 
 
 The following are instances of monoecious gametophytes : 
 
 Algce ; Volvox Globator, Rhynconema (Zygnetneae), Vaucheria, Sphaeroplea, 
 
 Coleochaete, some species of Chara and Nitella, Fucus platycarpus, Hali- 
 
 drys, Cystoseira, Pycnophycus. 
 Fungi ; moncecism is the rule. 
 Muscinecc ; essentially monoecious. 
 
 Pteridophyta ; homosporous forms generally monoecious, except Equisetum. 
 The following are instances of dioecious gametophytes : 
 Alga; Volvox minor, Eudorina, Conjugate generally, Cutleria, most species 
 
 of Fucus, Ozothallia (Ascophyllum), most Red Algffi. 
 Pteridophyta; Equisetum, and all heterosporous forms (Hydropteridee, 
 
 Isoetacese, Selaginellaceea). 
 
 The Phanerogams have not been included in the preceding list, 
 for the conditions which obtain among them in this respect are 
 peculiar, and demand separate consideration. Inasmuch as the 
 Phanerogams are heterosporous, they are essentially dioecious, since 
 each kind of spore produces its corresponding male or female 
 gametophyte. But in consequence of the fact (see p. 74) that the 
 macrospore is not set free, but remains attached to the sporophyte, 
 and germinates in that position, the female gametophyte is 
 attached to the sporophyte. On this account, and on account of 
 the rudimentary development of the male gametophyte (pollen- 
 tube), the spores, that is the pollen- grain and the embryo-sac, 
 have come to be inaccurately regarded as sexual reproductive cells, 
 and the stamens and carpels, which are really sporophylls, as 
 sexual reproductive organs. Hence a Phanerogam is said to be 
 monoecious when the same individual bears both stamens and 
 carpels, dioecious when, they are borne by distinct individuals. 
 
 I 
 
18.] CHAPTER II. SPECIAL MORPHOLOGY OF THE MEMBERS. 87 
 
 Monoecism, in this sense, is the general rule in Phanerogams ; but 
 dioecism obtains in the Cycadaceae, the Taxeae, the Araucarieae, 
 some Juniperinae, and Ephedra, among Grymnosperms ; and in 
 various Angiosperms, such as Naias, the Pandanacese, some Palms, 
 Cannabinacese, Salicaceae, Aucuba, etc. 
 
 When in monoecious plants the male and female organs are both 
 present in the same sorus, as in some Algae (e.g. Fucus platycarpus, 
 Halidrys, and other monoecious Fucaceae) and in some Mosses, the 
 sorus is said to be bisexual or hermaphrodite, and the plant is said 
 to be monoclinous ; when they are borne in different sori on the 
 same plant (e.g. in Hepaticae generally, some Mosses), the sorus is 
 said to be unisexual, male or female as the case may be, and the 
 plant diclinous. These terms are also applied to the flowers of 
 Phanerogams in accordance with the foregoing explanation; 
 diclinism is the rule in the Gymnosperms, and it occurs also in 
 various Angiosperms. 
 
 18. Apospory and Apogamy. Although it is the rule that 
 the gametophyte springs from the spore produced asexually by the 
 sporophyte, and that the sporophyte springs from the spore pro- 
 duced sexually by the gametophyte, yet the transition from the 
 one generation to the other may be effected otherwise. 
 
 In some cases vegetative reproduction is substituted for repro- 
 duction by an asexually-prpduced spore : this process is termed 
 Apospory. Thus in some Ferns (e.g. Athyrium Filix foemina) the 
 gametophyte (prothallium) is produced directly by budding from 
 the leaves of the sporophyte. 
 
 In other cases, either vegetative reproduction, or reproduction 
 by asexually-produced spores, is substituted for reproduction by 
 sexually-produced spores : this process is termed Apogamy, dis- 
 tinguished in the one case as vegetative apogamy, and in the other 
 as parthenogenetic apogamy or parthenogenesis. Examples of 
 vegetative apogamy are afforded by some Ferns (e.g. Pteris cretica) 
 where the sporophyte is developed as a bud upon the gametophyte ; 
 and also in certain Ascomycetous Fungi where the sporophyte 
 (ascocarp) is directly developed upon the mycelium ; in neither 
 case is there any development of sexual organs. Examples of par- 
 thenogenetic apogamy are afforded by the Saprolegniaceae, where, 
 although oogonia are developed, there is no fertilisation, but the 
 cells (corresponding to oospheres) contained in the oogonia ger- 
 minate as though they were oospores; and also by certain Ascomy- 
 cetes where the archicarp developes without fertilisation into an 
 
88 PART I. THE MORPHOLOGr OF PLANTS. [ 19, 20. 
 
 ascocarp. In either case the result, is that a sporophyte is de- 
 veloped from that which either is, or represents, a gametophyte, 
 without the intervention of a sexual process. 
 
 19. The Fruit. Although the forms of fruit occurring 
 among plants are so various in their form and in their structure, 
 it is possible to include them all in a single definition. A fruit is 
 the product of a process of growth initiated as a consequence of 
 a sexual act in structures which are not themselves immediately 
 concerned in the sexual act. 
 
 To begin with instances among the lower plants, the cystocarp 
 of the Red Algae and the ascocarp of the Ascomycetous Fungi are 
 fruits. In these cases the effect of the fertilisation of the female 
 organ is not merely that the female organ gives rise to sporangia 
 (carposporangia in the one case, asci in the other) ; but the ad- 
 jacent vegetative tissues are stimulated to growth, forming an 
 investment to the structures developed directly from the fertilised 
 female organ, the whole constituting a fruit. 
 
 Similarly, in the Bryophyta, and to a less extent in the Pterido- 
 phyta, the effect of the fertilisation of the oosphere is riot merely 
 to cause the formation of an oospore and the development of an 
 embryo, but the wall of the archegonium is stimulated to fresh 
 growth and forms an investment, the calyptra, which encloses 
 the embryo-sporophyte for a longer or shorter period, the whole 
 constituting at this stage a fruit. 
 
 The most remarkable instances of fruit-formation are, however, 
 to be found in the Phanerogams. Here, as a result of the fertilisa- 
 tion of the oosphere, various parts of the flower are stimulated to 
 growth ; most commonly it is only the macrosporophylls (carpels) 
 which are so affected, but the stimulating influence may extend to 
 the perianth-leaves or to the axis of the flower, the resulting tissues 
 being either hard and woody, or soft and succulent (see Part 
 III., under Phanerogams). The peculiar feature of the fruit of 
 these plants, as contrasted with those of the lower plants, is that 
 here the tissues affected all belong to the sporophyte, whereas in 
 the lower plants they belong to the gametophyte: this is the 
 necessary result of the peculiar relation of the female gametophyte 
 to the sporophyte which obtains in the Phanerogams (see p. 86). 
 
 20. The Seed. As this is a structure which is peculiar to 
 Phanerogams, its morphology is discussed in connection with that 
 group (see Part III., p. 458). 
 
 
 
PART II. 
 
 THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 (ANATOMY AND HISTOLOGY). 
 
 21. Introductory. The body of a plant, like that of an 
 animal, consists essentially of living matter termed protoplasm. 
 The body may consist simply of a mass of protoplasm, as the plas- 
 modium of the Myxomycetes ; or it may consist of a mass of proto- 
 plasm invested at the surface by a definite membrane which is not 
 protoplasmic (e.g. Phycomycetous Fungi and Siphonaceous Algse) ; 
 or it may consist of a mass of protoplasm segmented into portions 
 by non-protoplasmic partition- walls. A body of this last type of 
 structure may be conveniently distinguished as septate, from those 
 of the two former types which are unseptate. 
 
 On examining the protoplasm of any plant, it will be found to 
 contain certain well-defined protoplasmic bodies termed nuclei; it 
 is, in fact, the case that all protoplasm is nucleated. In an un- 
 septate body, such as those mentioned above, the nuclei, which are 
 very numerous, ars scattered irregularly throughout the proto- 
 plasm. In the septate body of certain plants (e.g. higher Fungi ; 
 some Algae, such as Cladophora and Hydrodictyon) the septation of 
 the body and the distribution of the nuclei stand in no direct rela- 
 tion to each other, the protoplasm being segmented into portions 
 each of which includes a number of nuclei ; such a plant-body may 
 be designated as incompletely septate. In the rest of the septate 
 plants, the septation of the protoplasm and the distribution of the 
 nuclei stand in a direct relation to each other, such that each of 
 the portions into which the protoplasm is segmented contains 
 but a single nucleus ; a plant-body of this structure may be des- 
 cribed as completely septate. 
 
 The portions of protoplasm which are delimitated by the septa in 
 the body of a completely septate plant, are, both morphologically 
 and physiologically, units of protoplasm. They are frequently 
 spoken of as cells, but it is more accurate to reserve this term to 
 
 89 
 
90 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 21. 
 
 the protoplasmic unit together with the wall (cell-wall} by which 
 it is invested, and to term the protoplasmic unit an energid. 
 The structure of the body or any part of it can only be accurately 
 described as cellular when it consists of one or more such cells, 
 that is, when it is either unicellular (e.g. Yeast, Haematococcus, 
 etc.) or multi cellular. The body of an unseptate plant (such as 
 the Phycomycetous Fungi and the Siphonaceous Algae), as also 
 a segment of the body of an incompletely septate plant (such as 
 Cladophora, Hydrodictyon, etc.), is not a single cell, but is an 
 aggregate of protoplasmic units (energids) enclosed within a 
 common wall. Such a body, or part of a body, may be con- 
 veniently distinguished as a coenocyfe, and the plants in which it 
 occurs may be said to have coenocytic structure. 
 
 Even in typically cellular plants structures occur which are 
 coenocytic. Thus, in the early stages of its development in the 
 embryo-sac of a Phanerogam, the endosperm is generally unsep- 
 tate, consisting of a layer of protoplasm with many nuclei scattered 
 through it; it eventually becomes a cellular tissue by the delimit- 
 ation of the constituent energids by means of cell-walls. But even 
 when the cell-walls are formed, they do not always enclose single 
 energids ; in Corydalis cava, for instance, the net-work of cell-walls 
 encloses several energids in each mesh, so that the structure of the 
 endosperm is at first coenocytic; eventually, however, the nuclei in 
 each ccenocyte fuse together until only one remains, and in this 
 way the transition from ccenocytic to cellular structure is effected. 
 Again, a " laticiferous cell" of a Euphorbia (and other Phanero- 
 gams) is essentially a ccenocyte like the body of a Vaucheria or a 
 Botrydium. 
 
 On the other hand, there is such a thing as a multinucleate 
 cell. It has been observed, for instance, in old internodal cells of 
 Chara, and in old parenchymatous cells of Lycopodium and of 
 various Phanerogams (e.g. Tradescantia, Taraxacum, Cereus, Sola- 
 num, etc.) that, from being uninucleate, they become multinucleate 
 by the direct division or fragmentation of the nucleus (see p. 96). 
 
 The distinction between a ccenocyte and a multinucleate cell 
 would appear to be this : that the former is either multinucleate 
 from the first or becomes so at a very early stage in its develop- 
 ment, whilst the latter becomes multinucleate at a quite late 
 period ; and further, that in the ccenocyte the nuclei multiply by 
 indirect division (see p. 97), whereas in the multinucleate cell 
 they multiply by direct division or fragmentation. 
 
21.] 
 
 INTRODUCTORY. 
 
 91 
 
 There is another kind of structure occurring in cellular plants 
 which has to be distinguished from both the cell and the coenocyte : 
 that is the syncyte. This structure is developed from already- 
 formed cells by an absorption, more or less complete, of the cell- 
 walls, which places the cavities of the adjacent cells in direct con- 
 tinuity. The commonest case of this occurs in the development of 
 vessels, where the transverse septa of a longitudinal row of cells 
 are absorbed so that a continuous tube is formed. 
 
 But even in the fully-developed cellular plant-body it appears to 
 be very frequently the case that the energid in one cell is not 
 absolutely cut off from those of the adjacent cells, but that there 
 is continuity of the pro- 
 toplasm ; that is, that 
 the protoplasm of one 
 cell is connected with 
 that of the contiguous 
 cells by means of very 
 delicate protoplasmic 
 fibrils which traverse 
 the pits or pores of the 
 intervening cell-walls 
 (Fig. 45). This con- 
 nection appears, how- 
 ever, to exist from the 
 first development of the 
 cells, and thus differs 
 from the case of the 
 syncyte where the ab- 
 sorption of the inter- 
 vening cell-walls is a 
 secondary process. 
 
 The term tissue is generally applied to any continuous aggregate 
 of cells (or of coenocytes) ; but it is essential to define the term 
 more accurately. A true tissue is an aggregate of cells (or of 
 ccenocytes) which (L) have a common origin, whether formed 
 simultaneously (e.g. development of endosperm of Phanerogams), 
 or successively, as in the case of a tissue developed from a grow- 
 ing-point ; which (2) are coherent from the first and are governed 
 by a common law of growth ; and which (3) are physiologically- 
 interdependent and cannot, in fact, exist otherwise than as part 
 of the tissue. 
 
 r^7_^-4 a 
 
 Fio. 45 (highly magnified, after Gardiner). Con- 
 tinuity of the protoplasm of contiguous cells of the 
 endosperm of a Palm-seed (JBentinckia) : a contracted 
 protoplasm of a cell; b a group of delicate protoj lasmic 
 fibrils passing through a pit in the cell-wall. 
 
92 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 21. 
 
 This definition may be further illustrated by the consideration of aggregates 
 of cells (or of coenocytes) which do not constitute true tissue. For instance, 
 the body of Hydrodictyon consists of a number of coherent coenocytes which 
 were originally free cells, and which are physiologically independent ; similarly 
 the cells forming the body of a Spirogyra do not constitute a true tissue, on 
 account of their physiological independence. In the higher Fungi (e.g. Agari- 
 cus) a nearer approach to a true tissue is made by the aggregation of filaments 
 (hyphce) of the mycelial body into masses such that the growing-points of the 
 nggregated hyphae form a collective apical growing-point. These various forms 
 of cell-aggregation may be distinguished as spurious tissues. 
 
 The tissue, true or spurious, of which the body of a plant con- 
 sists may be either homogeneous or heterogeneous ; that is, the cells 
 (or the coenocytes) may be all alike, constituting therefore but one 
 kind of tissue ; or they may not be all alike, the different kinds of 
 cells being more or less grouped together so as to form different 
 kinds of tissue. A body which consists of different kinds of tissues 
 is said to be histologically differentiated. 
 
 The structural differences between the various forms of tissue 
 in a histologically differentiated body are essentially connected 
 with the special adaptation of each form of tissue to the per- 
 formance of some particular function in the economy ; their differ- 
 ences are, in fact, evidence of their physiological interdependence. 
 In a histologically undifferentiated body (e.g., Hydrodictyon, 
 Spirogyra, etc.), the cells (or cosnocytes) are all similar because 
 they all have to discharge similar functions ; in fact, each cell 
 (or crenocyte) discharges all the functions of a living body ; at 
 first nutritive in function, it closes its existence as a reproduc- 
 tive organ. A body such as this, consisting of physiologically 
 independent structural units, is distinguished as a ccenobium. 
 
 It is a remarkable fact that, whilst the cells of the various 
 tissues of a histologically differentiated body present characteristic 
 peculiarities of form, size, and relative arrangement, the most 
 striking distinctive peculiarities are exhibited, not, as in animals, 
 by the protoplasm of the cells, but by the cell- walls in respect of 
 their thickness, their chemical composition and physical properties, 
 and their markings (p. 103). 
 
 Inasmuch as the cellular plants are the more numerous, and 
 present greater variety of structure, the following account deals 
 almost exclusively with them. And since the cell is the structural 
 unit of these plants, it will be advantageous to study the cell as 
 such first, and then to proceed to the study of the tissues. 
 
22.] 
 
 CHAPTER [. THE CELL 
 
 CHAPTER I. 
 
 THE CELL. 
 
 93 
 
 22. The Structure and Form of the Cell. In a fully 
 developed living cell the following three principal constituents 
 may be distinguished (Fig. 46 B C and D) : 
 
 (1) A closed membrane, the cell-wall (/&), consisting generally of 
 a substance termed cellulose. 
 
 (2) A layer of gelatinous substance, the protoplasm (j>), lying in 
 close contact at all 
 
 points with the 
 internal surface 
 of the cell-wall ; 
 the protoplasm 
 gives the chemi- 
 cal reactions of 
 proteid. In it 
 lies a nucleus (fr), 
 in winch one or 
 more smaller 
 bodies, nucleoli 
 (//.) may generally 
 be distinguished. 
 
 (3) Cavities, 
 one or more, in 
 the protoplasm, 
 termed vacuoles 
 (s), which are 
 filled with a wa- 
 tery liquid, the 
 cell-sap. 
 
 The structure 
 of a ccenocyte is 
 essentially the 
 same as that just described, except that several (sometimes very 
 many) nuclei are present. 
 
 The young cell presents a somewhat different appearance (Fig. 
 46 A}. At this stage the protoplasm occupies the whole cell- 
 cavity. But, in the subsequent development of the cell, the in- 
 crease in bulk of the protoplasm does not keep pace with the 
 
 D 
 
 FIG. 46. Cells and their structure. A Young cells from the 
 ovary of Symplioricarpus racemosus ( x 300) ; B cells from an 
 older ovary of the same plant ( x 300) ; C and D from the fruit 
 of the same plant ( x 100) ; h cell-wall ; p protoplasm : 7c 
 nucleus; fcfc nucleolus; s vacuole. In C there is a single 
 large vacuole, the whole of the protoplasm forming the parietal 
 layer. In D there are several vacuoles, and the nucleus lies in 
 a central mass of protoplasm connected with the parietal layer 
 by numerous strands. 
 
94 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 22. 
 
 superficial growth of the cell-wall. Hence, since the protoplasm 
 must remain in contact with the cell-wall at all points, the result- 
 is that cavities, the vacuoles, are formed which become filled with 
 cell-sap (Fig. 46 J5). The vacuoles, small at first, increase with 
 the growth of the cell, and may fuse together to a greater or less 
 extent owing to the gradual withdrawal of more and more of the 
 protoplasm into the now extensive parietal layer. 
 
 Cells such as these are examples of the kind of cells which com- 
 pose the succulent parts of plants, such as the cortex of stems and 
 roots, the tissue of leaves, succulent fruits, etc., in fact the bulk of 
 the actually living tissues of the plant. In the higher plants it is 
 generally the case that a considerable number of the cells of the 
 body eventually lose the whole of their proper contents, contain- 
 ing, in fact, nothing but air or water ; such are cork-cells and 
 vascular wood-cells. Such structures are no longer living cells, 
 but are merely their skeletons, and are of use only in virtue of the 
 mechanical properties of their cell- walls. 
 
 On the other hand, there are frequently found in connection 
 with the processes of reproduction, what have been termed 
 primordial cells, such as zoospores, zoogonidia, gametes, sperma- 
 tozoids, and oospheres (see p. 69 and p. 80), each of which is 
 simply an energid, or rarely a complex of several energids (e.g., 
 zoogonidium of Vaucheria), without any cell-wall, though the 
 zoospores and zoogonidia eventually secrete a cell- wall when they 
 come to rest, as do also the oospheres after fertilisation. 
 
 The size and form of the cell vary widely. While some cells 
 are so small that little more than their outline can be discerned 
 with the help of the strongest magnifying power (about O001 of 
 a millimetre in diameter), others obtain a considerable size (from 
 O'l to 0'5 millim.), so as to be distinguishable even by the naked 
 eye (e g., in pith of Dahlia, Impatiens, Sambucus). Many grow 
 to a length of several centimetres, as the hairs upon the seed of 
 Gossypium (cotton) ; and if coenocytes be included, such as the 
 laticiferous tubes of the Euphorbiacese, the Siphonaceous Algse, 
 and the Phycomycetous Fungi, very much larger dimensions in 
 length are attained. 
 
 The Form of such cells as constitute an entire individual, or 
 exist independently, not forming part of a tissue (e.g. spores), is 
 generally spherical, or ovoid, or cylindrical. The various organs 
 of highly organised plants consist of many varieties of cells, and 
 even in the same organ cells lie side by side which are of very 
 
23.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 95 
 
 - 
 
 different form. The two main types of cells are, first, such as are 
 spheroidal or polyhedral, with nearly equal or slightly differing 
 diameters (Fig. 46), as in pith, juicy fruits, fleshy tubers ; and 
 secondly, such as are narrow and greatly elongated (Fig. 94), as 
 n the case of fibres. 
 
 23. The Protoplasm. The protoplasmic contents of a 
 ell present certain clearly differentiated portions. In the first 
 place there is a nucleus ; closely associated with the nucleus is a 
 body termed the centrosphere ; and finally, there are more or less 
 numerous plastids. These all lie in the general protoplasm of the 
 
 11 which may be distinguished as the cytoplasm. 
 
 a. The Cytoplasm is of viscid tenacious consistence, but it is not 
 a fluid. Chemical examination shows that it consists (at least, 
 when dead) of proteid substance, and apparently of a single such 
 substance termed cytoplastin ; intimately associated with this are 
 varying quantities of other organic substances, such as other 
 proteids, fats, and carbohydrates, together with water, and a 
 small proportion of inorganic ash-constituents. As it is the seat 
 of all the nutritive processes of the cell, it must obviously contain 
 at different times all the various chemical substances which enter 
 into, or are formed within the cell. 
 
 The cytoplasm, apart from the granules of foreign matter 
 generally present in it, may be distinguished as cyto-hyaloplasm, 
 of which the delicate firmer superficial layer of the cytoplasm, 
 known as the ectoplasm, solely consists. As a rule, the cyto- 
 hyaloplasm is distinguishable into the formative cyto-hyaloplasm 
 or kinoplasm, and the nutritive cyto-hyaloplasm; the former is 
 always intimately associated with .the nucleus, and is active in the 
 processes of cell-formation ; the latter constitutes generally the 
 main bulk of the cyto-hyaloplasm. It would appear that the 
 capacity of a cell for growth and multiplication, that is, the 
 embryonic condition of the cytoplasm, must depend upon the 
 presence of a certain proportion of kiiioplasm. 
 
 6. The Nucleus is always situated in the cytoplasm, and, in 
 actively growing cells at least, in the kinoplasm. It consists of 
 various proteid substances. Its structure, when at rest, may be 
 generally described as follows. It is bounded at the surface by a 
 membrane which belongs, however, to the cytoplasm, or, more ac- 
 curately, to the kinoplasm. It consists mainly of a semi-fluid clear 
 ground-substance, the nudeo-hyaloplasm, which, from the chemical 
 point of view, is a substance termed paralinin. In the nucleo- 
 
96 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [23. 
 
 FIG. 47. Restiug nucleus 
 from the young endosperm 
 of FritillariOi imperialist 
 (after Strasburger : x 1000) ; 
 showing the fibrillar Tiet- 
 work with its chromatin- 
 granules, and several nu- 
 cleoli. 
 
 hyaloplasm lies a fibrillar network consisting of a substance termed 
 lint'n, in which are distributed a number of granules of a substance 
 termed chroma-tin. One or more small 
 granules, termed nucleoli, are to be seen 
 lying in the ground-substance, and consist 
 of a substance termed pyrenin. On treat- 
 ing the nucleus with staining reagents, the 
 fibrillar network becomes stained on 
 account of the absorption of the colouring- 
 matter by the chromatin-granules, as also do 
 the nucleoli. Its form is most commonly 
 spherical, but it may be lenticular, or 
 elongated, and straight or curved. 
 
 A formation of a nucleus de novo does 
 not take place under any circumstances ; 
 hence all the nuclei in a plant have been 
 derived by repeated division from the nu- 
 cleus of the spore from which the plant has developed. The 
 division of the nucleus may be either direct or indirect (mitotic) ; 
 
 in all cases it 
 
 j\ divides into 
 
 not more than 
 two parts. 
 
 Direct divi- 
 sion or frag- 
 mentation of 
 the nucleus 
 commonly oc- 
 curs in old 
 cells (see p. 
 90), which 
 then become 
 multinucle- 
 ate ; it is not 
 associated 
 with cell-divi- 
 sion. So far 
 as the pro- 
 
 Fia. 48. Direct nuclear division, in cells of old internodes of CGSS has been 
 
 Tradescantia virginica: A drawn from fresh material; B isolated f ' f d 
 
 nuclei, after treatment with acetic methyl-green. (After Stras- ' 
 
 burger: x540.) it consists 
 

 23.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 97 
 
 
 simply in the constriction of the nucleus into two halves (Fig. 
 48). " 
 
 Indirect or mitotic division of the nucleus is generally associated 
 with cell-division ; in ccenocytes, however, the indirect nuclear 
 division is not followed by cell-division, but each division results 
 simply in a corresponding increase in the number of protoplasmic 
 units present (energids, see p. 90). The description of this 
 mode of nuclear division is included in the account of cell- 
 division (p. 118). 
 
 c. The Centrospliere, though a perfectly independent body, is 
 always closely associated with the nucleus. It is spherical in 
 form, and consists of a central particle (the centrosome), surrounded 
 by a considerable hyaline area, limited by a granular outline. It 
 undergoes division in connection 
 
 with the division of the nucleus, as 
 described in the section dealing with 
 that subject. It appears that there 
 are normally two of these bodies 
 associated with the nucleus, lying 
 close together (Fig. 49) in the kino- 
 plasm. 
 
 d. The Plastids are differentiated 
 rtions of the protoplasm which, 
 e the nucleus, are not formed de 
 
 novo, but multiply by division. Their 
 form varies widely. Structurally, 
 they seem to consist of a ground- 
 substance with imbedded fibrils, 
 denser at the surface. Chemically, they have been described as 
 consisting of two proteid substances ; the one, termed chloroplastin, 
 constitutes the ground-substance, and seems to be similar to the 
 cytoplastin of the cytoplasm; the other, termed metaxin, is the 
 material of the fibrils, and appears to be altogether peculiar to the 
 plastids. 
 
 The plastids may either be colourless, when they are termed 
 leucoplas tids ; or coloured, when they are termed cJiromatophores. 
 The chromatophores are distinguishable as chloroplastids, when they 
 contain the green colouring-matter chlorophyll; or as chromoplastids 
 when they contain no chlorophyll, but some other colouring- 
 matter. Plastids are not found in the Fungi, nor, apparently, in 
 the Cyanophycese among the Algae. 
 
 FIG. 49. Young pollen-grain of 
 Lilium Martagon, showing, c two cen- 
 trospheres, and n the resting nucleus. 
 (After Guignard : x 750.) 
 
98 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 23. 
 
 The Leucoplastids may be spheroidal, fusiform, or cylindrical in 
 shape ; they are especially numerous in the neighbourhood of the 
 
 nucleus. In parts of 
 plants which, in the or- 
 dinary course, eventually 
 become exposed to light, 
 the leucoplastids de- 
 velope into chloroplas- 
 tids. Conversely, when 
 a part which is normally 
 exposed to light is kept 
 in darkness, the chloro- 
 pListids become replaced 
 by leucoplastids. The 
 essential function of the 
 leucoplastids is to form 
 starch-grains. 
 
 The Chloroplastids or 
 Chlorophyll-bodies, are of 
 various form. The cha- 
 racteristic feature of 
 them is their function, 
 which is twofold. In 
 the first place, they can, 
 like the leucoplastids, generally produce starch-grains ; in the 
 second place, they are capable, in virtue of the colouring-matter 
 present in them, of constructing organic substance from carbon 
 
 dioxide and water under the in- 
 fluence of light (see Part IV.). 
 Their function is thus not only 
 starch-forming or amyloplastic, but 
 also assimilatory. These two 
 functions may be, and usually are, 
 carried on simultaneously ; hence 
 when, under the influence of light, 
 organic substance is being pro- 
 duced in the chloroplastid, it 
 
 Fia. 61. Group of rod-like leuco- n i_ nn j -11 
 
 plastids, each bearing a pyramidal USUa % ^COmes filled With starch- 
 
 starch-grain, collected round the nu- grains, and sometimes to such an 
 deu 8 ina C ell fthep8eudo.bulbof a n exfcenfc th t th gubstance of the 
 Orchid (PTiojus grandifohus) . (x850: 
 
 after Schimper.) chloroplastid constitutes but the 
 
 FIG. 50. Chloroplastids in the cytoplasm of the 
 cells of the prothallium of a Fern. A Optical section 
 of the cells ; B part of a cell seen from the surface. 
 Some of the plastids have begun to divide ( x 400) . 
 

 23.] CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 99 
 
 wall of a vesicle (Fig. 52). Bat starch-grains may be formed in a 
 chloroplastid, as in a leucoplastid, in the absence of light; the 
 organic substance required for the building-up of the starch-grain 
 being not produced in the chloroplastid itself, but supplied from 
 other parts of the plant. 
 
 These plastids are termed chloro- 
 plastids, because the colouring-matter 
 upon which their assirnilatory func- 
 tion depends is most commonly the 
 familiar green colouring-matter, chlo- 
 rophyll. But they are not always 
 green. In some of the Algoe they are 
 red or brown, because in addition to 
 chlorophyll there is present in the 
 one case (Rhodophyceae), a red 
 colouring-matter, phycoerythrin, and 
 in the other (Pha3ophycese) a brown 
 colouring- matter, phycoxanthin or pliy- 
 cophseiu. These substances are, how- 
 ever, related to chlorophyll. 
 
 FIG. 62. Isolated chloroplastids with 
 starchy contents from the leaf of Funana 
 hygrometrica (550). a A young corpuscle; 
 b an older one, b' and b" have begun to 
 divide ; c d e old corpuscles in which the 
 starchy contents fill almost the whole 
 space ; / and g after maceration in water 
 by which the substance of the corpuscle 
 has been destroyed and only the starchy 
 contents remain. (After Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 53. Cladophora glomerata 
 (after Strasburger : x 510). A 
 ccenocyte of the filament (chromic 
 acid and carmine preparation) : 
 n nucleus; ch chloroplastid; the 
 polygonal chloroplastids form a 
 continuous layer, the outlines of 
 the individual plaetids remaining 
 visible ; p pyrenoids ; v starch- 
 grains. 
 
 When the colouring-matter is dissolved out by alcohol or some 
 other solvent, the protoplasmic plastid is left colourless, but un- 
 changed in form or size. The chlorophyll appears to exist in an 
 
100 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 23. 
 
 oily solution, and to be confined to the fibrillar portions of the 
 plastid, in the form of droplets (grana). 
 
 The most common form of chloroplastid the only one occurring 
 in the higher plants is the chlorophyll-corpuscle (Fig. 52), which 
 is flattened and discoid. Usually, many corpuscles are present in 
 a cell, but occasionally (e.g. Anthoceros) there is only one. In 
 the Algse the chromatophores, though sometimes small and 
 discoid (e.g. Yaucheria, Fucus, etc.), are more commonly large, 
 occurring singly, and of very various form. 
 
 Fio. 51. Spirogyra majuscula (after Stras- 
 burger : x 240). A cell of a filament, showing 
 the nucleus suspended in the centre; also 
 the spirally-wound chromatophore with py- 
 renoids. 
 
 FIG. 55. Part of a cell of Spirogyra 
 showing the chromatophore c?i, -with 
 the pyrenoids p, surrounded by a dense 
 layer of protoplasm in which are nu- 
 merous starch-grains. (After Schmitz : 
 x 800.) 
 
 The chromatophores of the Algae present a great variety of form. Generally 
 speaking, those of the higher forms are small corpuscles of a more or less 
 discoid form ; while in the lower forms the chromatophores are few in number, 
 often single, in each cell, and are relatively large, assuming commonly the 
 shape of a flattened plate, sometimes elongated and straight or spirally coiled 
 (Figs. 54, 55). In the latter case the large flattened chromatophores present 
 one or more spherical thickenings, each cf which is termed a pyrenoid (Figs. 
 5355), and consists of a homogenous colourless mass of proteid substance. 
 From their limitation to the lowest forms of Algae (some Diatoms, among 
 Phagophyceffi ; Bangiaceae, Nemalieae, among Bhodophyceas ; Conjugates, Con- 
 fervoideae, among Chlorophyceae), it would appear that there is some connexion 
 between the presence of pyrenoids and an incomplete differentiation of repro- 
 ductive and vegetative cells in the plant in which the pyrenoids occur (see 
 Algce, Part III.). They may, in fact, be regarded as masses of reserve proteid. 
 The only plant, outside the Algae, in which a pyrenoid has been found in the 
 chromatophore is Anthoceros. 
 
23.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 101 
 
 This view of the significance of the pyrenoids is supported by the fact that 
 starch-grains, i.e. reserves of carbohydrate, are very generally deposited in the 
 chromatophore immediately round the pyrenoid. In most of the Chlorophycese 
 which have pyrenoids, the pyrenoid is (under appropriate conditions) com- 
 pletely enclosed by a sort of shell of starch-grains lying in the adjacent por- 
 tion of the chromatophore (see Fig. 55). In these large chromatophores, the 
 assimilatory and amyloplastic functions are not uniformly distributed : whilst 
 the general mass of the chromatophore carries on the former, the latter is 
 confined to the portion of it which closely invests the pyrenoids. 
 
 Another fact, bearing on the significance of the pyrenoids, is that they vary 
 in bulk from time to time, in relation, apparently, to the condition of nutrition 
 of the cell : hence it is probable that they may yet be found in plants which, at 
 present, seem not to possess them. For instance, the singular fact that they 
 have been discovered in some Diatoms and not in others, may perhaps be ex- 
 plicable on this ground. 
 
 Chromatophores multiply by division into two, effected by 
 median constriction (Figs. 50 B ; 52): pyrenoids, when present, 
 are multiplied in the same way. 
 
 The chloroplastids ultimately undergo degeneration, when, as in 
 the case of falling leaves, for instance, all that remains of them is 
 a few yellow granules. 
 
 In many cases the green colour of parts of plants containing 
 chloroplastids, is masked by the presence 
 of other colouring-matters held in solu- 
 tion in the cell-sap (e.g. the leaves of 
 Amaranthus, Coleus, Copper Beech, Copper 
 Hazel, etc.). 
 
 The Chromoplastids are generally de- 
 rivatives of chloroplastids which have un- 
 dergone a change both in form and colour. 
 They occur most commonly in the cells of 
 yellow floral leaves, such as those of Tro- 
 pseolum (Fig. 56) : in the superficial cells 
 of many fruits of a red or orange colour 
 (e.g. berries of Solanum, fruit of Tomato). 
 The yellow colour of the root of the Carrot 
 is due to the presence of leucoplastids, in 
 each of which there is a large orange- 
 coloured crystal of carotin. The chloro- 
 plastids of many Coniferae (e g. Biota orien- 
 talis) assume a reddish colour at the beginning of winter. 
 
 FIG. 56. From the upper 
 Bide of the calyx of Tropmo- 
 lum majus. The inner wall 
 of an epidermal cell with 
 the chromoplastids. (After 
 Strasburger : x 540.) 
 
 A brief account may be appended of the structures peculiar to primordial 
 
102 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 23. 
 
 cells or ccenocytes (p. 94). The primordial reproductive cells of the Algae contain 
 chloroplastids (except spermatozoids of Characeae) : in the higher plants these 
 cells do not contain chloroplastids, but the oospheres contain leucoplastids 
 which become the plastids of the embryo and from which all the plastids of the 
 future plant are eventually developed. In the Alga?, likewise, whatever be the 
 form of the reproductive cell, a portion of it consists of hyaline kinoplasm (p. 95) ; 
 in the case of motile cells (zoospores, zoogonidia, planogametes, spermatozoids), 
 the anterior portion consists of hyaline colourless kinoplasm, whilst the thicker 
 posterior portion consists of granular cytoplasm containing the chloroplastids 
 when present ; similarly the oospheres of some heterogamous green Alga? (e.g. 
 (Edogonium, Vaucheria, Characeas), have an anterior region of hyaline kino- 
 plasm (commonly known as the receptive spot). In the higher plants the 
 spermatozoids consist exclusively of kinoplasm. The ccenocytic zoogonidium of 
 Vaucheria is peculiar in that it has no limited kinoplasmic area, but is entirely 
 covered by a layer of kinoplasm (see Fig. 75). 
 
 Many of the primordial reproductive cells are motile (zoospores, zoogonidia, 
 plauogametes, spermatozoids), and move by means of cilia. A cilium is a deli- 
 cate filament of kinoplasm which is contractile, and by its oscillations serves to 
 propel through the water the body to which it belongs. The number of cilia 
 borne by these cells varies considerably: there may be a single cilium (e.fj. 
 zoospores of Botrydium, and occasionally those of Hydrodictyon) ; or a pair 
 (generally in plauogametes ; frequently in zoospores and zoogonidia ; less 
 commonly in spermatozoids, as those of most heterogamous Algae, of the 
 Bryophyta, and of Lycopodium and Selaginella) ; or four (e.g. zoogonidia of 
 certain green Algae, Ulothrix, Cladophora, Cha?tophora, Ulva) ; or many (e.g. 
 all motile cells of (Edogonium ; zoogouidia of Vaucheria ; spermatozoids of 
 Filicinae and Equisetinae). 
 
 The position of the cilia is determined mainly by the distribution of the 
 kinoplasm : where, as in the ccenocytic zoogonidium of Vaucheria, there is a 
 continuous superficial layer of kinoplasm, the cilia are developed over the whole 
 surface ; where the kinoplasm forms the anterior end, the cilia are restricted 
 to this region ; when there are many cilia (e.g. (Edogonium), they form a 
 circlet round the base of the kinoplasmic area, and in the spermatozoids of the 
 Filicinae and Equisetinae, which consist entirely of kinoplasm, the numerous 
 cilia are borne laterally, generally near the apex, but sometimes (e.g. Marsilea) 
 at some distance behind it ; when there are one, two, or four cilia, they are 
 either apical (motile cells of most Green Algae, spermatozoids of Bryophyta, and 
 of Lycopodium and Selaginella), or they are borne laterally (e.g. spermatozoids 
 of Volvox and Vaucheria, among Green Alga? ; all motile reproductive cells of 
 the Brown Algae) at the base of the kinoplasmic area. 
 
 Another peculiar feature of some of these motile primordial cells, is the 
 presence of an eye-spot. This is a small corpuscle of a red colour, consisting 
 apparently of a specialised mass of cytoplasm permeated by colouring-matter ; it 
 turns dark-blue on treatment with iodine. An eye-spot is present in the motile 
 cells of the isogamous Green Algae, in the zoogonidia of (Edcgonium, in the 
 spermatozoids of Volvox and Eudorina, and in all motile cells of the Brown Algaa. 
 
 Yet another remarkable feature is the presence of a contractile vacuole, that 
 is, a vacuole in the cytoplasm which expands arid contracts rhythmically. These 
 
24.] CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 103 
 
 are to be found generally in the zoospores, zoogonidia, and planogametes of the 
 Alga?, as also in those of the oogamous Phycomycetes and of the Myxomycetes 
 among Fungi. 
 
 These peculiar structures, the hyaline area, the cilia, and the contractile 
 vacuole, are not confined to isolated free-swimming cells, but are also character- 
 istic of cells forming part of a multicellular motile body (e.g. Volvocaceoc). 
 
 24. The Cell-Wall is a non-protoplasmic membrane con- 
 sisting, at least at its first formation, of an organic substance 
 termed cellulose, of water, and of a small proportion of inorganic 
 mineral constituents. Its growth, as well as its first formation, is 
 the result of the vital activity of the protoplasm ; it is, in fact, 
 formed from and by the protoplasm. 
 
 1. The Growth of the Cell-Wall. The cell- wall grows in surface 
 and in thickness. 
 
 a. The growth in surface of the cell-wall may take place in 
 either of two ways, both of which are, however, dependent upon 
 pressure exerted from within upon the wall. In the one case the 
 stretched wall grows continuously by means of material supplied 
 to it by the cytoplasm, the wall remaining unbroken. In the 
 other, the stretched wall is ruptured at certain parts, new portions 
 of cell-wall being at once intercalated to close the gap. The 
 former is of more common occurrence : the latter has been observed 
 in some Alga?, for instance, in the growth of the cells of QEdo- 
 gonium, and in connexion with the apical growth and with 
 the development of lateral members in Caulerpa, Cladophora, 
 Bryopsis, Derbesia, and Polysiphonia. 
 
 Growth in surface takes place to such an extent that the volume 
 of the cell not infrequently becomes a hundred- fold greater than it 
 was originally. Thus, for instance, in a leaf still enclosed in a 
 leaf-bud, the cells of which it will consist when fully developed 
 are all actually present, and it is simply by their increase in volume 
 that the leaf attains its full size. 
 
 In the comparatively rare cases in which the superficial growth 
 of the cell-wall is equal at all points, the cell preserves its original 
 form: but more commonly the cell- wall grows more vigorously 
 at certain points than at others ; thus, for instance, a primarily 
 spheroidal or cuboidal cell may become tubular, cylindrical, fusi- 
 form, stellate, etc. 
 
 6. The growth in thickness of the cell- wall is effected by the 
 deposition of successive layers on the internal surface of the first- 
 formed layer. The cell- wall does not usually begin to thicken 
 
104 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [24 
 
 FIG. 57. Ripe pollen-grain 
 of Cichorium Intybus; the al- 
 most spherical surface of the 
 cell-wall is furnished with 
 ridge-like projections pro- 
 longed into spines, and form- 
 ing a network. (After Sachs.) 
 
 until after its growth in surface has ceased, the cell having then 
 attained its definite size ; but cases of simultaneous growth in 
 surface and in thickness have been ob- 
 served. 
 
 The growth in thickness of the cell- 
 wall is also rarely uniform ; the cell-wall 
 commonly becomes more thickened at 
 some points than at others, and thus 
 acquires inequalities of surface. In the 
 case of isolated cells or of free cell- walls, 
 the prominences existing in this way on 
 the external surface appear as warts, 
 tubercles, spines, ete. (Fig. 57). Cells 
 that are united to form tissues have their 
 inequalities on the internal surface of the 
 cell-wall, the prominences sometimes having definite form, and 
 projecting into the interior of the cell ; such are the annular 
 (Fig. 58 r) and spiral thickening (Fig. 58 s) of the walls of certain 
 vessels ; in the so-called reticulated cell-walls, the thickening is 
 in bands which are united into a network, so that circular or 
 oval thin spaces are left. In other cases, 
 solitary and relatively small thin spaces 
 are left in the wall in the course of the 
 growth in thickness, which appear, when 
 seen on the external surface, as bright 
 spots, commonly called pits, and are seen 
 in section to be canals of greater or less 
 length, according to the relative thick- 
 ness of the walls (Figs. 59, 60). Very 
 frequently the pit, when seen from the 
 surface, presents the appearance of two 
 concentric circles, or ellipses; for this 
 reason, that the opening of the canal into 
 the interior of the cell is narrow, whereas 
 the external opening is broad (Fig. 62 A). 
 Such bordered pits occur in the wood-cells 
 of Conifers (Fig. 63), in the walls of 
 many vessels (Fig. 62), and elsewhere. 
 The scalariform thickening of the walls of 
 many vessels arises from the regular and close arrangement of 
 bordered pits which are much elongated transversely. 
 
 FIG. 68. r Annular, s spiral 
 thickening of the walls of ves- 
 sels ; r seen from outside, in 
 longitudinal section highly 
 magnified (diagrammatic). 
 
24] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 105 
 
 The Structure of the Cell-wall. When the cell- wall is at all 
 thickened it presents indications of stnicture. 
 
 It presents, in the first place, a 
 layered appearance when examined in 
 longitudinal or transverse action (Fig. 
 60). This layering or stratification of 00 
 
 the cell- wall is readily intelligible when 
 
 FIG. 59. A cell with 
 pitted walls, from the 
 wood of the Elder (Sam- 
 bucus) . A longitudinal 
 section showing the pits 
 in the lateral walls as 
 channels, a ; and in the 
 farther wall as roundish 
 spots, b. ( x 240.) 
 
 FIG. 60. Transverse sec- 
 tion of a bast-cell from the 
 root of Dahlia variabilis ( x 
 800) ; I the cell-cavity. K Pit- 
 canals which penetrate the 
 stratification ; sp a crack by 
 which an inner system of 
 layers has become separa- 
 ted. (After Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 61. Cells from the endo- 
 sperm of Ornithogalum umbella- 
 tum showing simple pits : 
 m pits seen in surface view ; p 
 closing membrane seen in lon- 
 gitudinal section; n nucleus. 
 ( x 240 : after Strasburger.) 
 
 it is remembered that the thickening of the wall is due to the 
 deposition of successive layers from within. 
 
 It presents, secondly, a delicate 
 striation, when examined in sur- 
 face-view, the lines running at a 
 
 FIG. 62. Oval bordered pits in the 
 wall of a vessel of Helianthus. A In 
 longitudinal section. B As seen from 
 the surface; t the pit; Tithe pit-chamber 
 (x 600). 
 
 Fie. 63. Circular bordered pits on 
 the wood-cells of the Pine. A Seen from 
 the surface. B In section ; s the closing 
 membrane ; m the middle lamella. C An 
 earlier stage, in section. ( x 500, diagram.) 
 
106 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [24. 
 
 larger or smaller angle to the long axis of the cell, sometimes even 
 'transversely. The planes of striation are commonly different in 
 the different layers constituting the thickness of the wall, and these 
 seem in the surface-view to cross each other (Fig. 64). The cause 
 of striation appears to be this, that when a considerable area of 
 cell-wall has to be formed, it is deposited by the protoplasm not as 
 one continuous sheet, but in the form of delicate spirally-wound 
 bands with their edges in contact. The lines of the striation are 
 the planes of contact of the edges of these spiral bands. A well- 
 marked illustration of the spiral mode of deposition of cell-wall 
 
 by protoplasm is afforded 
 by the spiral vessels already 
 mentioned (Fig. 58 s). 
 
 3. The Chemical Composi- 
 tion of the Cell-wall. As a 
 rule, the organic constituent 
 of the newly formed cell- 
 wall is cellulose (C 6 H 10 0-), 
 a carbohydrate, the charac- 
 teristic reaction of which, 
 is that it turns blue when 
 treated with sulphuric acid 
 and iodine, or with a mix- 
 ture of iodine, iodide of 
 potassium, and chloride of 
 zinc (chlor-zmc-iod). 
 
 It is, however, commonly 
 the case that when a cell- 
 wall has undergone thickening, some at least of its constituent 
 layers do not consist of cellulose. The chemical changes which 
 are presented by cell- walls may be distinguished as follows: 
 
 a. The cell-wall may undergo cutlcularisation : e.g. walls of 
 epidermal cells, of cork-cells, of spores. The cuticularised or 
 corky cell-wall, contains a substance termed cutin. It is but 
 slightly permeable to water ; it is extensible and highly elastic ; 
 it turns yellow when treated with sulphuric acid and iodine, 
 or with iodised chloride of zinc. The cuticularisation of the 
 cell-wall is most marked in the external layers ; in fact the 
 external layer consists entirely of cutin, whilst the internal layers 
 (of which they may be several, as the cuticularised wall is often 
 much thickened) consist more and more largely of cellulose, the 
 
 Frs. 6t. Surface view of the wall of a cell, 
 showing sbriatioii, from the pith of Dahlia varia- 
 bilis. (x 240: after Strasburger.) 
 
24] CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 107 
 
 innermost layer consisting frequently of pare cellulose, though it 
 is sometimes more or less lignified (tfork). This can be shown by 
 treating the ctiticularised tissue with strong chromic acid for 
 some time, or by warming it in a mixture of nitric acid and 
 chlorate of potash, when the cutin is removed, and the remaining 
 tissue gives the characteristic cellulose-reactions. 
 
 ft. The cell-wall may undergo lignification ; that is, the cell-wall 
 becomes impregnated with a substance termed lignin, which 
 makes it hard and elastic, and though readily permeable to water 
 it cannot absorb or retain much in its substance. The character- 
 istic tests for lignin are, that a cell- wall containing it (a) turns 
 yellow when treated with aniline chloride and hydrochloric acid, 
 and (6) turns pink when treated with phloroglucin and hydro- 
 chloric acid. When a lignified cell-wall is macerated in a mixture 
 of nitric acid and chlorate of potash, or in a strong solution oi 
 chromic acid, the lignin is dissolved out and the wall ceases to 
 to give the lignin-reactions, and now gives the cellulose-reactions. 
 Lignification takes place in the sclerenchymatous and tracheal 
 tissue?, less commonly in the parenchymatous tissue, of the 
 sporophyte of the Pteridophyta (Vascular Cryptogams) and 
 Phanerogams ; it does not occur in any of the lower plants, nor 
 in any gametophyte. 
 
 y. The cell-wall may become more or less mucilaginous ; in its 
 dry state it is then hard and horny ; when moistened, it absorbs 
 a large quantity of water, becoming greatly increased in bulk and 
 gelatinous in consistence; it usually turns blue when treated 
 with sulphuric acid and iodine, or with iodised chloride of zinc, 
 but in some cases it does not give this reaction, and in yet others 
 (e.g. asci of Lichens, bast of Lycopodium, endosperm of Peony, and 
 cotyledons of various leguminous seeds) it turns blue with iodine 
 alone. Mucilaginous cell- walls are common in the coats of seeds 
 (e.g. Flax or Linseed, Quince) ; they are very remarkable in the 
 case of the macrospores of Pilularia and Marsilia ; in tissues, they 
 are well seen in the Malvaceae : they occur in all sub-divisions of 
 the vegetable kingdom. 
 
 In some cases the change goes so far as to result in the con- 
 version of the cell-wall into gum, soluble in water, as in some 
 species of Astragalus and in certain Rosaceous trees (Cherry, 
 Plum, Almond, Peach, etc.) 
 
 These modifications may occur either singly or together in 
 the different layers of one cell- wall, as in corky, or suberised 
 
108 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [25. 
 
 cell-walls, where cuticularisation and lignification occur simul- 
 taneously. 
 
 8. Mineral matters are also frequently deposited during growth 
 in considerable quantity in the cell-wall, particularly salts of lime 
 and silica ; they are usually intercalated between the solid organic 
 particles of the cell-wall, so that they cannot be directly detected, 
 but remain, after burning, as a skeleton which retains the form of 
 the cell. Silica is present in the sterns of Grasses and of Equi- 
 setaceae. Calcium oxalate sometimes occurs in a crystalline form 
 (Fig. 65.) Calcium carbonate is also frequently deposited in cell- 
 walls, as in certain Algee, (e.g. Acetabularia, Corallina, Jania, etc.) ; 
 also in hairs of some of the higher plants (e.g. many Boraginacese) ; 
 
 
 c-A 
 
 FIG. 63. Crystals of 
 calcium oxalate in the 
 wall of the bast-cells of 
 Cephalotaxus Fortvnei. 
 ( x 600 : after Soluis.) 
 
 FIG. 66. A cystolith from the leaf of Celtis 
 Tala(x 200). A Normal condition ; c cysto- 
 lith ; e epidermnl layer; p palisade-tissue- 
 B The cystolir.h after treatment with hydro- 
 chloric acid which has dissolved the calcium 
 carbonate, leaving the stratified cellulose 
 basis. 
 
 but most peculiarly in the cystolitlis present in the epidermal cells 
 of the leaves of the Urticacese and Acanthaceae : it may occur 
 either as granules or as crystals. 
 
 A cystolith (Fig. 66 A) consists of a basis of cellulose incrusted with calcium 
 carbonate. On treating a section, containing a cystolith, with acid, the 
 calcium carbonate is dissolved with evolution of bubbles of C0 2 , leaving the 
 cellulose basis (B) which presents both striation and stratification. The 
 cellulose basis is, in fact, a local thickening of the cell-wall. 
 
 25. Cell-Contents. The following are the principle cell- 
 contents which are not protoplasmic and are, in fact, not living : 
 they are moreover not universally present in cells, but are con- 
 
25.] CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 109 
 
 fined to special cells, and frequently to special plants : starch- 
 grains ; fats ; profceid grains and crystalloids ; mineral crystals ; 
 the cell-sap, and the substances dissolved in it. 
 
 a. Starch-grains are small solid granules of various shape 
 rounded, oval, lenticular, etc. consisting of starch with a certain 
 amount of water and a small proportion of incombustible ash. 
 They are specially abundant in those parts of plants which serve 
 as depositories of reserve-materials, e.g. rhizomes and roots of 
 perennial plants during the winter, tubers of the potato, seeds 
 such as those of the cereal and leguminous plants. They can be 
 extracted by maceration from the organs in which they occur, and 
 then appear as a white powder which is known as starch. Starch 
 is a carbohydrate ; its percentage composition is the same as that 
 of cellulose, and may be represented as C 6 H 10 5 , but its molecule 
 is smaller and less complex. It is readily detected by the cha- 
 racteristic blue colour which it assumes on treatment with an 
 aqueous solution of iodine. When boiled with water, or when 
 treated with potash, the grains swell enormously and form a 
 paste. 
 
 The substance of the starch-grain is always stratified, being 
 disposed in layers round ari organic centre, the hilum ; this stra- 
 tification, as also in the case of cell-walls, is the result of the 
 deposition of successive layers one on the other. The hilum is 
 the most watery portion of the grain, whilst the external layer 
 is the most dense. 
 
 It is, as already mentioned (p. 98), the general rule that starch- 
 grains are produced by means of plastids; in parts of plants ex- 
 posed to light, by chloroplastids ; in parts of plants not exposed 
 to light, by leucoplastids. In the former case the grains are 
 usually formed in the interior of the plastid (see Fig. 52) ; in the 
 latter case, on its surface. In both cases the mode of develop- 
 ment is the same ; a small rounded mass, the hilum*, which is the 
 organic centre of the grain, is first formed, and then the starchy 
 matter is deposited upon this in successive layers by the activity 
 of the plastid. If all parts of the primitive starch-grain are 
 equally within reach of the plastid, and if then the deposition 
 of new layers is equally active all over the circumference, the 
 grain maintains its rounded form, the hilum is its geometric as 
 well as its organic centre, and the layers are concentric. This, 
 from the nature of the case, most commonly occurs when the 
 grains are formed in the interior of the plastids. Very commonly, 
 
110 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 25. 
 
 however, the plastid remains in contact with but one end of the 
 developing grain ; hence the deposited layers are thicker and more 
 numerous on the end of the grain next the plastid, and the layers 
 become excentric (Fig. 67 A) ; the hilum thus necessarily becomes 
 removed further and further away from the plastid. 
 
 It not uncommonly happens that compound starch-grains are to 
 be found. Spuriously compound grains are simply grains which 
 
 have become adherent in con- 
 sequence of mutual pressure ; 
 they occur frequently in the 
 interior of the plastids (see 
 Fig. 52). The truly com- 
 pound grains (Fig. 67 BE) 
 stre formed in this way, 
 that, one plastid produces 
 simultaneously two or more 
 rudimentary starch -grains ; 
 as these increase in size, they 
 eventually come into con- 
 tact ; the further deposition 
 of starchy layers must ne- 
 cessarily be of such a kind 
 that they surround, not each 
 individual grain, but the ag- 
 gregate of adjacent grains ; 
 the young grains thus become 
 bound together by investing 
 layers, and a grain is pro- 
 duced w r hich has apparently 
 a number of hila. 
 
 The form of the starch - 
 grains is characteristic in the 
 different plants in which 
 they occur ; thus those of the Potato (Fig. 67) are excentrically 
 oval; those of leguminous plants (Fig. 69), concentrically oval; 
 those of Rye, Wheat, and Barley, lenticular (Fig. 70). 
 
 The distribution of starch throughout the different classes of 
 plants is a matter of considerable interest. Generally speaking, 
 it is confined to plants which possess chloroplastids, though a sub- 
 stance turning blue with iodine has been found to occur, diffused 
 throughout the protoplasm, in certain Schizomycetes (Clostridiam 
 
 FIG. 67. Excentric starch-grains from the 
 tuber of a Potato ( x 800). A A fully developed 
 simple grain. JB E Compound grains; a b 
 young simple grains; c young compound grain. 
 (After Sachs.) 
 
25.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 Ill 
 
 butyricum, Sarcina ventriculi, Bacterium pastorianum) . But, on 
 the other hand, it is not always present in plants which possess 
 typical chloroplastids ; thus, it is absent, for instance, from the 
 Onion, species of Vaucheria, etc. In the case of plants which 
 have other colouring-matters besides chlorophyll, starch may be 
 altogether absent (Cyanophycece, Diatomacese) ; or it may be 
 replaced by some other substance (most Phosophyceas and Rhodo- 
 phycece). In these Phseophycece and Rhodophyceae there occur 
 small colourless granules distributed in the cytoplasm, consisting 
 of a somewhat mucilaginous substance termed paramylon, which, 
 
 FIG. 63. Cells from the endosperm 
 of Ricinus communis (x 800). A Fresh, 
 in thick glycerine ; B in dilute gly- 
 cerine ; C warmed in glycerine ; 1) after 
 treatment with alcohol and iodine ; the 
 grains have been destroyed by sul- 
 phuric acid, the cytoplasm remaining 
 behind as a net- work. In the grains 
 the globoid may be recognised, and in 
 JB C the crystalloid. (After Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 69. Cells of a very thin section through 
 a cotyledon of the embryo in a ripe seed of 
 Pisum sativum ; the large concentrically strati- 
 fied grains Sf are starch-grains (cut through) ; 
 the small granules a are aleuron, consisting of 
 proteids; i the intercellular spaces. (After 
 Sachs.) 
 
 whilst it does not usually give the characteristic reaction of 
 starch, is probably allied to it chemically. A further peculiarity 
 of these plants is that these granules seem not to be formed inside 
 the chromatophores, but in the contiguous cytoplasm. 
 
 (3. Fats occur very commonly in the cells of plants as oily drops 
 scattered throughout the cytoplasm. They are more particularly 
 abundant in seeds, in many of which oil is the form in which the 
 non-nitrogenous reserve material is deposited {e.g. Palm, Castor- 
 Oil plant, Rape, Flax, etc.) ; it is also present in some fruits (e.g. 
 Olive). 
 
112 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 25. 
 
 y. Proteid Grains, or Aleuron, are granules of various sizes, oval 
 or spherical in form, which occur in seeds, and are of physiological 
 importance in that they are the source from which the embryo is 
 supplied with nitrogenous food when the seed germinates. They 
 consist of a mixture of proteid substances belonging to the globu- 
 lins and the albumoses. They present no indications of structure, 
 and are much larger in oily than in starchy seeds. 
 
 The proteid grain generally contains a mass of mineral matter. 
 Most commonly this is a rounded body, the gloloid (Fig. 68), con- 
 sisting of double phosphate of lime and magnesia ; less frequently 
 
 there is a crystal, or a 
 cluster of crystals, of 
 calcium oxalate. 
 
 In the large grains of 
 oily seeds it is frequently 
 the case that a portion 
 of the proteid (globulin) 
 of the grain crystal- 
 lises out, constituting 
 -am the crystalloid ; there are 
 occasionally two or more 
 crystalloids in the grain 
 (Fig. 68). 
 
 The grains are secreted 
 in vacuoles of the cyto- 
 plasm which, when the 
 grains have been dis- 
 solved out. remains as a 
 network (Fig. 68 D). 
 
 FIG. 70. Part of a section of a grain of wheat 
 Triticum vulgare : p pericarp ; t seed-coat or testa ; 
 internal to which are cells belonging to the endo- 
 sperm; the external layer contains small proteid- 
 grains (ul) but no starch, the more internal cells con- 
 tain starch-grains am; n the nucleus. (After Stras- 
 burger : x 240.) 
 
 Proteid crystalloids are also occasionally found, independently of aleuron, in 
 the cells of plants, (e.g. tuber of the Potato; epidermal cells of leaf of Poly- 
 podium irroides ; some Khodopbycese). 
 
 The crystalloids (whether free or in proteid grains) differ from ordinary 
 mineral crystals in that, when treated with various reagents, they absorb liquid 
 and swell up. They are for the most part cubical, tetrahedral, or rhomboidal 
 in form. 
 
 8. Mineral Crystals are frequently found in the cells of plants. 
 They sometimes consist, but in comparatively few cases, of calcium 
 carbonate ; for example, the crystals in the protoplasm of Myxo- 
 mycetes, and the crystalline masses occurring in the cells of the 
 
25.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 113 
 
 ,/r 
 
 FIG. 71. Crystals of calcium oxalate in the cells of the 
 petiole of a Begonia ( x 200). fc Solitary crystals ; dr cluster. 
 
 pericarp and testa of some plants (e.g. Celtis australis, Lithospermum 
 ojficinale, Cerinthe glabra). 
 
 In all other cases the crystals consist of calcium oxalate, which 
 crystallises in two systems according to the proportion of water 
 which it contains ; 
 to the one system, 
 the quadratic, be- 
 long the octahedra 
 (Fig. 71 k) ; to the 
 other, the clino- 
 rhombic, belong 
 the acicular crys- 
 tals, distinguished 
 as raphides, which 
 occur in bundles 
 in the cells of Mo- 
 nocotyledons more 
 especially (Fig. 72), 
 and are generally 
 associated with mu- 
 cilage in the cell. 
 
 It sometimes happens that the crystal, or group of crystals, be- 
 comes surrounded by a layer of cellulose attached to the wall at 
 one or more points (e.g. leaf of Citrus vulyaria, pith of Kerria 
 japonica). 
 
 e. The Cell-Sap saturates the cell-wall, the protoplasm, in fact 
 the whole organ- 
 ised structure of 
 the cell ; it also 
 fills the vacuole, 
 when present, in 
 the cytoplasm. It 
 is a watery solution 
 of the most various 
 substances. In all 
 cases is holds salts 
 in solution, con- 
 sisting mainly of alkaline bases in combination either with inor- 
 ganic acids, such as nitric, phosphoric, and sulphuric acid, or with 
 organic acids, such as malic (e.g. apple and other fruits), citric 
 (lemon, etc.), and others. It frequently contains tannin, and 
 
 V. s. B. I 
 
 FIG. 72. Raphides (fc) in a cell of a bulb-scale of Urginea 
 
 maritima (x200) ' 
 
114 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [26. 
 
 nitrogenous substances such as asparagin. It very commonly is 
 rich in sugar ; either grape-sugar (C 6 H 12 6 ), as in the grape and 
 other fruits, and in fact most parts of plants at particular times ; 
 or cane-sugar (C 12 H 22 U ) as in the Sugar-cane, the Maple, and the 
 Beetroot. In some plants (e.g. Jerusalem Artichoke, Dahlia, Globe 
 Artichoke) the cell-sap is rich in inuliii, a substance having the 
 same percentage composition as starch (represented by formula 
 C 6 H 10 5 ) : when a portion of tissue, of one of these plants, such as 
 a piece of the tuberous root of the Dahlia, is kept in spirit, the 
 
 iriulin slowly precipitates in 
 the form of sphserocrystals 
 (Fig. 73) adhering to the walls. 
 The cell-sap also very fre- 
 quently holds colouring-mat- 
 ters in solution ; for instance, 
 the colouring-matters of most 
 red and blue flowers (erythro- 
 phyll and anthocyanin) ; of 
 many fruits, such as the 
 Cherry and Elderberry; of 
 "copper leaves," such as those 
 of Copper Beech and Hazel, 
 and of the Beet-root. 
 
 26. Cell-Formation. 
 The formation of a cell is ne- 
 cessarily dependent upon a 
 
 pre-existing cell ; the direct 
 
 "Y development of a cell from the 
 
 necessary chemical substances 
 that is, spontaneous genera- 
 tion has not yet been ob- 
 served. Moreover, it can only 
 take place when the protoplasm concerned is in the embryonic con- 
 dition; as, for instance, in growing-points, germinating spores, etc. 
 Cell-formation consists essentially in the reorganisation of the 
 protoplasmic unit (energid, p. 90) or units in which it occurs ; it 
 may take place about one centre, or, more frequently, about two or 
 more centres, with consequent multiplication of cells. Hence, cell- 
 formation does not necessarily involve a multiplication of cells, 
 still less a formation of cell-walls j it necessarily involves the 
 formation of a new cell. 
 
 FIG. '&. Sphaerocrystals of inulin in the 
 tissue of the tuberous root of Dahlia varidbilis 
 after prolonged action of alcohol. (After 
 Strasburger : x 240.) 
 
26.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 115 
 
 The following two modes of cell- formation may be distin- 
 guished : 
 
 1. Cell- formation without division of the cytoplasm. 
 
 2. Cell-formation with, division of the cytoplasm. 
 
 1. Cell-formation without division. This process does not lead to 
 the multiplication of cells, but merely to the development of a new 
 cell. Two cases are distinguishable : (a) that in which the new 
 cell is formed from a single cell, that is, direct cell-formation ; (6) 
 that in which the new cell is formed by the fusion of the cyto- 
 plasm of two cells, that is, cell-formation by conjugation. 
 
 (a) In direct cell-formation without division, the cytoplasm 
 simply undergoes reorganisation and enters upon a new individu- 
 ality. It is confined to the development 
 of reproductive cells ; such as zoogonidia 
 and spores, the spermatozoids of the 
 higher Cryptogams, and oospheres in 
 many cases. This particular case of cell- 
 formation is sometimes termed rejuven- 
 escence. 
 
 A good illustration of this is afforded by the 
 development of the zoogonidium of (Edogoniuin. 
 The cytoplasmic contents of an ordinary cell of 
 the filament become more abundant ; the kino- 
 plasm (see p. 95), with tbe nucleus and centre- 
 sphere, travels to one side of the cytoplasm, ap- 
 pearing at tbe surface as a hyaline, colourless 
 area ; tbe cytoplasm begins to contract away 
 from the wall (Fig. 74 A, lower cell), and secretes 
 a delicate cell-wall of its own ; tbe cilia are de- 
 veloped in a circlet from tbe margin of tbe kino- 
 plasrnic area. Tbe cell-wall is ruptured (as at Z), 
 aud the zoogonidium, lying loosely in its own 
 proper cell-wall, as in a vesicle, is extruded into 
 the water. It now begins to move inside tbe 
 vesicle by tbe action of its cilia ; the vesicle becomes disorganised, and the 
 zoogonidium is set free. It swims by means of its cilia (Fig. 74 B) with the 
 colourless end in front ; so that what was the transverse axis of the mother-cell 
 lias now become the longitudinal axis of tbe zoogonidium, an indication of the 
 complete reorganisation which bas tken place. After a short period of move- 
 ment, tbe zoogonidium comes to rest, attaches itself to some solid body by its 
 byaline end, withdraws its cilia, and secretes a cell- wall (Fig. 74 C). 
 
 The plants in wbicb there are highly differentiated spermatozoids, each de- 
 veloped singly in a mother-cell, are the Characeffi (Algffi), the Bryophyta, and 
 the Pteridophyta. In all these plants tbe development of the spermatozoid pro- 
 
 FIG. 74. Rejuvenescence as 
 exhibited in the formation of 
 the zoogonidium of GEdogonium. 
 A portion of a filament ; in the 
 lower cell the protoplasm is be- 
 ginning to contract, in the upper 
 the young zoogonidium is escap- 
 ing (Z). B a zoogonidium. C 
 the beginning of germination. 
 (x 360). 
 
116 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [26. 
 
 ceeds in essentially the same manner as that of the zoogonidium described 
 above. In the Characese, where the spermatozoid still retains some zoogonidial 
 charactets, the hyaline pointed anterior portion, bearing a pair of cilia, is de- 
 veloped from the kinoplasm ; the thick posterior portion, which is highly granu- 
 lar, is developed from the nutritive hyaloplasm of the cell ; the nucleus lies 
 centrally at the junction of the two portions. In the Bryophyta and in the 
 Pteridophyta the spermatozoid consists simply of kinoplasm with a nucleus ; it 
 contains no nutritive cyto-hyaloplasm, and so differs essentially from a zoogon- 
 idium. In these two groups of plants the mature spermatozoid consists of an 
 anterior kinoplasmic portion bearing the cilia, and a posterior portion consisting 
 
 of the elongated and 
 curved nucleus invested by 
 a thin layer of kinoplasm. 
 In the Pteridophyta the 
 posterior nuc'ear portion 
 of the spermatozoid more 
 or less completely sur- 
 rounds a mass of nutritive 
 cyto-hyaloplasm which re- 
 mains attached to the 
 ppermatozoid in the form 
 of a vesicle for a short 
 time after extrusion from 
 the antheridium, becoming 
 eventually disorganised. 
 
 The non-motile male 
 cell (spermatium) of the 
 Red Algae is developed 
 singly in a mother-cell, 
 and appears to consist 
 merely of a small mass of 
 kinoplasm with a nucleus. 
 Oospheres are, as a rule, 
 developed singly in the 
 female organ, though 
 there are some exceptions 
 (see p. 82) : their develop- 
 ment has not yet been so 
 minutely studied as has 
 simplest case, as in the 
 
 FIG. 75. Development of the ccenocytic zoogonidinm of 
 Vaucheria sessilis. A-E Stages in the development of 
 the zoogonidium within the gonidangium (x 95); Fa 
 free zoogonidium (x 206) ; Gf a portion of F more highly 
 magnified (x 450) showing the hyaline superficial layer 
 bearing the pairs of cilia, with a nucleus opposite the 
 point of origin of each pair. (After Strasburger.) 
 
 that of zoogonidia and spermatozoids. In the 
 oogonium of (Edogonium, the cytoplasmic contents of the oogonium con- 
 tract away from the cell-wail and round themselves into a spherical form ; 
 at one side a colourless hyaline area is differentiated, the receptive spot, the 
 rest of the oosphere containing chloroplastids, etc. This hyaline receptive 
 spot corresponds to that in the zoogonidium of the same plant, as also to the 
 hyaline anterior portion of the spermatozoids already described ; it is doubtless 
 developed in the same way, and consists of kinoplasm. At this stage the 
 oogonium opens by the rupture of the cell-wall, and a portion of the hyaline 
 
26.] CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 117 
 
 substance (presumably kinoplasm) of the receptive spot is ejected into the 
 water; the oosphere is now ready for fertilisation. In the archegonium of 
 Bryopbyta, Pteridopbyta, and most Gymnosperms, the " central cell " under- 
 goes division into two ; a smaller cell, the ventral canal-cell, next the neck of 
 the archegonium ; and a larger lower cell which rounds itself off and con- 
 stitutes the oosphere. 
 
 This process of cell-formation is closely followed in some ccenocytic plants. 
 Thus the zoogonidia.of Vaucheria are developed in essentially the same manner 
 as those of CEdogonium, the differences being those which are necessarily in- 
 volved by the fact that the one is developed from a cell, and the other from a 
 coanocyte. In Vaucberia, the many nuclei travel, with the kinoplasm, to the 
 periphery of the developing zoogonidium ; the kinoplasm, instead of a lirr-ited 
 area as in OEdogonium, forms a layer over the whole surface in which lie the 
 numerous nuclei, and from which many pairs of cilia are developed, a pair 
 opposite each nucleus (Fig. 75). 
 
 The development of tbe oosphere' in Vaucheria resembles in its main feature* 
 that described for CEdogonium ; but here the mass of protoplasm encloses many 
 nuclei at first, though it appears that there is but one nucleus in the mature 
 oosphere, which has awell-defined receptive spot. In Peronospora likewise,, 
 where it is formed from a part only of the protoplasm, tbe single oosphere con- 
 tains, at first, many nuclei, but only one when mature. The reduction in th 
 number of the nuclei in these cases appears to be brought about by fusion. 
 
 In the foregoing cases of cell -formation with the development 
 of a single new cell, the cell formed is a primordial cell destitute 
 of a cell-wall, at least, for a time. In other cases the cells sur- 
 round themselves at an early stage with a proper wall of their 
 own : this takes place in connection with the development of the 
 spores in the Bryophyta, Pteridophyta, and Phanerogams, 
 
 In illustration of this mode of cell-formation, a brief general account of the 
 development of spores in the higher plants may be given. The- mother-cells of 
 the spores undergo division in a manner described under the head of cell-divi- 
 sion (p. 125), so as to give rise to four special mother-cells,, lying either all in one 
 plane (e.g., some Pteridophyta, Monocotyledons), or arranged tetrahedrally in a 
 pyramid (some Bryophyta and Pteridophyta, most Gymnosperms, Dicotyledons). 
 In each of these special mother-cells a single spore (resp. pollen-grain) is de- 
 veloped. The ectoplasmic layer of the cytoplasm becomes converted into a 
 membrane, the exine (or exospore), which, though at first consisting of cellulose, 
 becomes eventually cuticularised, and acquires a more or less elaborate struc- 
 ture. In a few cases this is the only coat of the spore ; but, as a rule, a second 
 membrane, the inline (or endospore), is eventually formed internally to the 
 exiue, from the ectoplasmic layer of the cytoplasm : it consists always of cellu- 
 lose. The walls of the special mother-cells become disorganised, and the spores 
 are set free. 
 
 The development of the proper coats of the spores, as also their subsequent 
 growth in surface and in thickness, is effected solely by means of the cytoplasm 
 
118 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [26. 
 
 of the spore. In some cases, however (e.g. Hydropteridese), a coat, termed 
 perinium, is formed round the spore, externally to its proper coats, not from its 
 own cytoplasm, but from cytoplasm in the sporangium derived from the cells 
 of the disintegrated tapetal layer. 
 
 (b) Cell- formation by Conjugation takes place solely in connection 
 with the sexual process. The fusion of vegetative cells is not un- 
 common, but it does not lead to the formation of a single cell, 
 but of a syncyte (p. 91). In the sexual process, however, two 
 gametes, whether externally alike, as in isogamous plants, or 
 externally dissimilar, as in heterogamous plants, fuse together, 
 cytoplasm with cytoplasm, centrosphere with centrosphere, nucleus 
 with nucleus, completely losing their individuality, and constitute 
 a single new cell, a zygospore or an oospore, which is the starting 
 point for the development of a new organism. 
 
 Fro. 76. Conjugation in Spirogyra (x400). At A two cells of adjacent filaments are 
 about to conjugate, and are putting out protuberances (a) towards each other : cl chromato- 
 phore ; Tc nucleus. At B the gamete p of the one cell is passing over and fusing with that 
 of the other (p). At C the process of conjugation is completed, the zygospore Z being the 
 product. 
 
 It will have been observed, from the preceding instances, that cell-formation 
 is frequently preceded by nuclear fusion. This is so in cell-formation by conjuga- 
 tion ; and in many cases of cell-formation from a coenocyte (e.g. development of 
 endosperm in the embryo-sac of some Angiosperms; development of the oosphere 
 in incompletely septate plants, such as Vaucheria, Peronospora, Pythium). 
 
 2. Cell- Formation with Cell-Division. Since in all cases, with 
 possibly occasional exceptions in coenocytes, this mode of cell- 
 formation is preceded by indirect or mitotic nuclear division, the 
 consideration of it may be preceded by an account of this form of 
 nuclear division. 
 
 Indirect or Mitotic Division of the Nucleus. The indirect division of the 
 nucleus presents a series of remarkable phenomena which are collectively de- 
 signated by the term karyokiiiesis. Beginning with the nucleus in the resting- 
 
26.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 119 
 
 state (see p. 95), the first fact indicating the imminence of nuclear division is 
 that the two centrospheres separate and take up positions on opposite sides of 
 the nucleus, thus indicating the plane in which the nuclear division is to take 
 place, viz., at right angles to a straight line joining the centrospheres: the 
 change of position of the centrospheres is doubtless effected by the kinoplasm 
 in which they lie. Changes are now perceptible in the nucleus itself. The 
 fibrillar network contracts and becomes more dense, and breaks up into distinct 
 fibrils (chromosomes) consisting now of broad discs of chromatin with narrower 
 intervening discs of linin : the tangle of the somewhat V-shaped fibrils becomes 
 looser as they separate and move towards the surface of the nucleus. At this 
 stage the so-called nuclear membrane loses its definiteness, the kinoplasm 
 entering the nucleus without, however, displacing the proper ground-substance 
 of the nucleus. The kinoplasm. forms a number of threads, extending from one 
 centrosphere to the other, constituting the kinoplasmic spindle, of which the 
 centrospheres are the two poles (Fig. 77). Along these threads the fibrils move 
 till they reach the equatorial plane 
 
 of the spindle, where they con- C 
 
 stitute the nuclear disc, and are so 
 placed that their free ends point 
 to either one pole or the other. 
 Whilst these changes have been 
 going on, the nucleoli have dis- 
 appeared, being diffused in the 
 nuclear ground-substance, which 
 can, in consequence, be stained at 
 this stage. The fibrils now undergo 
 longitudinal splitting into two, and 
 then the nuclear disc separates 
 into two halves, in such a way that 
 one of each pair of fibrils produced 
 by the splitting of each primary 
 fibril goes to each half. The fibrils 
 constituting each half of the nu- 
 clear disc now move towards the 
 corresponding pole along the spindle-threads, changing their postion as they go, 
 so that when they reach the pole their free ends point towards the equatorial 
 plane (Fig. 78/). On reaching the pole, each group of fibrils constitutes a new 
 nucleus ; it becomes invested by a membrane, nucleoli reappear, and the fibrils 
 resume the form and structure of the resting nucleus. The two nuclei are now 
 completely formed, and are still connected by kinoplasmic spindle- threads. If 
 no cell-division is immediately to take place, no further change occurs beyond 
 the disappearance of the threads. 
 
 Two modes of cell-formation with division may be conveniently 
 distinguished. In the one, often distinguished as free cell-for- 
 mation, several cells are formed simultaneously in the cavity of a 
 parent cell (or coenocyte) ; in the other, designated simply cell' 
 division, only two cells are, as a rule, formed as the result of the 
 
 Fro. 77. Germinating pollen-grain of Lilium 
 Martagon with a dividing nucleus: the kino- 
 plasmic spindle is formed with a centrosphere 
 (c) at each pole; n is the nuclear disc forme;! 
 by the chromosomes. (After Guignard : x 750.) 
 
120 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 26. 
 
 FIG. 78. Frltillaria persica ( x 800 : after Strasburger). Division of a mother-cell of the 
 pollen: a contraction of the fibrillar network: c kinoplasmic spindle with equatorial 
 nuclear disc seen in profile ; b and d nuclear disc seen from tbe pole, in b the fibrils are 
 splitting longitudinally; e division of the nuclear disc into two; / separation of the two 
 halves of the nuclear disc; g two nuclei still connected by spindle-threads, in which the 
 cell-plate is forming ; h-vn division of the daughter-cells ; h and i, breaking up of the net- 
 work and formation of kinoplasmic spindle; fc spindle, in profile in the right, from the pleo 
 in the left; I separation of the segments, in profile in the right, from pole in the left; 
 in nuclei with connecting threads and cell-plates. 
 
26.] CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 121 
 
 partition of the parent cell. A further, though not absolute, 
 distinction is, that in the latter mode each nuclear division is 
 immediately followed by a corresponding cell-division, whereas 
 in the former, no cell-division takes place until all the (or very 
 many) nuclear divisions have been completed. Finally, when the 
 cell-formation is accompanied, as it frequently is, by the develop- 
 ment of a cell- wall, the cell- wall formed in connexion with simple 
 cell-division is merely a septum in* the plane of division, that is, a 
 wall which abuts upon the side- walls of the parent cell, whereas 
 in free cell-formation walls are formed all round the new cells. 
 
 (a) Free cell- formation may take place either in a cell or in 
 a coenocyte. In the former case it is preceded by successive 
 indirect nuclear divisions the cell becoming, in fact, a coenocyte 
 for the time being until the requisite number of nuclei are 
 formed ; in the latter case nuclear divis-ion may or may not be 
 necessary. 
 
 The product of this- process of cell-formation is either, as com- 
 monly happens, a number of free cells r with or- without proper 
 cell- walls ; or, a cellular tissue. 
 
 The formation of isolated celts occurs only in connexion with 
 the development of reproductive cells and only in certain plants : 
 e.g. the zoogonidia and gametes of ccenocytic isogamous Algae, 
 such as some Confervoideae and Siphonaceae, and the Hydrodictyeae; 
 the spermatozoids and oospheres of the coenocytic but heterogamous 
 Sphaeroplea; the zoogonidia of frhe Phaeosporeae, and the sperma- 
 tozoids of the Fucaeeae, among cellular Algae ; among Fungi, the 
 spores and gonidia of the Muorinae r the zoogonidia and oospheres 
 of the Saprolegniacew (Fig. 79), the ascospores- of the Ascomycetes 
 (Fig. 80) ; in the Phanerogams, the egg-apparatus of Angiosperms, 
 and the embryo-sporophyte of Ephedra. 
 
 In this case the process of cell-formation is simple ; the proto- 
 plasm, under the influence of the kinoplasm*, segregates round 
 the individual nuclei, constituting distinct cells which may or 
 may not develope proper walls ; the development of the walls (if 
 present) takes place in the manner already described (p. 117). 
 
 The development of a tissue by free cell-formation is not com- 
 mon ; it occurs in the development of the endosperm of the 
 Phanerogams, in that of the female prothallium of Isoetes, and 
 in that of the embryo-sporophyte of Ginkgo and of the Cycads 
 (p. 15). Here, after the formation by division of the requisite 
 number of nuclei, the cytoplasm becomes marked out into units 
 
122 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 26. 
 
 (energids), one to each nucleus, and then cell-walls are formed 
 along the lines of demarcation, constituting the units into cells ; 
 when, as is frequently the case, the cytoplasm of the mother- cell 
 is simply a parietal layer, the developing cells secrete a cell-wall 
 over their free surface, as well as the intermediate septa. In 
 
 FIG. 79. Gonidanginm of an Achlya. 
 A Still closed. B Allowing the zoo- 
 gonidia to escape, beneath it a lateral 
 branch c; a the /oogonidia just es- 
 caped; b the abandoned membranes 
 of the zoogonidia which have already 
 swarmed : e swarming zoogonidia. 
 (After Sachs : x 550.) 
 
 Fio. 80. Cell-formation in the asci of Peziza 
 convexula. af Successive steps in the develop- 
 ment of the asci and spores. (After Sachs: 
 x 550.) 
 
 rare cases (e.g. endosperm of Corydalis cava), the cell-walls enclose 
 several energids constituting coeriocytes, but eventually each 
 coanocyte becomes a cell by the fusion of the nuclei (see pp. 90, 118). 
 
 A somewhat similar process of tissue-formation occurs in the Hydrodictyese ; 
 
2 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 123 
 
 but here the cells are at first free zoogonidia without any cell-wall, which 
 subsequently aggregate together so as to form the body of the plant, and 
 secrete cell-walls (see pp. 15, 92). 
 
 A case which closely connects the foregoing with the typical 
 form of cell-division is that offered by the development of the 
 pollen-grains of Dicotyledons and Conifers, and of the spores of 
 Pteridophyta and Bryophyta in general. Here (Fig. 78) the nuclear 
 divisions are limited to the first generation ; the nucleus of the 
 mother-cell divides into two, and each of those again into two, 
 so that four nuclei are produced. The protoplasm around these 
 is marked out into corresponding areas by lines, along which 
 cell-walls are formed, which meet in the middle, and abut extern- 
 ally on the wall of the mother- cell ; in this way four special 
 mother-cells are formed, in each of which a spore is developed 
 (see p. 125). 
 
 The marking out of the * 
 
 protoplasm into units in 
 the process of free cell- 
 formation is effected by the 
 kinoplasm. As the nuclei 
 lie free in the protoplasm, 
 connecting threads of kino- 
 plasm are formed between 
 them or rather between 
 the centrospheres adjacent 
 to the nuclei each of 
 which becomes somewhat 
 thickened in the middle 
 line, the thickenings coming into lateral contact thus forming a 
 cell-plate (Fig. 81 B), which marks the limits of the future cells. 
 When free cells are to be produced, the cell-plates mark the 
 planes of separation ; when a tissue is to be produced, the cell- 
 plates both mark the position in which, and supply the material 
 out of which, the septa are formed. 
 
 (6) Cell-division may give rise to free cells, though more com- 
 monly it gives rise to a tissue ; in either case, it consists essenti- 
 ally in the bipartition of the cytoplasm, once or repeatedly ; septa 
 may or may not be formed, and their formation follows on the 
 division of the cytoplasm. 
 
 The development of free primordial cells by cell-division is 
 confined to the reproductive cells of certain of the lower plants; 
 
 FIG. 81. JTellelorusfcetidus (after S trasburger : 
 x 540). Qnadripartitionof mother-cell of pollen ; 
 in B the connecting threads and cell-plates are 
 shown ; in A the walls have been formed. Only 
 three are visible, the fourth not being in focus; 
 the mode of development is tetrahedral. 
 
124 
 
 PART IT. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [26. 
 
 for instance, the zoogonidia and gametes of some isogamous 
 Volvocaceae (e.g. Pandorina), and Confervoidea3 (e.g. Ulothrix), 
 the spermatozoids of Volvox, the oospheres of Fucns. The pro- 
 cess is a simple one, consisting in the indirect division of the 
 nucleus, followed by a corresponding division of the cytoplasm, 
 no septum being formed. Commonly this process occurs but 
 once, two cells being formed in the mother-cell ; or it may be 
 
 FIG. 82. Cell-division m> etaminal 1 hair of Tradescantia vvrginica (x 540: after Stras- 
 burger). 1-6 Mitotic division of nucleus; 7-11 development of the septum in the kino- 
 plasmic spindle. 
 
 repeated twice, giving rise to four cells ; or thrice, giving rise 
 to eight cells (e.g. oospheres of Fucus) ; or many times, giving 
 rise to a large number of cells (e.g. spermatozoids of Volvox). 
 
 The typical case of cell-division is that which is attended by 
 the formation of septa, resulting in the development of cells 
 which remain coherent to form a tissue. The process begins with 
 indirect division of the nucleus (Fig. 82, 1-6) ; when this is com- 
 
26.] 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 125 
 
 pleted, a cell-plate is formed in the kinoplasraic spindle, and in 
 and from this a septum of cellulose is formed (Fig. 82, 7-11). 
 If the spindle is not wide enough to reach quite across the cell, 
 it is extended laterally by the formation of new connecting-threads, 
 until the septum is attached to both lateral walls. Thus the 
 walls of the new cells are, for the most part, those of the parent 
 cell, the septum being the only new formation. It is a universal 
 law that the plane in which the septum is formed is perpendicular 
 to that of the wall at any point of eoritaot. 
 
 Variations of this mode of cell-formation occur in isolated cells, and in cells 
 forming part of a free surface. In some cases (e.g. branching of Moss-proto- 
 nema) the mother-cell throws out 
 a lateral protuberance, and a wall 
 
 is formed at the junction of the /. /;/.;-.. ../ 
 
 two. In other cases, as in the V ..'\%V"'^-~-*vr;-:-:;''\"!^j-*: ..:!' 
 
 development of the spores of 
 many Fungi, and in the multipli- 
 cation of Yeast-cells, the lateral 
 protuberance expands inti> a 
 rounded body, the neck of com- 
 munication with the mother-cell 
 remaining narrow. Eventually 
 a cell-wall is foimed across the 
 narrow neck, and the cells sepa- 
 rate from each other. This mode 
 of cell-formation is known as 
 gemmation or abstraction. 
 
 Closely connected with 
 the division into two, which 
 is characteristic of cell- 
 formation in the vegetative 
 parts of plants, is the divi- 
 
 tt 71 
 
 FIG. S3. Early stage of cell-division in a young 
 endosperm-cell of Fritillaria imperialis (diagram- 
 matic ; after Strasburger : x 1000) . n n Two recently 
 formed nuclei with connecting threads between 
 them; the threads show median thickenings 
 which will constitute the cell-plate cp ; p cytoplasm. 
 
 sion of the mother-cell into 
 four, which is characteristic 
 of the development of the 
 spores in the higher plants 
 (spores of Bryophyta, Pteridophyta, and pollen-grains of Phanero- 
 gams ; see pp. 117, 123) ; in these cases the division of the mother- 
 cell may take place in either of the two following ways : 
 
 1. Each nuclear division is followed by cell-division with the 
 formation of a septum (Fig. 84 A ; also Fig. 78) ; hence the 
 process of the development of the four special mother-cells is one 
 of successive cell- division, the mother-cell being first of all divided 
 
126 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [26. 
 
 into two, and then each of the two daughter- eel Is is similarly 
 divided into two ; this is characteristic of the development of the 
 microspores of Isoetes, and of the pollen-grains of most Monocoty- 
 ledons. 
 
 2. The nucleus of the mother-cell divides into two, and both 
 these again divide into two before any cell-division occurs ; kino- 
 plasmic spindles are formed between the four nuclei (see Fig. 81) 
 in which cell-plates and eventually septa are formed simul- 
 taneously in the cell-plates, and thus the four special mother- 
 cells are formed, in each of which a spore is developed (p. 117). 
 
 Fio., 8*. Division into four of spore-moth er-ceHs of Ferns. A Schizaea; B Pellcea 
 rotundifolia. I. II. III. successive stages; fc nucleus; j> cell-plate; s spore; ss' spore 
 lying behind the others; 711 wall of mother-cell; w septa formed in connexion with the 
 divisions (x 300). A Shows successive division ; B simultaneous division. 
 
 The relative directions of the planes of division necessarily affect the arrange- 
 ment and form of the spores. Thus, when in (1) the divisions of the two 
 daughter-cells, or when in (2) the divisions of the two secondary nuclei, take 
 place in one plane, the four resulting spores lie in one plane, and have a rounded 
 form. Such spores are said to be bilateral ; they occur iii the Cycads and 
 most Monocotyledons (pollen-grains), in Schizoea (Fig. 84 A III.), and some 
 other Ferns. On the other hand, when in (1) the divisions of the two daughter- 
 cells, or when in (2) the divisions of the two secondary nuclei take place in 
 two planes at right angles to each other, the four resulting spores do not lie 
 in one plane, but are arranged in a pyramid, each spore having the form of a 
 trilateral pyramid with a spherical base. Such spores are said to be tetrahedral, 
 or radial ; they occur generally in Dicotyledons (pollen-grains, Fig. 81), in some 
 erns (Fig. 84 B) and in Equisetum. In (2) when the four secondary nuclei all 
 lie in one plane four spindles are formsd, each nucleus beiug thus connected 
 with the two adjacent nuclei ; but when the nuclei are arranged pyramidally, 
 six spindles are formed, each nucleus being thus connected with the three 
 others. 
 
 In some plants the spores are developed sometimes in the one way and 
 sometimes in the other; this is the case in the Liverworts and the Mosses; 
 
26.] 
 
 Qiiinntrsf. "HV 
 
 CHAPTER I. THE CELL. 
 
 127 
 
 amongst Ferns, whereas in the Hymenophyllaceae and Cyatheacese only tetra- 
 hedral spores have been observed, the occurrence of tetrahedral or of bilateral 
 spores varies from genus to genus in the Polypodiacere, Schizseacece, and 
 Gleicheniaceae ; in the Marattiaceae and in Ophioglossum both tetrahedral and 
 bilateral spores may be developed in the same sporangium ; this last condition 
 also obtains in Psilotum and in species of Lycopodium ; both modes of 
 development have been observed in the pollen-grains of Allium Holy among 
 Monocotyledons and also in some Dicotyledons (Fig. 85). 
 
 The division of the cytoplasm of the spore-mother-cells is fre- 
 quently accompanied by a considerable ingrowth of the wall of 
 the cell, so that the cytoplasm becomes lobed (Fig. 85) ; the septa 
 subsequently formed in the cell-plates become attached to these 
 ingrowths. In some cases of cell-division the whole septum is 
 formed as an annular in- 
 growth (e.g. Spirogyra). 
 This is also the case in in- 
 completely septate plants 
 (e.g. Cladophora, etc.), 
 where the development of 
 the septa has no relation 
 whatever to nuclear divi- 
 sion. 
 
 In incompletely septate 
 plants the process of pro- 
 toplasmic division and the 
 development of septa goes 
 on quite independently of 
 the nucleus. This is so 
 to some extent in certain 
 cases of spore-formation, 
 viz. in the development of 
 the spores of Anthoceros 
 and of the macrospores of Isoetes, where the division begins in 
 the cytoplasm, the division of the nucleus taking place last of all ; 
 whereas, as has been already shown, the rule in completely septate 
 plants is that the division of the nucleus precedes the division of 
 the cytoplasm. 
 
 PIG. 85. (After Sachs). Development of pollen- 
 grains of Althaea rosea. A the four nuclei have 
 been formed; D the cytoplasm is becoming lobed 
 by the ingrowths formed on the wall of the mother- 
 cell ; E four special mother-cells formed by the 
 development of septa connected with the lateral 
 ingrowths. In A D E the grains are developed in 
 one plane ; B is a case of pyramidal arrangement. 
 
128 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STKUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [27. 
 
 CHAPTER II. 
 
 THE TISSUES. 
 
 27. The Connexion of the Cells. As already explained 
 (p. 121), in the development of a tissue, whether by free cell-for- 
 mation or by cell- division, septa are formed, that is, walls which 
 are common to .contiguous cells ; these are very thin at first, and 
 appear under the highest magnifying power as a simple plate. 
 As the walls increase in thickness (see p. 103) and acquire a 
 more or less distinctly stratified structure, as seen in transverse 
 
 section, the net- work of primary 
 septa stands out from the thickening 
 layers proper to each cell (Fig. 87). 
 The primary septum between any 
 two -cells is now distinguished as the 
 middle lamella (sometimes also termed 
 intercellular substance)-, it attains acon- 
 siderable bulk at points where several 
 septa meet at an angle (Fig. 88). Its 
 chemical composition essentially re- 
 sembles that of the tissue in which it 
 is examined. In a tissue where the 
 thickened cell- walls consist of cellu- 
 lose, the middle lamella simply con- 
 sists of a denser, more resistent form 
 of cellulose; in lignified, cuticnlarised, 
 or mucilaginous tissue, the middle 
 lamella presents the chemical charac- 
 teristics of the tissue in the highest 
 degree, since it is more completely 
 modified chemically than the rest of 
 the cell- wall ; or, in other words, since 
 it contains less residual cellulose than the other layers of the wall, 
 whether they be lignified, cuticularised, or mucilaginous, as the 
 case may be. 
 
 When, as is generally the case, the cells of the tissue have 
 pitted walls, the pits of any one cell are exactly opposite those of 
 the cells contiguous to it (Fig. 87), and are closed by the middle 
 lamella which is, however, penetrated by the protoplasmic fibrils 
 connecting the energids of the respective cells (see Fig. 45, p. 91). 
 
 FIG. 86. Formation of tissue by 
 cell-division in the cortex of the 
 growing stem of Vicia Faba (x 300). 
 a a The delicate septa have just 
 been formed ; fc nucleus. 
 
27.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 129 
 
 m 
 
 In most cases the closing-membrane between two opposite pits 
 persists (Fig. 87) ; always whilst the contiguous cells contain pro- 
 toplasm, less frequently when these 
 cells eventually lose their proto- 
 plasm. A good example of the 
 latter case is afforded by the vas- 
 cular cells of the wood (tracheids) 
 of Conifers. Here the pits are bor- 
 dered (see p. 104), and are closed 
 by a membrane (Fig. 88 C) which 
 is somewhat thickened in the mid- 
 dle, the thickened area being called 
 the torus, and is either situate in 
 the middle line between the two 
 pits (Fig. 88 (7) or is forced to one 
 side (B). 
 
 On the other hand it is com- 
 monly the case that the thin pit- 
 membrane undergoes absorption, 
 so that the cavities of the adjacent cells become continuous, and 
 in some cases the entire septum may be absorbed ; in either case 
 
 -Tit 
 
 FIG. 87. Transverse section of the 
 cortical cells of Trichomanes speciosum 
 (x 500). Middle lamella (m) ; ii the 
 secondary layers of the cell-wall ad- 
 joining the middle lamella; I coll- 
 cavity ; t bordered pits which are oppo- 
 site in adjoining cells, but are closed 
 by the middle lamella. 
 
 FIG. 88. Pinus sylvestris ( x 540: after Strasburger). A surf ace- view of a bordered pit; 
 J? bordered pit as seen in a longitudinal tangential section of the wood ; t the torus of the 
 closing-membrane which is thrust to one side of the pit-cavity ; C transverse section of a 
 tracheid showing bordered pits with closing-membranes; TO middle lamella; i secondary 
 layers of cell-wall ; m* thickened middle lamella at the junction of several septa. 
 
 the result is a syncyte (p. 91), of which the most familiar examples 
 are the wood -vessels of many plants, where the transverse septa 
 of a longitudinal scries of cells are more or less completed ab- 
 sorbed, giving rise to a tube ; but the absorption of the wall may 
 
 v. s. B. K 
 
130 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 
 
 take place in any plane, as in the development of the anasto- 
 mosing net-work of laticiferous vessels in many plants (e.g. Com- 
 posite, etc.; see p. 141). 
 
 28. Intercellular Spaces are lacunas between the cells of a 
 tissue. They are formed in two ways : either schizogenously, by 
 splitting of the common wall of contiguous cells ; or lysigenously, 
 by the disorganisation of certain cells. They contain either air or 
 certain peculiar substances. 
 
 The intercellular spaces formed schizogenously and containing 
 air, commonly occur in parenchymatous tissue at the angles of 
 junction of a number of cells. The cells of such a tissue, when 
 young, are angular and are in complete mutual contact at all 
 
 points of their sur- 
 face (see Fig. 86) : 
 but towards the 
 close of their growth 
 they tend to assume 
 a more rounded 
 form, with the result 
 that the common 
 cell- walls split at 
 the angles, and thus 
 a system of inter- 
 cellular spaces is 
 formed (Fig. 89). 
 It is a remarkable 
 fact that such inter- 
 cellular spaces as these are exclusively confined to the sporophyte 
 of the higher plants (Bryophyta and upwards). Sometimes these 
 spaces then called air-chambers attain a considerable size, so 
 that portions of tissue are widely separated from each other, as 
 in the petioles of the Water-lily and in other aquatic plants. 
 
 The large air-cavities in the stems and leaves of Juncus and 
 other allied plants are produced lysigenously by the drying-up and 
 rupture of considerable masses of cells ; this is true also of the 
 cavities extending through whole internodes of many herbaceous 
 stems (e.g. Grasses, Umbelliferse, Equisetum), as also of those 
 occurring in leaves (e.g. Leek). 
 
 The intercellular spaces which contain certain peculiar sub- 
 stances are treated of under the head of Glandular Tissue (p. 137). 
 
 FIG. 89. Intercellular ppaces (2) between cells from the 
 stem of Zea Mais ( x 650) ; gw, the common wall. (After 
 Sachs.) 
 
29.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 131 
 
 29. Forms of Tissue. According to the form and arrange- 
 ment of the constituent cells, the thickness and chemical compo- 
 sition of their walls, the nature of their contents, etc., it is possible 
 to classify the forms of tissue in various ways. 
 
 Taking, first, the capacity for growth and cell-formation, 
 embryonic tissue or meriskem is distinguishable from adult or 
 permanent tissue. The former consists of cells (e.g. in the growing- 
 point of a cellular plant) which grow and divide; whereas the 
 latter consists of cells which have ceased to grow and divide, 
 having attained their definitive form and size; and whilst meristem 
 consists entirely of true cells, permanent tissue may consist wholly 
 or in part of cells which have lost their cytoplasm. 
 
 Taking, next, the form of the individual cells and the mode of 
 combination into a tissue which their 
 form determines, two forms of tissue 
 termed parenchyma and prosenchyma are 
 distinguished. In parenchymatous tis- 
 sue there is no great difference in the 
 three axes of the somewhat cubical cell, 
 and the cells are in contact by broad 
 flat surfaces (Figs. 86, 89). In prosen- 
 chymatous tissue, on the other hand, 
 (Figs. 90, 92), the cells are much longer 
 than they are broad, having pointed 
 ends which overlap and dovetail in 
 between those of other cells of the 
 tissue. 
 
 By combining the distinctive characters which have just been 
 mentioned, with others which relate to the nature of the cell- 
 contents and to the constitution of the cell- wall and are intimately 
 connected with the functions of the cells, the following forms of 
 permanent tissue may be distinguished : 
 
 1. Thin-walled parencJiymatous tissue consists of cells having 
 cell-walls of cellulose. So long as the cells are functionally active 
 they contain cytoplasm ; they may eventually lose their cell-con- 
 tents and become dry and filled with air (e.g. pith of Elder). This 
 form of tissue is the main seat of the protoplasm in the plant, 
 and it is in the cells of this tissue that the chemical processes 
 connected with nutrition are more particularly carried on. It is 
 especially well-developed in fleshy and succulent parts (e.g. leaves, 
 fruits, tubers, tuberous roots, etc.). 
 
 FIG. 90. Prosenchymatous 
 tissue, longitudinal section (dia- 
 gram, magnified), the pointed 
 ends of the elongated cella fit in 
 between each other. 
 
132 
 
 PART IT. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [29. 
 
 2. Thick-walled parenchymatous tissue. Of this there are two 
 principal forms : (1) that in which the cell-walls are lignified ; 
 (2) that in which they are not lignified but consist of cellulose. 
 The former occurs as wood-parenchyma in the secondary wood, and 
 in the secondary medullary rays, of Dicotyledons. The latter 
 commonly occurs as collenchyma just below the surface of her- 
 baceous parts such as mid-ribs of leaves, petioles, young shoots, 
 etc., and serves to give them firmness (Fig. 91). Both forms of this 
 tissue retain their cytoplasm for a long time after complete differen- 
 tiation. The middle lamella (p. 
 128) of thick-walled parenchyma 
 with cellulose walls, consists of a 
 peculiarly dense form of cellulose. 
 3. Cuticularised tissue consists of 
 cells of various form, generally 
 parenchymatous, the walls of 
 which have undergone more or less 
 complete cuticularisation (see p. 
 106). The most conspicuous ex- 
 amples of this tissue are the epi- 
 dermis, and the periderm ; in the 
 former, the cuticularisation is con- 
 fined almost exclusively to the ex- 
 ternal wall of the cell (Fig. 91), 
 and the cells retain their cyto- 
 plasm ; in the latter, the cuticu- 
 larisation extends over the whole 
 cell- wall, and the cytoplasm is soon 
 lost. In both cases the cuticulari- 
 sation is most marked in the ex- 
 ternal layers of the cell- wall. In 
 cork-colls there is a certain amount of lignification of the walls as 
 well. The middle lamella (p. 128) of cuticularised tissue consists 
 entirely of cutin (or suberin). Whilst cuticularisation generally 
 occurs in the walls of free cells (e g. spores), or of the superficial 
 cells (epidermis, periderm) of a multicellular body, it occurs 
 sometimes in internal tissues (e.g. endodermis). 
 
 4. Sclerenchymatous tissue, or sclerenchyma, consists typically of 
 proscnchymatous cells which lose their cytoplasm relatively early, 
 and then contain only water or air, and are distinguished as fibres-, 
 but in some cases they retain their cytoplasm, and are then dis- 
 
 Fio. 91. Transverse section of part 
 of leaf-stalk of a Begonia (x 550: after 
 Sachs). E Epidermis, the cellsof which 
 have thickened and cuticularised ex- 
 ternal walls; c cuticle. B Collenchy- 
 matous tissue, with walls thickened at 
 the angles v ; the walls of the epidermal 
 cells are similarly thickened where they 
 abut on the collenchyma ; cl individual 
 collenchymatous cells ; tW chloro- 
 plastids; p large thin-walled parenchy- 
 matous cell. 
 
29.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 133 
 
 tinguislied as fibrous cells. The cell- walls are thickened, some- 
 times so much so as almost to obliterate the cavity or lumen (Fig. 
 92) ; they are frequently lignified throughout, or only partially, or 
 not at all (e.g. bast-fibres of Flax and Hemp); they commonly have 
 simple round pits, or oblique and narrow bordered pits (Fig. 94). 
 
 Y 
 
 S 
 
 FIG. 92. Longitudinal section of the cortex of 
 the Oak, showing s short sclerotic cells ;/ fibrous 
 sclerenchyma ; p parenchymatous cells, (x 300.) 
 
 FIG. 93. Isolated sclerotic 
 cell from the leaf of Exostemma 
 (Rubiaceae). (x 300.) 
 
 Sclerenchymatous tissue usually occurs in masses so as to give 
 firmness and rigidity to the various parts in which it is present ; 
 it constitutes, together with the collenchyma, the mechanically 
 supporting-tissue or stereom of the plant. 
 
 Isolated sclerotic cells (without cytoplasm) of irregular form 
 (Fig. 93) are of frequent occurrence (e.g., in the flesh of Pears, in 
 coriaceous leaves as those of Camellia, Hakea, Olea, etc.) : when 
 these cells project freely into air-cavities (e.g. Nymph ceaceaa, Aroids, 
 Limnanthemum, Rhizophora) they are sometimes called internal 
 hairs; short, straight cells occur in the secondary bast and cortex 
 of many trees (Fig. 92). 
 
 In some cases (e.g. Vinca, Nerium, Urtica, Humulus, etc.), the young bast- 
 fibres have been found to 'become coenocytic in consequence of the multiplica- 
 tion of their nuclei by indirect division. In other cases the Sclerenchymatous 
 fibres become septate in consequence of the nuclear divisions being followed by 
 the formation of septa ; such apparently multicellular fibres (not uncommon in 
 the secondary wood of Dicotyledons) are termed chambered fibres. 
 
 5. Tracheal tissue consists of cells which early lose their cyto- 
 plasm; their cell- walls are generally, but not always, lignified, and 
 
134 
 
 I'AKT II. THE INTIMATE STEUCTUEE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [29. 
 
 are either pitted with simple or bordered pits, or have annular, 
 spiral, or reticulate, etc., thickenings (see p. 104) ; when fully 
 developed the tissue contains only either air or water. 
 
 The following varieties of this tissue may be distinguished : 
 a. The tracheids, which are closed, generally prosenchymatous, 
 cells (Fig. 95 A JS), occur characteristically in the wood of certain 
 sporophytes (e.g. most Pteridophyta, Coniferaa) and are then com- 
 pletely lignified ; but they also occur elsewhere, as in the tegu- 
 
 FIG. 94. Sclerenchymatous tissue. A The end of a bast-fibre, with strongly thickened 
 pitted walls (longitudinal section x 300). B Wood-fibres from the root of the Cucumber 
 ( k 300), surface view and section. C Fibres from the stem of Helianthus tuberosus ( x 300). 
 
 mentary tissue (velamen) of the aerial roots of certain Orchids, 
 where they are partially lignified; in certain cells of the anther; 
 and in the leaves and cortical tissue of the stem of Sphagnum 
 (gametophyte) where they are not lignified at all (Fig. 95). 
 
 b. The tracheae are true vessels, that is, articulated tubes, the 
 contiguous cell-cavities having been rendered continuous by the 
 
29.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 135 
 
 complete or partial absorption of the intervening walls (Fig. 95 
 C a) ; the former is more frequently the case when the interven- 
 ing walls are horizontal, the latter 
 when they are oblique ; they 
 occur in the wood of many Phane- 
 rogams. 
 
 Tracheal tissue is the character- 
 istic constituent of the vascular 
 tissue-system to be described sub- 
 sequently ; it is especially adapted 
 for the conduction of water. It 
 should be noted that in all forms 
 of lignified tissues, whether tra- 
 cheal, sclerenchymatous, or paren- 
 chymatous, the middle lamella is 
 the most highly lignified part (p. 
 128) ; it dissolves readily in a 
 mixture of nitric acid and chlorate 
 of potash, thus leading to the iso- 
 lation of the constituent cells. 
 
 When a tracheal cell with a 
 pitted wall abuts upon cells con- 
 taining living protoplasm, it not 
 unf requently happens that the thin 
 pit-membranes begin to bulge, in consequence of the pressure upon 
 them of the contents of the living cells, into the cavity of the 
 tracheal cell, and actually 
 grow (Fig. 96). Cell-di- 
 vision may take place in 
 these ingrowths, so that a 
 mass of cellular tissue is 
 formed in the cavity of 
 the tracheal cell. These 
 ingrowths are termed 
 tyloses ; they are constant- 
 ly to be found in some 
 kinds of wood, (e.g. Ro- 
 binia) and occasionally in 
 many others. 
 
 6. Sieve-Tissue. This 
 tissue consists mainly of long articulated tubes, the contents of 
 
 FIG. 95. Tracheal tissue. A Tracheid 
 from the leaf of Sphagnum. JThe holes 
 in the external wall. B Tracheid from 
 the leaf of Polypodium vulgare. CPart 
 of a trachea with bordered pits from the 
 stem of Helianthus; ic has been cut 
 into at the upper end ; a and 6 the arti- 
 culations, where the absorbed transverse 
 walls existed. 
 
 C 
 
 FIG. 96 (after Weiss) . Portion of wood-vessel of 
 Vitis vinifera, in transverse section, with adjacent 
 cells a b c, one of which has grown into the lumen, 
 of the vessel forming a tylose l>. 
 
136 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 29. 
 
 the contiguous segments communicating by means of the sieve- 
 plates, which usually lie on the transverse walls, either singly, 
 when the transverse wall is horizontal, as generally in herbaceous 
 plants (Figs. 97), or several together, when the transverse wall is 
 oblique, as generally in woody plants (Fig. 98). Each sieve-plate 
 is a thin area of the wall which is perforated by a number of 
 closely placed open pits. The sieve-plate is covered on both sur- 
 faces, and the pits are lined, by a peculiar substance termed callus 
 (Figs. 97 c; 98 B C c; 99), which at least in many plants peri- 
 odically closes the pits in autumn. Sieve-plates may also occur 
 on the lateral walls (Fig. 99). The rest of the wall of the sieve- 
 
 I) 
 
 FIG. 97. Sieve-tissue of an herbaceous Angiosperm (Cucurbiia Pepo). A Transverse 
 sieve-plate in surf ace- view ; B in longitudinal section ; C sieve-plate closed by a plate of 
 callus c; c* sieve-plate on lateral wall, closed by callus; D contents of tube left after 
 solution of the wall by sulphuric acid ; s companion-cells ; pr lining layer of protoplasm ; 
 u gelatinous contents. ( x 540 : after Strasburger.) 
 
 tube is rather thin : it is never lignified, but consists of cellulose. 
 The long straight sieve-tubes are connected in their course by 
 short transverse branches, so that they form one continuous sys- 
 tem of tabes. 
 
 In their normal active condition each segment of the sieve-tube 
 is lined by a layer of protoplasm (Fig. 97 B pr), in which starch- 
 granules are sometimes to be found, enclosing some gelatinous sub- 
 stance ; there is, however, no nucleus present; the reaction of the 
 contents is alkaline. 
 
29.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 137 
 
 With the sieve-tubes of Angiosperms are closely associated cells, 
 termed companion-cells (Fig. 97 s), which are filled with granular 
 proteid contents and have well-marked nuclei ; each companion- 
 cell is of common origin with the corresponding segment of a 
 sieve-tube, both being derived from one mother-cell. Companion- 
 cells are not developed in Grymnosperms and Pteridophyta. 
 
 The sieve-tissue, like the tracheal tissue, is a characteristic 
 constituent of the vascular tissue-system : it is very frequently as- 
 sociated with tracheal tissue so as to form one vascular bundle, but 
 it may occur in independent bundles (e.g. in the pith of the stem 
 of some Solanaceae, Campanulaceae, and Compositae, and in the cor- 
 tex of the stem of Cucurbitaceaa, and some other plants), and 
 generally in 
 roots. Ifc serves 
 for the conduc- 
 tion of organic 
 sub s t an ce, 
 more especi- 
 ally of proteid 
 substance. Tis- 
 sue of this kind 
 has been found 
 to be present 
 in plants so 
 low in the 
 scale as some 
 of the larger 
 Algae (Lami- 
 nariacece). 
 
 7. Glandular 
 Tissue. Under 
 this general 
 
 term are included cells which produce more or less peculiar sub- 
 stances termed secreta, by a process known as secretion. The cells 
 may be isolated, or they may be collected into groups ; the secre- 
 tum may be accumulated in the cavity of the secreting cell, or it 
 may be thrown out at the surface (excreted) ; the process of secre- 
 tion may or may not involve the destruction of the secreting cell. 
 
 The following are the chief varieties of glandular tissue : 
 
 (a) Solid multicellular glands. Good examples of these are the 
 chalk-glands of the leaves of many Saxifragacese and Crassulacese, 
 
 c. 
 
 FIG. 98. Sieve-tissue of woody plants. Portions of sieve-tabes 
 from the secondary bast of the Vine. A Entire transverse wall and 
 adjacent parts in longitudinal section (x300): pi the sieve-plates; 
 ft the thicker portions of the cell-wall ; h the protoplasmic lining ; 
 si gelatinous substance ; st starch-granules. B Part of a transverse 
 wall seen from the surface. C The same in section (x 700) ; p pitsj 
 c callus ; pi the four sieve-plates. 
 
138 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PtANTS. 
 
 [29. 
 
 and the nectaries present in flowers (floral nectaries) or in other 
 parts (extra-floral nectaries) of various plants. In both these 
 forms of gland the secretum, chalk in the one case and sugar in 
 the other, is in solution, and is excreted at the surface. In the 
 chalk-gland the secretum escapes through a special channel, a 
 water- stoma (Fig. 100 w\ see also Fig. 121, p. 157). In the nectary 
 the secretum is simply poured out on the surface of the gland. 
 
 Chalk-glands are remarkable in that they are developed from the same primary 
 tissue as the vascular bundles, in connexion with which they always occur. 
 These glands belong in fact to the vascular tissue-system (see p. 184). 
 
 FIG. 99. Sieve-tissue of woody plants. Surface-view of parts of two sieve-tubes of 
 Pinus sylvestris, with sieve-plates on the lateral longitudinal walls. Parts of walls of these 
 sieve-tubes treated with iodised chloride of zinc: A before the formation of a callus-plate; 
 B after the closure of the sieves by callus; C an old sieve-tube which is no longer active, 
 and from which all trace of callus has disappeared, (x 540 : after Strasburger.) 
 
 (6) Hollow multicellular glands are intercellular spaces sur- 
 rounded by secreting cells, and are, in some cases, of schizogenous, 
 in others of lysigenous, origin (see p. 130.) The secretum may be 
 mucilage, or gum, or a mixture of gum and resin (gum-resin), or 
 ethereal oil, or a mixture of ethereal oil and resin (balsam). The 
 cavities are either rounded closed spaces, or are elongated canals, 
 extending for some distance through the tissue ; the former are 
 usually of lysigenous, the latter of schizogenous, origin. 
 
 As examples of lysigenous hollow glands, may be mentioned the 
 cavities filled with gum, which occur in the tissue of Cherry-trees ; 
 the oil-glands of the Orange and Lemon, and in the leaves of the 
 Rutaceas, Myrtaceae, and Hypericum, where they can be discerned 
 
29.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. TIJE TISSUES. 
 
 139 
 
 with the naked eye as transparent dots. The development of these 
 oil-glands begins with the division of one or two cells of the 
 young leaf, a group of cells being formed in the cytoplasm of 
 which oil-drops make their appearance. The walls between the 
 cells (Fig. 101 B C) undergo absorption, so that a cavity is formed 
 which is bounded by the closely-packed adjacent cells, and contains 
 a large oil-drop formed by the fusion of the oil-drops of the original 
 cells. 
 
 The most striking examples of schizogenous hollow glands are the 
 various kinds of ducts, such as the resin-ducts which permeate the 
 tissues of most Conif eroe and Anacardiaceae ; the gum- or mucilage- 
 
 FIG. 100 (highly magnified ; after Gardiner). Left-hand figure : transverse section of the 
 margin of a leaf of Saxifraga crustata, showing the chalk-gland e, which is continuous at its 
 base with a vascular bundle ; w water-stoma ; b hairs to which the deposit of calcium 
 carbonate adheres on the evaporation of the exuded drops of water. Right-hand figure: 
 some of the cells of the gland. 
 
 ducts of the Marattiaceae, some species of Lycopodium, Cycads, 
 Canna, Opuntia, etc. ; the gum-resin-ducts of the Umbelliferae, and 
 of some Araliaceae and Composite (Tubuliflorae). Here the cells of 
 the group formed by a series of divisions (Fig. 102 A E), separate 
 from each other so as to leave a passage, of which they form the 
 wall, and into which they pour their secreta. 
 
 (c) Sacs, each consisting of a single cell. To this category 
 belong the cells which contain crystals, as those in the tissues of 
 many Monocotyledons (Fig. 72), in the bast of many dicotyledonous 
 trees, in leaves (Fig. 103) and petioles (Fig. 71) : the cells which 
 
140 FART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 29 
 
 contain mucilage, as in the parenchyma of TiliaceaB and Malvaceae, 
 in the bark of Elms and Firs, in the pseudo-bulbs of Orchids, etc.: 
 
 A 
 
 , n 
 
 FIG. 101. Lysigenous oil-gland below 
 the upper surface of the leaf of Dictam- 
 nus Fraxinella ( x 320). B At an early 
 stage ; C mature ; c mother-cells of the 
 gland before their absorption ; o a large 
 drop of ethereal oil. (After Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 102. Schizogenous resin-duct in the 
 young stem of the Ivy (Hedera Helix), transverse 
 section ( x 800). A An early, E a later, stage ; 
 g the resin-ducts; c the cambium; wb the soft 
 bast ; b bast-fibres ; rp cortical parenchyma. 
 (After Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 103. Sac containing a crystal, 
 from the leaf of Rhamnus Frangula: e 
 iipper epidermis; p palisade-tissue: o 
 Chloroplaetids ; Ic the crystal. ( x 200.) 
 
 FIG. 104.. Part of section of the petiole 
 of the Camphor-tree (Cinnamomum 
 Camphora), showing a resin-sac h. 
 
 the cells which contain tannin, as in many Ferns and other plants : 
 the cells which contain oil-resin as in the Lauracese (Camphor, Fig. 
 104), the Zingibcracese, many Conifers (wood of Silver Fir), etc. 
 
29.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 141 
 
 These cells are frequently arranged in longitudinal rows : for 
 instance, the tannin-sacs of the Hop ; the sacs containing raphides 
 and mucilage in Tradescantia and many other Monocotyledons ; 
 the gum-resin sacs (" vesicular vessels ") of the bulb-scales of the 
 Onion; the sacs containing crystals of calcium oxalate in the 
 cortex of many woody 
 Dicotyledons ; the sacs 
 containing milky juice 
 or latex (commonly 
 gum-resin) in the Syca- 
 more, the Convolvu- 
 laceae, and the Sapo- 
 tacea3 (especially in 
 Isonandra Gutta, the 
 latex of which consti- 
 tutes gutta-percha). 
 
 d. Laticiferous vessels. 
 These structures re- 
 semble the sacs con- 
 taining milky juice 
 (latex) in the nature 
 of their contents, and 
 differ from them struc- 
 turally only in that the 
 walls between adjacent 
 cells have become ab- 
 sorbed, thus forming 
 syncytes (p. 91). 
 
 In the simplest case, 
 the laticiferous vessel 
 merely consists of a 
 longitudinal row of 
 cells whose transverse 
 septa have become ab- 
 sorbed, thus forming a 
 syncyte of the nature 
 of a vessel. When two 
 such vessels are in con- 
 tact laterally, the cell-walls are absorbed at the point of junction, 
 and in this way a continuous system of laticiferous vessels is 
 formed. This occurs in the greater Celandine (Chelidonium 
 
 FIG. 105. Laticiferous vessels from the cortex of 
 the root of Scorzouera Uispanica, tangential section. A 
 Slightly magnified ; B a small portion highly magni- 
 fied. (After Sachs.) 
 
142 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [29. 
 
 majus), and in the Bananas (Musa) where, however, the latex is 
 not milky. 
 
 More commonly, as in the Cichorieoe (e.g. Dandelion, Scorzo- 
 nera), the Campanulacene, and in most Papaveracece (but not in 
 Sanguinaria, Glaucium, and Bocconia, where the latex is contained 
 in sacs), the cell-fusions take place in all directions, producing a 
 dense network (Fig. 105). 
 
 Structures apparently of the nature of laticiferous vessels occur 
 in certain Basidiomycetous Fungi (e.g. 
 Lactarius). 
 
 e. Laticiferous coenocytes, commonly 
 known as "laticiferous cells," occur in 
 some Euphorbiacese (Euphorbieee, Hip- 
 pomaneae), in the Urticaceae, Apocy- 
 naceee, and Asclepiadacese. As already 
 explained (p. 90), these "cells" are 
 really ccenocytes ; they are visible in 
 the early stages of the development of 
 the embryo, and they grow and branch 
 in the tissue as if they were independent 
 organisms (Fig. 106). As they extend 
 from one end of the plant to the other, 
 they attain a very considerable length 
 in many cases. Their walls are fre- 
 quently thickened (e.g. Euphorbia), but, 
 like those of the laticiferous vessels, 
 they are not lignified. They contain 
 protoplasm with many nuclei, which 
 multiply by mitotic division, and iu the 
 older parts latex is abundantly present. 
 The latex of the Euphorbiaceae contains 
 curious rod- like or dumb-bell-shaped 
 starch-grains (Fig. 107). 
 
 Very much elongated structures, somewhat resembling the laticiferous 
 coenocytes just described, have been observed in certain plants, but it is a ques- 
 tion whether tbey are cells or ccenocytes. They may contain tannin (e.g. Elder, 
 Polygonaceae), or latex (Cnicus, Carduus, Arctium). 
 
 /. Epidermal Glands. Whilst all the preceding forms of glan- 
 dular tissue are developed in the internal tissues of plants, some- 
 what similar glandular structures are developed from the super- 
 ficial layer (epidermis), most commonly in the form of hairs (p 64), 
 
 FIG. IOC. A portion of a lati- 
 ciferous coenocyte dissected out 
 of the leaf of a Euphorbia, (x 
 120 : after Haberlandt.) 
 
29.; 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 143 
 
 either unicellular or multicellular. When the multicellular hair 
 consists of a single row of cells, the secretion is generally confined 
 
 .jpV^Lyl^. . ; L^^ 
 
 FIG. 107. (Highly magnified, after Dippel). A Part of a laticiferous coenocyte of Euphor- 
 bia splendens. In the latex are peculiar rod-shaped starch-grains. B Network of latici- 
 ferous vessels from the root of Cichorium Intybus. 
 
 either to a large terminal cell, or to several of 
 the distal cells ; in any case the secretion begins 
 with the terminal cell, and extends backwards to 
 other cells towards the base. The gland, though 
 epidermal in origin, does not, however, always 
 project from the surface, but may be more or 
 less sunk in the internal tissue {e.g. glands in the 
 leaf of the Psoralea Tiirta). 
 
 The secretum (which may consist of mucilage, 
 or gum-resin, or ethereal oil, balsam, etc.) is 
 accumulated either in the cavity of the secreting 
 cells (e.g. mucilaginous hairs at the growing- 
 point of Liverwort-gametophytes and of Fern- 
 sporophytes), or between the external cuticle and 
 
 FIG. 108. Glan- 
 dular hair from the 
 base of a ramentum 
 of Aspidium Filiei 
 mas (x200): 8, the 
 secretum, lying be- 
 tween the outer and 
 inner layers of tbe 
 cell-wall, c and m. 
 
144 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 30. 
 
 the deeper layers of the cuticularised cell- wall (e.g. mucilaginous 
 hairs [colleters] on the buds of many Phanerogams, resinous hairs 
 generally; Fig. 108). 
 
 30. General Morphology of the Tissue-Systems. 
 
 When a form of tissue constitutes a complex which extends con- 
 tinuously throughout the body of a plant, or over considerable 
 areas, it is spoken of as a tissue-system, for instance, a laticiferous 
 system, a resin-duct system, a sieve-tube system, etc. ; or a more 
 elaborate system may be produced by the combination of two or 
 more systems : for instance, the sieve-tube system and the tracheal 
 system taken together constitute the vascular tissue- system. Fur- 
 ther, by the study of the anatomy of fully-developed parts some 
 idea can be obtained of the relative morphological importance and 
 arrangement of the tissue-systems. Thus, confining attention for 
 the present to the sporophyte of the Vascular Plants (i.e. Pterido- 
 phyta and Phanerogams), it is found that some of these tissue- 
 systems, such as the laticiferous system and the resin-duct sys- 
 tem, are present in certain plants only. Since they are absent in 
 the majority of the plants under consideration, it is clear that 
 these two tissue-systems can only be of secondary importance. 
 On the other hand it is clear that the tissue-systems which are 
 present in all these plants and in all parts of them, must be of 
 primary importance. Observation shows that this applies to 
 three tissue-systems. It is found, first of all, that all these plants 
 and their parts (at any rate when young) are covered at the sur- 
 face by a definite membrane consisting of (usually) a single layer 
 of cells constituting the Tegument ary Tissue- System (Fig. 109 e). 
 It is found secondly that tracheal tissue and sieve-tissue, either 
 separate or closely associated, are distributed in strands, termed 
 vascular bundles (Fig. 109 /), throughout the internal structure, 
 constituting the Vascular Tissue- System ; and it is found, finally, 
 that the rest of the structure of the plant is made up of tissue, 
 largely parenchymatous, but usually to a certain extent prosen- 
 chymatous, which constitutes the Fundamental or Ground Tissue- 
 Si/stem (Fig. 109 # #). 
 
 The other tissue-systems are subordinate to these three prin- 
 cipal tissue-systems, and are distributed throughout them; for 
 instance, the mechanical tissue-system (stereom), including collen- 
 chyma and sclerenchyma, is developed as well in relation with the 
 vascular as with the fundamental tissue-system ; and, similarly. 
 
30.] 
 
 CHAPTER IT. THE TISSUES. 
 
 145 
 
 the glandular tissue-system is developed in relation with either 
 the vascular, the fundamental, or the tegumentary tissue-system. 
 
 It is, however, impossible to arrive at the essentially morpholo- 
 gical relations of the tissue-systems without a study of their 
 development, a study which will now be entered upon with the 
 consideration of the apical growing-points of the stems and roots 
 of the sporophyte of the Vascular Plants. 
 
 As already pointed out (p. 18), the growing-point consists, in 
 these plants, of embryonic tissue, the cells of which may be of 
 approximately uniform size, constituting a small-celled primary 
 ineristem ; or there may be at the organic apex a cell conspicuously 
 Inrger than the rest, the apical cell.; or a group of several larger 
 initial cells. 
 
 a. Grow ing -points consisting 
 of small- celled meristem are, 
 with rare exceptions, to be 
 found in the roots and stems 
 of Phanerogams, as also in 
 the root of Lycopodium and 
 Isoetes among the Pterido- 
 phyta. Although the cells 
 are all embryonic, they never- 
 theless present such a degree 
 of differentiation as to make 
 it possible to distinguish three 
 well-defined rudimentary tis- 
 sue-systems. 
 
 In the stem, a growing-point 
 of this kind usually presents 
 the appearance shown in Fig. 
 110. It consists, in the first 
 place, of a well-defined super- 
 ficial layer which, on being traced backwards, is seen to be con- 
 tinuous with the primary tegumentary tissue (epidermis) of the 
 older parts ; this layer is, in fact, the embryonic epidermis or 
 dermatngen (d) ; it is quite distinct, morphologically,, from the 
 subjacent cells, and is characterized by the fact that its cells 
 only undergo division in planes perpendicular to the surface (anti- 
 clinal), and not in any plane parallel to the surface (periclinal) . 
 Consequently, whilst the dermatogen increases in area, so as to 
 keep pace with the growing tissues within, it does not become 
 many-layered, but remains a single layer of cells. 
 
 v. s. B. L 
 
 FIG. 109. The tissue-systems in a cross- 
 section of the petiole of Helleborus ( x 20). 
 Epidermis ; g fundamental tissue; /vascular 
 system ; a; xylem ; c bast ; b sclerenchymatous 
 
 tissue. 
 
146 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [30. 
 
 In the middle of the growing-point is a solid mass of somewhat 
 elongated cells (p p} constituting the plerome, and terminating 
 in one or more initial cells ; on tracing this backwards into the 
 older part of the stem it is found to give rise to a single axial 
 cylinder of tissue, the stele, in which the vascular tissue is de- 
 veloped; such a stem is said to be monostelic. In some cases, 
 however, more than one plerome-strand is present at the growing- 
 point, and the stem consequently contains more than one stele 
 (e.g. Gunnera), and is said to be polystelic. 
 
 Between the dermatogen externally and the plerome internally, 
 is a layer less frequently several layers of cells constituting the 
 periblem ; the cells of these layers undergo divisions both 
 anticlinally and periclinally, so that both the area of each layer 
 
 and the number of the 
 layers are increased. 
 On tracing the periblem 
 backwards into the older 
 parts, it is found to be 
 continuous with the 
 extra-stelar fundamental 
 tissue (primary cortex). 
 The growing-point of 
 
 the root (Fig. Ill) of 
 // / 1 1 
 
 p 
 
 Fie. 110. Median longitudinal section of the grow- 
 ing-point of the stem of Hippuris vulgaris. The 
 growing-point consists of a small-celled meristem, 
 differentiated into dermatogen d, plerome pp, and 
 periblem consisting of the five layers of cells between 
 the plerome and the dermatogen ; I rudiment of a 
 leaf. (After de Bary ; x 225.) 
 
 one of these plants es- 
 sentially resembles that 
 of the stem in its struc- 
 ture ; the small - celled 
 meristem is differenti- 
 ated, at least primarily, 
 into dermatogen, ple- 
 rome, and periblem. But there is this distinctive peculiarity 
 about the dermatogen of the root, that its cells undergo division, 
 not anticlinally only, as in the stem, but periclinally also, so that 
 the epidermis of the root is many-layered (except in Hydrocharis 
 and Lemna, where it remains a single layer). This many-layered 
 epidermis^ however, is gradually exfoliated as the parts grow 
 older, and persists only at the apex constituting the root-cap 
 (see p. 6). The only other important fact to be noticed at present 
 is that the root has only a single stele, that is, it is always mono- 
 stelic. 
 
 The foregoing description is applicable to all growing-points with a small- 
 
30.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 147 
 
 celled meristem. It is, however, frequently the case, especially when the stem 
 or root is rather bulky, that the distinction of the initial layers is not clear, and 
 that they seem, in fact, to have to a greater or less extent a common origin, 
 and various such " types " of structure of the growing-point have been 
 described ; these " types " are, however, only variations of the relations as 
 described above, due to irregularities of growth. 
 
 Fi&. 111. Median longitudinal section through the growing-point of the root of Hordeum 
 vulgare (Barley): r roct-cap ; fc initial cells of the dermatogen of the many-layered epider- 
 mis ; d-en cortex ; d epiblema with mucilaginous external layer of cell- wall c ; i cortical 
 tissue with intercellular spaces ; en endcdermis ; the whole periblem (pr) is derived from 
 the single layer of two initial cells at the apex ; pi plerome ; a row of cells which give rise 
 to a large central wood-vessel. (After Strasburger : x 180.) 
 
 I). Growing -points with a single apical cell are to be found in 
 
148 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 L30. 
 
 stems and roots of most Pteridophyta : for instance, in the stems 
 
 and roots of all 
 Leptosporan- 
 giate Filicina?, 
 and in those of 
 Ophioglossa- 
 ceae (but not in 
 those of the 
 Marattiacese) ; 
 in those of the 
 Equisetina3 ; 
 and in those of 
 some species of 
 Selaginella (8. 
 Martensii and 
 Kraussiana}. 
 The shape of 
 the apical cell 
 is generally a 
 three - sided 
 pyramid with 
 a spherical 
 base, the base 
 being at the 
 surface of the 
 
 member and the apex being directed inwards ; less commonly the 
 apical cell has only two sides or flanks and is then somewhat len- 
 ticular in shape 
 (e.g. that of the 
 rhizome of Pteris 
 aquilina, stem of 
 Salviniaceas, and 
 frequently in the 
 above species of 
 Selaginella). 
 
 In growing- 
 points of this 
 
 Fia. 112. Growing-point of the stem of Equisetum arvense, in 
 longitudinal section; t apical cell; s's" successive segments; 
 p anticlinal segment -wall ; m wall dividing the segment into an 
 upper and a lower cell; pr periclinal wall dividing the segment 
 into an inner and an outer cell; //'/" successive whorls of leaves; 
 g Initial cell of a lateral bud. (After Strasburger : x 240.) 
 
 FIG. 113. Diagrams illustrating the division of the apical 
 cell of the stem of Equisetum : A longitudinal section ; B sur- 
 face view. The numbers 1-7 indicate the successive segmental 
 walla; the fainter lines indicate the walls of subsequent divi- 
 sions of the segments. 
 
 structure it is 
 seen (Fig. 112) 
 
 that the embry- 
 onic tissue-systems are not continuous as in the Phanerogams, 
 
30.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 149 
 
 but are interrupted at the apex by the large apical cell. The 
 apical cell is, in fact, the initial cell for all the tissue-systems. 
 The apical cell undergoes division by walls formed parallel to 
 each of its (two or three) flanks successively, the segments thus 
 formed growing and dividing to form the tissues of the stem or 
 root. In the root the apical cell also undergoes divisions parallel 
 to its curved base. After the cutting oft' of a segment the apical 
 cell grows to its previous size, so that the repeated segmentation 
 does not diminish the bulk of the apical cell. 
 
 The most important morphological fact in connection with the 
 subsequent division of the 
 segments cut off from the 
 flanks of the apical cell is 
 that each such segment 
 is divided by a periclinal 
 wall into an external and 
 an internal half ; from the 
 external half are developed 
 cells belonging to the cor- 
 tical ground-tissue, the 
 outermost layer of which 
 eventually acquires the 
 characters of an epider- 
 mis, though it is not the 
 morphological equivalent 
 of the epidermis of the 
 stem of Phanerogams, but FIG 114 ._ Dlagram of gr0 wing.point of a Fern- 
 is only the external layer rooc. A A Anticlinal walls ; P P periclinal walls ; 
 of +>IP POT-IP^ "hpino- of s apical cell ; b b segments cut off from the flanks 
 
 the cortex, I of ^ ap _ cal ^ c , segmenfc cufc off the bage 
 
 common Origin with the O f the apical cell ; c c cells derived from previous 
 Other cortical layers ; from segments cut off from the base of the apical cell, 
 
 now forming the root-cap. (After Bower.) 
 
 the internal halt or the 
 
 segment is developed a portion of one or more plerome-strands, 
 
 and a certain amount of internal ground-tissue as well. 
 
 The segments cut off parallel to the base of the apical cell of 
 the root (Fig. 114 c' ; Fig. 115 &) represent a true dermatogen, a 
 structure, which, as mentioned above, is wanting in the stem. 
 These dermatogen- segments grow and divide both anticlinally and 
 periclinally to form the root-cap (Fig. 114 c c ; Fig. 115 & u ) ; but 
 this many-layered epidermis only persists at the growing-point, 
 since it becomes entirely exfoliated as the parts grow older. 
 
150 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 30. 
 
 c. Growing-points with a group of common initial cells occur in 
 certain Pteridophyta (e.g. in the stems and roots of Marattiaceae, 
 of Osmunda sometimes ; stems of Lycopodium, Isoetes, some 
 Selaginellas). In these cases, there is a group of frequently four 
 cells which are the common initials of the tissue-systems. The 
 general relations of the tissue-systems are here essentially the 
 
 P Pb 
 
 FIG. 115. Median longitudinal section through the apex of the root of Ptcr.s cretica ; t 
 apical cell; fc initial segment of dermatogen; fc, outermost layer of root-cap ; p wall mark- 
 ing limit between the plerome P and the periblem P6 ; c wall marking the inner limit of 
 the outer cortex. (After Strasburger : x 240.) 
 
 same as in those forms in which the growing-point has a single 
 apical cell : in these cases, as in those, there is no properly differ- 
 entiated dermatogen in the stem, and consequently there is no layer 
 .which is morphologically equivalent to the epidermis of the stem 
 in the Phanerogams. 
 
30.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 151 
 
 The Growing-point in the lower plants. In the gametophyte of the Bryophyta, 
 the growing-point of the stem or of the thallus has either a single apical cell 
 (all Mosses ; Jungermanniaceae) or a group of apical cells (Marchantiaceae, Antho- 
 cerotaceae) : the growing-point of the sporophyte of the Liverworts has a group 
 of four initial cells, whilst that of the Mosses has a single two-sided apical cell. 
 In none of these plants is there a true dermatogen ; consequently, like the stem 
 of the Pteridophyta, they are destitute of a true epidermis. In both the stem of 
 the gametophyte and the thalloid shoot of the sporophyte of certain Mosses, 
 what may be regarded as a single central stele is differentiated. 
 
 In the higher Algae, the shoot (or thallus) also grows by means of a single 
 apical cell : in the more filamentous forms (e.g. some Florideae, Characese) the 
 apical cell is hemispherical in form, and segments are cut off by transverse walls 
 in one plane only ; in other more bulky forms of Florideae there is a group of 
 initial cells ; in nearly all these forms a more or less distinct differentiation of 
 a central medullary tissue and of a cortical tissue takes place : in the Fucacese 
 there is a single apical cell in the growing-point, with either three or four flanks 
 along which segments are cut off; when the apical cell is four- sided, segments 
 are also cut off internally along the truncate base of the cell ; the tissues soon 
 show differentiation into a cortical and a medullary region. 
 
 In unseptate or imperfectly septate plants, having apical growth (e.g. Siphon- 
 aceous Algae, Cladophora, etc.), the growing-point (like the rest of the body) is 
 not cellular, but consists merely of embryonic protoplasm. 
 
 d. The Morphology of the Stele. The plerome, constituting- the 
 young stele, always gives rise to vascular tissue and usually to a 
 certain amount of fundamental tissue which is distinguished as 
 intra-stelar fundamental tissue, or more briefly as conjunctive tissue. 
 
 The first indication of the development of vascular tissue in 
 the stele is afforded by the differentiation of a varying amount of 
 procambium or primary desmogen, consisting of somewhat elongated 
 narrow cells formed by repeated longitudinal division, which is 
 the embryonic tissue from which the vascular tissue is eventually 
 formed. The procambium frequently constitutes one solid central 
 strand, surrounded by more or less conjunctive tissue constituting 
 the pericycle ; this is sometimes the case in slender roots (see 
 Fig. 131), in slender monostelic stems (e.g. many aquatic Phanero- 
 gams, such as Callitriche, Myriophyllum, Elodea, Naias ; rhizomes 
 of Adoxa, Corallorhiza, Epipogum; among Pteridophyta, Isoetes, 
 Salvinia, Azolla, Psilotum, Lycopodium, Hymenophyllum, Lygod- 
 ium, Gleichenia, Schizgea), and generally in the steles of poly- 
 stelic stems. More commonly, however, the procambium of stout 
 roots and monostelic stems is developed as a number of strands 
 variously arranged in the stele, generally in a circle or in several 
 circles ; the strands thus forming an incomplete hollow cylinder 
 enclosing a central mass of conjunctive tissue, the medulla orpiiJi, 
 
152 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 30. 
 
 whilst the conjunctive tissue between the strands constitutes the 
 medullary rays. 
 
 In all cases the stele (whether one or more) is at an early stage 
 marked off from the extra-stelar ground-tissue, the layer of the 
 ground-tissue which abuts on the stele being specially differentiated 
 as a sheath, the endodermis (see Fig. 116 End.), which forms a 
 continuous covering to the stele or any isolated portion of it. 
 
 All primary stems are typically monostelic to begin with, but 
 as they increase in bulk this type of structure is departed from 
 in various ways-; typical monostely is, however, the rule in the 
 stem of Phanerogams, and is frequent in that of Pteridophyta (in 
 Hymenophyllum,. Trichomanes, Lygodium, Gleichenia, Osmunda, 
 Todea, lower part of the stem of the Ophioglossaceae, Salvinia, 
 Azolla, Lycopodium, Isoetes, some species of Selaginella). 
 
 The variations from the primitive monostelic structure are 
 polystely (p. 146) and scliizostely. In polystely, the whole of the 
 single stele passes over, as the stem grows and enlarges, into a 
 varying number of steles which can be traced to the growing- 
 point as distinct pi erome- strands. Polystely is rare in stems 
 which have a growing-point without an apical cell, whilst it is 
 common in stems where the growing-point has an apical cell : 
 hence it is rare in Phanerogams (occurs in Auricula and Gunnera), 
 and is common in Pfceridophyta (especially Leptosporangiate 
 Ferns, and some Selaginellas). 
 
 An important modification of the polystelic structure is that 
 which is termed gamostelic ; in this case the several steles are not 
 distinct for any considerable distance in their longitudinal course; 
 but some or all of them fuse with each other at more or less 
 frequent intervals for longer or shorter distances ; this is common 
 in Ferns, Marsilea, etc. 
 
 In schizostely, the single primitive stele breaks up into as many 
 distinct strands as it possesses vascular bundles; and since each 
 such strand may consist of but little more than the vascular 
 bundle with a pericycle, the chief part of the conjunctive tissue 
 of the primitive monostele is excluded from the schizosteles, 
 and becomes, in fact, extra-stelar ground-tissue (see Fig. 116 B), 
 each schizostele being invested by its own segment of the en- 
 dodermis. This obtains, among Phanerogams, in the Nymph geacese, 
 Hydrocleis, Limnocharis, some species of Ranunculus (JK. 
 aquatilis and Lingua) ; among Pteridophyta, in the upper part of 
 the stem of the Ophioglossaceee, and in Equisetum. The schizo- 
 
31.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 153 
 
 steles may remain distinct in the internodes, or they may fuse 
 more or less (Fig. 116 C). 
 
 The general morphology of the tissues of the leaf is essentially 
 the same as that of the stem which bears it. When the stem is 
 polystelic, one or more complete steles enter the petiole of the leaf 
 which is, consequently, either monostelic or polystelic. When 
 the stem is monostelic, each leaf receives a portion, termed a 
 meristele, of the stele of the stem ; this meristele may be either 
 entire, or be split up into a number of schizosteles, each of which 
 may consist of but little more than a vascular bundle. 
 
 --find. 
 
 -End. 
 
 FIG. 116 Portions of transverse sections of stems of species of Equisetum, illustrating 
 scliizostely (after Pfitzer: x 36). B Typical Bchizostelic rhizome of E. litorale; C 
 schizostelic gamodesmic rhizome of E. silvaticum ; A aerial stem of E. palustre, in which the 
 structure is che same as in C, but the markings of the internal endodermal layer are not 
 developed, so that the stem appears to be monostelic; a central cavity; b vallecular 
 cavities in the cortex ; c carinal cavities in the schizosteles ; End. endodermis. 
 
 The primary tissues that is, the tissues which are developed 
 from the primary meristem of a growing-point or of an embryo 
 will now be considered in detail. The following account, unless it 
 is expressly stated otherwise, refers exclusively to the sporophyte 
 of the Vascular Plants. 
 
 31. The Primary Tegumentary Tissue. The primary 
 tegumentary tissue may be generally described as the external 
 
154 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 31. 
 
 layer of cells covering the body of the plant, and is commonly 
 termed the epidermis ; but neither the morphological nature of 
 this tissue, nor its structure, is uniform throughout the Vegetable 
 Kingdom. 
 
 Morphology. A true epidermis only exists in those plants, and in 
 those parts of them, where there is a definite dermatogen ; a true 
 epidermis can, therefore, only be present in the Phanerogams and in 
 the roots of the Pteridophyta, in view of the structure of the grow- 
 ing-points as described in the previous paragraph, and the word 
 epidermis is, strictly speaking, only applicable to such a tegumen- 
 tary tissue. It is, however, convenient to apply this term gene- 
 rally to the primary tegumentary tissue of the shoot, and to apply 
 the term epiblema to the primary tegumentary tissue of the root, 
 apart from the root-cap. 
 
 As regards the shoot, whilst there is a true epidermis in 
 Phanerogams, that of the Pteridophyta (as also of the lower plants) 
 is merely the external layer of the cortex 
 
 In the root there is considerable variety in the morphological 
 nature of the epiblema. Thus, in Hydrocharis and Lemna, the 
 dermatogen is and remains a single layer of cells which persists 
 in the adult portion of the root as the epiblema which is, therefore, 
 a true epidermis morphologically equivalent to .that of the stem. 
 In most cases, however, the dermatogen becomes many-layered ; 
 this persists at the apex as a root-cap, but gradually exfoliates on 
 the older parts behind the apex, either partially, so that a single 
 layer of it, the innermost, persists as the epiblema of the root (as 
 in most Dicotyledons, Gymnosperms, Lycopodium, Isoetes) ; or 
 entirely (as in Monocotyledons, and in Nymphaoaceae among Dicoty- 
 ledons), so that the epiblema is merely the external layer of the 
 cortex. The root of Pistia and Pontederia has no dermatogen, and 
 consequently no epidermis at all, the epiblema being the external 
 layer of the cortex : the root of these plants is, in this respect, 
 quite similar to the shoot of the Pteridophyta, etc., mentioned 
 above. 
 
 Structure. In the great majority of cases the primary tegumen- 
 tary tissue consists of a single layer of cells ; but to this rule there 
 are several important exceptions. Thus, the epidermis of the 
 foliage-leaves of certain plants {e.g. Ficus, Peperomia, Begonia) 
 consists of two or more layers of cells. Similarly, the root-cap to 
 be found in nearly all roots is a many-layered epidermis. Again, 
 the aerial root of certain epiphytic plants (Orchids, Aroids) has 
 
31.1 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 155 
 
 a many-layered epiblema, known as the velamen, consisting of 
 empty tracheidal cells with reticulated and perforated walls 
 (see p. 134). 
 
 The cells of the epidermis of 
 the shoot of land-plants, are cha- 
 racterised by the thickening and 
 cuticularisation of their cell- walls 
 (see p. 132). The external wall is 
 usually much more thickened than 
 the other walls ; its outermost 
 layer, termed the cuticle, is always 
 cuticularised, and is clearly defined 
 from the inner layers, which may 
 be also more or less cuticularised. 
 The cuticle may be stripped off as 
 a membrane, over a considerable 
 area ; it frequently forms surface- 
 projections. Particles of wax are 
 included in the cuticle of many 
 plants, and serve to prevent the 
 surface from being wetted by 
 water. This wax often appears 
 on the surface in the form of small 
 granules, rods, or flakes, and this 
 forms the bloom which is easily wiped off : it sometimes attains a 
 considerable bulk, as in the fruits of Myrica cerifera and the trunks 
 of some Palms (Ceratoxylon 
 andicola, and Klopstockia ceri- 
 fera). The epidermal cells 
 are sometimes sclerotic, as 
 in prickles, thorns, and leaf- 
 spines. Chloroplastids are 
 not usually present in the epi- 
 dermal cells of land-plants ; 
 they are to be found, how- 
 ever, in the cells of most 
 
 Ferns, of Selaffinella, and Fm. 118 -Epidermis ( e )^th a stoinaCS) from 
 
 a cross-section of a leaf of Hyacmthus onentalis 
 (x 800): p parenchyma of the fundamental 
 tissiie ; i an air-cavity. 
 
 FIG. 117. Part of a transverse section 
 of the air-root of an Orchid : v many- 
 layered epiblema, or velamen ; c cortex. 
 (Magnified; after linger.) 
 
 of some Phanerogams, more 
 especially aquatics. 
 
 The form of the epidermal cells, as seen in surface view, presents 
 considerable variety. Generally speaking, the cells of an elon- 
 
156 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [31. 
 
 "ated member are themselves elong'ated in the same direction as 
 the member ; whereas, in broad, flattened members, there is less 
 difference between the diameters of the cells ; in either case the 
 side- walls of the cells very frequently have an undulating outline, 
 so that adjoining cells fit closely together forming a continuous 
 membrane, the continuity of which is, however, interrupted in 
 certain cases by well-defined apertures, termed stomata, which 
 permit communication between the intercellular spaces of the 
 internal tissues and the external air. 
 
 The Stomata are confined exclusively to the sporophyte-genera- 
 tion, and make their first appearance in the Moss-sporogoiiium. 
 Each stoma is an aperture bounded by two (sometimes only one, as 
 
 in the Mosses) specialised epi- 
 dermal cells, termed guard-cells, 
 which always contain chloro- 
 plastids (Fig. 119). The aperture 
 of the stoma leads into the air- 
 cavity (Figs. 118, 120), a large 
 intercellular space between the 
 epidermis and the subjacent 
 tissue, which communicates with 
 other more internal intercellular 
 spaces. The stoma originates 
 thus : a young epidermal cell is 
 divided by a septum into two 
 halves, each of which becomes 
 a guard-cell ; the septum then 
 gradually splits into two and 
 thus the aperture between the 
 guard-cells is formed ; when the septum does not quite reach 
 across the mother-cell, the aperture is surrounded by a single 
 annular guard-celt, as in the Mosses. The size of the aperture 
 may be increased or diminished by changes in the bulk of the 
 guard-cells ; the mechanism and conditions of this process are 
 considered in Part IV, (p. 698). 
 
 Stomata are found on almost all sub-aerial parts of the sporo- 
 phyte of land-plants from the Mosses upward; they are especially 
 abundant on leaves (as many as 600 to the square millimetre), 
 and, in dorsiventral leaves, more particularly on the lower (dorsal) 
 surface, but in floating dorsiventral leaves (e.g. Nymphaea) they 
 are confined to the upper surface ; in radial and isobilateral leaves 
 
 Fro. 119. Stoma of a leaf of C >mmelyna 
 ccelestis, surface view (x 300) : sp opening; 
 sz the two guard-cells surrounded by 
 several subsidiary epidermal cells. 
 
31] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 157 
 
 the distribution of the 
 sfcomata is uniform on all 
 sides ; they are wanting 
 in submerged leaves, and 
 are always absent from 
 roots. 
 
 A peculiar form of stoma is 
 found in some plants, known as 
 a water-stoma (Fig. 121). It con- 
 sists of two large, almost sphe- 
 rical, guard-cells which cannot 
 alter their form so as to close the 
 aperture. Water- stomata occur 
 on the leaves of some of those 
 plants (e.g. Alchemilla, Cras- 
 sula, Ficus, Saxifraga, Colo- 
 casia, Papaver, Tropaeolum) 
 which excrete water in the form 
 of drops ; they are situated over 
 the termination of the vascular 
 bundles on the margins or at 
 the apex of the leaf ; when 
 chalk-glands are present (p. 
 137), water- stomata are de- 
 veloped in connexion with them 
 (see Fig. 100). 
 
 In some plants (e.g. Grasses) 
 which excrete drops of water, 
 the water escapes through fis- 
 sures in the epidermis of the 
 leaf. 
 
 The epidermis of the 
 submerged shoots of 
 water-plants differs from 
 that of land-plants in that 
 it is not cuticularised, in 
 the absence of stomata, 
 and in that its cells fre- 
 quently contain chloro- 
 plastids. 
 
 The epiblema of the 
 subterranean root is com- 
 monly known as the pili- 
 
 Fro. 120. Epidermis with stomata, from the 
 lower surface of the leaf of Hellel>orus fcetidus: A 
 in section; .B surface view (x 300); e epidermal 
 cells; c cuticle; I thickenings of the external 
 wall; / foils of the lateral walls; s stoma; ss 
 guard-cells; sp aperture; a air-cavity; cl meso- 
 phyll. 
 
 Fro. 121. Water-stoma from the margin of the 
 leaf of Tropceolum majus, with surrounding epider- 
 mal cells. (After Strasburger : x 240.) 
 
158 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 ferous layer because it is the layer from which the root-hairs 
 (see p. 65), when present, are developed. Its cell- walls are not 
 cuticularised, but are frequently (especially in the root-hairs) 
 more or less mucilaginous. It is generally of but short duration, 
 and to be found only on the younger parts of roots which are the 
 regions of active absorption. 
 
 In aerial roots (Orchids, etc.) where the epiblema persists as a 
 velamen (see Fig. 117, p. 155) of one or several layers of cells, 
 the walls are thickened, cuticularised (especially the superficial 
 layer), and somewhat lignified. 
 
 FIG. 122. Hairs on a young ovary of 
 Cucurbita (x 100): b gland ular hair ; cf/ 
 early stages of development. 
 
 FIG. 123. Root 
 hairs (h) on the 
 primary root (w) 
 of a seedling of 
 the Buckwheat : 
 Tichypocotyl; cc 
 cotyledons. 
 
 The many-layered root-cap (see p. 146), in its younger, more 
 internal part, consists of parenchymatous cells, with cell- walls of 
 cellulose, forming a compact tissue without intercellular spaces. 
 As the cells grow older, and come to be situated more externally, 
 they lose their protoplasmic contents. The disintegration of the 
 root-cap is due, in some cases, to the mucilaginous degeneration of 
 the middle lamella of the cell- walls ; whilst in other cases, where 
 the cell- walls become cuticularised, the superficial layers of the 
 
32.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 159 
 
 cap are successively split off and exfoliated by the pressure of the 
 internal growing tissues. 
 
 Hairs (see p. 64), are frequently developed on the primary 
 tegumentary tissue, and are generally formed each as an outgrowth 
 of a single superficial cell (Fig. 1 22 ; see also Fig. 40, p. 65 ; and 
 Fig. 108, p. 143). 
 
 The hairs of the subaerial parts of plants are, like the epider- 
 mal cells, cuticularised. In many cases the protoplasmic contents 
 disappear at an early stage (as in Cotton, the hairs on the outer 
 coat, or testa, of the seed of Gossypium) and are replaced by air. 
 Sometimes the cell- wall contains deposits of lime or of silica. The 
 hairs are frequently glandular (see p. 142). 
 
 The root-hairs (Fig. 123 ; also see p. 65) are developed each 
 from a single cell of the epiblema or piliferous layer ; they are not 
 developed in the immediate neighbourhood of the growing-point 
 but at some little distance behind it. Moreover, as they grow 
 older, the root-hairs die off ; hence they are only to be found on a 
 very limited region of a primary or a secondary root. 
 
 32. The Fundamental Tissue-system, or Ground-tissue, 
 is constituted by the tissue which belongs neither to the epidermis, 
 on the one hand, nor to the vascular tissue on the other. Two 
 regions of this tissue-system are distinguishable, according to their 
 relation to the stele, as extra-stelar and intra-stelar; the former 
 being developed from the periblem, the latter from the plerome, 
 of the growing-point. 
 
 The Extra-stelar Fundamental Tissue. Morphology. The limits, 
 of this tissue vary with the structure of the part concerned. 
 When the part, whether it be stem, leaf, or root, has a true epi- 
 dermis (see p. 154), the external limit of the extra-stelar tissue 
 is the layer of cells lying immediately beneath the epidermis; 
 when, however, there is no true epidermis, the extra-stelar tissue 
 extends to the surface, and the superficial tegumentary layer is 
 merely its external layer. Again, when the member is mono- 
 stelic, the internal limit of the extra-stelar tissue is the layer 
 termed the endvdermis, which abuts upon the central stele ; in this 
 case the extra-stelar tissue consists of several layers of cells 
 bounded externally by the true epidermis (if present), or reaching 
 to the surface, and bounded internally by the stele, when it is 
 spoken of as the cortex of the member of which it forms part. In 
 a polystelic member, the internal limit of the extra-stelar tissue is 
 
160 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 32. 
 
 still the endodermis, but each individual stele is invested by a 
 distinct endodermis ; here the fundamental tissue includes not 
 merely the cortex, but also the tissue between and among the 
 steles. The relations of the parts are very much the same in a 
 schizostelic as in a polystelic member (see Fig. 116 5). 
 
 The following are the regions or layers of the primary extra- 
 stelar tissue which can be distinguished morphologically. 
 
 1. The tegumentary tissue, in those parts in which there is no 
 true epidermis. 
 
 2. The hypoderma is the external layer (or layers) of the funda- 
 mental tissue where a true epidermis is present ; when the integu- 
 mentary tissue is not a true epidermis but is derived from the 
 external layer of the cortex, ihe hypoderma is derived from the 
 outermost layer but one of the primitive cortex (periblem) ; in the 
 root, the hypoderma is distinguished as the exodermis. 
 
 3. The general ground-tissue. 
 
 4. The endodermis, the layer of the ground-tissue which abuts 
 on a stele; in the root the endodermis is the innermost layer of the 
 internal cortical tissue. 
 
 Structure. Speaking generally, the extra-stelar fundamental 
 tissue consists mainly of parenchymatous cells which have cellu- 
 lose walls and retain their protoplasmic cell-contents ; however, 
 supporting-tissue (stereom) is largely differentiated in the funda- 
 mental tissue, whether as a collenchyma or as sclerenchyma. In 
 cylindrical members (stems, roots, etc.) the cells are generally 
 somewhat elongated in the direction of the long axis of the 
 member. 
 
 1. The tegumentary tusue derived from the periblem has already 
 been described (p. 154). 
 
 2. The hypoderma of stems and leaves commonly consists of 
 stereom, either collenchymatous or sclerenchymatous : 
 
 collenc/iymatous hypoderma is especially characteristic of the 
 stems and leaf-stalks of herbaceous Dicotyledons (see Fig. 91, p. 
 132), but it occurs also among Pteridophyta in the petioles of the 
 Marattiaceae : 
 
 sclerenchymatous hypoderma may form a continuous layer of 
 more or less prosenchymatous cells (e.g. stem of some Ferns, 
 Equisetum hiemale, most Selaginellas, Casuarina, leaf of many 
 Cycads, Conifers, some Orchids, etc.) ; or it may form numerous 
 isolated strands (e.g. stems of Cyperacese, species of Juncus [Fig. 
 124 0], some Umbelliferae and Papilionaceae, many Equisetums ; 
 
32.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 161 
 
 leaf-blade of terrestrial forms of Isoetes, and of Cyperaceoe, Typha, 
 Sparganium, Dasylirion, Phormium, many Palms, Welwitschia). 
 The spines of leaves {e.g. Holly), also entire spiny leaves or 
 stipules, various emergences, such as the warts of Aloe verrucosa and 
 the prickles of the Rose, and the thorny branches of many plants 
 (e.g. Hawthorn, etc.) owe their hardness mainly to the develop- 
 ment of sclerenchymatous hypoderma, the cells of which are 
 generally elongated and fibrous, though they may be short as in 
 Aloe verrucosa and the Rose. 
 
 A peculiar form of hypoderma, termed aqueous tissue, is present in the 
 leaves of certain plants (e.g. some Ferns, Polypodium Lingua, Aspidium 
 coriaceurn ; species of 
 Tradescantia ; also in 
 the Scitamineaa, var- 
 ious Palms, Orchids, 
 Bromeliaceae, etc.) ; 
 it consists of one or L * * 
 
 more layers of thin- 
 walled parenchyma- 
 tous cells, destitute 
 of chloroplastids, 
 containing much 
 watery sap, and 
 arranged closely to- 
 gether without inter- 
 spaces ; the tissue 
 serves as a reservoir 
 for water. 
 
 FIG. 124. Diagram (after Schwendener) illustrating the dis- 
 tribution of the supporting-tissue or stereom, as seen in trans- 
 verse section of stems : A of Arum, maculaium having isolated 
 cortical stereom-strands; B of Allium vineaJe, with continuous 
 pericyclic stereom-ring ; C of Juncus glawcus (hollow), with 
 hypodermal stereom-strands and conjunctive stereom-strands : 
 /vascular bundles ; s stereom-strands ; I air-cavities. 
 
 The hypoderma 
 of the root, the 
 exodermis, com- 
 monly consists of 
 a single layer of cells, but in some plants the primitive layer 
 undergoes periclinal divisions, so that the exodermis comes to con- 
 sist of several layers (e.g. the Date, Pandanus, Asparagus, etc.). 
 
 The walls of the exodermal cells generally undergo cuticularisa- 
 tion and frequently become very much thickened, especially on 
 the lateral and external walls, in view of the position which it 
 eventually occupies as the external layer of the root (see p. 158). 
 In some cases it presents a peculiar localised thickening in the 
 form of a band extending round the upper, lower, and lateral 
 walls of the cells, a thickening which is therefore confined just to 
 the surfaces which are in contact with other cells belonging to 
 
 V. S. B. M 
 
162 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 32. 
 
 the same layer, and which appears in a transverse section as a 
 dark dot on the radial walls of the cells. 
 
 In some cases the cells of the exodermis are prosenchymatous 
 and sclerenchymatous (e.g. species of Carex, aerial roots of a 
 species of Philodendron). 
 
 When the exodermis is invested by tegumentary tissue (as in 
 aerial roots of Orchids, for instance) some of its cells retain their 
 thin unaltered walls, and are the passage-cells, by means of which 
 water can penetrate into the interior of the root. 
 
 3. The general ground-tissue of stems, leaves, and roots, lying 
 within the hypoderma, consists mainly of parenchymatous tissue, 
 with, frequently, a considerable differentiation of masses of fibrous 
 sclerenchymatous stereom. 
 
 In the root, where the extra-stelar ground-tissue is entirely cor- 
 tex, it can generally be distinguished into two regions, an external. 
 in which the arrangement of the cells is somewhat irregular, and 
 an internal, in which the cells are arranged in radiating rows. 
 
 In aerial stems and foliage-leaves, the more external, at least, 
 of these cells frequently take part in the assimilatory processes of 
 the plant; the cells contain chloroplastids and constitute assimi- 
 latory tissue. Towards the most highly illuminated surface of the 
 member, the cells are frequently so arranged that their longer 
 axes are perpendicular to the surface, that is, are parallel to 
 the incident rays of light; assimilatory tissue of this structure is 
 termed palisade-tissue ; the whole of the internal ground-tissue of 
 a leaf-blade is termed generally mesophyll. 
 
 In view of its great physiological importance a somewhat detailed account of 
 the structure of the mesophyll of the leaf-blade seems necessary. 
 
 The mesophyll consists of parenchymatous thin-walled cells of various form. 
 When the blade is thin, the whole mesophyll consists of assimilatory tissue ; 
 but when it is more or less fleshy and succulent, the more central part consists of 
 cells without chloroplastids, the assimilatory tissue being confined to the surface. 
 
 When the mesophyll is altogether assimilatory, the arrangement of the cells 
 is correlated with the symmetry of the leaf-blade. In a dorsiventral lamina 
 (Fig. 125) the structure of the mesophyll is different in relation with the upper 
 (ventral) and the lower (dorsal) surfaces. Towards the upper surface, which is 
 more directly exposed to light, the somewhat elongated cylindrical cells form 
 a compact palisade-tissue one or more rows in thickness ; whereas, towards the 
 lower shaded surface, the cells are less regular, frequently somewhat stellate 
 in form, leaving large intercellular spaces between them, constituting what is 
 known as the spongy parenchyma. The loose structure of the mesophyll 
 towards the lower surface of the blade is correlated with the presence of 
 numerous stomata in the epidermis of that surface (see p. 156). 
 
32.] 
 
 CHAPTER II THE TISSUES. 
 
 ii ni r T T TI T- jr g r m ^ " *\ >-A I '^SSi--^ : 
 
 '-^^^^L^^^^^^^i \ 
 
 r^ s ^^*^? - 3J2LE ^ i >^If V e8 V ^ 
 
1C4 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 32. 
 
 When the palisade-parenchyma consists of several layers, the transition from 
 the one form of tissue to the other is gradual. The vascular bundles run along 
 the junction of the two forms of tissue. 
 
 In a few cases (e.g. Alliwn ursinum, Alstroemeria, etc.) the leaf is twisted, so 
 that it is the morphologically lower (dorsal) surface which is directly exposed 
 to the light ; in these cases the palisade-tissue is developed in relation with 
 that surface, the spongy tissue in relation with the morphologically upper 
 (ventral), but shaded, surface. 
 
 When it so happens that all sides of the leaf are equally exposed to light, 
 the palisade-parenchyma is developed in relation with both the dorsal and 
 the ventral surfaces ; this is true, not only of isobilateral and of radial leaves, 
 but also of dorsiventral leaves (e.g. leaf-blade of Anchiisa itallca, Linosyris 
 vulgaris, Silene injlata, Dianthus Caryophyllus, etc.) ; in which case the spongy 
 parenchyma is either absent, or consists of a few layers in the middle of the 
 blade, but the intercellular spaces between the palisade-cells are, however, 
 relatively large. 
 
 In some cases, the mesophyll is not differentiated into palisade and spongy 
 parenchyma, but consists of rounded cells (e.g. suc- 
 culent leaves, such as those of species of Crassula, 
 etc.). 
 
 In those leaves in which the external portion only 
 of the mesophyll consists of assimilatory tissue, the 
 internal mesophyll being destitute of chloroplastids, 
 the assimilatory tissue may consist either of palisade- 
 tissue (e.g. some MyrtaceaB and Proteacese, species 
 of Statice, Welwitschia, etc.), or of rounded cells 
 (e.g. Mesembryanthemum, many Monocotyledons). 
 
 The cells of the assimilatory tissue sometimes 
 present other forms and arrangements. Thus the 
 assimilatory tissue of the leaf of Pinus and Cedrus 
 consists of polyhedral cells, the walls of which pre- 
 sent infoldings, the effect of which is to increase the 
 surface of the cell- wall. In other cases it consists 
 entirely or in part of elongated cells, resembling 
 palisade-cells, which are arranged with their long 
 axes parallel to the surface, either parallel to the 
 long axis of the leaf (e.g. Galanthus nivalis, Leu- 
 cojum vernum) or transversely (e.g. Iris germanica, 
 Erythronium Dens-Canis, species of Gladiolus and Tritonia). 
 
 The colourless mesophyll of succulent and coriaceous leaves consists of large 
 cells, containing much watery sap, constituting in fact (see p. 161) an aqueous 
 tissue (e.g. leaves of Aloe, Mesembryanthemum, some Myrtacese and Proteacese, 
 Welwitschia, etc.). In some Orchids (e.g. Oncidium maximum), the cells of the 
 aqueous tissue are scattered among the assimilatory cells ; in many Orchids 
 the cells of the aqueous tissue are tracheidal, having spirally-thickened walls, 
 as they are also in the stem and leaf of Nepenthes. 
 
 In many cases, especially in aquatic plants, the ground-tissue has 
 
 FIG. 126. Diagrammatic 
 transverse section of the 
 acicular leaf of a Fir: e 
 epidermis ; es sclerenchy- 
 matous hypoderma ; sp sto- 
 mata; ?i resin-ducts; s en- 
 dodermis enclosing the 
 tingle meristele ; g wood ; 6 
 bast. 
 
32.] 
 
 CHAPTER 11. THE TISSUES. 
 
 165 
 
 large air-cavities, either lysigenous or schizogenous (see p. 130) ; 
 generally speaking, they are of schizogenous origin in aquatic 
 plants, of lysigenous origin in land-plants (see Fig. 116 6). These 
 cavities frequently extend throughout the whole length of the 
 root or the leaf, and through an entire internode of the stem ; 
 but they may be interrupted at intervals by diaphragms {e.g. leaf 
 of some Monocotyledons ; root of Hydrocharis ; stem of Alisma, 
 Pontederia, Marsilia). When these cavities are largely developed 
 the member becomes a float {e.g. root of Jussiaea, see p, 64). 
 
 Assimilatory tissue is present in some aerial and some aquatic 
 roots {e.g. some 
 Orchids, Podo- 
 stemaceae, etc.). 
 
 4. The Endo- 
 dermis is, in the 
 great majority 
 of cases, a single 
 layer of cells ; it 
 is but rarely al- 
 together want- 
 ing {e.g. roots of 
 Podostemaceae) ; 
 it sometimes 
 consists of two 
 layers, formed 
 by the tangen- 
 tial division of 
 the cells of the 
 primitively sin- 
 gle layer {e.g. 
 root of Equise- 
 tum ; stem of 
 some Pterido- 
 
 phyta, such as the rhizome of Nephrolepis, and the stem of Salvinia 
 and Azolla). 
 
 Most commonly the cells of the endodermis are thin-walled, 
 with a suberised thickening-zone extending round the lateral and 
 upper and lower surfaces of the wall (see exodermis, p. 161), and 
 showing in transverse section (Fig. 127) as a black dot on the 
 radial wall. This peculiar marking is by no means always pre- 
 sent : it is frequently wanting in the endodermis of the stem in 
 
 ed 
 
 FIG. 127. Transverse section of central portion of the root of 
 Ranunculus repens (x 300): ed the endodermis, enclosing the 
 single central stele ; its radial walls show the sections of the 
 cuticularised thickening-bands ; x the four protoxylem-bundles ; 
 t the solid xylem; s the four phloem-bundles ; pc the pericyclej 
 Y the cortical ground-tissue. 
 
166 
 
 PART II. -THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLAKTS. 
 
 [ 32. 
 
 which case the endodermis can, in many cases, be distinguished 
 by the presence of starch-grains in its cells. 
 When the endodermis is double, this marking is 
 confined to the outer of the two layers. 
 
 This marking is not confined to the endodermis ; 
 it sometimes occurs also in the exodermis of 
 roots (see p. 161), and in one or more layers of 
 the internal cortex in some roots (one layer, next 
 the endodermis, in Cupressus, Taxus, Prunus, 
 Rosa, Lonicera, etc. ; several layers, Juniperus, 
 Sequoia, many Cruciferse such as Mustard and FlG 128 ._A cell 
 
 Wallflower). from the internal 
 
 The wajls of the endodermal cells frequently %,*&* 
 
 become sclerotic either over their whole surface, obliquely from the 
 
 or more frequently on the internal and lateral internal surface, 
 
 surfaces (Fig. 129). When this is the case, some berised" thickening 
 
 of the cells remain thin- walled, as passage-cells, zone - (After van 
 
 ., -i i -11 :-, . Tieghem: x 350.) 
 
 opposite to the wood-bandies within. 
 
 The Intra-stelar Fundamental Tissue, or Conjunctive Tissue of the 
 
 Stele. Morphology. The morphology of the conjunctive tissue, 
 
 of the stele varies somewhat in 
 accordance with the develop- 
 ment of the vascular tissue. 
 When a solid vascular cylinder 
 is produced, there may be no 
 conjunctive tissue at all, the 
 whole of the plerome having 
 developed into vascular tissue ; 
 or the conjunctive tissue may 
 be limited to one or more peri- 
 pheral layers, the pericycle, in- 
 vesting the vascular cylinder; 
 or, again, in addition to the 
 pericycle, the conjunctive tissue 
 may extend inwards to some 
 FIG. 129. Part of a transverse section of extent between the bundles (in- 
 
 a root ofirisjiorent.na; e sclerotic endo- terfoscicular) of the stele ; on the 
 
 dermis, with / a thin- walled passage-cell; _ 
 
 bast; 8 wood-vessel; c cortical ground- other hand, when the vascular 
 
 tissue; p pericycle. (After Strasburger: cylinder is hollow (see Fig. 
 
 130), the central space is oc- 
 cupied by medullary conjunctive tissue, constituting the pith, and 
 
32.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 167 
 
 connected with the pericycle by interfascicular conjunctive tissue 
 constituting the 'medullary rays. Pith and medullary rays are 
 generally absent from the steles of a polystelic member. 
 
 Structure. The Pericycle (at one time generally termed the 
 pericatnbium) is altogether wanting in a few cases only ; it is 
 absent when the endodermis consists of two layers (see p. 165) ; it 
 is also absent in the roots of Podostemaceae, rootlets of Pontederia 
 crassipes, in the stem of Ceratophyllum and probably of other 
 water-plants. 
 
 It is usually a continuous membrane ; but in some cases it is 
 interrupted by projections of the vascular tissue (e.g. by the 
 xylem-bundles in the root 
 of some Graminese and Cy- 
 peraceae ; by the phloem- 
 bundles in the roots of 
 Potamogeton, Naias, Zos- 
 tera). It may consist 
 throughout of a single 
 layer of cells (e.g. roots 
 of most Angiosperms and 
 of some Vascular Crypto- 
 gams; stems of Dipsa- 
 cacese, Valerianacea?, 
 Rubiacese, Lobeliaceaa, 
 Campanulacese, Plantagi- 
 naeeaa, Polemoniacese, etc., 
 and generally of aquatic 
 Angiosperms) ; or of more 
 than one layer throughout 
 (roots of some Dicotyle- 
 dons, e.g. Vine, Piptero- 
 carpus, Ficus rubiginosa, 
 etc., and of Gymnosperms 
 generally ; commonly in 
 the stem and leaf -stalk) ; 
 or in part of one layer and 
 part of more than one (e.g. 
 root of some Ferns and Leguminosse) . 
 
 The pericycle may be homogeneous or heterogeneous ; that is, it 
 may consist of the same kind of tissue throughout, or of several 
 kinds of tissue. The typical homogeneous pericycle consists of 
 
 FIG. 130. A transverse section of a young stem 
 of Anstolochia Sipho, illustrating the arrangement 
 of the primary tissues in a monostelic stem, in 
 which the vascular cylinder is hollow, enclosing a 
 pith. (After Strasburger : x 9). c Cortical ground- 
 tissue, with collenchyma cl; e endodermis ; pc peri- 
 cycle, continuous by means of interfascicular con- 
 junctive tissue (medullary rays) with the medullary 
 conjunctive tissue m (pith) ; sic ring of sclerenchy- 
 ma belonging to the pericycle ; fv vascular bundles 
 in an interrupted circle ; they are open and colla- 
 teral; cb bast; p protophloem; fc fascicular cam- 
 bium ; ifc interfascicular cambium ; vl wood ; the 
 central pointed end of each wood-bundle consists 
 of protoxylem, and the central ends of the whole 
 ring of wood-bundles constitute the medullary 
 sheath. 
 
168 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [- 32. 
 
 thin-walled parenchymatous cells, with, protoplasmic contents, 
 which are capable of becoming merismatic. In some cases the 
 primarily thin- walled cells eventually become sclerotic, either 
 throughout the whole pericycle, or in certain parts only ; this 
 commonly occurs in the roots of Monocotyledons. 
 
 Generally speaking, the pericycle of the root is homogeneous ; 
 when it is heterogeneous, it is so in consequence of the presence 
 of glandular tissue (secretory ducts) (e.g. Umbelliferee, Araliaceae, 
 Pittosporacese, Hypericaceee) ; it never contains fibres. 
 
 FIG. 131. Transverse section of a root of Allium Cepa, showing the central stele without 
 pith: c cortex; e endodermis ; p pericycle; sp+a, spiral and annular vessels (protoxylem); 
 c pitted wood-vessels of the primary wood ; v bast-bundle ; the six wood-bundles alternate 
 with the six bast-bundles ; the wood-bundles develope centripetally and meet,, so that BO 
 piih is formed. (After Strasburger : x 240.) 
 
 The pericycle of the stem and of the leaf -stalk, on the contrary, 
 is generally heterogeneous, owing principally to the differentiation 
 of a portion of it into collenchyma (e.g. some Composite, Bark- 
 hausia fcstida, Sonchus oleraceus), or into fibres which are gener- 
 ally sclerotic, but not in all cases (e.g. Apocynaceae, Asclepiadacese, 
 Convolvulaceae, Flax) ; or it may be heterogeneous in consequence 
 of the presence of secretory ducts (e.g. Hyperieum, Pittosporum, 
 
32.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 169 
 
 Hydrocotyle vulgaris, Bupleurum fruticosum and other Umbelliferae) ; 
 or, in consequence of the presence of both secretory ducts and of 
 fibres (e.g. Ligulifloral and Tubulifloral Composites.) 
 
 A remarkable form of conjunctive tissue is that which invests the two vascular 
 bundles in the acicular leaves of Pinus, and, to a less degree, of other Conifers. 
 The tissue consists of parenchyma with some fibrous sclerenchyma ; in the 
 parenchyma two special kinds of cells can be distinguished, which constitute 
 what is sometimes termed the transfusion-tissue ; namely, cells with unlignified 
 and unpitted walls, distinguished by their abundant protoplasmic and proteid 
 contents ; tracheidal cells with slightly lignified walls and bordered pits, without 
 protoplasmic contents; the former may be regarded as an extension of the 
 sieve-tissue of the bundle, the latter as an extension of the tracheal tissue. 
 
 The fibres (stereom) of the pericycle are distributed in various ways. They 
 may either form a continuous ring, separated from the phloem of the vascular 
 bundles by several layers of parenchymatous pericycle-cells (e.g. Berberis, 
 Cucurbitaceffi, Caryophyllacese, Lonicereae, Aristolochiaceae (Fig. 130), and many 
 Monocotyledons, especially in Gramineae, Cyperaceas, and Juncaceaa; or the ring 
 may be in direct contact with the vascular bundles (many Dicotyledons, e.g. 
 Hypochceris radicata, Podophyllum, Plantago, etc. ; many Monocotyledons, e.g. 
 Kestiaceae, Liliaceae, Smilacese, Iridacese, Orchidacese, Typhaceae, Tamus, etc. 
 [see Fig. 124B] ) ; or the fibres may form strands opposite to the phloem of 
 each bundle, either abutting directly on the phloem, or separated from it by 
 one or more layers of parenchymatous pericycle-cells (e.g. among Dicotyledons, 
 various Composite, Labiataa, Leguminosaa, Banunculaceae, etc. ; exactly this 
 arrangement does not occur in Monocotyledons) ; or the fibres may be scattered 
 either singly or in groups, without any relation to the vascular bundles (e.g. 
 many Solanaceas, Iberis sempervirens, species of Viburnum , Fraxinus dimorpha, 
 Ligustrum VM/f/are, Apocynaceae, Asclepiadaceae, Malvaceae, etc). 
 
 The Pith (or medulla) consists, typically, of parenchymatous 
 cells with thin walls and protoplasmic contents ; but in many 
 cases sclerenchyma is differentiated in it. 
 
 The most important fact with regard to the parenchyma of the 
 pith is that, in many cases, the cells forming the central portion 
 of the pith soon die, or even the whole of them (e.g. Elder). When 
 this is the case, the dead cell- walls frequently undergo disorganisa- 
 tion, so that the stem becomes hollow. 
 
 The sclerenchyma of the pith may consist of scattered strands 
 (e.g. stems of some Palms, such as Cocos, Astrocaryum, Leo- 
 poldinia) ; or it may form a ring connecting the inner ends of 
 the bundles of the hollow vascular cylinder (e.g. Bougainvillea 
 spectabilis, woody Piperaceae such as Artanthe and Chavica). 
 
 The bulk of the pith varies very much. It is relatively very 
 large in tuberous sjioots, such as the Potato, Apios, etc. 
 
170 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 33. 
 
 The Interfascicular Conjunctive Tissue consists typically of 
 parenchymatous cells with thin walls and protoplasmic contents ; 
 bat it is frequently sclerenchymatous where it abuts on the 
 vascular bundles, thus contributing to the formation of a more or 
 less complete sheath of sclerenchyma round them (e.g. many 
 Monocotyledons) . 
 
 The various systems of sclerenchymatous supporting-tissue (stereom) 
 described above, the hypodermal, the cortical, the peri cyclic, the interfascicular, 
 and the medullary, may be connected with each other in various combinations. 
 Thus, the hypodermal and the cortical systems may be continuous ; or the 
 hypodermal, cortical, and pericyclic; the pericyclic and the interfascicular, 
 etc. ; as the mechanical conditions of the member may render necessary (see 
 Fig. 124). 
 
 33. The Vascular Tissue-System. The primary vascular 
 tissue is differentiated from the procambium or primary desmogen 
 (see p. 151) of the stele in the form of strands or bundles, vascular 
 bundles. The vascular tissues of the bundles are either tracheal 
 tissue (p. 133), which is always lignified, and is termed wood or 
 xylem ; or sieve-tissue (p. 135), which is termed bast or phloem. 
 A vascular bundle may consist, either exclusively of wood or of bast ; 
 or of both wood and bast, when it is said to be a conjoint bundle. 
 It is generally the case that a varying proportion of sclerenchyma 
 (stereom) is associated with the vascular tissue ; hence the bundles 
 are frequently spoken of as fibro-vascular bundles. 
 
 As a rule, an equal number of wood-bundles and of bast-bundles 
 are differentiated in a stele, whether they be isolated or conjoined ; 
 there may be only one of each (e.g. finer branches of the dicho- 
 tomous roots of most Lycopodiums) or there may be a very 
 considerable number (e.g. stems of Monocotyledons). There are, 
 however, some exceptions to this rule : thus, the stele of the root 
 of some Lycopodiums (L. inundatum and Selago) and Ophio- 
 glossums (0. vulgatum and lusitanicum) contains one bast-bundle 
 and two wood-bundles ; again, in the roots of Selaginella and 
 Isoetes, the stele encloses one wood-bundle and two bast-bundles. 
 
 The primary vascular bundles differentiated in a stele (whether 
 a monostele or a polystele) are frequently distinct from each other 
 for a considerable distance, for instance, throughout an iiiternode 
 of a stem ; but very commonly they are found to fuse at shorter 
 intervals (e.g. stem of Lycopodium), or they may be altogether 
 fused into one or more vascular masses ; a stele presenting this 
 intimate connexion of the bundles is said to be gamodesmic. An 
 
33.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 171 
 
 analogous condition is sometimes presented by schizostelic mem- 
 bers, where the schizosteles are developed in partial continuity 
 {e.g. stem of Equisetum, see Fig. 116). The resulting vascular 
 mass is generally a solid cylinder, but it is occasionally a hollow 
 cylinder. 
 
 With regard to the occurrence of vascular tissue in the gametophyte 
 generation, and in the sporophyte of the lower plants, it may be stated that 
 liguified vascular tissue (i.e. wood) does not occur in any gametophyte, nor in 
 the sporopbyte of any plant below the Pteridophyta. However, in the stem 
 of the gametophytic shoots of some Mosses there is a solid central stele con- 
 sisting of tissue which is functionally vascular tissue ; the same is true of the 
 stern (seta) of the Moss-sporophyte in certain cases. Sieve-tissue has been 
 found in some of the larger Brown Seaweeds. 
 
 The primary vascular tissue-system extends continuously 
 throughout the body of the sporophyte of the higher plants ; the 
 vascular bundles of root, stem, and leaf are all in direct com- 
 munication. 
 
 The arrangement and course of the vascular bundles are in- 
 timately connected with the morphology of the plant and with the 
 differentiation of its members. In elongated members (stems, 
 petioles, roots) the bundles run longitudinally, so that a transverse 
 section of such a member shows transverse sections of its vascular 
 bundles. 
 
 In the primary root the longitudinal course of the bundles is 
 simple ; there is an axial vascular cylinder, either solid or hollow, 
 consisting of straight more or less distinct bundles of wood and 
 bast, and extending from the growing-point backwards to where 
 the root merges into the stem ; from this cylinder there arise 
 lateral offsets, which constitute the steles of the lateral branches 
 of the root. 
 
 In the stem the course of the bundles is more complicated, on 
 account of the fact that the stem bears lateral members, leaves, 
 which differ from itself or from its branches. In some cases, the 
 bundles of the stem, when traced upward toward the growing- 
 point, are found to terminate in the young leaves ; whilst in other 
 cases the bundles end (like those of the root) in the plerome of the 
 growing-point ; bundles of the former kind are distinguished as 
 common (i.e. common to stem and leaf), and, in their course in the 
 stem, are termed leaf-traces ; bundles of the latter kind are distin- 
 guished as cauline (i.e. confined to the stem). 
 
 Stems with common bundles are generally monostelic ; the leaf 
 
172 
 
 PART IT. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [33. 
 
 traces do not, however, follow a uniform course in all cases. 
 Thus, they may proceed to the centre of the stem and form a 
 solid vascular cylinder (e.g. Isoetes among Pteridophyta ; and 
 certain aquatic Monocotyledons ; species of Potamogeton, Zanic- 
 hellia, Althenia, Ruppia). Or they may form a hollow cylinder. 
 
 In the simplest case 
 of this (as in Osmun- 
 dacese, most Gymno- 
 sperms and Dicotyle- 
 dons) the bundles 
 (leaf-traces) entering 
 the stem from a leaf 
 are few in number, or 
 even only one ; they 
 penetrate to an equal 
 depth in the stem 
 (also in the schizo- 
 stelic Equisetum, 
 Fig. 116), and run 
 vertically downwards 
 through one or two 
 intern odes, joining at 
 a node with the 
 bundles entering the 
 stem from a lower 
 leaf; sometimes their 
 lower ends are bifur- 
 cate so that they join 
 with the bundles of 
 the lower leaves (Fig. 
 132 B). When the 
 1 eaf - traces entering 
 the stem from a leaf 
 are more numerous, 
 they penetrate to 
 various depths in the 
 stele, and their course 
 is usually not vertical, 
 but more or less 
 curved : they may then form two circles (e.g. Cucurbitacese, 
 Phytolacca, Piperaceas) ; or many circles, more or less irregular, 
 
 FIG. 132. Diagram of the course of the vascular 
 bundles in stems. A Longitudinal section through the 
 axis of a Palm-stem, showing a transverse section of half 
 of it. The leaves (cut off above the insertion) are hypothe- 
 tically conceived of as distichous and amplexicaul, and so 
 are seen on both sides of the stem, 1 m 2 m3 m being the 
 median line of each. B Outside view and transverse 
 section of Cerastium (hypothetically transparent, to show 
 the internal bundles). The decussate leaves (1, 2, 3) are cut 
 off. The bundle proceeding from each leaf divides into two 
 above the leaf immediately below it, and the branches of 
 all the bundles unite to form the four thin bundles which 
 alternate in the section with the thicker ones. In the 
 section, m is the pith, r the cortex, v the medullary ray. 
 The xylem in the fibro-vascular bundles is indicated by 
 shading. 
 
33.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 173 
 
 trenching on the pith (e.g. many Ranunculaceee, such as Actaea, 
 Cimicif uga, Thalictrum, Podophyllum, Diphylleia ; Nymphseaceae ; 
 Monocotyledons generally). A good example of this is afforded 
 by a Palm stem (Fig. 132 A). The median leaf- traces first tend 
 toward the centre of the stem ; they then bend outward, thinning 
 out gradually as they descend, and coalesce with the lateral 
 bundles, which do not penetrate so deeply, in the pericycle at a 
 point much lower down. Furthermore, each bundle is somewhat 
 twisted in its course, so that the lower end lies toward a different 
 side of the stem from that on which it entered it. In these 
 cases, when there is a well-defined external ring, the more internal 
 bundles are termed medullary bundles. 
 
 In some plants a number of independent phloem-bundles are developed in the 
 outer part of the pith of the stem, just within the ring of normal vascular 
 bundles (e.g. Solanaceee, Convolvulaceae, Gentianaceae, Apocynaceae, Asclepiad- 
 acese, some Tubulifloral Compositae, CampanulaceaB, etc.), which are termed 
 medullary phloem-bundles. 
 
 Stems with cauline bundles may be monostelic or polystelic ; 
 monostelic stems with cauline bundles are generally gamodesmic 
 having a solid vascular cylinder (e.g. Lycopodium among Pterido- 
 phyta ; some aquatic Dicotyledons, Utricularia, Aldrovanda, 
 Callitriche, Myriophyllum, Ceratophyllum ; some aquatic Mono- 
 cotyledons, Elodea canadensis, Hydrilla verticillata, ISTaias ; and the 
 saprophytic Orchidaceous plants Epipogum Gmelini and Oorallorhiza 
 innata) ; polystelic stems with cauline bundles (e.g. most Ferns, 
 Hydropterideee, Selaginella, among Pteridophyta) are generally 
 gamostelic, the steles forming a network, which can be isolated 
 as a skeleton of vascular tissue, each mesh of which corresponds 
 to the insertion of a leaf. 
 
 The leaf-traces of stems with common bundles, as also the leaf- 
 bundles in stems with a cauline vascular tissue-system, do not 
 always at once join the stele, but may remain isolated for a longer 
 or shorter distance, constituting in fact meristeles (see p. 153) 
 in the cortical region of the stem, or, as they are more commonly 
 called, cortical bundles (e.g. Casuarina ; species of Begonia ; some 
 Ferns, such as Pteris, Aspidium, etc.) 
 
 The relative position of the phloem and of the xylem in a con- 
 joint bundle is subject to some variation ; they may either be 
 side by side, when the bundle is said to be collateral ; or the one 
 may more or less completely invest and surround the other, when 
 the bundle is said to be concentric. 
 
174 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 33 
 
 In the collateral bundle, the wood and the bast are so situated 
 that they both lie on a straight radial line drawn through the 
 bundle from the centre of the member to the surface, the wood 
 being nearer the centre, and the bast nearer the surface (see 
 Fig. 130). This type of bundle is common in the monostelic or 
 
 FIG. 133. Transverse section of an open, collateral, conjoint, vascular bundle of the 
 stsm of Ranunculus repens-. s spiral vessel of the protoxylem at the inner (central) end of 
 the wood; m pitted vessel of the wood; c cambium; v a sieve-tube of the bast with 
 adjacent granular companion-cells; vg sheath of sclereuchymatous conjunctive tissue. 
 (After Strasburger : x 180.) 
 
 schizostelic stems and leaf-stalks of Phanerogams and of some 
 Pfceridophyta (Osmundacea3,'Ophioglossace8e, Equisetum). 
 
 In some stems (e.g. Myrtacese, Onagracese, Apocynaceae, Solan- 
 aceae, most Convolvulacea3, Cucurbitaceae, etc.) there is a second 
 
33.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 175 
 
 bast-bundle on the inner (medullary) side of the wood of the con- 
 joint bundle ; such a bundle is distinguished as bicollateral. 
 
 In a concentric bundle, either the bast is surrounded by the 
 wood, or the wood by the bast, more or less completely : the 
 bicollateral bundle is, in fact, a structure intermediate between 
 the collateral and the concentric bundle. The former type of con- 
 centric bundle occurs in the rhizomes of various Monocotyledons 
 (Acorus, Iris, Cyperus, Carex, etc.), and in the medullary bundles 
 of the stem of some Dicotyledons (Rheum, Statice, Ricinus, Piper, 
 etc.). The latter type is rare in Phanerogams (e.g. the cortical 
 and medullary bundles of the MelastomacesD) ; but it prevails in 
 the Filicinse and in 
 Selaginella,, when 
 the gamodesmic 
 bundles (two or 
 more) of each stele 
 of the polystelic 
 stem, form a cen- 
 tral mass of wood 
 completely, or 
 nearly completely, 
 surrounded by a 
 ring of bast. 
 
 The relative posi- 
 tion of the phloem- 
 bundles and xylem- 
 bundles when they 
 are distinct from 
 each other is such 
 that they alternate 
 with each other so 
 that a radius drawn 
 from the centre to the surface of the member cuts through either 
 a phloem or a xylem-bundle, but not through both (Fig. 136). This 
 arrangement occurs only in monostelic members ; it is common to 
 all roots, and occurs in the stem of Lycopodium and Psilotum 
 though in a less regular manner than in roots. It is commonly 
 termed the radial arrangement. 
 
 The Differentiation of the Primary Vascular Bundle. The first 
 indication of the development of vascular tissue in the plerome 
 is the differentiation of one or more strands of narrow elongated 
 
 t' 
 
 FIG. 131. Transverse section of a concentric bundle, 
 with external wood, from the rhizome of Iris ( x 350) : t 
 tracheae ; t' protoxylem ; s sieve-tubes ; g companion-cells, 
 of the internal bast. 
 
176 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [33. 
 
 merismatic cells, the procambium or primary desmogen (see p. 
 151) ; each procambium-strand of the plerome becomes a vascular 
 bundle of the stele. 
 
 The development of the vascular tissue does not take place 
 simultaneously throughout the whole transverse section of the 
 procambium-strand, but begins at one definite point, and extends 
 in one or more directions from that point. 
 
 The development of the xylem-bundle (or part of a conjoint 
 bundle) begins with the differentiation of one or a few tracheids 
 or tracheae, constituting the protoxylem ; the walls of the corre- 
 sponding pro- 
 cambium cells 
 become spiral- 
 ly thickened 
 and lignified, 
 and the proto- 
 plasmic con- 
 tents of the 
 cells disap- 
 pear. It is 
 an important 
 generalisation 
 that spiral 
 or annular 
 vessels (or 
 tracheides) are 
 characteristic 
 of, and abso- 
 lutely confined 
 to, the proto- 
 xylem of the 
 bundle. The 
 remainder of 
 
 the primary wood (i.e. the wood which is developed from the 
 procambium) is then gradually differentiated, the walls of the 
 tracheides or tracheae presenting one or other of the various kinds 
 of pitted marking (p. 104). 
 
 Similarly, the development of the phloem-bundle (or part of a 
 conjoint bundle) begins with the differentiation of a small group 
 of sieve-tubes and companion-cells, constituting the protophloem, 
 which do not, however, differ in any marked manner from the 
 
 FIG. 135. Part of a transverse section of the stele of the Sar- 
 saparilla-root (Smilax) : r cortex ; ed, endodermis with passage- 
 cells d; the pericycle and the interfascicular conjunctive tissue v 
 are sclerenchymatous ; v' the pith ; x the protoxylem, and t a pitted 
 vessel of a wood-bundle: s a bast-bundle. The alternation, or 
 radial arrangement, of the wood and bast-bundles is shown. ( x 
 300.) 
 
33.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 177 
 
 TTL 
 
 rest of the primary phloem, but their cavities soon become 
 obliterated, so that they then look like strands of swollen cell- 
 wall (Fig. 137). 
 
 The details of the differentiation of the primary vascular tissue 
 are essentially the same as in the case of the secondary vascular 
 lissue described on p. 202. 
 
 The longitudinal differentiation of the primary vascular tissue does 
 not take place in the same order in all cases. In roots, and in 
 stems with cauline vascular tissue, the longitudinal differentiation 
 proceeds acropetally. In stems with common bundles the differ- 
 entiation usually begins in the procambium-strand at a node, pro- 
 ceeding both downwards 
 in the internode of the 
 stem, and outward into 
 the young leaf. 
 
 In the majority of in- 
 stances, the whole of the 
 procambium - strand be- 
 comes differentiated into 
 permanent tissue, either 
 wood or bast ; this is true 
 for all roots, and for the 
 stems of nearly all Pterido- 
 phyta and Monocotyledons 
 (Fig. 137). Bundles of this 
 kind are said to be closed. 
 
 In the Stems of most FlG- 130. Transverse section of the central part 
 
 GymnOSpermS and DlCO- of tne root of Acorus Calamus (after Strasbnrger : 
 
 , T -, ,1 ,, x 90) ; c lacunar cortex; eendodermis ; p pericycle; 
 
 tyledons, On the Other spriinarywood . bund ies, with the small spiral vessels 
 
 hand, the whole of the (protoxylem) externally; v bast bundles ; m pith; 
 
 . the arrangement of the bundles is radial. 
 
 procambium is not con- 
 verted into the primary wood and bast of the collateral conjoint 
 bundle, but a portion of it persists as an embryonic merismatic 
 tissue, the cambium, forming a transverse zone between the wood 
 on the inner (central) side and the bast on the outer side (see 
 Figs. 130, 139). Such a bundle is said to be open. 
 
 Some few Dicotyledons have closed bundles (i.e. no cambium) in the stem, 
 e.g. Adoxa, Ranunculus Ficaria, Nymphseaceas, Myrlophyllum, Utricularia, etc. 
 
 The position of the protoxylem and of the protophloem in the trans- 
 verse section of the bundle is not the same in the different members 
 
 v. s. r, N 
 
178 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 33. 
 
 The protophloem is in all cases peripheral : and though the proto- 
 xylem is also generally peripheral, it is sometimes internal (as in 
 the bundles in the petiole of Cycads, in the stem of Isoetes, and in 
 the concentric steles of stems and petioles of many Ferns), being 
 more or less surrounded by the rest of the primary xylem. 
 
 Fio. 137. Transverse section of a conjoint, collateral, closed, vascular bundle of the stem 
 of a Monocotyledon (Zra Mais) : a outer or peripheral end of the bundle ; i inner or central 
 end; p conjunctive tissue, the portion immediately investing the bundle being sclerenchy- 
 matous; I lysigenous intercellular space; sr spiral and annular vessels constituting 
 the protoxylem; g g large pitted vessels, between vrhich lie the smaller pitted vessels of 
 the wood ; v v v sieve-tubes of the bast with intervening companion-cells; just outside the 
 bast, and within the sclerenchymatous sheath, the remains of the protophloem are visible. 
 (After Sachs: x553.) 
 
 In members, whether monostelic or polystelic, in which the pri- 
 mary bundles or the steles are arranged in one or more circles (or 
 
33.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 179 
 
 other figure corresponding to the sectional outline of the member), 
 the orientation of the bundles in the stele, as indicated by the posi- 
 tion of'the protoxylem, bears a definite relation to the symmetry of 
 the transverse section of the member. For instance, in medullate 
 monostelic stems (Fig- 130) the protoxylem forms the innermost 
 or central portion of the bundle; the broken circle of protoxylem- 
 groups is sometimes specially designated the medullary sheath. 
 This condition also obtains in schizostelic members, as in the 
 rhizomes and aerial stems of Equisetum (see Fig. 116). In the 
 root, whether the vascular cylinder be medullate or not, the 
 protoxylem is always outermost or peripheral, abutting on the 
 pericycle (Figs. 135-6). This is also the case in monostelic stems 
 which are not medullate {e.g. stem of Lycopodium). The proto- 
 phloem is always external, abutting on the pericycle. 
 
 The protoxylem is a structure of considerable morphological 
 importance, serving as it does to mark the individuality of the 
 xylem-bundle of which it forms part. This means of distinction 
 is often of great use in determining the constitution of large masses 
 of primary vascular tissue, indicating whether they consist of one 
 bundle, or are gamodesmic, consisting of several fused bundles (e.g. 
 solid vascular cylinders of roots, stem of Lycopodium, vascular 
 strands of polystelic stems, etc.), and if the latter, of how many 
 bundles they consist. 
 
 It has been customary to speak of such a gamodesmic vascular mass as a 
 single bundle, describing it as diarch, triarch, tetrarch, etc., according to the 
 number of protoxylem-groups detected ; but this use of the terms is inaccurate. 
 Every xylem-bundle has but one protoxylem-group ; that is, it is monarch ; 
 wherever two or more protoxylem-groups are to be found, they indicate the 
 fusion of a corresponding number of bundles ; in this sense the terms may 
 be convenient to describe the composition of masses of vascular tissue. 
 
 The transition, from the root fo the stem. Inasmuch as, generally 
 speaking, the type of primary structure of the root differs so con- 
 siderably from that of the corresponding stem, the transition from 
 the one to the other is a matter of some importance. Taking as an 
 illustration the case of a plant with a monostelic stem, the passage 
 from the radially arranged separate bundles of the primary root to 
 the collateral conjoint bundles of the stem is effected on this wise: 
 generally speaking, on tracing the wood- and bast-bundles of the 
 root upwards into the stem, the wood-bundles are found to twist 
 on themselves so that the protoxylem of each bundle, from being- 
 peripheral in the root, comes to be central in the stem ; at the same 
 
180 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 time they change their position somewhat, so that they come to lie 
 on the same radii as the bast-bundles, or the bast-bundles may also 
 deviate somewhat from their straight course, and thus the conjoint 
 collateral bundles come to be constituted. As a rule, these changes 
 of position are accompanied by an increase in number of the bun- 
 dles, each of the bundles of the root bifurcating above, so that 
 there are commonly twice as many bundles in the stem as in the 
 corresponding root. 
 
 The structure of the primary bundle. The primary wood (whether 
 
 f; s 
 
 ft' 
 
 FIG. 138. Radial longitudinal section of a conjoint, closed, collateral bundle from the 
 stem of a Monocotyledon (Zea Mais ; after Strasburger, x 180) ; to the right is the central 
 (medullary) limit of the bundle ; to the left the peripheral (cortical) limit; c p protophloem; 
 o sieve-tubes of the bast, with companion-cells s ; spaa', the protoxylem; aa' remains of 
 ruptured annular vessel lying in the lysiyenous lacuna I; vg sheaths of sclerenchymatous 
 conjunctive tissue. (Compare this with lig. 137.) 
 
 in an isolated or a conjoint bundle) consists essentially of lignified 
 tracheal tissue (tracheae, or tracheids, p. 134), together with a 
 varying proportion of wood-parenchyma, more or less lignified, the 
 cells being occasionally somewhat fibrous. The protoxylem (see p. 
 176) is usually a conspicuous feature; in transverse section, on 
 account of the relative small ness of its tracheae (or tracheids) ; in 
 
33.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 181 
 
 longitudinal section, on account of the loose spiral or annulnr 
 thickenings of their walls. The looseness of the spiral or annular 
 markings is due to the fact that these vascular cells are the first 
 formed constituents of the bundles, and that consequently they 
 are considerably stretched by the continuance, for a time, of the 
 growth in length of the adjacent undifferentiated tissues ; hence 
 the successive thickenings become more or less widely separated, 
 and the wall of the vessels may be torn and destroyed (Fig. 138). 
 
 The primary bast or phloem consists essentially of sieve-tissue 
 (p. 135) and of parenchyma. The sieve-tissue consists in all cases 
 mainly of sieve-tubes of simple structure (Fig. 97, p. 136), con- 
 stituting the vascular tissue of the bast, with which companion- 
 celle are associated in Angiosperms but not in Gymnosperms 
 and Pteridophyta. In some Angiosperms, particularly in the 
 closed bundles of Monocotyledons (Fig. 137), there is no bast- 
 parenchyma, the whole bast consisting of sieve-tubes and com- 
 panion-cells : but this tissue is generally present, and is readily 
 distinguishable from the companion-cells by the larger size of its 
 cells. In some cases (e.g. some Palms) the bast- parenchyma is to 
 some extent replaced by sclerenchymatous fibres ; otherwise the 
 occurrence of fibres in the primary bast is rare. 
 
 The cambium is present in the collateral primary bundles cf 
 the stem of most Gymnosperms and Dicotyledons ; it is never 
 present in primary bundles of any other type of structure ; nor, 
 on the other hand, is it always present in a collateral bundle 
 (absent in Equisetum, Monocotyledons, some herbaceous Dicoty- 
 ledons, see p. 177). 
 
 It lies between the bast externally and the wood internally, and 
 consists essentially of a single layer of merismatic embryonic cells 
 rich in protoplasmic contents, and with walls of cellulose. In 
 transverse section (see Fig. 133) the cells are oblong, with their 
 longer axes placed tangentially ; in longitudinal section (Fig. 
 153) the cells are seen to be elongated and somewhat prosenchy- 
 matous, like the procambium-cells, where they abut on the wood 
 or on the bast ; but where they abut on primary medullary rays 
 they are short and parenchymatous. 
 
 Variation* in the structure of a bundle. It is mentioned on p. 173 
 that the leaf-trace bundles of Palms thin out as they curve out- 
 wards towards the pericyclc in the lower part of their course ; the 
 bundle is, in fact, thickest where it is most deeply placed in the 
 stem ; the difference in size of the bundle, as seen in trans- 
 
182 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [33. 
 
 verse section, is due a variation in the number, and to some extent 
 also, in the size of its constituent elements, more especially in the 
 wood. 
 
 The variation in structure of a vascular bundle can be well 
 observed in connexion with the foliage-leaf. The number of 
 bundles entering the leaf (petiole, when present) from the stem 
 
 C si Jc I J J 
 
 K > /' t k f C 
 
 e ft 
 
 FIG. 139. A Transverse section of an open conjoint, collateral, vascular bundle in the 
 stem of the Sunflower. M Pith. X Xylem. C Cambium. P Phloem. R Cortex; s 
 small, and ' lai-ge spiral vessels (protoxylem) ; t pitted vessels; t' pitted vessels in course 
 of formation from the cambium; h wood-fibres; 6 sieve tubes; b fibres of the hetero- 
 geneous pericycle ; e endodermis or bundle-sheath; ic inter-fascicular conjunctive tissue. 
 B Radial vertical section through a similar bundle (somewhat simplified) lettered like the 
 former. ( x 150) . 
 
 varies from one to many ; these bundles, when derived from a 
 monostelic stem, are segments or branches of the stele (meristeles), 
 
33.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 183 
 
 when derived from a poljstelic stem, they are entire steles. The 
 structure of the leaf-bundles corresponds essentially with that of 
 the stem-bundles ; if the latter are concentric or collateral, etc., so 
 are the former, as a general rule ; but in the Cycads the bundles in 
 the petiole have the protoxylem central next to the bast (see p. 178) 
 instead of in the normal position which it occupies in the stem- 
 bundles ; and again, whilst the bundles in the petiole of most 
 Ferns are, like those of the stem, concentric, in the ribs of the 
 lamina they become collateral. At the same time it should be 
 pointed out that whilst the general relations of the bundle are 
 usually the same in both stem and leaf, the changed conditions 
 usually involve a somewhat different description. For instance, 
 the common conjoint bundles of the stem of a Dicotyledon are 
 collateral, the protoxylem being the most internal or central part 
 of the bundle, the protophloern the most external or peripheral 
 part ; on tracing a bundle into a leaf which is dorsiventral, and 
 lies in a nearly horizontal plane of expansion, the xylem of the 
 conjoint bundle will be found to lie towards the upper (ventral) 
 surface of the leaf, with the protoxylem uppermost, whilst the 
 phloem is directed towards the lower (dorsal) surface, with the 
 protophloem lowermost ; the description of the position and rela- 
 tions of the bundle must be in accordance with the symmetry of 
 the member of which it forms part. 
 
 The Termination of the Vascular Bundle. The gradual thinning 
 out and termination of the vascular bundle can nowhere be more 
 satisfactorily studied than in leaves. The bundles, when traced 
 towards their ultimate ramifications, are seen to diminish in bulk 
 in consequence, partly, of a reduction in number of the constituent 
 elements, and partly also to the smaller size of the elements which 
 still remain. The mode of termination of the vascular bundles in 
 foliage-leaves is briefly as follows. In many cases the bundles 
 have only free ends, as in most Ptendophyta (e.g. Adiantum, 
 Selaginella), and generally in small reduced leaves. In others, 
 there are no free ends, but the finer branches anastomose with each 
 other to form a closed system ; this is characteristically the case 
 where the venation is parallel (e.g. Monocotyledons, see p. 55). 
 In others, again, the finer branches anastomose, forming a network 
 from the meshes of which the ultimate branches project among the 
 mesophyll-cells as free ends : this obtains generally among Dicoty- 
 ledons. The free ends of the bundles consist of one or two .rows 
 of short tracheids with close spiral markings ; no sieve- tubes can 
 
184 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 34. 
 
 be traced quite to the extremity ; they disappear further back, 
 and their place is taken by parenchymatous cells. 
 
 Bundles often terminate in connection with glandular tissue ; 
 for instance, in chalk-glands (see Fig. 100, p. 139), or nectaries. 
 
 34. Histology of the Development of Secondary 
 Members. It has been already pointed out (p. 17) that the 
 growing- point is the seat of development, not only of new tissue, 
 but also of new members ; and further (p. 19), that secondary 
 members are developed either by dichotomy or by lateral out- 
 growth . 
 
 A. Development of normal branches of the shoot or of the thallus. 
 only takes place at the growing-point, whether apical or inter- 
 calary. 
 
 a. By dichotomy. This only occurs in apical growing-points ; 
 two modes may be distinguished accordingly as the growing-point 
 has or has not an apical cell : 
 
 FIG. 140. A B C successive stages in true dichotomous branching by longitudinal 
 division of an apical cell; from the shoot of Dictyota dichotoma (highly magnified ; after 
 Naegeli). 
 
 when there is an apical cell, true dichotomous branching is 
 effected by the longitudinal division of the apical cell into two, 
 each of which becomes the apical cell of a branch : 
 
 A spurious form of dichotomy occurs in some plants (e.g. thalloid Junger- 
 manniaceEe) ; here, though the apical cell of the branch is developed from a seg- 
 ment of the apical cell of the main shoot, yet since the really lateral branch 
 grows quite as vigorously as the main shoot, the result is an apparently dicho- 
 tomous branching. 
 
 when there is no apical cell, the growing-point becomes 
 broadened, and the central portion of it passes over into condition 
 of permanent tissue, leaving two distinct masses of embryonic 
 tissue, which constitute the growing-points of the two branches 
 {e.g. March antiacene). 
 
 6. By lateral outgrowth ; this may occur in either an apical or 
 intercalary growing-point : 
 
34] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 185 
 
 when there is a single initial cell in the growing-point, tlie 
 growing-point of the branch is developed either directly from the 
 initial cell itself, as in some Algse (Fig. 141 ^4), or more com- 
 monly from a segment of the initial cell, as in many Algae (Fig. 
 141 (7), Mosses, Liverworts, etc. : 
 
 when there is not a single initial cell (e.g. Phanerogams), the 
 growing-point of the branch is formed by division of cells of the 
 periblem, including several layers, which, grow and divide, form- 
 ing a lateral protuberance with the growth of which, the dermato- 
 gen keeps pace ; the primary meristem of the branch undergoes 
 differentiation into tissue-systems corresponding to those of the 
 parent members, and continuous with them. 
 
 Jf. 
 
 FIG. 141. Illustrating development of lateral members; A (Stypocaulon scoparium, x30): 
 from the apical cell itself : B (Desmareztia ligulata, x 60) from the segments of an inter- 
 calary growing-point ; C (Chaetopteris plumosa, x 40) from the segments of the apical cell. 
 (After Falkenberg). 
 
 Normal branches, however the details of their development may 
 vary, agree in this, that they are, with rare exceptions (see p. 
 20), of exogenous origin. 
 
 S. Development of Leaves only takes place at the growing-point 
 of a stem, and always by lateral outgrowth (see p. 45). 
 
 When the growing -point of the stem has a single initial ceil, the 
 growing-point of the leaf is developed either from the apical cell 
 itself, or, more commonly, from the whole or a part of a segment 
 of the apical cell. 
 
 When the growing -point of the stem has not a single initial cell, as 
 in Phanerogams, the growing-point of the leaf is formed by the 
 division of cells belonging to one or more of the superficial layers 
 of the periblem, accompanied by growth and division of the cor- 
 responding cells of the dermatogen. 
 
186 PAIir II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 34. 
 
 The primary meristem of the leaf becomes differentiated into 
 tissue-systems corresponding to, and continuous with, those of the 
 stem which bears it. In the developing leaves of those vascular 
 plants which have common bundles (see p. 177), the differentia- 
 tion of the protoxylem begins at the point of junction of leaf and 
 stem, extending outwards in the procambium-strands of the leaf, 
 and inwards in those of the stem. 
 
 The development of secondary branches of the leaf takes place 
 in essentially the same manner as that of the leaf from the stem. 
 Dichotomous branching of the leaf (see p. 51) takes place in the 
 same way as dichotomous branching of the stem. 
 
 It will be seen that the development of a leaf on any stem takes 
 place in essentially the same way as the development of a lateral 
 branch on that stem ; it is only later that leaves and branches 
 assume their distinctive characters. 
 
 C. Development of Branches of the Root. It has been pointed out 
 that the only normal secondary members produced by the root 
 are root-branches, or secondary roots ; these may be developed 
 either by dichotomy or by lateral outgrowth. 
 
 a. By dichotomy. This has only been observed in certain sporo- 
 phytes among the Pteridophyta (Lycopodium, Isoetes). Here the 
 growing-point broadens, under the root-cap, the central portion 
 passing over into permanent tissue, whilst the two sides remain 
 merismatic and form the growing-points of the two secondary 
 roots ; the old root-cap is exfoliated, and each growing-point forms 
 a new one for itself. The successive dichotomies take place in 
 planes at right angles to each other. 
 
 b. By lateral outgrowth. It has been already stated (p. 62) that 
 the lateral development of secondary members does not take 
 place at the growing-point of the root, but at a considerable 
 distance behind it, where the tissues have already assumed 
 their permanent differentiation. The lateral roots are developed 
 endogenously from a layer of this tissue which remains embryonic 
 longer than the adjacent tissues. This layer may be either the 
 pericycle, as in Phanerogams, or the endodermis, as in most Vascular 
 Cryptogams. 
 
 In the Phanerogams (Fig. 142), the growing-point of a lateral 
 root is formed by the growth and division of a group of pericycle- 
 cells, lying usually just externally to the outer end of a xylem- 
 bundle ; hence there are as many longitudinal rows of lateral roots 
 produced as there are xylem-bundles in the parent root, and cor- 
 
34.] 
 
 CHAPTER 11. THE TISSUES. 
 
 187 
 
 responding with them in position. Bat to this rule there are some 
 exceptions ; for instance, when, as in the Grasses and Cyperaceae, 
 the pericycle is wanting opposite the xylem-bundles, the lateral 
 roots are developed, not opposite to the xvlem-bundles, but opposite 
 to the phloem-bundles; again, when there are only two xylem- 
 bundles in the parent root, four rows of lateral roots are produced 
 each root being developed on one side of a xylem- bundle of the 
 parent root. A similar displacement occurs in Umbelliferoe, 
 Araliaceae % and Pittosporaceee, where the pericycle is interrupted 
 opposite to each xylem -bundle by au oil-duct (see p. 168). 
 
 re 
 
 FIG. 142. Illustrating the development of a secondary root in a Phanerogam. -1 trans- 
 verse, B longitudinal, section ; ep epibleraa ; en endodermis; pe pericycle; w protox.vlem 
 and b phloem of the parent-root ; re root cap ; c periblem, and pi plerome, of the de- 
 veloping lateral secondary root. (Teesdalia nudicaulis ; x about i>00 ; after van Tieghem). 
 
 In most Vascular Cryptogams (except Lycopodium and Isoetes, 
 where secondary roots are produced only by dichotomy), the apical 
 cell of a secondary root is formed from one of a ro\v of large 
 endodermal cells, the rlizogenic cells, lying just externally to each 
 xylem-bundle of the parent root. In Equisetum, where the endo- 
 dermis consists of two layers (see p. 165), the secondary roots are 
 developed from cells belonging exclusively to the inner layer, 
 which are adjacent to the xylem-bundles. 
 
188 PAT4T II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTUEE OF PLANTS. [ 34. 
 
 It will be understood that, in order to reach the surface, the lateral secondary 
 roots must penetrate the external tissues of the parent root. This is not 
 effected by purely mechanical means, but by chemical action, leading to solution 
 and absorption, exerted on the tissues, either by the rootlet itself, or, more 
 commonly, by a digestive sac which invests the rootlet, and is formed in Phanero- 
 gams by the growth and division of the cells of the endodermis (and sometimes 
 one or two layers of cortical cells), in Vascular Cryptogams, by the growth and 
 division of one or more of inner layers of cortical cells just external to the endo- 
 dermis, of the parent root. 
 
 D. Development of Hairs. These structures are in all cases 
 developed from the superficial cells of the parent member, that is, 
 from dermatogen-cells in those parts in which this layer is differ- 
 entiated ; in the great majority of cases each hair arises from a 
 single superficial cell. Hairs are generally developed in acropetal 
 succession, but considerable irregularity is not uncommon, and 
 they are frequently developed on members in which the tissues 
 have already acquired their permanent characters (see p. 64). 
 
 E. Development of Emergences. When exogenous they are 
 developed from the superficial and from one or more of the sub- 
 jacent layers of tissue of the parent member, that is, from the 
 dermatogen and periblem of those members in which this differen- 
 tiation of the primary meristem obtains. When they are endo- 
 genous (e.g. haustoria of Cuscuta, see p. 67), they are developed 
 exclusively from the periblem. 
 
 The haustoria of these parasitic plants are frequently regarded as roots, either 
 normal or adventitious, especially in the exceptional case of endogenous origin ; 
 but this view is inadmissible, in the first place, because they are developed, not 
 from the pericycle, but from the cortex of the parent-member; and in the 
 second, because, with the mode of origin, they are developed relatively late, 
 whereas, in accordance with the general rule (see p. 190), they ought, were 
 they roots, to take origin from more deeply seated tissues of the parent 
 member. 
 
 F. Development of Reproductive Organs. The question as to the 
 relation of these members to the primary meristem, only arises 
 with reference to those plants, the bodies of which consist of 
 many layers of tissue ; their origin in plants, the bodies of which 
 consist either of filaments, or of flattened expansions of a single 
 layer of cells, need not be considered here. 
 
 In the cases under consideration, the reproductive organs may 
 be developed either from the superficial layer alone, or from that 
 and one or more of the subjacent layers. 
 
34.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 189 
 
 Organs developed from the superficial layer alone (dermatogen 
 when differentiated) : these may be developed each from a single 
 cell; as all sexual organs; sporangia of all Ferns (except Ophio- 
 glossacese and Marattiaceue) i.e. all leptosporaiigiate Ferns and 
 Rhizocarps (Hydropterideae) ; or they may be developed from a 
 group of superficial cells, as the sporangia of the Ophioglossaceaa 
 and Marattiacea3 (eusporangiate Ferns), of Equisetum, the Lyco- 
 podiaceee, Selaginella. 
 
 The antheridia of Fucus are peculiar in that they are single terminal cells of 
 branched hairs. It is a question whether or not the autheridia of Anthoceros 
 (Liverworts) are of endogenous origin. lu Mosses the apical cell of the adult 
 shoot generally give rise to a sexual organ. 
 
 Organs developed from the superficial and deeper layers. In most 
 cases the organ is developed from the superficial and the subjacent 
 (hypodermal) layer, e.g. microsporangia (pollen-sacs) and macro- 
 sporangia (ovules) of most Phanerogams ; in some cases cells of 
 one or more deeper layers take part in the formation of the organ 
 (e.g. sporangia of Isoetes, ovules of Greum, Symphytum, Verbascum, 
 etc.) ; rarely only a single cell of the hypodermal layer is con- 
 cerned (e.g. ovule of Orchids) ; in Balanophora the ovule appears 
 to be developed from a single superficial cell. 
 
 The primitive sporogenous tissue (archesporiurn, see p. 73) is, in the sporangia 
 of all Vascular Plants, derived from the hypodermal layer of the young spor- 
 angium ; it may consist of a single cell, or of a row of cells, or of a layer of cells. 
 In the Mosses the arcl>esporium is more deep'y seated, arising from the ex- 
 ternal layer of the endothecium (rudimentary plerome) as in most Mosses, or 
 from the innermost layer of the amphithecium (rudimentary perihlem) as in 
 Sphagnum and in the Liverwort Anthoceros. 
 
 G. The Development of Adventitious Second art/ Members (see p. 
 21). 
 
 1. On the stem. The most common case is that of the develop- 
 ment of roots, but occasionally shoots (buds) are developed ad- 
 ventitiously. 
 
 The adventitious development of roots on the stem takes place 
 most commonly by the formation of a growing-point, by the divi- 
 sion of a group of pericycle-cells in the way described above 
 (p. 186) with reference to the development of normal lateral roots 
 on the parent root. In any one plant the two processes are similar 
 in every detail. When they are developed on old stems, they 
 arise from more deeply placed tissues, such as those of the primary 
 
190 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 34. 
 
 or even the secondary bast. In both these cases the adventitious 
 root is developed endogenously. 
 
 In other cases, adventitious roots are developed from more 
 superficial layers of tissue (e.g.. Equisetum, Selaginella ; roots 
 developed in connection with buds, as in Ranunculus Ficaria, 
 Nasturtium, Cardamine, Anemone, etc.) that is, exogenously. 
 
 The adventitious development of buds on the stem may take place 
 either exogenously or endogenously. In the former case the buds 
 may be developed each from a single epidermal cell (e.g. Begonia 
 prolifera, underground shoots of Psilotum), or from the epidermis 
 and subjacent layers (e.g. Linaria vulgaris). In the latter case 
 the adventitious bud arises from the pericycle (e.g. Cuscuta, 
 epicotyl of Convolvulus arvensis). 
 
 Adventitious buds are commonly developed in the Algse and Liverworts, 
 either exogenously, from single superficial cells at the margin or on the surface 
 of the thallus of Delesseria and other Algae, or of that of Metzgeria furcata 
 among Liverworts, or endogenously, as in Fucus and apparently also in 
 Metzgeria. 
 
 2. On the root. Adventitious buds may be formed either, exo- 
 genously or endogenously on the root ; in the former case they 
 arise from the superficial layers (e.g. Aristolochia Clematitis) ; in 
 the latter, from the pericycle (e.g. Alliaria ffficinali*, Anemone 
 sylvestris, etc.) 
 
 3. On the leaf. Adventitious buds developed on leaves are of 
 exogenous origin, the epidermis being more especially concerned 
 in their production. Adventitious roots are usually of endogenous 
 origin, being derived from cells of the pericycle ; but in some 
 cases (e.g. CarJamine pratensis, Nasturtium officinale and silvestris), 
 where they arise in direct connexion with adventitious buds, 
 they are exogenous, being derived from the epidermis and the 
 superficial cortical layers of the axis of the bud. 
 
 Adventitious buds and roots are also developed from the callus (see p. 21) 
 formed on the injured surfaces of stems, roots, and leaf-stalks: the former iii^y 
 be endogenous or exogenous, the latter are endogenous. 
 
 From the foregoing account of the development of adventitious 
 buds and roots, it is clear that no definite rule as to their mode of 
 origin can be laid down, based on their morphological character. 
 However, the following rule appears to hold good, that the mode 
 of origin of an adventitious member depends upon the age of the 
 part from which it is developed : when the part is very young, the 
 
35.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 191 
 
 adventitious member is developed exogenously ; when the part is 
 older with its tissues more or less differentiated, the adventitious 
 member is developed endogeneously, usually from the pericycle, 
 but sometimes from still deeper tissues, according to the relative 
 age of the part. 
 
 35. The Formation of Secondary Tissue. In addition 
 to the formation of primary tissue from the primary meristem of 
 the growing-point, as above described, a formation of secondary 
 tissue takes place in many plants, which is in most cases associated 
 with a growth in thickness and may give rise to secondary stelar 
 tissue, or to secondary extra-stelar tissue. 
 
 A. The Normal Formation of Secondary Stelar Tissue in the 
 stem takes place in most Gymnosperms and Dicotyledons (as 
 also in some Ophioo-lossa.cecs), and is effected by the continuous 
 merismatic activity of the cambium of their open collateral 
 bundles. These are 
 arranged in a circle 
 in a transverse sec- 
 tion (Fig. 143 A) : the 
 commencement of 
 growth in thickness 
 is preceded by tan- 
 gential divisions in 
 the conjunctive tissue 
 (Fig. 139) which lies 
 between the bundles ; 
 this gives rise to cam- 
 bium which becomes 
 .continuous with that of the vascular bundles. A closed hollow 
 cylinder is thus formed, which appears, in a transverse section, 
 as a ring, the cambium-ring (Fig. 143 B c) completely separating 
 the pith from the cortex : it consists of two portions correspond- 
 ing to its mode of origin ; fafcicular cambium, i.e. the cambium 
 belonging to the vascular bundles, and the inter-fascicular cambiiim, 
 i.e. that which is formed between the bundles in the primary 
 medullary rays (see Fig. 130). 
 
 A cambium-ring is likewise formed in the root of these plants 
 (Fig. 144). The first indication of the formation of a cambium- 
 layer is the division of the cells of the conjunctive parenchyma on 
 the inner surface of each bast-bundle : then those on the flanks 
 of the bast-bundles begin to divide ; and thus a number of arcs 
 
 FIG. 143. Diagrammatic transverse sections ol a 
 normal dicotyledonous stem \vhi3h grows in thickness. 
 A Veryyonng: there are five isolated bundles; m pith; 
 r cortex ; b' primary bast ; h' primary wood ; c cambium. 
 B After growth in thickness has commenced: Ji 2 secon- 
 dary wood; b 2 secondary bast. 
 
192 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 35. 
 
 of cambium are formed, extending from the inner surface of each 
 bast-bundle to the pericycle. The pericycle-cells lying externally 
 to the outer ends (protoxylem) of the wood-bundles now divide, 
 and connect the arcs of cambium. Thus a continuous cambium- 
 layer is formed, which has at first a wavy outline, as seen in 
 transverse section, but which becomes circular as the development 
 of the secondary tissue proceeds. 
 
 The cambium-layer of the primary root is continuous with that 
 of the primary stem ; hence, in a plant in which stem and root 
 grow in thickness, there is a continuous layer of merismatic tissue 
 extending from one end of it to the other ; for the cambium of 
 the branches of both stem and root is continuous with that of the 
 
 primary members ; and fur- 
 ther, the cambium is con- 
 tinuous with the merismatic 
 tissue of the growing-points 
 of the primary stem and root 
 and of their branches. 
 
 The cells of the cambium- 
 ring, in the stem and root 
 alike, constantly undergo 
 both tangential and radial 
 division, so that the number 
 of the cells increases in the 
 radial direction as well as 
 in the circumferential ; the 
 growth of these cells pro- 
 duces an extension of the 
 organ in both these direc- 
 tions. Of the cells formed 
 by tangential division, those 
 lying on the inner side of the 
 cambium, are transformed into the elements of the wood (Fig. 
 148 B Tz, 2 ), those on the outer side, into the elements of the bast, 
 while the cells of the intermediate zone continue to be capable of 
 dividing. The activity of the cambium thus gives rise to secondary 
 wood and secondary bast, as distinguished from the primary con- 
 stituents of the bundle, which existed previously to, and indepen- 
 dently of, the activity of the cambium. The primary wood of the 
 bundle is thus the innermost part of it, and the primary bast the 
 most external. 
 
 FIG. 1-W. Transverse section of the stele of 
 the root of Sairibucus nigra, where tecondary 
 growth in thickness is commencing, r Cor- 
 tex ; ed endodermis ; pc pericycle : x x x the 
 three groups of protoxylem ; p p p the three 
 groups of phloem ; c dividing cells of the con- 
 junctive tissue forming part of the developing 
 cambium-ring. 
 
35.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 193 
 
 ft* 
 
 The tangential division of 
 the cambium-cells takes place 
 in a regular order, termed, in 
 honour of the discoverer, Sanio's 
 law of cambial division. Each 
 cambium- cell divides into two 
 by a tangential (parallel to sur- 
 face of member) wall ; one of 
 these two cells remains meris- 
 matic, the other undergoes 
 further division, by a tangential 
 wall, into two which may be 
 either directly converted into 
 permanent tissue (either wood 
 or bast) or after having under- 
 gone yet another tangential 
 division. When an addition is 
 to be made to the wood, the 
 outer of the two first-formed 
 cells remains merismatic, the 
 inner forming permanent tis- 
 sue ; when to the bast, it is the 
 inner of the two first- formed 
 cells which remains merismatic, 
 and the outer which is con- 
 verted into permanent tissue. 
 
 Not only does the fascicular 
 cambium add secondary wood 
 and bast to the primary bundles 
 of the fctem, but the interfasci- 
 cular cambium generally forms 
 (except Menispermaceae, Cu- 
 curbitaceffi, woody Piperaceae, 
 Aristolochia, Casuarina, and 
 some other plants, where it 
 only forms conjunctive tissue) 
 new secondary bundles between 
 
 FIG. 345. Part of a transverse 
 section of a branch of Pinus sylves- 
 tris, illustrating the development of 
 tissue from the cambium: the lower 
 part of the section is the central 
 (wcod), the upper the peripheral 
 (bast) ; f initial layer (cambium pro- 
 per), on each side of which are still 
 young desmogen-cells in process of differentiation into either wood or bast ; 1, 2, 3 young 
 xylem-tracheids, with developing bordered pits; /; cells of the bast-parenchyma with 
 brown contents; e sieve-tube ^ith lateral sieve-plate; m a medullary ray, to which 
 additions are also made in the cambial region. (After Strasburger : x 610.) 
 
 V. S. B. 
 
194 PAET II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 35- 
 
 the primary, and in this way a compact ring of wood and of hast is formed. 
 These secondary bundles are of course destitute of protoxylem and proto- 
 phloem. 
 
 In roots the secondary vascular tissue is developed in essentially the same 
 manner as in the stem ; the wood inwards, the bast outwards, from the cam- 
 bium-layer ; and the same forms of tissue are produced. It is, however, only in 
 certain cases (e.g. Taraxacum, Scorzonera hispanica, Kubia, Taxus, Cupressus, 
 etc.) that the cambium of the root produces wood internally, and bast extern- 
 ally, over its whole surface, so that a complete ring of secondary vascular 
 tissue is formed : in most cases (e.g. Centranthus, Tropseolum, Urtica, Cucur- 
 
 bita, Phaseolus, Convolvulus, Clusia, etc.) 
 secondary vascular tissue is formed only 
 opposite to the primary bast-bundles, 
 whereas, opposite to the primary wood- 
 bundles, the cambium produces only 
 ground-tissue, thus giving rise to broad 
 medullary rays opposite to these bundles 
 (Fig. 146). 
 
 The Tissues developed from the 
 Cambium. In stems and roots in 
 which the growth in thickuess is 
 normal, the cambium gives rise to 
 secondary wood, secondary bast, and 
 secondary conjunctive tissue (me- 
 dullary rays). 
 
 Tlie structure of the secondary wood 
 differs essentially from that of the 
 primary wood only in that it in- 
 cludes no spiral or annular vessels 
 resembling those of the protoxylem 
 (see p. 176). It always includes 
 tracheal tissue ; nearly always wood- 
 parenchyma (see p. 132) ; frequently 
 sclerenchyma : the cell-walls of all 
 these forms of tissue are usually 
 more or less completely lignified. 
 
 The secondary tracheal tissue may 
 consist either solely of tracheae (e.g. 
 Platanus, Fraxinus . excelsior and 
 Ornus, Citrus, Viscum, Hydrangea); 
 or solely of tracheids (e.g. Coniferae, Drimys Winteri) ; or, as is 
 generally the case, of both tracheae and tracheids. The cell- walls 
 of the tracheal tissue are, as a rule, marked with bordered pits ; 
 
 FIG. 146. A Transverse section of 
 a young root of Phaseolus multiflorus : 
 pr cortex ; m pith ; x stele ; g primary 
 xylem-bundles ; b primary phloem- 
 buudles. B Transverse section of an 
 older root of the same plant, which 
 is growing in thickness : b' secondary 
 bast ; fe periderm : the four rays ex- 
 tending to near the centre consist 
 of secondary ground-tissue, and cor- 
 respond in position to the primary 
 wood-bundles. (Slightly magnified; 
 after Sachs.) 
 
35] 
 
 CHAPTER IT. THE TISSUES. 
 
 195 
 
 but occasionally, especially in soft wood, the walls are reticulately 
 thickened. 
 
 The secondary wood-parenchyma consists of oblong cells, which 
 are generally so arranged that their long axes are parallel to that 
 of the member of which they form part : they occur in short 
 longitudinal strands, consisting commonly of a single row of cells 
 (Fig. 148(7), but sometimes, in the middle only, of more than one 
 
 FIG. H7. Transverse section of a root of the Yew (Taxus laccata) which has begun to 
 grow in thickness: c cortex; m inner cortical layer (see p. 16(3); e endodermis ; p peri- 
 cycle ; s protoxylem-grcup of one of the two confluent primary xylem-bundles ; t' tracheids 
 of primary wood ; / interfascicular conjunctive tissue ; t" secondary wood formed from a 
 cambium-layer situated just externally to it ; v" secondary bast ; v' primary bast which 
 is becoming crushed and disorganised by the cambial development of new tissues ; fc cells 
 of secondary basfe, containing cryfetali; r cells of pericycle containing resin. (After Stras- 
 burger; x 42). 
 
 row. They are true cells, containing protoplasm and a nucleus, 
 and other substances, such as starch (especially in perennial stems 
 and roots in winter), tannin, etc. Their walls are generally 
 lignified, but usually not very much thickened, and have circular 
 or elliptical simple pits. In many soft fleshy stems and roots 
 (e.g. Potato, Radish, Turnip, Beetroot), where this tissue is the 
 
196 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [35. 
 
 principal product of the activity of the cambium, the cell-walls 
 are not lignified. J 
 
 The secondary sclerenchyma consists of elongated pros- 
 enchymatous cells, with more or less thickened lignified 
 walls marked with narrow oblique bordered pits 
 (Fig. 94, p. 134; Fig. 148 A, B). Two forms 
 of this tissue are distinguishable : woody fibres 
 destitute of protoplasmic contents, which are 
 connected by transitional forms with the tracheids 
 
 FIG. 148. Isolated constituents of the secondary wood of the Lime (Tilia 
 paroifolw,). A and B wood-fibres; C wood- parenchyma; D and E tracheids; 
 F segment of a wood- vessel (trachea). G is a bast-fibre. (x!80; after Stras- 
 burger.) 
 
 (see p. 134) : fibrous cells, with protoplasmic cell-contents, 
 which are allied to the wood-parenchyma ; in fact, one 
 fibrous cell corresponds to a row of wood-parenchyma 
 cells ; the walls of the fibrous cells sometimes remain 
 thin, as in Viscum and some other plants, where they 
 replace the wood-parenchyma both structurally and func- 
 tionally. Both the woody fibres and the thick-walled fibrous cells 
 
35.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 197 
 
 may eventually become chambered by the formation of delicate 
 transverse septa (see p. 133). 
 
 The structure of the secondary wood of the root is in some cases 
 (e.g. Conifers) almost identical with that of the corresponding 
 stem ; this is the case, to a somewhat less degree, in woody Dicoty- 
 ledons ; whilst in herbaceous Dicotyledons the structure may be 
 very different in the two members, owing, chiefly, to the develop- 
 ment of more wood-parenchyma, but less fibrous tissue, in the root 
 (see above p. 194). 
 
 The following is a brief enumeration, with examples, of the chief varieties of 
 structure presented by the secondary wood of the stem. 
 The secondary wood may consist 
 
 1. Solely of tracheids : Taxus baccata (Yew), Drimys Winter i. 
 
 2. Of tracheids and wood-parenchyma : Conifers (except Taxus). 
 
 3. Of vessels, tracheids, and wood-parenchyma: Ilex, Staphylea, Eosa, 
 Pyrus, Cratasgus. 
 
 4. Of vessels, tracheids, wood-parenchyma, and thin-walled fibrous cells : 
 Jasminum, Kerria, Potentilla, Casuarina, Aristolochia. 
 
 5. Of vessels, tracheids, thick- walled fibrous cells, and wood-parenchyma : 
 Acer, Sambucus, Euonymus, Vitis, Fuchsia, Hedera. 
 
 6. Of vessels, tracheids, and thin- and thick-walled fibrous cells : Ephedra, 
 Mahonia, Berberis. 
 
 7. Of vessels, tracheids, woody fibre, and wood-parenchyma : Calycanthus, 
 Khamnus, Ribes, Quercus, Carpiuus, Prunus. 
 
 8. Of vessels, tracheids, woody fibre, wood-parenchyma, and thin-walled 
 fibrous cells ; this is the most common type of structure, and is to be found 
 in most dicotyledonous trees and shrubs, e.g. Salix, Populus, Aluus, Betula, 
 Juglans, Tilia, Ailanthus, Magnolia, Eobinia, Gleditschia, Ulex. 
 
 9. Of vessels, woody fibre, and wood-parenchyma : Avicennia. 
 
 10. Of vessels, woody fibre, and thin-walled fibrous cells : Viscum. 
 
 11. Of vessels, woody fibre, wood-parenchyma, thin-walled fibrous cells: 
 Platanus, Fraxinus, Citrus. 
 
 12. Of vessels, thick- walled fibrous cells, and wood-parenchyma : Cheiranthus, 
 Begonia. 
 
 A transverse section of a stem or a root of most coniferous or 
 dicotyledonous trees or shrubs exhibits, even to the naked eye, a 
 series of concentric layers in the secondary wood known as the 
 annual rings. These layers result from the fact that the wood 
 formed in the spring is differently constituted from that which is 
 formed later in the year. The anatomical cause of the distinct- 
 ness of the annual rings is the same in all cases, namely, that the 
 last-formed xylem-elements of an annual ring have a very small 
 radial diameter. In Conifers this distinction is emphasized by the 
 
198 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [35. 
 
 fact that the spring- wood is formed of thin- walled tracheids (Fig. 
 150 /) and the autumn-wood of thick- walled tracheids (Fig. 150 ft). 
 ]n dicotyledonous trees the number and size of the vessels 
 diminishes in each annual ring from its inner to its outer limit. 
 When this takes place very gradually, the eye cannot detect any 
 conspicuous difference between the spring- and autumn-wood (as 
 in the wood of the Beech, Lime, Maple, and Walnut) ; but some 
 kinds of wood show a ring of conspicuously large vessels in the 
 spring- wood, while in the autumn- wood there are numerous much 
 smaller vessels (as in the wood of the Oak, Elm, and Ash). 
 
 FIG. 149. Part on a iransverse section of a 
 twig of the Lime, four years old (slightly 
 magnified): m pith; ms medullary sheath; x 
 secondary wood ; 1 2 3 4 annual rings; c cam- 
 bium ; pa dilated outer ends of primary medul- 
 lary rays ; b bast ; pr primary cortex ; fc cork. 
 
 FIG. 150. Transverse section of por- 
 tion of the secondary wood of a branch 
 of the Fir at the junction of two annual 
 rirgs : ra a medullary ray all the other 
 ( ells belong to the wood ; / large-celled 
 spring- wood; 7i small-celled autumn- 
 wood ; w the limit between the autumn- 
 wood of one year and the spring-wood 
 of the following year; between 7i and w 
 is the flattened limiting layer (x 250). 
 
 The thickness of the annual ring varies in different plants, and 
 even in any one plant, under different conditions of growth ; and 
 not only the thickness, but also the number and relative distri- 
 bution of the constituents of the wood. 
 
 The following case will serve to illustrate the variation in thickness and 
 structure of the annual ring. In a well-grown Ash-tree (Fraximts excelsior] 
 the annual ring was found to be 2-3 mm. in thickness, and to consist of an in- 
 ternal (spring) zone of wide vessels with wood-parenchyma and rather thin- 
 walled woody fibres, followed by a layer of thick-walled woody fibres with 
 scattered smaller vessels surrounded by wood-parenchyma, and then by an ex- 
 ternal (autumn) zone consisting of wood-parenchyma with small very thick- 
 walled vessels. lu vigorous young Ash-trees growing in a damp soil, the annual 
 
35.] CHAPTER 11. THE TISSUES. 199 
 
 ring was found to be 15 ram. in thickness : here the fibres had thinner walls, 
 and the vessels, though more uniform iu size, were not quite so wide as in the 
 narrower ring previously described. 
 
 The annual riug is by no means always of equal thickness all round : it is 
 frequently thicker on one side of a stem or of a root than the other, so that the 
 general structure is strongly excentric. 
 
 The secondary wood gradually becomes distinguishable into an 
 older internal portion, the heart-wood (duramen), and a younger 
 outer portion, the sap-wood (alburnum). This arises from the fact 
 that, as the wood becomes older, the cells of the wood-parenchyma 
 and the fibrous cells die and lose their protoplasmic cell-contents ; 
 as a consequence, the heart- wood has less water in its composition 
 than the sap-wood. In some cases this change is accompanied by 
 a colouration of the cell-walls of the heart-wood, with the result 
 that the distinction of duramen and alburnum is most marked 
 (e.g. Pine, Larch, Oak) ; it is but rarely that this distinction is not 
 observable (e.g. Buxus, Acer pseudoplatanus and platanoides) . 
 
 The structure of the secondary bast essentially resembles that of 
 the primary bast. It always consists of sieve-tubes and of paren- 
 chyma, and very frequently of thick- walled fibres as well. 
 
 The sieve-tubes of the secondary bast have the compound sieve- 
 plates shown in Fig. 98, p. 137 ; in Dicotyledons they have com- 
 panion-cells developed in relation with them. The parenchyma 
 very much resembles that of the secondary wood, except that its 
 cell- walls are not lignified ; it is abundantly developed in certain 
 fleshy roots (e.g. Taraxacum, Rubia, and the Carrot and Parsnip), 
 where it constitutes the chief part of the secondary bast. Prosen- 
 chymatous cells with unlignified walls, corresponding to the thiii- 
 walled fibrous cells of the secondary wood (p. 196), are sometimes 
 present. The bast-fibres closely resemble the woody fibres, but 
 their walls are not lignified (Fig. 148 G). 
 
 In many cases the secondary bast contains no bast-fibres (e.g. 
 Abietineee, Fagus, Betula, Alnus, Platanus, Cornus, Ephedra, etc.). 
 When, as is usually the case, bast-fibres are present, their arrange- 
 ment presents considerable variety : there may be alternating tan- 
 gential layers of fibres (hard bast) and of sieve-tubes and paren- 
 chyma (soft bast), as in the case of the Cupressineae and some 
 Taxoideae, and, though with less regularity, in many Dicotyledons 
 (e.g. Vitis, Spiraea, species of Acer, Tilia, species of Salix, etc.) ; 
 more commonly the tangential layers of fibres are interrupted here 
 and there by soft bast (e.g. Quercus, Corylus, Carpinus, Pyrus, 
 
200 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [35. 
 
 Juglans, Sambucus, Rhamnus, Ulmus, Populus) ; or there may be 
 scattered groups of fibres (e.g. Cinchona, Morns, Larix, Celtis, 
 Ficms elastica). 
 
 The secondary bast does not, as a rule, attain so considerable a 
 size as the secondary wood, nor does it exhibit annual rings : this 
 is due to the fact that, except in some fleshy roots, it is formed in 
 smaller quantity, and further, to the fact that the older bast be- 
 comes crushed and flattened by the development of the more 
 internal layers subsequently formed. 
 
 0\\0/AO\Q\ \Q\\0 
 
 PIG. 151. Hadial longitudinal section of the wood of the stem of a Pine, along the length 
 of a medullary ray q p q, consisting of six horizontal rows of cells, one above the other : 
 t tracheids with bordered pits ; the tracheids 7i with smaller bordered pits are the autumn- 
 wood of one year, those to the right with larger pits constitute the spring-wood of the next 
 year; q tracheidal elements of the medullary ray ; p true cells of the ray : where the cells 
 of the medullary rays abut on the tracheids the pits are simple and largj ( x 300). 
 
 The structure of the secondary conjunctive tissue (medullary rays). 
 The cambium-ring not only adds to the existing primary medul- 
 lary rays, but gives rise to new (secondary, tertiary) rays in the 
 successive years of growth (see Fig. 149), amongst the vascular 
 tissue. 
 
 The cells of the medullary rays are typically parencbymatous, 
 somewhat brick- shaped, with their long axes along radii from the 
 
35.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 201 
 
 centre to the periphery of the member (Fig. 149) ; their more or 
 less thickened walls are lignified (p. 132), and they have proto- 
 plasmic contents. Occasionally, however, some of the cells of a 
 ray lose their protoplasmic contents and constitute tracheids (e.g. 
 Abietineoe, Fig. 149 q q) in some few cases the ray consists of 
 long fibrous cells, in place of parenchyma (e.g. shrubby Begonias). 
 The medullary ray is, then, a strand of cells passing radially 
 among the longitudinally arranged tissues of the wood and of the 
 bast (Fig. 149). Its size varies, even in the same member, both 
 as regards its vertical (height) and its lateral (breadth) dimen- 
 sions. With regard to the former, the ray may consist of only a 
 single row of cells (as in Abietinese, Quercus, Fagus) ; the limits 
 may be generally stated at 112 rows of cells, though in some 
 cases they are considerably larger than this when they include 
 resin-ducts (e.g. Abietinese) or other forms of secretory tissue. In 
 any case, the secondary medullary 
 rays, unlike the primary, do not ex- 
 tend throughout the whole length of 
 an internode. The breadth of the 
 secondary medullary rays is never 
 nearly so great as their height : as 
 seen in tangential longitudinal sec- 
 tion, they are narrow above and below Fm - 162.- Diagrammatic repre- 
 
 _ , . . ., .,-,, ... , sentation of the course of the 
 
 and broader in the middle ; it is only me duiinry rays in a segment cut 
 in the middle that they ever consist oufc of fche wood of a tree-trunk. 
 
 ,. . , , . . Q Horizontal surface ; E Radial 
 
 oi more than one row of cells in eurface . T Tangential (external) 
 breadth, the upper and lower margins surface of the wood ; the shaded 
 consisting of- a single row only. With portions m are the medullavy ray8 ' 
 regard to their radial extent, it is only the primary medullary 
 rays which extend from pith to pericycle ; the subsequently formed 
 rays (secondary, tertiary, etc.) extend between the wood and the 
 bast of the year in which they were formed. 
 
 As instances of especially large secondary medullary rays should 
 be mentioned those formed in roots (see Fig. 146, p. 194) where the 
 cambium forms only conjunctive tissue opposite the prima.ry 
 xylem-bundles. 
 
 In some few stems the formation of secondary conjunctive tissue 
 is especially connected with the primary medullary rays (e.g. 
 Cucurbitaceae, Menispermacese, woody Piperacese, Aristolochia, 
 Casuarina, Atragene, Begonia, Berberis, etc., see p. 193). In these 
 plants the formation of secondary vascular tissue is confined to the 
 
202 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 35. 
 
 fascicular cambium, the interfascicular cambium in the primary 
 medullary rays giving rise only to conjunctive tissue; thus the 
 primary medullary rays persist as broad bands of conjunctive 
 tissue between the bundles, and are not broken up, as is usually 
 the case, by the formation of secondary bundles by the interfasci- 
 cular cambium. 
 
 A certain amount of secondary growth, independently of the cambium, takes 
 place in some cases in the outer portion, external to the cambium, of the primary 
 medullary rays of stems growing in circumference. In all cases the effect of 
 growth in circumference is to tend to stretch the cells in a tangential direction. 
 In the cases under consideration (e.g. Tilia, Fig. 149, p. 198) the cells of the outer 
 portion of the primary medullary rays yield to this tension more than the rest 
 of the tissue, and also undergo radial division, thus the bast-portions of the 
 bundles come to be separated by considerable areas of conjunctive tissue. 
 
 The Differentiation of the Secondary Tissues. The cells, formed 
 as the result of division in the cambium, which are to become 
 transformed into secondary permanent tissue are (apart from the 
 primary medullary rays) collectively termed secondary desmogen 
 (see Fig. 145). They have, to begin with, the same form and 
 structure as the corresponding cambium-cells (see p. 181), but they 
 gradually undergo changes in both respects, as they become trans- 
 formed into permanent tissue. 
 
 The development of the desmogen-cell into one or other of the 
 various forms of permanent tissue, already described, may be 
 either accompanied or unaccompanied by cell-division. In the 
 former case, the divisions may be transverse or longitudinal ; the 
 desmogen-cell undergoes transverse division when the product is 
 a row of short cells (e.g. wood-parenchyma, Fig. 153 D, and Fig. 
 148 (7; bast-parenchyma; secondary medullary rays; wood- 
 vessels with short segments) : the desmogen-cell generally under- 
 goes longitudinal division once or twice, by tangential walls, soon 
 after it has been cut oif from the cambium (Fig. 145) ; but this 
 does not take place in the line of the medullary rays, where the 
 radial diameter of the young cells is greater than it is near the 
 bast or the wood ; again, the desmogen-cells may undergo longitu- 
 dinal division in a plane other than the tangential, as for instance 
 the longitudinal division of the mother-cell, which separates the 
 sieve-tube-segment from the companion-cell in the bast of Angio- 
 sperms. 
 
 The product of a desmogen-cell may have much the same form 
 and size as the desmogen-cell (e.g. small medullary rays ; rows of 
 
35.] 
 
 CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 
 
 203 
 
 I) 
 
 parenchyma-cells, bast or wood; thin-walled fibrous cells): but 
 more commonly the product differs very materially from, the 
 desmogen-cell, being very much wider (e.g. tracheae), or very much 
 longer longitudinally (wood- and bast-fibres), or very much longer 
 radially (e.g. cells of medullary ray) ; that is to say, the develop- 
 ment of the desmogen-cell into permanent tissue is generally 
 accompanied by very considerable growth. 
 
 The radial and tangential divisions of 
 the cambium-cells and of the desmogen- 
 cells take place in such a manner that the 
 products are, at first, arranged in very 
 definite radial rows (Fig. 145). When 
 the resulting tissue consists of elements 
 which are for the most part essentially 
 alike, this regular radial arrangement per- 
 sists in the permanent tissue ; for instance, 
 in the wood of Conifers (Fig. 150), which 
 consists almost exclusively of tracheids; 
 but where some of the elements (as gener- 
 ally in the wood of Dicotyledons) attain a 
 much greater size (as seen in transverse 
 section, Fig. 139), the original radial ar- 
 rangement is lost. 
 
 In those cases in which the permanent- 
 tissues consist of very long or very wide 
 fibres or vessels, it is evident that the 
 relative position of the original desmogen- 
 celis must have undergone considerable 
 change in the course of development ; the 
 long fibre is in contact, longitudinally, 
 with a greater number of cells than was 
 the original desmogen-cell ; and similarly, 
 the wide trachea touches, at its circum- 
 ference, a larger number of cells than did 
 the desmogen-cell, originally, from which 
 the segment of the vessel was developed. 
 This gradual change of relative position 
 constitutes what is termed sliding -growth; it is the expression of 
 the independent growth of each desmogen-cell, in the course of its 
 development into the particular element of the permanent tissue 
 which it is destined to form. This process is by no means confined 
 
 FIG. 153. A Deemogen-cells 
 seen in tangential section. B 
 Tracheid seen from outside. 
 C woody-fibre ; and D vertical 
 row of wood - parenchyma- 
 cells seen in section, from the 
 Oak ; isolated by maceration. 
 
204 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 35. 
 
 to the vascular tissues, but takes place wherever a young develop- 
 ing cell grows more actively, in any dimension, than the cells with 
 which it is at first in contact ; a notable example is the growth of 
 the laticiferous coenocytes of Euphorbia (see p. 141). 
 
 Whilst undergoing these changes of form, the desmogen-cells 
 undergo, as already indicated, changes in the structure and 
 chemical composition of their cell-walls in accordance with the 
 particular kind of tissue to which they are to give rise; and, in 
 some cases (tracheae, tracheids, fibres) they lose their protoplas- 
 mic cell-contents ; the walls become more or less thickened (spiral, 
 annular, reticulate, in primary wood) and pitted (with simple 
 pits ; or circular bordered pits ; or oval bordered pits, either small 
 and numerous, or large extendirg across a whole face of the wall, 
 giving it a scalariform appearance, see p. 104) ; and then the 
 absorption, more or less complete, of the septa takes place, which 
 leads to the formation of the vessels. 
 
 Glandular tissue is frequently developed in the secondary wood and bast, in 
 the form, sometimes, of sacs containing crystals, in the parenchyma (including 
 medullary rays) of the wood (e.g. Vitis, and some leguminous trees) or more 
 commonly in that of the bast : of resin-ducts which occur in the secondary wood 
 of certain Abietineae, running horizontally in the medullary rays and vertically 
 in the wood, but rarely found in the secondary bast, whereas in other plants 
 which possess these structures, they are rare in the wood but abundant in the 
 bast (e.g. Anacardiacesa, etc.) : of laticiferous vessels, rare in the wood (except 
 the Papayacere, where the wood consists largely of parenchyma), abundant in 
 the bast. 
 
 The foregoing is an account of the development of secondary vascular and 
 conjunctive tissue, as it takes place in the great majority of Gynmosperms and 
 Dicotyledons : but this is by no means the only mode in which this develop- 
 ment takes place. The following are the more remarkable deviations from the 
 mode already described : 
 
 1. There is a normal cambium-ring, but an additional layer of meristem is 
 formed from pith-cells on the inner side of the ring of vascular bundles, produc- 
 ing secondary wood peripherally, and secondary bast centrally ; stem of Tecoma 
 (Bignonia) radicans, and of species of Acanthus and Campanula, some Apo- 
 cynaceae (Apocynum cannabinum), Periploca graca, Acanthoiimon glumaceum. 
 
 2. There are several distinct cambium-rings, each producing a solid cylinder 
 of wood and bast : stems of climbing Sapindacea? (e.g. Serjania, Paullinia). The 
 cause of this peculiar structure is that the primary bundles are arranged, not in 
 a simple ring, but irregularly, at very different distances from the surface ; 
 hence, when the interfascicular cambium is developed, it does not connect all 
 the bundles together, but separate groups of them, generally a larger central 
 group and several smaller peripheral groups, each with its own distinct cambium- 
 ring. 
 
 3. The normal cambium-layer has only a limited period of activity ; the 
 
35.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 205 
 
 subsequent growth in thickness is effected by successive secondary cambium- 
 rings developing rings of secondary vascular bundles ; these secondary cam- 
 bium-rings may be developed: (a) in the pericycle ; stem of Chenopodiaceae, 
 Amarantacete, Phytolacca, Nyctaginacese, and of some Gnetums, Cycas, and 
 Encepbalartos among Gymnosperms : (I) in the primary cortex ; stems of 
 some Menispermacese (e.g. Cocculns laurifulius, Cissampelos Pareird) : (c) in 
 the secondary bast ; stem of Glycine (Wistaria) : (d) in the secondary wood ; 
 twining stems of Bauhinia, and some Bignoniaceae and Malpighiacese : (e) in 
 the secondary cortex (phelloderm), derived from the pericycle; root of Cheno- 
 podiacese, Amarantaceoa, Nyctaginacese. In some cases, however (e.g. roots of 
 many Convolvulaceae), secondary cambium-layers are formed in the secondary 
 cortex (phelloderm), whilst the primary cambium-layer still remains active. 
 
 4. The cambium-layer is normal, but it does not produce equal amounts of 
 wood, or of bast, or of both wood and bast, at all points of its circumference, 
 as is normally the case, with the result that the cambium-layer is not a circle 
 in transverse section, but is very irregular and undulated in form, the wood 
 and the bast dovetailing into one another, as it were, by their respective 
 projecting thicker portions, (a) The development of bast is uniform, that of 
 the wood uneven ; stems of various species of Cissus, Piper, Bauhinia 
 (Caulotretus heteropliyllus) ; root of Ononis spinosa ; (&) the development of 
 neither wood nor bast is uniform, but at the points at which the development of 
 the bast is less active, that of the wood is more active ; twining stems of many 
 Bignoniaceae (Bignonia, Callichlamys), of Phytocrene (Olacineae), and of some 
 Malpighiacese (Banisteria, Tetrapterys), Apocynaceae (Condylocarpon, Echites). 
 
 An interesting modification of this peculiar mode of development occurs in 
 the stem of species of Strychnos ; at certain regions the cambium-layer pro- 
 duces thick masses of secondary bast which project into the wood ; after a 
 time the cambium of these regions ceases to act, whilst a new segment of 
 secondary cambium is formed in the pericycle across the projecting masses of 
 bast at the level of the rest of the cambium-layer ; thus the cambium-ring is 
 reconstructed, forming wood centrally and bast peripherally, with the result 
 tbat the masses of bast mentioned above become covered peripherally by 
 a layer of wood, constituting in fact isolated groups of bast, termed Phloem- 
 islands^ surrounded by wood. 
 
 5. There is no primary cambium-layer, the bundles being all closed ; second- 
 ary growth in thickness is effected by a ring of meristem quite external to 
 the primary bundles ; this occurs in the stems and roots of Monocotyledons 
 (arborescent Liliaceae, such as Yucca and Dracaena ; and some shrubby Iridaceae, 
 such as Aristea) ; the ring of meiistem is usuaUy developed in the pericycle, 
 but in the roots of Dracaena it is formed partly from the pericycle and partly 
 from the cortex. This meristem-ring is not termed a cambium-ring, because 
 it does not form wood on one side, and bast on the other, but it forms, centri- 
 fugally, entire closed concentric (with external wood) bundles, together with 
 intervening fundamental tissue. 
 
 6. There is no proper cambium-layer, but the primary bundles are invested 
 by a pericyclic meristem-ring, which gives rise externally to a considerable 
 amount of parenchymatous secondary cortex, and internally to a small amount 
 of vascular tissue : stem of Isoetes. 
 
206 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 35. 
 
 The development of secondary vascular tissue takes place al- 
 most exclusively in such stems as are monostelic and in which the 
 primary bundles are common. It is clear that the additions to the 
 primary bundles in the older interrodesof the stem, as well as any 
 secondary bundles which may have been formed from the cambium, 
 are not common, but cauline ; they are, however, in communication 
 with the primary common bundles of the young unthickened inter- 
 nodes which are bearing leaves; in fact, the newly- formed secondary 
 
 vascular tissue of the lower 
 intern odes of the stem is 
 in communication, on the 
 one hand with the root, 
 and, on the other with the 
 leaves ; and the channels 
 of communication between 
 root and leaf are main- 
 tained year by year by 
 the annual formation of 
 young conducting-tissue, 
 both wood and bast, in 
 the older parts of the 
 stem and of the root. 
 
 It will be remarked 
 that the development of 
 secondary vascular tissue 
 takes place in those plants 
 the stems of which branch 
 more or less (e.g. an Oak), 
 while it usually does not 
 take place in those plants 
 the stems of which do not 
 branch (e.g. the Palm), or 
 do so only slightly. It 
 is obvious that, when the 
 
 FIG. 151 Portion of a transverse section of the 
 stem of a Draccena : e epidermis ; fc periderm ; r 
 primary cortex, with a leaf -trace-bundle I ; x 
 merismatic zone in which new bundles g-g are in 
 course or development; m primary, and st second- 
 ary, fundamental tissue. (Magnified: after Sachs.) 
 
 stem is of branching habit, 
 the number of leaves must 
 increase year by year, whereas when the stem does not branch 
 the number of leaves does not vary materially. Hence the whole 
 matter may be summed up thus, that the development of 
 secondary vascular tissue in a stem is directly correlated with 
 an increase in the area of leaf-surface : as in each year the leaf- 
 
35.] CHAPTER II. THE TrSSUES. 207 
 
 surface of a tree increases in consequence of repeated branching, 
 so does the annual ring of secondary vascular tissue become larger 
 in circumference and possibly also of greater thickness ; when, 
 however, the tree begins to grow old, and its branches, instead of 
 increasing in number, begin to die off, then the annual growth in 
 thickness becomes arrested. Some further explanation of this is 
 given in Part IV, (p. 683). 
 
 B. The formation of Secondary Extra-stelar Tissue. It is clear 
 that the more or less considerable development of secondary stelar 
 tissue in the interior of a young stem or root, must have a very 
 considerable effect on the primary extra-stelar ground-tissue (cor- 
 tex), and on the primary tegumentary tissue. This effect will be 
 one of pressure and tension ; the radial growth of the stelar tissue 
 will exert a radial pressure upon the external tissues, while the tan- 
 gential growth of the stelar tissue will exert a tangential tension 
 on the external tissues (see p. 202). The radial pressure of so firm 
 a structure as is usually that of the secondary vascular tissue tends 
 to cause more or less rapid obliteration of the softer cortical tissue ; 
 whilst the tangential tension stretches the cortical cells and tends 
 to cause them to grow tangentially, and to multiply by radial 
 division. According to the predominance of the radial pressure 
 or of the tangential tension, the primary cortex is either rapidly 
 destroyed, or it persists for a very considerable period. 
 
 It should, however, be pointed out that the development of 
 secondary extra-stelar tissue does sometimes occur in members in 
 which no development of secondary stelar tissue takes place, as in 
 the roots of some Pteridophyta (Marattiaceee, some Opbioglossaceee), 
 and of some Monocotyledons (aerial roots of Philodendron, etc.; 
 terrestrial roots of Iris, etc.). 
 
 It may be stated generally that the epidermis and the primary 
 cortical tissue of herbaceous dicotyledonous stems keep pace by 
 growth with the formation of new stelar tissue in the interior. 
 This is true also of most woody shoots during the first year of 
 their growth and in certain cases (e.g. Mistletoe, Holly, Acer 
 striatum, etc.), of woody shoots during their entire existence ; in 
 some cases (0.7. Euonymus) the epidermis persists and grows for 
 several years, but is at length disorganised. These primary tissues 
 persist also in some roots (e.g. Vicia Faba, Alchemilla vulgaris, 
 Gaillardia aristata) in which the development of secondary vas^ 
 cular tissue is not very active. The extension of the tissues is 
 effected by tangential growth and radial division of the cells. 
 
208 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. [ 35. 
 
 The secondary extra-stelar tissue, is formed by a layer of meris- 
 matic cells, which is known as the Phellogen. 
 
 In the stem the place of origin of the phellogen is by no means 
 uniform. It may be stelar or extra-stelar: it is sometimes formed 
 by the epidermis becoming merismatic (e.g. Pomese, Salix, Vibur- 
 num Lantana, Jasminum, Nerium Oleander, Aucuba, Euonymus, 
 Solanum, etc.) ; most commonly it is the hypodermal layer of 
 cells, the outermost layer of the cortex, which becomes merismatic 
 and constitutes the phellogen (e.g. Platanus, Acer, Fagus, 
 Quercus, Castanea, Betula, Alnus, Ulmus, Populus, Ailanthus, 
 Abies pectinata, etc.) ; in some cases (e.g. Robinia Pseudacacia, 
 Gleditsclda triacantlws , Cytisus Laburnum), it is the second or third 
 layer of the cortical parenchyma, reckoned inwards from the 
 epidermis, which becomes the phellogen : in other cases the 
 phellogen is formed at a greater depth from the surface, being 
 developed from a more internal layer of cells of the cortex, 
 sometimes even from the endodermis (e.g. Coffea arabica ; sub- 
 terranean shoots of some Leguminosae such as Lotus corniculatus, 
 Trifolium alpestre) ; or, finally, it is stelar, being formed from a 
 layer of cells belonging to the pericycle (e.g. Myrtaceae, Onagracea?, 
 Hypericacese, Ericaceae, most Caryophyllaceoe, Lonicereas, Vitis, 
 Clematis, Berberis, Rosa, Spiroaa, Ribes, etc.) 
 
 The development of tissue from the phellogen follows the same 
 law as in the case of the cambium (see p. 193). Generally speak- 
 ing, a tissue, the periderm, is formed on the outer side of the 
 phellogen by repeated centripetal division ; whilst on the inside 
 of the phellogen a tissue, the phelloderm, is formed by repeated 
 centrifugal division. The periderm constitutes the secondary 
 tegumentary tissue of the stem or root ; the phelloderm constitutes 
 the secondary cortex. The developmental relations between the 
 two tissues are not constant. In some cases the formation of 
 phelloderm only begins after a considerable mass of periderm has 
 already been produced ; but in others, the formation of the two 
 tissues goes on almost simultaneously. The relation between the 
 amount of periderm and the amount of phelloderm formed by one 
 and the same phellogen is by no means constant, and may be gener- 
 ally stated thus : the more superficial the phellogen, the greater 
 the relative amount of periderm ; and further, a larger propor- 
 tion of phelloderm is formed in subterranean than in subaerial 
 stems. Hence whilst the development of periderm is most marked 
 in subaerial stems with superficial phellogen, there is little or no 
 
35.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 209 
 
 phelloderm in these stems; again, in subaerial stems with a deeply- 
 placed (e.g. pericyclic) phellogen, periderm and phelloderm are 
 developed about equally ; finally, in subterranean stems with a 
 pericyclic phellogen, the well-developed phelloderm may exceed 
 the periderm. 
 
 In the root, as in the stem, the position of the phellogen, and the 
 products of its activity, are various. 
 
 The phellogen is developed but rarely (e.g. Solidago) from the 
 epiblema ; more commonly from the exodermis, or from the next 
 internal layer of the primary cortex, as in those Pteridophyta 
 (Marattiaceae, Ophioglossaceae) and Monocotyledons (aerial roots of 
 Philodendron, Monstera, Imantophyllum, etc. ; terrestrial roots of 
 Iris, Agave, Asphodelus) in which any formation of periderm takes 
 place ; as also in a few woody Dicotyledons (e.g. Artanthe, Clusia, 
 Ruyschia, Jasminum) in which the formation of secondary vas- 
 cular tissue takes place relatively late ; and in the Cycads among 
 Gymnosperms. In the great majority of Dicotyledons and Gym- 
 nosperms the phellogen of the root is stelar in origin, being 
 derived from the pericycle. 
 
 As in the stern, so in the root, the phelloderm is more highly 
 developed when the phellogen is deeply placed than when it is 
 superficial ; but even with a uniform position of the phellogen, the 
 relation between the periderm and the phelloderm developed, 
 varies considerably ; thus, among plants with a pericyclic phello- 
 gen, whilst the development of periderm and phelloderm is 
 sometimes about equal (e.g. Willow 7 ), no phelloderm, but only 
 periderm is developed in IS r erium, whilst in some others (e.g. 
 Vicia Faba, AlchemiLla vulgar is, Gaillardia aristaf.a), where 
 the primary cortex persists (see p. 207), only phelloderm is de- 
 veloped. 
 
 It frequently happens in both stems and roots that the first- 
 formed primary phellogen has but a limited period of merismatic 
 activity; this is always the case when the primary phellogen is of 
 deep origin (pericyclic in roots), whereas when it is of superficial 
 origin (e.g. epidermal or hypodermal phellogen in stem of Beech, 
 Hornbeam, Silver Fir, Cork- Oak, Cork-Elm), the primary phel- 
 logen is frequently persistent. In the former case, however, when 
 the primary phellogen has passed over into some form of perma- 
 nent tissue, a new secondary phellogen, also of limited duration, is 
 developed internally to the first, and this process is repeated at 
 intervals ; hence the phellogen-layers become successively moie 
 
 v. s. B. P 
 
210 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [35. 
 
 and more deeply seated, penetrating at length into the bast-tissue 
 of the stele. 
 
 The periderm, or secondary tegumentary tissue, the tissue formed 
 externally from the phellogen, consists of parenchymatous cells 
 more or less cubical in form, though sometimes somewhat elongated 
 tangentially (Fig. 155) ; the cell-walls may be thin or considerably 
 thickened ; generally speaking, the walls are completely suberised 
 (see p. 106), whence the tissue is often termed Cork; the cells 
 gradually lose their protoplasmic contents, and become filled with 
 air ; moreover, no intercellular spaces are formed in the tissue. 
 In view of its structure, it is clear that the periderm is a tissue 
 
 which offers an 
 obstacle to the 
 passage of water; 
 hence all the tis- 
 sues, in a stem or 
 root, lying extern- 
 ally to the peri- 
 derm can receive 
 no supplies of 
 water, and must 
 dry up, and are 
 eventually exfoli- 
 ated. The more 
 deeply seated the 
 phellogen, the 
 greater is the 
 amount of primary 
 tissue thrown off ; 
 thus, when the 
 phellogen arises in 
 the inner layers of 
 
 FIG. 155. Periderm of one-year's shoot of Ailanthus 
 glandulosa (trans, sect. ; x 350) : e the dead epidermis ; fc cork ; 
 the inner shaded layers are merismatic, the innermost being 
 the phellogen, those external to it being young periderm 
 cells ; v primary cortex. 
 
 a heterogenous pericycle (see p. 167), as in Berberis, Lonicera, 
 etc., where the outer portion of the pericycle is fibrous, the epi- 
 dermis, the primary cortex, and the outer portion of the pericycle 
 are exfoliated. 
 
 The cells of the periderm are not always completely suberised. 
 In some cases (roots and stems of Onagraceae, Hypericaceae, some 
 Rosaceea, etc.) some of layers of the periderm consist of cells with a 
 suberised zone like that of the cells of the endoderrnis (see p. 166), 
 though these cells usually become completely suberised eventually. 
 
35.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 211 
 
 In other cases (e.g. stem of Poterium, Alchemilla, Agrimonia, 
 Epilobium) the periderm consists mainly of cells with cellulose- 
 walls, between which intercellular spaces are formed, together 
 with occasional compact layers of cells with a suberised zone. 
 
 It should not be overlooked that the regeneration of the root-cap is a case 
 of development of secondary tegumentary tissue, though of a different type, 
 inasmuch as it is effected by the primary meristem of the growing-point of the 
 root instead of from a layer of secondary meristem as is the case with the peri- 
 derm. As the root elongates and makes its way through the soil, the primary 
 root-cap becomes worn away at the surface, but this is compensated by the 
 development of new tissue internally (see p. 158). In some aquatic plants (e.g. 
 Lemna, Hydrocharis, Pistia, etc.), in which the root does not penetrate the 
 soil, the primary root-cap persists. In the case of roots having limited growth 
 in length (e.g. Azolla, Hydrocharis, tuberous roots of Orchis and of Ranunculus 
 Ficaria), the root-cap is altogether thrown off when the growth in length of the 
 root comes to an end. 
 
 When the primary periderm is of superficial origin, it forms for 
 many successive years the external investment of the branch ; it 
 may attain considerable thickness, as in the Cork-Oak, and at the 
 same time exhibit an alternation of dense and loose layers (e.g. the 
 Birch, in which the layers may be peeled off in thin white sheets) ; 
 sometimes (as in Acer campestre and the Cork-Elm) it forms wing- 
 like projections from the angles of the branches. In a few trees, 
 as the Silver Fir, the primary periderm persists for some years, 
 or, as in the Beech, during the whole life of the tree ; the outer 
 cork-cells split off as the trunk of the tree increases in thickness, 
 while the phellogen, growing and extending in a tangential 
 direction, gives rise to new layers of cork. When, as in most cases, 
 new layers of phellogen arise after a few years in the deeper 
 tissues, leading to the development of corresponding layers of 
 periderm, an external investment of a more or less complicated 
 structure comes to be formed. In consequence of the imperme- 
 ability to water of these secondary layers of periderm, all the 
 tissues lying externally to them become dried up. These dried- 
 up tissues, which may belong to different tissue-systems and 
 include the most various forms of cells, constitute what is known 
 as Bark. When the primary periderm is superficial, the new 
 secondary layers of periderm are only arcs of the circumference, 
 and as their margins are in contact with the periderm which 
 has been previously formed (Fig. 156), a scaly bark is formed, 
 that is, isolated patches of tissue are transformed into bark. 
 
212 
 
 PART II. THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [ 35. 
 
 This bark is stretched and torn by the increasing size of the 
 trunk, and the scales of it may be shed, as is the case in the 
 
 Plane, or they may 
 adhere one upon the 
 other, as in the Pines 
 and Larches, or remain 
 connected by the bast- 
 fibres in long strips, as 
 in Robinia. When, on 
 the other hand, the 
 primary peri derm has 
 been formed in the 
 deeper layers of the 
 cortex, the secondary 
 periderrn often forms 
 complete concentric 
 rings ; thus hollow cy- 
 linders of the cortex 
 are transformed into 
 bark (ringed bark). 
 The longitudinal rup- 
 ture of this kind of 
 birk is effected by the bast-fibres enclosed in it (e.g. Vine, Clematis, 
 and Thuja). 
 
 There are frequently in the periderm of both stems and roots, 
 organs corresponding to the stomata of the epidermis, serving, 
 like them, to admit air to 
 the living internal tissues ; 
 these are the Leniicels. 
 They are usually circum- 
 scribed circular areas of 
 the periderm where the 
 cork-cells formed in the 
 course of the summer are 
 not arranged closely to- 
 gether, but are separated 
 by intercellular spaces. 
 In winter the lenticels are 
 closed by ordinary peri- 
 derm. They are most easily detected in branches of one year' 
 growth, where they are to be seen in the summer in the form of 
 
 FIG. ]53. Formation of Bark in a Larch, as seen in a 
 piece of the outer portion of the stem cut both trans- 
 versely and longitudinally (nat. size): r the secondary 
 cortex ; 7: plates of cork ; b the scales of bark cut off by 
 the cork. 
 
 FIG. 157. Lenticei in the transverse section of n 
 twig of F.lder (x300): e epidermis; q phellogen; I 
 cells, and pi the phellogen of the lenticel; Ic cortical 
 parenchyma containing chlorophyll. 
 
36.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 213 
 
 brownish or whitish specks. When the periderm of the stem is 
 superficial, the lenticels are developed under the places where 
 the stomata occur in the epidermis, and these spots are commonly 
 the starting-points of the formation of the periderm ; but this is 
 not the case in stems with a deep periderm, nor is it ever the 
 case in roots. In many trees, as the Birch, the lenticels become 
 much extended in width by the growth of the branch in circum- 
 ference. When the periderm is very thick, as in the Cork-Oak, 
 the lenticels form deep canals filled with a pulverulent mass of 
 cells. Sometimes lenticels are not formed ; they are not present 
 in the stems of some plants which have a pericyclic phellogen 
 (e.g. Vitis, Clematis, Rubus, Lonicera). 
 
 The phelloderm or secondary cortical tissue, the tissue formed 
 internally from the phellogen, consists of cells which have 
 essentially the same structure as those of the primary cortex : the 
 secondary cortex can, however, be distinguished from the primary 
 by the regular radial rows in which, like those of the periderm, 
 its cells are arranged. The cells have protoplasmic cell-contents, 
 and, when developed near the surface of aerial stems, they con- 
 tain chloroplastids : their walls are usually thin and consist of 
 cellulose, but, like those of the cells of the primary cortex, they 
 may become more or less thickened and eventually lignified. 
 
 Just as the periderm replaces the disorganised epidermis as a 
 tegumentary tissue, so the phelloderm replaces the primary 
 cortex as a nutritive (metabolic) tissue when the primary cortex 
 becomes obliterated under the conditions explained on p. 207. 
 
 It may be noted that, in the stem of Isoetes, the secondary cortex is developed 
 on the outside of a layer of meristem which, at the same time, forms vascular 
 tissue internally (p. 205) : the amount of the former very greatly exceeds that 
 of the latter. 
 
 36. Formation of Tissue in consequence of Injury. 
 
 When the internal tissues of most parts of plants are laid bare by 
 injury, they are gradually covered by a formation of cork taking 
 place in the outermost layer of cells which remain uninjured and 
 capable of growth. This is easily seen in injured fruits, leaves, and 
 herbaceous stems, in which the wounds that have been covered by 
 a layer of cork are distinguished by a grey-brown colour. The 
 process is very easy to observe in potato-tubers, for each portion 
 of living tissue taken from one, if only prevented from drying too 
 quickly, will soon be covered over the whole surface by a layer of 
 
214 
 
 PA11T IT THE INTIMATE STRUCTURE OF PLANTS. 
 
 [I 
 
 cork precisely similar in structure to the ordinary rind. In plants 
 in which the wood is well developed, cork is not immediately 
 forjned particularly when the cambium is wounded or laid bare- 
 but all the living cells which border on the wound become meris- 
 matic and give rise to a homogeneous parenchymatons tissue 
 known as the Callus. If the wound is small, the callns-cells pro- 
 ceeding from the different sides soon come into contact and close 
 up into a single mass of tissue, which then gives rise to cork on 
 its outer surface, and, joining the old cambium at the margins, 
 
 forms a new layer of cam- 
 -j t bium which fills up the 
 cavity. If the wound is a 
 large one, cork and new 
 cambium are formed in the 
 callus at the margins of the 
 wound, and it is not wholly 
 closed till after repeated 
 rupture of the approaching 
 cushions of callus. The wood 
 exposed by the wound, which 
 usually assumes a dark colour 
 under the influence of the 
 air, does not grow with that 
 formed from the new cam- 
 bium of the callus ; hence in- 
 scriptions, for instance, which 
 are cut in the cortex so as to 
 reach the wood, though sub- 
 sequently covered by a num- 
 ber of annual layers of wood 
 corresponding to the number 
 of years, may easily be found. A similar explanation accounts for 
 the fact that the surfaces of the stumps of cut-off branches become 
 overgrown; the callus first appears as a ring from the cambium 
 exposed in the tianverse section, and afterwards closes like a cap 
 over the old wood. Foreign bodies nails, stones, and stems of 
 other plants may thus become enclosed in the wood of a tree and 
 be overgrown by it ; the cortex, being forced against the foreign 
 object by the pressure of the growing wood, splits, and the callus 
 formed in the rent grows round the object, enclosing it and pro- 
 ducing new cambium. 
 
 FIG. 158. Diagrammatic longitudinal section 
 of a woody stem : A a short time after the 
 amputation of a lateral branch, s; B when the 
 wound is completely closed ; r cortex ; c cam- 
 bium ; Ji wood ; c' position of the cambium- 
 layer at the time of amputation ; 7i' wood formed 
 since the amputation ; w the cushion of callus 
 formed over the surface of the wound. 
 
36.] CHAPTER II. THE TISSUES. 215 
 
 Stems of plants of the same species will grow together if they 
 are in close contact ; the callus formed by the cortex of both, 
 coalesces and gives rise to a common cambium. On this depend 
 the various modes of artificial grafting, in which branches or bnds 
 with a portion of the cortex are taken from a variety or an allied 
 species and placed so that their cambium is in contact with that 
 of a stem which serves as the stock, and subsequently they grow 
 together. 
 
 In conclusion, the mechanism by which deciduous members (see 
 p. 22) are detached has to be considered : the fall of the foliage- 
 leaf may be taken as the illustration. In some cases {e.g. Palms; 
 some Ferns, as in the section Phegopteris, p. 405 ; the Oak) the 
 leaves simply wither on the stem, when they are non- articulated, 
 and are gradually destroyed and removed; but in most cases they 
 are thrown off by a vital act before they wither, when they are 
 articulated. The fall of the articulated leaf depends upon the 
 growth and division of all the living cells lying in a transverse 
 layer near its insertion: by this means several (3-6) layers of 
 compact tissue are formed. A median layer of this tissue becomes 
 disorganised, and then the leaf is held in position only by the 
 vascular tissue which enters it from the stem. This soon breaks 
 under the weight of the lamina, especially if it be agitated by the 
 wind, and the leaf falls. The disorganisation of the median layer 
 is often accelerated by the action of frost. The scar on the stem 
 (leaf -scar, p. 23) either simply dries up ; or a layer of cork is 
 formed over it by the merismatic tissue which remains : in any 
 case the vessels become sealed with mucilage. 
 
PART III. 
 THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Introductory. A systematic classification of plants may be 
 arrived at by either of two methods. In the first, the different 
 forms of plants are arranged according to some one given prin- 
 ciple ; by this means order is established, and a definite position 
 in the system is assigned to each plant. Many such systems have 
 been devised, and are known as artificial systems. The principle 
 of classification in such a case must be determined more or less 
 arbitrarily and without considering whether or not, in the resulting 
 arrangement, the plants which are nearly allied are always brought 
 together, and those which are less nearly allied are kept apart. 
 The best known of these artificial systems is that of Linnaeus, 
 called the sexual system, which classifies plants by the number 
 and mode of arrangement of the floral organs. This system is, 
 however, only applicable to Phanerogams. 
 
 The natural system, to the gradual development of which a more 
 exact knowledge of the reproduction of Cryptograms has largely 
 contributed, has for its object the classification of plants according 
 to their fundamental relationships; and as these are established 
 once for all by Nature itself, the natural system is not based upon 
 any arbitrary principle of classification, but depends upon the 
 state of our knowledge of these fundamental relationships. These 
 find their chief expression in the structure and other characteristics 
 of the reproductive organs, as well as in the peculiarities of poly- 
 morphism presented by the life-history (see p. 2). This is more 
 particularly true with regard to the definition of the larger groups 
 of the Vegetable Kingdom; within these groups relationships may 
 be exhibited sometimes in one way and sometimes in another, so 
 that it is not possible to lay down any universal rules for deter- 
 mining close affinities. 
 
 As the investigation of this subject is still far from complete, 
 
 21G 
 
INTRODUCTORY. 217 
 
 the natural system cannot be regarded as being perfectly evolved; 
 the various general sketches which have hitherto been given are 
 therefore no more than approximations to the truth. The system 
 followed in the following pages has no pretension to be regarded 
 as absolutely correct ; it is simply the arrangement which appears 
 to answer most nearly to the present state of knowledge of mor- 
 phology and affinity. 
 
 The following are the main divisions of the Vegetable King, 
 dom: 
 IST GROUP. Thallophyta. 
 
 Class 1. Algae. 
 
 Class 2. Fungi. 
 2ND GROUP. Bryophyta. 
 
 Class 3. Hepatico). 
 
 Class 4. Musci. 
 SRD GROUP. Pteridophyta. 
 
 Class 5. FilicinaB. 
 
 Class 6. Equisetinaa. 
 
 Class 7. LycopodmoD. 
 4 r m GROUP. Phanerogamia. 
 
 Division A. Gymnospermcc. 
 
 Class 8. Gymnospermae. 
 Division B. Angiospermce. 
 
 Class 9. Monocotyledones. 
 
 Class 10. Dicotyledones. 
 
 In considering the distinguishing characteristics of these four 
 great groups, it nmy be pointed out, in the first place, that whereas 
 in the Bryophyta, Pteridophyta, and Phanerogamia, without ex- 
 ception, the life-history presents a regular alternation of genera- 
 tions, in the Thallophyta the alternation is generally irregular and 
 is, in many cases, altogether wanting. The Thallophyta and the 
 Bryophyta agree with each other, and differ from the Pteridophyta 
 and the Phanerogamia, in that (a) in their life-history, " the 
 plant " that is, the form to which the name is attached (see p. 3) 
 is, generally speaking, the gametophyte, whereas in the two 
 latter groups it is the sporophyte ; and in (6) the relatively rudi- 
 mentary differentiation, both morphological and histological, of 
 their sporophyte, whereas their gametophyte is commonly more 
 highly differentiated than that of the two latter groups. Finally, 
 though resembling them in many respects, the Phanerogamia differ 
 from the Pteridophyta in that they produce seeds : in fact, the 
 
218 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Phanerogamia may be contrasted, as seed-bearing plants, with 
 the three groups (Thallophyta, Bryophyta, Pteridophyta) of plants 
 which do not bear seeds, and which are collectively termed Cryp- 
 togamia. 
 
 Furthermore, the Thallophyta are characterised by the fact that 
 the female organ is never an archegonium, whereas in the other 
 three groups it is never anything else than an archegonium, though 
 it may present variations of form and structure (see p. 84) : the 
 Bryophyta, Pteridophyta, and Phanerogamia may, on this account, 
 be collectively designated Archegoniata. 
 
 The above-mentioned Classes are of very unequal extent ; for 
 while certain of them, as the Equisetinse, include few forms and 
 those for the most part very closely allied, others, as the Dicotyle- 
 dones and the Fungi, include an enormous number of very different 
 forms. These discrepancies arise from, the very nature of the 
 natural system, for a great diversity does not necessarily display 
 itself within the limits of a single Class ; and it must not be for- 
 gotten that when the living representatives of a Class, for instance 
 the Equisetinse or the Lycopodinee, are few, they are but the 
 surviving remnant of once various and numerous forms which 
 have become in great measure extinct. 
 
 Those Classes which include a sufficiently large number of forms 
 are subdivided into subordinate divisions, as (1) Sub-classes, (2) 
 Series, (3) Cohorts, (4) Orders, and these again, if necessary, into 
 Sub-orders, etc. ; but these names are applied in the most arbitrary 
 manner to the different sub-divisions. The two narrowest system- 
 atic conceptions, viz., Genus and Species, are used to indicate an 
 individual plant. Under the term Species are included all in- 
 dividuals which possess in common such a number of constant 
 characters that they may be considered to be descended from a 
 common ancestral form. New peculiarities may arise in the 
 course of multiplication : the individuals characterised by these 
 new peculiarities are regarded in classification as varieties of the 
 species. When several species resemble each other so distinctly 
 that their general characters indicate a relationship, they are 
 grouped together in a Genus. The limits of genera are conse- 
 quently by no means fixed, but vary according to the views of 
 individual botanists. In the larger genera the species are grouped 
 into Sub-genera. 
 
 The scientific name of every plant consists on the plan intro- 
 duced by Linrieeus of two words, the first indicating the name of 
 

 INTRODUCTORY. 219 
 
 
 the genus, and the second that of the species. Thus, for instance, 
 the greater Plantain, Plantayo major, and the Hibwort, Plant>jgo 
 lanceolata, are two species of the genus Plantago. Since in early 
 times the same plants were often described under different names, 
 and as different plants were often designated by the same name, it 
 is necessary in systematic works, in order to avoid confusion, to 
 append to the name of the plant the name of the botanist who is 
 the authority for it. Thus Plantago lanceolata L., indicates that 
 Linnaaus gave the plant this name, and at the same time that the 
 plant meant is the one which Linnaeus described and to which he 
 gave the name. Again, the Spruce Fir is called Picea excelsa 
 Link, while the same plant was placed by Linnaeus in the genus 
 Pinus under the name Pinus Abies L., and by De Candolle in the 
 genus Abies (Don) as Abies excelsa DC.; hence these names are 
 synonymous : but Pinus Abies Duroi, or Abies exceha Link, is an- 
 other plant altogether, the Silver Fir (Abies pectinata DC). 
 
 The method by which each plant has its place assigned to it in 
 the natural system is exhibited in the two following examples 
 I. Plantago major; II. Agaricus muscarius : 
 
 L Group : Phanerogamia. 
 
 Division : Angiospermae. 
 Class : Dicotyledories. 
 Sub-class : Gamopetalre. 
 Series : Hypogynae. 
 Cohort : Lamiales. 
 
 Order : Plantaginacece. 
 Genus : Plantago. 
 Species : major. 
 
 II. Group : Thallophyta. 
 
 Class : Fungi. 
 
 Sub-class : Basidiomycetes. 
 Series : Autobasidiomycetes. 
 Order : Hymenomycetes. 
 Family : Agaricinae. 
 Genus : Agaricus. 
 
 Sub-genus : Amanita. 
 Species : muscariua. 
 
220 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 GROUP I. 
 TPIALLOPHYTA.. 
 
 THIS group includes the more lowly-organised plants. As already 
 mentioned, the alternation of generations is here either irregular or 
 wanting. When the alternation of generations is irregular, the 
 irregularity is mainly due to the fact that the gametophyte is 
 capable of reproducing itself, it may be through several successive 
 generations, by means of asexually-produced reproductive cells 
 (gonidia; seep. 3) : this production of gonidia by the gametophyte 
 does not occur in any other group of plants, and in this group it 
 frequently happens that a gametophyte which produces gonidia 
 bears no sexual reproductive organs, arid is, therefore, not an actual, 
 but a potential gametophyte. When an alternation of genera- 
 tions is wanting, its absence may either be due to the fact that, 
 as in the lowest Algae and Fungi, sexual reproduction has not yet 
 made its appearance; or it may be due to the fact that, as in 
 certain Algae (e.g. Spirogyra, Fucus, Chara), the product of the 
 sexual process is a cell (zygospore or oospore ; see p. 80), which 
 gives rise directly to a gametophyte, so that no sporophyte is 
 developed. 
 
 The morphology of these plants is such that the body, whether 
 of the sexual or the asexual, form, is generally a thallus, though in 
 certain cases there are more or less distinct indications, especially 
 in the gametophyte, of that differentiation of the body into root, 
 stem, and leaf, which is so familiar in the sporophyte of the 
 Pteridophyta and Phanerogamia. In those forms in which the 
 sexual organs are differentiated, the female organ may be an 
 oogonium, or a procarp, or an archicarp, but it is never an arche- 
 gonium. 
 
 These plants are further characterised by the simplicity of their 
 structure : the body may be unicellular, or coenocytic and unseptate 
 or incompletely septate (see p. 89), or it may be multicellular. 
 One conspicuous structural feature (shared, however, with the 
 Bryophyta), is the absence of lignified cell-walls, the cell- walls con- 
 sisting generally of some form of cellulose, and being frequently 
 mucilaginous. In the lower forms, vegetative reproduction by 
 some mode of cell-division is not uncommon. 
 
 The division of the group into the two classes Algae and Fungi 
 appears to be artificial, inasmuch as it is based upon a single 
 

 GPOUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALG/E/ 221 
 
 haracter, the presence (Algae) or absence (Fungi) of chlorophyll. 
 But the division is really natural, since this one character is 
 correlated with various others. It is, indeed, becoming usual to 
 regard the Algae and the Fungi as altogether distinct groups : but 
 it appears to be preferable to continue to regard them as classes of 
 the group Thallophyta, inasmuch as the Fungi have doubtless 
 arisen from the Algae, and since they possess many features in 
 common. 
 
 CLASS I. ALG^E. 
 
 These are plants of the simplest structure, which eiMier live in 
 water in the form of green, blue-greeri, red, or brownish filaments 
 oi- masses of cells, or clothe damp surfaces such as rocks, walls, or 
 the bark of trees, with a covering of one or other of these colours 
 In the sea they attain often a very considerable bulk; some of 
 them are of a beautiful red or brown colour, and attract the 
 attention of the observer, partly by their considerable size, and 
 partly by the elegance of their form. 
 
 The most important feature in which the plants of this Class 
 differ from the Fungi is the presence of chlorophyll and the con- 
 sequent mode of life. The Algae are able to form the organic sub- 
 stances necessary for their nutrition, whereas the Fungi are 
 obliged to obtain them from other organisms. The presence of 
 chlorophyll is obvious enough in the green Algae, but it exists also, 
 though less evidently, in Algae which have a bluish-green, olive- 
 green, brown, or red colouring-matter in addition in their chroma- 
 tophores. The nature of this additional colouring-matter is usually 
 the same throughout whole families which also resemble each 
 other in their modes of reproduction. Hence this characteristic 
 affords a trustworthy basis for classification, on which the Algae 
 are divided into the following sub-classes : 
 
 Sub-class 1 : CYANOPHYCE^ (or Phycochromaceae), blue-green 
 
 Algae, containing a blue colouring - matter 
 
 pliycocyanin ; 
 2 : CHLOROPHYCEJ:, green Algae, containing only 
 
 chlorophyll and its derivatives ; 
 3 : PH^OUHYCE^E, brown Algae, containing a yellow 
 
 or brown colouring-matter phycophcein ; 
 4 : RiiODOPHYCEjE, red Algae, containing a red or 
 
 purple colouring-matter phycoerythrin. 
 
222 PART -III. THE CLASS fFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The colouring-matters phycocyanin, phycophaein, and pbycoerythrin, can be 
 extracted by means of water ; they thus differ from chlorophyll, which is in- 
 soluble in water. The presence of chlorophyll in the Cyanophyceee, Phaeophyceae, 
 and Rhodophycese, can be proved by extracting the other colouring-matters with 
 water ; the plants then assume a green colour. 
 
 Structure. The body may be unicellular; or coenocytic. and 
 unseptate (as in the Siphonacese), or incompletely septate (Clado- 
 phoraceae) ; or multicellular. The unicellular forms either exist 
 singly, or a number may be held together in a colony by a mucila- 
 ginous common cell- wall, either as a filament {e.g. some Desmidieai) 
 or a mass (palmelloid Protococcacese, Syngeneticse, Chroococcaceae). 
 In some of the multicellular forms (e.g. Spirogyra, Pandorina, 
 Ulva) all the cells of the body are quite similar ; at first vegeta- 
 tive, they eventually become reproductive, so that there is no 
 distinction between nutritive and reproductive cells : in these 
 histologically un differentiated forms the body is a ccenobium (see 
 p. 92). Even the most highly organised forms attain but a low 
 degree of histological differentiation, amounting (as e.g. in the 
 Fucaceae) only to a distinction between peripheral assimilatory 
 tissue and central conducting tissue : in some of the Laminariaceae 
 the conducting-tissue has the form of sieve-tribes. 
 
 Morphology. The body may be entirely undifferentiated ; this 
 condition is most common in the unicellular forms, but it also 
 occurs among the multicellular {e.g. Volvox) ; or it may present 
 a distinction of base and apex {e.g. Rivularia) ; or it may be 
 differentiated into root and thalloid shoot (e.g. Botrydium, Fucus) ; 
 or into root, stem, and leaf (e.g. Caulerpa, Cladostephus, Sar- 
 gassum, Chara, Polysiphonia). 
 
 The un differentiated body (thallus), as also the thalloid shoot, 
 presents great variety of form : it may be spherical, or filamentous, 
 or a flattened expansion, and its symmetry may be multilateral, 
 isobilateral, or dorsi ventral. 
 
 The growth in length of the thallus or of the shoot is effected 
 in a variety of ways. It may be either apical or intercalary. In 
 cellular plants the apical growth is effected either by a single 
 apical cell (e.g. Characeae, Sphacelarieae, Fucacese, Dictyota, Fig. 
 140, most Rhodophyceae) ; or by a marginal series of apical cells 
 (e.g. Coleochaeteae, some flattened Rhodophyceae) ; whereas in those 
 ccenocytic plants (Siphonoidese) which grow apically, there is no 
 apical cell, but an apical mass of embryonic protoplasm. In some 
 cases of intercalary growth there is no growing-point, all the cells 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALGJE. 
 
 223 
 
 of the body being merismatic (e.g. Spirogyra, Ulothrix, Ulva) ; 
 in other cases there is a definite intercalary growing- point, as in 
 Laminaria (Fig. 159) and other Pheeophycese, in some of which 
 growth is trichothallici that is the shoot terminates in a single 
 multicellular hair (e.g. Desmarestia, Fig. 160), or in several hairs 
 (e.g. Cutleria), or in a tuft of hairs (e.g. Carpomitra Cabrerce), and 
 towards the base of each such hair lie the merismatic cells which 
 constitute the inter- 
 calary growing- point. 
 In some few cases (e.g. 
 Volvocoidese, Botry- 
 dium) there is no 
 growth after the em- 
 bryo-stage, as the 
 whole protoplasm of 
 the body passes over 
 into the adult condi- 
 tion. 
 
 The primary root is 
 never developed in due 
 proportion to the 
 shoot ; consequently, 
 in order to ensure the 
 attachment of the 
 plant, adventitious 
 roots are very com- 
 monly formed on the 
 shoot, and when the 
 shoot is dorsiventral 
 unicellular root -hairs 
 are commonly de- 
 veloped on the surface 
 in contact with the 
 substratum. In some 
 cases special organs of 
 attachment (haptera, 
 see p. 66) are developed on the shoot ; they may be adhesive discs 
 borne on the ends of branches of the shoot (e.g. Plocamium coccin- 
 eum}, or root-like out-growths as in Laminaria bulbosa, where at 
 the base of the shoot, a large umbrella- shaped out-growth is formed, 
 bearing numerous haptera on its upper and outer surface. 
 
 FIG. 159. Laminaria diyitata (after Harvey; much 
 reduced). The intercalary growing-point is situated 
 at the junction of the old frond (b) with the new frond 
 (a) ; a is gradually splitting into segments. 
 
224 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The leaves vary in form. In some cases (e.g. Caulerpa, Fig. 
 162; Sargassum) they resemble the foliage-leaves of the higher 
 
 xu 
 
 B. 
 
 c. 
 
 FIG. 160. Growing-points of Algoe. A apical growing-point, with apical cell, of 
 Sti/pocaulon, scoparium (x30). B intercalary trichothallic growing-point (where the 
 transverse lines are close together) of Desmirestia liguiatain longitudinal section (x 60). 
 C apical growing-point, with apical cell, of Chatoptc.ris plumosa (x 40) (after Falkenberg). 
 
 plants; in others, (e.g. Cladosteplms, Chara) they resemble the 
 stem and its branches, but are distinguished by their limited 
 
 growth : in others again (e.g. 
 Polysiphonia and other Rho- 
 dophycese, Fig. 161), they 
 are filamentous and hair-like. 
 The morphology of the 
 reproductive organs is dis- 
 cussed in connexion with the 
 processes of reproduction. 
 
 The Reproduction of the 
 Algse is effected in various 
 ways. Vegetative multipli- 
 cation takes place in the 
 unicellular forms (e.g. Cyano- 
 phycese, Protococcoideee, Des- 
 midieee, etc.) by cell-division, 
 in some of the higher forms 
 (e.g. Sphacelaria, Chara, 
 Melobesia) by means of mul- 
 FIG. i6i.-roiy S i P honia(Herposiphonin)(arter ^Hular gemmae (see p. 68). 
 
 Naegeli). The dorsiventral horizontal stem 
 bears the leaves (/) on the dorsal surface; the 
 root-hairs (r) on the ventral surface; and the 
 
 branches (a b c) on the flanks. 
 
 Non-motile Cells, with a Cell 
 
 Irol i , i i i i i 
 
 *"*? WhlCh ^ P robab] y 
 
 gemmee, are thrown off by 
 
GROUP I. TDALLOPHYTA: 
 
 225 
 
 Monospora (Rhodophycese), and by Vaucheria geminata, and some- 
 times bj other species of Vaucheria (Chlorophyceae). Reproduc- 
 tion by means of asexually-produced spores or gonidia occurs with 
 but few exceptions (e.g. Conjugates, Fucacege, Characese). Sexual 
 reproduction is general throughout the class, though it has not yet 
 been observed in all forms ; it appears to be definitively absent 
 in the Cyanophycese, and in some of the lower Chlorophycese (e.g. 
 some unicellular Protococcoideaa) and Phaaophycese (Syngeneticee). 
 
 FIG. 162. A portion of the body of Caulerpa plumans showing dorsiventral arrangement 
 of members. The horizontal stem bears leaves on its upper (dorsal) surface, and roots on 
 its lower (ventral) surface. 
 
 There are various modes of sexual reproduction in the group. 
 The following is an enumeration of them (see also p. 80) : 
 
 I. Isogamy : the sexual cells are similar gametes ; process, 
 conjugation ; product, a zygospore. 
 
 (a) Gametes ciliated (planogametes) ; set free ; e.g. Ulothrix, 
 Pandorina, Ectocarpus, Cutleria. 
 
 (//) Gametes not ciliated (aplanogametes) ; not set free in the 
 Conjugates ; set free in the Diatomaceae. 
 
 II. Heterogamy : 
 
 (a) Oogamy : the female organ is an oogonium ; the sexual 
 cells are spermatozoids and oospheres, the former ciliated and 
 free-swimming, the latter not ciliated but sometimes free-floating ; 
 process, fertilisation; product, an oospore; (e.g. Volvox, Vaucheria, 
 OEdogonium, Coleocheete, Characeas, Fucaceas). 
 
 (6) Carpogamy ; the female organ is a procarp in which no 
 female cell is differentiated; male cell free, not ciliated, a spernia- 
 
 V.S.B. Q 
 
226 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 tinm ; process, fertilisation ; product, a fructification termed a 
 cystocarp (Rhodophyceae). 
 
 The evolution of sexuality can be well traced in the Algge. Thus 
 in Ulothrix (Confervoideae) two kinds of zoogonidia are produced, 
 microzoogonidia which are small, macrozoogonidia which are larger; 
 the latter always germinate independently, but the microzoogonidia 
 conjugate in pairs to form a zygospore, though, if they fail to 
 conjugate, they are capable of independent germination ; they 
 are, in fact, imperfectly sexual gametes. In Ectocarpus (Phaeo- 
 sporea?) also the sexuality of the gametes is imperfect. In most 
 cases the microzoogonidia are incapable of independent germina- 
 tion, and are therefore completely sexual cells (planogametes). 
 
 The evolution of sex can also be well traced in the Algas by a 
 comparison of the sexual cells of the higher and lower forms. In 
 Ulothrix, for instance, the gametes are similar both in their form 
 and in the part which they take in the sexual process. In 
 Ectocarpus the gametes are externally similar, but they do not 
 behave alike in the process of conjugation, for some come to rest, 
 whilst others remain motile, as a preliminary to that process 
 which consists in the fusion of a motile with a resting gamete ; 
 hence the former is considered to be male, the latter to be female. 
 In Cutleria the gametes differ in size, and, though they are all mo- 
 tile at first, the larger gametes soon come to rest when conjugation 
 follows ; in this case difference of sex is indicated from the first by 
 the larger size of the female gametes. In Fucus the differentiation 
 is carried still further, in that the female gamete (now called an 
 oosphere) is not ciliated nor motile, and is much larger than the 
 motile male gamete (now called a spermatozoid) ; but both cells 
 are extruded, from the organs in which they are formed, into the 
 water. In the typical oogamous forms (e.g. Vaucheria, Coleo- 
 chaete, Volvox, Chara) there is the further and final stage of 
 sexual differentiation, that the oosphere is not extruded, but re- 
 mains in the female organ (oogonium), whereas the sperm atozoids 
 are set free, and, still retaining the character of planogametes, 
 swim by means of cilia, ultimately entering the oogonium and 
 fertilising the oosphere. 
 
 Sexual difference may, however, exist without being accom- 
 panied by any external differentiation. For instance, the sexual 
 cells of Acetabularia, Ulothrix, and Dasycladus, are in each case 
 externally similar planogametes; but conjugation only takes 
 place in Acetabularia and Ulothrix, between planogametes de- 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTAi'ALGJE. 227 
 
 rived from distinct gametangia ; and in Dasycladus, only between 
 planogametes derived from gametangia borne by distinct indi- 
 viduals. Hence it appears that the planogametes formed in any 
 one gametangium of Acetabularia or of Ulothrix are all of the 
 same sex ; and, similarly, that the planogametes produced by any 
 one individual of Dasycladus are all of the same sex ; but, in the 
 absence of any external differentiation, it is impossible to dis- 
 tinguish between the male and the female planogametes. 
 
 The sexual cells are aplanogametes, planogametes, oospheres, and 
 ftpermatozoids (see p. 80) ; though they differ widely in various 
 respects, they agree in being nucleated masses of protoplasm 
 destitute of a proper cell-wall. 
 
 The aplanogametes are characterised by the absence of cilia 
 and of any denned form; they are confined to the Conjugatse 
 and Diatomaceae. 
 
 The planogametes are somewhat pear-shaped, the anterior more 
 pointed end being destitute of the chromatophores which are pre- 
 sent in the more rounded portion. They have two cilia which 
 are inserted, in the isogamous Chlorophycese, at the pointed end 
 of the cell ; in the isogamous Phaeophycese, laterally at the junction 
 of the anterior colourless portion with the posterior coloured por- 
 tion of the cell. In conjugation, the planogametes first come into 
 CDntact by their colourless anterior ends. Like the zoospores, the 
 planogametes have commonly a red pigment-spot (see p. 102). 
 
 The oospheres are spherical cells, usually containing chroma- 
 tophores either throughout their whole substance, or leaving a 
 colourless area on one side, the receptive spot, at which the sper- 
 matozoid enters in the process of fertilisation (e.g. (Edogonium, 
 Vaucheria, Sphaeroplea ; seep. 116). 
 
 The spermatozoids may be somewhat pear-shaped, resembling 
 the zoogonidia of the plant, but smaller (e.g. ColeochsBte, CEdogo- 
 nium) ; or they may be more elongated and club-shaped (e.g. 
 Sphaeroplea, Volvox) ; or still more elongated and spirally twisted 
 (Characese). They usually bear two cilia at the pointed end ; but 
 in Vaucheria, Volvox, and the Fucaceee, they are inserted laterally; 
 in (Edogonium there is a circlet of cilia round the pointed colour- 
 less end. They are faintly coloured, in the Chlorophyceae usually 
 yellow ; they sometimes have a red pigment-spot near the insertion 
 of the cilia (e.g. Volvox, Fucaceoe). 
 
 The male cells of the Florideee and of the Dictyotaceaa are 
 peculiar on account of the absence of cilia, and are distinguished 
 
228 PART 111. fHE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 by the special name spermatia. The spermatia of the Floridese 
 surround themselves with a proper wall at the time of fertilisa- 
 tion. 
 
 The sexual organs. In those Algae in which the sexual cells are 
 similar, and the sexual process is isogamous, the sexual organs are 
 gametangia. In many cases they are unicellular and undifferen- 
 tiated: thus, when the gametophyte is unicellular (e.g. Desmidieee, 
 Diatomaceae) the cell itself constitutes the gametangium ; and in 
 some multicellular or ccenocytic forms (e.g. Zygnemeae, Hydrodic- 
 tyon, Confervoideae) the gametangia are simply ordinary vegetative 
 cells or ccenocytes. In some isogamous Algae, however, the game- 
 tangia are differentiated as lateral appendages, and are multi- 
 cellular, as in the Phaeosporeae ; in Cutleria it is even possible to 
 distinguish the male from the female gametangium. 
 
 When the gametangium is unicellular or ccenocytic, it usually 
 gives rise to a number of gametes; but in the Conjugates a single 
 gamete is formed. When the gametangium is multicellular, each 
 cell usually gives rise to a single gamete ; but in the male game- 
 tangium of Cutleria 2-8 gametes are developed in each cell. 
 
 The female organ, the oogonium, is in all cases unicellular or a 
 ccenocyte ; in Sphasroplea it is undifferentiated, retaining the form 
 of a vegetative segment of the incompletely septate plant ; in 
 most cases it is more or less spherical in form, and in some species 
 of Coleochaete it is prolonged at the apex into a delicate tube, the 
 trichogyne. It opens, in most cases, by the absorption of the wall, 
 at a point opposite the receptive spot of the oosphere when that 
 is present; but in others (e.g. Volvox, Chara) it remains closed. 
 In the former case the spermatozoid enters by the aperture ; in 
 the latter, it bores its way through the wall of the oogonium which 
 becomes mucilaginous at its exposed surface. The oogonium of 
 the Fucaceae, Dictyotaceae, and Tilopterirlacese, ruptures and sets 
 free the contained female cell or cells. Usually a single female 
 cell (oosphere) is formed in an oogonium, by the rejuvenescence 
 of its protoplasmic contents ; but in various Fucaceae, the proto- 
 plasm divides to form two, four, or eight oospheres, and in the 
 coenocytic oogonium of Sphaeroplea there are several oospheres. 
 
 The female organ of the E-hodophyceos, the procarp, is some- 
 times unicellular (e.g. Nemalieae), but more commonly multi- 
 cellular. It is in nearly all cases prolonged into a trichogytie, the 
 basal portion being termed the carpogonium. The trichogyne re- 
 mains closed. The protoplasm of the procarp does not undergo 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALGZS. 229 
 
 differentiation into a female cell comparable with the oosphere 
 of the oogonium. 
 
 The male organ, the antheridium, is with few exceptions (e.g. 
 Sphaeroplsea) more or less differentiated in form, attaining its 
 highest development in the Characeae. It is usually unicellular ; 
 but in CEdogonium it consists of two cells, and of many in the 
 Characeae where its structure is highly complex. When the 
 antheridium is unicellular, it usually gives rise to a number of 
 male cells, but in Coleochsete and most Rhodophycese only to one. 
 When it is multicellular, each fertile cell gives rise to a single 
 spermatozoid. 
 
 Sexual organs are not known in the following forms : Cyano- 
 phyceae, some Protococcoideae, some Siphonaceae, Syngeneticae, some 
 Phseosporeas (e.g. Desmarestia; Laminariaceae, except Chorda). 
 
 The asexual reproductive cells of the Algae are formed either 
 sexually or asexually : the former are either zygospores, or oospores ; 
 the latter are spores, those produced by the gametophyte (when 
 this is the case) being distinguished as gonidia. 
 
 The zygospores and oospores occur exclusively in the Chloro- 
 phyceae and Phaeophyceae : they are spherical nucleated cells with 
 a cell- wall. The differentiation of the cell- wall varies with the 
 nature of the spores and of the conditions to which they are 
 likely to be exposed. In the Phaeophyceae the zygospore or the 
 oospore germinates at once on its formation, and its wall remains 
 thin, and consists only of a single layer. In the Chlorophyceae, the 
 sexually produced spore (except in Botrydinm under favourable 
 conditions) undergoes a period of quiescence before it germinates, 
 and, except in marine forms (e.g. Acetabularia, Dasycladus), it is 
 exposed during this period to the danger of desiccation. As a 
 protection, its wall consists of two layers (see p. 69), a delicate 
 endospore, and a hard cuticularised exospore, which often grows 
 out into prominences, giving to the spore a stellate appearance. 
 
 The spores produced asexually by the sporophyte may be rest- 
 ing-spores with a thick wall, which may consist of two layers 
 as described above (e.g. many Cyanophyceae), or cells destitute of 
 a cell-wall, either ciliated (e.g. zoospores of CEdogonium, Coleo- 
 chaete, Sphseroplasa, Pandorina), or not ciliated (eg. carpospores 
 of the Rhodophyceae). 
 
 The gonidia produced by the gametophyte are never " resting- 
 spores," but are destitute of a cell-wall, and are either ciliated 
 (e.g. zoogonidia of Vaucheria, CEdogonium, Coleochaste, Ulothrix 
 
230 PAUT III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Ectocarpus), or not ciliated (e.g. tetragonidia of the Rhoclo- 
 phyceee). 
 
 The asexual repoductive organs are termed gonidangia when borne 
 by the gametophyte, and sporangia when borne by the sporophyte. 
 In the simple unicellular forms, the whole body may become a 
 sporangium (e.g. Haematococcus) : in some cosnobitic multicellular 
 plants, there are no definite asexual reproductive organs, but any 
 of the cells of the body may act as such (e.g. Ulothrix, Pandorina, 
 Coleochaete, Ulva) without any special morphological differentia- 
 tion ; this is true likewise of the ccenocytic Algae (Siphonoideae, 
 such as Botrydium, Vaucheria, Sphaeroplea, Cladophora) where the 
 whole or part of the body may 'act as a gonidangium. Specially 
 differentiated gonidangia occur only in some Phaeosporeas, and 
 in the Rhodophyceae where they usually produce each four gonidia 
 (tetragonidia) and are hence termed tetragonidangia : specially 
 differentiated sporangia are developed in the sporophyte (cysto- 
 carp) of the Rhodophyceae where they are termed carposporaiigia, 
 and probably also in some Phaeosporeas : these organs are in all 
 cases unicellular. 
 
 In the Cyanophyceas the formation of spores is effected without 
 any sporangium, for in these plants a cell of the body is converted 
 into a spore by simple encystment. 
 
 As a rule a sporangium (or a gonidangium) gives rise to a num- 
 ber of spores (or gonidia) ; but only one gonidium is formed in 
 the gonidangium of Vaucheria (see p. 115) and of CEdogonium, 
 and one spore in the carposporangium of the Rhodophycese. 
 
 The Life-History of the Algce. No alternation of generations can, 
 of course, be traced in those Algas, already enumerated, in which 
 either asexual or sexual reproduction is unknown. In those in 
 which both these modes of reproduction occur on distinct forms, 
 there is usually an indication of alternation of generations, though 
 it has not been traced in all cases. Thus, in most Chlorophyceae, 
 there is an alternation of this sort (e.g. Ulothrix, Pandorina, 
 CEdogonium, Sphaeroplea), that the zygospore or oospore represents 
 the sporophyte, constituting in fact a unicellular sporangium 
 which produces two or four zoospores which, on germination, give 
 rise to gametophytes. In Coleochaete the oospore undergoes cell- 
 division, forming a small multicellular sporophyte each cell of 
 which eventually gives rise to a zoosporo. 
 
 In the Pbasophyceae, an alternation of generations appears to 
 occur in the Cutleriacese, and possibly in some other forms. The 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALG^E : CYANOPHYCE&. 231 
 
 zygospore, on germination, gives rise to a plant, more or less 
 resembling the gametophyte, which bears only asexual reproduc- 
 tive organs (zoosporangia) and is therefore the sporophyte. 
 
 In the Rhodophyceae, there is an alternation of generations, the 
 plant being the gametophyte (either actual or potential), the 
 fructification (cystocarp) developed from the fertilised female 
 organ (procarp) being the sporophyte. The spores of the sporo- 
 phyte (carpospores) give rise on germination to gametophytes. 
 
 In discussing the alternation of generations of the Algse, it 
 must be borne in mind that the gametophyte can, in many cases, 
 reproduce itself by means of gonidia, and that it may not always 
 bear sexual organs : that it may be, in fact, a potential gameto- 
 phyte. Instances of this occur in Coleochaete, the Rhodophyceae, 
 and others. 
 
 Other forms of polymorphism are of frequent occurrence, as in 
 the Cyanophyceae, Confervoideae, Batrachospermum, Lemanea, 
 Characeae (see p. 14). Details of these are given in the special 
 descriptions of the various families, in which also a more detailed 
 account of the alternation of generations will be found. 
 
 Sub-Class I. CYANOPIIYCEJ; (also called Phycochromaceae), or 
 blue-green Algae. The body consists of a single, more or less nearly 
 spherical cell, as in most of the Chroococcaceae (e.g. Gloeocapsa, 
 Fig. 163) ; or it is a multicellular layer one cell thick (e.g. Meris- 
 mopedia) ; or it is filamentous, consisting of a row of cells (e.g. 
 Oscillaria, Nostoc, Rivularia, Scytonema). When the body is 
 filamentous, it sometimes presents a distinction of base and apex 
 (e.g. Rivularia) ; and it is frequently branched, the branching being 
 either spurious (e.g. Rivularia, Scytonemeas) or true (i.e. formation 
 of lateral growing-points, e.g. Sirosiphoneae). In most cases growth 
 and cell-division go on in all the cells of the body, but in the 
 ScytonemaceaB only at the apex. The plant is usually free, but it 
 grows attached in some species of RivulariaceaB and Scytonemaceae. 
 A characteristic feature of the sub- class is the more or less bulky 
 mucilaginous cell-wall which invests the cells and filaments. The 
 filaments of the Oscillariaceae exhibit a gliding, oscillating move- 
 ment, but the mechanism of it is not fully understood. 
 
 Reproduction is mainly effected in a purely vegetative manner. 
 In the unicellular forms (Fig. 163) each cell-division necessarily 
 leads to the formation of new individuals. In the flattened forms 
 (e.g. Merismopedia), when the body reaches a certain limit of size, 
 
232 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 it simply breaks up into a number of portions each of which 
 becomes a new individual. In the filamentous forms, vegetative 
 
 FIG. 163. Glceocapsa (x 300) in 
 various stages. A becomes B C D E 
 by repeated division. (From Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 164. A filament of Nostoc ; the large 
 unshaded cell is a heterocyst; B portion of 
 a filament of Oscillaria (x 300). 
 
 propagation is effected by the breaking up of the filament into 
 lengths, each such portion being termed a hormogonium in most 
 of them (except Oscillariaceae) the limits of the hormogonia are 
 indicated by large inert cells, heterocysts (Fig. 164 -4), which differ 
 both in size and colour from the living cells of the filament. The 
 hormogonia are motile, though the mechanism of their movements 
 is not understood ; they eventually separate, and, escaping from 
 
 FIG. 165. (After Thuret: x 330). A and B development of a filament from a hormo- 
 gonium of Nostoc vesicarium. A cells of hormogonium dividing at right angles to its long 
 axis ; B rows of cells formed as in A uniting at alternate ends, so as to constitute a Nostoc- 
 filament ; z heterocysts ; C germinating spores of Anabcena licheniformis. 
 
 the common mucilaginous cell-wall of the filament, they develope 
 by growth and cell-division into new filaments (Fig. 165 A B). 
 In many cases special reproductive cells, spores, are produced. 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALG.E : CYANOPHYCE31. 233 
 
 Each spore is formed from a single cell of the body, which sur- 
 rounds itself with a thick firm exospore ; the spore germinates 
 under favourable conditions, the exospore being ruptured (Fig. 
 165 C). 
 
 It is possible that zoospores are produced in some forms, but 
 the evidence is at present inconclusive. No form of sexual repro- 
 duction has been observed in any member of this sub-class. 
 
 The cells of the Cyanophyceaa are nucleated, but the chlorophyll 
 and the phycocyanin appear to be diffused throughout the cyto- 
 plasm, and not to be aggregated in special plastids. 
 
 The Cyanophyceae are classified as follows : 
 Order 1. Chroococcaceae. Unicellular : spores formed. 
 Order 2. Nostocaceae. Filamentous ; filaments with heterocysts, without 
 distinction of base and apex, wavy, unbranched ; growth intercalary ; re- 
 production by hormogonia and spores ( Fig. 165). 
 
 Order 3. Oscillariaceae. Filamentous: filaments isolated, motile, without 
 heterocysts, without distinction of base and apex, straight, rigid, un- 
 branched; growth intercalary; reproduction by hormogonia; no spores. 
 Order 4. Rivulariaceae. Filamentous: filaments with heterocysts, and di*- 
 tinction of base and apex, spuriously branched ; growth intercalary ; 
 reproduction by hormogonia and spores. 
 
 OrderS. Scytonemaceae. Filamentous: filam ants with heterocysts, with 
 distinction of base and apex in some forms (Sirosiphoneae) but not in others 
 (Scytonemeae), branched spuriously (Scytonemeae) or truly (Sirosiphoneaa), 
 growth apical (both ends iu Scytonemeae) ; reproduction by hormogonia 
 and spores. 
 
 It is doubtful to what extent these orders really represent distinct forms, for 
 there is evidence that some Cyanophyceae assume the different forms character- 
 istic of these orders at various stages in their development, and under various 
 external conditions, that is, that some at least of the Cj anophycese are poly- 
 morphic, and this renders their classification uncertain. 
 
 The Cyanophyceee resemble the Schizomycetes, among the Fungi, 
 in many respects; as, for instance, in their general form and struc- 
 ture, in their vegetative multiplication, in their spore-formation, 
 in the absence of sexual reproduction, in the formation of a bulky 
 mucilaginous cell-wall, and in their polymorphism. On these 
 grounds they are frequently placed, along with the Schizomycetes, 
 in a distinct class Schizophyta. But this arrangement does not 
 seem to secure any special advantage. It is more natural to regard 
 the Cyanophyceas and the Schizomycetes as parallel groups, the 
 one belonging to the Alga3, the other to the Fungi. 
 
 Some of the Cyanophycea? are endophytic, that is, they inhabit the 
 
234 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 tissues of higher plants ; thus, Nostoc is constantly found in the 
 tissue of certain Hepaticae (Blasia and Anthoceros), in the porous 
 cells of the leaves of Sphagnum (Moss), and in the tissue of the 
 stem of Gunnera (Dicotyledon). 
 
 The Cyanophyceae are both marine and fresh- water ; many grow- 
 on damp walls, rocks, etc. 
 
 Sub-Class II. CHLOROPHYCEJ;, or Green Algae. In the simpler 
 forms the plant (that is, the gametophyte in all species which are 
 sexual) consists of a single cell (e.g. Protococcoideae, some Desmi- 
 dieae) ; or it is coenocytic, as in the Siphonoideae, either unseptate 
 (Siphoriaceae) or incompletely septate (Cladophoraceae, Hydrodic- 
 tyaceae) ; it is, in fact, only in this sub- class that the coenocytic 
 structure occurs among the Algse ; or the body is multicellular, 
 with essentially similar cells and therefore coenobitic (e.g. Spiro- 
 gyra, Pandorina* Ulva), or exhibiting at least a distinction be- 
 tween vegetative and reproductive cells (e.g. Volvox, Chara). The 
 only members of the sub-class in which there is any appreciable 
 differentiation of the vegetative cells are the Characeae. 
 
 The body presents all degrees of morphological differentiation ; 
 it may be a thallus, either spherical (e.g. Haematococcus, Volvox), 
 or filamentous (e.g. Spirogyra, Ulothrix), or a flattened expansion 
 (e.g. Ulva, Coleochaete) ; or a filament with rudimentary differen- 
 tiation into root and shoot (e.g. (Edogonium) ; or it may present 
 differentiation into stem, leaf, and root (e.g. Caulerpa, Fig. 162, 
 Characeae). It may be free or attached. Growth and cell-division 
 commonly go on in all the cells of the body, so that the growth is 
 intercalary (e.g. Spirogyra, (Edogonium, Ulva); it is but rarely that 
 there is a definite growing-point, and then it is apical (Coleochaate, 
 Characeae, some Siphonoideae) ; and in the cellular plants which 
 have an apical growing-point, there is a single apical cell. 
 
 The sporophyte is very simple, both histologically and morpho- 
 logically, in this sub-class. In most cases it is represented by the 
 sexually-produced spore (e.g. Pandorina, CEdogonium, Sphaeroplea) 
 the contents of which undergo division, and, on germination, are 
 set free as zoospores. In Coleochaete alone does the oospore under- 
 go division with the formation of septa, so that the sporophyte 
 is multicellular, but even in this case is quite rudimentary. 
 
 Vegetative multiplication by division occurs in some of the lower 
 forms (e.g. Protococcoideae) of this sub-class. Reproduction by 
 zoospores and zoogonidia is general (absent in Pleurococcaceae, 
 Conjugatse, most Volvocoideae. Characeae); they are formed, not in 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: ALGJ: : CHLOROPHYCE^:. 235 
 
 specialised reproductive organs, but in any cell or part of the body. 
 A sexual process has been observed in members of every division 
 of this sub-class : it is either isogamous, consisting in the fusion of 
 planogametes or aplanogametes (Conjugates), with the formation 
 of a zygospore ; or oogamous, consisting in the fertilisation of an 
 oosphere, which is in no case extruded from the female organ, by 
 a spermatozoid, with the formation of an oospore. The sexual 
 organs are either gametangia, or antheridia and oogonia ; they are 
 unicellular in all the cellular forms (except the antheridium of 
 Characea3 and that of some species of CEdogonium), and present 
 various degrees of specialisation. A gametangium gives rise to 
 many planogametes, but to not more than one aplanogamete ; the 
 oogonium produces but a single oosphere, except in the coenocytic 
 Sphaaroplea; the unicellular (as also the coenocytic) antheridium 
 gives rise to numerous spermatozoids, except in Coleochrete and in 
 some species of CEdogonium where it forms only one; in the multi- 
 cellular antheridium of the Characese, numerous spermatozoids 
 are developed singly in distinct mother-cells (see p. 115). 
 
 In those Chlorophyceae in which both sexual and asexual spore- 
 formation takes place, the life-history generally presents an alter- 
 nation of generations.. There is, in addition to this, considerable 
 polymorphism in many members of the sub-class, so that various 
 forms which were considered to be independent members of the 
 simpler families are now known to be merely phases in the life- 
 history of more complex forms ; for instance, various unicellular 
 forms, such as Protococcus, Palmella, Gloeocystis, etc., formerly 
 classed among the Protococcaceaa, are now known to be stages in 
 the life-history of other Protococcoidea3, Confervoideae, Siph- 
 onoideee, etc. 
 
 The Chlorophyceae may be classified as follows : 
 
 Series I. Protococcoidese : plants unicellular, isolated or held together by 
 mucilaginous cell-walls into colonies ; non-motile; the body is a thallus, 
 and has no apical growth ; reproduction, vegetative by division, asexual by 
 zoospores, rarely sexual and isogamous with conjugation of planogametes. 
 
 Series II. Volvocoidese : plants unicellular or multicellular, and when multi- 
 cellular not filamentous ; not attached, motile by means of cilia ; the body 
 is a thallus, with limited growth ; reproduction, vegetative by division, 
 asexual by zoospores, no zoogonidia ; sexual, either isogamous with con- 
 jugation of planogametes, or oogamous. 
 
 Series III. Siphonoidece : plants cttiiocytic, unseptate or incompletely septate ; 
 noo -motile ; the body may be a thallus or may be differentiated into stem, 
 leaf, and root ; with or without apical growth ; reproduction, asexual by 
 
236 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 zoogonidia and zoospores ; sexual, either isogamous (planogametes), or 
 oogamous. 
 
 Series IV. Confervoideae : plants generally multicellular, filamentous, branched 
 orunbranched ; growth frequently intercalary, rarely apical ; body attached 
 or floating, a thallus, or sometimes with rudimentary differentiation into 
 root and shoot; reproduction, asexual by zoogonidia and zoospores, in 
 some cases ; sexual, isogamous (either plauogametes or aplanogametes), or 
 oogamous. 
 
 Series V. Charoideae : plants multicellular ; body attached, differentiated into 
 stem (with apical growth), leaf, and root; reproduction, vegetative 
 by gemma?, no zoogonidia or zoospores ; sexual, oogamous, with multi- 
 cellular antheridium of complex structure. 
 
 Series I. PBOTOCOCCOIDEJE. The forms included in this series are very 
 various, and, inasmuch as their life-history is for the most part imperfectly 
 known, it is uncertain to what extent they are independent, or are only phases 
 in the life-history of each other or of higher Chlorophyceaa. It appears, how- 
 ever, that they may be fairly classified into two orders : 
 
 Order 1. Pleurococcaceae : cells isolated, or aggregated into colonies of 
 more or less definite form ; multiply only by cell-division ; no other mode of 
 reproduction. 
 
 To this order belong such isolated forms as Pleuro- 
 coccus, Oocystis, and Eremosphsera ; and such aggre- 
 gate forms as Palmophyllum, Palmodictyon, Sceue- 
 desmus. They generally grow in fresh water ; but 
 PJeurococcus grows on damp trees, stones, etc., and 
 Palmophyllum is marine. 
 
 Order 2. Protococcaceae : cells isolated, or 
 
 FIG. 16fi. Pleurococcus i. j i i- * i TC-J.* 
 
 vwlgom (x540) : cells di- aggregated into colonies of more or less definite form ; 
 viding. multiplication 'by cell-division is not general; re- 
 
 production, asexual by zoosporei?, or, less commonly, 
 sexual isogamous (planogametes). 
 
 This order includes (1) isolated unicellular forms, either free, such as 
 Chlorococcum, Halosphaara ; or attached at one end, such as Sciadiuru, 
 Characium ; or inhabiting the tissues of higher plants, such as Chlorochytrium, 
 Phyllobium, Endosphaara; (2) cells aggregated into mucilaginous masses of 
 indeterminate form, e.g. Chlorospbaara which lies in or on submerged fresh- 
 water-plants ; (3) cells aggregated into mucilaginous masses of determinate 
 form, the whole colony being generally attached at some definite point (e.y. 
 Apiocystis, Tetraspora, Palmodactylon, Mischococeus, Hormotila, Oocardium), 
 or free-floating (e.y. Dictyosphaarium, Botryococcus). 
 
 In some of these forms there is what is termed a Palmella-stage, in which 
 the cells multiply by division, surrounded by mucilage (e.g. Hormotila, 
 Characium). 
 
 Isogamous reproduction by means of planogametes is known in Tetraspora, 
 Mischococeus, Chlorochytrium, Endosphaara, Phyllobium. The zygospore, on 
 germination, usually gives rise to one or two zoospores ; but in the endophytic 
 forms (Chlorochytrium, Phyllobium, Eudosphaara) the still motile product of 
 conjugation, the zygozoospore, penetrates into the tissues of its future host, 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: ALGJi : CHLOKOPHYCE^. 
 
 237 
 
 and, surrounding itself with a cell-wall, directly constitutes itself a new 
 individual. 
 
 Series II. VOLVOCOIDE^E. The body, in this series, is free-swimming for at 
 least a considerable portion of its life, and consists of one or more cells clothed 
 with a somewhat mucilaginous cell-wall, through which the cilia (usually two 
 from each cell) project into the water. According to the unicellular or multi- 
 cellular structure of the body, two orders may be distinguished : 
 
 Order 1. Chlamydomonadaceae : body a single cell, resembling in many 
 cases a zoospore in appearance, but differing essentially from it in possessing a 
 cell-wall ; some forms have a resting Palmella-stage, in which they multiply by 
 division ; sexual process, generally isogamous with fusion of planogametes, but 
 sometimes in Chlamydomonas it is really oogamous, consisting in the fusion of 
 a small (male) aplauogamete with a larger (female) aplanogamete ; the repro- 
 ductive cells (planogametes or aplanogametes) are formed by division ; the 
 zygospore represents the sporophyte, and generally gives rise, on germination, 
 to two or four motile or non- 
 motile individuals. 
 
 The principal genera are Chla- 
 raydomonas, Haematococcus (or 
 Sphaerella), Pbacotus. 
 
 Order 2. Volvocaceae : body 
 multicellular, consisting of a de- 
 finite or an indefinite number of 
 cells, which may be all alike 
 (ccenobium), or there may be a 
 distinction between vegetative and 
 reproductive cells ; vegetative re- 
 production, by division of any or 
 all of the cells of the body, or of 
 certain special gonidial cells (Vol- 
 vox), from each of which a new 
 individual is formed ; sexual re- 
 pi eduction, isogamous by piano- 
 gametes, or oogamous. 
 
 The order may be divided into 
 two families in accordance with the nature of the sexual process : 
 
 Fam. 1. Pandorinea: : sexual process isogamous; body a ccenobium consisting 
 of a definite number (usually 16 in Gonium and Pandorina, and 8 in 
 Stephanosphffira) of cells; any of the cells may divide to form a new individual, 
 or to form planogametes ; the zygospore (at least in Pandorina) representing 
 the sporophyte, sets free one or two zoospores on germination. 
 
 The body of Pandorina is a solid sphere (Fig. 167) ; that of Gonium is a 
 flat, square plate of cells ; that of Stephanospluera consists of a zone of cells 
 lying on the equator of the more or less nearly spherical mucilaginous common 
 cell-wall. 
 
 Fam. 2. Eudorinecc : sexual process oogamous ; body, a hollow sphere, either 
 a ccenobium consisting of a definite number (geuernlly 32) of cells (Eudorina) ; 
 or consisting of a very large number of cells, some of which are specially 
 
 FIG. 107. Pandorina Mo rum (x400). A vege- 
 tative stage. B two planogametes in process of 
 conjugation. 
 
238 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 
 differentiated as reproductive organs (Volvox). Eudorina is dioecious, the cells 
 of the body of any one individual becoming either all oogonia or all antheridia ; 
 Volvox is sometimes monoecious, sometimes dioecious. The contents of the 
 oospore undergo repeated bipartition until the requisite number of cells to 
 form a new individual is attained. The vegetative development of new indi- 
 \iduals from the body-cells of Eudorina, and from the special gonidial cells of 
 
 Yolvox, takes place in 
 precisely the same way 
 as the development from 
 the oospore. In Volvox, 
 the small individuals 
 formed vegetatively from 
 the gonidial cells are set 
 free into the cavity of 
 the parent, where they 
 remain until it dies, when 
 they are set free. The 
 spermatozoids of Volvox 
 and Eudorina are club- 
 shnped, yellow, with a 
 red eye-spot (see p. 102), 
 and bear two cilia, either 
 at the pointed end (Eu- 
 dorina), or inserted la- 
 terally (Volvox). 
 
 Series III. SIPHONOI- 
 DE^;. The forms in- 
 cluded in this series 
 may be arranged in the 
 three following orders : Siphonacete, Cladophoraceos, Hydrodictyaceae. 
 
 Order 1. Siphonaceae. The body is an unseptate ccenocyte, septa being 
 only formed in connexion with the development of reproductive organs ; it is 
 usually attached, and presents a considerable variety of form ; it may be thalloid 
 and then be tubular and much branched (usually in Vaucheria, Fig. 169, 
 Phyllosiphon) ; or it may be differentiated into root and shoot, the shoot 
 assuming various forms, such as a rounded cushion (Codium Ihirsa], or a 
 simple vesicle (Botrydium, Fig. 171); or the shoot maybe differentiated into 
 stem and leaf (Acetabularia, Fig. 170, Bryopsis, Caulerpa, Fig. 162); it has 
 sometimes continuous apical growth (e.g. Vaucheria) ; the wall is sometimes 
 impregnated with chalk (e.g. Halimeda, Acetabularia). 
 
 Asexual reproduction is known to take place in only a few forms: it is 
 effected by zoogonidia in Botrydium, where they are uniciliate ; in Vaucheria, 
 where they are multiciliate (see Fig. 75) ; in Derbesia, with a group of cilia at 
 the anterior end ; in Halimeda, where they are biciliate ; in PhyJlosiphon, which 
 is endophytic on Arisarum vulyare, it is effected by non-motile gonidia, as it is 
 sometimes also in Vaucheria. In Vaucheria the gonidia are formed singly in 
 pimple gonidangia formed by septation of branches of the body ; in Botrydium 
 and Pbyllosiphon they are formed in large numbers, in the former from the 
 
 FIG. 168. Volvox Globator (after Cohn ; x about 100), 
 monoecious, with, antheridia a, and oogonia 6. 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: ALGJ: : CHLOROPHYCE^. 
 
 239 
 
 whole protoplasm of the body, iu the latter from that of successive branches of 
 
 FIG. 169. Vauclieria sessilis (x 30). A sp A newly-formed zoogonidium. B A resting 
 zoogonidium. C, The commencement, 1) and E more advanced stages, of germination ; 
 sp zoogonidium; s apex of the green filament; w a colourless adventitious root. F Fila- 
 rneut with sexual organs ; og oogonium : 7i antheridiuoi after rupture. (After Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 170. Acetabularia crenulata (after Kiitz- 
 ing; nat. size): the terminal circular disc con- 
 sists of a whorl of coherent leaves 5 in these 
 the gametangia are formed. 
 
 FIG. 171. JBotrj/cJiiim granulatum 
 (x 6): s the green shoot; w the 
 colourless root. 
 
240 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the tubular body; in Derbesia and Halimeda there are definite gonidangia, 
 each producing a number of zoogonidia. 
 
 Sexual reproduction is generally isogamous by planogametes : Vaucheria is 
 the only known oogamous form. Isogamy is known, certainly or probably, in 
 Botrydium, Bryopsis (?), Codium (?), Dasycladus, Acetabularia. In Botrydium 
 and Acetabularia the gametangia are formed by the aggregation of the proto- 
 plasm (in the coherent leaves of the latter) into rounded masses which become 
 f-urrouuded by a wall, and are set free by the rupture of the parent organism ; 
 their contents undergo frequent division to produce the planogametes which are 
 eventually set free ; in Dasycladus and Codium the unilocular gametangia are 
 rounded or oval, and are borne, in the former, terminally on the leaves, and in 
 the latter, as lateral outgrowths on the thalloid shoot ; in Bryopsis the small 
 tubular leaves act as gametangia, being shut off by a septum from the branch 
 bearing them. 
 
 In Botrydium, Acetabularia, and Dasycladus, the conjugating gametes are 
 quite similar ; but in Bryopsis and in Codium, the one (male) is small and 
 brown or yellow, the other (female) is larger and green. 
 
 In Vaucheria, the sexual organs are unilocular antheridia and oogonia, and 
 are developed as lateral branches which become shut off by a septum (Fig. 169) ; 
 each antheridium gives rise to a number of biciliate spermatozoids ; each oo- 
 gonium gives rise to a single oosphere which is not extruded, and has a hyaline 
 receptive spot directed towards the opening of the oogonium. 
 
 So far as the life-history of the Siphonaceae is known, there is no indication 
 of an alternation of generations ; the plant is, in all cases, the gametopbyte, and 
 the product of the sexual process is a zygospore or an oospore which, on ger- 
 mination, developes directly into a new gametophyte. 
 The following are the families of the Siphonacea? : 
 
 Fam. 1. Vaucheriece : oogamous ; body, simply tubular and branched ; in- 
 cludes the single genus Vaucheria ; marine and fresh-water. 
 Fam. 2. Derleaiece : probably isogamous ; body simply tubular and 
 
 branched ; single genus Derbesia ; marine. 
 
 Fam. 3. Codies : isogamous, so far as known ; body, tubular and much 
 branched, the branches interwoven into a tissue, assuming various 
 forms ; principal genera, Codiurn, Halimeda, Udotea ; marine. 
 Fam. 4. Danjcladea : isogamous ; body tubular, short, differentiated into 
 stem and leaf, the stem being an erect main axis ; leaves whorled, 
 or bilaterally arranged (Bryopsis) ; principal genera, Dasycladus, 
 Acetabularia, Bryopsis ; marine. 
 
 Fam. 5. Caulerpea: : reproduction not known ; body, differentiated into root 
 stem and leaf, dorsiventral ; stem creeping, bearing roots be- 
 low and loaves above ; genus, Caulerpa (Fig. 162) ; marine. 
 Fam. 6. Botrydiea : isogamous ; body differentiated into root and shoot ; 
 shoot, vesicular, thalloid and unbranched ; genus, Botrydium 
 on mud. 
 
 Fam. 7. Phyllosi phone <c : sexual reproduction not known; asexual repro- 
 duction by non-motile gonidia; body, tubular branched, or vesi- 
 cular and unbranched, thalloid; endophytic; genera, Phyllosiphon 
 in leaves of Arisarum vulgare, Phytophysa in shoots of Pilea. 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : &LGM : CHLOROPHYCEJ1. 
 
 241 
 
 Order 2. Cladophoraceae. The body is incompletely septate and the 
 segments are coeuocytic ; it is filamentous, branched or unbranched, sometimes 
 differentiated into root and thalloid shoot, attached or free-floating, the shoot 
 with or without apical growth : reproduction, asexual by zoogonidia ; sexual, 
 isogamous, or oogamous. 
 
 The order comprises the families Sphaeropleae. Cladophoreae, and Valonieze. 
 
 Fam. 1. Sphceroplece : the body consists of floating unbranched filaments, 
 without distinction of base and apex, and 
 with intercalary growth. Each segment con- 
 tains numerous small chloroplastids as well 
 as some larger chloroplastids with pyrenoids. 
 Any segment of the body may become a 
 sexual reproductive organ, either an oogon- 
 ium or an antheridium, without any change 
 of form ; in the oogonium several oospheres 
 are formed by free cell- formation (see p. 121), 
 and likewise in the antheridium, after re- 
 peated nuclear division, a great number of 
 spermatozoids ; the oospheres are not ex- 
 truded, but are fertilised in the oogonium 
 by spermatozoids which enter through an 
 opening formed in the wall ; the oospore, at 
 first green, assumes a bright red colour, and 
 on germination sets free 2-8 zoospores, each 
 of which gives rise to a new filament : thus 
 the life-history indicates an alternation of 
 generations, the oospore representing the 
 sporophyte. Sphasroplea is the only genus, 
 and it comprises bat one species S. an- 
 indina. 
 
 Fam. 2. Cladophorece : body filamentous, 
 generally attached by a basal root-segment, 
 branched (e.g. Cladopbora, Pithophora) or 
 xmbranched (e.g. Urospora, Chaetomorpha^ 
 llhizoclonium), with usually intercalary 
 growth (though it is apical in Cladophora and 
 Pithophora) ; each segment contains a peri- 
 pheral layer of chloroplastids (Fig. 172), 
 continuous or interrupted, in which are 
 scattered pyrenoids ; reproduction, asexual 
 by zoogonidia (except Ehizoclonium and 
 Pithophora) ; an isogamous sexual process 
 between planogametes has been observed in 
 Urospora and Cladophora ; reproductive cells 
 formed in all or any of the segments of the 
 body without special modification ; the zygo- 
 spore appears to develope directly into a new 
 
 Fio. 172. Cladophora glomerate 
 (after Strasburger: x 510). A 
 coenocyte of the filament (chromic 
 acid and carmine preparation) : 
 nanucleus; chachloroplastid; the 
 polygonal chloroplastids form a 
 continuous layer, the outlines of 
 the individual plastids remaining 
 visible; p pyrenoids; v starch- 
 grains. 
 
 plant (Cladophora), so that the sporophyte is not represented in the life-history. 
 
 V. S. B. 
 
242 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Vegetative propagation occurs in some forms : an entire segment (Khizo- 
 clonium), or a part of a segment (Pithophora), or several parts of a repeatedly 
 septated segment (Urospora) become densely filled with protoplasmic contents 
 and then break away from the body, and germinate either at once or after a 
 period of rest ; in Urospora this body, which appears in all cases to be of the 
 nature of a gemma, sometimes gives rise to zoogonidia. 
 
 Cladophora and Chsetomorpha occur in both salt and fresh water ; Pithophora 
 exclusively in fresh water ; Urospora exclusively in salt water ; Ehizoclonium 
 occurs both in fresh and salt water, and also in damp soil. 
 
 Fam. 3. Valoniea : body, essentially tubular and much branched, attached 
 by a root, the thalloid shoot presenting various forms (vesicular or clavate, or 
 a flattened expansion), with apical growth ; the only form of reproduction 
 known is asexual by zoogonidia (in Vaionia, Siphonocladus, Anadyomene) : 
 principal genera, Vaionia, Dictyosphseria, Siphonocladus, Struvea, Anadyomene ; 
 all marine. 
 
 Order 3. Hydrodictyaceae : body thalloid, a non-motile unattached 
 ccenobium, formed by the aggregation of originally distinct cells, of limited 
 growth; a net (Hydrodictyon), or a flat plate (Pediastrum), or a solid sphere 
 (Sorastrum), or a hollow sphere (Coelastrum) : reproduction, asexual by zoo- 
 gonidia (Hydrodictyon, Pediastrum) or non-motile gonidia (Coelastrum, Sora- 
 strum) ; sexual, isogamous by planogametes (known only in Hydrodictyon and 
 Pediastrum). 
 
 It appears that Coelastrum and Sorastrum are really cellular plants, each 
 segment of the body being a cell with a single nucleus. 
 
 All four genera are confined to fresh water. 
 
 The following is a brief sketch of the life-history of Hydrodictyon. The 
 asexual reproduction of this plant consists in the formation of a large number 
 (7,000-20,000) of zoogonidia in any one of the segments of the ccenobium ; the 
 zoogonidia do not escape from the segment (gonidangium), but swim actively 
 within it for a time, when they come to rest, cohering, as they do so, to form a 
 small net-like coenobium, which is eventually set free by the disorganisation of 
 the wall of the gonidangium, and then grows to the full size. The sexual re- 
 production consists in the formation in a segment (gametangium) of the 
 'ccenobium, of a very large number (30,000-100,000) of small planogametes ; these 
 are set free into the water, and conjugate to form zygospores. The zygospore, 
 which has a tljick wall and is angular in form, undergoes a period of quiescence ; 
 on germination its contents divide into two or more cells which are set free as 
 zoospores, and, after a brief period of motility, come to rest. Each then sur- 
 rounds itself with a thick cell-wall, and assumes a peculiar angular form, on 
 account of which it has been termed the polyhedron-stay e. The polyhedron 
 grows and its contents divide into a number of zoospores ; the outer coat of the 
 polyhedron then ruptures, and the contents, surrounded by the thin inner coat, 
 are extruded; the zoospores then arrange themselves into a small Hydro- 
 dictyon-plant. Thus the life-history of Hydrodictyon presents a definite alter- 
 nation of generations ; the plant is the gametophyte ; the zygospore and the 
 polyhedron together represent the sporophyte. 
 
 The life-history of Pediastrum is essentially the same as that of Hydrodictyon ; 
 but in Pediastrum the zoogonidia are set free from the gonidangium, sur- 
 
GttOUP I. THALLOPHYTA: ALG^E : CHLOROPHYCEyE. 243 
 
 rounded by a delicate membrane within which they come to rest and cohere 
 to form a Pediastrum-plant. 
 
 In Coelastrum and Sorastrum the gonidia formed in the mother-cell either at 
 once unite to form a new coenobium, or they may be set free, and then each 
 undergoes repeated division to form a new coeuobium. In view of the state- 
 ment that these two genera are not coenocytic, but cellular, and of the fact that 
 in them the coenobium may be formed by cell -division, it appears that their 
 affinities are rather with the Protococcoideae than with the Siphonoideos. 
 
 Series IV. CONFERVOIDEAE. The forms included in this series may be arranged 
 
 in the following orders : 
 Sub-series A. Azoosporees : no zoogonidia or zoospores. 
 
 Order 1. Conjugate : sexual reproduction by aplanogametes. 
 Sub-series J3. Zoosporees ; asexual reproduction by zoogonidia and zoospores. 
 Isof/amous Orders : 
 
 Order 2. Ulothrichacees : body filamentous, unbranched. 
 
 Order 3. Chestophoracees : body filamentous, branched. 
 
 Order 4. Ulvacees : body a flat or tubular cellular expansion. 
 Oo (famous Orders : 
 
 Order 5. (Edogoniaceae: body filamentous, unbranched (except Bulbochaete) . 
 
 Order 6. Coleocbestaceae : body filamentous, branched ; oogonium with a 
 trichogyne ; sporophyte multicellular. 
 
 An asexual formation of spores takes place in all the Confervoidees, except the 
 Conjugates. The sporophyte, in all cases in which it is fully known, gives rise 
 to zoospores. The gametophyte multiplies itself by means of zoogonidia, and 
 in some cases (Chaetophoracees) by means of resting gonidia. The gonidangia 
 are not differentiated, as any cell of the body may act as one. Several zoospores 
 are usually developed in a single sporangial cell, but in some cases only one 
 (e.g. zoogonidia of CEdogonium and Coleochoste, zoospores of Coleocheste). 
 
 A sexual formation of spores takes place in all the Confervoideae ; in the 
 isogamous forms the product of conjugation is a zygospore ; in the oogamous 
 forms it is an oospore. In the isogamous forms the sexual organs, or game- 
 tangia, are not differentiated; any or all of the cells of the body may act as 
 gametangia ; the sexual cells are (except in the Conjugates) free-swimming simi- 
 lar planogametes ; in the Conjugates the gametes are not set free into the water 
 and they are not ciliated. In some cases (e.g. Ulothrix, Chroolepus) the piano- 
 gametes, if they fail to conjugate, are capable of independent germination, thus 
 showing their imperfect sexual differentiation. The plauogametes usually 
 differ from the zoogonidia in being smaller. In tbe oogamous forms the s'exual 
 organs are antheiidia and oogonia ; they are more or less markedly differen- 
 tiated. The sexual cells are oospheres and spermatozoids. The oospheres are 
 formed singly in the oogonium. The spermatozoids are formed singly in the 
 mother-cell; they resemble the zoogonidia of the respective plants, but are 
 smaller and are not green. 
 
 The life-history of the Confervoideae has been investigated with success in 
 only a few forms (some Conjugates, Ulothrix, CEdogonium, Coleochaete). In 
 the Conjugates, as there is no asexual production of spores, there is no alterna- 
 tion of generations ; in the others such an alternation can be traced. In these 
 
244 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 
 forms, the plant is the gametophyte, producing not only the sexual cells, but 
 also zoogonidia. The sporophyte is the zygospore (Ulothrix), or the oospore 
 (CEdogonium), or a structure developed by cell -division from the oospore 
 (Coleochaete). la Ulothrix and CEdogonium, the contents of the spore, whether 
 zygospore or oospore, undergo division giving rise to two or more zoospores 
 which are set free and, after a longer or shorter period of movement, come to 
 rest and germinate, each developing into a gametophyte. In Coleochaete, the 
 contents of the oospore likewise undergo division, but the product is not several 
 zoospores ; it is a small multicellular body which constitutes the sporophyte, 
 each cell of which eventually sets free its contents as a single zoospore which, 
 on coming to rest, developes into a gametophyte. 
 
 It must be noted that in this series, as in others, the gametophyte does not 
 always actually produce sexual organs ; thus, in Coleochaete, there is generally 
 a succession of such potential gametophytes produced by means of zoogonidia 
 before an actual gametophyte makes its appearance. 
 
 There is evidence of considerable further polymorphism in the members of 
 this group : some of them appear to have protococcoid or palmelloid forms ; 
 the flattened expanded forms have filamentous stages, etc. 
 
 The following is a brief account of the orders of the Confervoideas : 
 Order 1. Conjugates ; the characteristics of this sub-order have been 
 already stated ; it need only be added that the plants are usually not attached. 
 It includes the families Desmidiese, Zygnemeae and Mesocarpeae ; all fresh- 
 water. 
 
 Family 1. Desmidiece. These are unicellular organisms, either solitary or 
 connected into filaments ; they possess some power of locomotion. Each cell 
 consists of a mass of protoplasm with a central nucleus, and contains two 
 or more chloroplastids in which lie conspicuous pyrenoids. The cell-contents 
 are arranged symmetrically in the two halves of the cell, and in many forms 
 this bilateral symmetry is emphasised by a deep constriction in the median 
 plane. 
 
 The Desmids multiply to a large extent by division ; the cell is divided into 
 
 two by the formation of a cell-wall 
 in the median plane, and then each 
 half produces a new half correspond- 
 ing to itself ; hence the two halves 
 of a cell are of different ages. The 
 only other mode of reproduction is 
 by means of zygospores formed by 
 tbe conjugation of two individuals 
 (Fig. 173). On germination the con- 
 tents of the zygospore divide into 
 two halves, each of which becomes 
 an individual. 
 
 Among the commoner forms of 
 the DesmidieaB are Closterium (Figs. 
 173 and 174), Staurastrum, Euas- 
 trum (Fig. 174 <7.). 
 Family 2. Zygnemea. These plants, consisting of long, delicate, unbranched 
 
 cl 
 
 FIG. 173. Closterium. A in conjugation; 
 zy zygospore : B in transverse section show- 
 ing position of the chloroplastid cl (x 200). 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALGJE : CHLOROPHYCEJ3. 
 
 245 
 
 filaments composed of cylindrical cells, occur as floating green masses in ponds 
 and springs. Each cell contains a peripheral layer of protoplasm in close con- 
 tact with the cell-wall, en- 
 closing a large central 
 vacuole in which the nu- 
 cleus is situated in a mass 
 of protoplasm connected 
 with the peripheral layer 
 by several delicate proto- 
 plasmic filaments. The 
 chloroplastids are the 
 most conspicuous feature 
 of the cell ; in Spirogyra 
 (Fig. 175) and Sirogonium, 
 the chloroplastids, of which 
 there may be from one 
 to four, lie in the parietal 
 protoplasm ; they are spir- 
 
 FIG. 174. 4 Fragment of a filament of Zygnema ; 
 in each cell are two star-shaped chloroplastids con- 
 nected by a colourless mass of protoplasm in which lies 
 the nucleus. B Closterium. C Euastrum, two Desmids 
 with chloroplastids; in B there is a vacuole at each 
 end in which a number of granules may be seen in 
 motion. 
 
 ally twisted in Spirogyra, but are nearly straight in Sirogonium ; like those 
 of the Desmids, these chloroplastids contain several pyrenoids with associated 
 starch-grains ; in Zygnema (Fig. 174 A) each cell contains two chloroplastids, 
 suspended in the middle line, each containing a pyrenoid with starch-grains. 
 
 The filaments elongate by the growth and division of all the constituent cells, 
 and readily break up into segments, consisting of one or more cells, which grow 
 into new filaments. 
 
 The sexual organs (gametangia) are quite undifferentiated ; any or all of the 
 cells of a filament may act as sexual organs, the whole of its contents being 
 converted into a single non-ciliate gamete. The sexual process (conjugation) 
 consists in the fusion of the gametes derived from two cells belonging generally 
 to two filaments, but sometimes to the same filament. It is effected, in most 
 cases, by the development of a lateral outgrowth from the middle of each 
 
 FIG. 175. Conjugation in Spirogyra (x 400). At A two cells of adjacent filaments are 
 about to conjugate, and are putting out protuberances (a) towards each other; cl chlcro- 
 plustid; Ic nucleus. At B the gamete p of the one cell is passing over and fusing with 
 that of the other (p). At C the process of conjugation is completed, the zygospore Z being 
 the product. 
 
 gametangium ; the two outgrowths meet (Fig. 175) and their walls become 
 absorbed at the point of contact so that the cavities of the two gametangia are 
 
 
246 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 continuous. The protoplasmic contents of each cell contract away from the 
 wall of each gametangium to form the gamete. The formation of the gamete 
 takes place earlier in one gametangium than in the other, and the first-formed 
 gamete travels across the connecting channel into the cavity of the other 
 gametangium when it fuses with the other gamete ; the resulting cell surrounds 
 itself with a wall, and constitutes a zygospore. Since the first-formed gamete 
 is the more active in the process of conjugation, it may be regarded as a male 
 cell, the other as a female cell, so that there is a rudimentary differentiation of 
 sex. Further, since the cells of any one filament all behave alike in the process 
 of conjugation, it is possible to speak of male and female filaments or indi- 
 viduals. In ZygogoniUm, however, the gametes are similar, both as regards the 
 time of their formation and their share in conjugation; in this form the 
 gametes meet in the connecting channel and there fuse to form the zygospore. 
 
 Occasionally bodies resembling zygospores are formed in the cells of a fila- 
 ment without any conjugation; these are distinguished as azygoypores, and are 
 products of parthenogenesis (see p. 87). 
 
 After a period of rest, the zygospore germinates ; the outer coat is ruptured, 
 and the contents, covered by a thin cell-wall, protrude as a filament which is 
 divided by a transverse septum into two cells ; of these, the one becomes 
 elongated and remains narrow in the cavity of the spore, undergoes no further 
 division, and contains little or no chlorophyll, whereas the other becomes 
 broader, contains one or mote chloroplastids and, by repeated division, forms a 
 filament. Thus there is at first a differentiation of the body into root and 
 shoot, but this soon ceases to be apparent. It is most clearly marked in 
 Spirogyra and Sirogonium (see Fig. 6). Principal genera : Zygnema, Spirogyra 
 (incl. Sirogonium), Zygogonium. 
 
 Family 3. Mesocarpea. These plants resemble the Zygnemeae in all the 
 chief features of structure and reproduction, but can be distinguished by the 
 following peculiarities. In the first place there is no contraction of the whole 
 piotoplasrnic contents of the gametangium to constitute a gamete, but a portion 
 only of the contents of the two (or sometimes three or four) cells fuse ; secondly, 
 conjugation always takes place so that the product of conjugation lies between, 
 and not in, either of the gametangia ; thirdly, the product of conjugation is not 
 at once a zygospore, but is a mass of protoplasm which becomes shut off from 
 the conjugating gametangia by the formation of a septum on each side; this 
 mass of protoplasm then surrounds itself with a proper wall and proves itself 
 to be a spore by germinating. There is no marked differentiation of the young 
 plant into root and bhoot. Azj'gospores are of frequent occurience in this 
 family (esp. Gonatonema). Genera : Mougeotia, Gonatonema. 
 
 Order 2. Ulothrichaceae. The unbranched filament is attached by a 
 narrow elongated, frequently colourless, root-cell ; the growth in length of the 
 filament is intercalary, that is, each cell elongates and divides by a transverse 
 wall into two. 
 
 The reproductive organs are quite undifferentiated ; any cell of the filament 
 may become an asexual organ, a gonidangium, or a sexual organ, a gametan- 
 gium. In the former case the protoplasmic contents of the cell divide into two 
 or four which are set free as zoogonidia ; in the latter case the contents divide 
 into eight or sixteen which are set free as planogametes. The zoogonidia are 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALG2E : CHLOROPHYCEJ3. 
 
 247 
 
 somewhat pear-shaped in form, the more pointed end being colourless and 
 bearing four cilia and a pigment- spot ; the planogametes resemble the zoo- 
 gonidia but are proportionately smaller and have only two cilia. When the 
 zoogonidia come to rest, they secrete a call-wall, and become attached by the 
 colourless end which forms the root-cell of the developing filament. The piano- 
 gametes conjugate to form zygospores, but if they fail to conjugate they may 
 germinate independently, and they do so in the same manner as the zoogonidia, 
 only the resulting filament is smaller. The zygospore grows and attaches itself 
 by its hyaline portion which developes into a root ; after a period of quiescence 
 its contents divide and are set free as 2-8 zoospores resembling the zoogonidia. 
 Fresh-water and marine. Principal genera: Ulothrix, Conferva, Hormidium, 
 Microspora, Binuclearia. 
 
 A 
 
 FIG. 177. Ulotlirix sonata : A 
 planogametes in different stages of 
 conjugation a-d ; B a zoogonidium. 
 (After Dodel-Port.) 
 
 FIG. 176. Uloihrix zonata : A part of a fila- 
 ment from a cell of which planogametes are 
 escaping, the other cells having already emptied 
 themselves; S planogametes; C the process 
 of conjugation; D young zygospores; E mature 
 zygospore; F germinating zygospore with 
 hyaline root ; G the contents of the embryonic 
 shoot of the sporophyte dividing to form zoo- 
 spores. 
 
 Order 3. Chaetophoraceae. The body is attached by a basal cell, and is 
 erect or creeping ; it is filamentous and much branched, and usually bears long 
 hair-like outgrowths usually formed at the apex of the branches on the cessa- 
 tion of the merismatic activity of the apical growing-points ; the further elon- 
 gation of such branches is intercalary, being effected by the growth and division 
 of one of the cells near its base. 
 
 Eeproduction by zoogonidia is known in almost all the genera ; the goni- 
 dangia are usually quite undifferentiated, though in some forms (e.g. Chroolepus) 
 they differ in form from the ordinary vegetative cells ; their development is 
 limited in some cases, either to terminal cells (Microthamnion), or to the cells 
 of the lateral branches (Draparnaldia) as distinguished from the main axis ; the 
 zoogonidia may be developed singly in the gonidangium (e.g. Chroolepus), in any 
 case the number does not exceed four ; the zoogonidia have frequently four cilia. 
 
 Sexual isogamous reproduction is known in only a few genera (Stigeoclonium, 
 
248 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Chroolepus, and some others) ; the gametangia are but little, if at all, differen- 
 tiated from the vegetative cells of the body ; in Chroolepus the gametes closely 
 resemble the zoogonidia. 
 
 The germination of the zygospore is only known in Phaeophila ; the contents 
 escape as a non-motile cell which grows out basally into a root-like organ of 
 attachment, and apically into the multicellular shoot-filament. 
 
 Principal genera : Chsetophora, Stigeoclonium, Draparnaldia in fresh water ; 
 Chroolepus (Trentepohlia) grows on rocks and tree-trunks, and is peculiar on 
 account of its orange or violet colour. 
 
 Order 4. Ulvaceae. The membranous body consists of a single flat layer of 
 cells (Monostroma), or of a single tubular layer of cells enclosing a cavity 
 (Euteromorpha), or of two layers in close contact (Ulva) ; the body is attached, 
 at least when young, by a root, and is sometimes branched (esp. Entero- 
 morpha); the growth of the body is intercalary, all the cells being concerned 
 in it. 
 
 Any cell of the body may become a gonidangium or a gametangium ; the 
 zoogonidia have four cilia, the planogametes two ; conjugation of planogametes 
 has been observed in the three above-mentioned genera ; the zygospore, on 
 germination, developes directly into a new plant, producing basally the root and 
 distally a cellular filament which becomes the thalloid shoot. Inhabit both 
 fresh and salt water. 
 
 Order 5. QEdogoniacese. Filaments nnbranched (except Bulbochaete), 
 attached by a root ; growth intercalary. The mode of growth of the individual 
 cells of (Edogonium is peculiar ; in the plane of division a ring of cellulose is 
 formed round the cell-wall ; the cell-wall then ruptures, and the cellulose-rins; 
 is stretched so as to form a membrane across the rent ; as this process takes 
 place repeatedly near the upper end of the cell, the projecting edges of the re- 
 peatedly ruptured cell-wall form a series of caps ; the transverse septa, dividing 
 the elongated cells into two, are always formed toward the lower end of the cells. 
 
 Any cell of the body may be a gonidangium, setting free its protoplasmic 
 contents as a single zoogonidium with a circlet of cilia round its more pointed 
 colourless end. On coming to rest, the zoogonidium attaches itself by its 
 colourless end, surrounds itself with a cell-wall, and grows into a filament ; the 
 colourless portion becomes the root-cell (see Fig. 74). 
 
 The sexual organs are differentiated. Some cells of a filament increase in 
 size and become rounded in form, each constituting an oogonium. The proto- 
 plasm in each oogonium contracts away from the wall to constitute the single 
 oosphere. Access to the oosphere is afforded either by the perforation of the 
 oogonium- wall, or by the partial breaking-away of the cell immediately above 
 the oogonium in the filament. The oosphere has a well-marked receptive spot. 
 The antheridia are formed, either in the same or another filament as the species 
 is monoecious or dioecious, by the repeated tranverse division of a cell of the 
 filament ; in some species the antheridium gives rise to a single spermatozoid, 
 but in most it undergoes division into two cells each of which produces a sper- 
 matozoid. The spermatozoids resemble the zoogonidia, but are smaller and 
 are yellow instead of green ; they are set free, and finding their way to the 
 oogonia, one enters an oogonium and fertilises the oosphere, penetrating into it 
 at the receptive spot (Fig. 178). 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: ALGJS : CHLOROPHYCEJ]. 
 
 249 
 
 In some species, termed gynandrosporons, the filaments produce no anthe- 
 ridia, but only oogonia. Some of the cells of such a filament undergo trans- 
 verse division to form short cells which somewhat resemble antheridia. The 
 contents of each of these cells are set free as a single zoogonidium. termed an 
 androspore, intermediate in size and colour between the ordinary zoogonidia 
 and the spermatozoids, and resembling them in form. The androspore comes 
 to rest, attaching itself to 
 the wall of an oogonium 
 (Fig. 178), and germinates, 
 forming a small filament, 
 imown as a dwarf -male, 
 which consists of a root- 
 cell and two or three cells 
 above it ; each of these 
 upper cells is an anther- 
 idium, and its contents 
 are set free as a single 
 spermatozoid. 
 
 On germination, the 
 contents of the oospore are 
 set free as four zoospores, 
 which resemble the zoo- 
 gonidia, and germinate in 
 the same manner. Fresh- 
 water : genera, (Edogon- 
 ium, Bulbochffite. 
 
 Order 6. Coleochse- 
 taceae. Body filamentous, 
 branched, forming hemi- 
 spherical or disc-shaped 
 cushions on submerged 
 stones or parts of water- 
 plants ; the mode of 
 growth is essentially api- 
 cal, though in some forms 
 (C. scutata) the apical 
 cells constitute a marginal 
 series ; most of the cells 
 eventually develope the 
 peculiar sheathing hairs 
 which have suggested the 
 name of the family. 
 Fresh-water: Coleochaste, 
 the sole genus. 
 
 The gonidaugia are un- 
 differentiated ; any cell 
 may set free its proto- 
 plasmic contents as a zoo- 
 gonidium with two cilia. 
 
 FIG. 178. A (Edogonium ciliatum ^x 250). A Middle 
 part of a sexual filament with three oogonia (og) fertilised 
 by the dwarf -male plants (m), developed from zoogonidia 
 formed in the cell m at the upper part of the filament. 
 B Oogonium at the moment of fertilisation : o the 
 oosphere ; og the oogonium ; z the spermatozoid in the 
 act of forcing its way in ; m dwarf-male plant. C Ripe 
 oospore. D Piece of the male filament of (Ed. gemelli- 
 
 parum, z spermatozoids. E Branch of a Bulbochcete, with 
 one oogonium still containing an oospore, another in the 
 act of allowing it to escape ; in the lower part an empty 
 oogonium. F The four zoospores formed from an oospore. 
 G Zocspore come to rest. (After Pringsheim.) 
 
250 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The sexual organs, oogonia and antheridia, are differentiated, especially in 
 the more distinctly filamentous forms. In the filamentous forms (e.g. C. pul- 
 vinata, Fig. 179) the oogonia and antheridia are borne at the ends of the 
 branches ; the terminal cell of a branch enlarges to form an oogonium, be- 
 coming spherical, and growing out into a long filament, the trichogyne ; the 
 antheridia are developed as small flask- shaped cells from the terminal cells of 
 a filament. In the discoid forms (e.g. C. scutata), the oogonia and antheridia 
 are not terminal ; the oogonium is simply an enlarged spherical cell and has no 
 trichogyne ; the antheridium is simply a small cell formed, in a group of four, 
 by the division of one of the vegetative cells. 
 
 A single oosphere is formed in each oogonium, and a single spermatozoid in 
 each antheridium. The spermatozoids, on being set free, find their way to the 
 
 FIG. 179. CoZeocTiffte pulvinata (x350: after Pringsheim). A Part of an actual gameto- 
 pbyte bearing oogonia og (with trichogynes tv) and antheridia an ; 7i hairs. B portion of a 
 plant in which a multicellular sporophyte has been developed in each fertilised oogonium. 
 C an isolated sporophyte the investment of which is ruptured prior to the setting frea of 
 zoospores. 
 
 oogonia, and, entering by an opening in the wall (in the trichogyne when it is 
 present), reach the oospheres and fertilise them. 
 
 The effect of fertilisation is not only to cause the oosphere to become an 
 oospore by clothing itself with a proper wall, but also to cause the neighbouring 
 cells to grow round the oogonium and form a compact cellular investment for 
 it. Surrounded by this investment, the oospore falls to the bottom of the 
 water, as the plant dies down, and undergoes a period of quiescence. On ger- 
 mination it grows, splitting the investment, and divides to form a small multi- 
 cellular body, the sporophyte, the existence of which shortly comes to an end 
 by the escape of the whole of the protoplasmic contents of all the cells as 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALGJI : CHLOROPHYCEJ3. 
 
 251 
 
 zoospores, one from each cell, which resemble the zoogonidia, and germinate in 
 a similar manner to form a (potential or actual) gametophyte. 
 
 Series V. CHAROIDEJE. The forms included in this series constitute but a 
 single order, the Characeae. 
 
 Order I. Characeae. The stem is distinctly segmented into nodes and 
 internodes, the nodes being marked by the whorls of leaves which they bear. 
 It consists of a longitudinal series of elongated cylindrical cells, each of which 
 constitutes an internode, separated from each other by transverse plates of 
 small cells which are the nodes. In Chara there is, in addition, a cortex con- 
 sisting of rows of cells, sometimes spirally twisted, produced by a growth of the 
 peripheral cells of each node, both upwards and downwards, over the inter- 
 nodes above and below it. 
 
 All the cells contain small discoid chloroplastids which lie imbedded in the 
 protoplasm immediately beneath the cell-wall. The more internal portion of 
 the protoplasmic layer shows the movement known as cyclosis ; the central 
 portion of the cell-cavity, when the cell is fully grown, is occupied by a large 
 vacuole filled with cell-sap. 
 Each cell contains a single nu- 
 cleus when young ; but the long 
 internodal cells, when old, are 
 found to contain many nuclei 
 produced by the fragmentation 
 of the original nucleus. 
 
 The growth in length of the 
 stem is unlimited, and is 
 effected by means of a hemi- 
 spheiical apical cell (Fig. 180). 
 This cell undergoes repeated 
 division, a series of segments 
 being cut off by transverse 
 walls ; after a segment has 
 been cut off, the apical cell re- 
 gains its normal size by growth, 
 then another segment is cut off, 
 followed by renewed growth, 
 and so on. Each segment is immediately divided into two cells by a transverse 
 wall ; of these two cells the upper, in all cases, becomes a node, dividing by 
 vertical walls into the small cells, central and peripheral, of which the node 
 consists ; the lower, in all cases, becomes an internode ; it does not divide, but 
 simply grows in length. In Chara the young peripheral nodal cells keep pace 
 with the growth of the internodal cells, forming the cortex over them. 
 
 The leaves and branches of the stem are all developed from the cells of the 
 nodes ; the leaves spring in a whorl, one from each of the peripheral cells of 
 the node, and the branches are developed as buds in the axils of one or more 
 of the leaves of each whorl. 
 
 The mode of growth and general morphology of the leaf is essentially the 
 same as that of the main stem or one of its branches ; it grows by means of an 
 apical cell resembling that of the stem, and from the segments are formed 
 
 FIG. 180. Diagram of growing-point of stem of 
 Chara fragilis ( x 500, after Sachs) : a apical cell ; 
 s segment lately cut off; ri 1 n a n 3 successive nodes ; 
 in 1 in 2 iii 3 successive internodes ; I leaves ; c cortical 
 cells growing down over in from n, 3 . 
 
252 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 nodes and internodes in regular succession ; from the nodal cells of the leaf 
 arise whorls of leaf-branches or leaflets. The only fundamental difference be- 
 tween the leaf and the stem of the Characese is that, whereas the apical growth 
 of the latter is unlimited, that of the former is limited ; the apical cell of the 
 leaf at length ceases to divide, assuming a somewhat cylindrical form with a 
 pointed tip. 
 
 The roots, with the exception of the first root of the embryo, are all adventi- 
 tious, being developed from the lower nodal cells of the stem. They are 
 simpler in structure than the stem or leaf, each consisting of a colourless fila- 
 ment of long, narrow cells; the growth is apical, though the apical cell is not 
 specially differentiated as in the stem ; the cells of the root are connected in a 
 peculiar manner, the contiguous ends of the two cells having each somewhat 
 the shape of the sole of a human foot ; root-branches are developed from that 
 portion of the cell, just above the articulation, which corresponds to the heel of 
 the foot. 
 
 The sexual organs (Fig. 181) are in all cases borne on the leaves : the an- 
 theridium is developed from the terminal cell of a leaf or of a leaflet; the 
 oogonium replaces a leaflet. The plant may be either monoecious or dioecious. 
 
 The antheridium is a spherical body, of a green colour when young, but 
 orange when mature, borne on a stalk. Its wall consists of eight cells, each of 
 which is termed a shield, presenting marginal infoldiugs of the wall ; the wall of 
 the upper half of the antheridium consists of four triangular shields ; that of 
 the lower half consists likewise of four triangular shields, each of which has 
 its lower angle truncated to admit of the passage of the stalk-cell. On the 
 inner surface of each shield, at its centre, is attached a cylindrical cell, the 
 manubrium, which extends to near the centre of the antheridium. Each manu- 
 brium bears at its inner end a somewhat spherical cell, the capitulum. To 
 each capitulum are attached usually six rounded cells, the secondary capitula. 
 Connected with each secondary capitulum are two cells each of which bears a 
 pair of long filaments, each filament consisting of about two hundred cells. 
 The cells of the filaments are the mother-cells of the spermatozoids, each cell 
 giving rise to a single spermatozoid. 
 
 The male cell or spermatozoid consists of a club-shaped spirally- wound mass 
 of protoplasm bearing two long cilia at its pointed anterior end (see p. 116). 
 When the antheridium is mature the shields separate, the spermatozoids are 
 set free from their mother-cells and escape into the water. 
 
 The oogonium is the enlarged terminal cell of the leaflet which it represents. 
 Beneath the oogonium proper is a node, the central cell of which constitutes 
 the stalk-cell of the oogonium, whilst the five peripheral cells of the node grow 
 out into filaments which gradually become spirally twisted and enclose the 
 oogonium ; the tips of these filaments project at the free end of the oogonium, 
 constituting the croion or corona, and are cut off from the rest of the filaments 
 either by one transverse wall, so that the crown consists of five cells as in the 
 Chareae, or by two transverse walls, so that the crown consists of ten cells as in 
 the Nitelleae. 
 
 Each oogonium contains a single oosphere, a nucleated mass of protoplasm 
 containing starch-granules, with a well-marked clear area, the receptive spot, at 
 the apical end. Just previously to fertilisation one or more cells (wendungs- 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALG^J : CHLOROPHYCEJ]. 
 
 253 
 
 zellen) are cut off from the basal portion of the oosphere by the formation of 
 cell- walls ; these cells are probably to be regarded as polar bodies. 
 
 At the time of fertilisation, the cells of the crown separate so as to form a 
 channel leading to the apex of the oogonium. The wall of the oogonium is not 
 
 Fro. 181. Chara fragilis, reproductive organs (after Strasburger). A Median longitudinal 
 section through a leaf (gametophyll) r, and the sexual organs which it bears ; o antheri- 
 clium, borne on a nodal cell na by the stalk-cell p ; m the manubria; ob an oogonium, 
 borne on a nodal cell no and an internodal stalk-cell po; v wendungszelle ; c corona (all 
 x 90). B spermatozoids ( x 540). 
 
 ruptured, but it becomes mucilaginous. The spermatozoids enter the channel 
 and reach the apex of the oogonium ; one of them makes its way through the 
 
254 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 mucilaginous cell-wall, and, entering the oosphere at the receptive spot, ferti- 
 lises it. 
 
 After fertilisation, the oosphere becomes an oospore, surrounding itself with 
 a proper wall. The more internal walls of the investing filaments become 
 thickened, and assume a dark brown colour. The whole organ falls off and 
 undergoes a period of quiescence. 
 
 On germination, a planoconvex mass of clear protoplasm collects at the apical 
 end of the oospore, the starch -granules being aggregated in the posterior part 
 of the oospore ; a transverse wall is then formed, separating these two parts 
 from each other. The smaller cell then divides into two by a wall at right angles 
 to the first, and from these two cells the embryo is developed. The hard invest- 
 ment of the oospore is ruptured at the apex, and the two cells grow out as fila- 
 ments, the upper forming the shoot, the lower the root, of the embryo (Fig. 182). 
 The root-cell may at once elongate into a colourless multicellular filamentous 
 
 root, or it may divide so as to form 
 a primary root and two lateral roots. 
 The shoot-cell, which contains chloro- 
 plastids, undergoes transverse divi- 
 sion to form a filament consisting of 
 a small number of cells. The lowest 
 cell, as well as the upper cells, un- 
 dergo no further division but simply 
 elongate. The cell next above the 
 lowest cell, the intermediate cell, is 
 divided by two transverse walls 
 forming a short cell at each end with 
 a long cylindrical cell between them ; 
 each of these short cells undergoes 
 division to form a node, whilst the 
 long cell remains undivided and con- 
 stitutes an internode. The peri- 
 pheral cells of the lower node grow 
 out into adventitious roots; those of 
 the upper node give rise to leaves, 
 forming the only whorl of the em- 
 bryo, except one cell which becomes the apical cell of the stem of the adult 
 plant, and, by its growth and division, gives rise to it (Fig. 183). 
 
 The einbryogeny of the Characeoe is in the first place meroblastic (see p. 13), 
 that is, the embryo is developed from a part only of the oospore. The larger 
 posterior part of the oospore takes no share in the formation of the embryo, but 
 serves to supply the embryo with the nutrient material necessary for the earlier 
 stages of its development. Moreover it is heteroblastic, an embryonic form inter- 
 vening between the oospore and the adult. The life-history presents no alter- 
 nation of generations. 
 
 Parthenogenesis has been observed in Chara crinita ; the oosphere of this 
 plant germinates without fertilisation. 
 
 The Characeoe are extensively propagated in a vegetative manner. The roots 
 sometimes develope into small spherical unicellular bulbils filled with starch : 
 
 FIG. 182. Meroblastic development of the 
 embryo from the oospore of Tolypella intri- 
 cata ( x 00 : after De Bary) ; s embryonic 
 shoot ; r embryonic root. 
 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALGM : PH^OPHYCEj;. 
 
 255 
 
 in other cases the peripheral cells of subterranean nodes, instead of giving rise 
 to leaves, grow out into small cellular appendages which become filled with 
 starch, and are known as starch-stars. When the plant has died down in the 
 winter, these bulbils and starch-stars persist, and, in the following spring give 
 rise to new plants. Again, instead of normal branches, the plant may pro- 
 duce branches of peculiar structure, called embryonic branches because they 
 resemble the embryo, which become separate and grow at once into new plants. 
 
 The Characese are classified as follows : 
 
 Fain. 1. Nitellea : corona consisting of ten 
 cells ; includes the genera Nitella, Tolypella. 
 
 Fam. 2. Charece : corona consisting of five 
 cells ; includes the genera Chara, Lampro- 
 thainnus, Lycnothamnus, Tolypellopsis. 
 
 The stem and leaves of the Nitellese have 
 no cortex ; those of most of the Chare ae have 
 cortex. They all inhabit fresh or brackish 
 water. 
 
 Sub-Class III. PHJ;OPHYCEJ:, or 
 Brown Algee. The body may consist 
 of a single cell (e.g. Diatomaceae, 
 Syngeneticae), but is generally multi- 
 cellular ; it is never coenocytic. When 
 multicellular, it presents various de- 
 grees of morphological differentiation, 
 being usually differentiated into shoot 
 and root, and in some cases (e.g. 
 Cladostephus, Sargassum) into stem, 
 root, and leaf. 
 
 Vegetative multiplication is com- 
 mon in the unicellular forms, in which 
 it is effected by division ; in a few 
 forms (e.g. Choristocarpus, species of 
 Sphacelaria) it is effected by means 
 of gemmae. 
 
 The life-history of most of the members of this sub-class is but 
 imperfectly known. In some cases it certainly does not present 
 an alternation of generations, on account of the absence either of 
 asexual reproduction (Fucaceae) or of sexual reproduction (Syn- 
 geneticae). In other cases, again, both sexual and asexual repro- 
 duction are known (e.g. some Ectocarpacea?), but since the two 
 kinds of reproductive organs are borne on the same individual, 
 either simultaneously or at different times, no alternation of gener- 
 ations can be traced. In yet others, distinct sexual and asexual 
 
 FIG. 183. Chara fragilis (after 
 Pringsheim: x 4). Heteroblast'c 
 embryogeny; ap apical portion of 
 shoot of the embryo ; r primary 
 root of embryo, springing from the 
 oospnre; sr adventitious roots; t 
 leaves, amongst which lies the grow- 
 ing-point of the adult shoot; t 
 intermediate cell. 
 
256 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 forms are known, but it is not clear whether the asexual forms are 
 sporophytes or are merely potential gametophytes : in the Cut- 
 leriaceae, however, it is highly probable that the asexual form is 
 really a sporophyte, and this view may, for the present, be ex- 
 tended to the other more doubtful cases. 
 
 In all but the lowest forms there is a distinction between re- 
 productive and vegetative cells, the former developing into more 
 or less highly differentiated reproductive organs. 
 
 Asexual reproduction is effected by means of spores (or possibly 
 gonidia), either zoospores (as in Syngeneticse and Phaeosporese) or 
 non-motile spores (as in Tilopteridaceee and Dictyotaceae). The 
 spores are developed either singly, or more commonly several to- 
 gether, in unicellular (and also necessarily unilocular) sporangia. 
 
 Sexual reproduction is either isogamous or oogamous : when 
 isogamous, it may be effected by apian ogametes (Diatomacese) , 
 but more commonly by planogametes (Phseosporese) which usually 
 resemble each other ; but in some cases (e.g. species of Ectocarpus, 
 Cutleriaceae) they are of two kinds, differing in size and in the 
 duration of their movement, the one which is smaller and more 
 active being the male : when oogamous, it is effected by means of 
 spermatozoids and oospheres, and is peculiar in that the oospheres, 
 though not ciliated, are extruded from the female organ before 
 fertilisation takes place. The gametophytes may be monoecious 
 or dioecious. The sexual organs, in the isogamous forms, are 
 gametangia, sometimes unicellular (Diatomacoae) but more com- 
 monly multicellular (Phseosporeee) ; in the latter case each cell of 
 the gametangium gives rise either to a single planogamete or 
 to several : they are in most cases all alike, though some (e.g. in 
 species of Ectocarpus, Cutleriaceas) consist of smaller and more 
 numerous cells than the others and give rise to the smaller 
 planogametes. In the oogamous forms, the oogonium is nnicel- 
 lular, giving rise to one or more (2-8) oospheres : the antheri- 
 dium is multicellular in the Tilopteridaceae and Dictyotaceae, but 
 unicellular in the Fucaceae ; in the former case each cell gives rise 
 to a single spermatozoid, in the latter several spermatozoids are 
 developed in the one cell. 
 
 Of the motile reproductive cells of this sub-class, the zoospores 
 (or zoogonidia) and the planogametes contain chromatophores, 
 and have two cilia inserted laterally ; the spermatozoids, however, 
 have no chromatophores, nor have the smaller planogametes in 
 those cases in which the conjugating planogametes differ in size ; 
 the oosphere has no receptive spot. 
 
GEOUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALGJ} : PH.EOPHYCEJE. 257 
 
 The Phaeophyceae may be classified as follows : 
 Unicellular Forms : 
 
 Order 1. Syngeneticaa '. no sexual reproduction. 
 
 Order 2. Diatomaceaa : sexual reproduction isogamous by aplauogametes. 
 Multicellular Forms : 
 Series (a) Phaeosporeae : sexual reproduction isogamous by planog*metes ; 
 
 asexual by zoospores (in some cases by zoogonidia). 
 Order 3. Ectocarpaceae : including the families, 
 
 Ectocarpeae (Ectocarpus, Pylaiella, Streblonema, etc). 
 
 Choristocarpeae (Choristocarpus, Discosporangium) . 
 
 Myriotricheae (Myrotrichia). 
 
 Myrionemeae (Myrionema, Microspongium, etc.). 
 
 Elachisteaa (Elachista, Giraudia, etc.). 
 
 Desmarestieae (Desmarestia, Arthrocladia). 
 
 Spermatochneae (Spermatochnus). 
 
 Sphacelarieaa (Sphacelaria, Stypocaulon, Chastopteris, Clado- 
 
 stephus, etc.). 
 Order 4. Eucceliaceae ; including the families, 
 
 Mesogloeeae (Chordaria, Mesogloea, Castagnea, etc.). 
 
 Sporochneas (Sporochnus, Carpomitra). 
 
 Striarieas (Striaria, Stictyosiphon, etc.). 
 
 Stilophoreae (Stilophora). 
 
 Dictyosiphoneae (Dictyosiphon, etc.). 
 
 Scytosiphoneae (Scytosiphon, Colpomenia, Phyllitis, Afapero- 
 
 coccus.) 
 
 Punctarieae (Punctaria, etc.). 
 
 Order 5. Laininariaceaa (Laminaria, Alaria, Chorda, etc.). 
 Order 6. Cutleriaceae (Cutleria, Zanardinia). 
 
 Series (b) Phaeogamae : sexual reproduction oogamous; asexual, wanting, 
 
 or by non-motile spores : no gonidia. 
 Order 7. Tilopteridaceae. 
 Order 8. Dictyotaceae. 
 Order 9. Fucaceae. 
 
 Order 1. Syngeneticae. Body unicellular, the cells being held together by 
 mucilage, forming a colony. Eeproduction by division, and by asexually pro- 
 duced spores. 
 
 This order includes two genera, Hydrurus and Chromophyton ; in the former 
 the colony consists of many cells and is attached, in the latter it consists of 
 ei^ht cells and is unattached. 
 
 In Hydrurus, each cell is an ellipsoidal mass of protoplasm, enclosing a 
 nucleus, one or two contractile vacuoles, and one or two chromatophores in the 
 form of a plate or ribbon each containing a pyrenoid. The cells multiply by 
 division. Asexual reproduction is effected by means of zoospores, formed by 
 division of a cell into two or four, which are set free by the disorganisation of 
 the investing mucilage and move by means of a single cilium ; these come to 
 rest, and each gives rise by division to a new colony. Also by means of rest- 
 ing-spores formed one from each vegetative cell. 
 
 v. s. B. S 
 
258 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The structure of the cells of Cbromophyton, and its modes of reproduction, 
 are essentially the same as those of Hydrurus. 
 
 The Syngenetica3 somewhat resemble the palmelloid Protococcaceae among 
 the Chlorophyceae, and may be regarded as the corresponding group in the 
 Phaeophyceae. They grow only in fresh water; Hydrurus in cold, rapidly running 
 streams. 
 
 Order 2. Diatomaceae. Unicellular plants, either free, or connected into 
 filaments or masses by mucilage ; sometimes attached. Eeproduction, vegeta- 
 tive by division; or by means of asexually produced spores; or sexual isogamous 
 by the conjugation of aplanogametes. The cell-wall is impregnated with silica. 
 Both fresh-water and marine. 
 
 The Diatomaceae resemble the Desmidieae in many respects ; the two orders, 
 are, in fact, corresponding forms in the Phaeophyceae and the Chlorophyceae 
 respectively ; but, besides their colour, the Dia- 
 toms differ from the Desmids in the presence of 
 silica in their cell-wall. 
 
 The cell, or frmtule, as it is called, is enclosed 
 by a rigid wall. The wall, like that of the Desmids, 
 consists of two halves, called valves, of different 
 ages, which are not directly continuous, but are 
 j elated to each other as the two parts of a pill- 
 box, the one overlapping the other (Fig. 184). 
 The cell-contents consist of a more or less vacuo- 
 lated mass of protoplasm, which forms a layer in 
 close contact with the inner surface of the cell- 
 wall ; in this there is a nucleus, sometimes pari- 
 etal sometimes central, and chromatophores 
 which may be very numerous and small, or few in 
 number (sometimes only one) in the form of re- 
 latively large plates. 
 
 Vegetative multiplication by division takes place 
 by the division of the protoplasm into two cells ; 
 each of these cells has one of the two valves of the 
 parent frustule on one side of it ; it then secretes 
 a new valve on its naked side, which is smaller 
 the older valve and fits inside its rim ; thus two new individuals are 
 
 Ul 
 
 FIG. 184. Pinnularia, a Dia- 
 tom (mag. and diag.) ; a lateral 
 view, showing the mode of 
 connection of the two halves 
 of the frustule ; s surface view. 
 
 than 
 formed. 
 
 It will be noted that this process of multiplication is accompanied by a de- 
 crease in size ; and, were it repeated indefinitely, the cells would become very 
 small. This process of diminution is interrupted by the formation of auxo- 
 spures, either asexually or sexually. In the former case the protoplasmic con- 
 tents of a cell escape from the separated valves, as an auxospore, which, after 
 growing considerably, secretes two new valves forming a new and larger frustule. 
 In the latter case, two naked cells which have thus escaped, conjugate to form 
 an auxospore which becomes a new frustule. This process of conjugation 
 differs, however, from that of the Desmidieas, in that no resting zygospore is 
 formed, but simply a new individual. 
 
 Series PH^OSPORE^:. The multicellular body is attached ; it sometimes con- 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: ALGM : PH2BOPHTC&S. 
 
 259 
 
 sists of a flattened dorsiventral branched filament, the branches of which are 
 often coherent into a disc which adheres to the substratum by the ventral 
 surface and bears vertical shoots on its dorsal surface (e.g. Ectocarpus, Myrio- 
 nema, Pylaiella) ; the body is frequently more or less clearly differentiated into 
 root and shoot, and in some cases (e.g. Cladostephus, Chastopteris) the shoot is 
 differentiated into stern and leaf ; adventitious roots are very generally de- 
 veloped. 
 
 The body presents a considerable variety of structure. In the simplest forms 
 (e.g. Ectocarpus, Pylaiella, Choristocarpus, etc.) it is filamentous and branched, 
 the filament consisting of a single row of cells (monosiphonous) ; in others it is 
 filamentous, consisting of several coherent longitudinal rows of cells (poly- 
 siphonous ; e.g. Giraudia, species of Sphacelaria) ; or it is monosiphonous and 
 partly or completely invested by a secondary parenchymatous tissue forming a 
 sort of cortex (e.g. Desmarestieae, Spermatochnus) : or it is polysiphonous 
 with a cortex (e.g. Sphacelaria scoparia, Chaetopteris, Cladostephus) ; or, 
 finally, it consists of parenchymatous tissue frequently differentiated into a small- 
 celled cortex and a medulla of large cells elongated parallel to the long axis of 
 the plant (e.g. most Encoeliaceae, Laminariaceae) ; the body frequently becomes 
 hollow, a central cavity being formed (e.g. Asperococcus, Scytosiphon, Colpo- 
 menia, Striaria, Chorda). A body of monosiphonous or polysiphonous structure 
 is articulated longitudinally into segments corresponding to the cells which 
 constitute the filament or filaments ; this is also generally the case when such 
 a body is corticated (e.g. Chsetopteris, Arthrocladia). 
 
 Growth in length may be 
 effected without a definite 
 growing-point, all the cells 
 being merismatic (e.g. gener- 
 ally in Ectocarpaceaa and 
 Eucceliaceaa), in which case 
 growth is, as a rule, limited; 
 or there may be a definite 
 growing-point, which may 
 be apical, with an apical cell 
 (e.g. Sphacelarieae, Dictyo- 
 siphon, Spermatochnus) ; or 
 the growing-point may be 
 intercalary, either sub-ap'cal 
 (e.g. Chordaria) as also in 
 Desmarestiaceaa \(Fig. 160), 
 Cutleriacese, and Sporoch- 
 naceaa where the growth 
 is trichothallic (p. 223), or 
 more or less basal, (e.g. 
 Laminariaceae). The divi- 
 sion of the apical cell, or 
 
 of the initial cells, of the growing-point takes place only in one plane, the trans- 
 verse. The Fegments thus formed undergo division either only transversely 
 (monosiphonous forms), or longitudinally (polysiphonous), or in several planes. 
 
 FIG. 18E. Longitudinal section through three inter- 
 nodes of a sexual plant of Cladostephus verticillatus : 
 a gatnetophyll ; the larger appendages are foliage- 
 leaves. (x50: after Pringsheim.) 
 
260 
 
 PART III. TH CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 The sporangia (and gonidangia) are in all cases unicellular. In the simple 
 filamentous forms they are somewhat enlarged and rounded cells, either inter- 
 calary in position (e.g. Pylaiella), or terminal, occupying the place of a lateral 
 branch, and generally sessile (e.g. Ectocarpus, Choristocarpus, Sphacelaria, 
 etc.). In the more bulky thalloid forms, the sporangia may be merely develop- 
 ments of single superficial cells (e.g. Encceliaceas, Laminariaceas) scattered singly 
 or in groups (sori) over the whole surface. In others again they are borne 
 as lateral branches on hair-like outgrowths from the superficial cells (e.g. 
 Chordariaceas, Sporochnaceae, Stilophoraeeae). In certain cases, where the 
 shoot presents differentiation into stem and leaf (e.g. Chaetopteris, Cladoste 
 
 JJ. 
 
 FIG. 186. Fertile leaves of Cladostephus verticillatus: A sporophyll ; one of the uni- 
 cellular sporangia has discharged its zoospores with a mass of mucilage j B gametophyll, 
 bearing the multicellular gametangia. ( x 280 : after Pringsheim.) 
 
 phus), the sporangia are borne on specialised leaves, sporophylls (Fig. 186 ; sec 
 also p. 78). 
 
 The gametangia are in all cases multicellular, each cell constituting a loculu< 
 which gives rise to one or more planogamete*. In their distribution and general 
 morphology they resemble the sporangia. The gametangia of any one species 
 are, as a rule, all exactly alike, but in some few cases they present two forms 
 which differ in the size, and consequently in the number, of their constituent 
 cells (e g. Ectocarpus fenestratus and E. secundus, Cutleriaceae) ; the small 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALG& : PILEOPHYCEJ]. 
 
 261 
 
 celled gametangia are considered to be the male, and the large-celled the 
 female organs. The plants may be monoecious or dioecious (Cutleria). 
 
 The zoospores and the planogametes are generally all very much alike : in 
 Cutleria, however, and in those species of Ectocarpus which have two kinds of 
 gametangia, the one kind of planogamete (female) is considerably larger than 
 the other (male), and has a shorter period of motility ; the smaller planoga- 
 metes are developed in the small-celled gametangia. A sexual process has been 
 observed in but few cases (Ectocarpns siliculosus, Scytosiphon lomentariu*, 
 Cutleria). In the two former the planogametes are externally similar, but 
 they behave differently in the process of conjugation, some coming to rest 
 earlier than others, thus indicating that they are female. When the female 
 planogamete is at rest, it is approached 
 by a number of the still motile male 
 planogametes (Fig. 187), one of which 
 fuses with it. In Cutleria the larger 
 planogamete soon comes to rest, and then 
 one of the smaller planogametes fuses 
 with it. In Ectocarpus siliculosus it has 
 been observed that, if the planogametes 
 fail to conjugate, they are capable of 
 germinating independently ; in Cutleria, 
 also, the unfertilised female planogamete 
 has been observed to germinate indepen- 
 dently; these interesting cases of parthe- 
 nogenesis indicate the incomplete de- 
 velopment of sexuality in this group. 
 
 Inasmuch as the germination of the 
 zygospore has only been observed in the 
 case of Ectocarpus siliculosus and of the 
 Cutleriacese, it is only with reference to 
 these plants that any definite statement 
 can be made as to the life-history obtain- 
 ing in this group. In E. siliculosus the 
 zygospore gives rise to a plant which re- 
 sembles its parents, so that here there is 
 110 indication of an alternation of genera- 
 tions. In the Cutleriaceaa, on the other 
 hand, the zygospore gives rise to an 
 asexual form which is probably a true 
 sporophyte ; in the one genus, Zanar- 
 
 FIG. 187. Sexual procpps in F.c^o- 
 carpus siliculosus : I a-/, female plano- 
 Kamete coming to rest : II resting 
 female planogamete suspended from 
 the surface of the water, with numerous 
 motile male planogametes : III con- 
 jugation of a male and a female 
 planogamete. ( x 790 : after Berthold.) 
 
 dinia, this asexual form closely resembles the sexual ; in the other genus, 
 Cutleria, the asexual form is very different from the sexual in appearance, and 
 has long been regarded as a distinct genus under the name Aglaozonia. With 
 regard to the other genera of the group, it is probable that in those forms 
 (?..g. many Ectoc*rpaceae) in which the same individual bears at one time 
 sexual, and at another, asexual organs, there is no alternation of generations ; 
 and further, that in those forms (e.g. many Sphacelarieee) in which the 
 asexual and the sexual organs are never borne by the same individual, there is 
 
262 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 an alternation of generations, the asexual form being the sporophyte. It is 
 also probable that in the case of those forms of which only individuals bearing 
 either asexual (e.g. Desmarestia, Laminaria) or sexual (e.g. Scytosiphon, 
 Phyllitis, Colpomenia) organs are known, the life-history may present an alter- 
 nation of generations. 
 
 The Phaeosporeffi are almost exclusively marine, the only fresh- water forms 
 being the genus Pleurocladia (Ectocarpaceae) and two species of the genus 
 Lithoderma. The size of the plants included in this series varies widely, from 
 microscopic Ectocarpaceae to gigantic tree-like Laminariacese, such as Macro- 
 cystis, Nereocystis, etc., which may attain a length of several hundred feet. In 
 some of theLaminarias, which have cylindrical stalk-like region in their thalloid 
 shoot (see Fig. 159), secondary growth in thickness takes place by means of a 
 merismatic layer. In these large forms, too, the conducting tissue is sometimes 
 so far developed as to form sieve-tubes ; though no woody tissue is developed, 
 nor is it required in view of the fact that these plants live submerged. 
 
 Series PH^OGAM^;. The orders comprised in this group are characterised by 
 the oogamous sexual process, by the absence of gonidia, and by the non- 
 motile spores ; the orders may be conveniently described separately, as they are 
 well defined. 
 
 Order 8. Tilopteridaceae. Body filamentous, differentiated into shoot and 
 root ; the shoot is, in its younger parts, monosiphonous ; in its older parts 
 polysiphonous, but without cortex ; growth in length by means of intercalary 
 growing-points ; lateral members, some with unlimited growth (branches), some 
 with limited growth; the root consists of a single row of cells, and its growth is 
 intercalary, without any special growing-point ; marine. 
 
 The asexual and sexual reproductive organs are borne on distinct individuals. 
 The asexual organs are terminal, or less commonly intercalary, unicellular 
 sporangia ; the sexual organs are unicellular oogonia, and multicellular an- 
 theridia (resembling the gametangia of the Phaeosporeae), and are intercalary 
 The sporangium gives rise to a single non-motile spore, which, at the time 
 it is set free, has a delicate cell-wall, and contains four nuclei. The oogonium 
 (which somewLa!; resembles the sporangium in form) gives rise to a single 
 oosphere, which, when it leaves the oogonium, has no cell-wall. Each cell 
 of the antheridium gives rise to a single spermatozoid, oval in form, with 
 two cilia. The sexual process and the germination of the oospore have not 
 been observed. The spore, on germination, undergoes repeated division, 
 forming a solid multicellular body, from which a long root grows out ; from 
 the multicellular embryo spring the adult shoots. 
 
 The life-history of the Tilopteridaceas probably presents an alternation of 
 generations, the form bearing the asexual organs being the sporophyte : for 
 instance, the forms known as Haplospora and Scaphospora are probably the 
 asexual and sexual generations, respectively, of the same plant, a Tilopteris. 
 
 Order 9. Dictyotaceae. Body flattened, ribbon or fan-shaped, sometimes 
 dichotomously branched, consisting of several layers of parenchymatous cells, 
 with a well-marked midrib in Dictyopteris, differentiated into root and shoot ; 
 growth of the shoot takes place in Dictyota by means of a single apical cell 
 (see Fig. 140), in the other frrns by a marginal series of merismatic cells. Both 
 asexual and sexual organs are known. The asexual organs are unicellular 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : ALG^ : PH^OPHYCEJ}. 263 
 
 sporangia, borne on distinct individuals ; each sporangium sets free four 
 spores (tetraspores), which are destitute of a cell-wall and of cilia. The sexual 
 organs are unicellular oogonia and multicellular antheridia ; the oogonia are 
 generally in groups (sori), and each gives rise to a single oosphere, which is set 
 free as a naked unciliated cell ; the antheridia are always in groups (sori), and 
 give rise to a large number of small, apparently non-motile, spermatozoids, 
 which have no chromatophores. The process of fertilisation has not been 
 
 FIG. 1S8. Fucus vesiculosus, about half nat. size : b air-bladders; / fertile branch. 
 
 observed. The male and female organs are either borne on the same plant 
 (e.g. Padina), or on distinct plants (Dictyota, Taonia). 
 
 The tetraspores and the oospores germinate alike. The spore divides into 
 two cells, one of which grows out into the filamentous primary root, the other 
 grows out directly into the shoot in Dictyota and Zonaria ; but in Taonia, 
 Padina, and Dictyopteris, the development is heteroblastic, since the latter cell 
 gives rise to a rounded multicellular embryo, from which the adult shoot grows 
 out as a branch. In the embryonic shoot of Taonia and Dictyopteris there is 
 a single apical cell, but eventually it gives place to a number of initial cells. 
 
264 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 It is extremely probable that the life-history of these p^nts presents a 
 definite alternation of generations, the asexual form being the sporophyte. If 
 this be so, the affinity to the Bhodophycere which is suggested by the similarity 
 of four spores developed in the sporangium of this group to the " tetraspores" of 
 
 FIG. 189. Section of a female conceptacle, with surrounding tissue, cf Fucus vesiculosus, 
 ( x 50 : after TJv-iret.) 
 
 Fr&. 190. Fucus vesiculosus. a Paraphysis, from male conceptacle, bearing antberidia; 
 b an oogonium with paraphyses; c process of fertilisation, the extruded oosphere sur- 
 rounded by spermatozoids; d developing embryo, (x 160 : after Thuret.) 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: ALG^E : PH^KOPHYCl':^. 265 
 
 V 
 
 1m 
 
 / 
 
 11 
 
 FIG. 191. A Eight oospheres extruded from the oogonium, surrounded by t..e i.iiior iyer 
 of the cell-wall: B contents of an antheridium set free, surrounded by a layer of the cell- 
 wall : C antheridium : D section of contents of an oogoiiium showing the divisions accom- 
 panying the development of the oospheres : E oospherps set free in consequence of the 
 rupture of the layer of cell-wall by which they were surrounded when first extruded : F 
 and H oospheres, with spermatozoids : Gf spermatozoids. A-F Fucus platy carpus; GH, 
 F.vesiculosus. (C and G x 540; other figs, x 240: after Strasbnrger.) 
 
266 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the Khodophyceae, becomes altogether illusory ; for in the Dictyotaceae these 
 spores are developed on the sporophyte, whilst the " letraspores " of the 
 Khodophyceae are gonidia developed by the gametophyte. All marine. 
 
 Order 10. Fucaceae. Body differentiated into root and shoot ; shoot usually 
 thalloid, either cylindrical or flattened ; differentiated into stem and leaves in 
 Sargassum ; growth in length by a single apical cell ; branching generally 
 dichotomous. No asexual production of gonidia or of spores, and therefore no 
 alternation of generations. Sexual organs, unicellular antheridia and oogonia ; 
 spermatozoids, ciliated, formed several together in the autheridium ; oospheres, 
 set free but not ciliated ; one (Pycnophycus, Himanthalia, Halidrys, Sargassum, 
 Cystoseira), two (Pelvetia), four (Ascophyllum), or eight (Fucus) formed in each 
 oogonium. Marine. 
 
 The body consists of what may be termed cortical and medullary tissue. 
 The cortical tissue consists of closely-packed parencbymatous cells, the ex- 
 ternal layer of which, the limiting layer, is for a time merismatic, and plays 
 important part in the growth of the body. The medullary tissue consists of 
 filamentous rows of cells the walls of which are mucilaginous and much 
 swollen. The cortex is essentially the assimilatory tissue and the medulla the 
 conducting tissue. 
 
 In some genera (e.g. Fucus vesicnlosus, Aseophyllum, Halidrys, Cystoseira, 
 Sargassum) there are large intercellular spaces, filled with air, which project on 
 
 the surface, and are known as 
 air-bladders ; they serve as 
 floats. In Halidrys and Sar- 
 gassum the air-bladders are 
 borne on special branches. 
 
 The sexual organs are in 
 all cases borne in depressions 
 of the surface known as con- 
 ceptncJes (Fig. 189.) The 
 conceptacles are commonly 
 confined to special portions of 
 the thallus ; either to the ti] 
 of the branches (e.g. Fucus, 
 Cystoseira) or to special 
 branches, the gametophores 
 (e.g. Himanthalia, Ascophyl- 
 lum, Sargassum). From the 
 inner surface of the concey 
 tacle there arise a numl 
 of hairs (poraphyses) amouj. 
 which the sexual organs 
 borne. The oogonia (Fig. 190) 
 are nearly spherical, and 
 borne on a short stalk con- 
 sisting of a single cell ; th< 
 antheridia (Fig. 190) are the lateral branches of some of the hairs. The plant 
 may be monoecious (e.g. Fucus platycarpus, Halidrys, Telvetia, Cystoseira, 
 
 FIG. 192. Ilimantlialia lorca (much reduced). 
 Vegetative part of body ; b branched garnetophore. 
 
GROUP I. TIIALLOPHYTA : ALGM : RHODOPHYCE^. 267 
 
 Sargassum), or dioecious (e.g. Himanthalia, Ascophyllum, Fucus vesiculosus and 
 serratus) ; in the former case each conceptacle contains both antheridia and 
 oogonia. 
 
 The oospore, which is the product of the fertilisation of an oosphere, germin- 
 ates without any period of quiescence. It first becomes somewhat pear-shaped ; 
 it is then divided into- two by a transverse wall ; the more pointed of the two 
 cells forms the primary root, whilst the other gives rise to the shoot (Fig 190 d.) 
 
 Sub- Class IV. RnODOPHYCEJ] or Red Algae. Multicellular 
 plants ; body, generally differentiated into shoot and root ; shoot, 
 sometimes differentiated into stem and leaf ; flattened or fila- 
 mentous ; when filamentous, consisting of a single longitudinal 
 row of cells (monosiplionoui) or of several rows (polysiphonous) 
 with or without a small-celled cortex ; the filamentous forms grow 
 by means of a single apical cell from which segments are cut off 
 either by transverse walls, or by oblique walls alternately right 
 and left ; the flattened forms grow by means of a marginal series 
 of initial cells ; but in the Bangiacese there is no growing-point, 
 all the cells being merismatic : branching, generally monopodial, 
 but sometimes sympodial (e.g. Plocamium, Dasya) : adventitious 
 roots common. 
 
 Vegetative reproduction by gemmce (e.g. Monospora, Melobesia) 
 is rare. 
 
 Reproduction by means of asexually produced spores occurs 
 throughout the sub-class ; the sporophyte (cystocarp) always 
 produces spores (carpospores) ; the gametophyte usually produces 
 gonidia (usually tetragonidia) except in the Lemaneaceee and most 
 Helminthocladiaceae ; the gonidia are, as a rule, not borne on indi- 
 viduals which produce sexual organs (actual gametophytes), but 
 on distinct individuals (potential gametophytes), though there are 
 exceptions to this rule (e.g. Lomentaria kaliformis, Callithamnion 
 corymbosum, Polysiphonia variegata, etc.). 
 
 The gonidia are produced in nnilocular gonidangia, either 
 singly, or two together, or sometimes as many as eight, but most 
 commonly in fours ; hence they are generally termed tetragonidia. 
 The tetragonidia may be formed tetrahedrally in the gonidangium ; 
 or by transverse divisions, when they are said to be zonate; or by 
 two divisions at right angles to each other, when they are said to 
 be cruciate. 
 
 The arrangement of the gonidangia on the shoot is various. In 
 simple monosiphonous forms (e.g. Callithamnion) the terminal 
 cells of short lateral branches become gonidangia. In forms of 
 
268 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 more complex structure the gonidangia are developed internally, 
 within the superficial layer of tissue. The gonidangia may be 
 scattered over the surface of the shoot, or collected into special 
 receptacles of various forms. In some cases (e.g. some Rhodome- 
 laceae, such as Dasya, Chondriopsis, Polysiphonia) the gonidangia 
 are confined to certain specially modified branches (gonidiophores) 
 which are termed stichidia. The tetragonidia are set free as 
 spherical unciliated cells without a cell-wall. 
 
 The sexual organs are antheridia and procarps ; they are 
 usually borne by distinct individuals, but in some cases on the 
 same (e.g. Grateloupia, Halymenia, Hala- 
 rachnion, Nemastoma, Dudresnaya coc- 
 cinea and purpurifera, Gloeosiphonia 
 capillaris, Helminthora divaricata). 
 
 The antheridia are small and unicel- 
 lular; in the simple filamentous forms 
 they occur singly or in groups at the 
 ends of the branches ; in others of more 
 complex structure, they are produced in 
 special receptacles (e.g. Corallinaceae) ; in 
 the flattened parenchymatous forms they 
 occur in groups on the surface ; in those 
 forms in which the shoot is differentiated 
 into stem and leaf (e.g. some Rhodome- 
 laceae such as Polysiphonia fastigiata and 
 nigrescens, Chondriopsis tenuissima) the 
 antheridia are confined to the leaves, the 
 whole or part of the leaf being specially 
 modified for this purpose. The male 
 cells (spermatia) are formed singly in the 
 antheridia, and are set free as small, 
 spherical or oval, unciliated cells desti- 
 tute of a cell-wall; they acquire a cell-wall at tn.e time of fertili- 
 sation; they contain no chromatophores, except in Bangiacese. 
 
 The procarp presents considerable variety of form and structure. 
 It may be unicellular (e.g. Bangiaceae, Chantransia, Batracho- 
 spermum, Lemanea, Nemalion), or multicellular, as is more com- 
 monly the case. The unicellular procarp consists simply of a 
 carpogonium prolonged (except, perhaps, in Bangia) into a filament 
 termed the trichogyne. Various descriptions are given of the 
 structure of the multicellular procarp ; however, it appears to 
 
 FIG. 193. Portion of a branch 
 of Dasya elegans, bearing a 
 stichidium (s), with tetragoni- 
 dangia (t); t' empty tetragoiii- 
 dangium. (x 25: after Kiitz- 
 ing.) 
 
GROUP 1. THALLOPHYTA : ALGM : KHODOPHYCEJ1. 
 
 269 
 
 consist essentially of a unicellular carpogonium (with a trichogyne) 
 together with one or more specially differentiated auxiliary cells. 
 In some cases (e.g. Dudresnaya coccinea, Squamariacese), the carpo- 
 gonium and the auxiliary cells are not developed in the same 
 procarp, but in distinct organs. 
 
 Whether the procarps be unicellular or multicellular, the carpo- 
 gonia agree in that the trichogyne remains closed, and further, 
 in that the protoplasm of the carpogonium does not undergo re- 
 juvenescence to form a distinct 
 female cell (oosphere) as is the 
 case in the oogamous Alga3. 
 
 The carpogonium is (except in 
 the Bangiacese) developed from the 
 terminal cell of a lateral appen- 
 dage ; in some cases (e.g. Polysi- 
 phonia fastigiata and nigrescens) the 
 lateral appendage is a leaf, the 
 whole or part of which goes to 
 form the procarp ; in the Coral- 
 linacese the procarps are aggre- 
 gated in receptacles. 
 
 The sexual process consists in 
 the fusion of the protoplasmic con- 
 tents of a spermatium with those 
 of a trichogyne. The spermatium 
 is brought by the water into con- 
 tact with the projecting trichogyne 
 to which it adheres, the sperma- 
 tium being at this time covered 
 With a cell -wall ; the intervening 
 cell-walls are absorbed at the 
 point of contact, and the proto- 
 plasm of the spermatium enters 
 the trichogyne. 
 
 The product of fertilisation is a fructification termed a cysto- 
 carp, consisting of a number of carposporangia. The cystocarp is 
 developed either directly or indirectly from the carpogonium : 
 directly, when the procarp is unicellular; indirectly, when it is 
 developed from both carpogonial and auxiliary cells : the tricho- 
 gyne takes no part in the development of the cystocarp, being 
 shut oil by a septum. 
 
 FIG. 191. Sexual organs of Nemalion 
 (x300) A ends of branches bearing a 
 unicellular procarp t-o, arid a group of 
 antheridia s ; the trichogyne (t) of the 
 procarp has two spermatia (s) adhering 
 to it. B early stage in the development 
 of the cystocai'p ; the fertilised carpo- 
 gonium is undergoing growth and 
 division. C nearly mature cystocarp, 
 consisting of a number of short fila- 
 ments each terminating in a carpospo- 
 rnngium. The development of the 
 cystocarp is direct. 
 
 
270 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The simplest mode of direct formation of the cystocarp occurs 
 in the Bangiaceae ; the cavity of the carpogonium becomes cham- 
 bered, by the formation of cell-walls, into usually eight ceils, each 
 of which is a sporangium, giving rise to a carpospore : only a 
 single spore is formed in the genus Erythrotrichia. In other cases 
 of direct formation (e.g. Nemalion, Batrachosperraum, Chantransia, 
 Lemanea), the carpogonium gives rise to a number of filaments, 
 termed ooblastema-filaments^ which bear a cluster of sporangia 
 (Fig. 194). 
 
 In the indirect formation of the cystocarp, the carpogonium 
 fuses with one or more of the auxiliary cells. In the simplest case 
 
 B. 
 
 FIG. 195. Sexual organs of Spermothnmnion hermfiphrodilum. A Mnle and female organs ; 
 c multicellular procarp; t trichogyne ; t' trichophore ; on terminal cluster of antheridia. 
 B cystocarp developing from the fertilised procarp ; a cluster of carposporangia is 
 springing from each of the two opposite lateral auxiliary cells. The development of tha 
 cystocarp is indirect (x300: after Naegeli). 
 
 (e.g. Gigartinacese, E/hodymeniaceae, Sphserococcese, Rhodomelacea3), 
 the carpogonium fuses directly with the auxiliary cell (or cells), 
 and from the latter the sporangia, or filaments bearing sporangia, 
 are formed. In other cases the carpogonium gives rise to one 
 or more elongated, branched, ooblastema-filaments which fuse 
 with one or more auxiliary cells, and the sporangia are produced 
 either from the ooblastema-filaments (e.g. Gelidiaceae) or from the 
 auxiliary cells (e.g. Squamariacese and other Cryptoneminse). 
 
 In the Corallinacese, where the procarps are aggregated in re- 
 ceptacles, only a single cystocarp is formed from the whole group 
 of procarps. Some of the procarps appear to be altogether abor- 
 tive, and only those toward the centre of the group have tricho- 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: ALGJ! : RHODOPHYCE^. 271 
 
 gynes, whilst others seem to have only auxiliary cells : after 
 fertilisation, the carpogonia of the central procarpia fuse with 
 each other, and with the auxiliary cells of the other procarpia, 
 forming a large cell from the periphery of which the carpo- 
 sporangia, constituting the cystocarp, are developed. 
 
 The cell-fusions alluded to above are frequently considered to be of the nature 
 of a sexual process. For instance, in Dudresnaya coccinea, the procarp bearing 
 the trichogyne is regarded as a tricliophore, whilst the procarp which includes 
 the auxiliary cell, but has no trichogyne, is regarded as the carpogonium proper : 
 the ooblastema-filament which grows from the former and fuses with the latter, 
 is, from this point of view, a trichoplwric tube which convejs the fertilising 
 substance of the spermatium from the trichophore to the carpogonium. From 
 the point of view of the foregoing paragraphs, the fusion of carpogouial with 
 auxiliary cells is simply of nutritive importance. Though both views are tenable, 
 the latter is strongly supported by the fact that in certain forms (e.g. some 
 Gelidiaceas such as Wrangelia, Pterocladia) the ooblastema- filaments fuse with 
 vegetative cells of the body. 
 
 In many cases the cystocarp consists merely of the cluster of 
 sporangia (e.g. Bangia, Chautransia, Callithamnion, Dudresnaya); 
 in other cases the cluster of sporangia is surrounded by a cellular 
 investment, termed the pericarp, formed by the growth of adjacent 
 sterile cells. 
 
 Each sporangium always gives rise to a single carpospore, which 
 is set free as a somewhat spherical unciliated cell destitute of a 
 cell-wall, and germinates without any quiescent period. 
 
 The germination of the tetragonidia and of the carpospores has 
 only been followed in a few cases. Generally speaking the spore 
 becomes elongated in form, and is attached by the more pointed 
 end which is almost colourless ; division by a transverse wall then 
 takes place ; the elongated attached cell developes into the root, 
 the other into the shoot. 
 
 Batrachospermum and Lemanea are exceptions to the general 
 rule that the germinating carpospore gives rise directly to the adult 
 form, and afford good examples of heteroblastic embryogeny (see 
 p. 14). In Batrachospermum, the carpospore gives rise to a small 
 flattened embryo, from which there arise monosiphonous filaments ; 
 these filaments constitute what is termed the Chantransia-forni 
 which reproduces itself by means of gonidia ; from the Chantransia- 
 form, the Batrachospermum-plant springs as a lateral branch, 
 and, producing roots, becomes independent. In Lemanea the 
 course of development is essentially the same, only that the 
 Chantransia-form does not produce gonidia. 
 
 The life-history of the Rhodophycere is generally considered to 
 
272 PART III. THti CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 present an alternation of generations ; the plant is the gameto- 
 phyte (either actual or potential) and the cystocarp is the 
 sporophyte. In Batrachospermuin and Lemanea the life-history 
 is complicated by the polymorphism of the gametophyte. 
 
 The Rhodophycese are almost exclusively marine ; the only 
 fresh-water forms are Batrachospermum, Lemanea, and species of 
 Chantransia, Bangia, and Hildenbrandtia. 
 
 The sub-class, sometimes also termed FLORTDE^;, is subdivided 
 into a number of orders, the limits of which are at present but 
 imperfectly defined, of which the following are the principal : 
 
 Series I. NEM ALIGNING. 
 
 Order 1. Helminthocladiaceae : principal genera, Batrachospermum, Chan- 
 
 tiansia, Helminthocladia, Nemalion, Scinaia, Helminthora. 
 2. Lemaneuceae : Lemanea. 
 3. Gelidiaceas : principal genera, Caulacanthus, Pterocladia, Geli- 
 
 dium, Wrangelia, Naccaria. 
 Sjries II. GIOAETININ^:. 
 
 Order 4. Gigartinaceae: principal genera, Phyllophora, Gigartina, Chon- 
 
 drus, Iridasa, Gymnogongrus. 
 
 ,, 5. Bhodophyllidaceae : principal genera, Catenella, Rhodophyllis. 
 Series III. EHODYMENIN^E. 
 
 Order 6. Sphaerococcaceae : principal genera, Gracilaria, Sphasrococcus, 
 
 Hypnea. 
 7. Khodymeniaceae : principal genera, Khodymenia, Lomentaria, 
 
 Plocamium, Chylocladia, Champia. 
 
 8. Delesseriaceae : principal genera, Delesseria, Nitophyllum. 
 9. Bonnemaisoniaceae : principal genera, Bonnemaisonia, Lepto- 
 
 phyllis. 
 ,, 10. Ehodomelaceas : principal genera, Polysiphonia, Ebodomela, 
 
 Ehytiphlcea, Choudriopsis, Dasya, Laurencia, Vidalia. 
 ,, 11. Ceramiaceae : principal genera, Ceramium, Spermothamnion, 
 
 Callithamnion, Griffithsia, Ptilota, Monospora. 
 Series IV. CRIPTOKEMIN^;. 
 Order 12. Glceosiphoniaceas : Gloeosiphonia, etc. 
 
 ,, 13. Grateloupiaceas : principal genera, Grateloupia, Cryptonemia, 
 
 Halymenia. 
 
 14. Dumontiaceas : principal genera, Dumontia, Dudresnaya. 
 15. Nemastomaceae : principal genera, Schizymenia, Nemastoma, 
 
 Furcellaria. 
 
 16. Ehizophyllidaceae : Polyides, Ehizophyllis. 
 ,, 17. Squamariaceae : principal genera, Peyssonnelia, Petrocelis, 
 
 Hildenbrandtia. 
 Order 18. Corallinaceae : principal genera, Corallina, Melobesia, Litho- 
 
 pbyllum, Lithothamnion. 
 Series V. PORPHYBINJE. 
 Order 19. Bangiacete: principal genera, Bangia, Porpliyra, Erythrotricliia. 
 
GROUP 1. TIIALLOPHYTA : FUNGI. 273 
 
 CLASS II. FUNGI. 
 
 This class, like the preceding, includes many very simple 
 organisms, as well as others of tolerably high development. 
 None of them contain chlorophyll ; hence they cannot assimilate 
 so simple a carbon-compound as carbon dioxide, but must take 
 up their carbonaceous food in the form of rather complex com- 
 pounds, and their structure and mode of life are correlated 
 with this peculiarity. Some are parasitic, such as the Rusts 
 a.nd Smuts, and absorb these complex carbon-compounds from 
 other living organisms, whether plants or animals. Others are 
 saprophytes, absorbing these compounds from the remains of 
 dead organisms, or from organic substance formed by living or- 
 ganisms : the numerous and often large Fungi which grow on 
 humus or leaf-soil in forests, or on the bark of trees, are examples 
 of the former case ; the Yeasts and Moulds which make their 
 appearance on juicy fruits, saccharine liquids, etc., are examples of 
 the latter. Some Fungi are symbiotic ; that is, they live in inti- 
 mate relation (symbiosis) with plants which possess chlorophyll, 
 and obtain from them the necessary carbonaceous food, but without 
 destroying, or apparently injuring them. They commonly live 
 with Algae, forming Lichens (see p. 319) ; or in connexion with the 
 roots of trees (esp. Cupuliferaa) and of Orchids, Leguminosae, and 
 other plants, or with prothallia (e.g. Lycopodium), forming what 
 is known as Mycorhiza. 
 
 The vegetative body may be unicellular, or ccenocytic. In the 
 former case it is small and rounded or rod-shaped in form. In 
 the latter case the body is always a mycelium, consisting of more 
 or less branched filaments, termed Tiyphce. The mycelium may be 
 unseptate, as in the Phycomycetes, in which case the body re- 
 sembles in structure that of the Siphonaceae among the Green Algae 
 (see p. 238). Or the mycelium may be septate, as in the higher 
 Fungi, in which case it appears to be always incompletely septate ; 
 that is to say, the segments of the hyphae which are marked out by 
 the transverse septa, are not cells, each with a nucleus, but contain 
 several nuclei, and are ccenocytes (as in the Cladophoraceae arnon^ 
 the Chlorophyceao). The hyphae grow in length at the apex ir 
 the manner of such Algae as Vaucheria and Cladophora (sec 
 p. 222). 
 
 In some of the more complex forms, the hyphae of the repro- 
 
 v. s. B. T 
 
274 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 ductive organs form compact masses of tissue of a somewhat 
 parenchymatous appearance, in which there is no differentiation of 
 tissue-systems, but the superficial layers of hyphaa form a kind of 
 tegumentary tissue, termed generally cortex. Considerable differ- 
 ences in the nature of the cell-wall may obtain in different parts of 
 such organs, some walls being soft and mucilaginous, whilst others 
 are relatively hard without, however, ever being lignified. Tn 
 a few Mushrooms (e.g. Lactarius) some of the hyphas form a 
 system of laticiferous tissue, and in others glandular structures 
 occur. 
 
 Except in the simplest forms, the body is generally more or less 
 clearly differentiated into root and shoot. These members can be 
 distinguished partly by their relative position, the root-hyphse 
 growing into the substratum, and the shoot-hypha? into the air ; 
 and partly by the fact that the shoot-hypha3 bear the reproductive 
 organs. Some parasitic forms have root-like organs, termed 
 Jiaustoria, which penetrate into the cells of the host; similar 
 organs occur in some saprophytes, and in others (e.g. crustaceous 
 Lichens) the roots (sometimes called rhizines) consist of bundles of 
 hyphee. There is in no case any differentiation of the shoot into 
 stem and leaf. 
 
 The foregoing account does not apply to the body of the Myxoraycetes, 
 which consists of a multinucleate mass of protoplasm, termed a plasmodium, 
 without any cell- wall. It is formed by the cohesion of a nnmber of small, 
 originally independent cells, like that of the Hydrodictyacea) among the Algae 
 (see p. 242). 
 
 Vegetative propagation is common among the Fungi. The 
 simplest form of it is simple cell-division (e.g. Schizomycetes), or 
 that form of cell-division known as budding or sprouting (gemm- 
 ation) (e.g. the Yeast-forms of various Fungi). It is effected in some 
 cases (e.g. in some Zygomycetes, Ascomycetes, and Basidiomycetes) 
 by unicellular gemmae of various sizes (termed chlamydogonidia 
 when they are relatively large and thick- walled, and are adapted for 
 a period of quiescence ; oidium- cells, when they are small and thin- 
 walled and capable of immediate germination) which are formed 
 by the segmentation of a hypha by transverse septa into short cells 
 which become somewhat rounded and separate from each other ; 
 on germination, each may give rise to a mycelium. In other 
 cases (e.g. many Ascomycetes, such as the Sclerotiniea?, Pezizeoe, 
 Claviceps. etc. ; some Basidiomycetes, such as Coprinus stercorarius, 
 
GROUP 1. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI. 275 
 
 species of Typhnla and Agaricus), it is effected by bodies termed 
 aclerotia ; each sclerotiura consists of a compact mass of hyphae, 
 filled with reserve materials, covered by a cortex of one or more 
 layers of cells, which are thick- walled, and of a dark colour. They 
 become detached from, the mycelium on which they are formed, 
 and are capable of retaining 1 their vitality during a long dormant 
 period ; on germination they give rise to shoots bearing reproduc- 
 tive organs. 
 
 A form of sclerotium is found also in the Myxomycetes. Here 
 it consists of a plasmodium, or a part of a plasmodium, which has 
 surrounded itself with a membrane, and remains for a longer or 
 shorter time in a dormant condition. The individual amreboid 
 cells may also surround themselves with a membrane and remain 
 dormant, in the form of microcysts. 
 
 Reproduction is effected sexually or asexually. A sexual process 
 takes place in the Zygomycetes ; in the Peronosporacese ; and ap- 
 parently in some Ascomycetes, though this is a matter of con- 
 troversy. 
 
 The modes of the sexual process are the following : 
 
 I. Isogamy : sexual cells, similar aplanogametes which are not 
 set free ; process, conjugation ; product, a zygospore ; Zygo- 
 mycetes. 
 
 II. Heterogamy : 
 
 a. Oogamy : sexual cells, oospheres and undifferentiated male 
 
 cells (spermatozoids in Monoblepharis ?) ; process, fertili- 
 sation ; product, an oospore ; Peronosporacese, Ancylistacese. 
 
 b. Carpogamy : no differentiated female cell ; female organ 
 
 fertilised either by (1) the undifferentiated contents of the 
 male organ (e.g. Eremascus, Pyronema); or (2) by differenti- 
 ated male cells, sperrnatia (e.g. Collema) : product, a fructifi- 
 cation termed an ascocarp : all the forms in which this mode 
 occurs belong to the Ascomycetes. 
 
 There is no sexual process in the Schizomycetes, the Myxomy- 
 oetes, in some of the Phy corny cetes (Saprolegniaceae), the great 
 majority of the Ascomycetes, the ^Ecidiomycetes, and the Basid- 
 iomycetes. In the Schizomycetes and Myxomycetes, the absence 
 of a sexual process maybe attributed to their rudimentary charac- 
 ter; in the higher groups it is due to sexual degeneration. In 
 the Saprolegniaceoe, female and, generally, male organs are deve- 
 
276 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 loped, but the male organs are functionless; still the female organs 
 produce oospores, but they do so parthenogenetically. In the 
 majority of the apparently sexual Ascomycetes, even when both 
 kinds of sexual organs are present (e.g. Erysipheas, Penicillium. 
 Sordaria) it is a question if any sexual process takes place ; in 
 others, no male organ is present (e.g. Chsetomium, Melanospora) ; 
 in others again (e.g. Xylaria), the female organ is rudimentary ^ 
 and in yet others (e.g. Claviceps, Cordyceps, Pleospora) it lias 
 entirely disappeared. Yet in all these cases an ascocarp is pro- 
 duced, either parthenogenetically from the female organ, or vegs- 
 tatively from the mycelium. In the ^Ecidiomycetes, though there 
 is apparently no female organ, yet a fructification termed an 
 cpcidium, which seems to be homologous with the ascocarp of 
 the Ascomycetes, is produced in most forms. In the Basidiomy- 
 cetes, although they are the most highly organised Fungi, there 
 are no sexual organs, and no fructification is produced which is 
 homologous with the ascocarp of the Ascomycetes. 
 
 The sexual organs, with the exception of those of some Ascomy- 
 cetes, are unicellular. They are either quite similar to each other, 
 as in the Zygomycetes and some Ascomycetes (e.g. Eremascus), 
 when they may be termed gametangia ; or they may be more or 
 less differentiated, as in the Oomycetes, and in some Ascomycete& 
 (e.g. Erysiphese, Collema, etc.), as male and female. 
 
 The male organ is a pollinodium in the Oomycetes and in some 
 Ascomycetes (e.g. Pyronema, Erysipheae, Ascobolus); it is generally 
 unicellular but sometimes multicellular (e.g. Ascobolus). As it is 
 developed in close proximity to the female organ, fertilisation is 
 effected, in these forms, by absorption of the cell-walls at the 
 point of contact of the two organs, or the development of a tube 
 placing their cavities in communication. 
 
 In other Ascomycetes (e.g. Collema), what appears to be the 
 male organ is a unicellular or multicellular filament, termed a 
 sterigma, at the apex of which male cells (spermatia) are succes- 
 sively formed by abstriction. The sterigmata are developed in 
 great numbers together within a special receptacle termed a 
 spermogonium. In these forms the male and female organs are 
 widely separated, and the male cells are conveyed by means of 
 water to the female organ. Spermogonia also occur in the 
 ^Ecidiomycetes. 
 
 The female organ is either a unicellular closed oogonium (Oomy- 
 cetes), or a unicellular or multicellular archicarp (Ascomycetes) 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI. 277 
 
 The archicarp may consist (like the procarp of the Rhodophycese) 
 of two parts ; a receptive portion, the trichogyne, which is a more 
 or less elongated multicellular filament, and a sporogenous portion, 
 the ascogonium, from which, after fertilisation has taken place, the 
 one or more sporangia (asci) of the ascocarp are developed. 
 
 Sexual cells are only clearly differentiated in the case of the 
 female cells of the Oomycetes, and of the male cells of those 
 Ascomycetes in which the sexual organs are not contiguous. The 
 female cells of the Oomycetes are oospheres, spherical cells destitute 
 of a proper wall. The male cells of the Ascomycetes in question 
 are spermatia, small rounded or rod-shaped cells, with a cell-wall 
 and without cilia. It must, however, be mentioned that consider- 
 able doubt exists as to the sexual nature of the spermatia ; and, 
 inasmuch as they have in many cases been found capable of germi- 
 nation, giving rise to a mycelium, there is evidence in favour of 
 the view that they are merely asexual cells of the nature of 
 gonidia (see p. 297). 
 
 In all other cases the protoplasmic contents of the sexual organs 
 are not differentiated into cells of definite form ; but the fusing 
 masses of protoplasm of the Zygomycetes may be regarded as 
 aplanogametes ; and that portion of the protoplasmic contents of 
 the pollinodium of the Peronosporaceae which enters the oogoriium 
 and fertilises the oosphere, may be regarded as a male cell. 
 
 A formation of planogametes has been observed in a doubtful Chytridiaceous 
 form Tetrachytrium triceps ; and of spermatozoids with a single cilium in 
 Monoblepharis spliarica a form allied to the Peronosporaceae ; but these observa- 
 tions require confirmation. 
 
 An asexual formation of spores is of general occurrence. Where 
 the life-history is such as to indicate an alternation of generations, 
 these cells may be distinguished as gonidia and spores ; it is, in 
 fact, in the gametophyte that the greater variety and complexity 
 of the asexual reproductive organs obtains. 
 
 In the Schizomycetes there are no special spore-bearing organs, 
 but the protoplasm of the cells surrounds itself with a proper cell- 
 wall, and becomes a spore. 
 
 In the Myxomycetes sporangia are formed, attaining, in some 
 forms, a high degree of complexity of structure. 
 
 In the gametophyte of the higher Fungi, the gonidia are formed, 
 speaking generally, either in the interior of unilocular gonidangia 
 (e.g. most Phycomycetes), or by abstriction, either singly or a 
 
278 PART 111. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 number in succession, from certain special hyphas (as in the 
 Ascomycetes, ^Ecidiomycetes, and Basidiomycetes) ; in the latter 
 case the gonidia may be generally designated stylogonidia. 
 
 These stylogonidia has received special names, such as uredospores, teleuto- 
 spores, basidiospores, etc., with the object of indicating the group to which 
 they belong, or peculiarities in their development. These terms (more correctly 
 uredogonidia, teleutogonidia, basidiogonidia) are explained in the descriptions 
 of the various groups. 
 
 In either case, the gonidia are produced at the apex of an organ, 
 a special branch of the mycelium, termed a gonidiophore. This 
 may consist of a single hypha (e.g. Mucor, Peronospora, Penicil- 
 lium, Puccinia), when it is said to be simple ; or of a number of 
 coherent hyphce (e.g. the Mushroom, and the fructifications of other 
 Basidiomycetes) when it is said to be compound. 
 
 The gonidiophores may be scattered over the mycelium, or they 
 may be collected into receptacles termed pycnidia. 
 
 In the sporophyte of most Phycomycetes and all Ascomycetes, 
 the spores are always found in the interior of a sporangium 
 (termed, in the Ascomycetes, an ascus) ; in the ^Ecidiomycetes 
 they are formed by successive abstraction from basidial cells form- 
 ing part of the aecidium. In some cases (e.g. certain Mucorinse and 
 Peronosporacese) the sporangia are borne on special hypha, which 
 are termed simple sporophores ; and the more complex ascocarps of 
 the Ascomycetes may be regarded as compound sporophores. 
 
 The asexually-formed spores and gonidia are but rarely motile 
 (e.g. ciliated zoospores and zoogonidiaof Myxomycetes,Chytridiaceae, 
 and Oomycetes) ; in all other Fungi they are non-motile and have 
 a cell-wall. There is considerable variety in their form, colour, 
 etc. In some cases the spores or gonidia are compound; that 
 is, they appear to consist of two or more cells (e.g. teleutogonidia 
 of Puccinia Graminis and other ^Ecidiomycetes ; ascospores of 
 some Ascomycetes such as Pleospora, Hysterium, Cordyceps, etc.) ; 
 each cell, however, germinates independently and is therefore 
 itself a spore or gonidium. These compound spores and gonidia 
 are formed by the division of a primary mother-cell. 
 
 The Life-History of the Fungi is generally very much complicated 
 by polymorphism. In most of the Schizomycetes, although there 
 is no alternation of generations, there is remarkable polymorphism 
 especially in the higher forms which pass through several distinct 
 phases in the course of their life. In the sexual forms an alter- 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI. 279 
 
 nation of generations can generally be traced ; thus, in the Phy- 
 comycetes, the plant is the gametophyte, and the sporophyte is 
 either merely the oospore or zygospore, or it is the comparatively 
 small mycelium (promycelium) developed on germination from the 
 sexually-produced spore ; similarly, assuming the sexuality of the 
 group, in the simpler forms of the Ascomycetes, the plant is the 
 gametophyte, and the ascocarp the sporophyte. In these simpler 
 cases the only complication introduced into the life-history is that 
 due to the fact that, as in many of the Algae, the gametophyte 
 reproduces itself by means of asexually-produced gonidia, and 
 may not produce sexual organs ; so that there may be a succession 
 of potential gametophytes before the actual gametophyte presents 
 itself. 
 
 In the life-history of some of the forms which have become 
 asexual through sexual degeneration (e.g. many Ascomycetes, 
 JEcidiomycetes, Saprolegniaceae), it is still possible to recognise the 
 gametophyte. It is that form which gives rise to the structure 
 which is identical or homologous with the product of fertilisation 
 in the allied sexually complete forms. For instance, in the Sapro- 
 legniacese, that form which bears the organs in which the partheno- 
 genetic oospores are formed, is the gametophyte ; similarly, in 
 the sexually degenerate Ascomycetes, the form which bears the 
 ascocarp is the gametophyte ; and again, in the JEcidiomycetes, 
 the form which produces the ascidium is the gametophyte. 
 
 In some Ascomycetes (e.g. Claviceps), and most ^Ecidiomycetes 
 the life-history is further complicated by the polymorphism of 
 the gametophyte. Here the life-history of the gametophyte pre- 
 sents one and sometimes two (most ^Ecidiomycetes) entirely 
 asexual gonidia-bearing forms. 
 
 In the life-history of the Basidiomycetes there is no form homo- 
 logous with the sporophyte of any of the other groups of Fungi ; 
 the sporophyte is entirely unrepresented. The plant is therefore 
 a gametophyte, and it is in some cases polymorphic. As it is 
 altogether asexual, it corresponds to the asexual forms of the 
 gametophyte in the life-history of those Ascomycetes and -5Ccid- 
 iomycetes in which the gametophyte is polymorphic. 
 
 The foregoing account of the life-history of the higher Fungi is based upon 
 the assumption that, in the Ascomycetes, the ascocarp is the product of a 
 sexual process, or is the homologue of such a product. If, however, the view 
 be taken that the Ascomycetes are altogether asexual, then the ascocarp may 
 be regarded, not as the sporophyte, but as simply a special form of gonidiophore 
 
280 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 borne by the gametophyte, a conclusion which would equally apply to the 
 fficidium of the yEcidiomycetes. In both these groups, as in the Basidiomycetes, 
 the plant would still be the gametophyte, the sporophyte having entirely dis- 
 appeared as a necessary consequence of the complete sexual degeneration of 
 the gametophyte. 
 
 The Fungi may be classified as follows : 
 
 Sub-Class I. SCHIZOMYCETES: Body unicellular, or multi- 
 cellular and filamentous; no special spore- 
 bearing organs ; no sexual reproduction. 
 
 Sub-Class II. MYXOMYCETES : Body a plasmodium; spores 
 formed in more or less well-developed spor- 
 angia ; zoospores ; no sexnal reproduction. 
 
 Sub-Class III. PHYCOMYCETES : Body generally either uni- 
 cellular, or a ccenocytic unseptate mycelium ; 
 sexual reproduction general ; zoospores (or 
 zoogonidia) present in most orders. 
 
 Section A. Zygomycetes : sexual process 
 isogamous ; product, a zygospore. 
 
 Section B. Oomycetes : sexual process 
 oogamous ; product, an oospore. 
 
 Sub-Class IV. ASCOMYCETES: Body usually an incompletely 
 septate mycelium ; sexual process carpoga 
 mous; the sporophyte is apparently repre 
 sented by the ascocarp. 
 
 Sub-Class V. -<3CciJ>iOMYCETES : Body an incompletely septate 
 mycelium ; no sexual process ; the sporo 
 phyte is apparently the aecidium. 
 
 Sub-Class VI. BASIDIOMYCETES : Body an incompletely sep 
 tate mycelium ; no sexual process ; the sporo- 
 phyte is unrepresented; compound gonidio- 
 phores are always formed. 
 Sub-Class I. SCHIZOMYCETES. These organisms are either uni- 
 cellular or mul tic ell ular ; most of the unicellular forms are very 
 minute. The cell consists of a mass of protoplasm, with a nucleus 
 surrounded by a cell-wall which consists in some cases of cellulose, 
 and in others of a proteid substance. In some cases the cells are 
 coloured red, green, blue, etc. : a starchy substance, turning blue 
 with iodine, is found in the cells of some forms (e.g. Bacillus 
 Amylobacter) . 
 
 The forms presented are extremely various. The individuals 
 may be spherical, the Coccus-form (Fig. 196, a); or rod-shaped, the 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHTTA : FUNGI : SCHIZOMYCKTES. 
 
 281 
 
 c== v 
 
 
 
 Bacterium- form (Fig. 196, 6); or spirally- wound, the Spirillum- 
 and Spirocheete-forms (Pig. 196, d) ; or straight free filaments, the 
 Bacillus-form ; or straight fila- 
 ments attached by one end, the 
 Leptothrix-form ; or the individuals 
 may form cubical masses, as in Sar- 
 cina Ventriculi. Some forms {e.g. 
 Bacterium, Spirochcete, and some 
 Coccus-forms) are capable of loco- 
 motion; but it is uncertain how 
 the movement is executed. These 
 forms are provided with one (Coc- 
 cus-form) or more (one or more at 
 each end in Bacterium- and Spiro- 
 chsete-forms) delicate filaments, 
 
 which are regarded by some as vibratile protoplasmic cilia, by 
 means of which movement is effected, whereas others consider 
 them to be simply prolongations of the cell-wall. 
 
 A remarkable phase, common to the life-history of nearly all 
 forms, more especially the nnicellular, is the zooglcea-stage. It 
 consists of great numbers of cells held together by bulky mucilage, 
 to form either a membrane (e.g. the scum on putrifying liquids) 
 or masses of the most various form. A striking zooglcea-stage is 
 that known as Leuconostoc mesenterioides^ which consists of wavy 
 
 Fi&. 190. Different forms of Schizo- 
 mycetes : a Micrococcus ; f> Bacterium ; 
 c Bacillus with spores; d Spirillum 
 (diag.: x600J. 
 
 FIG. 197. Bacillus subtilis. A zoogloea-stage ; B motile stage ; C zoogloea-stage, with 
 spore-formation. (After Strasburger : x 800.) 
 
 chains of cocci imbedded in a mass of mucilage, the whole re- 
 sembling the structure of Nostoc in the Cyanophyceae (p. 231). 
 
282 PARf III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Although a special name has been given to each of the multi- 
 farious forms assumed by the Schizomycetes, it must not be 
 assumed that each form to which a name has been given con- 
 stitutes a distinct species. On the contrary, the Schizomycetes 
 are highly polymorphic, and the various simpler forms are, for 
 the most part, merely phases in the life-history of the more com- 
 plex forms. The Schizomycetes may be classified, in accordance 
 with these facts, as follows : 
 
 1. Coccacece : exist in the free coccus-form, or in the zoogloea-stage. 
 
 Leuconostoc is the only form which has been fully investigated. 
 
 2. Bacteriacece : exist in the coccus-form, the bacterium-form and the 
 
 bacillus-form ; any of which may pass through a zoogloaa-stage. 
 
 Genera: Bacterium (e.y. Bacterium Termo) ; Clostridium (e.g. Clostri- 
 dium butyricum, causing butyric fermentation) ; Bacillus (e.g. Bacillus 
 subtilis) developed in infusions of hay. 
 
 3. Leptothrichiece ; unbranched, attached, filamentous forms ; giving rise to 
 
 coccus, bacterium, and spiral forms, which may pass through a zoogloea- 
 stage. Genera : Leptothrix, Beggiatoa, Crenothrix. 
 
 4. Cladothrichiete : resemble the preceding, but the attached filaments are 
 
 (spuriously) branched. Genus, Cladothrix. 
 
 The Schizomycetes multiply mainly by cell-division (whence their 
 name), and they do so with great rapidity under favourable con- 
 ditions ; the nucleus undergoes mitotic division in connexion with 
 this process. In many forms reproduction is also effected by means 
 of spores (e.g. Leuconostoc mesenterioides, Bacillus subtilis and 
 Anthracis, Clostridium butyricum). Each spore is formed from a 
 cell, the protoplasmic contents contracting from the cell-wall and 
 surrounding themselves with a thick proper wall ; the spore is set 
 free by the decay of the old cell-wall. Spore-formation generally 
 takes place in the zoogloea-stage, and is promoted by conditions 
 which are unfavourable to growth and multiplication by division. 
 The vitality of the spores is remarkable, being retained under con- 
 ditions, such as extremes of temperature, desiccation, etc., which 
 would prove fatal to the organisms themselves. 
 
 The most conspicuous feature in the physiology of the Schizomy- 
 cetes is their capacity for decomposing organic compounds, indu- 
 cing various fermentative processes, such as the lactic and the 
 butyric fermentation of various kinds of sugars, etc., (but never 
 the alcoholic fermentation), and the putrefactive fermentation of 
 complex nitrogenous organic substances, such as proteids, etc. Some 
 are parasitic in the bodies of animals, such as tiarcina Ventriculi, 
 Leptothrix buccalis which causes decay of the teeth, and the various 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA-: FUNGI: MYXOMYCETES. 283 
 
 forms of Bacteria which cause Phthisis, Cholera, Anthrax, and 
 other diseases. 
 
 The particular form presented, and the degree of the physiolo- 
 gical activity manifested, at any given time, is determined by the 
 external conditions, such as the nature of the obtainable food, the 
 temperature, the presence or absence of oxygen, etc. ; important 
 variations in any of these conditions may induce change from one 
 form of the organism to another and may modify its physiological 
 activity. 
 
 There is a general resemblance in organisation and reproduction 
 between the Schizomycetes and the Cyanophyceae, as well as a 
 remarkable correspondence between individual forms belonging to 
 the two groups. On this ground they are sometimes placed to- 
 gether in a distinct group, the Schizophyta. It is, however, prefer- 
 able to place them respectively in the classes Fungi and Algae as 
 corresponding sub-classes. 
 
 Sub-Class II. MYXOMYCETES. These organisms are characteris- 
 tically saprophytic, living on decaying organic substances, such 
 as spent tan, decaying leaves, tree-stumps, etc. 
 
 Their life-history is, in most cases (Endosporeoe), as follows : 
 On the germination of the spores, the contents of each spore escape 
 as a zoogonidium, a naked mass of protoplasm, enclosing a nucleus 
 arid a contractile vacuole, provided with a single cilium ; this con- 
 stitutes the mastigopod stage, and in this stage the cells multiply 
 by division. After a period of active swimming, the zoogonidium 
 draws in its cilium, and now creeps about by means of temporary 
 protrusions of its protoplasm termed pseudopodia ; this is the 
 amoeboid or myxopod stage, and in this stage also multiplication by 
 division takes place. The amoebse then collect together, cohering 
 into a plasmodium ; the protoplasm of the amoebae in some cases 
 fuses completely so that the plasmodium presents no cellular 
 structure, whereas in others (pseudoplasmodium) the outlines of 
 the coherent amoebae persist ; but, in any case, there is no fusion 
 of the nuclei of the constituent amoebae, so that the plasmodium is 
 multinucleate and coenocytic. 
 
 The plasmodium creeps about, like a gigantic amoeba, by means 
 of pseudopodia, until spore -format ion begins. At this time the 
 plasmodium comes to rest ; and it either forms a single sporangium, 
 or divides into several portions each of which forms a sporangium. 
 The mass of protoplasm then assumes the form of the future 
 sporangium ; the external portion of \it hardens to form the wall. 
 
284 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 while the internal portion, after rapid mitotic nuclear division, 
 separates into cells each of which secretes a proper wall and be- 
 comes a spore. In most forms a portion of the internal protoplasm 
 goes to form a number of filaments, generally tubular, either free 
 or connected into a net-work, which constitute the capillitium. 
 The wall dries, and eventually ruptures, and the spores are 
 scattered by the expansion and hygroscopic movements of the 
 elastic capillitium. In many cases the sporangium has a stalk, 
 
 FIG. 198. A Part of aplasmodium of lKdymiumleucopus(x 300). B A closed sporangium 
 of Arcyria incarnata. C The same after the rupture of its wall (p) and expansion of the 
 capillitium cp ( x 20). (After Sachs.) 
 
 (sporophore) which is sometimes continued into the cavity of the 
 sporangium as a columella. 
 
 In the Exosporeae the spores are not formed in the interior of 
 a sporangium, but by abstraction from the ends of filaments de- 
 veloped from the surface of the sporophore. 
 
 In some forms (e.g. Fuligo varians) a compound sporangium i* 
 formed, termed ^Ethalium, by the combination of a number 
 plasmodia. 
 

 GROUP I. THALLOPIIYTA : FUNGI: PHYCOMYCETES. 285 
 
 The sporangium-wall and capillifcium give the reactions of 
 cuticularised cell- wall. 
 
 The life-histoiy, as sketched above, varies somewhat in different 
 forms. In some (e.g. Dictyosteliaceae, Guttulinese) the mastigopod 
 stage is wanting, the spores giving rise directly to amcebee. 
 Again, the mastigopods or the amoebae may surround themselves 
 with a membrane and go through a resting-stage as microcysts ; or 
 
 the whole or part of a plasmodium may do the same as a sclerotium. 
 Closely connected with the Myxomycetes proper is the group of the MONA- 
 DINE^E. In their structure and life-history they generally resemble the Myxomy- 
 cetes ; but a plasmodium-stage occurs in but few forms, and then it is minute and 
 of simple structure ; they are further characterised by the formation of zoocysts, 
 which give rise to ciliated or amoeboid zoogonidia. The Monadineas are parasitic. 
 The Sub-Class may be sub-divided as follows : 
 
 Division I. Monadineae : aquatic, often parasitic; usually produce zooeysts; 
 plasmodium small or wanting. 
 
 A. Azoosporece : zoospores amoeboid ; Vampyrelleae, etc. 
 
 B. Zoosuorece : zoospores ciliated ; Plasmodiophorese, etc. 
 
 Division II. Eumycetozoa : subaerial, not parasitic: no zoocysts; body, a 
 plasmodium with well developed fructification. 
 
 1. Sorophorece : zoospores simply amoeboid ; the cells of the plasmodium 
 
 (pseudoplasmodium) distinct : spores not developed in sporangia, but 
 free on the surface in groups (sori) : Guttulineae, Dictyosteliaceas. 
 
 2. Endosporece : zoospores at first ciliated, becoming subsequently amoe- 
 
 boid ; body, a true plasmodium ; spores developed in a sporangium with 
 a capillitium ; to this group belong most of the Myxomycetes (e.g. 
 Didymium, Arcjria, Stemonitis, Fuligo, Badhamia, etc.). 
 
 3. Exosporea : zoospores at first amoeboid, becoming subsequently ciliated, 
 
 and finally amoeboid again : body, a true plasmodium : spores developed 
 on the surface of basidioid sporophores; Ceratium. 
 
 Sub-Class III. PHYCOMYCETES. Section A. Zygomycetes. 
 
 This section includes the following orders : 
 
 Order 1. Chytridiaceae : simple unicellular or mycelioid forms ; 
 asexual reproduction by zoospores (and zoo- 
 gonidia). 
 
 Order 2. Mucorinas : body, a well - developed unseptate my- 
 celium; no motile spores or gonidia. 
 
 Order 3. Entomophthoraceae : body, an incompletely septate 
 mycelium ; no motile spores or gonidia. 
 
 Order 1. Chytridiaceae. Body, a single rounded cell, or a simple mycelium ; 
 sexual reproduction known in some forms ; asexual reproduction by zoospores 
 (in sexual forms by both zoogonidia and zoospores) ; mostly parasitic, generally 
 
286 PAET III. THE CLASSlFfCATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 on Algae, or on aquatic Fungi, but sometimes on Phanerogams, and on aquatic 
 animals. 
 
 In accordance with the form and structure of the body, the Chytridiaceaa 
 may be sub-divided into two groups ; the Myxochytridineae (including such 
 genera as Sphaerita, Olpidium, Olpidiopsis, Synchytrium, etc.) where the body 
 is a single spherical or oval cell, destitute, for a time at least, of a cell-wall ; 
 and the Mycochytridineee where the body has a cell-wall from the first, and is 
 usually more or less mycelioid, and is commonly branched. 
 
 The asexual organs of reproduction are in all cases unicellular, and present 
 two distinct forms ; a thin- walled sporangium (gonidangium in the sexual forms) 
 which at once gives rise to zoospores ; a thick-walled sporangium (sometimes 
 termed a resting-spore), formed by a process of encystment in the asexual 
 form?, by a sexual process in the sexual forms where it represents the sporo- 
 phyte, which only gives rise to zoospores after a longer or shorter period of 
 quiescence. 
 
 The simpler forms (MyxochytriJineae) are holocarpic ; that is, the whole cell 
 becomes a sporangium, being invested by a cell-wall. The other forms are 
 eucarpic, that is, a part only of the body goes to form the sporangium ; some of 
 them (Sporochytrieae) are monocarpic, that is, each produces but one sporan- 
 gium; whilst others are polycarpic (Hypochytriese), that is, each forms several 
 sporangia. In any case the formation of reproductive organs closes the life of 
 the individual. 
 
 The zoospores (and zoogonidia) vary somewhat in form, but are generally 
 spherical or ovoid, with either one or two cilia. They are generally formed 
 directly from the contents of the sporangium (or gonidangium), but in Synchy- 
 trium the contents undergo division, and escape from the sporangium, surrounded 
 by a delicate membrane, as a group of cells (sorus) each of which gives rise to 
 a number of zoospores. When the sporangium is, as is frequently the case, 
 formed within the cells of a host-plant, it puts out a tubular outgrowth which 
 reaches the surface, and thus the zoospores are set free, and, in their turn, 
 make their way into the tissues of a host. 
 
 A sexual process, of the nature of conjugation, has been observed in some 
 forms, both of the Myxochytridinae and of the Mycochytridineae, but the 
 differentiation of the sexual organs as male and female is only rudimentary. 
 In the former case (e.g. Olpidiopsis) two unicellular individuals of unequal size 
 fuse together, the contents of the smaller (probably the male) passing over into 
 the larger cell. In Polyphagus, one of the simpler Mycochytridineae, one in- 
 dividual extrudes its protoplasmic contents as a naked sphere to which another 
 individual applies one of its hyphae through which its contents are conveyed 
 into the sphere. The product of conjugation is a zygospore, which, like the 
 thick-walled sporangia, gives rise to a number of zoospores on germinating after 
 a period of quiescence. 
 
 An indication of an alternation of generations may be traced in the life- 
 history of the sexual members of the order. The plant is the gametophyte, 
 reproducing itself by zoogonidia formed in thin-walled gonidangia ; the zygo- 
 spore is the sporophyte, giving rise to zoospores, each of which, on germination, 
 gives rise to a gametophyte. 
 
 This order is one of great systematic interest, inasmuch as it shows affinity 
 
GKOUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI : ZYGOMYCETES. 
 
 287 
 
 to so many other different forms. It is allied, on tbe one hand, by the simple 
 Myxochytridineee to the Monadinese, and thus also to the rest of the Myxomy- 
 cetes. On the other hand it is allied to the simple Oomycetous Phycomycetes, 
 the Ancylistaceoe, a group which is sometimes actually included in the Chytri- 
 diaceaa ; and, again, through such forms as the CladoclrytrieaB, to the Ustila- 
 gineae. 
 
 Order 2. Mucorinse. Body an unseptate mycelium, septa being only 
 developed in connection with the formation of reproductive organs ; reproduc- 
 tion by gonidia and spores, and by zygospores formed by conjugation ; mostly 
 saprophytic, but some are parasitic on other Fungi. 
 
 The mycelium ramifies in the substratum (Fig. 199). The asexual reproduc- 
 tive organs are developed as simple gonidiophores which grow erect into the air. 
 In the Mucoraceae the simple gonidiophores are unbranched, and each bears 
 
 FIG. 199. Mucor Mucedo : m a mycelium bearing a simple gonidiophore with a terminal 
 gonidangitim s ; S a gonidan^ium much magnified ; t the end of the gouidiophore dilated 
 into the columella c; w the wall of the gonidangium; sp the gonidia; z zygospore formed 
 by the fusion of the contents of two gametangia. 
 
 at its apex a single gonidangium ; the gonidiophore projects into the cavity 
 of the gonidangium as a columella (Fig. 199). In the Chaatocladieaa and the 
 Piptocephalidese the gonidiophore is branched and more or less septate ; it 
 produces a number of gonidia by abstriction from the tips of its branches. On 
 germination, the gonidium gives rise to a mycelium similar to that from which 
 it was derived. 
 
 The gametophores are short swollen hypha? ; by the formation of a septum 
 near the tip of the gametophore, a terminal cell is produced, which is the 
 sexual organ or gametangium ; the protoplasmic contents of the gametangium 
 constitute the gamete. Two gametophores from adjacent vegetative hypha3 
 come into contact at their tips ; the walls of the two gametangia are absorbed 
 at the point of contact ; the protoplasmic contents (gametes) of the gametaugia 
 
288 
 
 I'AttT III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 fuse to form the cell which surrouuds itself with a coat of two layers and 
 becomes a zygospore (Fig. 200). Azygospores are frequently produced, ex- 
 clusively in some cases (Mucor neglectus and tennis). 
 
 In some forms the effect of conjugation extends to the adjacent hyphae ; thus, 
 
 in Phycomyces, 
 branched hyphse 
 are developed, 
 after conjugation, 
 from the gatneto- 
 phores, and form 
 an incomplete 
 covering to the 
 zygospore ; and 
 in Mortierella the 
 adjacent vegeta- 
 tive hypbse are 
 stimulated to 
 growth and form 
 a dense hyphal 
 investment to the 
 zygospore. 
 
 In many cases 
 the zygospore, on 
 germinatio n, 
 gives rise to a 
 small branched 
 or unbranched 
 mycelium, which 
 bears a single 
 simple sporo- 
 phore resembling 
 the gonidiophore 
 of the plant to 
 which it belongs. 
 The spores de- 
 rived from this 
 sporophore give 
 rise, on germina- 
 tion, to the large 
 mycelium bearing 
 gonidiophores 
 
 FIG. 200.-Mucor Mucedo. A Diagram of sexual process ; two a n d 8 a m e * ' 
 pametophores in contact; at the end of each gametophore a cell, phores. In other 
 tVie gainetangium, has been cut off by a septum; ..B commencing cases, however, 
 development of the zygospore from the fused gametangia ; C ripe the zygospore 
 zygospore, still connected with the gametophores ; D free zygo- - ' e to a 
 spore, showing one point of attachment ; E germinating zygo- 
 spore, bearing a small promycelium, the sporophyte, with a single mycelium bear 
 sporangium (after Brefeld). ing sexual or- 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: ZYGOMYCETES. 289 
 
 gans. In the genus Mortierella (so far as is known), the zygospore does not 
 actually germinate itself, but a number of sporangia spring from the hyphal 
 investment surrounding it. 
 
 The mycelium, when under unfavourable conditions, gives rise to unicellular 
 gemmse, either chlamydogonidia or oidium-cells : the latter multiply by gemma- 
 tion in a yeast-like manner (e.g. Mucor racemosus) and, like Yeast, have the power 
 of causing alcoholic fermentation ; this takes place especially when the hyph 
 are immersed in liquid. The hyphas become segmented into a row of cells by the 
 formation of transverse septa, and the cells then separate and become free. 
 The chlamydogonidia are thick- walled and large; the oidium-cells are smaller 
 and thin-walled (see p. 274). 
 
 The typical life-history presents an obvious alternation of generations. The 
 plant is the gametophyte, inasmuch as it either actually produces sexual organs 
 (when it is an actual gametophyte), or, though capable of producing sexual organs 
 it does not do so, owing to external conditions (when it is a potential gameto- 
 phyte) ; the gametophyte reproduces its like by means of the gonidia. The 
 promycelium, derived from the zygospore, is the sporophyte, inasmuch as it is 
 incapable of producing sexual organs. In some cases, however, the zygospore 
 gives rise to the mycelium bearing sexual organs. 
 
 The Mucorinse may be sub-divided as follows : 
 
 Sub-Order A Sporangiophorae : gonidia developed inside a gonidangium. 
 Fam. 1. Mucoracece : the gonidangium has a columella ; the aygospore is 
 naked or invested only by a few loose hyphas ; principal genera, 
 Mucor, Phycomyces, Sporodinia, Thamnidium, Pilobolus. 
 Fam. 2. Mortierellea : the gonidangium has no columella ; the zygospore 
 is invested by a compact mass of hyphas : Mortierella. 
 
 Sub-Order B. Conidiophorse : gonidia formed by abstriction from sterigmata. 
 Fam. 1. CluEtocladiece : gonidia developed singly on the sterigma ; the 
 
 gametophores are straight : Chastocladium. 
 
 Fam. 2. Cephalideae : several gonidia developed from each sterigma ; the 
 gametophores are curved : Piptocephalis, Syncephalis. 
 
 The Mortierelleae, Chastocladieae, and Cephalideae, are for the most part 
 parasitic on various Mucoraceae. 
 
 OrderS. Entomophthoraceae. Body an incompletely septate mycelium ; 
 reproduction by means of non-motile gouidia, and by zygospores formed by 
 conjugation ; mostly parasitic on insects. 
 
 The mycelium ramifies in the body of the insect, and in most cases produces 
 simple gonidiophores which, after the death of the insect, project from its body, 
 each forming a single gonidium by abstriction at its apex ; the gonidium is 
 thrown off to a considerable distance, so that the body of the insect becomes 
 surrounded by a halo of gonidia. This may commonly be seen in the case of 
 flies in the autumn, which are frequently attacked by a member of this order 
 (Entomophthora Muscce) and remain sticking to window-panes. The gonidium, 
 on germination, puts out a hypha which penetrates into the body of another 
 insect ; this hypha may either grow directly into a mycelium in the body of the 
 insect (*?.</. Entomophthora radicans, ovispora, curvispora), or it may produce 
 by abstriction a number of gonidia which may multiply by budding in a yeast- 
 like manner within the body of the insect, and it is these which produce my- 
 
 V. S. B. U 
 
290 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 celia. The mycelium becomes completely exhausted in forming the gonidia, so 
 that when this process is completed, both the fungus and the insect are dry and 
 shrivelled. 
 
 In some cases few or no gonidia are formed, but zygoapores or azygospores. 
 The zygospores are produced by the protusion of transverse protuberances be- 
 tween two segments of adjacent hyphas ; the walls of these protuberances are 
 absorbed at the point of contact, the contents fuse, and the product surrounds 
 itself with a proper wall, and constitutes a zygospore (Entomophthora ovispora, 
 and curvispora). In other species spores quite similar to the zygospores, termed 
 azygospores, are formed, but without conjugation ; the azygospores are formed 
 parthenogenetically. On germination (as observed in Entomophtliora Grylli), 
 the zygospore gives rise to a hypha, the promycelium, which forms a gonidium 
 at its apex. 
 
 The life-history of the sexual forms shows a clear alternation of generations. 
 The plant is the gametophyte which, as is so commonly the case among the 
 Thallophytes, reproduces itself asexually by means of gonidia, and gives rise to 
 zygospores as well. The promycelium is the sporophyte, as it never can de- 
 velope sexual organs and produce zygospores. By analogy, in those forms 
 which are not known to produce zygospores, the plant is a gametophyte, and 
 the sporophyte is absent. 
 
 Section B. Oomycetes. 
 
 This section of the Phycomycetes includes the following orders : 
 
 Order 1. Ancylistaceaa : body generally unbranched ; oogonia 
 intercalary; contents of oogonium not differenti- 
 ated into oosphere and periplasm ; pollmodium 
 functional. 
 
 Order 2. Peronosporaceae : body branched ; oogonia terminal 
 or intercalary ; contents of oogonium differentiated 
 into oosphere and periplasm ; pollinodiuin func- 
 tional. 
 
 Order 3. Saprolegniaceae : body branched ; oogonia generally 
 terminal, rarely intercalary ; contents of oogonium 
 not differentiated into oosphere and periplasm ; 
 pollinodiuin absent, or, if present, functionless. 
 
 Order 1. Ancylistaceae. This order consists of a few forms which are 
 parasitic on freshwater Algae. The body is simply a tube, lying in the cell of 
 the host. It becomes branched only in some forms (Lagenidium), and then 
 only in connexion with the development of reproductive organs. It eventually 
 becomes septate transversely, and each segment becomes a reproductive organ, 
 either sexual or asexual, so that these organisms are holocarpic and mono- 
 carpic. 
 
 The asexual organs are gonidangia, which, in most cases, give rise to zoo- 
 gonidia ; but in Ancylistes this is not the case, where the gonidangium germin- 
 ates as if it were a gonidium, sending out a hypha which makes its way into a 
 host. 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI : OOMYCETES. 
 
 291 
 
 The sexual organs are fairly differentiated oogonia and pollinodia, and it is 
 on this account that this order is removed from the Chytridiaceae, with which it 
 is closely allied, and is included in the Oomycetes. In fertilisation, the whole 
 contents of the pollinodium enter the oogonium and fuse with the whole con- 
 tents of the oogonium to form an oospore. The plants are either monoecious 
 (Myzocytium, Lagenidium), or dioecious (Ancylistes). The germination of the 
 oospore is known only in Aucylistes, where it developes into a hypha which 
 bores into a host. 
 
 Order 2. Peronosporaceae. The forms comprised in this order are 
 mostly parasitic, chiefly on Phanerogams, but some species of Pythium inhabit 
 the dead bodies of plants and animals. 
 
 The asexual reproduction of the gametophyte is effected, in most forms, by 
 gonidangia developed at the ends of the branches of the simple goiiidiophores 
 
 (Fig. 201 ; Fig. 203 A) : no such 
 
 V organs have, however, been observed 
 
 as yet in Pythium vexans or P. Arto- 
 trocjus. In some forms (Planoblastae) 
 the gonidaugium gives rise to zoo- 
 gonidia either before or after it has 
 fallen off the gonidiophore (Fig. 
 203 B t C) ; whilst in other forms 
 
 FIG. 201. Part of a section of a Potato- 
 leaf infested by Phytophthora infestan* : 
 the gonidiophore passing out into the air 
 through a stoma ; c the gonidangia. 
 
 FIG. 202. Phytophthora omnivora. An 
 oogonium (Og), containing an oospore 
 (sp); a a pollinodium which has fertilited 
 the oosphere. (x400.) 
 
 (Siphoblastae) it falls off and germinates as if it were itself a gonidium, 
 growing out into a hypha, and so into a mycelium. 
 
 The oooonium is spherical, and remains closed (Fig. 202). The protoplasmic 
 contents undergo differentiation into a single oosphere which is surrounded by 
 the remainder of the protoplasm, the periplasrn. The oosphere is multi- 
 nucleate in some forms, though it has been described as ultimately uninucleate 
 in Pythium. 
 
 The pollinodium is developed terminally, either on a hypha springing from 
 beneath the oogonium, or on an adjacent hypha, and is club-shaped. Its pro- 
 toplasmic contents undergo differentiation into a male cell (aplanogamete) and 
 into periplasm. 
 
 At the time of fertilisation, the pollinodium is closely applied to the oogonium 
 and sends out a delicate tube which penetrates through the wall of the 
 oogonium and reaches the oosphere. The tube then opens, and the male cell 
 passes out of the pollinodium into the oosphere and fertilises it. The oosphere 
 then surrounds itself with a proper wall and becomes the oospore. In some 
 
292 
 
 PART 111. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 genera (Peronospora, Cystopus) an external coat, the episporium or perinium, is 
 formed round the oospore from the periplasm. 
 
 The germination of the oospore takes place in different ways in different 
 species. In Phytophthora omnivora and Pythiwn proliferum it gives rise to a 
 small mycelium (promycelium) which produces a few spores, from which sexual 
 plants are developed. In other species (e.g. Cystopus Candidas) the contents of 
 the oospore are set free as a number of zoospores. In yet other species (e.g. 
 
 Pythium de-Bar yanum, Pyth- 
 ium Artotrogus, Peronospora 
 Valerianellce), the oospore di- 
 rectly gives rise to a sexual plant. 
 The life-history of most of 
 the Peronosporaceae presents an 
 alternation of generations. In 
 all cases the plant is the game- 
 tophyte. In those species in 
 which the oospore gives rise to 
 a promycelium, the promycel- 
 ium is the sporophyte ; in those 
 in which the oospore gives rise 
 to zoospores, the oospore itself 
 represents the sporophyte ; and, 
 finally, in those in which the 
 oospore at once gives rise to 
 a sexual plant, the sporophjte 
 is altogether unrepresented. 
 
 The Peronosporaceae may be 
 subdivided as follows : 
 TJ j Planoblastce : the gonidan- 
 
 gia gives rise to zoo- 
 gonidia on germination : 
 Cystopus, Pythium, Phy- 
 tophthora, etc. 
 Siphoblastce : the gonidan- 
 gia germinate as if they 
 were gonidia, giving rise 
 to a hypha : Perono- 
 spora, Breinia. 
 There is a doubtful genus, 
 named MONOBLEPHAEIS, pro- 
 bably allied to the Perono- 
 sporaceae, which is remarkable 
 in that the male organ is an an- 
 theridiura, since it gives rise to a number of uniciliate spermatozoids, and in 
 that the oogonium opens at the apex to permit the entrance of the spermatozoid 
 to the single oosphere. The antheridium is a cell just behind the oogonium, 
 which is terminal. The oosphere is formed from the entire protoplasmic con- 
 tents of the oogonium. The mycelium also bears gonidangia, which give rise to 
 
 Fia. 203. A Surface-view of the epidermis of a 
 Potato-leaf with the gonidiophores of Pkytophthora 
 infestans projecting out of the storaata ( x 90). B A 
 ripe gonidangium. C Another undergoing divi- 
 sion. D A zoogonidium. (x64.0: after Strasburger.) 
 
GEOUP I. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: OOMYCETES. 
 
 293 
 
 zoogonidia. The germination of the oospore has not been observed. These 
 observations require confirmation ; if they are accurate, Monoblepharis is the 
 only Fungus which has spermatozoids, and an oogonium which opens. 
 
 In the genus Peronospora, which is represented by many species (P. para- 
 sitica on Capsella, P. calotheca on Kubiaceae, etc.), only one gonidangium is 
 borne by each branch of the gonidiophore which protrudes through a stoma. 
 In Phytophthora the gonidangia are displaced laterally by branches which arise 
 from the hyphse bearing the gonidangia, at their points of origin. To this genus 
 belongs P. infestans, which produces the 
 potato-disease. The tissues of the host un- 
 dergo decomposition in the infected parts and 
 turn black : the m} T celium of the Fungus ex- 
 tends from the circumference of these spots, 
 and throws up gonidiophore s through the 
 stomata (Fig. 203). The gonidangia of the 
 parasite are carried by the wind to healthy 
 plants and infect them : the zoogonidia also 
 penetrate through the soil to the tubers, and 
 the mycelium which is developed from them ex- 
 tends into the young Potato-plant which grows 
 from the tuber. No sexual reproductive organs 
 have been observed in this Fungus as yet. 
 Phytophthora omnivora infects and destroys 
 the seedlings of the Beech and other plants. 
 In Cystopus (C. candidus on Capsella and other 
 Crucifers, C. cubicus on Compositae) gonidio- 
 phores bearing numerous gonidangia are formed 
 in great numbers close together under the epi- 
 dermis, and cause its rupture. 
 
 Order 3. Saprolegniaceae.. The Sapro- 
 legniaceas all live in water, and are mostly 
 saprophytic, though some are parasitic ;. one 
 species causes the Salmon-disease. 
 
 Asexual reproduction of the gametophyte is 
 effected entirely by zoogonidia, but in Aplane 
 Eraunii they are not set free but germinate 
 within the gonidangium ; they are formed in 
 terminal but not otherwise especially differen- 
 tiated gonidangia (Fig. 204). On coming to 
 rest they germinate to form a mycelium. 
 They are, in some forms, surrounded by a thin 
 cell-wall at their first formation. 
 
 The oogonia and pollinodia (when present) 
 resemble those of the Peronosporaceaa. The 
 number of oospheres in the oogonium varies 
 widely in different individuals ; sometimes there is owly one (Leptolegnia, 
 Aphanomyces) ; but as a rule there are many, as many as 30-40 ; in either 
 case they are developed from the whole of the protoplasm of the oogoniuni. 
 
 Pis. 204. Gonidangium of an 
 Achlya. A Closed. JB The zoo- 
 gonidia are escaping ; c a lateral 
 branch ; o zoogonidia just es- 
 caped ; b empty membranes ; 
 e swarming zoogonidia. (x 650: 
 after Sachs.) 
 
PART 111. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The male and female sexual organs are commonly borne on the same hypha, 
 but in some cases (e.g. Saprolegnia dioica and anisospora) this is not the case ; 
 however, it is not clear that these species are actually dioecious. In some 
 species (Saprolegnia Thureti, torulosa, monilifera^ and Aclilya stellata) no male 
 organs are developed as a rule ; in others (Saprolegnia mixta, Achlija spinosa) 
 they are as often absent as present ; in others they are frequently absent 
 (Aphanomyces stellatus, Saprolegnia liypogyni, Aplanes Braunii) ; in others, 
 finally, they are always present (Achlya racemosa and polyandra, Saprolegnia 
 monoica). 
 
 When pollinodia are present, they are closely applied to the oogonium ; 
 sometimes several are applied to one oogonium. In some forms (e.g. Sapro- 
 legnia asterophora) the pollinodium undergoes no change, or it sends out a 
 short tube which enters the oogonium but does not touch the oospheres. In 
 most others the pollinodium sends out one or more tubes which enter the 
 oogonium and come into close contact with the oospheres. But in all cases 
 the tubes remain closed, and no act of fertilisation has been observed. The 
 oospheres, however, all become oospores ; but since there is apparently no 
 fertilisation, this change is produced parthenogenetically. 
 
 The germination of the oospores presents the same variations as in the 
 Peronosporaceas. The life-history of the Saprolegniacese is therefore essentially 
 the same as that of the Peronosporacete . 
 
 The principal genera are Saprolegnia, Achlya, Aphanomyces, Dictjuchus, 
 Aplanes, Apodya. 
 
 Sub-Class IV. ASCOMYCETES, This sub-class includes a 
 vast number of forms, both saprophytes and parasites. Some of 
 them (e.g. Penicillium glaucum, Eurotium Aspergillus) are familiar 
 as the blue or green moulds appearing- on jam, old boots, etc. ; 
 others (Erysipheee) as mildew on roses, etc : Cordyceps infests 
 the larvse of insects. 
 
 On the assumption of the sexuality of the Ascomycetes (see p. 
 279), the life-history of typical members of this group presents a 
 well-marked alternation of generations ; the plant is the gameto- 
 phyte ; the ascocarp is the sporophyte ; an alternation which is 
 the same as that of the Rhodophyceas among the Algae. The 
 similarity is further emphasised by the fact that, as in the 
 Rhodophycese, the gametophyte may be potential. In some cases 
 the life-history is complicated by the polymorphism of the game- 
 tophyte, which includes in its life-history one or more entirely 
 asexual gonidia-bearing forms. These various life-histories are 
 briefly illustrated by the following examples. 
 
 1. The gametophyte produces no gonidia {e.g. Eremascus albus, 
 Gymnoascus, most Ascomycetous Lichen-fungi, Ascololus furfur- 
 aceus, Pyronema). In these the life-history is perfectly simple, 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI : ASCOMYCETES. 295 
 
 consisting in an alternation between the plant bearing sexual 
 organs (gametophyte) and the ascocarp (sporophyte). On germina- 
 tion the spores (ascospores) produced in the ascocarp give rise to 
 the sexual plant. 
 
 2. The gametophyte produces gonidia but not on a special form (e.g. 
 Erysipheae, Eurotium, Penicilliuna) . In these the gametophyte re- 
 produces itself by means of gonidia ^ in the Erysiphese and Euro- 
 tium the gametophyte generally produces sexual organs eventually, 
 that is, it generally becomes an actual gametophyte ; in Penicillium 
 the formation of sexual organs takes place only exceptionally 
 under special conditions, so that many successive generations of 
 potential garnetophytes may be produced by means of gonidia 
 before an actual gametophyte makes its appearance. This may 
 occur also in the Erysipheas. 
 
 3. The gametophyte produces gonidia and is polymorphic. This 
 life-history can be clearly traced in Claviceps purpurea, the Ergot 
 of Rye. The mycelium is developed in the ovary of the Rye- 
 flower, and forms a continuous layer of hyphse, a compound gonid- 
 iophore, at the surface, from which immense numbers of gonidia, 
 are formed by abstriction, imbedded in a mucilaginous substance 
 known as Honey-dew. This substance is eaten by insects, and 
 thus the gonidia are carried to other flowers and there reproduce 
 the fungus. This is the Sphacelia-forni. When the rye is ripen- 
 ing, the mycelium forms a dense sclerotium (see p, 275), fusiform, 
 about an inch long, of a dark purple colour at the surface. This is 
 the Ergot, and it remains dormant until the following spring. On 
 germination the sclerotium gives rise to several filaments termed 
 stromata, about an inch long, each composed of a strand of hyphaa, 
 which bear a swollen knob at their apices (Fig. 212). All -over 
 the surface of the knob are a number of depressions, in each of 
 which there is an ascocarp (perithecium) containing a number of 
 asci, and in each ascus there are eight filiform ascospores. The 
 ascospores are carried by the wind to the Rye-flowers and there 
 give rise to the Sphacelia-form. A somewhat similar life-history 
 is that of Peziza Sclcrotiorum, though the alternation of the two 
 forms of the gametophyte is not so regular : the asexual form of 
 the gametophyte (which corresponds to the Sphacelia-form of 
 Claviceps) bears simple gonidiophores and is known us Botrytis 
 cinerea. 
 
 In some cases only gonidia-bearing forms are known (e.g. 
 
296 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Aspergillus davatus, Botrytis Bassii, species of Isaria, Cladosporium 
 Herbarum, etc.). 
 
 The Reproductive Organs of the Gametophyte are asexual and 
 sexual. 
 
 The asexual organs are gonidiophores, either simple or compound 
 (see Figs. 205, 211), branched or unbranched ; the gonidia are 
 formed by abstraction from short tubular outgrowths of the un- 
 branched, or of the terminal cells of branches of the branched, 
 gonidiophore, termed sterigmata. In many cases the gonidiophores 
 are collected into special receptacles termed pycnidia. 
 
 The sexual organs are modified hyphae. They may be unseptate 
 (e.g. Eremascus, Eurotium Aspergillus, Pyronema), or septate (e.g. 
 
 Ascobolus, Collema) ; they may be 
 quite similar (e.g. Eremascus) or 
 more or less differentiated; they 
 may come into close contact (e.g. 
 Eremascus, Eurotium, Pyronema), 
 or they are developed at a distance 
 from each other (e.g. Collema, 
 Polystigma). 
 
 When, as in Eremascus, the 
 sexual organs are undifferentiated, 
 no special names are given to 
 them ; but when they are differen- 
 tiated the female organ is termed 
 an archicarp, and the male organ 
 a pollinodium when developed close 
 to the female organ, or a sterigma 
 when developed at a distance 
 from it. 
 
 In some forms (e.g. Collema, Pyronema) the archicarp consists 
 of two parts ; a receptive portion, filamentous in form, the tricho- 
 gyne; a fertile portion, the ascogonium (compare Bhodophyceoe, 
 p. 268). In the simpler forms, the trichogyne is absent (e.g. 
 Eurotium, Erysiphese, Ascobolus), the archicarp consisting solely 
 of the ascogonium. The form of the ascogonium is either 
 filamentous, sometimes spirally coiled (e.g. Collema, Fig. 208, 
 Enrotium, Fig. 211) ; or, it is dilated, and spherical or oval 
 (e.g. Pyronema, Fig. 207, Erysipheee). 
 
 The pollinodium may be filamentous (e.g. Eurotium), or dilated 
 and club-shaped (e.g. Pyronema, Erysiphese). 
 
 PIG. 205. Gonidiophore of Penicit- 
 lium glaucum : s a row of gonidia on a 
 sterigma ; m hypha of tbe mycelium. 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI : ASCOMYCETES. 297 
 
 The sterigmata are borne in receptacles termed spermogonia. 
 The spermogonium consists of a wall formed of coherent hyphae 
 from which a number of free hyphse, the sterigmata, grow into 
 the interior and produce, by repeated abstriction at their apices, 
 a number of small rod-shaped cells, the spermatia, with a cell- 
 wall, which seem, in some cases, to be the male cells (see p. 277). 
 These cells reach the surface through the small opening of the 
 spermogonium. 
 
 Whilst it is true that, in very many cases, the spermatia germinate like 
 gonidia, this does not absolutely prove that they may not be imperfect or de- 
 generate sexual cells ; the independent germination of undoubted male cells is 
 not uncommon in the Algae (p. 226). 
 
 A process of fertilisation has not been observed in all forms in 
 which sexual organs are present ; but it has been observed in the 
 
 c. 
 
 FIG. 206. Sexual reproduction of Eremascus albus. A Sexual orpan.s in contact. B 
 Fusion of the organs at the apex, with developing ascocarp. C Mature ascocarp, consisting 
 of a single ascus containing eight ascospores. (x 1000 : after Kidam.) 
 
 following cases which are representative of the various modes in 
 which it may take place. 
 
 In Eremascus (Fig. 206) the apices of the undifferentiated 
 sexual organs come into contact, and, the cell-walls being absorbed 
 at the point of contact, the protoplasmic contents fuse. 
 
 In Pyronema the trichogyne conies into close contact with an 
 adjacent pollinodium ; the cell-walls become absorbed at the point 
 where the apex of the trichogyne presses against the pollinodium, 
 and the contents of the two organs fuse (Fig. 207). 
 
 In Collema (Fig. 208) it appears that the spermatia are brought, 
 by means of water, into contact with the projecting trichogyne ; 
 one of them adheres to the trichogyne ; the cell- walls are absorbed 
 at the point of contact, and the protoplasm of the spermatium 
 enters the trichogyne. 
 
 It is probable that, in consequence of sexual degeneration, the 
 
298 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 sexual organs are functionless in the majority of those Ascomycetes 
 in which both kinds of them are present. In some forms sexual 
 degeneration has proceeded so far that no male organ is developed 
 (e.g. Chaetomium, Melanospora) ; in others there is not only no male 
 organ, but the female organ is either rudimentary, being re- 
 presented only by a structure known as Woronin's hypha (e.g. 
 Xylaria), or cannot be detected at all (e.g. Claviceps, Pleospora). 
 The Reproductive Organs of the Spurophyte. The sporophyte is 
 
 FIG. 207. Sexual reproduction in 
 Pyronema confluens : c archicarp with 
 trichogyne (t) which has fused with the 
 pollinodium a. (x300: after Kihlm an.) 
 
 Fia. 208. Section of the homoiomerous 
 thallus of Collema(a Lichen) : a the ascogo- 
 nium; i the trichogyne; h the hypha; n the 
 algal fllaments.(Nostoc), (x350: afterStahl). 
 
 a fructification termed the ascocarp, which (assuming its sexual 
 origin, p. 279) corresponds to the cystocarp of the E/hodophycese. 
 In those Ascomycetes in which there is an archicarp, the ascocarp 
 is developed directly or indirectly from that organ, either as the 
 result of fertilisation, or parthenogenetically, in. those forms 
 respectively in which a sexual process does or does not take place. 
 When no archicarp is present, or when it exists in only a rudi- 
 mentary form (Woronin's hypha), the ascocarp is developed 
 directly from the mycelium. 
 
 The simplest form of ascocarp is found in Eremascus (Fig. 206). 
 After the sexual process has taken place, a large spherical cell is 
 formed at the point of junction of the two sexual organs. This cell 
 is an aseus, and produces within it eight ascospores. Here the 
 whole ascocarp consists of a single naked ascus, 
 
 The ascocarp of Podosphsera (one of the Erysipheae) is but little 
 more complex than that of Erernascus. Here likewise the archi- 
 carp gives rise directly to a single ascus ; but an investment is 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: ASCOMYCETES. 299 
 
 formed round the developing ascus by the growth round it of hyphse 
 from the adjacent mycelium, which cohere to form a layer of 
 parenchymatous tissue. 
 
 In the majority of forms the development of the ascocarp is in- 
 direct. The archicarp gives rise to a greater or smaller number 
 of filaments, branched or unbranched, the ascogenous hyphcv (which 
 closely correspond to the ooblastema-filaments of the Rhodophycese, 
 see p. 270), from which the asci are formed as branches, and which 
 together form a compound sporophore. The asci are developed 
 close together, forming a ky menial layer or group, and may or may 
 not be enclosed, either completely or partially, by an investment 
 formed from the surrounding mycelium. In the latter case, vege- 
 tative hyphse grow in among the ascogenous hyphee and terminate 
 in a number of sterile filaments, the 
 paraphyses, which are situate in the 
 hy menial layer between the asci; 
 
 The following forms of ascocarp 
 may be distinguished amongst 
 those which have a cellular invest- 
 ment : the cleistothecium ; the in- 
 vestment remains closed until it 
 decays and ruptures to permit of FIG. 209, A Ascocarp of Uncimtla W- 
 
 the escape of the asCOSpOreS (see cornis (Erysipheae), slightly magnified : 
 
 -tn- onn m i \ xt_ -,i m mycelium ;/ cleistothecinm ; h in- 
 
 * IgS. 209, 211) : the penthecwm ; a vesting filamen s. B An ascus from the 
 
 narrow aperture is developed op- cleistothecium, containing eight asco- 
 
 posite to the hymenial layer (see 8pores <more bighly ma nified >- 
 Fig. 212) : the apothecium the investment is somewhat saucer- 
 shaped, so that the hymenial layer is fully exposed (see Fig. 213). 
 
 The ascus is in all cases unicellular. It may be either spherical 
 (e.g. Eremascus, Eurotium), or oval, or club-shaped (e.g. Peziza) 
 in form. In some cases the ascospores are ejected with consider- 
 able force ; in others they are set free on the mucilaginous degene- 
 ration of the wall of the ascus. 
 
 The ascopores are formed by free cell-formation (see Fig. 80, p. 122) 
 from a portion only of the protoplasmic contents of the ascus, pre- 
 ceded by nuclear division. The unused portion of the protoplasm is 
 termed the epiplasm, and is rich in a carbohydrate called glycogen. 
 In nearly all cases eight ascospores are formed ; in some cases each 
 of the eight spore-rudiments undergoes division to form a com- 
 pound spore {e.g. Hysterium, Pleospora, etc.), the cells of which 
 may either separate or remain coherent. The form of the asco- 
 
300 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 spore is spherical, or oval, or rarely filamentous (e.g. Claviceps, 
 Fig. 212). The wall generally consists of exosporium and endo- 
 sporium : the protoplasm generally contains oil -drops. 
 
 The germinating ascospore usually gives rise directly to the game- 
 tophytic mycelium ; but in some forms (e.g. Polystigma) it gives 
 rise to a promycelium bearing small gonidia, termed sporidia, and it 
 is from the sporidium that the gametophytic mycelium is developed. 
 
 The Ascomycetes may be classified as follows : 
 
 Order I. Gymnoasceae : asci without any investment, or with only a rudi- 
 mentary investment, either solitary, or forming a hymenial layer. 
 
 The typical members of this group are Erem.ascus (Fig. 206), Gymnoascus, 
 and Exoascus parasitic on various trees. 
 
 It is now customary to place in this order the family of the SACCHAEOMYCETES, 
 or Yeast-Fungi, which is familiar on account of the alcoholic fermentation of 
 saccharine solutions which some of its members excite (e.g. Saccharomyces Cere- 
 visiae used in brewing, and S. ellipsoideus, which causes the fermentation of the 
 grape-juice in the manufacture of wine). The plant is usually a single small 
 spherical or oval nucleate cell, and multiplies rapidly by budding (Fig. 210). 
 When budding is proceeding very rapidly, the suc- 
 cessive cells may remain coherent for a time ; but a 
 true mycelium is only rarely found, as in S. Myco- 
 derma, which forms a scum on decomposing wine 
 and beer. 
 
 Under certain conditions, particularly the absence 
 of a sufficient supply of food, the plant forms spores. 
 FIG. 210. Growing cells Usually four spores are formed in a cell, by free 
 of Yeast (Saccharomyces cell-formation, from a portion of the protoplasm, the 
 CeremstoO ; the clear spaces ^ remaini &s & ; etal j of epipla8m . The 
 in the cells are vacuoles. & * 
 
 / x 300 j spores surround themselves with a membrane, and 
 
 are set free by the disorganisation of the wall of the 
 
 cell. The spores retain their vitality under conditions, such as desiccation, 
 absence of food, extremes of temperature, etc., which would prove fatal to the 
 Yeast-plants. The spores germinate, on attaining appropriate conditions of 
 moisture and temperature, and give rise to Yeast- cells by budding. 
 
 Inasmuch as the formation of the spores in a Yeast-cell takes place in the 
 same manner as the formation of spores in an ascus, the Yeast-cell may be re- 
 garded as an ascus. It is on this account that the Saccharomycetes are in- 
 cluded in the Ascomycetes, and in the Gymnoascese on account of their naked 
 asci. They are, however, reduced and sexually degenerate forms. 
 
 It must be borne in mind that cells very similar to those of the true Saccha- 
 romycetes, multiplying in the same manner, and often capable of exciting the 
 alcoholic fermentation of sugar, may be formed by gemmation from the gonidia 
 of various kinds of higher Fungi (e.g. Mucor racemosus, Penicillium glaucum, 
 some Entomophthoraceae, Ustilagineae, and Basidiomycetes) under special con- 
 ditions. These Yeast-like cells, however, grow into mycelia under appropriate 
 treatment. However, it is still a question whether all the forms of Saccharomy- 
 cetes may not be merely secondary gonidial forms or gemmae of mycelial Fungi. 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI : ASCOMYCETES. 
 
 301 
 
 Order II. Pyrenomycetes : asci forming a hymenial layer, with an invest- 
 ment ; the ascocarp is either a cleistothecium or a perithecium ; a stroma is 
 present in some families. 
 
 The ascocarp is a cleistothecium in the sub-order Perisporiaceae, including 
 the families Erysipheaa (the Mildews) and Perisporiese (e.g. Eurotium and 
 Penicillium) ; in these families there is no stroma. 
 
 In this order the Tuberaceae, Truffles, may be included (e.g. Tuber cestivum, 
 
 FIG. 211. ISurotium, repens. A A portion of the mycelium with a simple gonidiophore 
 (c) bearing gonidia ; the gonidia have already fallen off from the sterigmata (st) ; as, a 
 young ascogonium. B Ascogonium (as) with a pollinodium (p). C Another, with hyphae 
 growing up round it. I) A cleistothecium seen on the exterior. E F Sections of unripe 
 cleistothecia ; w the investment; / ascogenous hyphse arising from the ascogonium, 
 which subseqently bear the asci. G An ascus. H A ripe ascospore. (Magnified : after 
 Sachs.) 
 
 brumale, etc., Elaplwmyces granulatus) ; the only reproductive organs which they 
 are known to possess are the large cleistothecia which have a complex structure. 
 The ascocarp is a perithecium in the sub-orders Hypocreaceaa (e.g. Polystigma, 
 Melanospora, Nectria, Epichloe, Claviceps, Cordyceps), Sphaeriaceas (e.g. Chaeto- 
 mium, Sordaria, Xylaria, Hypoxylon, Pleospora, Spbserella), and Dothideaceae : 
 a stroma, which varies much in form, is frequently present. 
 
302 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Among the simple forms with free perithecia may be mentioned the genera 
 Chsetomium ; Sordaria ; Trichosphaeria ; Sphserella, many species of wLich 
 appear on dead leaves as black spots; Calosphaeria, which forms its long 
 slender perithecia in groups on the wood and bark of cherry-trees (C. Princeps) ; 
 Pleospora ; Massaria ; etc. 
 
 In the compound forms, those, that is, which have a stroma, the stroma 
 forms warty incrustations or patches of irregular outline, which have a punct- 
 ated appearance owing to the numerous openings of the perithecia : Diatrype 
 
 FIG. 212. Claviceps purpurea. A A sclerotium (c) bearing stromata (x 2). B Section 
 of a Btroma; cp the perithecia. C A perithecium more highly magnified. D An ascus 
 ruptured ; the elongated spores (sp) are escaping. (After Sachs.) 
 
 disciformis, which forms black warts as large as peas, belongs to this group, it 
 is very common on dead boughs ; also Nectria cinnabar ina, which has a bright 
 red stroma, and occurs on many kinds of dead wood ; Nectria ditissima causes 
 a disease on the branches of Beech-trees. In other cases the stroma developes 
 into an upright club-shaped or branched tufted body, like the stromata of 
 Xylaria, for instance, which occur very frequently on the trunks of trees ; of 
 Cordyceps, which grow from the bodies of insects ; of Claviceps, which spring 
 from the Ergot-sclerotium (see p. 295). In most forms, the stroma bears a 
 crop of gonidia before it developes the perithecia. 
 
 Order III. Discomycetes : the ascocarp is an apothecium of various form ; 
 a stroma sometimes present. 
 
 The order may be divided, according to the form of the apothecium, into the 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: ^CIDIOMYCETES. 303 
 
 two sub-orders Pezizaceae and Helvellaceee. In the former the apothecium is 
 cup-shaped, the hymenium covering the concave surface, and is closed in the 
 early stages of its development ; in the latter the apothecium is borne on the 
 convex, smooth or reticulate surface of an erect stroma. 
 
 The sub-order Pezizacese includes several families, the Phacidie, Pezizese, 
 Bulgarieas, etc. As representative may be mentioned Rhytisma Acerinum, the 
 mycelium of which infests the leaves 
 of the Maple, but the development 
 of the apothecium does not take 
 place until after the leaves have 
 fallen; and other similar forms 
 which inhabit the leaves of the 
 Silver Fir, Spruce, and other trees : 
 Ascobolus, which grows on dung : 
 the various species of Peziza, with 
 brightly coloured apothecia, growing 
 on rotting wood, etc.: Bulgaria, with Fm " 213. - Longitudinal section of the 
 . apothecium of Peziza convexula: ft the hy- 
 
 a gelatinous apothecium, growing on menilim . (After Sachs.) 
 dead branches of the Oak. 
 
 The sub-order Helvellacese includes the genera Morchella (the Morel], escu- 
 lent), Gyromitra, Helvella, etc. 
 
 Sub-Class Y. ^ECIDIOMYCETES. This sub-class includes a con- 
 siderable number of parasitic plants known as Rusts and Smuts. 
 They are characterised by their remarkably complex life-history, 
 due to the polymorphism of what represents the gametophyte, 
 which presents two or more gonidia-bearing forms : and by the fact 
 that neither gonidia nor spores are developed in the interior of a 
 sporangium or gonidangium, but are formed by abstrictioii. A 
 sporophyte is indicated in one order of the sub-class, but not in 
 the other, and this constitutes the essential difference between 
 them ; it is indicated by the fructification which is termed an 
 JEcidium. Whilst, as a matter of fact, it is not certainly known 
 that the plants in question have sexual organs, and that the 
 aecidium is the product of a sexual process, there are some grounds 
 for regarding the aacidium in this sub-class as thehomologue of the 
 ascocarp in the Ascomycetes, and for the view that, in both sub- 
 classes, the aecidium and the ascocarp respectively represent the 
 sporophyte (p. 279). 
 
 The sub-class is divisible into two orders : 
 
 Order 1. Uredineas : have an ascidium-form, as a rule. 
 
 Order 2. Ustilagineaa : never have an ascidium-form. 
 
 Order I. Uredineae. This order comprises those parasites which are 
 generally known as Kusts, on account of the rusty appearance which they give 
 
304 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 to their host-plants at a certain stage of their life-history, when they bear at the 
 surface a great number of orange-coloured gonidia. 
 
 The life-history of these plants presents, in many cases, a clear alternation 
 of generations, together with polymorphism of the gametophyte which has an 
 asexual form ; moreover the different forms of the gametophyte are sometimes 
 hetercecious, that is, they inhabit different hosts. 
 
 FIG. 214. Puccinia Graminis. I Transverse section of a leaf of Barberry, with aecidia 
 (a) ; p the wall of the secidium ; u lower, o upper surface of the leaf, which has become 
 thickened at u, y, in consequence of the presence of the parasite ; on the upper surface are 
 spermogonia (sp). A A young ajcidium which has not yet opened. II Sorus of teleuto- 
 gonidia (t) on the leaf of Triiicum repens ; e its epidermis. Ill Part of a sorus of uredo- 
 gonidia on the same plant; ur the uredogonidia; t a teleutogonidium. (After Sachs.) 
 
 Puccinia Graminis affords an example of the most complex life-history with 
 
 heteroecism. It inhabits Wheat, Eye, and other Grasses, and developes its 
 
 mycelium in the tissues of the young plants. During the summer it produces 
 
 , groups of simple gonidiophores, at the apex of each of which a single oval 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: ^CIDIOMYCETES. 
 
 305 
 
 gonidium, termed a uredogonidium, of an orange colour, is formed by abstriction 
 (Fig. 214, III) ; in consequence of the great development of cells at these points 
 the epidermis of the host is ruptured, and the groups of uredogonidia are visible 
 on the surface as rusty spots. These uredogonidia are scattered by the wind, and 
 infect other Grass-plants; on reaching a leaf, the uredogonidium germinates at 
 once, forming a hypha which enters through a stoma into the interior of the 
 leaf, where it developes into a mycelium bearing uredogonidia. This stage in 
 the life-history is termed the Uredo-form. 
 
 Later in the season, when the tissues of the hosts are becoming hard and 
 dry, the Uredo-form no longer produces uredogonidia, but dark-coloured often 
 compound gonidia, known as tcleu- 
 togonidia (Fig. 214, II), developed in 
 the same way as the uredogonidia. 
 The teleutogonidia remain quies- 
 cent during the winter. When 
 they germinate in the following 
 spring, one or both of the cells 
 gives rise to a small, free, non- 
 parasitic mycelium (promycelium), 
 from each of the cells of which a 
 delicate gonidiophore is produced, 
 which developes a small gonidium 
 (termed a sporidium) by abstriction 
 at its apex (Fig. 215). 
 
 The sporidia are scattered by the 
 wind, and if they fall on the leaves 
 of the Barberry they germinate, 
 giving rise to a hypha which 
 pierces the epidermis of the leaf, 
 and then forms a dense mycelium 
 in the intercellular spaces of the 
 mesophyll. At certain points the 
 tissue of the leaf is hypertrophied, 
 forming cushions, which project 
 on the under surface. Towards 
 the upper surface of the cushion 
 there are formed on the mycelium 
 small receptacles, the spermogonia 
 (Fig. 214 sp), each of which con- 
 tains a number of unseptate hyphte, radiating from the wall towards the centre, 
 which are termed sterigmata ; each of these produces at its apex by abstriction 
 a small cell, the spermatium, which escapes from the spermogonium ; spermo- 
 gonia are formed, though less frequently, on the under surface. Large spherical 
 structures are formed ou the under surface of the cushion (Fig. 214) ; these are 
 the aecidia. This form of the fungus is known as dEcidium Berberidis. Each 
 secidiuru consists of a hy menial layer of simple unseptate sporophores at its 
 base, from the apices of which a number of spores (cecidiospores) are formed by 
 successive abstriction ; the secidium has a definite wall which ruptures at the 
 
 a 
 
 A. 
 
 FIG. 215. Germination of teleutogonidia of 
 various Uredineae : A of Puccinia Gra minis ( x 
 400); B of Melampsora (x 300); C of Coleo- 
 sporium ( x 230) ; t teleutogonidium ; pm pro- 
 mycelium ; sp sporidia. 
 
 V. S. B. 
 
306 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 surface to set free the spores. The spores are conveyed by the wind to Grass- 
 plants, on the leaves of which they germinate, putting out hyphee which 
 penetrate into the interior through the stomata, giving rise to the mycelium 
 which bears the uredogonidia, and subsequently the teleutogonidia. 
 
 On the assumption (see p. 279) that the a3cidium, like the ascocarp of the 
 Ascomycetes, represents the sporophyte in the life-history of these plants, all 
 the other forms of the plant are stages in the life-history of the gametophyte, 
 namely the Uredo-form, the promycelium, the ^Ecidium-form. Of these, the 
 two former are altogether asexual ; the form bearing the ascidium, hy analogy 
 with the sexual Ascomycetes, represents the actual gametophyte ; but although 
 the sterigmata in the spermogonia may, by analogy with some of the Ascomy- 
 cetes, be regarded as male organs, and the spermatia as male cells, no female 
 organ, corresponding to the archicarp, has yet been discovered. 
 
 The following species have essentially the same life-history as that described 
 
 above, though the host-plants are 
 different in all cases ; the species 
 of Heteruromyces, such as Uro~ 
 wiyces Poce, U. Dactylidis, U. 
 June], U. Pisi, etc. ; the species 
 of Heteropuccinia, to which 
 group Puccitria Graminis belongs, 
 such as P. coronata, P. setsilis, 
 P. Enbigo-vera, P. Caricis, etc. ; 
 the species of Eucoleosporium, 
 such as Coleosporium Seuecionis ; 
 the species of Euchrysomyxa, 
 such as Chrysomyxa lihododen- 
 dri, C. Ledi. 
 
 The following are the more 
 important variations on the life- 
 history given above : 
 
 a. The Uredo-form is absent. 
 In the Endophylle the secidio- 
 spore gives rise, on germination, 
 to a promycelium, which pro- 
 duces sporidia (as described 
 above) ; the sporidium gives rise 
 to a mycelium bearing aecidia. 
 
 b. The Uredo-form only pro- 
 
 par 
 
 FIG. 210. Trnnsverse section of a "Willow-leaf 
 infested by Melampsora salicina : par mesophyll 
 of leaf; eo upper, eu lower epidermis. On the 
 under side a sorus of uredogonidia (st) with 
 paraphyses (p) has broken through the epi- 
 dermis; beneath the upper epidermis is a sorus 
 of young teleutogonidia (t). (x 260.) 
 
 duces teleutogonidia, otherwise the life-history is the same as that of Puccinia 
 Graminis (e.g. Gymnosporaugium). 
 
 c. The JEcidium-form is absent; the Uredo-form produces only teleutogonidia : 
 here the only forms are the Uredo-form bearing teleutogonidia, and the pro- 
 mycelium bearing sporidia, which give rif-e to the Uredo-form on germination 
 (e.g. species of Puccinia [Leptopuccinia] such as P. Malvacearum, P. Arenarice, 
 P. Circcece). 
 
 d. There are no distinct Uredo-forms and ^Ecidium- forms : the same mycelium 
 gives rise first to a3cidia and then to teleutogouidia (e.g. species of Uromy- 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI : ^CIDIOMYCETES. 
 
 307 
 
 copsis, such as Uromyces Behenis, U. Scrophularice ; species of Pucciniopsis, 
 such as Puccinia Bcrberidi*, P. Liliacearum, P. Tragopogi; species of Phrag- 
 midiopsis, such as Xenodochus carbonarius) . In some of the foregoing cases 
 the mycelium may bear a few uredogonidia ; in Phragmidium uredogonidia 
 are always formed. 
 
 It is not, however, always the case that when there are distinct Uredo- and 
 JEcidium-forms, these are heteroecious ; they frequently inhabit the same host- 
 plant, that is, they are autcecious (e.g. species of Auteu-uromyces, such as 
 Uromyces Fabcc, U. Orobi, U. Trifolii, etc. ; species of Auteupuccinia, such as 
 Puccinia Galii, P. Asparagi, P. Calthce, etc.) When there are not distinct 
 Uredo- and ^Ecidium-forms the fungus can only be autoecious. 
 
 The reproductive organs and cells, as described above, present certain variations 
 by which the different genera are distinguished. Thus, in Endophyllum, the 
 group (sorus) of teleutogouidia is invested by a definite wall ; in Gymnosporan- 
 gium and 
 Cronartium, 
 the teleuto- 
 g o n i d i o- 
 phores form 
 a projecting 
 column 
 which, in 
 Gymnospor- 
 angium, is 
 gelatinous. 
 In Coleo- 
 sporium tbe 
 promycel- 
 ium is uni- 
 cellular 
 (Fig. 215 C), 
 whereas in 
 all other 
 forms it is 
 multicellu- 
 lar; in this 
 
 genus also several uredogonidia are formed successively from the samo goni- 
 diophore. The primitive teleutogonidium undergoes no division, so that only 
 one is found on each gonidiophore, as in Uromyces ; or it divides transversely 
 once to form two gonidia, as in Puccinia ; or several times, to form a ro~/ of 
 gonidia, as in Phragmidium ; or obliquely, to form a group of three gonidia, 
 as in Triphragmium. The groups (sori) of uredogonidia are sometimes in- 
 vested by a wall, as in Cronartium. In Phragmidium the wall of the fficidium 
 differs from that of the other forms in that it does not consist of a definite 
 layer of cells, but is represented by a number of club-shaped unicellular hairs. 
 
 In most cases the teleutogonidium is a resting-gonidium ; but in some forms, 
 such as Leptouromyces (e.g. Uromyces pallidus, U. Ficarice, U. Croci, etc.), 
 Leptopuccinia (e.g. Puccinia Nalvacearum, P. Buxi, P. Circcece, etc.) Chryso- 
 
 FIG. 217. Chrysomyxa RJiododendri in a leaf of Rhododendron hirsutum: 
 vertical section of a sorus of teleutogonidia ; e epidermis of under surface 
 of the leaf; t terminal teleutogonidia beginning to germinate; to the left 
 a teleutogonidium has germinated, giving rise to apromycelium (pr) with 
 sporidium (sp) borne on a sterigma st. (x 140 : after de Bary.) 
 
308 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 myxa, the teleutogonidia germinate, producing sporidium-bearing promycelia, 
 as soon as they are ripe and before they have fallen off (Fig. 217). 
 
 In addition to the fructifications already described, there is a form, known 
 as Cceoma, about which there is some uncertainty as to whether it represents a 
 sorus of uredogonidia or an aecidium ; in some cases it appears certainly to be 
 the latter. 
 
 Besides the genera enumerated above, the life-history of which has been 
 more or less investigated, there are a number of Uredo- and ^cidium-forms, as 
 well as most Caeoma-forms, the connexion of which has not yet been ascer- 
 tained. These are, for the present, simply designated Uredo, .ZEcidium, CaBoma, 
 constituting temporary form-genera. 
 
 . The list on p. 309 illustrates the life-history and heteroecism of the principal 
 genera. 
 
 Order 2. Ustilagineae. This order comprises those parasites which are 
 known as Smuts. The life-history of most of the members of this order, is 
 
 briefly as follows. The plant produces 
 numerous thick-walled, often black (Smut) 
 resting-gonidia, the development of which 
 is usually intercalary (resembling that of 
 chlamydogonidia) on more or less special- 
 ised mycelial branches (gonidiophores). 
 On germination, the resting gonidium 
 forms a number of reproductive cells, 
 sporidia, of various form; the sporidia 
 are usually developed on a small pro- 
 mycelium, which may be either multi- 
 cellular (Fig. 218 A), or unicellular (Fig. 
 218 B) ; but in one genus, Protomyces, 
 they are developed inside the resting- 
 gonidium, which acts as a gonidangium, 
 the only instance of the kind in th* 
 JEcidiomycetes. In most forms these 
 sporidia then coalesce in pairs ; but in 
 any case they germinate, either producing 
 at once the mycelium which will bear the 
 resting-gonidia (e.g. Protomyces), or a 
 second promycelium bearing secondary 
 sporidia, from which the mycelium bearing resting-gonidia is developed (e.g. 
 Tilletia Caries). 
 
 In some species (e.g. Entyloma Ranunculi, Tuburcim'a Trientalls) the myce- 
 lium, before it produces the resting-gonidia, developes another kind of gonidia ; 
 these are small, thin-walled, somewhat spindle-shaped cells, developed by ab 
 Btriction from the ends of unbranched simple gonidiophores. 
 
 The sporidia, when cultivated in nutrient solutions, maybe made to multiply 
 actively by gemmation, producing a number of yeast-like cells. 
 
 With regard to the life-history of the order, it may be pointed out, in the first 
 place, that the resting-gonidia correspond to the teleutogonidia of the Uredineae ; 
 secondly, that the sporidia in the two orders correspond ; and lastly, that the 
 
 *r 
 
 FIG. 218. Germinating resting-goni- 
 dia : A of Ustilago receptaculorum ; B of 
 Tilletia Caries ( x 460) : sp the gonidium ; 
 pm the promycelium; d the sporidia: 
 in B the sporidia have coalesced in 
 pairs at v. 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: ^CIDIOMYCETES. 
 
 309 
 
 Barberry 
 Anchusa arv 
 Borages 
 
 II I I I I I I I I 
 
 ^ 
 
 'i t 
 
 I! 
 ii 
 
 a 
 
 5 
 
 
 S-o 
 fe 
 
 ,2 
 
 s - 
 
 8 "5 
 
 
 
 i i i 
 
 -2 . g 
 
 H 
 
 r 
 
 I 
 g 
 
310 PART 111. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 thin-walled gonidia of the Ustilagineee (when present) correspond to the tiredo- 
 gonidia of the Uredineae. The gametophyte of the Ustilagineae thus presents 
 very much the same polymorphism as that of the Uredineae ; but there is 
 nothing in the former order to correspond to the aecidium of the latter. 
 
 The affinities of the TJstilagineaa are of great interest. On the one hand they 
 are clearly allied, as shown in their life-history, to the Uredineae, and (as is 
 explained on p. 314) with the Basidiomycetes. On the other hand they are 
 allied to the Chytridiaceae, and less closely, to the Entomophthoracese. They 
 differ from the Chytridiaceas, however, in that their mycelium is septate, and 
 in that the gonidia are produced by abstriction, and are not motile. Proto- 
 myces, however, closely resembles some forms included in the ChytridiacesB 
 (Physoderma), in that it produces its sporidia in the interior of the resting- 
 gonidium, and in that the sporidia, like the gonidia of Physoderma, are non- 
 motile ; but Protomyces has a septate mycelium, whilst Physoderma has not. 
 
 The most important and the most common species are Ustilago Carlo, which 
 especially attacks Oats, but other Cereals and Grasses as well : U. Maidis, 
 which produces large tumours in the Maize, filled with resting-gonidia : 
 Urocystis occulta, which fructifies in the leaves and haulms of the Eye : Tilletia 
 Caries, the Smut of Wheat ; this is dangerous because the grains filled with 
 resting-gonidia remain closed, and are therefore harvested with the sound ones. 
 Many other species and genera infest wild plants. 
 
 Sub-Class VI. BASIDIOMYCETES. This sub-class includes 
 a large number of plants, both saprophytes and parasites, the 
 fructifications of which are well-known as Mushrooms, Toad- 
 stools, and Puff-Bails ; they are the most highly organised of the 
 Fungi. 
 
 The body is a branched septate mycelium, growing in the sub- 
 stratum, and bearing the reproductive organs which come to the 
 surface. 
 
 The reproductive organs are gonidiophores of two kinds, com- 
 pound and simple. Of these the compound gonidiophore is uni- 
 versal, and is characteristic of the sub-class ; it constitutes the 
 fructification commonly known as a Mushroom, a Toadstool, etc. 
 The structure of the compound gonidiophore may be illustrated by 
 reference to the common mushroom (Ayaricuscampestris). It con- 
 sists of a stalk, termed the stipe, bearing at its apex a large 
 circular, somewhat umbrella-shaped expansion, the pileus. On 
 the underside of the pileus are a number of radiating plates of 
 tissue, the lamellce (Fig. 219), covered with the gonidia- bearing 
 layer of cells, the hymenial layer or hymeniwn. The lamellae 
 collectively constitute the lymenophore. Towards the upper end 
 of the stipe is a ring of tissue, the annulus, the torn remains of a 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI : BASIDIOMYCETES. 
 
 311 
 
 membrane (the velum) which extended from the stipe to the mar- 
 gin of the pileus, enclosing the hymenial cavity (Fig. 222). 
 
 The stipe consists of a number of closely-packed branching 
 hyphee, which, at its apex, spreads out to form the tissue of the 
 pileus. In the pileus, the hyphee branch repeatedly, the hyphee 
 towards the lower 
 surface forming the 
 lamellae. Each la- 
 mella (Fig. 219 B) 
 consists of a mass of 
 hyphee, constituting 
 the trama ; as the 
 hyphse approach the 
 surface of the la- 
 mella, the cells be- 
 come shorter. The 
 last cells, before 
 reaching the hymen- 
 ial layer, are very 
 short, and constitute 
 a definite layer, 
 known as the sub- 
 hymenial layer (Fig. 
 219 B C //). The 
 terminal cells of the 
 by pi) tit constitute 
 the hymenial layer 
 (Fig. 219 B hy). 
 This consists of 
 somewhat elongated 
 club-shaped cells, 
 some of which bear 
 gonidia, and are 
 termed lasidia, 
 whilst the others 
 are sterile, and are 
 termed paraphyses 
 (Fig. 219 G q). 
 Each basidium de- 
 velopes at its apex four delicate outgrowths, the steriymata, and at 
 the apex of each sterigma a single small gonidium (C s ! s") is 
 
 FIG. 219. Ag&rlcus campes;ris. A Tangential section of 
 the pileus, showing the lamellae (1), of the hymenophore. 
 B A similar section of a lamella more highly magnified ; 
 liy the hymenium ; t the central tissue called the trama. 
 C A portion of the same section more highly magnified 
 ( x 550) : 3 young basidia and paraphyses ; s' the first 
 formation of gonidia on a basidium ; s" more advanced 
 stages; at s"" the gonidia have fallen off. (After Sachs.) 
 
312 PART III. - THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 formed. These gonidia are termed basidiogonidia, with reference 
 to their mode of origin. 
 
 The form of the compound gonidiophore, as also the relation of 
 its different parts, varies widely in the orders and families of 
 the sub-class. As the more minute peculiarities are described in 
 the acconnt of these groups, only the important diversities are 
 now mentioned. In the families Auric ularieae, Tremellineie, 
 Dacryomycetes, Clavariece, Thelephoreae, Hydneae, most Polyporeae, 
 and some Agaricinae, the hymenium is exposed from its first devel- 
 opment, and the gonidiophore is consequently said to be yymno- 
 carpous. In Polyporus volvattts, species of Boletus, and in some 
 Agaricinae (e.g. sub-genera Armillaria, Psalliota, of the genus Agar- 
 icus, etc.) the hymenium is covered for some time by a membrane, 
 termed a velum partiale, as described above (see Fig. 222) ; the 
 gonidiophore is then termed hemi-angiocarpous. Finally, the whole 
 gonidiophore may be surrounded by a membrane, which is dehiscent 
 or indehiscent, and is then said to be angiocarpous. This is due 
 to the fact that the gouidiophore is developed from the internal 
 portion of the primitive mass of hyphal tissue, the external por- 
 tion constituting the enveloping membrane. This arrangment 
 obtains in various genera of Agaricinae, such as Agaricus (sub- 
 genera Amanita, Fig. 222, Lepiota) and Coprinus, and generally in 
 the order Gasteromycetes. This membrane is termed, in the case 
 the Agaricinse, a velum universale ; in that of the Gasteromycetes, 
 a peridium. When it is dehiscent, and the 
 gonidiophore is stipitate, a portion of it re- 
 mains surrounding the base of the stipe as 
 a volva. 
 
 In species belonging to all the families 
 of Hymenomycetes, except Clavarieae and 
 Hydneae, and also in some other forms (e.g. 
 Nidularia pisiformis), certain large project- 
 ing sterile cells, termed cystidia (Fig. 223), 
 are formed in the hymenium, the function 
 of which is not fully understood. 
 
 Pie. 220.-Miticeiiuiar In the hi S her Basidiomycetes (Autobasi- 
 
 of Tremeiia .- diomycetes) the basidia are unicellular, but 
 
 * sterigma; sp basidio- i n t he lower forms (Protobasidiomycetes) 
 
 gonidia. (x 350.) . n v * 
 
 they are multicellular, either with trans- 
 
 verse septa (Pilacreae, Auricularieae), or with longitudinal septa 
 (Tremellineaa, Fig, 220). 
 
GROUP 1. THALLOPHTTA : FPNGI : BASIDIOMYCETES. 313 
 
 The number of gonidia borne by a unicellular basidium is usu- 
 ally four; but it maybe one (species of Hymenogaster), or two 
 (Calocera, Dacryomyces, species of Octaviana and Hymenogaster), 
 or 4-8 (Phalloideae). In the case of the multicellular basidium, 
 each cell bears one basidiogoriidium. 
 
 Simple gonidiophores have been discovered in several forms 
 (Pilacre Petersii, Auricularia sambucina and mesenterica, Exidia, 
 Ulocolla, Craterocolla, Sebacina, Tremella mesenterica and lutescens, 
 Tomentella, Exobasidium, Heterobasidium [Polyporus] annosnm 
 [Trametes radiciperda], Dacryomyces). In these forms the basidio- 
 gonidium gives rise, on germination, to a mycelium, sometimes 
 small and unbranched, which is either itself the simple gonidio- 
 phore, or bears simple gonidiophores, on which gonidia are formed 
 by abstraction. The same mycelium may subsequently bear the 
 compound gonidiophores ; or the gonidia-bearing form may repro- 
 duce itself through successive generations until at length, under 
 appropriate conditions, the form bearing the compound gonidio- 
 phores occurs. In the genus Craterocolla, the simple gonidio- 
 phores are collected into sori developed in special receptacles. 
 
 The gonidia of Tremella, cultivated in nutrient solution, mul- 
 tiply rapidly by budding, producing yeast-like cells, which have 
 not, however, the power of exciting alcoholic fermentation. 
 
 The formation of unicellular gemmse (see p. 274), is of common 
 occurrence in the Basidiomycetes; either in the form of chlamydo- 
 gonidia (e.g. Nyctalis, Oligoporus, Fistulina), or, more commonly 
 (e.g. Ulocolla, Dacri/omyces deliquescens, species of Coprinus, Cla- 
 varieoe, Lenzites, Pholiota, Collybia, Nyctalis, Phlebia, Polyporus, 
 Cyathus, etc.) in the form of oidium-cells. The chlamydogonidia 
 are especially developed in the basidial fructifications of the 
 plants in which they occur : the oidium-cells are generally de- 
 veloped from the vegetative mycelium, either the whole of it or 
 individual hyphse, forming sometimes a more or less definite fruc- 
 tification (Dacryomyces deliquescent). In some Agaricinaa (e.g. 
 Coprinus, Clavariece, Stropharia stercoraria, Psathyrella, etc.) 
 the oidium-cells appear to be incapable of germinating. 
 
 Sclerotia (see p. 275) are known in some cases. The mycelium 
 (e.g. Typhula variabilis, and com planata, Coprinus stercorarius, 
 Tulostoma) produces sclerotia as an antecedent to the formation 
 of the compound gonidiophores ; the sclerotia become quite free 
 from the mycelium, and may be kept for months without losing 
 their vitality. On germination each sclerotium gives rise to one 
 
314 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 or more compound gonidiophores. The most remarkable solerotia 
 are those of Agaricus melleus, a Fungus which is very destructive 
 to timber. The mycelium gives rise to dark-coloured compact 
 strands of hyphae, of the pseudo-parenchymatous structure char- 
 acteristic of sclerotia ; but they are peculiar in possessing con- 
 tinued apical growth, and by this means they soon become long 
 filaments, known as Rhizomorpha. It is in this way that the 
 Fungus spreads from tree to tree : the Rhizomorpha-fi laments 
 grow underground from the roots of an infected tree to those of 
 a healthy tree (usually a Conifer) ; it penetrates into them and 
 spreads in the tissues external to the wood in the form of a 
 white fan-shaped mycelium. The compound gonidiophores (Agar- 
 icus melleus) are borne either on the subterranean Rhizomorpha- 
 filaments, or on the parasitic mycelium ; in either case the goni- 
 diophores come to the surface. 
 
 The homologies of the reproductive organs of the Basidiomy- 
 cetes are not difficult to trace. The development of the basidio- 
 gonidia on the basidia, more especially in the Protobasidiomycetes, 
 recalls the germination of the teleutogonidia and resting-gonidia 
 of the Uredineas and Ustilagineae respectively ; of those Uredineae 
 in particular (Leptouromyces, Leptopuccinia) in which the teleu- 
 togonidia germinate without having fallen off the plant bearing 
 them (compare Fig. 217 with Fig. 220), the sterigmata being all 
 that remains of the promycelium. A mushroom is, then, a com- 
 pound gonidiophore producing basidia (or teleutogonidia) which 
 germinate, without falling off, and give rise to basidiogonidia 
 (or sporidia). The gonidia developed on the simple gonidiophores 
 (when present) of the Basidiomycetes may be compared with the 
 similar gonidia of the Ustilagineee, and with the uredogonidia of 
 the Uredineae. These homologies may be comprehensively indi- 
 cated in a tabular form : 
 
 Gametoptiyte. Sporophyte. 
 
 Uredineae. uredogonidium teleutogonidium sporidium tecidium with 
 
 Ustilagineae gonidium resting-gonidium sporidium [spores. 
 
 Basidiomycetes gonidium basidium basidiogonidium 
 
 It will be seen that in neither the Ustilagineae nor the Basidio- 
 mycetes is there any organ to correspond with the oecidium of the 
 Uredineae. 
 
 The foregoing table also indicates the nature of the life-history 
 of the Basidiomycetes. As in the Ustilagineae, so in the Basidio- 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: BASIDIOMi'CETES. 315 
 
 mycetes, the sporophyte is entirely unrepresented in consequence 
 of the complete disappearance not only of the sexual organs of 
 the gametophyte, but of any representative of the product of a 
 sexual process. The various forms occurring in the life-history 
 of any Basidiomycete belong to the gametophyte; these forms 
 are, however, less distinct from each other than are the corre- 
 sponding forms of the ^Ecidiomycetes, so that the life-history is 
 here more concise. 
 
 The Basidiomycetes are classified as follows: 
 
 Series I. PKOTOBASIDIOMYCETES : basidia multicellular, four-celled, each cell 
 bearing a gonidium ; simple gonidiophores generally present. 
 
 Fam. 1. Pilacrea. The septa in the basidia are transverse ; the compound 
 gonidiophore is differentiated into stipe and pileus, and is angiocarpous, the 
 hymenium, which is on the upper surface of the pileus, being covered by a 
 membrane (velum) which eventually decays ; each cell of the basidium pro- 
 duces a single gonidium. 
 
 The family includes the genus Pilacre, with the two species P. faginea (on 
 Beech), and P. Petersii (on Hornbeam). 
 
 Fam. 2. Auricular iea. The septa in the basidia are transverse ; the com- 
 pound gonidiophore, not differentiated into stipe and pileus, is gymnocarpous ; 
 the hymenium is irregularly folded and is gelatinous when wet ; each cell of 
 the basidium bears a single gonidium on a sterigma. 
 
 The family includes the genus Auricularia, growing on the stems of trees. 
 
 Fam. 3. Tremellinea. The septa in the basidia are longitudinal ; the com- 
 pound gonidiophore, not differentiated into stipe and pileus, is gymnocarpous ; 
 the hymenium is irregularly folded and generally gelatinous ; each cell of the 
 basidium bears a gonidium on a terminal sterigma (Fig. 220). 
 
 The family includes the genera Exidia, Tremella, Craterocolla, Sebacina, 
 and Gyrocephalns, growing on decaying wood, tree-trunks, etc. 
 
 Series II. AUTOBASIDIOMYCETES. Basidia unicellular ; simple gonidiophores 
 in some forms. 
 
 Order 1. Hymenomycetes. Compound gonidiophore gymnocarpous, or 
 hemi-angiocarpous, or rarely angiocarpous ; in any case the hymenium is ex- 
 posed before the maturity of the basidiogonidia ; each basidium bears 2-6 
 (usually 4) apical sterigmata each of which bears a gonidium. 
 
 Fam. 1. Dacryomycetes. Basidia elongated, with two sterigmata ; compound 
 gonidiophores sometimes gelatinous, gymnocarpous, presenting in some forms 
 (e.g. Dacryomitra) rudimentary differentiation into stipe and pileus, sometimes 
 branched (e.g. Calocera). 
 
 The family includes the genera Dacryomyces, Guepinia (with a cup-like 
 gonidiophore resembling the apothecium of Peziza), Dacryomitra, and Calocera 
 the gonidiophore of which resembles that of the ClavarieaB. 
 
 Fam. 2. Clavariece. The compound gonidiopbore is fleshy and gymnocarpous, 
 either uubranched (e.g. Pistillaria), or branched, cylindrical (e.g. Clavaria, Fig. 
 221), or flattened and expanded (e.g. Sparassis), not differentiated into stipe 
 and pileus ; the hymenium covers the whole surface of the gonidiophore, or is 
 
316 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 limited to the upper part (e.g. Typhula) ; the basidium has sometimes only 
 two sterigmata (e.g. Pistillaria, Typhula). 
 
 Fara. 3. Thelephorete. In the lowest forms there is no compound gonidiophore 
 but merely a hymenial layer (e.g. Exobasidium) ; in others the gonidiophore is 
 gymnocarpous, forming an incrustation on the substratum, and bearing the 
 hymenium on its upper surface (e.g. Coniophora, Hypochnus, Corticium) ; in the 
 high forms (e.g. Thelephora, Stereum, Cyphella, Craterellus), the gonidiophore, 
 of various form, branched or unbranched, bears the hymenial layer on its 
 under surface ; the hymenophore is smooth, with projections or pits. 
 
 Fam. 4. Hydnece. In the lower forms the compound gonidiophore forms an 
 incrustation on the substratum, with the hymenium on the upper surface (e.g. 
 Odontia, Grandinia) ; in the higher forms (e.g. Sistotrema, species of Hydnum) ; 
 the hymenium is borne on the under surface of the gonidiophore, which is, in 
 
 Fro. 221. A Part of compound gonidiopbore of Clavaria flava (nat. size). B Compound 
 gonidiophore of Hydnum imbricatum : st the spiny projections of the hymenophore; s 
 scales on upper surface of pileus (\ nat. size). C Longitudinal section of the compound 
 gonidiophore of a Polyporus: p tubes of the hymenophore, lined by the hymenium, 
 appearing on the under surface as pores. 
 
 some cases, differentiated into stipe and pileus ; in all cases the hymenophore 
 bears a number of spinous projections over which the hymenium extends (Fig. 
 221 B), and is gymnocarpous. 
 
 Fam. 5. Polyporece. The compound gonidiophore may be a flattened expan- 
 sion with the hymenium on the upper surface (e.g. Porothelium) ; or semi- 
 circular, and attached laterally, with the hymenium on the under surface (e.g. 
 Merulius, Daedalea, species of Polyporus, Fig. 221 C) ; or differentiated into 
 stipe and pileus with the hymenium on the under surface (e.g. Boletus) ; the 
 bymenophore is indented with pits or tubes, which are lined by the hymenium. 
 The gonidiophore is generally gymnocarpous, but there is a velum partiale in 
 some forms (e.g. Boletus versipellis, viscidua, Jloccopus, Polyporus volvatus). 
 The Dry Eot of timber is caused by members of this family. 
 
 Fam. 6. Agaricince. The compound gonidiophore is a pileus, with or without 
 
GROUP 1. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: BASIDIOMYCETES. 
 
 317 
 
 a stipe ; it bears on its under surface (rarely on its upper surface) a lamellate! 
 hymenophore (see Fig. 219) ; the gonidiophore may be gymnocarpous ; or 
 hemiangiocarpous having a velum partiale (e.g. Cortinarius where the velum 
 is like a spider's web ; the sub-genus Psalliota of the genus Agaricus, including 
 A. campestris, the common Mushroom, etc.) ; or angiocarpous, having a velum 
 universale (e.g. the sub-genera Volvaria, Lepiota, and Amanita of the genus 
 Agnricus; Nyctalis, Coprinus, etc.) ; in some species of Amanita there is both 
 a velum universale and a velum partiale. 
 
 The great genus Agaricus is subdivided into a number of sub-genera belong- 
 ing to various groups distinguished by the colour of their basidiogonidia. 
 Amongst the other genera Coprinus has a gonidiophore which very soon under- 
 goes disintegration, forming a black shiny fluid; Lactarius contains milky 
 juice (latex). In Cantharellus the lamellae are prolonged down the stipe. Of 
 edible species the fol- 
 lowing may be' named : # .. _^. /> 
 
 , . ,, ., -& jiliiSm^ Z //.. iOi2,'5>V> L> 
 
 Cantharellus cibanus, 
 
 Lactarius deliciosus, 
 Agaricus campestris, the 
 Mushroom, A. procerus 
 distinguished by a mov- 
 able ring, and A. ccesa- 
 reus : the poisonous 
 species are Lactarius 
 torminosus and Agaricus 
 (Amanita) muscarius. 
 
 Whilst the compound 
 gonidiophore is generally 
 fleshy, in some genera it 
 is of a hard or leathery 
 cousisterice; these live 
 commonly on old wood ; 
 such are Panus, with a 
 small pileus mounted on 
 an eccentric stipe ; Len- 
 zites, where the pileus 
 is lateral and sessile ; 
 Marasmius, the elegant 
 
 FIG. 222. A Section of young compound gonidiophore of 
 Agaricus (Amanita) vaginatus : v the velum universale ; 
 st the stipe ; h the pileus ; I the lamella : B the same 
 somewhat older; the velum v is ruptured. C Agaricus 
 melleus : m the mycelium (Ehizomorpha) ; in the smaller 
 specimen to the right the hymenophore is still covered 
 by the velum partiale a ; in the larger specimen the velum 
 is almost completely ruptured, and remains attached to the 
 stipe as the ring, a. ($ nat. size.) 
 
 pilei of which are often seen on the leaves of Conifers which have fallen off. 
 
 Order 2. Gasteromycetes. Angiocarpous ; the hymenium is either not ex- 
 posed at all, or only after the basidiogonidia are mature, by the debiscence or 
 rupture of the peridium. The number of gonidia borne by a basidium varies 
 from 1-8 ; the sterigmata are apical, except in the genus Tulostoma, where they 
 are lateral. The hymenophore is here a more or less distinct organ, and is 
 termed the gleba. 
 
 Fam. 1. Hymenogastrece. The compound gonidiophore is subterranean. It 
 consists of a thick indehiscent peridium, filled with a spongy persistent gleba, 
 the chambers of which are lined by the hymenium (Fig. 224 A). 
 
 Principal genera : Hymenogaster, Octaviana, Bhizopogon, Melanogaster, 
 Hysterangium, Hydnangium. 
 
318 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Fam. 2. Sclerodermece. The structure of the compound gonidiophore is 
 essentially the same as that of the preceding family, but it is not subter- 
 ranean. 
 
 Principal genera : 
 Scleroderma, Polysac- 
 cum. 
 
 Fam. 3. Nidulariea. 
 The peridium is dehis- 
 cent at the apex. The 
 tramal tissue of the gleba 
 undergoes mucilaginous 
 degeneration and dis- 
 appears, leaving the by- 
 menium-bearing cham- 
 bers as closed indehis- 
 cent vesicles (peridiolu), 
 either lying free (Nidu- 
 laria) in the vase -shaped 
 peridium, or loosely 
 attached to its inner 
 
 surface by strands ( fnni- 
 
 FIG. 22.?. Part of the hymenium of Uufsula rulra : sh sub- . .. .. , . lf . ' 
 
 hymenial layer ; b basidium ; , sterigma ; sp basidiogonidia ; Cul ^ f b ?P h8B (Stilus, 
 p parapbyses ; c a cystidium. ( x 540 : after Strasburger.) Crucibulum, Fig. 224 
 
 CD). 
 
 Fam. 4. Lycoperdea. The peridium is generally dehiscent, differentiated 
 into two or more layers, constituting two distinct membranes the exoperidium 
 and the endoperidium . The tissue of the gleba constitutes, at the maturity of 
 the spores, a powdery mass, including, in most genera (except Calostoma, 
 Sphaerobolus) hyphal nlaments forming a capillitum (Fig. 224 B). 
 
 The mode of dehiscence presents variations in the different genera. Thus 
 in Bovista and 
 
 /| 
 
 Lycoperdon (Puff- 
 Balls) the exoperi- 
 dium becomes dry 
 and breaks up into 
 fragments, whilst 
 the endoperidium 
 dehisces forming a 
 small apical aper- 
 ture through which 
 the basidiogonidia 
 escape. 
 
 In Geaster (Star 
 Puff-Bail) the ex- 
 operidium splits at 
 the apex into several 
 pointed segments 
 which bend con- 
 
 Fia. 224.^! Compound gonidiophore of Rhizopogon in section 
 (nat. size): fc the hymenial chambers. i>' Capillitial filament of 
 Lycoperdon (much, mag.). C and D Compound gonidiophore of 
 Cyathus striatus Cnat. size): C entire, showing the isolated hy- 
 menial chambers (peridiola) : D in longitudinal section ; p peri- 
 diolum ; 7i hymenium ; / f uniculus, attaching the peridiolum to 
 the peridium. 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI : BASIDIOMYCETES. 
 
 319 
 
 vexly outwards, bearing the endoperidium centrally, either with or without a 
 stalk, on the convex surface ; the endoperidium, which encloses the gleba, 
 dehisces with a small apical aperture. 
 
 In Tulostoma and Battarea the tissue within the peridium undergoes differ- 
 entiation into a gleba and a stipe. When the spores are mature, the stipe 
 elongates, rupturing the exoperidium, and carries up the gleba, enclosed in the 
 endoperidium, at its apex with a portion of the exoperidium ; the rest of the 
 exoperidium remains as a volva round the base of the stipe. In Tulostoma the 
 eudoperidium dehisces at the apex forming a small aperture ; in Battarea the 
 endoperidium covering the under surface of the discoid gleba decays. 
 
 Fam. 5. Phalloideae. The peridium is dehiscent, and the gleba becomes 
 mucilaginous. 
 
 In the genus Ithyphallus (e.g. Phallus impudicm) the peridium consists of 
 three layers, of which the innermost and outermost are thin and firm, whilst 
 the intermediate layer is bulky and 
 mucilaginous. The internal tissue 
 is differentiated into a gleba and a 
 stipe. When the basidiogonidia 
 are mature, the stipe elongates 
 suddenly, ruptures the peridium at 
 the apex, and carries up the gleba, 
 which is now mucilaginous. The 
 elongated stipe is hollow and per- 
 forated at the apex ; the upper 
 portion of the stipe bears a thick 
 membrane attached at the apex, 
 with a reticulated surface, the re- 
 mains of the gleba. The ruptured 
 peridium remains as a volva round 
 the base of the stipe. 
 
 In the genus Clathrus the peri- 
 dium is differentiated, as in Ithy- 
 phallus, into three layers, the 
 mucilaginous intermediate layer 
 being traversed by anastomosing 
 plates of tissue, which connect the 
 internal and external layers. From the internal layer of the peridium a capil- 
 litium is formed (something like that of some of the Myxomycetes, but much 
 stouter, see Fig. 198), which surrounds the central gleba. The gleba is con- 
 nected with the base of the peridium by a mass of cartilaginous tissue. Before 
 expansion the whole gonidiophore has a somewhat spherical form. When the 
 spores are mature, the capillitiurn expands, rupturing the peridium at the apex, 
 and lifts the gleba in its interior out of the peridium, which remains round the 
 base as a volva. The gleba undergoes mucilaginous degeneration. 
 
 Subsidiary Group. LICHENES. A Lichen consists of a Fungus and an Alga, 
 or more than one, living in intimate connexion, and both contributing to their 
 mutual welfare that is, symbiotically (see p. 273). 
 
 The Lichen-Fungus has always a mycelioid body, and is the constituent of 
 
 FIG. 225. Section of compound gonidiophore 
 of Phallus impudicus : st stipe ; end endoperi- 
 dium ; ex exoperidium ; in intermediate muci- 
 laginous layer ; g gleba. (Reduced : after 
 Sachs.) 
 
320 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the Lichen which bears the reproductive organs. From the nature of these 
 organs the Lichen-Fungi have been found to belong chiefly to the discomyce- 
 tous and pyrenornycetous Ascomycetes, but a few are basidiomycetous, belong- 
 ing to the orders Hymenomycetes and Gasteromycetes. The Lichens may be 
 
 classified as follows, according 
 to the nature of the Fungus. 
 
 I. Ascolichenes (Ascomycer 
 tous Lichens). 
 
 1. Discolichenes (Discomy- 
 
 cetous Lichens), e.g. 
 Parmelia, Collema, 
 Usnea, Peltigera, 
 Sticta, Cladonia, etc., 
 Lecidea, Graphis. 
 
 2. Pyreuolichenes (Pyre- 
 
 nomycetousLichens), 
 e.g. Pertusaha, Ephe- 
 be, Lichina, Verru- 
 caria, Endocarpon, 
 etc. 
 
 II. Basidiolichenes (Basidio- 
 mycetous Lichens). 
 Lichens), Cora, Dictyonema, 
 
 FIG. 226. Section of a spermogonium of Ana* 
 ptychia ciliaris : sp the aperture at the surface ; 
 c cortex, and m medullary portion, of the thallus ; 
 g layer of algal cells. (After Strasburger.) 
 
 1. Hymenolichenes (Hymenomycetous 
 
 Ehipidonema, Laudatea. 
 
 2. Gasterolichenes (Gasteromycetous Lichens), Emericella. 
 
 The reproductive organs of the Ascolichenes are sterigmata, producing 
 spermatia, contained in spermogonia (Fig. 226) ; archicarps (in the order 
 Collemaceae), differentiated into a coiled ascogonium and a multicellular pro- 
 jecting trichogyne ; and ascocarps, which are either apothecia (discomyce- 
 
 tous) or perithecia (pyrenomy- 
 cetous) ; the archicarp, appar- 
 
 ently after fertilisation (see p . 
 
 298), gives rise to filaments 
 which form the hymenial layer 
 (consisting of asci and para- 
 physes) of the apothecium, and 
 outgrowths from the adjacent 
 vegetative hyphae form the wall 
 (excipulum] of the apothecium. 
 In the fructification of the 
 Basidiolichenes there is a hy- 
 menial layer consisting of para- 
 physes and basidia, the latter 
 bearing apical sterigmata, on 
 each of which a basidiogoni- 
 dium is produced by terminal 
 
 FIG. 227. A-D Soredia of Usnea barlata. A A 
 simple soredium, consisting of an algal cell covered 
 with a web of hyphae. B A soredium, in which the 
 algal cell has multiplied by division. C A group 
 of simple soredia, resulting from the penetration of 
 the hyphse between the algal cells. D K Germin- 
 ating soredia : the hyphae are forming a growing- 
 
 point, and the algal cells are multiplying. 
 Sachs.) 
 
 (Alter 
 
 abstriction. 
 Lichens are also reproduced 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA: FUNGI: LICHENS, 321 
 
 by gemmae, termed soredia, which consist of one or more algal cells invested 
 by hyphas ; they are budded off from the surface of the thallus, and grow into 
 new plants (Fig. 227). 
 
 The Lichen-Algae belong either to the Gyanophyceae or to the Chlorophyceae. 
 In the following list the principal algal forms with their corresponding Lichens 
 are enumerated. 
 
 A. Cyanophyceas. 
 
 Scytonemaceoe (Scytonema, Sirosiphon) . Ephebe, Spilonema, Polychidium, 
 
 Ehipidonema, Dictyonema, 
 Heppia, Porocyphus. 
 
 Eivulariaceaa .......... Lichina, Eacoblenna. 
 
 Nostocaceae Collema, Lempholemma, Lepto- 
 
 gium, Peltigera, Pannaria. 
 
 Chroococcacete Omphalaria, Euchylium, Phyllis- 
 
 cium, Cora. 
 
 B. Chlorophyceae. 
 
 Protococcacese (Pleurococcus, Cystococcus, 
 
 etc.) Sticta, Physcia, Evernia, Cla- 
 
 donia, Usnea, Parmelia, An- 
 aptychia, Endocarpon, etc. 
 
 Confervoideas (Trentepohlia) ..... Graphideaa, Verrucarieae. 
 
 ColeochaBtaceae Opegrapha. 
 
 The algal cells or filaments may be distributed throughout the thallus, when 
 it is said to be homoiomerous (Fig. 208); this is usually the case in gelatinous 
 Lichens (such as the Collemaceae), in which the Alga belongs to the Cyauophyceae, 
 but also in some non-gelatinous forms in which the Alga belongs to the Chloro- 
 phyceae (such as Ccenogonium, Eacodium, and others, in which the Alga is 
 Trentepohlia) : or they may be arranged in a 
 definite layer near the surface of the thallus, 
 when it is said to be heteromerous (Fig. 229), 
 as in the case of nearly all these Lichens of 
 which the Algae belong to the Chlorophyceaa, 
 and some in which the Algae belong to the 
 Cyanophyceae (e.g. Peltigera, Pannaria). In 
 some heteromerous forms (e.g. Thelidium), 
 the Algae are quite on the surface. Occasion- 
 ally (e.g. Endocarpon) algal cells are present FIG. 228. A gelatinous Lichen, 
 in the hymenium Collema pulposum, slightly magni- 
 
 It may be genera,* stated that the fonn 
 of the thallus is determined in the homoio- 
 merous Lichens by the Alga, in the heteromerous Lichens by the Fungus. In 
 the latter case three main forms are distinguished : 
 
 (a) fruticose Lichens, in which the thallus grows erect, branching in a shrub- 
 like manner. Of this form are the various species of Usnea (Fig. 230 A], and 
 allied genera with a cylindrical thallus, which grow on trees : Roccella tine- 
 toria grows on rocks in regions bordering on the Mediterranean ; from it and 
 
 V. s. B. Y 
 
322 
 
 PART 1IT. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 other allied Lichens litmus is prepared : Eamalina and Evernia, with a ribbon 
 shaped flattened thallus, occur on trees and wooden fences : Cetraria islandica 
 is the Iceland Moss, which forms a mucilaginous fluid when boiled with water : 
 Anaptychia ciliaris, which resembles the foliaceous Lichens, with a flattened 
 thallus, is common on the trunks of trees : Cladonia has a scaly decumbent 
 thallus, from which erect branches spring bearing the apothecia; Cladonia 
 fimbriata is common; Cladonia rangiferina, the Eeindeer Moss, occurs on 
 moors : Sphasrophorus has the same external appearance, but it is pyreno- 
 carpous. 
 
 (b) foliaceous Lichens, in which the thallus is flattened and adheres to the 
 substratum : the green (rarely bluish-green) algal cells form a single layer 
 beneath the upper surface (Fig. 229). The margin of the thallus is usually 
 lobed. 
 
 Parmelia parietina occurs, with its bright yellow thallus bearing apothecia, 
 
 , . , on tree-trunks and walls, to- 
 gether with other species of 
 a grey colour ; Sticta pulmon- 
 acea (Fig. 230 B) has a reti- 
 culated yellowish thallus, and 
 grows on tree-trunks : Pelti- 
 gera is represented by several 
 species which grow on mossy 
 banks in woods; the apothecia 
 are borne on the margin of 
 the lobes of the thallus : Um- 
 bilicaria and Gyrophora, of a 
 dark colour, grow on silicious 
 rocks : Endocarpon has a 
 grey thallus with numerous 
 small peri thecia, which appear 
 as black dots ; it grows on 
 rocks. 
 
 (c) crustaceans Lichens, in 
 which the thallus is usually 
 indefinite in outline, and can 
 of ten be scarcely distinguished 
 from the substratum, the 
 fructification alone being con- 
 spicuous. 
 
 The Lichens of this form 
 are extremely numerous. 
 Among them may be men- 
 tioned the Lecanorese, of 
 which Lecanora subfusca occurs on the trunks of trees : the Lecideace, which 
 occur mainly on earth and rocks, Lecidea geographica, forming bright yellow 
 incrustations of considerable extent on silicious rocks : the Graphidese, of which 
 Graphis scripta is common on the trunks of Beeches and other trees : the 
 small Calicieas, which are common on wooden fences : the Bseomycere, of which 
 
 FIG. 229. Transverse section of the heteromerous 
 thallus of Sticta fuliginosa (x 600). o Cortex of the 
 upper surface ; u under surface ; m network of 
 hyphae forming the medullary layer; g algal cells; 
 v root-like outgrowths (rhizines) of the under surface. 
 (After Sachs.) 
 
GROUP I. THALLOPHYTA : FUNGI: LICHENS. 
 
 323 
 
 Fis. 210. .A A fruticose Lichen, TTsnea barlata, with apothecia, o. 
 Lichen, Stictj. pulmonacea, with apotheoia, a (nat. size). (After Sachs.) 
 
 B A foliaceous 
 
 Bccomyces rufits is common on 
 sandy soil : the Verrucariese, the 
 Pertusarieae, etc. 
 
 Many species of crustaceons 
 Lichens inhabit the highest 
 peaks of the Alps, and other 
 lofty mountains, on which there 
 is no other vegetation, and they 
 contribute materially to the wea- 
 thering of the rocks and to tlie 
 formation of a vegetable soil. 
 When they grow on the trunks of 
 trees, they occur more especially 
 upon those which have a smooth 
 surface ; the formation of a rough 
 bark seems to interfere with their 
 growth. Lichens may become 
 completely dried up without los- 
 ing their vitality. 
 
 FIG. 231. Crustaceous Lichens. A and B 
 Graphis elegans: B slightly magnified. C Per- 
 tusaria Wulfeni, slightly magnified. (After 
 Sachs.) 
 
324 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 GROUP II. 
 
 BEYOPHYTA (Muscineoe). 
 
 The plants forming this group, that is the Liverworts (Hepa- 
 ticc) and the Mosses (Musci), are characterised by the following 
 distinctive features. Their life-history presents a regular and well- 
 marked alternation of generations : the gametophy te is the more 
 conspicuous form, constituting " the plant," and does not possess 
 the power of reproducing itself asexually by gonidia, which is so 
 common among the Thallophyta : the sporophyte is a sporogonium, 
 presenting indications of differentiation into root and shoot, but 
 not of the shoot into stem and leaves ; it never becomes an inde- 
 pendent individual, but remains attached to the gametophyte, 
 from which it derives much of its nutriment. In some of the 
 Mosses there is an indication, in both the sporophyte and the 
 gametophyte, of a differentiation of vascular tissue. 
 
 The GAMETOPHYTE is heteroblastic (see p. 14) in its development. 
 The germinating spore does not at once give rise to what is known 
 as the " Moss-plant," but produces an embryonic body, the proto- 
 nema, which consists generally of a branched filament, but occasion- 
 ally of a flat layer, of cells which contain numerous chloroplastids. 
 The protonema is generally inconspicuous and short-lived in the 
 Hepaticse, whilst in the Musci it is more amply developed and may, 
 either wholly or in part, persist from year to year. 
 
 The "Moss-plant " is the adult sexual form. It does not possess 
 any true roots, but is attached to the soil either by unicellular 
 root-hairs (Hepatic^), or by rnulticellular protonematoid filaments 
 termed rhizoids (Musci). The body of the *" Moss-plant " is essen- 
 tially a shoot, which is highly developed and specialised in con- 
 nexion with the functions which it performs the development of 
 the sexual reproductive organs and, in the case of the shoots 
 bearing female reproductive organs, the nourishment of the at- 
 tached sporophyte developed in consequence of fertilisation. The 
 adult shoot arises as a lateral (rarely terminal) bud on the proto- 
 nema : the protonema may give rise to a single shoot (Hepaticoe) 
 or to several (generally in Musci). In the latter cases, the adult 
 shoots may become distinct " plants " by the complete or partial 
 dying away of the protonema. The symmetry of the shoot is, 
 almost uniformly, dorsiventral in the Hepaticas and radial in the 
 Musci. It is either thalloid, as in most Hepaticse; or it is 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA. 
 
 325 
 
 differentiated into stem and leaf, as in the higher Hepaticae 
 (foliose Jungermanniaceae) and in the Musci. 
 
 The sexual organs are borne on the adult shoot, and are an- 
 theridia and archegonia. They are rarely borne singly or scat- 
 tered, but more commonly in groups (sori) surrounded by some 
 kind of protective investment to which the general term involucre 
 may be applied. In some cases the portion of the shoot which 
 immediately bears the sexual organs is more or less specialised as 
 a receptacle, and in others special reproductive branches, cjameto- 
 phores, are differentiated, and may be either antheridiophores or 
 archegoniophores. In the lower Hepaticae the sexual organs are 
 generally borne on the upper (dorsal) surface of the shoot, whilst 
 
 FIG. 232. Funaria hygromctnc.a (Moss). A Germinating spores : rhizoid ; s exospore. 
 B Part of a protonema, about three weeks after the germination of the spore : h a pro- 
 cumbent primary ehoot with brown wall and oblique septa, out of which arise the 
 ascending branches with limited growth : K rudiment of a leaf-bearing axis with rhizoid 
 (w). (A x 550 : B about 90.) 
 
 in the higher Hepaticae (Jungermanniaceae acrogynae) and in the 
 Mosses they are borne at the apex. 
 
 The distribution of the sexual organs is various : the male and 
 female organs may be borne on distinct shoots, when they are 
 dioecious ; or on different branches of the same shoot, when they 
 are monoecious but diclinous ; or together in the same sorus, when 
 they are monoclinous. In Mosses it appears to be the rule, in 
 dioecious forms, that a protonema always bears both male and 
 female shoots. 
 
326 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 A 
 
 Fie. 233. Fnnaria hygromet- 
 rica (Moss). A An antheridium 
 bursting : a the ppermatozoids 
 (x 350). B Spernnatozoids 
 ( x 800) ; b in the mother-cell ; 
 c free spermatozoid of Poly- 
 trichum. 
 
 FIG. 234. A Antheridinm of Marchantia polymorplia (Liver- 
 wort) in optical longitudinal section: p paraphyses (x 90). 
 B Spermatozoid s ( x 600) : (after Strasburger). 
 
 The sexual organs are always multi- 
 cellular. The antheridium (Figs. 233, 
 234) is a capsule of various shape, hav- 
 ing a longer or shorter stalk ; its wall 
 consists of a single layer of cells which 
 contain chloroplastids when young ; in- 
 ternally it consists of very numerous 
 small cells, each of which, eventually 
 gives rise to a single spermatozoid. 
 
 The spermatozoid is a cell, consisting of 
 a naked filament of protoplasm, spirally 
 twisted, thickened at the posterior end 
 where lies the nucleus, tapering at the 
 anterior end where it terminates in two 
 long cilia by means of which it swims 
 (seep. 116); the spermatozoids are set 
 free by the rupture of the antheridial 
 wall, which usually takes place at the 
 apex of the antheridium. 
 
 The archegonium is flask-shaped and 
 shortly stalked (Figs. 235, 236) ; it con- 
 sists of a slightly dilated basal portion, 
 the venter, and of a long slender neck. 
 The axis of the archegonium, when 
 young, is occupied by a central row of 
 cells ; the basal cell of this row, lying in 
 the venter, is the 
 central cell of the 
 archegonium ; it 
 grows consider- 
 ably, and event- 
 ually divides into 
 two unequal parts, 
 an upper and 
 smaller, the ventral 
 canal- cell, and a 
 lower and larger 
 which is the female 
 reproductive cell 
 or oosphere: the 
 upper cells of the 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA. 
 
 327 
 
 central row constitute the neck- canal-cells. At maturity the ter- 
 minal cells, lid-cells, of the neck separate; the neck-canal-cells 
 and the ventral canal-cell become mucilaginous and disorganised, 
 so that the oosphere is placed in communication with the exterior 
 by the canal of the neck. Fertilisation takes place when the 
 plants are more or less covered with water from rain or dew. 
 Then the antheridia dehisce, the spermatozoids are set free, and, 
 since the male and female organs are at no great distance, they, 
 swimming by 
 means of their 
 cilia, come into 
 the neighbour- 
 hood of the arche- 
 gonia ; they are 
 attracted to enter 
 the necks of 
 archegonia by 
 the escaping mu- 
 cilage formed by 
 the disorganisa- 
 tion of the canal- 
 cells, which con- 
 tains an organic 
 acid which has 
 been shown to be 
 especially attrac- 
 tive to spermato- 
 zoids. One of 
 the entering 
 spermatozoids 
 travels down the 
 
 Canal to the Fm 235. MarcTiantia polymorpha. A Young ; B mature, but 
 
 OOSphere, which unfertilised, archegonium. C Fertilised archegonium, with 
 
 , , , -, dividing oospore. fc' Neck-canal-cells ; fc" ventral canal-cell j 
 
 ' 6S ' tJ o oosphere; pr perigynium. (x540: after Strasburger.) 
 
 nucleus of the 
 
 spermatozoid fusing with that of the oosphere. Fertilisation is 
 now complete ; the fertilised oosphere surrounds itself with a cell- 
 wall and becomes the oospore, which begins to divide and to 
 develope into the sporophyte. 
 
 The effect of fertilisation is not confined to the oosphere. Tho 
 adjacent tissue of the shoot is stimulated to growth, and in some 
 
328 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 B 
 
 forms (Sphagnaceas, Andreseaceee) it grows out into a long leafless 
 stalk, the pseudopodium, which carries up the fertilised arche- 
 gonium. on its apex. The venter of the archegonium also grows, 
 forming, either by itself or together with the adjacent tissue of 
 the shoot (as commonly in the Hepaticae) , an investment, termed 
 the calyptra, which surrounds the developing embryo within and, 
 
 for a longer or shorter time, keeps 
 pace with its growth. 
 
 The gametophyte, though it can- 
 not produce gonidia, has a re- 
 markable power, especially in the 
 Mnsci,of reproducing itself vegeta- 
 tively. This is effected frequently 
 by the gemmce, formed from va- 
 rious parts of the body : the 
 leaves, for instance, in the foliose 
 Hepaticas ; or in distinct recep- 
 tacles termed cupules, as in the 
 Marchantieae and some Musci. 
 The gemmae are either unicellular 
 or multicellular, and, in the latter 
 case, may be either spherical or 
 flattened in form. In the branched 
 forms vegetative propagation is 
 effected by the dying away of 
 the main shoot or of the larger 
 branches, the smaller branches 
 becoming isolated and constitut- 
 ing independent plants. In the 
 Musci almost any part is capable, 
 under favourable conditions, of 
 growing out into protonemal fila- 
 ments on which new adult shoots 
 are developed. 
 
 With regard to the histology of 
 the adult shoot, it need only be 
 pointed out that rudimentary vas- 
 cular tissue, absent in the Ilepa- 
 ticae, is to be found in the stems 
 and the midribs of the leaves of many Musci; and, further, that the 
 epidermis is not clearly differentiated as a tissue-system, and is 
 
 FIG. 236. Funaria hygrometrica. A 
 Longitudinal section of the summit of a 
 weakfemale plant ( x 100) : a archegonia ; 
 b leaves. B An archegonium ( x 550) : 
 b ventral portion with the oosphere ; 7i 
 neck ; m mouth still closed ; the cells of 
 the axile row are beginning to be con- 
 verted into mucilage. C The part near 
 the mouth of the neck of a fertilised 
 archegonium with dark red cell-walls. 
 (After Sachs.) 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA. 
 
 329 
 
 destitute of stomata. It is true that in some Hepaticee (e.g 
 Anthoceros, Marchantia, etc., Fig. 241) there are structures in 
 the superficial layer which are erroneously called stomata; these 
 are merely pores, and differ altogether in structure and develop- 
 ment from the true stomata which are to be found on the 
 sporophyte of Anthoceros and of most Musci, as well as on the 
 sporophyte of the higher plants. 
 
 The SPOROPHYTE, the 
 asexual spore - producing 
 form, is developed from the 
 oospore within the venter 
 of the archegonium. (Fig. 
 237) ; its development is 
 direct and holoblastic. The 
 oospore divides first into 
 two cells by a transverse 
 wall, the basal wall, at right 
 angles or obliquely to the 
 long axis of the archegon- 
 ium ; the upper cell, the 
 one next the neck, is termed 
 the epibasal cell, the lower 
 the hypobasal cell. This is 
 followed in some Hepaticae 
 (Marchantiaceae, Antho- 
 cerotaceas) by the formation 
 of two walls, at right angles 
 to the basal wall and to 
 each other, which are known 
 as the quadrant and octant 
 walls, since they respectively 
 segment the oospore into 
 quadrants and octants of a 
 sphere. In other Hepaticse, 
 and generally in the Musci, 
 the segmentation into oc- 
 tants is confined to the epibasal cell, the hypobasal cell either 
 remaining undivided, or dividing irregularly. With the exception 
 of some of the lower Hepaticee (Bicciese), where epibasal and hypo- 
 basal cells alike contribute to the formation of the capsule in 
 which the spores are developed, the epibasal cells alone give rise 
 
 FIG. 237. Funaria "hygrometrica. A Develop- 
 ment of the sporogonium (/ /) in the ventral 
 portion (b b) of the archegonium (longitudinal 
 section x 500). B C Different further stages of 
 development of the sporogonium (/) and of 
 the calyptra (c) ; b neck of the archegonium. 
 ( x about 40.) 
 
330 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 to the capsule. The hypobasal cell gives rise to the foot, which is 
 well-developed in the lower forms of both Hepaticae and Musci, 
 but is rudimentary in the higher. The foot, as stated on page 14, 
 is essentially an embryonic organ ; but it persists, acting, when 
 sufficiently developed, as the organ of absorption and attachment, 
 throughout the life of the Moss-sporophyte, because the sporo- 
 phyte, since it does not become free and independent, does not 
 altogether develope beyond the embryonic stage. In most forms 
 the epibasal half of the oospore also gives rise to a longer or shorter 
 stalk, the seta, by the elongation of which the capsule is raised up 
 out of the calyptra. In those Hepaticse which have a seta, its 
 elongation, and the consequent rupture of the calyptra, takes place 
 suddenly when the capsule is already mature and the spores fully 
 
 FIG. 238. Comparative morphology of the sporopronium in the Bryophyta : diagram- 
 matic transverse sections of the young capsule. A Sphaerocarpus (typical Liverwort) ; B 
 Ceratodon (typical Moss) ; C Anthoceros (aberrant Liverwort). E Endothecium : g-g 
 primary divisions (quadrant and octant walls) ; s (shaded) archesporium ; C columella. 
 (A and C after Leitgeb ; B after Kienitz-Gerloff.) 
 
 developed; in the Musci its elongation is gradual, whilst *the 
 capsule is still rudimentary, and the rupture of the calyptra takes 
 place relatively early. In the Hepaticae and some Musci (Sphag- 
 naceae, Archidium, Phascum, Ephemerum) the whole of the 
 raptured calyptra remains as a sheath, the vaginula, round the 
 base of the seta : but in the higher Musci (Andreaeaceae, most 
 Bryineae) the calyptra is ruptured transversely into an upper and 
 a lower half ; the latter constitutes the vaginula, whereas the 
 former is carried up as a cap on the top of the capsule. In some 
 forms, where' the true hypobasal foot is rudimentary (some Junger- 
 manniaceae and Bryineae) and is functionless, the base of the seta 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHTTA. 331 
 
 becomes dilated to form a, false foot (epibasal) which performs the 
 functions of attachment and absorption. 
 
 The tissue of the developing capsule becomes differentiated into 
 an external layer (or layers) of cells, termed the amphithecium, 
 which, in nearly all cases (except Anthocerotaceae and Sphagnaceas) 
 forms only the wall of the capsule ; and an internal solid mass of 
 cells, the endothecium. The spores are developed from a mass or 
 a layer of cells termed the archesporium. In the Hepaticse the 
 archesporium includes the whole of the endothecium (except in 
 Anthocerotacese, Fig. 238 (7), and the archesporial cells are either all 
 sporogenous (Ricciea?) or, as is more frequently the case, some of 
 them are sterile and generally become spirally thickened and elon- 
 gated in form when they are termed elaters. In the Moss Archi- 
 dium there is no defined archesporium, the sporogenous cells being 
 scattered throughout the endothecium. In the Anthocerotacea3 
 and in the Musci (except Archidium) the archesporium is a layer 
 of cells : it is generally the external layer of the endothecium, but 
 in most of the Anthocerotacece and in the Sphagnacece it is the 
 innermost layer of the amphithecium. In these forms where the 
 archesporium is a layer of cells, the internal sterile tissue of the 
 endothecium constitutes what is termed the columella. The arche- 
 sporial cells are either themselves the mother-cells of the spores, 
 or they undergo division to form these cells. Each mother-cell 
 gives rise to four spores ; the nucleus divides into two, and each 
 of these divides again ; the protoplasm aggregates round the four 
 nuclei, constituting four cells which surround themselves with a 
 proper wall and which are the spores. They do not usually all 
 lie in one plane, but are placed tetrahedrally. The mature spore 
 is a cell, consisting of a mass of protoplasm, with a nucleus, and 
 containing chloroplastids, starch-grains and oil-drops; the wall 
 consists of two layers of the usual structure (see p. 69). During 
 the formation of the spores the mother-cells become isolated from 
 each other, floating freely in a mucilaginous liquid in the interior 
 of the capsule. 
 
 The escape of the spores from the capsule is effected in various 
 ways. In some cases the wall of the capsule simply decays (e.g. 
 Kicciese, Phascum), or it splits into valves (e.g. Jungermanniaceoe), 
 or the upper part is thrown off as a lid or operculum (e.g. some 
 Marchantiea?, Sphagnaceoe, most Bryineee). 
 
 On being set free, the spores germinate, when the conditions 
 are favourable, giving rise to the protonema. The brittle exo- 
 
332 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 sporium being ruptured, the contents, covered by the endosporium, 
 then generally grow out in the form of a filament, which is the 
 beginning of the protonema. In some rare cases (e.g. Pellia, 
 Andreasa) cell-divisions take place within the spore before the 
 exosporium is ruptured, so that the protonema is from the first a 
 mass or a layer of cells. 
 
 The body developed from the oospore, which constitutes the 
 asexual generation or sporophyte of the Bryophyta, is termed the 
 sporogonium. With regard to its general morphology it may be 
 considered (except in Ricciese) to present differentiation into root 
 and shoot ; the foot, however rudimentary, developed from the 
 hypobasal half of the oospore, represents the root ; the capsule and 
 the seta (when present), developed from the epibasal half of the 
 oospore, represent the shoot. The shoot is in no case differenti- 
 ated into stem and leaf. In the Ricciese the products of the 
 hypobasal and epibasal cells are quite similar, so that the whole 
 thalloid sporogonium consists only of a capsule. Hence, whilst it 
 is the rule in the Bryophyta that sporogenous cells are only de- 
 veloped in the shoot-portion of the sporophyte, that is, are derived 
 only from the epibasal cell, in the Riccieae the derivatives of the 
 hypobasal cells are also sporogenous. 
 
 The sporogonium. is not an independent sporophyte, but remains 
 attached to the gametophyte, obtaining from it either the whole 
 or a portion of its food. It must, however, be clearly understood 
 that there is no continuity of tissue between the two generations ; 
 the sporophyte is simply inserted into the tissue of the gameto- 
 phyte. In the Hepaticas the sporophyte is short-lived (except in 
 Anthoceros), and is entirely dependent upon the gametophyte for 
 its nutrition. In Anthoceros, arid in most of the Musci, the capsule 
 possesses more or less well-developed assimilatory tissue, and its 
 epidermis is provided with stomata, so that the sporophyte is 
 capable of using the carbon dioxide of the air as its carbonaceous 
 food, and is dependent upon the gametophyte only for its supply 
 of water and salts. In many of these forms the seta has a central 
 strand of rudimentary vascular tissue through which the water 
 and salts, absorbed from the gametophyte, can travel to the region 
 of the capsule where assimilation and transpiration are carried on. 
 
 The Bryophyta (Muscineae) are divided into two classes, the 
 distinctive characters of which are as follows : 
 
 Class III. HEPATICJ; (Liverworts). 
 
 Gametophytic Characters. Protonema, generally short-lived, in- 
 conspicuous, a flattened expansion. 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : HEPATIC^. 333 
 
 Adult shoot, generally dorsi ventral ; thalloid in many forms ; 
 has unicellular root-hairs ; no trace of vascular tissue ; leaves 
 (when present) destitute of a midrib. 
 
 Sporophytic Characters. The sporogonium remains within the 
 calyptra until the spores are ripe ; the ruptured calyptra remains 
 as a vaginula, no portion of it being raised as a cap on the sporo- 
 gonium; the elongation of the seta (when present) is sudden; the 
 growth of the sporogonium is not effected by a two-sided apical cell. 
 
 The archesporium (except in the Anthocerotaceae) is a mass of 
 cells co-extensive with the endothecium ; in all cases (except 
 Ricciese) some of the archesporial cells are sterile, being frequently 
 developed into elaters ; a columella is present only in the Antho- 
 cerotacese. 
 
 There is no trace of vascular tissue in the sporophyte, nor are 
 there any stomata in its epidermis (except Anthocerotacea?). 
 
 Class IV. JViusci (Mosses). 
 
 Gametophytic Characters. Protonema frequently persistent, 
 well-developed, generally filamentous. Adult shoot, radial or 
 isobilateral ; always differentiated into stem and leaf ; no root- 
 hairs, but branched multicellular rhizoids ; stem frequently with 
 a central strand of rudimentary vascular tissue ; leaves generally 
 with a midrib. 
 
 Sporophytic Characters. The sporogonium escapes from the 
 calyptra at an early stage ; a portion of the calyptra (with certain 
 exceptions) is carried up as a cap on the sporogonium ; the elonga- 
 tion of the seta is gradual ; the growth of the sporogonium is 
 (except Sphagnacese) effected by a two-sided apical cell. 
 
 The archesporium is not co-extensive with the endothecium, but 
 is a layer of cells (except Archidium) ; the archesporial cells are 
 all sporogenous, none being sterile or forming elaters ; there is a 
 well-developed columella in the capsule. 
 
 The seta frequently has a central strand of rudimentary vascular 
 tissue ; the epidermis of the capsule is generally provided with 
 stomata. 
 
 Class III. HEPATICJ] (Liverworts). 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTE. The spore gives rise, on germination, 
 to a small protonema which is sometimes filamentous, but more 
 generally a flattened cellular expansion. 
 
 The Adult Shoot springs from the protonema. Its symmetry is 
 dorsiventral, except in Haplomitrium and some species of Riella 
 
334 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 in which it is radial. It is generally thalloid, but is differentiated 
 into stem and leaves in some forms (e.g. foliose Jungermanniaceas). 
 Its growth is effected by an apical growing-point in which there 
 is either a group of initial cells (Marchantiaceae, AnthocerotaceaB), 
 or a single apical cell (Jungermanniaceae). The branching is 
 commonly dichotornous, taking place in the plane of expansion ; 
 but the development of branches from the ventral surface is con- 
 stant in several genera. 
 
 The dorsiventral shoot bears numerous unicellular root-hairs 
 (absent in Haplomitrium) on its ventral (lower) surface ; when 
 thalloid it also bears multicellular scales (ventral scales) on the 
 same surface ; when foliose, it bears on this surface a row of small 
 rudimentary leaves, termed amphigastria, the fully developed 
 foliage-leaves being borne in two lateral rows, one on each flank 
 of the shoot. 
 
 In the great majority of Hepaticae, the sexual organs are borne 
 on the dorsal (upper) surface, either scattered or in groups ; and 
 sometimes upon a specially modified portion of the shoot, termed 
 the receptacle, either sessile or stalked ; in the latter case the shoot 
 (e.g. higher Marchantieae) may be more or less clearly differentiated 
 into a vegetative and a reproductive part (gametophore). It is 
 only in some of the Jungermanniaceae (Jungermanniaceae acro- 
 gynae) that the sexual organs are developed at the apex of the 
 branches of the shoot, a feature in which they approach the Musci. 
 
 The protonema bears but a single adult shoot ; and this, owing 
 to the transitory nature of the protonema, soon becomes an. inde- 
 pendent plant. The plant is generally monoecious, but sometimes 
 dioecious. 
 
 B. The SPOROPHYTE is developed from the fertilised oosphere 
 (oospore) in the archegonium (see p. 329). It is a sporogonium, 
 which may consist merely of a capsule (Riccieae) ; or it may be 
 differentiated into a capsule and a foot (e.g. Anthoceros) ; or into a 
 capsule, a longer or shorter seta, and a foot (e.g. Marchantieas) ; 
 or into a capsule, a seta, and a rudimentary (hypobasal) foot 
 (some Jungermanniaceae), a false foot (epibasal) being in some 
 cases developed from the lower part of the seta. It never grows 
 by means of a two-sided apical cell as it does in the Mosses. 
 
 The internal differentiation of the capsule presents the follow- 
 ing varieties : It is in all cases differentiated into amphithecium 
 and endothecium ; in all, except most Anthoeerotaceas, the arche- 
 sporium is coextensive with the endothecium; in the Antho- 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : HEPATIC^. 
 
 335 
 
 cerotacese, the whole or part of the endothecium constitutes a 
 columella, a feature in which the Anthocerotacese resemble the 
 Musci. 
 
 In the Riccieae (except Oxymitra) the whole archesporium is 
 sporogenous, whereas in all other forms some of the archesporial 
 cells are sterile, and in many they are developed into elaters, elon- 
 gated cells with spirally thickened walls, generally becoming free 
 from each other. 
 
 FIG. 239. Comparative morphology of the sporogonium in the Hepaticas : diagrammatic 
 longitudinal sections. A Riccia ; B Marchantia; C Anthoceros ; D Radula. I-I basal 
 wall; /foot; st seta; am amphithecium ; end endothecium; or archesporium (shaded); 
 col columella. (After Goebel.J 
 
 The sporogonium remains enclosed in the calyptra until the 
 spores are mature when, if a seta be present, it suddenly elongates 
 and ruptures the calyptra, which persists as a vaginula at its base. 
 The capsule opens either by the decay of its wall, or more gener- 
 ally by the splitting of the wall from the apex downwards into 
 valves ; in some Marchantieae a lid, the operculum, is formed and 
 the capsule is opened by the throwing off of the lid. 
 
336 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The Hepaticse are classified as follows: 
 
 Order I. Marchantiaceae. Order II. Jungeimanniaceae. Order III. Antho- 
 cerotaceas. 
 
 Order I. Marchantiaceae. 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTE. The spore gives rise on germination to a short un- 
 branched filamentous protonema which developes at its apex into a flattened 
 cellular expansion, from the margin of which the adult shoot (commonly 
 known as the plant) springs as a lateral branch. 
 
 The Morphology of the Adult Shoot. The adult shoot is undifferentiated into 
 stem and leaf. Its symmetry is dorsiventral ; on the lower (ventral) surface it 
 bears numerous root-hairs, and also scales which are arranged in one or two 
 rows, or irregularly (Ricciocarpus natans, Clevea, Sauteria, Corsinia), but are 
 absent in Riccia crystallina ; on the upper (dorsal) surface the reproductive 
 organs are borne. In the Ricciese the shoot presents a dorsal furrow, and in 
 the Marchantieae a midrib. 
 
 Growth is effected by an apical growing-point, situated in a depression, 
 possessing a transverse row of initial cells from which segments are cut off 
 dorsally and ventrally ; the initial cells also undergo longitudinal division, and 
 thus increase in number. 
 
 The normal mode of branching is that which takes place in the plane of ex- 
 pansion ; it is dichotomous, and is effected in the manner described on p. 184. 
 
 Less commonly, branches are formed as outgrowths from the ventral aspect 
 of the growing-point, as in certain Marchantieae (e.g. Targionia, Fimbriaria, 
 Plagiochasma, Clevea, Preissia). This depends upon the fact that, in these 
 forms, the growth of the fertile normal branches is arrested by the formation 
 of reproductive organs ; hence the further development of the shoot can only 
 be effected by ventral branching. Adventitious ventral branches are common 
 in the Riccieae. 
 
 The sexual organs are in all cases developed on the dorsal surface, each 
 antheridium or archegonium arising from a single superficial cell. In the 
 simpler forms they are arranged in a continuous median row, developed in 
 acropetal succession (e.g. sexual organs of Eiccia, antheridia of Boschia, 
 Clevea hyalina, sometimes Sauteria alpina), or in a series of groups (e.g. Riccio- 
 carpus natans, Oxymitra, Corsinia, archegonia of Boscbia, antheridia of most 
 of the lower Marchantiese) ; in the higher forms they are borne on a special 
 structure termed a receptacle. 
 
 The receptacle. The primitive form of the female receptacle is to be found 
 in Corsinia (var. involucrata). Here each group of archegonia is sunk in a pit 
 on the dorsal surface ; from the bottom of the pit there grows up among the 
 archegonia a protuberance, which produces a membranous umbrella-like cover- 
 ing (perichattium) for them ; this protuberance represents the receptacle. In 
 some of the lower Marchantieaa (e.g. Plagiochasma, Clevea) the receptacle is 
 developed in much the same way, but the archegonia are borne upon it ; the 
 receptacle becomes raised on a short stalk and, by the unequal growth of its 
 surface, the archegonia (usually three to four in number) become displaced to 
 the under side. In these cases the receptacle is simply an excrescence of the 
 dorsal surface. 
 
 In the higher Marchantieae the adult shoot is frequently differentiated into a 
 
3ROUP II. BRYOPHYTA: HEPATIC^. 337 
 
 vegetative and a reproductive portion, the gametopliore : the gametophore is a 
 branch (or a branch- system) bearing a terminal receptacle, in which either the 
 male (antheridiophore) or the female (archegoniophore) organs are developed. 
 
 In the simpler forms (e.g. Sauteria, Fimbriaria, Duvalia, Grimaldia, Reboulia) 
 the archegoniophore is simple, that is unbranched ; the stalk presents a single 
 furrow which represents the ventral surface of the shoot. In Lunularia the 
 stalk is simple, but the receptacle itself is branched, presenting four groups 
 of archegonia, each group corresponding to one of the coherent branches of 
 which the receptacle consists ; hence the archegoniophore is compound. In 
 Marchantia, Preissia, and Dumortiera, the stalk has two ventral furrows, 
 showing that it consists of the two coherent branches of the first dichotomy. 
 The receptacle itself is repeatedly branched : thus in Preissia there are four 
 groups of archegonia, corresponding to four branches ; in Marchantia and 
 Dumortiera there are eight. The receptacle is more or less distinctly lobed, 
 
 FIG. 210. A Portion of a plant of MarcUantia polymorplia (t), with antheridiophores. 
 B Portion of a plant with a cupule containing gemmae; v v apices of the two branches. 
 (After Sachs.) C An archegouiophore with a doubly furrowed (r) stalk t, bearing a 
 terminal branched receptacle of which s is one of the rajs ; h perichaetium ; fc sporogonia. 
 
 thus showing its compound nature; each group of arcbegonia is situated be- 
 tween the bases of two adjacent lobes. The complete elongation of the stalk 
 does not take place until the archegonia are fully developed, or even until one 
 of them has been fertilised. 
 
 It is only in a few of the higher Marchantieae that there is a highly de- 
 veloped autheridiophore. In the lowest forms the antheridia are developed 
 in dorsal groups, the formation of which does not arrest the further apical 
 growth of the branch ; in Grimaldia and Keboulia, the formation of the groups 
 of antheridia causes temporary arrest of apical growth ; in Luuularia and 
 Duvalia the formation of a group of antheridia permanently arrests the apical 
 growth of the branch, the group being therefore terminal. In Fegatella, Preissia, 
 Marchantia, and Dumortiera, a definite terminal receptacle is formed; it is 
 discoid in form, and (except Fegatella) it is elevated on a special artheridio- 
 phore ; it is compound, having several growing points, each of which gives 
 
 V. S. B. Z 
 
338 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 rise to antheridia in acropetal succession, and then ceases to growj'the stalk Las 
 two ventral furrows, showing that it consists of two coherent branches. 
 
 In all cases the antheridia, and in many the archegonia, become overgrown 
 by the surrounding tissue, so that they lie in depressions formed in essentially 
 the same manner as the air-chambers described below ; a narrow canal leads 
 down to each antheridium, but the necks of the archegonia are long enough to 
 reach to the surface. The growth of this tissue is especially active around the 
 archegonia, so that a membranous investment is formed enclosing either a 
 single archegonium, when the archegonia are developed singly, or a group of 
 archegonia, when they are developed several together, which is termed the 
 involucre. This consists essentially of two parts ; a basal portion, consisting 
 of an extension of the air-chamber-layer of the shoot, and of a more delicate 
 marginal portion (pericbaetium), formed by the outgrowth of the superficial 
 cells of the basal portion, variously lobed and laciniate. In some cases (e.g. 
 Corsinia) the development of the perichaatium only takes place after fertilisa- 
 tion. 
 
 In the Marchantiero, the receptacles are surrounded at their first formation 
 by invohicral scales of various form, leafy or hair-like, which are excrescences of 
 the adjacent tissue. When the receptacle subsequently becomes raised on a 
 stalk, the involucral scales generally remain as a sheath round the base of the 
 stalk ; but some may be carried up with the stalk in its growth, as is especially 
 the case in Lunularia. 
 
 In Marchantia, Preissia, and Fimbriaria, the venter of each archegonium 
 becomes surrounded by a sac-like membrane, developed from the stalk-cell of 
 the archegonium, which is termed the perigynium (Fig. 235). The develop- 
 ment of the perigynium begins when the archegonium is nearly mature. 
 
 The distribution of the sexual organs is various : the plants maybe monoecious 
 (some species of Riccia, also Corsinia, Plagiochasma, Sauteria, Peltolepis, 
 Grimaldia, Eeboulia, most species of Fimbriaria, Duvallia, Targionia, Cyatho- 
 dium), or dioecious (some species of Eiccia, Ricciocarpus no-tans t Oxymitra, 
 Boschia, Clevea, Fegatella, Lunularia, Preissia generally, Marchantia, Du- 
 mortiera). In the monoecious species of Kiccia (except R. fluitans, where 
 they alternate regularly in a single row), the antheridia and archegonia are 
 intermingled ; but in all other monoecious forms they are developed either in 
 separate sori, or on distinct branches (diclinous) ; in Preissia both antheridia 
 and archegonia have been found to occur exceptionally on the same (andro- 
 gynous) receptacle (monoclinous). The antheridia are borne, in Sauteria, 
 Targionia, and Cyathodium, on the ventral branches exclusively ; it is probable 
 that this is also the case in the apparently dioecious forms of Fimbriaria. 
 
 The Structure of the Adult Shoot. The dorsal portion of the shoot consists, 
 in all the Marchantiaceae, of parenchymatous tissue, made up of cells containing 
 ehloroplastids, which includes a number of air-chambers, giving it an areolated 
 appearance, whence it is termed the air-chamber-layer. The chambers are 
 formed by the unequal growth of the cells near the growing-point, in conse- 
 quence of which the surface presents alternating elevations and depressions. 
 In most species of Eiccia the air-chambers are narrow canals, elongated per- 
 pendicularly to the surface ; in R. crystallina they are much widened, and open 
 to the surface by the whole extent; in R.fluitans (Ricciella canaliculata) the 
 
GEOUP II. BRYOPHYTA : HEPATIC^!. 
 
 339 
 
 wide air-chambers become roofed over by the growth of the superficial cells of 
 the intervening dissepiments, and in the aquatic form became completed closed, 
 but in the terrestrial form they communicate with the exterior by means of a 
 simple pore surrounded by four guard-cells. In R. ylauca and its allies, the 
 air-chambers become completely closed in, but the superficial layer eventually 
 breaks down. Ricciocarpus nataiis, Oxymitra, Corsinia, and many Marchantie 
 (e.g. Sauteria, Clevea, Targionia) have a similar structure to that of the terre- 
 strial form of R. Jluitans, but the pore is surrounded by a larger number of 
 guard-cells, in several rows, but all lying in the same plane ; in Sauteria, 
 Clevea, and Peltolepis, the guard-cells have their radial walls peculiarly thickened, 
 giving a star-like appearance to the pore. In Preissia and Marchantia the 
 structure and development of the pores is different ; here the primary air- 
 chambers become completely closed in; at the central meeting-point the growth 
 of the superficial cells continues, but vertically instead of horizontally, leading 
 to the formation of vertical rows of cells which subsequently separate, leaving 
 
 FIG. 211. "Marcliantia polymorpTin. A A pore seen in surface view. "B Section of a portion 
 of the dorsal region of the thallus, showing the air-chamber containing assimilatory tissue, 
 and the compound pore. ( x 240 : after Strasburger.) 
 
 a canal between them. This structure is distinguished as a compound pore. 
 Compound pores of this sort are found in the receptacles of other Marchantieas, 
 the vegetative parts of which have simple pores. 
 
 In many forms, the cells containing chloroplastids (assimilatory tissue) are 
 simply those which form the walls of the air-chambers ; in Corsinia and Sauteria 
 these cells project somewhat into the cavity of the air-chamber, whilst in others 
 (e.g. Boschia, Marchantia, Preissia, Lunularia, Fegatella, Targionia) the cells 
 forming the floor of the air-chamber, or the sides, or even the roof, grow out 
 into branched or unbranched filaments which fill most of the air-cavity, thus 
 largely increasing the assimilatory tissue. 
 
 Beneath the air-chamber-layer is a compact tissue, consisting of several layers 
 of cells elongated in the direction of the long axis of the branch, which is 
 without intercellular spaces, and contains but few chloroplastids. In the 
 
340 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS, 
 
 MarchantieaB the walls of these cells are generally thickened and pitted ; some 
 of the cells contain mucilage, and in Fegatella the mucilage-cells form con- 
 tinuous rows ; other cells contain a dai'k-coloured oil-drop, though such cells 
 also occur in the air-chamber-layer ; in Preissia brown-coloured sclerotic fibrous 
 cells occur, arranged in longitudinal strands. 
 
 The ventral surface is formed by a layer of cells which, in the simpler forms, 
 is not specially differentiated, but in some the cells of this layer are remarkable 
 for their small size ; in Marchautia and Preissia there are several layers of these 
 small cells, forming a sort of ventral cortex. 
 
 The ventral scales consist of a single layer of cells, the walls of which 
 generally assume a violet colour ; each scale is developed from a single super- 
 ficial cell, or, as generally in the Biccieae, from a transverse row of cells. In 
 Marchantia polymorplia, in addition to the scales which arise from the midrib, 
 there are others which spring from the surface of the lamina. 
 
 Unicellular root-hairs are produced in all Marchantiaceae ; the commonest 
 form has thin walls ; in the MarchantieaB a second form occurs, in which peg- 
 like thickenings of the wall project into the cavity of the cell : the simple root- 
 hairs are developed mainly on the midrib, the thickened hairs mainly on the 
 lamina. 
 
 Gemmae are produced in Lunularia and Marchantia in special receptacles, 
 termed cupules, borne on the dorsal surface of the shoot ; in Lunularia the 
 cupule is crescent-shaped, in Marchantia it is circular (Fig. 240 B). The cupule 
 is formed by an outgrowth of the air-chamber layer, and in Marchantia its 
 margin is prolonged into laciniae. The gemmae spring from single cells of the 
 floor of the cupule, which elongate upwards and divide transversely into a 
 etalk cell and a terminal cell, which, by repeated growth and division, forms a 
 flattened plate of tissue, several layers of cells thick at the middle, thinning 
 out to a single layer at the margin, with a growing-point in a depression on 
 each lateral margin. The symmetry of the gemmae is isobilateral ; but when 
 they fall on to the soil and begin to grow, the undermost surface becomes the 
 ventral, and the uppermost the dorsal. Some of the superficial cells have no 
 chloroplastids ; those of the surface next the soil grow out into root-hairs. 
 
 B. The SPOKOPHYTE. The degree of morphological and histological differ- 
 entiation of the sporophyte presents wide divergences in 1 the different groups. 
 The oospore undergoes division by a wall, generally inclined at an acute angle to 
 the long axis of the archegoniurn, the basn.1 wall, into two halves, the epibasul 
 and the Jiypobasal ; each of these is then divided into two by a wall at right 
 angles to the basal wall, and each of these again by a wall at right angles to 
 the two preceding walls ; thus the embryo comes to consist of eight cells 
 (octants). 
 
 In the Riccieae, the whole embryo simply forms a spherical capsule : in the 
 Marchantiese, the capsule is developed entirely from the epibasal cells, whilst 
 the hypobasal cells give rise to a bulbous foot, which attaches the embryo to the 
 parent, and to a short stalk which bears the capsule, and is formed at a rela- 
 tively late stage by intercalary growth. In the Corsinieae the embryo is 
 differentiated into capsule and foot, but it is uncertain whether or not the limit 
 between these two organs is marked, as it is in the Marchautieae, by the br.sal 
 wall {see Fig. 239). 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHTTA : HEPATIC^. 341 
 
 The differentiation of the tissue of the capsule into amphlthecium and 
 endothecium is well-marked, except in the Eiccieae. The archesporium is 
 coextensive with the endothecium. 
 
 In the Iliccieae the whole of the archesporial cells are sporogenous (except 
 perhaps Oxymitra) ; in Corsinia, some of the archesporial cells are sterile, but 
 these undergo no special differentiation ; in Boschia and in the Marchantiea? 
 the sterile cells assume an elongated form, and their walls undergo spiral or 
 annular thickening : these specially modified sterile cells are the elaters, and, 
 being very hygroscopic, they assist in the scattering of the spores. Each 
 sporogenous cell gives rise to four spores. 
 
 The wall of the capsule, which consists generally of a single layer of cells, is 
 but slightly developed in the Kiccieae, and becomes entirely disorganised during 
 the development of the spores. In Corsinia the wall is not highly developed, 
 but it persists till the spores are ripe, when it ruptures irregularly ; in Boschia 
 it is more highly developed, the cells presenting half-ring thickenings on their 
 lateral and internal walls. In the Marchantieae the cells of the walls are 
 generally thickened ; the thickenings may be fibrous, in which case the capsule 
 opens by the splitting of the wall longitudinally into a number of teeth, though 
 in Targionia the splitting is irregular; or the thickenings (sometimes absent) 
 are confined to the walls at right angles to the surface, in which case the 
 capsule opens by the separation of its upper third as a lid or operculum, as in 
 the Operculatae. 
 
 The spores are generally tetrahedral, with two coats, the outer of which 
 (exosporium) is tuberculate or reticulate on the surface. On germination the 
 exosporium of the tetrahedral spore ruptures at the point of junction of the 
 three projecting angles. The spores of Lunularia and Marchantia are small and 
 spherical; the exosporium is feebly developed, and presents a granular thicken- 
 ing. In consequence of the thinness of the exosporium, the whole spore is 
 enabled to enlarge considerably on germination, and it does not rupture at any 
 special point. In Fegatella, cell-divisions take place in the spores before they 
 are scattered. 
 
 The venter of the archegonium keeps pace with the growth of the developing 
 embryo, forming the calyptra, and encloses it until the spores are ripe. In the 
 Riccieae the spores are set free by the gradual disorganisation of the calyptra 
 and of the tissue of the thallus in which the calyptra is imbedded ; in the other 
 Marchantiaceaa the capsule is forced out of the calyptra by the elongation of 
 the short stalk. 
 
 The Marchantiacese are classified as follows : 
 
 Fain. 1. Eicciecc. The gametophyte is characterised by the simple structure 
 of the adult shoot; the air-chamber has a simple pore in only a few forms 
 \Riccia (Ricciella) canaliculata , Eicciocarpus, Oxymitra] ; the assimilatory tissue 
 is confined to the walls of the air-chamber. The sexual organs are not borne on 
 a receptacle, but are developed in a row, or in groups, in the dorsal furrow, and 
 become overgrown by the tissue of* the thallus. The sporophyte is character- 
 ised by the absence of differentiation of a foot or seta, consisting, as it does, 
 simply of a capsule ; all the archesporial cells give rise to spores (except the few 
 sterile cells in Oxymitra), and the wall of the capsule becomes disorganised 
 during the ripening of the spores. 
 
342 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The genera are : Kiccia, of which there are many species arranged in the 
 two sections Euriccia and Eiccidla ; Kicciocarpus, represented only by the 
 species R. natans ; Oxyinitra (Tesselina). 
 
 Fam. 2. Corsiniece.. The gametophyte resembles, 
 on the whole, that of the lower MarchantieaB in its 
 general structure ; it has a midrib which projects 
 on the under surface ; it is characterised by the 
 arrangement of the archegonia, which are borne in 
 dorsal groups, not on a receptacle (indicated in 
 Corsinia), but in pits, the surface of which produces 
 a dense growth of hairs. The spoiophyte is differ- 
 entiated into foot and capsule; the wall of the 
 capsule persists until the spores are ripe ; some of 
 ~Ricti*"gU.uca (nat."~size): the archesporial cells are sterile and, in Boschia, 
 r the dorsal furrows of the become elaters. 
 
 lobes; /sporogonia develop- The family includes the two genera Corsinia and 
 
 iug iu the receptacles. Boschia (Funicularia) : each genus has but a single 
 
 species ; Corsinia mar chantio ides is European ; B. Weddellii is found in Brazil. 
 Fam. 3. Marchantiece. The gametophyte has a well-developeJ air-chamber- 
 layer on the dorsal surface ; the air-chambers have each a well-marked pore, 
 which is either simple or compound ; in the higher forms the air-chambers are 
 filled with filaments of assimilating cells : on the ventral surface are two rows 
 of scales and two kinds of root-hairs. The archegonia are borne in groups on 
 a receptacle which is either dorsal, as in the lower forms, or terminal on a 
 gametophore, as in the higher. The sporophyte is differentiated into foot, seta, 
 and capsule ; some of the archesporial cells are sterile, and become elaters. 
 The following sections of Marchantiese may be distinguished : 
 a. Astroporce : characterised by the thickening of the radial walls of the cells 
 surrounding the simple pores of the air-chambers, in which there is no develop- 
 ment of filamentous assimilatory tissue. There is no antheridial receptacle in 
 Sauteria and Clevea, where the antheridia are borne in a row on the surface of 
 a ventral antheridiophore, but it is well-developed and dorsal in Peltolepis ; 
 there is a terminal archegoniophore in Sauteria, with usually a single ventral 
 furrow, and in Peltolepis, with two ventral furrows; but in Clevea there is no 
 archegoniophore, but a dorsal stalked unfurrowed receptacle. 
 Genera: Sauteiia, Peltolepis, Clevea. 
 
 6. Operculatce : characterised by the mode of dehiscence of the capsule, the 
 upper third of the wall being thrown off as an operculum : the family includes 
 the genera Plagiochasma (Aytonia), Keboulia, Duvalia (Neesiella), Grimaldia, 
 Fimbriaria (Hypenantron). The pores are simple, and the air-chambers usually 
 do not contain filamentous assimilatory tissue. The archegonial receptacle is 
 dorsal and stalked in Plagiochasma and Grimaldia ; in the other genera it is 
 borne on an archegoniophore with a single ventral furrow. The antheridial 
 receptacles are sessile ; in Duvalia they are terminal. 
 
 c. Targionice, including Targiouia and Cyathodium. The archegonia are 
 developed in a sessile group at the apex of a branch ; if one of the archegonia 
 is fertilised, the further growth of the branch is arrested, but if not, growth is 
 resumed, and the group of archegonia becomes dorsal ; the antheridia aie borne 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA: HEPATICJI. 343 
 
 in terminal groups on short ventral branches. A single sporogoniuin is de- 
 developed in each group of archegouia, and becomes enclosed in a perichaetium; 
 it dehisces by teeth, but in Cyathodium a small operculum is also formed. The 
 pores of the air-chamber layer are simple ; a formation of filamentous assimila- 
 tory tissue in the air-chambers occurs in Targionia. 
 
 d. Composite, including Fegatella (Conocephalus), Lunularia, Dumortiera, 
 Preissia (Chomiocarpon), and Marchantia ; characterised generally by the com- 
 pound (branched) nature of the gametophore : however, the archegoniophore is 
 unbranched in Fegatella, and in Fegatella aud Lunularia there is no antheridio- 
 phore, the male receptacles being sessile on the dorsal surface of the thallus. 
 The air-chambers contain filamentous assimilatory tissue ; the pores are com- 
 pound in Preissia and Marchantia; the air-chamber layer is degenerate in 
 Dumortiera. 
 
 Order II. Jimgermanniaceae. 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTE. On germination the spore gives rise to a protonema 
 which may be a solid ellipsoidal mass of cells (as in Pellia) with a root-hair at 
 one end ; or a flattened plate of cells (Eadula, Frullania) ; or a filament, some- 
 times branched (Lophocolea, Chiloscyphus) ; however, the differences in form of 
 the protonema are not of great morphological importance since, in many cases, 
 flattened and filamentous forms have been found to be produced from spores of 
 the same plant. 
 
 The protonema gives rise to the adult shoot by the formation, either from a 
 "marginal cell, if it is flat, or from the terminal cell, if it is filamentous, of a 
 growing-point with a single apical cell. 
 
 The Morphology of the Adult Shoot. The adult shoot may be differentiated 
 into stem and leaf, as in the foliose forms ; or undifferentiated, as in the thal- 
 loid forms. Its symmetry is generally dorsi ventral ; the only radially sym- 
 metrical, erect-growing forms being Haplomitrium and some species of Eiella 
 (e.g. R. heiicophylla and Parisii). 
 
 The morphology of Eiella demands special notice. It is a foliose form, and 
 is peculiar in that the stem bears, on one side, a membranous wing which is 
 more or less well-developed in the different species. Eiella Notarisii and 
 Iteuteri are prostrate dorsiventral forms, and in them the wing is on the dorsal 
 surface of the stem: R. heiicophylla and Parisii are radial and erect ; in the 
 latter both the stem and the wing are vertical ; in the former the wing is spir- 
 ally wound round the erect axis. 
 
 Most of the thalloid forms (except Pellia, Aneura, Sphaerocarpus) have a 
 distinct midrib. The shoot bears numerous unicellular root-hairs, as also 
 club-shaped glandular hairs which secrete mucilage, on its ventral (under) 
 surface. 
 
 In the dorsiventral foliose forms, the stem bears a row of leaves on each flank, 
 and generally a row of amphigastria on its ventral surface ; amphigastria are, 
 however, absent or rudimentary in some forms (e.g. Fossombronia, Androcryphia, 
 Petalophyllum, Kadula, Lejeunia calcarea, Jungermannia bicuspidata, Scapania, 
 species of Eiella, etc.), but are represented (except Eadula and Lejeunia cal- 
 carea) by papillaa bearing glandular hairs. In Blasia there are two rows of 
 amphigastria as well as ventral scales. The ventral surface of the shoot also 
 generally bears root-hairs, springing from the superficial cells of the stem, but 
 
344 
 
 PAUT III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 occasionally from the amphigastria (e.g. Lejeunia, Frullaiiia, Mastigobryum, 
 Lepidozia, Lophocolea, etc.) : they are absent in Trichocolea; and in Eadula 
 they are developed on the convex surface of the lower lobes of the lateral 
 leaves. % 
 
 In the radial foliose forms, the leaves are borne in three rows in Haplomit- 
 rium, and in two rows in the radial species of Kiella (helicophylla and Parlsii) ; 
 here there is no distinction of amphigastria. Koot-hairs are absent in Haplo- 
 mitrium, their functions being discharged by root-like branches : in the above 
 species of Kiella the root-hairs are borne on the swollen basal end of the stem. 
 
 Papillae bearing glandular hairs, secreting mucilage to moisten the growing- 
 point, are very generally developed; they are transitory, and are therefore only 
 to be found near the growing-point. In the dorsiventral forms they are de- 
 veloped mainly on the ventral surface, either as appendages of the amphigas- 
 tria or (as men- 
 tioned above) as 
 representing 
 them in those 
 forms in which 
 the amphigastria 
 are wanting or 
 rudimentary. In 
 the foliose forms 
 similar papillte 
 are also developed 
 as appendages of 
 the young lateral 
 leaves ; notably in 
 the radially sym- 
 metrical genus 
 Haplomitrium. 
 
 The growth of 
 the shoot is 
 effected by an 
 apical growing- 
 point which pos- 
 sesses (except 
 perhaps in Blasia 
 and Pellia, in 
 which there ap- 
 
 FIG. 243. Growing-point of thallus of Metzgeria furcata. t Apical 
 cell; s' <jt,c., successive segments ; m' m" marginal cells; p' super- 
 ficial cell; ii cells of the midrib; c clavate hairs, (x 510: after 
 Strasburger.) 
 
 pears to be a group of initial cells) a single apical cell. The apical cell of the 
 thalloid forms is most commonly two-sided (Fig. 243) ; the base is directed 
 outwards, the apex inwards, and from the two sides segments are cut off alter- 
 nately right and left. The apical cell of the foliose forms, with the exception 
 of Fossombronia and Riella which have a two-sided apical cell, is a three-sided 
 pyramid ; its base is directed outwards, its apex inwards, one side is ventral 
 and the other two are dorso-lateral ; this latter statement does not, of course, 
 apply to Haplomitrium. In Blasia and Pellia cell-division in the growing- 
 point appears to take place much as in the Marchantiacese. 
 
GROUP [I. BilYOPHYTA: HEPATIC^. 345 
 
 The normal mode of branching in the dorsiventral forms is that which takes 
 place at the growing-point in the plane of expansion. In the thalloid forms, 
 as also in the foliose Fossombronia and Blasia, it may be described as dichoto- 
 mous (see p. 184) although the apical cell does not undergo division so as to 
 form the apical cells of two branches ; the apical cell of the parent shoot per- 
 sists, and that of the branch is developed from an adjacent segment, either 
 before or after further division. When the two shoots develope with equal 
 vigour, the resulting branch-system resembles a dichotomy; but when the 
 parent shoot grows the more vigorously throughout, the branches are lateral 
 upon it and the branch- system is a monopodium (see p. 34). In the foliose 
 forms the mode of normal branching is generally monopodial. The apical 
 cell of a lateral branch is developed from the lower (ventral) half of a dorso- 
 lateral segment cut off from the apical cell; either from the whole of the seg- 
 ment, or from the posterior (basiscopic) portion of it. 
 
 In the radial Haplomitrium, the branching is monopodial and the branches 
 are borne on all sides of the stem, either in the leafy region or on the subter- 
 ranean parts. They are not developed from the apical growing-point, and are 
 probably all adventitious. 
 
 A development of branches on the ventral surface is not uncommon either in 
 the thalloid (e.g. Metzgeria, Symphyogyna, Umbraculum on the midrib) or in 
 the foliose forms (e.g. Mastigobryum, Lepidozia, Calypogeia, Junyermannia, 
 [Cephalozii] bicuspi/lata, Lophocolea bidentata). Since the origin of these 
 branches can in some cases be distinctly traced (e.g. Mastigobryum, Symphyo- 
 gyna) to the apical growing-point, and since they are generally developed in 
 acropetal succession and in definite positions (in the axils of the amphigastria 
 of the foliose forms), they are regarded as normal and not as adventitious. 
 The branch-rudiment does not, however, always immediately develope, but 
 may be quiescent for a longer or shorter time. Their origin is frequently en- 
 dogenous. These ventral branches are generally more or less modified sexual 
 branches (gametophores) ; but in Mastigobryum sterile branches occur which 
 are long and delicate, with rudimentary leaves, and are known as flagella. 
 Similar flagella occur in other foliose genera, such as Lepidozia and Calypogeia ; 
 frhey are not, however, ventral branches, but modified lateral branches. 
 
 Adventitious branches are often formed on the older parts of the shoot ; in 
 Metzgeria, from marginal cells of the lamina; in Pellia and Sphserocarpus, 
 from single cells of all parts of the dorsal, and sometimes also of the ventral 
 surface ; in Jtnigermannia bicuspidata and Blasia, from cells of the ventral sur- 
 face of the stem : in Lophocolea bidentata, from the marginal cells of the 
 leaves. Their origin is generally exogenous, but sometimes endogenous. 
 
 In many cases (e.g. Blasia, Sphasrocarpus, Lophocolea bidentata, Junger- 
 mannia bicuspidata) the adventitious branches become separated from the 
 parent plant, and develope into new individuals, thus subserving vegetative 
 propagation. 
 
 Closely connected with the adventitious branching is the formation of gemma. 
 In Aneura, certain cells of the margin and of the dorsal surface of the shoot 
 each become divided into two, and the two cells thus formed are set free as a 
 bicellular gemma, with probably a proper wall of its own, by the rupture of the 
 enclosing wall. In Blasia, the gemmae, which are solid multicellular nearly 
 
PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 spherical bodies, are developed in special receptacles (cupules) situated on the 
 dorsal surface of the apex of the shoots ; their mode of origin resembles that of 
 the gemmas of Marchautia. In most foliose forms the gemmae are developed 
 from marginal cells of the leaves (e.g. Junyermannia ventricosa, Scapania nemo- 
 rosa), or from cells near the growing- point of the stem (e.g. Jungermannia 
 bi cuspidal a). In these forms the gemmae are usually uni- or bi-cellular, but in 
 Radula coinplanata (where they are formed on the leaf-margin) they are flat 
 multicellular plates of tissue. 
 
 The leaves are developed, generally speaking, one from each segment formed 
 at the growing-point. In the typical Acrogyna? each dorso-lateral segment gives 
 rise to a lateral leaf, and each ventral segment to a ventral leaf (amphigas- 
 trium) ; though, as already mentioned, the amphigastria are wanting iu many 
 species. A characteristic feature of the leaves of this group is that they are 
 
 FIG. 24i. Brnnches of one of the acro- 
 gynous Jungevmantiiaceae, Piagiochila as- 
 plenioides, seen from above: the leaves are 
 succubous ; at the apex, two of the shoots 
 bear sporogom'a, the one (b) having de- 
 hisced, the other (a) being still closed; p 
 the involucre. 
 
 FIG. 245. Part of a shoot of Fnd- 
 lania dilatata seen from below ( * 20) : 
 ul auriculate lower leaf-lobes ; ol upper 
 leaf-lobe ; the leaves are incubous ; u 
 amphigastriuin. 
 
 distinctly bilobed, at least when young ; this is due to the fact that the mother- 
 cell of the leaf is divided into two which give rise to the two lobes. The leaves 
 are sessile, and their insertion is at first transverse to the long axis of the stem, 
 so that one lobe is superior or dorsal, the other inferior or ventral ; but by 
 subsequent displacement it becomes oblique. Since the Ipaves are situated 
 close together, they thus come to overlap each other, and this overlapping pre- 
 sents two forms : either the posterior edges of the leaves overlap the anterior 
 edges of those next behind them (Fig. 244), when the leaves are said to be 
 succubous ; or the anterior edges of the leaves overlap the posterior edges of 
 those next in front of them (Fig. 245), when the leaves are said to be incubous. 
 The growth of the leaf is generally apical at first, and subsequently basal. 
 
GROUP 11. BRYOPHYTA : HEPATIC^. S47 
 
 In some of the foliose Anacrogynaa (Fossombronia, Androcryphia, Petalo- 
 phyllum) the development of the leaves is essentially similar to that of the 
 lateral leaves of the Acrogynse; but in none of the Anacrogynas is the leaf 
 bilobed. In Haplomitrium each segment gives rise to a leaf which is developed 
 in the same manner as those of the Mosses : in Iliella each segment gives rise 
 to two leaves : in Blasia there are two rows of lateral leaves and two rows of 
 amphigastria. 
 
 In some epiphytic forms (e.g. Frullania) the lower lobe is somewhat cup- 
 shaped (Fig. 245), and is termed an auricula; it constitutes a receptacle for 
 water. In some, also, (e.g. Frullania, Lejeunia, Scapania), the upper lobes of 
 the leaves of male fertile shoots are modified to constitute protective organs for 
 the autheridia. 
 
 The leaf-formation of Blasia is quite peculiar, especially in this respect, that 
 the first development of the lateral leaves takes place in the same plane as that 
 of the stem, with a subsequent slight obliquity, so that the leaves are incubous. 
 Each lateral leaf bears at its base, on the under surface, two (sometimes only 
 one) appendages which are termed auriculte but are not morphologically similar 
 to the auricula mentioned above as occurring in Frullania. The auricula of 
 Blasia consists of a cellular wall enclosing a cavity, with a narrow apical aper- 
 ture, from the centre of the floor of which there springs a glandular h*ir 
 secreting mucilage. Into this cavity filaments of Nostoc (see p. 234) make their 
 way, so that it becomes filled with a mass of this Alga. The hair then grows 
 out into a number of branches, resembling root -hairs, which ramify in the mass. 
 This symbiosis (see p. 273) appears to be advantageous both to the Nostoc and 
 to the Blasia. An auricula which does not become infested with Nostoc re- 
 mains relatively small. The amphigastria of Blasia are stalked and peltate ; 
 they bear a glandular hair which is situated at first on the margin of tbe am- 
 phigastrium at the apex, becoming gradually displaced until its insertion is at 
 the centre of the free surface. 
 
 The sexual organs are generally borne on the main axis and its normal 
 branches, but in many cases (e.g. Metzgeria, Mastigobryum, Calypogeia, 
 Lepidozia, Saccogyna, Lophocolea, many species of Jungermanuia) they are 
 confined to more or less specialised ventral branches (gametophores). The 
 place of development of the archegonia affords the basis for the classification 
 of the Jungermanniaceae into the two main groups, Acrogynae and Anacrogynae. 
 In the former, which includes all tbe foliose forms (except Blasia, Fossombronia, 
 Androcryphia, Petalophyllum, Haplomitrium, Paella), the arcbegonia are pro- 
 duced from the apical cell and its youngest segments at the growing-point ; 
 hence when the formation of the archegonia takes place on a shoot its further 
 elongation is arrested. In the latter group, which includes all the thalloid 
 forms and the exceptional foliose forms just mentioned, the archegonia are 
 produced laterally, on the dorsal surface in the dorsiventral forms, on all sides 
 in tbe radial forms (species of Biellh, Haplomitrium) ; hence the growth in 
 length of the shoot is not necessarily arrested. 
 
 The archegonia of the Acrogjnaa ara borne either singly (Lejeuuia, Phrag- 
 micoma), or in groups of two (Frullania) or more (e.g. Eadula, Alicularia, 
 Lopbocolea). Each archegonium is developed from a single cell; when the 
 archegonium is single it is developed from the apical cell; when there are 
 
348 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 several arctiegonia, the development of them begins in the youngest segment- 
 cells of the growing-point. The archegonia are surrounded by the leaves of the 
 apex ; and in most cases the leaves of the last whorl are coherent, forming 
 an involucre, surrounding the single archegonium or the group of archegonia. 
 In the Jungerinannieae Geocalyceoa (e (j. Calypogeia, Saccogyna) the invo- 
 lucre arises as an annular outgrowth, forming a large cavity enclosing the 
 archegonia; after fertilisation, it attains a relatively large size, and forces 
 itself partially into the soil (hence the name Geocalyx), which may even root 
 itself. 
 
 The archegonia of the thalloid Anaerogynae are borne in median dorsal 
 groups : in the dorsiventral foliose Anacrogynae (Blasia, Fossombronia, Andro- 
 cryphia, Petalophyllum), they are borne singly or in groups on the dorsal 
 surface of the stem, and in the dorsiventral Eiellese singly on the flanks of the 
 stem: in the radial Anacrogynse (Riella helicophylla, Haplomitrium) they are 
 borne singly, scattered over the whole length of the stem as in the former, or 
 confined to the apical region as in the latter. They are in all cases provided 
 with some sort of protective organ. Among the thalloid Anacrogynaa the group 
 of archegonia is surrounded, in Metzgeria, Aneura, and Pseudoueura, by an 
 involucre consisting of the short modified gametophore (ventral in Metzgeria) ; 
 in Pellia, Symphyogyna, and Sphaerocarpus a group (or each archegonium as 
 generally in Sphasrocarpus) is surrounded by an involucre developed as an out- 
 growth of the tissue of the fertile branch ; in Blyttia, Morkia, Umbraculum 
 (hence termed Diplomitrieas) there is a double involucre, generally resembling 
 the preceding, but the inner involucre (perigynium ?), attains its full develop- 
 ment only after the fertilisation of an archegonium of the group ; finally, in 
 Monoclea, the archegonium becomes overgrown by, and hence sunk in, the 
 tissue of the shoot. Among the foliose Anacrogynee, the archegonia are 
 generally protected by perichastial leaves, and further by an involucre or 
 perigynium (absent in Haplomitrium) which generally invests a single arche- 
 gonium, and in some cases (Blasia, Fossombronia, Androcryphia) is only 
 developed after fertilisation. In Blasia the growth of tissue subsequently to 
 fertilisation is so active that the fertilised archegonium becomes completely 
 sunk in the tissue of the shoot. 
 
 The antheridia are borne, in all Jungermanniaceae (except Haplomitrium) on 
 the dorsal surface of the shoot ; in Haplomitrium they are. borne in three 
 rows on the sides of the apical region. 
 
 In Riella helicophylla the antheridia are borne sunk in the tissue of the free 
 edge of the membranous wing. As the symmetry of the plant is radial, it 
 presents no distinction of dorsal and ventral surfaces ; still the position of the 
 antheridia in R. helicophylla is dorsal by analogy, since in the dorsiventral E. 
 Reuteri, the wing, which likewise bears the antheridia, is an outgrowth of the 
 dorsal surface of the stem ; antheridia have been observed as yet only in these 
 two species of Kiella. 
 
 The antheridia are shortly stalked and are in all cases provided with a pro- 
 tection. In Metzgeria the group of antheridia is invested by an involucre 
 which consists of the short modified ventral gametophore : in the other 
 thalloid Anacrogynae, as also in Androcryphia, Blasia, Petalophyllum, and 
 Biella, each antheridium is invested by an involucre which grows up around it, so 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : HEPATiC^E. 349 
 
 that it appears to be sunk in the tissue of the shoot. In Fossombronia, Haplo- 
 mitrium, and the Acrogynaa, the antheridia are protected by the leaves : in the 
 Acrogynre the antheridia are borne, singly or several together, in the axils of 
 leaves; and in some forms (e.g. Scapania, Lejeunia, Frullania) the upper lobe 
 of the protecting leaf is modified in form. 
 
 The distribution of the sexual organs varies even in the species of some of the 
 genera. Among the Anacrogynae, Metzgeria, Pseudoneura, Morkia, Umbra- 
 cnlum, Petalophyllum, Sphasrocarpus, Haplomitrium, Blyttia (generally), and 
 l^iella helicophylla, are dioecious; whereas Pellia, Aneura (some species), 
 Fossombronia, Symphyogyna, Androcryphia, and Eiella Beuteri, are generally 
 monoecious. In the monoecious forms the antheridia and archegonia are 
 generally borne on distinct branches (diclinous), but sometimes on the same 
 branch (monoclinous), as in Androcryphia and occasionally in Blyttia. When 
 a dorsiventral shoot bears only antheridia or archegonia, they are developed in 
 the median line ; but when it bears both organs, the archegonia are median and 
 the antheridia lateral. 
 
 The AcrogyusB are generally monoecious and diclinous. 
 
 The structure of the adult sJioot <i the Juugermanniaceas is very simple. In 
 thalloid forms which have no midrib, the shoot consists of parenchymatous 
 cells forming a single layer at the margin and several layers (e.g. Pellia, 
 Aneura, Sphasrocarpus), in the middle line of the shoot ; in those which have a 
 midrib (e.g. Metzgeria, Symph^ogyua, Blyttia, etc.), the midrib consists of 
 several layers of cells, whereas the lamina consists of only a single layer. In 
 Symphyogyna and Blyttia the midrib is traversed by a strand of elongated 
 prosenchymatous cells having thickened and more or less pitted walls. In 
 Blasia the stem has an axial strand of elongated cells with delicately pitted walls. 
 
 In the Acrogynae, the stem generally consists of an axial strand of relatively 
 thin- walled cells, surrounded by a cortex of narrow thick-walled cells; but in 
 those forms which give rise to endogenous ventral branches (e.g. Calypogeia) 
 the cortical cells of the ventral surface of the stem are not thick-walled. The 
 leaves are simply single layers of similar cells, and have no midrib. 
 
 The root-hairs are, in all cases, destitute of the peculiar thickenings so 
 characteristic of the Marchantiaceae. 
 
 B. The SPOKOPHTTE. The course of the development of the sporophyte is, 
 in its main features, essentially the same throughout the Jungermanniaceoe. 
 
 The oospore is divided by a transverse (basal) wall into two halves, epibasal 
 and hypobasal. The epibasal cell gives rise to the capsule and its stalk (seta). 
 It divides transversely, and the longitudinal divisions follow in both cells so 
 that the epibasal half of the embryo consists of two tiers of each consisting of 
 four cells. Further growth in length is effected by the cutting off, by trans- 
 verse walls, of segments from the cells forming the apical tier ; but this apical 
 growth is arrested, sooner or later, by the formation of walls parallel to the free 
 surface (periclinal) in the apical cells, and also frequently in some of those 
 below them, which indicate the differentiation of the capsule-wall (amphi- 
 thecium) from the internal mass of cells (endothecium) which give rise to the 
 spores and elaters. The cells below the capsule may, however, continue to 
 grow and divide transversely, and by means of this intercalary growth the full 
 length of the seta is attaint d. 
 
350 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Though the mode of growth of the epibasal half of the embryo is most com- 
 monly that described above, it not infrequently happens that the growth of the 
 two longitudinal halves is unequal, owing to the fact that the first longitudinal 
 wall is not perpendicular to the basal wall, but is oblique. Consequently the 
 apex is occupied by the two cells of the longer half, and in those cases in which 
 the apical growth is long-continued the result is that the capsule may be de- 
 veloped entirely from one longitudinal half of the embryo. This mode of 
 development has been observed in Blasia, Pellia, Fossombronia, Haplomitrium, 
 and Symphyogyna ; in Fossombronia and Symphyogyna an embryo of this 
 kind appears to grow in length, for a time at least, by means of a two-sided 
 apical cell. 
 
 In many of the Jungermanniacea} (e.g. Pellia, Lepidozia, Jungermannia, 
 Calypogeia, Frullania) the lower end of the seta developes into a bulbous mass 
 of cells forming a false foot, the upper margin of which grows up so as to form 
 a sheath round the lower part of the seta in some cases. 
 
 The development of the hypobasal portion of the embryo is comparatively 
 insignificant; in most cases it is merely a small appendage to the lower end of 
 tbe seta. The hypobasal cell enlarges somewhat, without undergoing any 
 division (e.g. Eadula, Madotheca, Lepidozia, often in Pellia and Symphyogyna,) ; 
 or it undergoes transverse division to form a filament of two or three cells, the 
 lowest of which becomes elongated and grows down among the cells at the base 
 of the archegonium (e.g. Metzgeria, Aneura, Jungermannia bicuspidata) ; or it 
 divides by a longitudinal wall into two cells which grow out into papillae 
 (Frullania dilatata), or, by further division its produces four papillae (Calypogeia 
 Tricliomanis) ; or, finally, it divides irregularly to form a small group of cells 
 (Blasia). In some forms, however (e.g. Fossombronia, Petalophyllum, probably 
 also Sphaerocarpus, Riella helicopJiyila, Notarisii, and Renter i), the hypobasal 
 cell appears to give rise to a true foot, bulbous in form, comparable to that of 
 the Marchantieae (see p. 340). 
 
 In the further differentiation of the capsule, the cells of the amphithecium 
 undergo periclinal division so that the wall eventually consists of two or more 
 (up to six) layers of cells ; though in Haplomitrium, Sphaerocarpus, and Riella, 
 the wall consists throughout of a single layer of cells. In the wall-cells annular 
 thickenings are developed, which are usually transverse; but in Haplomitrium 
 there is a single annular thickening situated longitudinally ; the cells are un- 
 thickened in Sphaerocarpus and Kiella. The planes of dehiscence of the cap- 
 sule, except in those forms which dehisce irregularly (Riella, Sphaerocarpns), are 
 marked out by four longitudinal rows of small-celled tissue which correspond 
 in position with the walls between the four apical cells of the growing embryo. 
 
 The archesporium, which is co-extensive with the endothecium, presents 
 various degrees and forms of differentiation. In Kiella and Sphaerocarpus it 
 comes to consist of a number of cubical cells, some of which become the 
 mother-cells of the spores, whereas the others persist as unaltered sterile cells. 
 In all the other Jungermanniaceae some of the cells of the endothecium are 
 sterile, but they develope into elaters, becoming elongated in form and spirally 
 thickened, having sometimes two spirals (Haplomitrium, Plagiochila, Scapania, 
 Juugermannia, Lophocolea, Lepidozia, Radula, Fossombronia, Symphyogyna, 
 Blasia, etc.), or only one (in the JubuleaB, e.g. Lejeunia, Frullania, and in 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA: HEPATIC2E. 351 
 
 Aneura, Metzgeria). The relative arrangement of the sterile and fertile cells, de- 
 pendent upon the growth of the capsule along different diameters, varies some- 
 what. In the lower forms, the elongated archesphoria! cells are arranged more or 
 less longitudinally, either quite straight (e.g. Frullania, Lejeunia, Symphyogyna, 
 Umbraculum), or radiating from the apex of .the capsule (Metzgeria, Aneura), 
 or radiating from the base of the capsule (Pellia, Radula) : whereas in the 
 higher forms (Lepidozia, Calypogeia, Jungermaunia), these cells are placed 
 horizontally round a central longitudinal axis, except at the apex where they 
 radiate. In most cases the sterile and fertile archesporial cells are mingled 
 together, but in some cases certain parts of the archesporium give rise especi- 
 ally to ppores and others to elaters. Thus, in Pellia, the cells towards the base 
 and those in the longitudinal axis of the capsule form only elaters, whereas in 
 Jungermannia the formation of elaters is confined to the cells near to the wall. 
 Whilst the development of the embryo is taking place, growth is also pro- 
 ceeding in the archegonium and the adjacent tissue, giving rise eventually to 
 the calyptra. Several of the archegonia of a group may be fertilised, but 
 generally only one gives rise to a fully developed sporogonium, and itself takes 
 part in the formation of the calyptra. The calyptra is sometimes developed 
 from the venter of the archegonium alone (e.g. generally in the Acrogynoe, and 
 in Metzgeria, Fossombronia) ; in the Anacrogynffl the adjacent tissue of the 
 shoot frequently takes part in its formation, as is shown by the fact that the 
 unfertilised archegonia of the original group are found on the sides, or even on 
 the top of the calyptra (e.g. Aneura, Symphogyna). The wall of the calyptra 
 consists of one or more layers of cells, and keeps pace with the growth of the 
 embryo which it encloses until the spores are mature. The cells of the seta 
 then rapidly elongate, causing the rupture of the calyptra, and the capsule is 
 exposed. The capsule then dehisces, generally into four valves, sometimes 
 irregularly, and the spores are set free. 
 
 The Jungermanniaceas may be classified as follows : 
 
 Series I. ANACEOGYNJE : growth in length not necessarily arrested by the 
 
 development of archegonia. 
 Section A. Anelatereae : the sterile cells in the capsule do not develope 
 
 into elaters. 
 
 Fain. 1. Riellea : including the two genera Eiella (foliose) and 
 Sphferocarpus (thalloid) ; further characterised by the 
 absence of annular thickenings in the cells of the wall 
 of the capsule, by the irregular dehiscence of the cap- 
 sule, and (probably) by the development of a true (hypo- 
 basal) foot. 
 
 Section B. Elaterese : the sterile cells in the capsule develope into elaters. 
 a. Thalloid Forms. 
 
 Fam. 2. Metzgeriece : genera, Aneura and Pseudoneura (Riccardia), 
 
 Metzgeria. 
 
 3. Diplomitrifee : Blyttia and Morkia (Pallavicinia), Umbra- 
 culum (Hymenophyton), Pellia, Symphyogyna. 
 j3. Foliose Forms. 
 
 Fain. 4. Codoniea: Fossombronia, Androcryphia (Noteroclada), 
 
 Petalophyllum, Blasia. 
 5. Haplomitriece : Haplomitrium, Calobryum. 
 
352 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Series II. ACKOGTTNJE : growth in length arrested by the development of 
 
 archegouia ; all foliose. 
 Fam. 6. Gymnomitriece : Gymnomitrium, Sarcoscyphus (Marsupella), 
 
 Alicularia (Nardia), etc. 
 7. Junyermanniece : Plagiochila, Jungermannia, Lophocolea, 
 
 Scapania, etc. 
 
 8. Geccalycece : Saccogyna, Calypogeia, etc. 
 9. TrichoiiianoidecB : Lepidozia, Mastigobryura, etc. 
 ,, 10. Ptilidece : Tricbocolea, Ptilidium, Sendtnera, etc. 
 11. Platyphyllea : Kadula, Madotheca. 
 ,, 12. JuiulfdR : Phragmicoma, Lejeunia, Frullania, etc. 
 Order III. Anthocerotaceae. 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTK. The protooema developed from the germinating 
 spore is a flattened plate of cells; in Anthoceros the formation of the flattened 
 plate is sometimes preceded by the outgrowth of the contents of the spore, 
 covered by the endosporium, into a filament at the apex of which the plate of 
 cells is developed ; in Dendroceros the first cell-divisions connected with the 
 formation of the protenema frequently take place wiihin the spores before they 
 are ehed from the sporogonium. The adult shoot 
 is developed as a lateral out-growth from the 
 flattened protonema. 
 
 The Morphology of the adult nhoot. The adult 
 shoot is thalloid, and its symmetry is dorsiventral. 
 It is semi-circular, or nearly circular, in outline in 
 Antboceros and Notothylas ; but in Dendroceros it 
 is elongated and branched, in which genus it has a 
 strongly developed midrib which projects especially 
 FIG. 246. Anthoceros lawis on the ventral (under) surface. There are no ven- 
 (nat. size). K The capsules, tra j gcaleg Qn the under surface bm numer ous uni- 
 some as yet unopened. . 
 
 cellular root-hairs. 
 
 The growth of the shoot is effected, in Anthoceros and Notothylas, by a series 
 of marginal growing-points ; in Dendroceros, by a growing-point at the apex of 
 the main shoot and of each of its branches. In the growing-point there is a 
 row of initial cells, each of which acts as an apical cell ; their form is wedge- 
 shaped in Anthoceros, dorsal and ventral segments being alternately cut off by 
 the formation of oblique walls; in Dendroceros their form is nearly hemi- 
 spheral, the base being internal, and segments are cut off by the successive 
 formation of transverse walls at right angles to the long axis of the shoot. 
 
 Branching, or at least the formation of new growing-points, takes place in 
 the manner described for the Marchantiaceae (p. 184). 
 
 The sexual organs are developed from the dorsal segments formed in the 
 growing-point, and are situated in the middle line behind each growing-point 
 in Anthoceros and Notothvlas, on the midrib in Dendroceros. The antheridia, 
 which have a long stalk in Dendroceros, are developed endogeuously, and remain 
 enclosed in the tissue until maturity ; they are developed either singly (some 
 species of Anthoceros, Dendroceros) or in groups. The archegonia are sunk in 
 the tissue, the apex of the neck reaching to the dorsal surface of the shoot. 
 The shoots are monoecious; the sexual organs are sometimes intermingled wi 
 tfae same group (frequently in Anthoceros). 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : HEPATIC^). 353 
 
 IQ exceptional cases the autheridia of Anthoceros may be developed at the 
 surface, i.e. exogenously. 
 
 The structure of the adult shoot. The adult shoot, in Anthoceros and 
 Notothylas, consists of several layers of cells in the middle line, thinning 
 out to a single layer of cells at the margins. The tissue in the middle line 
 consists of longitudinally elongated cells, the walls of which, especially in the 
 older parts of the shoot, frequently present reticulate or even spiral thickening. 
 In Dendroceros there is a prominent midrib, on each side of which is attached 
 a laminar portion, consisting of a single layer of cells ; in some species there 
 are no intercellular spaces, but in others there are air-chambers in the mid- 
 rib, which give to its surface the areolated appearance so well-marked in the 
 Marchantiaceae (see p. 338). 
 
 A characteristic structural feature is the presence of apertures of the nature 
 of pores iii the superficial layer of those parts of the shoot which consist of 
 several layers of cells. They occur generally only on the under (ventral) sur- 
 face of the shoot, but in some species of Dendroceros (D. javanicus, crispatus, 
 Breutelii) they are present on the dorsal surface also. The pore is bounded 
 by two guard-cells, formed by the division of one of the superficial cells. It 
 leads into a cavity which is, from the first, filled with mucilage. Into this 
 cavity the Alga Nostoc obtains access through the pore, and there grows and 
 multiplies. The growth of the Nostoc in the cavity is accompanied by active 
 growth of the cells of the surrounding tissue, so that the whole mass projects 
 from the surface of the shoot, and the guard-cells grow and divide, so that the 
 cavity becomes completely closed. At the same time, filamentous septate out- 
 growths arise from the cells of the wall of the cavity, which ramify throughout 
 the mucilaginous mass (comp. Blasia, p. 347). 
 
 The chloroplastids of the Anthocerotaceaa are peculiar, on account of their 
 relatively large size, and of the fact that they occur singly in the cells and con- 
 tain a pyrenoid (see p. 100). 
 
 B. The SPOROPHYTE. The early stages in the development of the sporophyte 
 of the Anthocerotaceae appear to be much the same as in the case of other 
 Liverworts (Fig. 239 C). The oospore divides transversely into an epibasal and 
 a hypobasal half: and each of these divides by two perpendicular walls so that 
 the embryo consists at this stage of eight cells. The cells of the epibasal half 
 divide transversely several times, and then further apical growth in length is 
 arrested by the formation of periclinal walls, marking the differentiation of 
 amphithecium and endothecium, first in the four apical cells, and subsequently 
 in those below them. By the repeated formation of periclinal walls, the amphi- 
 thecium comes to consist of several layers of cells. The hypobasal cells under- 
 go but few divisions, giving rise to a bulbous foot, the superficial cells of which 
 grow out into papillas and penetrate between the cells of the adjacent tissue of 
 the gametophyte. 
 
 The details of the differentiation of the epibasal portion of the embryo vary 
 considerably. In Anthoceros and Dendroceros (Figs. 238, 239) the archesporium 
 is developed from the innermost layer of cells of the amphithecium, a peculi- 
 arity, the only other instance of which, in the Muscineas, is to be found in the 
 Sphagnaceas (p. 331) : the endothecium gives rise to an axial strand of sterile 
 tissue, termed the columella, which is completely invested (except at the base, 
 
 V. S.B. A A 
 
354 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 where it is continuous with the tissue of the foot) by the archesporium. In 
 Notothylas. the archesporium is commonly co-extensive with the endothecium ; 
 but in some forms the archesporium is developed from only the external layer 
 of the endothecium, the rest of the endothecium constituting a columella (as in 
 the Bryineae among the Musci). 
 
 In all three genera some of the cells derived from the archesporium are 
 sterile. In Dendroceros these cells develope into elaters with spiral thicken- 
 ings, each elater consisting of a row of several cells with an apparently con- 
 tinuous spiral band. In some species of Anthoceros (e.g. vicentianus, giganteus, 
 etc., constituting the subgenus Anthocerites) there are elaters quite similar to 
 those of Dendroceros : in other species (e.g. tuberculatus, glandnlosus) the 
 elaters have the same form, but they have no spiral band ; in others (Iceuia, 
 punctatus) the sterile cells do not form distinct elaters, but a network of short 
 cells, with spiral thickening, in the meshes of which lie the mother- cells of the 
 spores. In Notothylas the sterile cells do not develope into elaters ; they are 
 so arranged as to form chambers, in which lie the mother-cells of the spores. 
 
 The sporogonium of Anthoceros and Dendroceros has no seta ; when the 
 apical growth has ceased, the capsule continues to elongate by basal growth, 
 and hence does not ever become fully mature throughout. In Notothylas the 
 sporogonium has a short seta, and elongates by intercalary growth, the grow- 
 ing-point being situated at the junction of the capsule with the seta ; but the 
 intercalary growth is of limited duration, so that the whole capsule becomes 
 mature throughout, and frequently becomes disconnected from the seta. The 
 pod-shaped capsule of Anthoceros and of Dendroceros splits from the apex 
 into two valves (Fig. 246). Stomata occur in the epidermis of the capsule in 
 most species of Anthoceros, but they appear to be wanting in the other genera. 
 
 Since the archegonia are sunk in the tissue of the shoot, the calyptra, which 
 invests the developing embryo, is developed mainly from the surrounding 
 tissue, and only to a small extent from the wall of the archegonium. 
 
 CLASS IV. MUSCI (Mosses). 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTE. The profonema is more conspicuous in 
 the Musci than in the Hepaticse : it sometimes persists until the 
 sporogonia are developed and the spores are ripe (e.g. Ephemerum), 
 and in many cases the subterranean portion persists from year to 
 year. It is generally filamentous and much branched ; but in 
 some forms it is a flattened expansion (e.g. Sphagnum, Andresea), 
 or cylindrical branched and shrubby (Andreaea), or it bears lateral 
 flattened expansions which are assimilatory organs (e.g. Andresea, 
 Tetraphis, etc.). The filamentous protonema consists of a sub- 
 aerial and of a subterranean portion, which differ in that the cells 
 of the former contain chloroplastids, their walls are colourless, 
 and the septa are transverse ; whereas those of the latter do not 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : MUSCI. 355 
 
 contain chloroplastids, and their walls are brown and their septa 
 oblique. The protoriema presents, in fact, a certain differentiation 
 into shoot and root, the term rhizoids being applied to the root-like 
 filaments. This differentiation is, however, of little morphological 
 value, since the differences between the shoot- and root-filaments 
 depend entirely on external conditions : thus, if the rhizoids be 
 exposed to light they assume the characters of the subaerial 
 filaments. In Andresea the differentiation is altogether wanting. 
 The flattened protonema of Sphagnum bears rhizoids on its 
 margins and under surface. 
 
 The growth in length of the protonemal filaments is apical : the 
 terminal cell behaves as an apical cell from which segments are 
 successively cut off by transverse or oblique walls. 
 
 The Adult Shoot arises as a lateral bud on the subaerial portion of 
 the protonema. In some cases (Bryineee) the subterranean portion 
 gives rise to lateral buds : these are small, spherical or lenticular, 
 multicellular bodies of a brown colour, filled with reserve materials, 
 and are termed bulbils- when they are brought to the surface 
 they give rise to adult shoots, either directly or with the interven- 
 tion of protonema. 
 
 The adult shoot is in all cases differentiated into stem and 
 leaves, and may be branched or unbranched. Its symmetry is 
 commonly radial or isobilateral, less commonly dorsiventral. In 
 the former case it is attached to the soil by rhizoids springing 
 from its basal portion ; in the latter, by rhizoids developed on its 
 under surface. In Sphagnum, rhizoids occur only on young 
 shoots. 
 
 The growth of the adult shoot (and its branches) is affected by 
 means of an apical growing-point with a single apical cell which 
 is generally a three-sided pyramid : in Fissidens, however, though 
 the subterranean shoots, and in some species the subaerial lateral 
 shoots, have a three- sided apical cell, yet, under the influence of 
 light, the apical cell eventually becomes two-sided. 
 
 Each segment cut off from the apical cell gives rise to a leaf : 
 hence the arrangement of the leaves, and the symmetry of the 
 shoot, is generally determined by the form of the apical cell. 
 Thus in Fissidens, the leaves are arranged in two rows and the 
 symmetry of the shoot is isobilateral : in other cases (e.g. Fontin- 
 alis) the leaves are in three rows, and the symmetry of the shoot 
 is radial. But to this rule there are exceptions. Thus, in. the 
 sterile shoots of Schistostega, although the apical cell is three- 
 
356 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 sided, the leaves are arranged, in consequence of subsequent dis- 
 placement, in two rows, and the symmetry of the shoot is isobi- 
 lateral. Again, in Sphagnum, Polytrichum, Andresea, etc., the 
 leaves are not arranged in three rows with a divergence of -|> but 
 spirally with divergences of f, -f, etc., because the walls of the seg- 
 ments cut off successively from any one side of the three-sided 
 apical cell are not parallel to each other, but are inclined at an 
 angle. The symmetry of the shoot is, however, radial. 
 
 Branching is confined to perennial shoots, and is lateral, never 
 dichotomous. When the growth of the main shoot is arrested 
 by the formation of sexual organs at the apex (acrocarpous), one 
 (or more) of the lateral branches (termed innovations) close behind 
 the apex assumes the characters of the main shoot and carries on 
 the growth : the resulting branch-system is cymose, either 
 sympodial or dichasial according to the number (one or more) of 
 the innovations at each branching. When the growth of the 
 main stem is not thus arrested, the sexual organs being borne 
 on lateral branches (pleurocarpous), the branch- system is mono- 
 podial and racemose. 
 
 The branches (except the innovations) frequently differ in 
 various ways from the primary shoot. Thus, in Sphagnum and 
 other pleurocarpous Mosses, the leaves of the branches differ in 
 size and shape from those of the primary shoot : in other forms 
 (e.g. Thuidium) the lateral branches have limited growth. 
 
 The development of the branches, though never axillary, is 
 intimately connected with the arrangement of the leaves, since 
 the apical cell of a branch is developed from the same segment as 
 the corresponding leaf. Each branch is developed beneath the 
 corresponding leaf, either in the median line (e.g. Fontinalis), or 
 on one side of it (e.g. Sphagnum). However, a branch is not 
 developed in connexion with each leaf. 
 
 In most cases the adult shoot does not present any differentia- 
 tion into a vegetative and a reproductive portion (gametophore), 
 but such a differentation is to be found in certain forms. Thus, 
 in Splachnum, the male organs are borne upon a leafless prolonga- 
 tion of the shoot : again in Schistostega the fertile and the sterile 
 shoots differ from each other in form ; the sterile shoot is leafless at 
 the base, but from the middle upwards it bears two rows of leaves 
 inserted longitudinally, so that the shoot resembles a small fern- 
 leaf ; the fertile shoot bears at its upper part a tuft of leaves in 
 five rows, inserted obliquely or transversely, whilst the lower part 
 
GROUP II. BUYOPHYTA: MUSCT. 357 
 
 is either leafless or bears a few leaves like those of the sterile 
 shoot. 
 
 In Sphagnum and Andreeea, the apex of the female shoot grows 
 oat, after fertilisation of the archegonium, into a long leafless 
 shoot termed a pseudopodium, which bears the sporogonium (here 
 destitute of a seta) at its apex. In Aulacomnium and Tetraphis 
 there is a somewhat similar terminal shoot, likewise termed a 
 pseudopodium, which bears at its apex a cluster of gemmae. 
 
 The Leaves present considerable variety in size and form (hetero- 
 phylly, see p. 57) : they may be divided, in the first instance, into 
 foliage-leaves and involucral leaves. 
 
 The foliage-leaves are simple and sessile; they are usually 
 inserted transversely on the stem, and are closely packed. They 
 are generally larger towards the upper than towards the lower 
 part of the shoot. In most pleurocarpous Mosses the leaves of the 
 lateral branches differ more or less from those of the main stem. 
 In some forms (e.g. Bryum roseum, Cliinacium, etc.), where the 
 branches take the form of creeping runners or stolons, the leaves 
 of these branches are reduced to scales (cataphyllary leaves). 
 
 The involucral leaves are arranged in one or more whorls, 
 forming an involucre round the sexual organs. Those surrounding 
 a group of male organs are commonly larger than the foliage- 
 leaves, and in some cases (e.g. Polytrichaceae) are coloured red or 
 yellow. Those surrounding a group of female organs differ but 
 little from the foliage-leaves : the more internal leaves are smaller 
 than the external : the innermost leaves, distinguished as perichce- 
 tial leaves, are quite rudimentary when the archegonia are mature, 
 but after fertilisation has taken place they grow up round the base 
 of the seta of the sporogonium. 
 
 The Sexual Organs are borne in groups (rarely singly) at the apex 
 either of the main shoots (acrocarpous}, or of lateral branches 
 (pleurocarpous), surrounded by involucral leaves, each group with 
 its involucre constituting a receptacle. Generally speaking the 
 growth of the shoot or branch ceases with the development of the 
 sexual organs, the apical cell itself giving rise to an antheridium 
 or an archegonium ; but in some male receptacles (e.g. Poly trichacese 
 and some other Bryineae, also Sphagnum) the apical cell persists as 
 such ; consequently the elongation of the shoot or branch is not 
 necessarily arrested by the development of the antheridia, and 
 appears to grow through the receptacle. 
 
 Among the sexual organs there are usually present multicellular 
 
358 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 hairs, termed paraphyses : they are often filamentous, but in some 
 cases (e.g. male receptacle of Funaria) the terminal cells are large 
 and rounded ; they are hyaline, or coloured red or yellow, some- 
 times brownish, and the cells frequently contain chloroplastids. 
 They are more numerous and more highly developed in the male 
 than in the female receptacles .; they are rarely absent in plants 
 which grow in dry situations, but frequently in those forms which 
 grow in water or in damp places. Their function seems to be that 
 of secreting water to prevent the drying-up of the sexual organs. 
 
 The antheridia are generally club-shaped (spherical in Sphag- 
 num), and are shortly stalked (see Fig. 233) ; the base of the 
 stalk is dilated in some cases (e.g. Andreeea). The antheridia 
 generally open at the apex to allow the spermatozoids to escape. 
 The archegonia are stalked ; the neck is long, and the venter is 
 but slightly dilated (Fig. 235). 
 
 The distribution of the sexual organs is various. The plant may 
 be monoecious (i.e. may bear both kinds of sexual organs), or it 
 may be dioecious : amongst the monoecious forms may be distin- 
 guished those which are monoclinous, that is, which have both male 
 and female organs in the same receptacle (e.g. Bryum lacustre, 
 cuspidatum, etc.), the archegonia being in the middle ; and those 
 which are diclinous, that is, which bear the male and female organs 
 in distinct receptacles: sometimes (e.g. Bryum pendulum, arciicum, 
 etc.) the plants are heteroclinous or polygamous, that is, some 
 receptacles are hermaphrodite, whilst others are unisexual.. In 
 the dioecious species the male plant is usually the smaller, and is 
 short-lived. Jn some species the plants are sometimes monoecious 
 (either monoclinous or diclinous) and sometimes dioecious. 
 
 The Structure of the Adult Shoot. The stem presents more or 
 less well-marked histological differentiation. The outer portion 
 generally consists of one or more layers of elongated prosenchy- 
 matous cells, with thickened walls which are yellow or brown, 
 forming the cortex which passes by gradual transition into thin- 
 walled parenchymatous ground-tissue ; in the subterranean shoots 
 of the PolytrichaceaB, however, the cortex is parenchymatous and 
 thin- walled, whilst the central tissue is thick- walled. 
 
 In many species a central strand, lying in the longitudinal axis 
 of the stem, can be distinguished, the structure of which presents 
 two principal varieties; it may be simple, consisting of a group of 
 thin- walled tracheides, destitute of protoplasmic cell-contents (e.g. 
 species of Mnium, Meesia longiseta, Archidium alternifolium) ; or it 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : MUSCI. 359 
 
 is compound, consisting of a group of thick-walled traeheides, or 
 of several groups of thin- walled tracheides with intervening paren- 
 chyrnatous or prosenchymatous cells, surrounded by several layers 
 of thin-walled elongated cells with oblique ends, containing abun- 
 dant protoplasm and starch-grains (e.g. Polytrichaceae). This cen- 
 tral strand is, in fact, a rudimentary vascular stele : the tracheides, 
 though unlignified, represent the wood or xylem : in the simple 
 form, the phloem is unrepresented- in the compound form it is 
 represented by the elongated cells which surround the xylem. 
 
 The degree of development of the xylem of the central strand 
 is dependent upon external conditions. It is well developed in 
 those forms (e.g. Polytrichum, Bryum, Phascum, Funaria, 
 Fissidens, Meesia, Splachnum) which grow under such conditions 
 that, whilst transpiration is active, an adequate supply of water 
 can be absorbed. It is, on the contrary, rudimentary or absent in 
 those forms which (a) live under conditions in which they are 
 liable to be dried up (e.g. Hypnum, Barbula, Orthotrichum, etc.) ; 
 or (b) which grow in very wet situations, or actually in water (e.g. 
 Sphagnum, Fontinalis, etc.). 
 
 The structure of the leaves shows considerable variety. Most 
 commonly the leaf-blade consists of a single layer of cells, con- 
 taining chloroplastids, with or without a midrib. In the midrib of 
 those forms which have a central strand in their stems, there are 
 one or more rudimentary vascular bundles of a structure corres- 
 ponding to those in the stem. These bundles enter the stem as 
 leaf-traces, and either end blindly, or join the central strand of the 
 stem. The rest of the midrib is made up chiefly of thick-walled 
 prosenchymatous cells. 
 
 The most remarkable deviations from the usual structure of the 
 lamina are those offered by the Sphagnaceae and the Polytrich- 
 aceee. In the Sphagnaceae the constituent cells are of two kinds : 
 large empty cells with perforated walls (see infra, p. 364), and 
 small cells containing chloroplastids. In the Polytrichacese, the 
 assimilatory tissue is borne on the surface of the broad midrib in 
 the form of numerous longitudinal plates, one cell thick. Some- 
 thing similar occurs in Aloina (Aloidella) and some other forms, 
 where the upper half of the inner surface of the leaf is covered 
 with hairs, the cells of which contain many chloroplastids. 
 
 The rhizoids which spring from the shoot are essentially similar 
 to those of the protonema : in the Polytrichaceae they become 
 wound together into strands. 
 
360 PAET III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The gametophyte of the Musci possesses a remarkable capacity 
 for vegetative propagation. Thus the perennial protonema of many 
 species serves year by year to produce new adult shoots which, not 
 unfrequently, become distinct plants. In the pleurocarpous forms 
 (e.g. Sphagnum, Hypnum) the main axes gradually die away from 
 behind, the lateral branches becoming isolated, and constituting 
 the main axes of new plants. In probably the majority of the 
 Musci almost any portion of the body, a piece of stem or a leaf, 
 will, under proper conditions, grow out into protonemal filaments, 
 which give rise to adult shoots in the usual manner. In certain 
 species, belonging to the Bryinese (A.ulacomnium palustre, A. andro- 
 gynum, Tetraphis pellucida], multicellular gemmae are produced at 
 the apex of the stem, either free or enclosed in a cupule (Tetra- 
 phis). In Aulacomnium palustre the gemmae appear to be modified 
 leaves ; in A. androgynum and in Tetraphis the gemmae are 
 smaller, and consist of but few cells ; in Tetraphis they are borne 
 on long stalks. On being placed under favourable conditions, the 
 cells of the gemma grow out into protonema. 
 
 B. The SPOROPHYTE. The oospore divides into two by a wall 
 (basal wall) transverse to the long axis of the archegonium : from 
 the epibasal half is developed the capsule (theca) and its long or 
 short stalk (seta), whilst the hypobasal half gives rise to a more or 
 less well-developed foot : the whole being termed the sporogonium. 
 
 The segmentation of the oospore into octants (see p. 329) is 
 confined to the epibasal cell, and even this can only be traced in 
 Sphagnum, which in this respect resembles the Liverworts. In 
 the other Mosses, the epibasal cell undergoes one or more trans- 
 verse divisions, after which two oblique walls, cutting each other 
 at an acute angle, are formed in the terminal cell ; the cell marked 
 out by these two oblique walls is a two-sided apical cell by the 
 growth and segmentation of which the further development of 
 the embryo is effected. 
 
 At an early stage in the differentiation of the capsule (see Fig. 
 238 B) the amphithecium, consisting of one or more layers of cells, 
 can be distinguished from the endothecium. The amphithecium 
 constitutes eventually the wall of the capsule ; the internal tissues 
 being formed for the most part from the endothecium. 
 
 The archesporium becomes differentiated in various positions 
 within the young capsule. It is differentiated, in the Sphagnaceae, 
 from the innermost layer of the amphithecium ; in the Andreaeaceae 
 and Bryineae, from the external layer of the endothecium : in 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : MUSCI. 361 
 
 Archidium there is no archesporial layer, but the sporogenous cells 
 are scattered throughout the endotheciura. The cells which bound 
 the archesporium on each side constitute the spore-sac. The endo- 
 thecial tissue which lies internally to the archesporium constitutes 
 the columella. In the Sphagnacea3 and Andreaeaceae the arche- 
 sporiura is a hollow hemisphere covering the top of the columella 
 like a cap ; in the Bryineae the archesporium is a hollow cylinder 
 surrounding the columella which extends to the apex of the cap- 
 sule. In Archidium and in the Bryineaa a large intercellular space 
 is developed in the amphithecium, between its outer and its two 
 inner layers ; in most Polytrichaceas a similar intercellular space is 
 developed in the endothecium internally to the spore-sac, between 
 it and the central portion of the columella. 
 
 At maturity the internal cells of the capsule become dry and dis- 
 organised, so that it simply contains the spores which now lie loose 
 in its cavity. It dehisces by the throwing off of its apical portion 
 as a lid or operculum in Sphagnaceae and the higher Bryineae (Stego- 
 carpse) ; or by longitudinal fissures, as in AndreaeaceaD ; or it rup- 
 tures irregularly or simply decays, as in Archidium and the lower 
 Bryinese (Cleistocarpoe). In the higher Bryineae the mouth of the 
 dehisced capsule bears a fringe, the peristome, the development and 
 structure of which will be described subsequently (p. 368) . 
 
 The basal portion of the capsule, where it joins the seta, is 
 termed the neck. In the Polytrichaceae the neck is considerably 
 dilated, as also in various species of Splachnum (e.g. S. sphcericum, 
 vasculosum, etc.) whilst in Splachnum luteum and rubrum it grows, 
 out into an umbrella-shaped structure. When the neck is thus 
 markedly developed it is termed the apophysis. 
 
 The histological differentiation of the sporogonium is well- 
 marked. There is a well-defined epidermis, in which, on the cap- 
 sule, stomata of various forms are generally present (absent in 
 Andreaeaceae, Archidium, and some Bryinece) ; either scattered all 
 over, as in the Sphagnaceae ; or confined to a particular reg-ion of 
 the capsule, generally the neck or the apophysis, in the Bryinese. 
 The operculum and the peristome (Bryineas) show considerable 
 complexity of structure. The structure of the seta in the higher 
 Bryineae, where alone it is elongated, very much resembles that of 
 the stem : in many forms, even in such in the stem of which no 
 central strand is present, there is a central strand in the seta, 
 marked off from the ground-tissue by one or two layers of sheath- 
 cells. In the Bryineae also, the structure of the neck (or apo- 
 
362 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 physis) is generally characterised by the presence of loose assimil- 
 atory tissue, rich in chloroplastids, the intercellular spaces of which 
 communicate with the outer air by means of the stomata. 
 
 The hypobasal cell undergoes relatively few divisions. In the 
 Sphagnacece, Andreaeacece, and Archidium, it gives rise to a bul- 
 bous foot. In the Bryinese (e.g. Orthotrichurn, Barbula, Atrichum 
 where the hypobasal cell undergoes a single division by a trans- 
 verse wall) the true foot is rudimentary, but it is functionally re- 
 placed (e.g. Phascum, Ephemerum, Polvtriehum) by the dilated 
 lower end of the seta which constitutes a false foot. 
 
 After fertilisation, the venter of the archegonium developes into 
 the calyptra, which, for a time., keeps pace with the growth of the 
 contained embryo, but is eventually ruptured by the gradual 
 elongation of the seta. In Sphagnaoeoe, in Archidium, ajid in 
 Phascum and Ephemerum among the lower Bryineas, the whole of 
 the ruptured calyptra remains as a sheath, the vaginula, round 
 the base of the -short seta ; in the Andreaaacese and in the higher 
 Bryineae the lower portion remains as the vaginula, whilst the 
 upper portion is raised up like a cap (still called calyptra) on the 
 top of the elongating sporogonium. The floor of the receptacle 
 (i.e. the apex of the sexual shoot) is also stimulated to growth, form- 
 ing in most cases a conical projection on which are borne the para- 
 physes and the unfertilised archegonia, whilst in Sphagnaceea and 
 Andreaeaceae it elongates into the long pseudopodium (see p. 328) 
 The perichoetial leaves also grow up round the lower part of the 
 seta or of the pseudopodium. 
 
 The sporogonium, possessing, as it usually does, assimilatory 
 tissue and stomata, can assimilate the carbon dioxide of the air, and 
 can transpire actively. The supply of water necessary to meet the 
 loss by transpiration is obtained, together with salts in solution, 
 from the gametophyte, being absorbed by the true (hypobasal) or 
 the false (epibasal) foot, and it travels to the capsule through the 
 rudimentary xylem-tissue of the central strand present in the seta 
 of the higher forms. It is a point of considerable physiological 
 interest that the absorption of water in the first instance by the 
 gametophyte is apparently .effected for the most part by the leaves 
 rather than by the rhizoids. 
 
 The remarkable capacity for vegetative propagation manifested 
 by the gametophyte is shared by the sporophyte. It has been 
 ascertained that if portions of the capsule or of the seta, whilst 
 the cells are still living, be kept under favourable conditions, the 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : MUSCI. 363 
 
 superficial cells will grow out into protonemal filaments. In this 
 way the gametophyte may be derived from the sporophyte by 
 budding', without the intervention of spores ; when this occurs it is 
 a case of apospory (see p. 87). 
 
 The Mosses are classified as follows: 
 
 Order I. Sphagnaceee. Order III. Archidiacese. 
 
 ,, II. Andreeeaceae. ,, IV. Bryineee. 
 
 Order I. Sphagnacese (Bog-Mosses). 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTE. The spore gives rise on germination to a filamentous 
 protonema ; when germination takes place in water, the protonema remains 
 filamentous and branches, but when it takes place on a solid substratum the 
 pr tonema assumes the form of a branched cellular expansion attached to the 
 substratum by root-like protonemal filaments. In either case adult shoots are 
 developed as branches upon the protonema. 
 
 The Morphology of the Adult Shoot. The shoot is radially symmetrical, and 
 is differentiated into stem and leaves. It consists of a main axis bearing 
 numerous lateral branches^ 
 
 Growth is effected, in both the main axis and the lateral branches, by means 
 of a growing-point in which there is a three-siied apical cell. 
 
 The Sexual Organs are borne on specially modified lateral branches (gameto- 
 phores), the antheridia and archegonia being borne on distinct branches, and in 
 some species on distinct shoots. 
 
 A branch which bears antheridia (antheridiophore) is elongated and is covered 
 with small, closely packed, imbricate leaves, by the side of each of which an 
 antheridium is developed. The antheridium, which is raised upon a long stalk, 
 is spherical ; it opens by the splitting of the wall into valves from the apex 
 downwards. 
 
 A branch which bears archegonia (archegoniophore) is short ; it bears at its 
 apex a group of (1-5) archegonia, surrounded by rather large involucral leaves 
 with rudimentary perichaetial leaves. 
 
 The Structure of the Adult Shoot. The main axis has no central strand ; it 
 consists of a mass of elongated thin-walled parenchymatous cells, which gradually 
 passes over into an external zone of prosenchymatous cells, the walls of which 
 are thick and brown ; externally to this is a cortex, consisting of 1-5 layers of 
 cells which are usually empty, and have large holes in their walls (except the 
 Sphagna cuspidata) ; in some cases (Sphagna cymbifolia) the cortical cells have 
 spiral thickenings. 
 
 The cortex of the lateral branches generally consists of one or two layers of 
 cells. In all, except the Sphagna cymbifolia, the external walls of the cortical 
 cells are not perforated, though the lateral and transverse walls are perforated ; 
 except in the case of certain large retort-shaped cells, situated near the inser- 
 tion of the leaves, which have an external opening at the upper end. 
 
 The leaves vary in form according to their position ; thus stem-leaves, branch- 
 leaves, small scaly leaves, and involucral leaves may be distinguished. They 
 are sessile, and have a broad insertion; in most cases the leaf is connected with 
 the prosenchymatous tissue of the stem, the leaf-tissue extending through the 
 
364 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 cortex. The stem-leaves have, at the base, a pair of lateral appendages, the 
 auriculae. 
 
 The leaf consists of a single layer of cells, and has no midrib. It is made up 
 of two kinds of cells : large empty cells of various forms with perforated walls 
 frequently with spiral or some similar form of thickening : small cells, arranged 
 between the proceeding, containing protoplasm and chloroplastids. The relative 
 arrangement of these two kinds of cells affords a means of classification. Nostoc 
 and other Algae are frequently found in the large empty cells. 
 
 The Sphagnaceae have no special organs for vegetative propagation ; but they 
 multiply vegetatively by the dying away of the main stems so that the lateral 
 branches became separate and constitute distinct plants : consequently these 
 plants are found in considerable masses. They inhabit damp, boggy spots, and 
 retain a considerable quantity of water in the open cells of the branches and 
 
 JOS 
 
 Fis. 218. Longitudinal section (diagram- 
 matic: x 19) of the sporogonium of Sphag- 
 num: ps pseudopodium ; /foot; c calyptra 
 FIG. 247. Part of shoot of Sphagnum with neck of archegonium 7i; a arche- 
 
 acutifolium (nat. size). Ic Capsules. sporium. 
 
 leaves. Masses of Sphagnum thus saturated with water form peat-mosses or 
 peat-bogs, the water being raised to the surface by means of the capillary 
 system formed by the open cello. 
 
 B. The SPOKOPHYTK. The oospore, as in other Mosses, is divided by the 
 transverse basal wall into an epibasal and a hypobasal half. The epibasal half 
 gives rise to the capsule : it grows at first apically, segments being formed by trans- 
 verse walls, each segment being divided into four cells (quadrants) by walls at 
 right angles to each other: after six or eight segments have been formed, apical 
 growth ceases, the further growth being intercalary. The cells of each segment 
 become differentiated each into an external and an internal cell ; the external 
 cells constitute the amphithecium, the internal cells the endothecium. The 
 ainphithecium comes to consist of several layers by periclinal divisions, the 
 first formed and most internal layer constituting, in its upper half, the arches- 
 porium ; the endothecium constitutes the columella. Thus the archesporiuin is 
 a hollow hemisphere which covers the columella as a cap. There is no intercel- 
 lular cavity formed in the capsule. 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : AID SGI. 
 
 305 
 
 The hypobasal half of the oospore undergoes but few divisions, forming a 
 bulbous foot, the superficial cells of which grow out into short papillaa. 
 
 The fully developed sporogonium consists of a capsule attached to the foot by 
 a very short seta ; the wall of the capsule consists of a single layer of cells, and 
 has numerous stomata. The capsule opens by the throwing off of the apical 
 portion of the wall as an operculum. There is no peristome. 
 
 When the calyptra is ruptured, it remains as a vaginula round the base of 
 the capsule. No part of it is carried upon the top of the capsule. 
 
 The growth of the archegoniophore is stimulated by fertilisation. It grows 
 (Fig. 248 pa) out at its apex into a long, leafless stalk, the psendopodium, ex- 
 panded at the top into a cushion of cells in which the foot of the sporogonium 
 is embedded ; the perichaetial leaves grow and surround the base of tbe 
 stalk. 
 
 The order consists of the single genus Sphagnum, of which there are many 
 species. 
 
 Order II. Andreaeaceae. 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTE. The germination of the spore and the various forms 
 of protonema are in many respects peculiar. Cell- divisions take place within 
 the spore before the rupture 
 of the outer coat (exospor- 
 ium), a plate of four cells, 
 sometimes a mass of a 
 larger number of cells, being 
 formed. By the expansion 
 of these cells the exospor- 
 ium is burst ; one or more 
 of the peripheral cells then 
 grow out into branched fila- 
 ments which grow apically, 
 segments being formed by 
 successive transverse walls ; 
 longitudinal walls are also 
 formed, so that the fila- 
 ments consist of two or more longitudinal rows of cells, and may develope into 
 flattened lobed plates of tissue. In some cases cell-divisions take place in 
 three dimensions, so that the protonema becomes cylindrical, consisting of four 
 rows of cells, and produces filamentous branches ; these cylindrical shoots be- 
 come erect, and present a shrubby appearance. Erect, flat, leaf-like plates of 
 tissue may be formed as lateral outgrowths on the protonema, resembling 
 similar structures in other Mosses [e.g. Tetraphis (Georgia) pellucida ; Tetrodon- 
 tium Brownianum]. All these forms of protonema, except the leaf-like struc- 
 tures, give rise to adult shoots as lateral buds. 
 
 The Morphology of the Adult Shoot. The adult shoot consists of a short 
 main stem, closely covered with leaves, and is more or less branched. In an 
 old shoot the branch-system is a sympodium: the lateral branches are produced 
 laterally at the growing-point, and when, owing to the formation of reproduc- 
 tive organs at the apex, the growth of a main stem is arrested, they become 
 nearly erect and continue the growth of the shoot. Growth is apical, and is 
 
 FIG. 249. A Plant of Ephemerum serratum, one of 
 the Bryineae ( x 20) : p protonema ; Ten bud ; b leaves ; 
 fc sporogonium j c calyptra. J5 Andrexa petrophila ( x 6): 
 ps pseudopodium ; fc capsule which has dehisced. 
 
366 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 effected by means of a three-sided apical cell. The leaves are sessile, the lower 
 leaves are small and deciduous. 
 
 The Sexual Organs are borne in terminal groups on the shoots ; the male and 
 female organs are always borne on distinct branches, generally on the same plant 
 (monoecious), or on distinct plants (dioecious): since, in both cases, the apical 
 cell of the shoot gives rise to a sexual organ, the growth of the shoot is arrested 
 by the development of the reproductive organs. The proup of sexual organs 
 is surrounded by involucral leaves, and amongst them are developed filamentous 
 paraphyses. The antheridia have short stalks : the archegonia have short stalks 
 and very long necks. 
 
 The Structure of the Adult Shoot is simple ; there is no central strand ; the 
 peripheral cells are narrower than the internal cells, and their walls are of a 
 yellowish colour. 
 
 The leaves consist of a single layer of cells all containing chloroplastids : in 
 some species there is a midrib consisting of several layers of cells. 
 
 P. The SPOROPHYTE. A two-sided lenticular apical cell is formed, in the 
 epibasal cell, by two oblique intersecting walls, from the two sides of which 
 about twelve segments are alternately cut off. In the upper segments cut off 
 from the apical cell the amphithecium and the endotheciurn are differentiated ; 
 the two lower segments (on each side) form the short seta of the sporogonium. 
 The hypobasal cell undergoes a few divisions to form the foot. 
 
 The archesporium is differentiated from the external layer of the endothe- 
 cium, the rest of the endothecium forming the columella. The archesporium 
 has the form of a hollow cone, covering the top of the columella ; no intercel- 
 lular spaces are formed. 
 
 When the calyptra is ruptured, the upper portion is borne on tlie top of the 
 capsule as a cap ; the lower, the vaginula, invests the short seta. The capsule 
 dehisces by four longitudinal fissures, extending to neither the base nor the apex 
 (Fig. 249 B) : there is no operculum, or peristome, nor has the wall of the 
 capsule any stomata. 
 
 The shoot is stimulated to growth, after fertilisation, producing a short leif- 
 less pseudopodium, which carries up with it the unfertilised archegonia of the 
 gronp : the perichaetial leaves also develope, and invest the base of the pseudo- 
 podium. 
 
 The Andreaeaceas are small cnsspitose Mosses (Fig. 250 ft) growing on rocks in 
 mountainous districts. The order consists of the single genus Andreaea. 
 
 Order III. Archidiacess. 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTE. The protonema is filamentous, and the subterranean 
 portions of it are perennial : it gives rise to numerous adult shoots. 
 
 The Morphology of the Adult Shoot. The adult shoot consists of a very short 
 stem with scattered leaves. It bears lateral branches, both sterile and fertile ; 
 the former are long and decumbent, and give rise in the succeeding year to 
 erect fertile shoots. The male and female organs are either borne, together 
 with parnphyses, terminally on distinct branches of the same plant ; or the 
 antheridia are borne singly in the axils of the perichastial leaves of the female 
 receptacle. 
 
 The Structure of the Adult Shoot. There is a central strand of conducting 
 tissue, surrounded by parenchymatous cells ; externally is a layer of narrow 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : MUSCI. 367 
 
 thick-walled cells. The leaves have a prominent midrib ; the lamina consists 
 of a single layer of cells. 
 
 B. The SPOROPHYTE. The first stages of the development resembles those 
 of Andreasa. The epibasal half of the embryo grows for a short time by means 
 of a two-sided apical cell. It undergoes differentiation, by the formation of 
 periclinal walls, into amphithecium and endothecium ; in the upper two-thirds, 
 of the capsule the innermost layer of the amphithecium becomes separated from 
 the outer layers, a large intercellular space being formed between them. 
 There is no arehesporial layer or columella, but isolated internal cells of the 
 endothecium are spore-mother-cells, each giving rise to four spores. The lower 
 part of the epibasal half forms the very short seta or neck. The hypobasal 
 half gives rise to a bulbous foot. There are uo stomata on the capsule. 
 
 The ruptured calyptra surrounds the base of the sporogonium as a vaginula ; 
 no portion of it is raised up on the top of the capsule. The capsule ruptures 
 irregularly. 
 
 The order includes the genus Archidium with the single species A. phascoides 
 (ulternifoliux.) 
 
 OrderlV. Bryineae. 
 
 A. The GAMETOPHYTE. The protonerna is filamentous, though in some 
 cases (e.g. Tetraphis pellucida and other Georgiaceag) it develops flattened 
 cellular appendages which are assimilatory organs {see AndreasaceaB, p. 365). 
 The subaerial portion of the protonema is generally short lived, though in some 
 cases it persists (e.g. Ephemerum) at least until the sporogonium has been 
 developed and the spores are ripe: the subterranean portion frequently persists 
 from year to year. The subaerial portion gives rise to the gametophores as 
 lateral buds; in some forms the subterranean portion produces lateral buds in the 
 form of bulbils (p. 355) which, when they are brought to the surface, give rise to 
 pametophores either directly or indirectly with the intetvention of protonema. 
 It is commonly the case that, when protonema is kept dry, some of the cells 
 grow larger and their walls thicker, whilst the other cells perish ; the persistent 
 cells, when moistened, developeinto filaments. 
 
 The Adult Sfioot does not present, with regard either to its morphology or its 
 histology, am' especially characteristic features ; it varies in size from a mere 
 bud in such forms as Phascum and Ephemerum, where it is annual, to a shoot 
 several inches long in such forms as Fontinalis and Polytrichum where it is 
 perennial. In the latter case there is generally a central strand, and frequently 
 leaf-traces, in the stem. It may be either acrocarpous or pleurocarpous, a 
 feature which is important in the classification of the group. The leaves have 
 commonly a midrib : those of Leucobryum resemble those of Sphagnum in that 
 they consist of two kinds of cells, an internal layer of small living cells with chlo- 
 roplastids, and external layers of dead cells with perforated walls ; the peculiar 
 structure of the leaves of Polytrichum has been already described (p. 359). 
 
 B. The SPOROPHYTE presents features, both as to its morphology and histo- 
 logy > which are characteristic of the group. It is differentiated into a true 
 hypobasal foot, a seta, and a capsule. The true foot is rudimentary. The 
 seta is relatively short in the lower forms : a false (epibasal) foot is fre- 
 quently developed from the lower portion of the seta. The neck of the capsule 
 has nearly always stomata in its epidermis, and is developed into a distinct 
 
368 PAKT III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 apophysis in some forms (e.g. Splachnum, Polytrichum). Part of the external 
 layer of the endothecium becomes the archesporium, which forms a hollow 
 cylinder round the columella, but does not extend over the top of it : an air- 
 chamber is developed in the amphithecium round the spore-sac, and is gener- 
 ally traversed by strands of cells (containing chloroplastids) stretching from the 
 wall of the capsule to the spore-sac. In the lower forms the capsule is either 
 indehiscent, its wall becoming eventually disorganised, or it ruptures irregu- 
 larly ; in the higher forms, the apical portion of the wall is thrown off as an 
 operculum, and a peristorne is generally developed round the aperture thus 
 formed. In all cases a portion of the calyptra is carried up as a cap on the 
 top of the developing sporogonium. 
 The Bryineas are classified as follows : 
 
 Tribe I. Cleistocarpae. Tribe II. Stegocarpae. 
 
 Tribe I. CLEISTOCARPAE. The adult shoots are generally minute, un- 
 branched, annual, and always acrocarpous; there is geueially a central strand 
 in the stem, and a mid-rib in the leaf. 
 
 With regard to the sporogonium, the seta is generally short, sometimes ex- 
 panded at the base into a false (epibasal) foot (e.g. Phascum, Ephemerum), 
 
 without any central strand in some forms. 
 The capsule does not open by means of an 
 operculum, nor has it any peristome (a rudi- 
 mentary operculum can be detected in As- 
 tomum, Mildeella, and a few other forms, as 
 also a rudimentary peristome in Mildeella) ; 
 
 it either ruptures irregularly, or the wall 
 Fia. 250. a ~Eph.em.erum serrat tin* _ > -j 
 (x 3) : b shoot of Andrew nivalis, S1TOply deCaj8 ' 
 with (X) capsule (nat. size). The following are the principal families 
 
 and genera of the Cleistocarpae : 
 
 Fam. 1. Bphcmeraceee : Ephemerum (Fig. 249 A), Nanomitrium. 
 ,, 2. Physcomitrellacea : Physcomitrella. 
 3. Phascacea : Phascum, Acaulon, Mildeella, Astomum. 
 4. Bruchiacece : PJeuridium, Bruchia. 
 
 5, Voitiacece : Voitia, by far the largest forms in the tribe. 
 Tribe II. STEGOCABP.E. The characteristics of this tribe are to be found in 
 the sporogonium, which is distinguished by the formation of an operculum and, 
 generally, of a peristome. 
 
 The operculum is developed from the apical portion of the capsule, either 
 from the epidermis alone (e.g. Georgiaceas), or from it and one or more of the sub- 
 jacent amphithecial layers. The cell-walls become cuticularised and assume a 
 yellow or brown colour. The outline of the operculum is circular ; its form 
 cap-like, more or less flattened in some cases, more or less conical in others, 
 sometimes apiculate. 
 
 The limit between the developing operculum and the rest of the capsule 
 (urn) is generally marked by a slightly prominent zone, consisting of one or 
 more rows of rather large epidermal cells, with cuticularised outer walls, 
 termed the ring or annuliis : its position is just above the level of the top of the 
 spore-sac and of the air-chamber. 
 
 The peristome is developed within the operculum, from the innermost layer 
 
GROUP II. BUYOPHYTA : MUSCI. 
 
 369 
 
 or layers of the amphithecial cells, the entire walls, or only portions of the 
 longitudinal and transverse walls, of larger or smaller plates of these cells, be- 
 come thickened, cuticularised, and 
 coloured yellow or brown. The 
 unthickened cell-walls, or the un- 
 thickened portions of them, break 
 away as the capsule becomes ripe, 
 leaving only the thickened portions 
 forming, as it were, a skeleton at- 
 tached to the urn just below the 
 level of the annulus. The following 
 are the principal varieties of peri- 
 stome-formation. In the Georgia- 
 ceas (e.g. Tetraphis) the peristome is 
 developed from the two layers of 
 cells beneath the epidermis which 
 forms the operculum : the walls of 
 these cells all become thickened ; 
 when the operculum falls off this 
 plate of tissue splits from the centre 
 into four equal segments which are 
 tbe teeth of the peristome. In most 
 Mosses the peristome is formed from 
 a single layer of cells, and consists 
 of two rows of teeth, an inner and 
 an outer. This double peristome is 
 dependent upon the distribution of 
 the cuticularisation of the walls : 
 
 both the internal and the external walls of the peristomial cell-layer become 
 cuticularised, but the lateral and part of the transverse walls joining them 
 remain unaltered and eventually break away, leaving the thickened internal 
 and external walls as separate strips, which may be further divided longitudin- 
 ally into teeth. The teeth of the outer peristome are generally larger than 
 
 those of the inner which are sometimes dis- 
 tinguished as cilia ; thpir number is a power 
 of two (4-8-16-32-64.) There is consider- 
 able variety in the structure and form of the 
 peristome ; this affords a means of classifica- 
 tion. The genus Polytrichum, for instance, 
 is characterised by the fact that the teeth of 
 tbe peristome consist of strands of thick- 
 walled fibres, the tips of which are not free, 
 as is usually the case, but are connected by 
 a membrane stretched over the aperture of 
 the urn, termed the epiphragm. 
 
 A peristome is not present in several genera 
 (e.g. Gymnostomum, Hymenostomum, Schis- 
 tostega, etc.) ; nor in some species (e.g^ 
 
 FIG. 261. Funaria liygrometrica. A An adult 
 shoot (g), bearing a calypti-a (c). B A plant 
 (g) bearing a nearly ripe sporogonium ; its 
 seta ; / the capsule ; c the calyptra. C Median 
 longitudinal section of the capsule : d oper- 
 culum ; a annulus ; p peristome ; c c' columella ; 
 7i air-cavity ; s the archesporium. 
 
 FIG. 252. Mouth of the theca of 
 Fontinalis antipyvelica. up Outer 
 peristome; ip inner peristome. (x 
 60.) 
 
 V. &. B. 
 
 B B 
 
370 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 species of Pottia and Encalypta, Seligerla Doniana, Orthotrichum gymnostomum 
 etc.) belonging to genera in which a peristome is usually present. 
 
 As the capsule matures, the cells (except the spores) lose their cell-contents ; 
 and those whose walls have not become thickened and cuticularised, dry up and 
 shrink, the shrinkage being necessarily accompanied by the tearing of the thin 
 walls in various parts. The persistent cuticularised walls are highly hygro- 
 scopic, and it is in consequence of the tensions set up by the unequal stretching 
 and contraction of these walls, due to variations in their moisture, that the split- 
 tin? off of the operculum is effected 
 
 FIG. 253. Sporogoninin of Fiuiaria hygrometrica. A, s seta ; b Cflpsule ; c calyptra (x5). 
 P Section of a half-developed capsule (x 10): c columella ; s archesporium ; I air-cavity; 
 d sub-opercular tissue ; p peristome. C Apical portion of the same capsule ( x 40) ; d oper- 
 culum; id sub-opercular tissue; ap outer peristome; ip inner peristome; r ring; I air- 
 space; c columella; s spore-sac. 
 
 The Stegocarpa3 are classified as follows : 
 
 Sub-tribe ACROCARPM : arcliegouia terminal on the main shoots ; but the 
 sporogonia are sometimes apparently lateral in consequence of the growth of 
 lateral branches (innovations) which force the apex of the main shoot to the 
 side. The following are the principal families and genera : 
 Fam. 1. Wei*ifi.ce<e : Bymenostomum, Gymnostomum, Weisia. 
 
 ,, 2. Dicranacea : Dicranum, Dicranella. 
 
 ,, 3. Leucobryacea : Leucobryum. 
 
 ,, 4. Fissidentacea : Fissidens. 
 
 ,, 5. Seltgeriacca : Seligeria small mosses growing only on rocks. 
 
 6. Pottiacece: Pottia, Tortula, Barbula, Trichostomum, Ceratodon. 
 
 ,, 7. Grimmiaccee : Grimmia, Racomitrium, Hedwigium. 
 
 8. Orthotrichacea : Orthotrichum, Zygodon. 
 
 9. Encalyptacfa : Encalypta. 
 
 ,, 10. Georgiacece : Georgia (Tetraphis), Tetrodontium. 
 
 ,, 11. Schistostegacca : Schistostega. 
 
 12. Splachnacece : Dissodon, Tayloria, Splachnum. 
 
 >, 13. Funariacece : Physcomitrium, Funaria. 
 
 ,, 14. Mniacece : Mnium, Meesia, Aulacomnium. 
 
 15. Bryacece : Bryum, Webera. 
 
 16. Polytrichacece : Atrichum, Polytrichum, Pogonatum. 
 17. Buxbaumiacece : Buxbaumia. 
 
GROUP II. BRYOPHYTA : MDSCI. 
 
 371 
 
 Sub-Tribe PLEUROCARP1E : Archegonia (and subsequently the sporogonia) 
 borne terminally on short lateral branches. The following are the principal 
 families and genera : 
 
 Fam. 18. Fontinalacea : Fontinalis. 
 
 ,, 19. Neckeracecs : Neckera, Leptodon, Leucodon. 
 ,, 20. Hookeriacete : Daltonia, Hookeria. 
 21. Fabromacea : Fabronia, Anacamptodon, Myrinia. 
 22. Thuidiacea : Leskea, Thuidium. 
 
 23. Hypnacea: Climacium, Bracbythecium, Hypnum, Hylocomium, 
 Eurhyncbium. 
 
 The following are among the more familiar species of acrocarpous Mosses : 
 
 Dicranum scoparium, with sickle-shaped leaves, is common in woods. Leuco- 
 b'yum glaucum has leaves consisting of several layers of cells, which resemble 
 those of Sphagnum in their structure ; it occurs in 
 Pine-woods and on moors. Ceratodon purpureus, 
 with a red seta and a short stem, is very common 
 in various localities. Barbula muralis grows in 
 patches on walls and rocks ; the midrib of the 
 leaves is prolonged into a bair, so that the patches 
 of Moss look greyish. Tetraphis pcllucida has bright 
 green leaves ; it grows on decayed tree-trunks, and 
 bears gemmae of peculiar form. Grimmia pulvinata 
 occurs on walls and stones in round greyish-green 
 patches ; the capsules have very short setae. Ortho- 
 trichum affiiie and other species have also shortly- 
 stalked capsules, and are common on trees. Funa- 
 ria Ityyrometrica (Figs. 251-3) has an oblique, pear- 
 shaped capsule ; the long setae have the peculiarity 
 of contracting into a spiral on being wetted and 
 dried ; it is common on walls and paths. Poly- 
 tiicJium formosuni (Fig. 254) and other species are 
 the largest of our indigenous acrocarpous Mosses ; 
 they have large dark green leaves and long hairy 
 calyptrffl and are common in woods and on heaths. 
 
 The following are among the more familiar species 
 of pleurocarpous Mosses : 
 
 Fontinalis antipyretica floats in water. Neckera 
 crispa, with flat outspreading leaves, grows on rocks. 
 Thuidium abietinum and other species grow on 
 banks and in woods ; they have regular, pinnately 
 branched stems, and very small, close'ly-set leaves. 
 Leucodon sciuroides is common on tree-trunks. 
 Brachythficium rutabulum is common in woods. 
 EurJtyiichium praloiifjnm, with long creeping stems, 
 occurs in woods and damp gardens. Hypnum cupressiforme is very common 
 on tree-trunks, and H. cuspidatum and giganteum in bogs and ditches. Hylo- 
 comiu.ni triquetrum is very commonly used for garlands ; this and H. splendens, 
 with remarkably regular ramification, are both common in woods. 
 
 FIG. 254. Two plants of 
 Polytrichum formosum bear- 
 ing eporogonia (nat. size). 
 fc The capsule; 8 the seta; 
 c calyptra. 
 
372 PAET III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 GROUP III. 
 
 PIEIIIDOPHYTA (Vascular Cryptogams). 
 
 The distinguishing characteristics of the plants forming this 
 group are the following : The life-history presents a well-marked 
 alternation of generations, as in the Bryophyta ; but here it is the 
 sporophyte which is the more conspicuous form, constituting "the 
 plant." The sporophyte becomes quite distinct from the gameto- 
 phyte at an early period : it is differentiated (with but few 
 exceptions) into root, stem, and leaf; and in all cases it contains 
 well-developed vascular tissue. The gametophyte, generally 
 termed the prothallium, is a relatively small thalloid body, usually 
 short-lived, containing no trace of vascular tissue. 
 
 The group includes the three classes, Filicinae, Equisetinae, 
 Lycopodinae. 
 
 The SPOROPHYTE is developed from the oospore : its embryogeny 
 is direct and holoblastic. The oospore undergoes division, in all 
 cases, into an epibasal and a hypobasal half, by a basal wall which 
 is either more or less nearly parallel to the long axis of the 
 archegonium (Leptosporangiate Filicinae) or more or less nearly 
 transverse to it: the epibasal half usually faces the neck of the 
 archegonium, but in the Lycopodinae the hypobasal half occupies 
 this position. In the Filicinse and Equisetinae, the formation of 
 the basal wall is followed by the formation of another wall at 
 right angles to it (quadrant-wall) so that the embryo now consists 
 of four cells which are quadrants of a sphere, and this is followed 
 by the formation of a third wall (oclant-icall), at right angles to 
 both the preceding, so that the embryo now consists of eight 
 cells which are octants of a sphere. In the Lycopodinoe the 
 segmentation leading to the formation of quadrants and octants is 
 confined to the epibasal half, the hypobasal half remaining un- 
 divided or undergoing a few irregular divisions. From the 
 epibasal half, the primary stem and one or two primary leaves 
 (cotyledons) are developed in all cases. The hypobasal half 
 gives rise, in the Filicinae and Equisetinae, to the primary root 
 and to the foot, with but few exceptions (e.g. Salvinia in which 
 there is no primary root) : in the Lycopodinae the hypobasal half 
 gives rise to a suspensor, an organ homologous with the foot of the 
 Bryophyta. 
 
 The foot (as also the suspensor : see p. 14) is an embryonic 
 
GROUP III. PTER1DOPHYTA. 373 
 
 organ, no trace of which persists in the adult. It is the organ of 
 attachment of the embryo-sporophyte to the gametophyte ; and it 
 is also the absorbent organ by which the embryo, until it is able 
 to absorb and assimilate food for itself, obtains its nourishment 
 from the prothallium (compare Bryophyta, p. 330). 
 
 The development of a suspensor in the Lyeopodinae is an adap-- 
 tation correlated with the fact that the nourishment of the 
 embryo in that group depends upon its coming into direct contact 
 with the tissue of the massive gametophyte, the cells of which 
 are filled with nutritive substances. 
 
 A primary root, that is, a root developed from the hypobasal half 
 of the oospore, and so situated at its origin that its growing-point 
 is in a straight line with that of the stem (see p. 15), only 
 occurs in the Filicinae and Equisetinee ; but even here it does 
 not persist as a tap-root in the adult: in these plants numerous 
 adventitious roots are developed. In the Lycopodinoe, where 
 there is no primary root, all the roots are adventitious. 
 
 Some adult forms are altogether without roots : as Salvinia, 
 and some species of Trichomanes, among Filicinae ; Psilotum and 
 Tmesipteris, among Lycopodinae. The functions of the root are 
 discharged, in Salvinia by modified leaves, in the others by 
 modified branches. In the absence of information as to the 
 embryogeny of these rootless plants, except Salvinia, it is not 
 possible to state definitely that they are, like Salvinia, rootless from 
 the first : for it is conceivable that they may have a short-lived 
 primary root which entirely disappears as the embryo developes. 
 
 The branching of the root is generally lateral in the Filicinas 
 and Equisetinse ; it is dichotomous in the Lycopodinea and in 
 Isoetes. In the former case, the lateral rootlets are developed, 
 in the Filicina?, from cells (rhizogenic) of the endodermis which 
 are opposite to the xylem-bundles of the stele; in the Equisetinae, 
 from the cells forming the inner layer of the two-layered endo- 
 dermis. 
 
 The stem is generally short and unbranched in the Filicinae; 
 generally elongated and much branched in the Equisetinae and 
 Lycopodinae. 
 
 The leaves are differentiated into foliage-leaves and sporophylls 
 in the Equisetinae and generally in the Lycopodinae, but not in the 
 Fiiicinae as a rule : the foliage-leaves are relatively large in 
 proportion to the stem in the Filicinae, relatively small in the 
 Lycopodinae, reduced to cataphylls in the Equisetinse. 
 
374 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The growth in length of root, stem, and leaf, is effected by an 
 apical growing- point : the growing-point has generally a single 
 apical cell in the Filicinse and Equisetinae (except root and stem 
 of Marattiaceae and Isoetes) ; in the Lycopodinae (as also in the 
 foregoing exceptional Filiciuae) there is generally a group of 
 initial cells. 
 
 The anatomy of the stem presents considerable variety. The 
 primary stem is in all cases monostelic (p. 152) : it may continue 
 to be monostelic (e.g. Lycopodiacese, Isoetes, Osmundacese, etc.), 
 but more commonly it becomes polystelic (most Filicinse), or schizo- 
 stelic (Equisetinae, Ophioglossaceae). The vascular tissue of the 
 wood consists of lignified spiral (protoxylem) and scalariform 
 tracheides, or less commonly vessels ; the bast contains no com- 
 panion-cells. The bundles are generally closed (except Botrychium, 
 Helminthostachys, Isoetes) ; cauline (except Isoetes, Osmunda, 
 Equisetinae, where they are common). The relative arrangement 
 of wood and bast in the stele is generally concentric (see p. 175) in 
 the Filicinae and Selaginellaceae, and radial in the Lycopodiacese : 
 or the bundles may be conjoint and collateral as in Ophioglossaceae, 
 Isoetaceae, Osmundaceae, Equisetiiiae. The pericycle is some- 
 times absent (e.g. Ophioglossum ; some Leptosporangiate Filicinae, 
 in which it is replaced by a layer of the endodermis). 
 
 The anatomy of the root calls for no special remark, except that 
 in the Equisetinae there is no pericycle, but a two-layered 
 endodermis. 
 
 The reproductive organs are sporangia, generally borne on the 
 leaves (sporophylls) but sometimes directly on the stem (e.g. 
 Selaginella). Each sporophyli may bear many sporangia on its 
 inferior (dorsal) surface, as generally in the Filicmae and Equise- 
 tinae ; or a single sporangium on its upper surface (e.g. Lycopodium, 
 Isoetes), or in its axil (Selaginella). 
 
 When the sporophyli bears many sporangia, they are usually 
 arranged in groups ; each group is termed a sorus, and the more 
 or less well-developed cushion of tissue from which the sporangia 
 spring is termed the placenta. The sorus may be naked ; or it may 
 have a membranous covering, the indusium (e.g. many Filicime). 
 
 In the Filicinae the sporophylls are not confined to any special 
 portion of the shoot, so as to constitute a flower : but in some 
 cases (e.g. Osmunda, Ophioglossaceae, Marsileaceae) they differ in 
 form and structure from the foliage-leaves. In the Equisetinae 
 the sporophylls are highly specialised, and are grouped into cones 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA. 375 
 
 (flowers) at the ends of the fertile branches : similar cone-like 
 flowers, with less specialised sporophylls, occur in various 
 Lycopodinee. 
 
 The sporangia are unilocular, though in Isoetes they are incom- 
 pletely chambered by trabeculae : they are developed singly or in 
 groups (sori) ; in the latter case they are usually distinct, but in 
 some cases they are coherent (Marattiacese, except Angiopteris ; 
 Psilotacea3) forming a synangium (see p. 72) : the synangium 
 should not, however, be regarded as the result of the cohesion of 
 originally distinct sporangia r but as a group of sporangia which 
 have not separated. The sporangium is developed either from a 
 single superficial cell (leptosporangiate) ; or from a group of super- 
 ficial cells (eusporangiate), and sometimes from deeper cells as 
 well the mother-cells of the spores are derived from an arche- 
 sporium which is either a single hypodermal cell or a group of 
 hypodermal cells. 
 
 The spores produced in the sporangia, are single cells, with 
 generally two coats, endospore and exospore. Many of the Pterido- 
 phyta produce spores which are all quite alike, whence they are 
 said to be homosporous ; whereas others produce spores of two 
 kinds, small spores (microspores) and large spores (macrospores) , 
 and are said to be heterosporous. 
 
 The sporangia of the heterosporous forms are distinguished as 
 microsporangia and macrosporanyia according to the kind of spores 
 which they develope : and when the sporophylls bear either only 
 microsporangia or only macrosporangia they are distinguished as 
 microsporophylls and macrosporophylls. The number of macrospores 
 produced in the macrosporangium is generally small, though they 
 are numerous in Isoetes : thus there are four in Selaginella, only 
 one in the Hydropterides&. 
 
 The spores are generally set free- by the dehiscence of the 
 sporangia : but in Salvinia the whole sporangium falls off and the 
 spores germinate within it. 
 
 B. THE GAMETOPHYTE. The spore, on germination, gives rise to 
 a prothallium which is the gametophyte. It is very small and in- 
 conspicuous, as compared with the sporophyte; its body is, gener- 
 ally speaking, thalloid; there is no vascular tissue in its structure, 
 and in many cases it does not become free from the spore. It 
 usually lives through but one short period of growth. 
 
 In any one of the homosporous forms, the prothallia developed 
 from the spores are all essentially alike ; generally speaking, any 
 
376 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 one prothallium bears both male and female reproductive organs. 
 The morphology of the prothallium varies widely in these forms : 
 it may be a branched cellular filament (some Hymenophyllaeeae), 
 or a flattened expansion (Equisetinae, most Ferns), containing 
 chlorophyll abundantly ; or it is tuberous (Ophioglossacese, Lyco- 
 podiacese), either wholly or in part destitute of chlorophyll. It 
 becomes entirely free from the spore. 
 
 In the heterosporous forms the gametophyte is represented by 
 two individuals a male and a female prothallium ; the former is 
 the product of the germination of a microspore, the latter of the 
 germination of a macrospore. As compared with those of the 
 homosporous forms, the prothallia of the heterosporous forms are 
 relatively small ; moreover they do not become independent of the 
 spores from which they are developed. The male prothallium is 
 reduced to little more than a single male organ ; the female pro- 
 thallium is a small, usually green, cellular body projecting more 
 (e.g. Salvinia) or less (e.g. Selaginella) through the ruptured outer 
 coat of the macrospore. 
 
 Generally speaking, the symmetry of the prothallium is dorsi- 
 ventral ; in the free-growing forms, the under surface generally 
 bears numerous unicellular root-hairs. In some cases the pro- 
 thallium shows more or less well-marked differentiation into a 
 vegetative portion and a gametophore which may bear either both 
 kinds of sexual organs, or, more commonly, one kind only ; when 
 the gametophore bears only male organs it is distinguished as an 
 untheridiophore ; when only female organs, as an arche^joniopliore. 
 The distribution of the sexual organs on the prothallium varies; 
 they are frequently confined to one surface, but are occasionally 
 scattered over the whole surface. The number of the sexual 
 organs on a prothallium is in some cases only one, in others it is 
 considerable. 
 
 The sexual organs are antheridia (male) and archegonia (female). 
 The structure of the antheridium is simple ; it consists of a wall, 
 a single layer of cells, enclosing the mother-cells of the spermato- 
 zoids. The antheridia are developed from single superficial cells 
 of the prothallium ; when the prothallium is thin, the antheridia 
 project on the surface ; when the prothallium is tuberous, the 
 antheridia become sunk in the tissue. 
 
 The archegotiium consists of a venter and a neck. As the venter 
 is, in all cases, sunk in the tissue of the prothallium, it has no 
 proper wall of its own, and is, in fact, simply a cavity in the 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHTTA. 377 
 
 tissue ; the short neck consists of a single layer of cells in four 
 rows. The mature archegonium contains, in the venter, the 
 female cell (oosphere). 
 
 The archegonium is developed from a single superficial cell of 
 the prothallium. This cell divides transversely into two, an upper 
 and a lower; the former, by growth and division, forms the neck 
 of the archegonium ; the lower cell projects into the developing 
 neck, and the projecting portion becomes cut off, constituting the 
 neck-canal-cell which sometimes divides again into two (Maratti- 
 aceae, Lycopodium) ; the remainder, now termed the central cell of the 
 archegonium, divides transversely into two unequal parts, the upper 
 and smaller being the ventral canal-cell, the lower and larger being 
 the oosphere. As the archegonium becomes mature, the canal- cells 
 become mucilaginous, the neck opens by the separation of the cells 
 at the apex, and the archegonium is ready for fertilisation. 
 
 The male cell, or spermatozoid-, is a naked motile cell ; it is a 
 spirally coiled filament, pointed at the anterior end which bears 
 the cilia, becoming thicker towards the opposite end ; the cilia 
 are numerous in Filicince (incl. Isoetes) and Equisetinas ; two in 
 Lycopodinaa. 
 
 Each spermatozoid is developed singly in a mother-cell in the 
 antheridium ; it consists of kinoplasm with a nucleus (see p. 116). 
 The whole of the contents of the mother-cell are not, however, 
 devoted to the spermatozoid : a portion remains unused, and is 
 discharged together with the spermatozoid, to which it adheres 
 for a time as a protoplasmic vesicle containing, amongst other 
 constituents, a portion of the nuclear substance of the mother-cell 
 (see Fig. 266). 
 
 The female cell, or oosphere, is a naked spherical cell lying in the 
 venter of the archegonium. Its development is described above. 
 
 Fertilisation is effected by the entrance of spermatozoids into 
 the open neck of the mature archegonium, and the subsequent 
 fusion of one of them with the oosphere. When, as is usually the 
 case, numerous prothallia are developed near together on the 
 ground, and become wetted by rain or dew, the ripe aiitheridia 
 burst and set free the spermatozoids which, swimming actively in 
 the water, are attracted to the mature archegonia by means of an 
 acid excretion which is discharged from the neck of the arche- 
 gonium when it opens. The effect of fertilisation on the oosphere 
 is that it at once surrounds itself with a cell-wall becoming the 
 oospore, and then begins to develope into the young sporophyte. 
 
378 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 In a few cases (e.g. species of Trichomanes and Lycopodium) 
 the gametophyte (protliallium) multiplies vegetatively by means 
 of gemmae, which are short spindle-shaped rows of cells in the 
 one case, and globular multicellular bodies in the other. 
 
 The Life-History of the Pteridophyta presents in all cases, a 
 perfectly clear alternation of generations, the sporophyte and the 
 gametophyte being completely distinct. The oospore developes 
 into " the plant/' be it Fern, Equisetum, or Lycopod, which bears 
 the sporangia and spores, and is the sporophyte. The spores, 
 when shed, germinate to form the gametophytes (prothallia) bear- 
 ing the sexual organs. 
 
 In some cases among the Ferns, the transition from the one 
 generation to the other may be affected without the intervention 
 of a spore of any kind. Thus (e.g. Pteris cretica, Aspidium falca- 
 tum, Todea africana), the sporophyte is developed from the game- 
 tophyte without the intervention of an oospore ; there are either 
 no archegonia on the prothallium (Pteris cretica), or if present 
 they are sterile ; the sporophyte is developed as a bud upon the 
 prothallium (apogamy, see p. 87). Again, in other species (Poly- 
 stichum angulare var. pulcherrimum, Athi/rium Filix-fcemina var. 
 clarissima), the gametophyte is developed from the sporophyte 
 without the intervention of the asexually-produced spores (apo- 
 spory, see p. 87) : in the latter plant sporangia are developed, 
 but instead of producing spores they grow out into prothallia ; 
 in the former plant there is no trace of any sporangia, and the 
 prothallia are formed as o-utgrowths on the tips of the leaf- 
 pinnae. 
 
 The Pteridophyta are classified as follows : 
 
 Class V. FILICINyE. The sporophyte is characterised by 
 having relatively large and few leaves ; the sporophylls are gener- 
 ally similar to the foliage- leaves and are not aggregated into 
 flowers ; the sporangia are numerous on the sporophyll (except 
 Isoetes) and are arranged in sori ; the archesporium is a single 
 cell (except Isoetes) ; the embryo has a primary root (except 
 Isoetes, Salvinia, and possibly some species of Trichomanes) but 
 no suspensor. 
 
 The characters of the gametophyte vary widely. The sper- 
 matozoids are multiciliate. 
 
 Sub-Class HOMOSPORE/E. The sporophyte produces spores of one 
 kind only ; the prothallia are, as a rule, monoecious, and become 
 free from the spore. 
 
GROUP III. PTER1DOPHYTA. 379 
 
 Section Eusporangiatae. Each sporangium is developed from 
 a group of superficial cells. 
 
 Order 1. Opliioglossaceoe. Order 2. Marattiacece. 
 
 Section Leptosporangiatae. Each sporangium is developed 
 from a single superficial cell. (Filices in limited sense). 
 
 Order 1. Osmundacece. Order 4. Polypodiacece. 
 
 2. Schizceacece. 5. Cyatheacece. 
 
 3. Gleicheniacece. 6. Hymenophyllacece. 
 
 Sub-Class HETEROSPOREJ:. The sporophyte produces micro- 
 spores and macrospores ; the former give rise to' male, the latter 
 to female, prothallia ; the prothallia do not become free from the 
 spore. 
 
 ^ . >v "^~ "" "" 
 Section Eusporangiatae. Each sporangium is developed from 
 
 a group of superficial cells. 
 
 Order 1. Isoetacece. 
 
 Section Leptosporangiatae. Each sporangium is developed 
 from a single superficial cell. (Rhizocarpce or Hydropteridese). 
 
 Order 1. Salviniacece. Order 2. Marsileacece. 
 
 Class VI. EQUISETINJB. The sporophyte is characterised by 
 the well-developed branched stem, with small whorled leaves 
 forming a sheath at each node ; the small peltate sporophylls are 
 aggregated into a cone-like flower at the apex of each fertile shoot, 
 and bear a few sporangia on the inner (inferior) surface; the 
 archesporium is a single cell ; the embryo has a primary root 
 and no suspensor. All the existing forms are homosporous and 
 eusporangiate. 
 
 The gametophyte is a free, green, membranous prothallium, 
 generally dioecious ; the spermatozoids are multiciliate. 
 
 Order 1. E^iisetacece. 
 
 Class VII. LYCOPODINJB. The sporophyte is characterised 
 by the well-developed branched stem with numerous small scattered 
 leaves ; the sporangia are borne singly either on the upper surface 
 of a sporophyll, or on the stem ; the sporophylls resemble the 
 foliage-leaves, but are sometimes aggregated into cone-like flowers ; 
 
380 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the arcliesporium is multicellular ; the embryo has a suspensor, 
 but no primary root. All the existing forms are eusporangiate. 
 
 The characters of the gametophyte vary widely. The sperma- 
 tozoids are biciliate. 
 
 Sub-Class HOMOSPORE.E : the sporophyte produces spores of one 
 kind only ; the prothallia are free, more or less tuberous, mon- 
 oecious. 
 
 Order 1. Lycopodiacece. Order 2. Psilotacece. 
 
 Sub-Class HETEROSPOREJ: : the sporophyte produces microspores 
 and macrospores ; the former gives rise to male, the latter to 
 female, prothallia; the prothallium does not become free from the 
 spore. 
 
 Order 1. Selaginellacece. 
 
 The relations of these various groups may be simply expressed 
 as follows : 
 
 EQUISETIN^E. LYCOPODIN.E. 
 
 Homosporous Filices \Lepto- 
 
 Ueterosporous Hydropterideae / sporanyiatc. 
 
 HoTHosporous fOphioglosBaceiB} Equigeta ce ffi _/^opodiace ^ 
 
 vMarattiaceae l IPsilotaceae ) V Eusporangiate. 
 
 Heterosporous Isoetaceae (none existing) Selaginellactte ) 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FrLICINJ! ; EUSPORANGIATJ!. 381 
 
 CLASS V. FILICIN^E. 
 
 The mntnal relations of the orders forming this class are clearly 
 expressed in the following table : 
 
 Eusporangiatce. Ijeptosporangiatce. 
 
 Homosporece. Ophioglossacese. Osmundacese. 
 
 Marattiaceoe. SchizeeaceaB. 
 
 Gleicheniacese. 
 Polypodiacera. 
 Cyatheacese. 
 Hymenophyllaceae. 
 
 Reterosporece. Isoetacece. Salviniacese. 
 
 Marsileacese. 
 
 A. HOMOSPOROUS EUSPOIUNGIAT^B. 
 
 Order 1. Ophioglossaceae. This order includes the three genera Ophio- 
 flossum, Botrycbium, and Helminthostacbys. 
 
 SPOROPHYTE. The stem is a subterranean rhizome (except in epiphytic 
 Ophioglossums), wbich does not branch at all in Ophioglossum, and but little 
 in Botrychium and Helminthostacbys ; it is usually short and erect, but in 
 Helminthostachys it is elongated, dorsiventral, and creeping. The rather thick 
 and fleshy roots are unbranched in Ophioglossum, but they give rise to ad- 
 ventitious buds; they are branched in Botrychium and Helminthostacbys, and 
 produce no buds. The leaves are developed close together at the apex of the 
 rhizome, and are not circinate, or only slightly so, in vernation ; their growth 
 is so slow that a leaf does not appear above ground until the fifth year after its 
 first development ; generally, only a single leaf appears above ground each year, 
 when more are developed some of them are sterile. The sporophylls are re- 
 markable for their peculiar branching (see p. 51) ; they are petiolate, and the 
 petiole branches into two, the one bearing a sterile and the other a fertile lamina 
 (Fig. 255), the fertile branch being situated on the ventral surface of the sterile ; 
 the sterile lamina is leafy, whilst the fertile lamina consists of little more than 
 the sporangia. In Ophioglossum the sterile lamina is entire, and the fertile 
 lamina is spicate with two lateral rows of sporangia ; in Botrychium the sterile 
 lamina is pinnate, and the fertile lamina is bi-pinnate with marginal sporangia; 
 in Helminthostacbys the sterile lamina is digitate pedate, and the fertile lamina 
 is spicate with the sporangia in pedicellate clusters. The sporangia are em- 
 bedded in the tissue of the sporophyll in Ophioglossum, but are free in Botry- 
 chium and Helminthostachys : they are not arranged in sori ; they are globose, 
 have no annulus, but dehisce into two equal valves by a transverse (Ophio- 
 glossum, Botrychium) or vertical (Helminthostachys) slit ; the wall of the 
 sporangium consists of several layers of cells ; the spores are numerous and 
 tetrahedral ; the archesporium is the hypodermal terminal cell of the axial row 
 of cells in the young sporangium, and is not tetrahedral. 
 
 The sporophy te is characterised histological'y by the absence of sclerenchyma, 
 
382 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 and by the schizostelic structure of the stem with collateral vascular bundles; 
 the stem is also gamodesmic in Botrychium and Helminthostachys, which thus 
 resemble Equisetum silvaticum (see Fig. 116), whilst Ophioglossum resembles 
 Equisetum litorale. There is a single three-sided apical cell in the growing- 
 point of both stem and root. Ophioglossum is peculiar in that there is no 
 
 pericycle in the stele of either stem or root; 
 and in that, in some species ((). vulyatum, 
 lusitanicum, etc.) the stele of the root has 
 two xylem-bundles, but only one bast-bundle. 
 The collateral bundles of the stem of B >- 
 trychium and Helminthostachys have rudi- 
 mentary cambium, which gives rise to a few 
 secondary xylem-tracheids ; these two genera 
 have also a formation of superficial cork on 
 the stem and sometimes on the root. No- 
 thing is known as to the embryogeny of the 
 sporophyte. 
 
 GAMETOPHYTE. The germination of the 
 spores has not been observed, but the mature 
 protballium has been described in the case 
 of Ophioylossum pedunculosum and Botrych- 
 ium Lunaria. In both cases it is tuberous, 
 subterranean, destitute of chlorophyll, mo- 
 noecious ; the antheridia are sunk in the 
 tissue, and the short necks of the archegonia 
 project but little. It apppars that the pro- 
 tliallium is saprophytic, though possibly it 
 may possess chlorophyll in the early stages 
 of its development. It is altogether un- 
 differentiated in Botrychium., being a some- 
 what ovoid body not more tban half a line 
 long, with long scattered root-hairs, bearing 
 the antheridia chiefly on its upper surface, 
 the archegonia chiefly on the lower. In 
 Ophioglossum pedunculisum it appears to be 
 differentiated into a vegetative and a repro- 
 ductive portion ; it consists, at first, of a 
 small round tuber from which springs a 
 cylindrical shoot which grows upward to the 
 surface of the soil. When the shoot reaches 
 the surface it ceases to elongate and becomes 
 lohed, assuming a green colour ; it bears 
 antheridia and archegonia, and is therefore 
 a gametophore, as distinguished from the 
 original tuber which bears no sexual organs. 
 
 Ophioglossum vulgatum (the Adder's tongue) is the British species of this 
 genus; 0. lusitanicum has, however, been found in Guernsey. The epiphytic 
 Bpecies are 0. pendulum and 0. palnntum, both tropical forms ; the latter has 
 
 FIG. 265. BotrjcJiium Lunaria 
 (nat. size): w roots; st stem; bs 
 leaf-stalk ; * point where the leaf 
 branches; the sterile lamina (b) 
 separating from the fertile branch 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICINJI ; EUSPORANGIATJ!. 383 
 
 palmately-lobed sterile fronds. B )trychium is represented in the British Flora 
 by B. Lunaria (the Moon-wort) which occurs in hilly districts. Helmin- 
 thostachys includes the single species H. zeylanica which occurs in the Eastern 
 tropics. 
 
 Order 2. Marattiaceae. This order includes the genera Marattia, Angio- 
 l>teris, Kaulfussia, and Danaea, none of which are European, but are mainly 
 tropical. 
 
 SPOROPHYTE. In its general morphology the sporophyte agrees with that of 
 the Ophioglossacese ; but the leaves are more numerous, much larger, compound, 
 and circinate in vernation, and each bears a pair of stipules. Branching of the 
 stem occurs only in Danaea ; in Kaulfussia the stem is a subterranean, creeping, 
 dorsiventral rhizome. The roots are somewhat fleshy, and are much branched. 
 The apical growing-point of both root and stem consists of a group of a few (four 
 or more) initial cells. The eporophylls are not differentiated into a sterile and 
 a fertile portion, but have the appearance of foliage-leaves. The numerous 
 sporangia are borne in sori on the ribs of the under surface of the sporophyll ; 
 in Angiopteris the sporangia of a sorus are free, whilst in all the other genera 
 they are coherent, forming a synangium (see p. 72 and p. 375). The sporangia 
 are not embedded in the placenta; they are generally sessile, but the synangium 
 is sometimes (Marattia, sect. Eupodium) shortly stalked ; they have no an- 
 nulus; they dehisce generally by a longitudinal slit on the inner side, but in 
 Danaea by a single apical pore; the wall of the mature sporangium consists of 
 several layers of cells. The archesporium is the terminal hypodermal cell of 
 the axile row of cells of the young sporangium. The spores are numerous, and 
 are either tetrahedral or radial. 
 
 The stem is polystelic ; the arrangement of the phloem- and xylem-bundles 
 of stem and leaf is completely concentric ; there is no well-marked endodermis, 
 except in Danaea; there is no sclerenchyma in Angiopteris, and in the other 
 genera (except Danaea) it is not so well developed as in the leptosporangiate 
 Ferns ; the tissues are penetrated by lysigenous gum-passages. 
 
 The embryology of the sporophyte is known in Angiopteris and Marattia. 
 The oospore divides by a basal wall which is transverse to the long axis of the 
 archegonium ; octants aro then formed, as in the leptosporangiate Ferns ; from 
 the epibasal octants (furthest from the neck of the archegonium) arise the 
 primary leaf (cotyledon) and stem ; from the hypobasal octants (next the neck 
 of the archegonium) arise the foot and the primary root ; the cotyledon grows 
 straight upwards and penetrates the tissue of the prothallium overlying it. 
 
 GAMETOPHYTE. On germination the spore gives rise to a dorsiventral green 
 prothallium, which begins as either a plate or a mass of ceils, and only rarely 
 (under abnormal conditions) as a filament ; it grows by an apical cell, and pro- 
 duces root-hairs posteriorly. A projecting cushion of tissue, representing a 
 gametophore, is developed on the under surface in the median line ; it produces 
 first antheridia and then archegonia, so that, in a fully-developed prothallium, 
 the antheridia are on the posterior and the archegonia on the anterior portion 
 of the gametophore ; some antheridia are, however, also developed on the 
 upper surface of the prothallium ; the antheridia are completely, the arche- 
 gouia almost completely, sunk in the tissue. The neck canal- cell generally 
 divides transversely into two. 
 
384 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 B. HETEROSPOHOUS EUSPORANGIAT.E. 
 
 Order 3. Isoetaceae. This order includes the single genus Isoetes which 
 comprises about fifty species belonging to all parts of the globe. Some of these 
 are terrestrial (T. Duricei and Hystrix), whilst others are either altogether 
 aquatic (e.g. I. lacitstris, echinospora, etc.), or amphibious (e g. I. veJata, 
 setacea, boryana). The British species are I. lacustris, ecliinospora, and 
 Hystrix. 
 
 Isoetes has, of recent years, been generally included among the Lycopodinse ; 
 but it betrays a relationship to the Filicinae in so many features, such as its 
 general habit, its embryogeny, the absence of any cone-like fructification, the 
 form of its spermatozoids, that it appears to be more natural to place the plant 
 in that group. 
 
 SPOROPHYTE. The stem is small, unbranched, short and tuberous, \vith 
 either two or three longitudinal furrows which give it alobed appearance. It is 
 closely covered with numerous, relatively long (1-12 in.), sessile leaves. From 
 the furrows of the stem there spring numerous, dichotomously branched, some- 
 what fleshy roots. 
 
 The growth in length of the stem, which is very slow, is effected by an apical 
 growing-point consisting of several initial cells. The growing-point of the root 
 consists of small-celled meristem, and presents a similar differentiation to that 
 of the root of Dicotyledons (see pp. 145 and 154). 
 
 The leaves are either fertile or sterile ; the fertile leaves each bear a single 
 sporangium, and are termed macrosporophylls or microsporophylls in accord- 
 ance with the nature of the sporangium which they severally bear. The order 
 of development of the leaves in each year is that first of all macrosporophylls 
 are produced, then microsporophylls, and finally a few sterile leaves in some 
 species. Hence, when the development is completed, the macrosporophylls are 
 external in the rosette, the sterile leaves (when present) internal, and the 
 microsporophylls intermediate. The sterile leaves persist during the winter, 
 and form a protection in the next spring to the young leaves developed inter- 
 nally to them at the growing-point. 
 
 The fertile leaves, whether macro- or micro-sporophylls, consist of a broad, 
 sheathing base, with membranous margins, which bears a narrow subulate 
 lamina, flattened somewhat on the upper (ventral) surface. Close above the 
 insertion, on the upper or inner surface of the leaf-base, is a pit, the fovea, in 
 which the single sporangium is situated. In some species the margin of the 
 fovea is prolonged into a membrane, the velum, which either partially (e.p. 
 I. lacustris), or completely (terrestial species), covers the sporangium. Ttiis 
 structure appears to be homologous with the inditsinm present in some of the 
 leptosporangiate Ferns (see p. 391). Above the fovea, in the middle line, 
 is another smaller pit, the foveola, occupied by the somewhat swollen base of 
 a projecting flattened membranous structure, the ligule, which is developed 
 from a single superficial cell of the young foveola, and is relatively much 
 larger in the quite young leaf than in the adult. 
 
 The sterile leaves are less highly developed than the fertile ; they are 
 smaller, especially as regards the leaf-base. la the terrestrial species they are 
 reduced to scaly cataphyllary leaves of a brown colour. The leaf grows for but 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA: FILICIN2E ; EUSPORANGIATLE. 385 
 
 V 
 
 a very short time by means of an apical growing point. Its further growth is 
 intercalary by means of a zone of merismatic cells situated just above the 
 li<zule. In the sporophylls the tissue below the ligule also remains merismatie 
 for a time, thus providing the necessary space for the sporangium. 
 
 The sporangium is developed from a group of cells in the fovea. The 
 archesporium consists of a layer of hypodermal cells in the young sporangium. 
 In a microsporangium all the archesporial cells grow and divide so as to form 
 rows radiating from 
 the free surface to 
 the attachment of the 
 sporangium. Some 
 of these rows of cells 
 soon cease to grow, 
 and are not sporo- 
 genous, but remain 
 as plates of tissue, 
 termed trabecula, 
 which imperfectly 
 chamber the cavity 
 of the microsporang- 
 ium. Of the remain- 
 ing cells, the ma- 
 jority constitute the 
 mother-cells of the 
 microspores invested, 
 towards the wall of 
 the sporangium, by 
 sterile cells forming 
 the tapetum. In a 
 macro sporangium, 
 the fertile archespor- 
 ial cells undergo but 
 a single division, 
 whilst the trabeculaB 
 are formed as in the 
 microsporangium. 
 The large mother- 
 cells of the macro- 
 spores are isolated, 
 :nd each is invested 
 :y a tapetal layer. 
 3ach spore-mother- 
 cell gives rise, finally, 
 vo four spores. With 
 regard to the morph- 
 ology of the sporangium it may be pointed out that the segmentation of the 
 archesporium by the formation of the trabeculag, which is characteristic of 
 Isoetes, is probably to be taken as indicating a tendency towards the develope- 
 
 V. S. B. CO 
 
 Fie. 256,Jsoetes lacustris (after Luerssen). A riant, half 
 natsize: r dichotomously branched roots. B Inner (ventral) 
 surface of base of a sporophyll : I ligule ; / fovea. C Longi- 
 tudinal section of base of a sporophyll : sp the sporangium 
 in the fovea ; tr the trabeculae ; v the velum ; I the ligule. D 
 Transverse section of the base of a sporophyll : letters as in C. 
 
386 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 ment of several distinct sporangia in the place of one, a tendency which is 
 more clearly marked in the Marat tiacese. 
 
 With regard to the histology of Isoetes, the monostelic stem has a solid cen- 
 tral mass of vascular tissue formed by the collateral bundles coming from the 
 leaves. The wood consists of very short reticulated and spiral tracheids with 
 scattered parenchymatous cells, and is surrounded by a layer of transparent 
 tissue, consisting of shortly prismatic cells with broad and delicate pits, which 
 represents the bast. From the lower surface of the vascular mass, opposite the 
 furrows of the stem, are given off the bundles which go to the roots. 
 
 The stem undergoes slow growth in thickness, effected by a merismatic layer 
 situated externally to the layer of prismatic cells, and only interrupted by the 
 passage of bundles from the axial vascular cylinder of the stem to the leaves 
 and roots. The merismatic layer gives rise to tissue both internally and exter- 
 nally. The internal tissue consists of vascular tissue, and is formed in relatively 
 small quantity ; the external tissue is bulky, and consists of pareuchymatous 
 cortical cells. This cortical tissue is not produced uniformly all round, but on 
 two or three sides, according to the species. It is to this that the lobed and 
 furrowed appearance of the stem is due. 
 
 The leaves are characterised by the presence of four longitudinal rows of large 
 intercellular air-spaces, extending from one end to the other in the mesophyll, and 
 by the presence of a single median vascular bundle. In the aquatic species there 
 are no stomata in the epidermis ; the intercellular spaces are situated deeply 
 within the tissue, and there are no hypodermal strands of sclerenchymatous 
 tissue. In the amphibious and terrestrial species there are stomata, the inter- 
 cellular spaces are superficial (immediately beneath the epidermis in terrestrial 
 species), and there are longitudinal hypodermal strands (4-6) of sclerenchyma- 
 tous tissue which give rigidity to the leaf. 
 
 The root has an essentially diarch stele, which becomes, however, monarch 
 as in Oplnoglossum vulgatum. It is surrounded by a well-marked bundle- 
 sheath. The cortical tissue is clearly marked, by intercellular spaces, into an 
 inner and an outer region. 
 
 The development of the embryo-sporophyte begins with the formation of the 
 basal wall, which is obliquely transverse to the long axis of the archegonium, 
 and divides the oospore into an epibasal and a hypobasal half. Both these 
 cells undergo division into two, by the formation of a wall, the transverse 
 wall, at right angles to the basal wall, so that the embryo now consists of four 
 quadrant-cells ; and this appears to be generally followed by the formation of 
 a vertical wall, the median wal 1 , at right angles to the two preceding, so that 
 the embryo comes to consist of eight octant-cells. Owing to the difficulty at 
 distinguishing the growing-point of the young stem, there is still some uncer- 
 tainty as to the exact relation of the members of the embryo to these octants, 
 but it appears to be probably somewhat as follows : The first leaf (cotyledon) 
 arises from the two upper epibasal octants ; the growing-point of the stem, to- 
 gether with the first root, arises from the two lower epibasal octants ; the four 
 hypobasal octants give rise to the large foot. If this be so, then the first root, 
 springing as it does from the epibasal half of the embryo, must be regarded, not 
 as a true primary root, but as an adventitious root, a view which is supported 
 by the fact that the origin of the growing-point of the root, though not abso- 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICIN^ ; EUSPORANGIAT&. 387 
 
 lutely exogenous, is superficial. In this respect Isoetes would differ from the 
 other Filicinae. 
 
 The first indication of the development of the members is the segmentation 
 of each octant after the manner of a tetrahedral apical cell, so that for a short 
 period, stem, root, and leaf may be said to grow by means of an apical cell. 
 By the formation of periclinal walls, these cells are soon converted into a 
 merismatic tissue. 
 
 The growth of the cotyledon and of the first root is rapid ; that of the stem 
 slow : the cotyledon and the first root soon make their way out of the macro- 
 spore, when the former becomes green and the latter curves into the soil : the 
 growing-point of the stem is deeply seated between the bases of the cotyledon 
 and of the root. A second leaf is early developed from the growing-point of 
 the stem and is opposite to the cotyledon : these two first leaves are smaller than 
 those produced later, and have only two longitudinal rows of air-chambers 
 instead of four. The second root is developed endogenously from a group of 
 cells at the base of the second leaf : it is clearly adventitious. 
 
 GAMETOPHYTE. As Isoetes is heterosporous, the gametophyte is represented 
 by distinct male and female individuals, which remain connected with the spores 
 producing them. 
 
 The male individual is developed from a microspore. The microspore which 
 has the form of the quadrant of a sphere and is consequently of the bilateral or 
 radial type undergoes, on germination, division by a transverse wall, formed 
 near one of its somewhat pointed ends, into two cells, a large and a small : the 
 latter is the vegetative cell, and undergoes no further change ; the former i* 
 the mother-cell of the male organ or antheridium. The prothallium here is thus 
 very much reduced, consisting of a single antheridium and of a single purely 
 vegetative cell. The antheridium, developed by the growth and division of the 
 mother-cell, consists of four peripheral cells forming the wall, and of four 
 central cells, each of which gives rise to a single spirally coiled multiciliate 
 spermatozoid. 
 
 The female individual is developed from a macrospore. The macrospores are 
 much larger than the microspores, and are nearly globular in form, though 
 they belong to the tetrahedral type, as can be seen by the three ridges on 
 the spore where it was in contact with the other three developed from the 
 same mother-cell. On germination, the nucleus of the macrospore undergoes 
 repeated division ; this is followed by free cell- formation in the apical region 
 (the pointed end where the three ridges meet) of the macrospore, the result 
 being the formation of a small-celled tissue ; subsequently cell-formation 
 extends into the basal portion of the spore, a tissue being formed there con- 
 sisting of relatively large cells with coarsely granular contents. Thus the 
 macrospore becomes completely filled with a mass of cellular tissue which con- 
 stitutes the female prothallium : the upper small-celled tissue is the essentially 
 reproductive portion, whilst the lower large-celled tissue simply serves as a 
 depository of nutritive substances. 
 
 The female organ, the archegonium, is developed from one of the 
 superficial cells of the small-celled prothallial tissue, after the manner de- 
 scribed on page 377. It appears that two or three archegonia are usually 
 formed : but if none of these primary archegonia are fertilised, a small number 
 of additional archegonia may be subsequently developed. 
 
388 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The archegonia are exposed, for the purpose of fertilisation, by the splitting 
 of the coats of the macrospore along the three ridges already described : the 
 prothallium does not, however, project from the spore, nor does it become 
 green. After fertilisation, the oospore developes into the embryo as described 
 above : the foot of the embryo grows down into the large cells of the basal por- 
 tion of the prothallium, absorbs the nutritive substances which were stored 
 up in them, and thus supplies the embryo with food until such time as its leaves 
 and roots are sufficiently developed to enable it to nourish itself in the usual 
 way. 
 
 C. HOMOSPOROUS LEPTOSPORANGIAT^E (Filices). 
 
 The orders constituting this group have so much in common 
 that they may be advantageously considered all together. 
 
 SPOKOPHYTE. The body is differentiated into stem, leaf, and root 
 (generally) : the leaves are large in proportion to the stem, and are 
 relatively few in number. 
 
 The stem has either radial or dorsiventral symmetry. In the 
 former case it is commonly short and straight ; it grows into the air 
 erect, or at any degree between the vertical and the horizontal ; 
 its surface is generally completely covered by the insertions of the 
 spirally arranged leaves, and by adventitious roots : it becomes, 
 however, elongated, to a considerable height sometimes, in the 
 Tree-Ferns. 
 
 In the latter case, the stem grows as a rhizome either on or in 
 the soil, or on the surface of some tree upon which the plant lives 
 as an epiphyte : the leaves are borne on its dorsal surface, either 
 in two rows {e.g. species of Aneimia and Polypodium), or in a 
 single row (e.g. Lygodium palmatum, Polypodium Heracleum and 
 P. quercifolium) : from the lower (ventral) surface, spring the 
 adventitious roots. 
 
 The growth in length of the stem, is effected by a growing-point 
 with a single apical cell (with the occasional exception of 
 Osmunda) : the apical cell is, as a rule, a three-sided pyramid 
 with its spherical base at the surface : but in Pteris aquilina it 
 is usually a two-sided lenticular cell, with its longer axis in the 
 dorso- ventral plane. 
 
 The radial stems branch but little, least of all when the stem 
 is elongated, as in the Tree-Ferns ; and such branching as there 
 is appears to be mainly adventitious, the buds springing from the 
 bases of the leaves. In the dorsiventral stems there is normal 
 lateral branching, which takes place ki the transverse plane : the 
 
GROUP III. I'TERIDOPHYTA: FILICIN-E J LEPTOSPORANGIATJE. 389 
 
 branches are borne on the flanks of the stem, and are frequently 
 {e.g. some Hymenophyllaceee) axillary in their origin. 
 
 The leaves are for the most part foliage-leaves, though scaly 
 leaves are found on the subterranean rhizomes of Onoclea Stru- 
 thiopteris and Osmunda regalis, and in some cases the sporophylls 
 are more or less differentiated from the sterile leaves. 
 
 The foliage-leaves are relatively large, sometimes entire (e.g. 
 Scolopendrium), but generally more or less deeply and repeatedly 
 
 FIG. 257. Sori (s) of the most important groups of Leptosporangiate Fern?, all seen from 
 below. A Pinna of Trichomanes sinuosum, one of the Hymenophyllaceae : r projecting 
 placenta; s sporangia; i indusium ; at a half of the indusium is removed. B Pinna of 
 Davallia (Leucostegia) at s the one-valved indusium (i) is turned back. C Part of a leaf of 
 Pteris serrulata .- s the sporangia ; m the inverted margin. D Lacinia of Nephrodium at 
 s the indusium is removed, and at r the sporangia also. E Lacinia of an Asplenium at 
 a the indusium is turned back. F Pinna of Polypodium vulgare with naked sori at r the 
 sporangia are removed. (All are x 3 to 6.) 
 
 pinnately lobed or branched; sometimes dichotomously branched 
 (e.g. Platycerium, species of Schizeea). 
 
 The leaves in all cases have apical growth ; the growing-point 
 has, in most of the orders, a two-sided apical cell, whilst in the 
 Osmundacese the apical cell is tetrahedral. In Lygodium, where 
 the leaf is a climbing organ, the apical growth is long continued. 
 
390 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The leaf arises from a single superficial cell of the growing- 
 point of the stem. When young it is strongly hyponastic (see 
 p. 60), so that, as it elongates and branches, both the main axis 
 of the leaf (phyllopodium) and the lateral branches become 
 inrolled upon themselves like a crosier: in other words, the 
 vernation is circinate: as it grows older the growth becomes 
 epinastic, and thus the leaf becomes expanded. 
 
 In the great majority of these Ferns the xporophylls are simply 
 foliage-leaves bearing sporangia on the dorsal surface, but in 
 certain cases they are more or less specialised. Thus, in Onoclea 
 Struthiopteris, the sporophylls are smaller than the foliage-leaves, 
 and have narrower pinnae : in the Hard Fern, Blechnum boreale, 
 the sporophylls are longer and have narrower pinnae than the 
 foliage-leaves: in Osmunda regalis the pinnae of the upper branches 
 of the sporophyll are reduced to little more than the midrib, the 
 pinnules being represented by clusters of sporangia : in Aneitnia 
 (e.g. A. Phyllitidis) generally the lowest pair of pinnae of the 
 sporophyll alone bear sporangia; these pinnae consist merely of the 
 nervature bearing numerous sporangia, and are erect on much 
 elongated secondary petioles : in PLaty cerium alcicorne there is a 
 curious instance of specialisation; the foliage-leaves are broad, 
 and closely appressed to the substratum, whereas the sporophylls 
 are erect, narrow, and branched. 
 
 The sporangia are but rarely borne on the superior (ventral) 
 surface of the sporophyll (e.g. Olfersia cervina) ; more commonly 
 on the margin (e.j. Hymenophyllaceae, Dicksonia, Davallia) ; but 
 as a rule, on the dorsal surface, either near to the margin (e.g. 
 Pteris, Adiantum), or distant from it (e.g. Asplenium, Aspidium, 
 etc). They are usually developed in connexion with the nervature 
 of the sporophyll, but sometimes also from the intervening tissue 
 of the lamina (Acrosticheae, such as Polybotrya, Chry sodium) : in 
 the former case they occur in groups, termed sor/, which are 
 commonly isolated, but occasionally (e.g. Pteris) a continuous 
 marginal sorus is formed. 
 
 The sorus generally consists of a large number of sporangia : in 
 the Gleicheniaceae, however, the number is small (2-8); and in. 
 some cases (e.g. Lygodium) there is only a single sporangium. 
 The sporangia of the sorus are borne on a projection of tissue, 
 the placenta or receptacle, which presents various forms : it may 
 be a slight rounded elevation (e.g. Aspidium) ; or more elongated 
 and conical (e.g. Cyathea, Hyinenophyllum) ; or very long and 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICIN.E J LEPTOSPORANGIATJ:. 391 
 
 filiform, bearing sporangia only at its base (e.g. species of Tricho- 
 manes) ; or a ridge (e.g. Pteris, Blechnum). 
 
 The sorus is quite bare in many forms (Gleicheniacese ; 
 Osmundaceae ; Alsophila among Cyatheacese ; Schizseaceae, except 
 Lygodium ; Polypodieae) ; in others it is more or less covered by a 
 protective membrane, the indusium, which is an outgrowth of the 
 tissue of the leaf, generally of the epidermis alone. When it 
 springs from the placenta below the sorus (indusium inferum), it 
 is somewhat cup-shaped : in the extreme case of Diacalpe 
 (Polypodiacese) the indusium forms a completely closed globular 
 investment to the sorus ; it is urceolate and entire in Trichomanes 
 (Fig. 257 A), Lygodium, Cyathea, Davallia : it is bilabiate in Hy- 
 menophyllum ; two-valved in Cibotium, Dicksonia; or it consists of 
 
 FIG. 253. A dehisced spor- 
 angium of Aspidium Filix-mas 
 ( x 90) : a the stalk, with a 
 glandular hair p; r the annu- 
 lus ; s the stomium. 
 
 B. 
 
 FIG. 259. Sections of young sporangia; A of a 
 Pern (Mohria), B of Equisetuna ( x 150): w wall ; t tape- 
 turn ; a s archesporium, 
 
 a single lateral valve, as in Hemitelia and Cystopteris : in Woodsia 
 the calyciform indusium is laciniate, the lacinise frequently ending 
 in long hairs. When it springs from the apex of the placenta, 
 above the sorus (indusium superum), the indusium has the general 
 appearance of a peltate scale, either orbicular in outline (Aspid- 
 ium) or reniform (Nephrodium, Fig. 257 D). When it is developed 
 on one side of the sorus (indusium laterale), the indusium is a long 
 narrow scale, attached along its length, and overlying the sorus 
 (e.g. Asplenium [Fig. 257 E], Blechnum, Scolopendrium). In some 
 cases, where the sori are near the margin, they are protected by 
 a false indusium, which is merely the incurved margin of the leaf 
 (e.g. Cheilanthes, Adiantum, some species of Pteris). In Pteris 
 
392 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 aquilina, and some other species (section Ornithopteris), in 
 addition to the false indusium, there is also a membrane along the 
 inner side of the sorus, which is a kind of lateral indusium, 
 adapted to protect a continuous marginal sorus. 
 
 In some cases hairs of various form, termed parapliyses, also 
 spring from the placenta among the sporangia ; not uncommonly, 
 when the sorus is naked, these hairs are scaly, often peltate, and 
 
 Fie. 260. Scolopendriitm vulgare (Hart's-tongne Fere). A Transverse section of a soras; 
 indusium ; 8 g sporangia. B-E Sporangia ; B and E seen sideways ; C in front ; 1) from 
 the back ; F a spore. (-4 x 50 ; B-E x 145 ; Fx 540 : after Strasburger.) 
 
 serve to protect the sporangia (e.g. Notochlsena, Platycerinm, Ple- 
 opeltis, Hymenolepis, etc.). In some forms (e.g. Aspidium Filix- 
 mas) the stalks of the sporangia bear glandular hairs ; sometimes 
 even the sporangia themselves (e.g. Polypodium crassifolium) . 
 With the possible exception of the Osmundacese, each sporangium 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : iriLlCIN^ ; LEPTOSPORANGIAT.E. 393 
 
 is developed from a single superficial cell. The cell grows so as 
 to project more or less : it is then divided into two cells an outer, 
 the mother-cell of the sporangium; an inner, the stalk-cellby a 
 wall which may be horizontal (most Polypodiacese) or oblique 
 (as in HymenophyllaceaB, Schizeeaceae). As the mother-cell of the 
 sporangium grows, it undergoes division by the successive forma- 
 tion of three oblique walls, intersecting one another below at an 
 angle of about 60, and reaching above to the wall of the mother- 
 cell; at this stage the sporangium consists of three latero-basal 
 external cells surrounding the pointed lower end of a tetrahedral 
 cell, the spherical base of which occupies the summit of the spor- 
 angium. A wall is now formed in the tetrahedral cell, parallel to 
 its spherical free surface, and intersecting the three oblique walls ; 
 so that the sporangium now consists of four peripheral cells, form- 
 ing the wall, and a central cell. From the central cell are cut off, 
 by successive walls parallel to its sides, four cells which give rise 
 to the tapetum by subsequent growth and radial, and sometimes tan- 
 gential, division; the remaining internal tetrahedral cell constitutes 
 the unicellular archesporium from which the spores are derived. 
 
 As the young sporangium grows, it gradually assumes its 
 definitive form (oval-lenticular, as in Polypodiaceae, Cyatheaceaa; 
 discoid, as in Hymenophyllaceae ; ovoid, as in most SchizaeaceeD ; 
 globose, as in Ceratopteris and Mohria). The four primary peri- 
 pheral cells undergo repeated radial division, and form the wall 
 of the sporangium, which ultimately consists of a single layer of 
 cells with cuticularised walls : a portion of the wall is in all cases 
 developed to form the ring or annulus, by means of which the 
 dehiscence of the sporangium is effected, the walls of which are 
 specially thickened and cuticularised, coloured yellow or brown, 
 and are elastic. The form and position of the annulus varies in 
 the different groups : in the Polypodiaceae (Fig. 260), where the 
 sporangium is attached to the stalk by the margin, the incomplete 
 annulus is a projecting row of cells with their longer axes trans- 
 verse, extending round the margin in the plane of the stalk, with 
 which it is connected on one side, but not quite reaching it on the 
 other ; in the Cyatheaceae, in which the form and attachment of the 
 sporangium is similar, the annulus is slightly inclined to the plane 
 of the stalk, and it is quite complete; in the Hymenophyllaceae 
 and Gleicheniaceae, where the discoid sporangium is attached by 
 its under surface, the annulus forms a complete ridge round the 
 margin, more or less nearly at right angles to the plane of attach- 
 
394 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 ment ; in the Schizseaceae the annulus is a dome-shaped group of 
 cells at the apex of the ovoid sporangium. 
 
 As the development proceeds, the formation of the spores takes 
 place in the interior of the sporangium. The archesporial cell 
 undergoes repeated division, with the result that usually sixteen 
 cells are formed, which are the mother-cells of the spores. At 
 this stage the tapetal cells undergo disintegration, so that the 
 mass of spore-mother-cells floats freely in the liquid thus pro- 
 duced. Each mother-cell then undergoes division to form four 
 spores; the planes of division may be either such that the 
 developing spores all lie in one plane, when the mature spores are 
 bilateral (e.y. many Polypodiaceae, as Aspidium, Asplenium, Ne- 
 phrolepis, Blechnum, Polypodium, etc. ; Grleicheniaceae ; Schizaea) ; 
 
 or such that the spores are ar- 
 ranged in a pyramidal manner, 
 when the mature spores are tetra- 
 Itedral (Hymenophyllaceae ; Cya- 
 theaceae; most Schizasaceae ; some 
 Polypodiaceae, as generally in the 
 Pteridese ; Osmundacese : see p. 
 126). 
 
 The sporangium of the Os- 
 mundacea3 differs in various re- 
 ppects from that of the other 
 Leptosporangiate Ferns ; its ori- 
 gin from a single superficial cell 
 cannot be so easily traced, as the 
 mother-cell does not project, and 
 the succession of cell-divisions is not regular; the archesporial cell 
 is frequently not tetrahedral in form, and the resulting spore- 
 mother-cells are more numerous than in the other Ferns (as many 
 as 128) ; the sporangium is somewhat pear-shaped, with a rudi- 
 mentary annulus consisting of groups of cells situated laterally 
 towards the upper surface (Fig. 261). 
 
 The sporangium may be sessile (Gleicheniaceae, most Schizceacese, 
 Hymenopbyllaceae) ; or shortly stalked (Lygodium, Cyatheaceae, 
 Osmundacese) ; or it may have a usually rather long slender stalk 
 consisting of two or three longitudinal rows of cells (Polypodiaceae) ; 
 this is dependent upon whether the originally-formed stalk-cell 
 developes further or not. 
 
 The spores are set free by the dehiscence of the sporangium ; 
 
 B 
 
 FIG. 261. 0*munda regalis. A Fertile 
 pinna with naked marginal sori(s). Some 
 mcsophyll is, however, developed at the 
 b tse (nat. size). B A single sporangium 
 ( x 200) : st the short stalk ; r the annulus ; 
 d the longitudinal slit. 
 
GROUP til. PTERIDOPHYTA ; FILICTN^l ; LEPTOSPORANGIAT^. 395 
 
 this takes place at a certain part which, though different in the 
 various forms of sporangia, is always closely connected with the 
 annulus and is termed the stomium (see Fig. 258) ; dehiscence 
 begins by a split between (not through) the cells of the stomium. 
 In the Polypodiacese the plane of dehiscence is at right angles to 
 the long axis of the sporangium, and the stomium is situated on 
 the margin between the end of the annulus and the stalk ; in the 
 Cyatheacese, where the stomium is included in the annulus, the 
 plane of dehiscence is as in the Polypodiacese ; in the Hymeno- 
 phyllaceae and Gleicheniaceae the stomium is included in the annu- 
 lus, and the plane of dehiscence is vertical; in the Schizseacese the 
 htomium is on the more concave surface, and the dehiscence is 
 lateral longitudinal ; in the Osmundacese the stomium extends 
 from above the annulus, over the summit of the sporangium, and 
 it is in this vertical plane that dehiscence takes place. 
 
 A striking feature in the general morphology of these plants is 
 the presence on the stem and the bases of the leaf-stalks, espe- 
 cially when young, of numerous scaly hairs (ramenta or palece), 
 which consist usually of a single layer of cells, with more or less 
 thickened brown walls ; they are of various shape, and frequently 
 have marginal glandular hairs secreting tannin or mucilage, the 
 latter generally in the neighbourhood of a growing-point of stem 
 or leaf. Less commonly, glandular hairs are developed on the 
 leaves, as in species of Gymnogramme (Gold and Silver Ferns), it 
 which the under surface of the leaves is covered with a yellowish 
 dust, consisting of minute needles of resinous and waxy substances, 
 secreted by the hairs. Root-hairs occur on subterranean stems 
 and leaf-stalks. 
 
 A primary root is developed, probably in all forms, but in no 
 case does it persist in the adult. In the full-grown plant all the 
 roots are adventitious ; they spring in great numbers from the 
 stem or the leaf-stalks. The roots are small and branched; 
 the branching is lateral, and the growing-points of the young 
 roots are developed each from a single cell of the bundle-sheath 
 (endodermis), termed a rJiizogenic cell, situated opposite to a 
 xylem-bundle of the central cylinder. In most cases the growing- 
 point of the root has a single pyramidal apical cell (see Fig. 115) 
 with three flat sides and a spherical base directed outwards. But 
 in the Osmundaceee the structure of the growing-point is not 
 constant; there may be a single apical cell of varying form, or a 
 group of initial cells. 
 
396 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 Adventitious bads, subserving vegetative propagation, are com- 
 monly produced ; they arise most frequently on the subterranean 
 portions of leaf-stalks (as in Pteris aquilina, Aspidium Filix-mas), 
 and sometimes, as in Onoclea Struthiopteris, the bud grows into 
 a subterranean stolon which eventually throws up at its apex a 
 whorl of green leaves, thus constituting a new plant; but also 
 frequently from the lamina, as in Asplenium (Diplazium) celtidi- 
 folium, A. bulbiferum, and other species. The bud originates from 
 a single epidermal cell. 
 
 General Histology. The structure of stem, petiole, and root, is 
 characterised throughout by the presence of hypodermal layers, 
 and, generally, of scattered strands of sclerenchymatous tissue, 
 consisting of more or less elongated ground- tissue cells with more 
 or less thickened brown-coloured walls ; and by the predominance 
 of scalariform vascular tissue in the xylem which consists, with 
 but few exceptions, of tracheides. 
 
 The stem is, at its first development, monostelic, with a single 
 axile stele: in some forms this structure obtains (with or with- 
 out pith) throughout the whole stem (e.g. Hymenophyllacese, 
 Lygodium, Schiznoa, stolons of Nephrolepis) : in the Osmundacese 
 the stem is monostelic throughout, the stele eventually consisting 
 of a ring of bundles enclosing a pith : in the other families the 
 stem becomes polys teltc. 
 
 In the monostelic stem the bundles are sometimes conjoint and 
 collateral (e.g. Trichomanes among Hymenophyllaceae, Osmun- 
 daceo>) : in all other cases the arrangement of the bundles in the 
 stele is concentric, or, more strictly speaking, bicollateral, since 
 the phloem does not quite completely surround the xylem-bundles. 
 The concentric steles are cauline and diarch, with usually an 
 endodermis and a pericycle : in some cases, however, where the 
 stele is small (e.g. some species of Polypodium) there is no peri- 
 cycle, its place being taken by a layer of cells formed by the 
 division of the primitive endodermis (p. 165) into two layers. 
 
 In the polystelic stem the course of the steles is such that they 
 form a meshwork, each mesh corresponding to the insertion of a 
 leaf : the bundles of the leaf join those forming the corresponding 
 mesh in the stem. The form of the mesh is determined by the 
 number and insertion of the leaves: when the leaves are numerous 
 and closely arranged, the meshes are relatively short and broad; 
 when the leaves are few and scattered, the meshes are long and 
 narrow. Tn dorsiventral stems, a regular meshwork is only 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICINJI ; LEPTOSPORANGIATJ;. 397 
 
 present towards the surface where the leaves are borne j i.e. 
 towards the dorsal surface (see p. 388). 
 
 In a monostelic stem, such as that of Osmunda, though the 
 
 B. 
 
 FIG. 262. Embryogeny of the sporophyte of Pteris serrulate ( x 235 : after Kienitz-Cerloff). 
 A In longitudinal section: B transverse section, at right angles to the preceding : C older 
 embryo in longitudinal section. The vertical arrows indicate the long axis of the arche- 
 gonium, pointing to the neck : tbe horizontal arrows indicate the longitudinal axis of 
 the prothallium, pointing to its organic apex. I-I Basal wall; Il-If transverse wall; 
 Ill-Ill median wall : r apical cell of root ; 1 apical cell of cotyledon ; s apical cell of stem ; 
 /foot. 
 
 bundles are numerous, no such mesh work is formed. The bundles 
 are here common. A single bundle enters the stem from each 
 leaf, runs straight through several in- 
 ternodes, and then curves to join with 
 the bundle of an older leaf, seven leaves 
 intervening between the two. 
 
 Embryogeny of the SporopJiyte. The 
 sporophyte is developed from the fertil- 
 ised female cell, the oospore : the de- 
 velopment has only been studied in 
 species of Polypodiacese, and has been 
 found to be as follows. The oospore is 
 first of all divided into two cells by the 
 formation of a wall, the basal wall, which 
 nearly coincides with the long axis of 
 the archegonium : a second wall is then 
 formed, the transverse wall, at right 
 angles to the preceding, with the result 
 that the spherical embryo now consists 
 of four cells or quadrants : then a third 
 wall, the median wall, is formed in a plane 
 
 FIG. 263,Adiantunt CapiZhis- 
 Veneris. The prothalliam (pp) 
 seen from below with young 
 Fern attached to it by its foot ; b 
 its first leaf or cotyledon ; w' its 
 primai'y, w" secondary, roots; 
 1i root-hairs of the prothallium 
 (x about 3). (After Sachs). 
 
PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 at right angles to both the preceding walls, the embryo now consist- 
 ing of eight equal cells or octants. Of these octants, four belong 
 to one half of the embryo, which is termed the epibasal half ; and 
 four to the other half, the Tiypobasal half: from these octants the 
 primary organs of the sporophyte are developed. Beginning with 
 the four epibasai octants, the two apical octants (i.e. nearest to the 
 neck of the archegonium) give rise to the growing-point of the first 
 leaf or cotyledon: of the two deeper (towards the venter of arche- 
 gonium) octants, the one constitutes the growing-point of the 
 stem, whilst the other gives rise to nothing beyond possibly some 
 
 hairs. Of 
 the four hy- 
 pobasal oc- 
 tants, one of 
 the two api- 
 cal octants 
 gives rise to 
 the growing- 
 point of the 
 primary root, 
 which is dia- 
 metrically 
 opposite to 
 the growing 
 point of the 
 stem ; whilst 
 the other 
 gives rise to 
 no special 
 member : the 
 two deeper 
 hy pobasal 
 
 octants give rise to the embryonic absorptive organ, the foot. 
 The gradual development of these members is dependent upon 
 growth and corresponding cell-division, and at an early stage 
 histological differentiation into cortical and stelar tissues is 
 apparent in them. For a time the tissue of the venter of the 
 archegonium keeps pace by growth with the increasing size of the 
 embryo : but eventually the primary root and the cotyledon become 
 free, and ultimately also the stem (Fig. 264). In the meantime the 
 embryo is nourished by means of the foot which has become a mass 
 
 264. Section of young plant of Pteris aquilina still attached 
 to the prothallium by its foot: p prothallium ; /foot; r primary root ; 
 s growing-point of primary stem; I primary leaf or cotyledon. (Mag- 
 nified: after Hofmeister.) 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICIN^ ; LEPTOSPORANGIAT. 399 
 
 of tissue filling the venter of the archegonium : it absorbs from the 
 adjacent cells the organic substances formed in the prothallium by 
 means of the chloroplastids which most of the cells contain. The 
 primary root and the cotyledon are both small and short-lived : 
 the former is succeeded by the numerous adventitious roots, the 
 latter by the true foliage-leaves. The foot is a merely embryonic 
 organ : it disappears when the young sporophy te has become firmly 
 attached to the substratum, and is capable of independently 
 absorbing and assimilating food. 
 
 GAMETOPHYTE. The gametophyte is a prothallium, always con- 
 taining chloroplastids, generally a dorsi ventral, flattened, cellular 
 expansion, or sometimes filamentous, which is developed from a 
 spore, but which becomes completely free from the spore ; there 
 is frequently a more or less marked differentiation of a sexual 
 receptacle, which may attain the dignity of a gametophore, but is, 
 however, exclusively female. In the dorsiventral prothallium the 
 reproductive organs, as also the root- hairs, are confined to the in- 
 ferior (ventral) surface. 
 
 The prothallium is typically monoecious : the male organs, or 
 antheridia, are developed first, and are consequently situated 
 towards the posterior or basal end of the prothallium ; the later- 
 formed archegonia lie towards the anterior or apical end. It 
 sometimes happens, however, that, owing to imperfect nutrition, 
 the growth of the prothallium does not proceed beyond the stage 
 necessary for the formation of the antheridia, so that exclusively 
 male prothallia may be sometimes found; less commonly, well- 
 nourished prothallia fail to produce antheridia, and consequently 
 exclusively female prothallia are found. The practical result of 
 this successive formation of the antheridia and archegonia is that 
 but few of them can possibly mature at the same time on one and 
 the same prothallium ; the prothallium is in effect dichogamous, 
 arid, consequently, cross-fertilisation is almost certainly ensured. 
 
 The development of the prothallium commences with the rupture 
 of the outer coat (exospore) of the germinating spore, which takes 
 place either along three lines meeting at an angle, when the spore 
 is tetrahedral, or by a longitudinal slit when the spore is bilateral, 
 the contents covered by the inner coat (endospore) being exposed. 
 Most commonly this cell grows out into a filament, cell-divisions 
 taking place in the transverse plane only, so that the prothallium 
 consists of a longitudinal row of cells. At length a longitudinal 
 wall is formed in the terminal cell of the filament ; cell-division 
 
400 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 then proceeds in two planes, giving rise to a flattened plate of cells, 
 further growth being effected by means of a two-sided apical cell. 
 After a time the activity of the apical cell ceases, a periclinal wall 
 beingformed in it; whatever further 
 growth takes place is effected by P ^/^ 
 
 FIG. 265. Diagram of the prothal- 
 lium of a Leptosporangiate Fern : under 
 side ( x 10). ar Archegonia ; an anthe- 
 ridia; h root-hairs. 
 
 FIG. 260. Antheridium of Adiantum 
 Capillus-Veneris (x 650). p Prothallium; 
 a antheridium ; s spermatozoid ; b the 
 vesicle containing starch-grains. 
 
 A 
 
 the marginal cells. At this stage the prothallium becomes some- 
 what heart-shaped, the anterior depression indicating the position 
 of the organic apex. The cells lying anteriorly in the middle line 
 now begin to divide in a plane parallel to the surface, with the 
 result that the prothallium becomes thickened in this region, and 
 
 eventually a 
 "cushion" 
 of tissue, 
 several lay- 
 ers of cells 
 in thickness, 
 is produced, 
 which pro- 
 jects on the 
 lower (ven- 
 tral) sur- 
 face, and 
 
 FIG. 267. Polypodium vulgare. A Young archegonium, not yet bears the 
 open : K' neck-canal-cell ; K" ventral canal-cell : o young oosphere. 
 B Mature archegonium open, (x 210 : after Strasburger.) archegoma. 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICIN2E ; LEPTOSPORANGIAT^. 401 
 
 The foregoing account refers especially to the Poly pod iacese and 
 to the Cyatheaceee : it also applies generally to the Schizeeacese, 
 though here the activity of the apical cell is of shorter duration. 
 In the Grleicheniaceee occasionally, in the Osmundaceae always, there 
 is no filamentous stage in the development of the prothallium, but 
 it at once developes into a plate or mass of cells. Moreover, m 
 the Osmundacese there is an indication of a differentiation of the 
 prothallium into shoot and root, since the first septum formed in 
 the germinating spore is transverse, dividing a posterior cell, which 
 contains relatively few chloroplastids and sometimes none, from 
 an anterior cell in which they are numerous : the posterior cell 
 grows into a simple hair which may be regarded as representing a 
 root (see p. 61), whilst the anterior cell divides to form the shoot 
 of the prothallium. In the Hymenophyllaceae the prothallium is 
 comparatively rudimentary and presents remarkable peculiarities. 
 In Hymenophyllum, the filamentous stage is either wanting or is 
 of very short duration : the prothallium is irregular in form and 
 is dichotomously branched, a rare occurrence sometimes also pre- 
 sented by old prothallia of Osmunda : it bears groups of archegonia 
 on its under surface but close to the margin, and it may consist 
 throughout of a single layer of cells, or of two or three layers 
 where the archegonia are borne. These peculiarities find their 
 parallel in certain aberrant forms among the Polypodiaceae 
 (Vittaria, Monogramme). In Trichomanes, the prothallium is 
 characteristically filamentous, consisting of a single much-branched 
 row of cells, and somewhat resembles the protonema of Mosses. 
 In some species (Trichomanes incisum and sinuosum), some of the 
 lateral branches develope into flattened cell-plates, on the margin 
 of which archegonia are borne : in others (e.g. T. pyxidiferum) 
 there are no such flattened expansions, but the cells of some of the 
 branches divide so as to form a small solid cell- mass which bears 
 archegonia. 
 
 The gametophore. In none of these Ferns is there any special 
 organ developed to bear the antheridia, so that the gametophore 
 is always an archegoniophore. 
 
 There are to be observed in the Ferns (as is also the case in the 
 HepaticaaJ all stages between a mere receptacle and a fully developed 
 archegoniophore. The simplest case is, perhaps, that of Hymeno- 
 phyllum, where each marginal group of archegonia may be 
 regarded as a receptacle, though the cushion is but slightly 
 developed; in the majority (most Polypodiaceae, Cyatheaceae, 
 
 v. s. B. D D 
 
402 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Gleicheniacese generally) there is a well-developed cushion, 
 situated anteriorly in the middle line, whilst in the Schizseaceee 
 it is on one side ; in the Osmundacese the receptacle is in the form 
 of a midrib, projecting on the under surface, bearing a longitudinal 
 series of archegonia on each flank. In other cases there is a 
 definite archegoniophore, that is, the receptacle is borne on a stalk 
 which is a ventral branch of the prothallium. Thus, in Gymno- 
 gramme leptophylla (Polypodiacese), the cushion on the ventral 
 surface of the prothallium elongates into the soil and there be- 
 comes tuberous, and it is on the upper surface of this tuberous 
 archegoniophore that the archegonia are produced. Again, in 
 Aneimia (Schizseaceas), if the first-formed archegonia fail to be 
 fertilised, the cushion has been observed to grow out into an 
 archegoniophore. Finally, the flattened or massive cellular 
 appendages of the filamentous prothallium of Trichomanes incisum 
 and sinuosum may be also regarded as archegoniophores. 
 
 The antheridia are generally borne on the posterior portion of 
 the prothallium, scattered without any definite order. It occa- 
 sionally happens that they occur in the female receptacle, or even 
 on an archegoniophore; thus, in some Hymenophyllurns, antheridia 
 have been found in the groups of archegonia, and they are frequently 
 developed on the cushion in Polypodiacese and Schizseacece ; they 
 are also developed on the flat archegoniophores of Trichomanes 
 sinuosum, and on the archegoniophore of Aneimia. 
 
 The sexual organs. The antheridium is developed from a 
 single superficial cell. The free surface of this cell grows out into 
 a blunt protuberance, which is cut off by a transverse wall. The 
 projecting cell thus formed generally undergoes division by the 
 formation of a transverse wall near its base, so that it comes to 
 consist of two cells, the lower of which is the stalk-cell, the upper, 
 the antheridial cell. The latter grows, becoming more or less 
 spherical, and undergoes repeated cell-divisions which result in 
 the formation of a wall, consisting of a single layer of cell?, 
 surrounding a large central cell from which, by further division, 
 the mother-cells of the spermatozoids are formed. When mature, 
 absorption of water causes the rupture of the antheridium ; the 
 mother-cells of the spermatozoids are now set free, and the 
 spermatozoids soon escape from the mother-cells as coiled ciliated 
 filaments, each having usually attached to it posteriorly a vesicle 
 of granular protoplasm, the remains of the contents of the mother- 
 cell (see Fig. 266) 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICINJ3 ; LEPTOSPORAXGIATJ3. 403 
 
 The archego nium. The general description given above (p. 377) 
 of the development and structure of the archegonium, and of the 
 process of fertilisation, will suffice for this group of the Pterido- 
 phyta. It should, however, be mentioned that only a single neck- 
 canal-cell is developed. 
 
 The root-hairs retain in all cases their typical unicellular- 
 structure. They arise as tubular outgrowths from single cells, 
 having, at first, colourless walls, which eventually become 
 thickened, and assume a brown colour ; the cavity of the hair is 
 cut off by a septum from that of the cell from which it springs ; 
 their form is most commonly elongated and cylindrical, but some- 
 times (e.g. Hymenophyllacese) they are short and slightly branched. 
 The development of .the root-hairs begins at the earliest stage in 
 the formation of the prothallium. Generally speaking, the root- 
 hairs are developed laterally, and as the prothallium assumes the 
 flattened expanded form, the development extends inwards from 
 the margin, over the inferior surface, and forwards as far as the 
 posterior part of the cushion ; but in Osmunda, they are chiefly 
 developed along the middle line of the midrib, between the two 
 lateral rows of archegonia, and in Hymenophyllum they are 
 developed in isolated groups near the edge. 
 
 The life of the gametophyte is, as a rule, short, being limited 
 by the fertilisation of an archegonium. If, however, fertilisation 
 does not take place, the prothallium continues to grow for several 
 months, or even years in the case of Osmunda. 
 
 The gametophyte, in many instances, produces its like ; either 
 by means of adventitious branches, which become isolated and 
 then develope into prothallia ; or, by means of gemmae, which are 
 thrown off and form prothallia. Propagation by means of 
 adventitious branches has been occasionally observed in various 
 Polypodiaceae and Cyatheaceae, more especially in prothallia 
 which have remained exclusively male ; in Gleicheniacese, 
 Osmundaceoe, and Schizaeaceae (Aneimia, Moliria), the formation 
 of these branches is the rule ; it is common in Hymenophyllum. 
 In Aneimia and Mohria alone, the adventitious branches spring 
 from the the cushion ; in the other cases the branches are 
 generally developed each from a single marginal cell of the pro- 
 thallium. It has been ascertained in certain cases (e.g. Cyathea, 
 some Polypodiaceae, Aneimia) that the prothallia developed by 
 means of these adventitious branches are exclusively male. The 
 development of these branches may, it appears, be induced by 
 injury to the prothallium. 
 
404 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Propagation by means of gemmae is common in the Hymeno- 
 phyllaceae, bat it has also been observed in certain Polypodiaceoa 
 (Vittaria, Monogramme). In Hymenophyllum, the gemmae are 
 small flat plates of cells ; in species of Trichomanes, Vittaria, and 
 Monogramme, they are short spindle-shaped filaments, consisting 
 of a single row of (6-9) cells, borne on a unicellular stalk or 
 sterigma ; in Trichomanes, the gemma is attached at its centre to 
 the stalk, so that its long axis is at right angles to the stalk; in 
 Vittaria and Monogramme, the gemma is attached to the stalk 
 by one end. The sterigmata are developed either singly or several 
 together, from a single cell of the prothallium ; and the gemmse 
 may be borne singly or several together on one sterigma. 
 
 It will have been observed that the gametophyte of the homo- 
 sporous leptosporangiate Ferns presents, in its development, its 
 root-hairs, its propagation by adventitious shoots and gemmae, re- 
 markable and' suggestive resemblances to the gametophyte of the 
 Hepaticae. In the general morphology, too, of the gametophyte, 
 there are striking correspondences between the two groups : thus, 
 in both groups (with certain exceptions in both) the first stage in 
 the life of the gametophyte is a filamentous protonema, which is, 
 however, relatively small and short-lived, except in the Fern Tri- 
 chomanes where the gametophyte does not develope beyond the 
 pro tonematous* stage. The protonema in both groups gives rise to 
 a single flattened, expanded shoot, the adult sexual shoot of the 
 Hepaticae, the prothallium of the Ferns ; this bears the sexual 
 organs either directly on a receptacle, or indirectly on a special 
 branch (gametophore). The Fern Trichomanes presents, on the 
 whole, more similarity to the Mosses than to the Liverworts in 
 its more highly developed protonematous stage bearing numerous 
 gametophores, which may be compared to the numerous adult 
 sexual shoots developed on the Moss-protonema, though in Tricho- 
 manes there is no such development of vegetative organs as there 
 is in the Moss-shoots. 
 
 Order 1. Hymenophyllaceae ; this order contains the simplest forms. The 
 leaf-blade almost always consists of a single layer of cells ; the sorus is always 
 marginal (Fig. 257 A) and indusiate, the sporangium sessile or shortly-stalked, 
 and the annulus entire and horizontal. 
 
 Almost all the species are tropical. Trichomanes radicans and Hymenophtillum 
 Tunbridgense and unilaterale (or Wilsoni) alone occur in Britain. Some species 
 of Trichomanes have no true roots. 
 
 Order 2. Polypodiacese. The annulus of the stalked sporangium is incom- 
 plete and vertical (Fig. 258 r), that is to say, it is not continuous at the base : 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICIN^ ; LEPTOSPORANGIATJl. 405 
 
 indusium present or absent. Almost all our native Ferns belong to this order, 
 which is exceptionally rich in genera. 
 
 The following families may be distinguished, characterised by the position of 
 the sorus. 
 
 (a) Davalliece. Sorus marginal, or nearly so ; inferior indusium c-up-shaped 
 in Eudavallia, or one-valved as in Leucostegia, etc. (Fig. 257 B). Includes the 
 large genus Davallia : no European species. 
 
 (b) Pteridea. Sori coalescent along the margin of the leaf (Fig. 257 C), with 
 a spurious indusium. Pteris (Pteridium) aquilina, the Bracken, has a stem 
 which grows at some depth below the surface of the soil, and- throws up every year 
 a single large, much-segmented leaf (frond) : it has also a true lateral indusium. 
 Adiantum, the Maiden-hair Fern, belongs to this group, as also Cheilanthes. 
 
 (c) AspUniece. The sorus, which is situated on the under surface of the leaf, 
 is elongated or linear, and the lateral indusium springs from the vein to which it 
 is attached (Fig. 257 E). Asplenium Ruta muraria, the Wall-Hue, is not uncom- 
 mon on walls and rocks ; A. Trichomanes is also abundant, with simple pinnate 
 leaves and a shining black rhachis. Athyriwm Filix fcemina, the Lady Fern, is 
 common in damp woods. Scolopendrium vulgare, the Hart's-tongue, with entire 
 leaves, is common in damp hedgerows and woods. Blechnum (Lomaria). the 
 Hard Fern, as also Ceterach, may be included here, though the indusium may 
 be rudimentary or absent. 
 
 (d) Aspidiece. Sorus on the lower surface of the leaf, orbicular in form and 
 covered by a peltate or reuiform superior (Fig. 257 D) or inferior indusium. 
 Nephrodium (Lastraa) Fllix mas, the male Fern, and other species resembling 
 it, with a thick tufted crown of leaves, are not rare in woods. Aspidium is the 
 Shield-Fern: A.(Polystichuin) Lonchitix is the Holly-Fern : Woodsia, Onoclea, and 
 Cystopteris (Bladder-Fern), with an inferior iudusium, also belong to this group. 
 
 (e) Polypodiece. The sorus, which is on the under surface of the leaf, is 
 naked (Fig. 257 F). In the section Polypodium the leaves are articulated to the 
 stem, so that when they die and fall off they leave a roundish scar : the leaves 
 are usually borne in two rows on the dorsal surface of the rhizome. Polypodium 
 vulgare, with simple pinnate leaves, is common on tree-trunks, rocks, etc. In 
 the section Phegopteris the leaves are not articulated to- the stem, so that when 
 they die, fragments of the leaf-stalks remain attached to it : Crt/ptogranime crispa 
 is the Parsley-Fern : Phegopteris Dryoptens and polypodioides are the Oak- and 
 Beech-Ferns. 
 
 (/) AcrostichccB. The whole underside of the leaf is covered with naked 
 sporangia. To this family belong a number of tropical Ferns of the two 
 genera Platycerium and Acrostichum with its numerous sub-genera, Polybotrya, 
 Olfersia, Elaphoglossum, etc. 
 
 Order 3. Cyatheacese. Distinguished from the Polypodiacece only by the 
 presence of a complete annulus. 
 
 The Tree-Ferns belong to this family. Cibotium and Dicksoniahave marginal 
 sori with two-valved inferior indusia : Cyathea, Hemitelia, and Alsophila have 
 their sori on the under surface of the leaf : Alsophila alone has no indusium ; 
 in Cyathea it is cup-shaped, and in Hemitelia one-valved. 
 
 Order 4. Gleicheniaceae, including the genus Gleichenia, with a horizontal 
 annulus ; no indusium : all tropical. 
 
406 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Order 5. Schizaeacese, including the genera Schizaea, Aneimia, Mobria and 
 Lygodium, with a projecting apical annulus to the almost sessile sporangium, 
 occur only in the tropics. Lygodium is the most remarkable genus ; its pinnate 
 leaves grow to a great length, and twine round supports by means of their 
 midribs : it alone has an indusium, and the sorus is usually unisporangiate. 
 
 Order 6. Osmundaceae. The shortly-stalked sporangia have a rudimentary 
 annulus consisting of a group of cells (Fig, 261 B r) just below the apex ; tbey 
 burst open by a longitudinal slit on the side opposite to this. 
 
 Osmunda regalis, the Fern-Koyal, is a not very common but well-known Fern. 
 Only the upper pinnae of the leaves are fertile, and develope little or no meso- 
 phyll ; the sori are marginal, and consist of a great number of sporangia ; they 
 have no indusium (Fig. 261 A s). The only other genus is Todea, belonging 
 mainly to Australasia. 
 
 D. HETEROSPOROUS LEPTOSPORANGIAT^D. 
 (Hydropterideae or Rhizocarpa?.) 
 
 This group includes the four genera, Salvinia, Azolla, Marsilea, 
 Pilularia; of these the two former constitute the order Salviiiiacea?, 
 the two latter the order Marsileacese. They are all more or less 
 aquatic in habit, Salvinia and Azolla being free-floating fugacious 
 plants, whilst Marsilea and Pilularia are perennials growing in 
 bogs and marshes. 
 
 SPOROPHYTE. The stem is a horizontal dorsi ventral rhizome. It 
 generally bears foliage-leaves in alternating longitudinal rows 
 (four rows in Salvinia; two rows in the other genera) on the 
 dorsal (superior) surface ; and roots in one (Marsileacese) or two 
 (Azolla) longitudinal rows on the ventral (inferior) surface. In 
 Salvinia, however, there are no roots, but the stem bears in place 
 of them two rows of submerged leaves on its ventral surface. The 
 lateral branches, sometimes very numerous, are borne on the 
 flanks. 
 
 In the Salviniaceae the apical growing-point of the stem has a 
 two-sided apical cell, situated in the vertical plane, from which 
 lateral segments are cut off alternately right and left : each 
 segment is divided by a horizontal wall into a dorsal and a ventral 
 half, and each of these is again divided by a transverse wall so that 
 each segment gives rise to four cells: thus the growing- point 
 consists fundamentally of eight longitudinal rows of cells, four 
 belonging to the dorsal, and four to the ventral region, of whicli 
 the two uppermost may be designated the dorsal rows, the two 
 next the dorso-lateral rows, the two next the ventro-lateral rows, 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICIN.E ; KYDROPTERIDEJJ. 407 
 
 and the two lowest the ventral rows. In Salvinia the foliage-leaves 
 are alternately developed from the dorsal and the dorso- lateral 
 cells; hence they lie in four alternating longitudinal rows: the 
 submerged leaves are developed from the ventro-lateral cells in 
 two rows. In Azolla the leaves are developed only from the dorso- 
 lateral cells, and the roots from the ventral cells. In both genera^ 
 the lateral branches are developed from the ventro-lateral cells. 
 
 In the Marsileaceae the apical cell is tetrahedral : of the three 
 sides from which segments are cut off, two are dorso-lateral and 
 one is ventral : the leaves are developed from the upper portions, 
 the branches from the lower portions, of the dorso-lateral 
 segments : the roots are developed from the ventral segments. 
 
 The foliage-leaf presents a considerable variety of form. In 
 Salvinia it is broad and flat, sessile and entire, with a well-marked 
 midrib : in Azolla the leaf is small and two-lobed, the lower lobe 
 being submerged whilst the upper floats on tho surface of the 
 water : in Marsilea the leaf has a long erect petiole bearing a 
 paripinnate bijugate compound lamina of four leaflets: in Pilularia 
 the leaf is cylindrical and erect. 
 
 The growth in length of the leaf is effected, in Salvinia, Marsilea, 
 and Pilularia, by an apical growing-point having a wedge-shaped 
 apical cell: the growth in breadth of the lamina is effected, 
 in the two former, by marginal growth. In Azolla the develop- 
 ment of the leaf is effected altogether by marginal growth. 
 
 Circinate vernation obtains in the Marsileaceee, but not in the 
 Salviniaceas : in Salvinia the vernation is conduplicate, and in 
 Azolla the lamina is expanded from the first. 
 
 In Salvinia the leaves are borne in a whorl of three at a node, 
 two being a pair of opposite foliage-leaves, and the third a 
 submerged leaf : in the other genera the phyllotaxis is alternate. 
 
 The submerged leaf of Salvinia consists of a number of long 
 filamentous branches, springing front a short petiole, and densely 
 covered with multicellular hairs. 
 
 The sporangia are of -two kinds, microsporangia and 
 macrosporangia: they are borne in sori enclosed in structures 
 termed sporocarps. The morphology of the sporocarp is, however, 
 altogether different in the two orders, and the same term ought 
 not to be applied to both: it would be well to restrict the term 
 " sporocarp " to the more complex fructifications of the 
 jVlarsileacese. 
 
 In the Salviniaoeae the so-called sporocarp is simply a sorus of 
 
408 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 sporangia, either microsporangia or macrosporangia, but not both, 
 surrounded by an inferior indusium (Fig. 268). In Salvinia the 
 sori are borne at the apices of the basal branches of a submerged 
 leaf, and may be comparatively numerous (4-20) on one leaf : in 
 Azolla the sori are borne at the apices of the segments of the lower 
 (ventral) submerged lobe of a leaf, and that leaf is always the 
 first (basal) leaf of a fertile branch which is sometimes less 
 
 vigorously developed than the 
 purely vegetative branches ; each 
 leaf usually bears only two sori, 
 but in A. nilotica there are four. 
 In Salvinia the sori are all of the 
 same size, whereas in Azolla the 
 sori containing microsporangia are 
 considerably larger than those con- 
 taining macrosporangia. In both 
 genera the tip of the fertile leaf- 
 segment expands into a cellular 
 cushion, the placenta, from the 
 superficial cells of which the spor- 
 angia are developed : the indusium 
 is developed as an annular out- 
 growth from the base of the pla- 
 centa, becoming cup-shaped, and 
 eventually closing over the sorus: 
 it consists of two layers of cells 
 which, in Salvinia, are separated 
 by large air-chambers and are con- 
 nected by longitudinal cellular 
 trabeculae. In both genera the 
 microsporangia of a sorus are nu- 
 merous (about 40 in Azolla, more 
 in Salvinia) : the macrosporangial 
 sorus- consists, in Salvinia, of many 
 (up to 25) macrosporangia, whereas 
 in Azolla there is but one. Both 
 kinds of sporangia are borne by 
 the same plant. 
 
 In the Marsileacese the sporo- 
 carp consists of a leaf -branch enclosing a number of sori, and 
 each sorus includes both micro- and macrosporangia. In Marsilea 
 
 FIG. 268. A Apical portion of the 
 stem of Salvinia natans, seen obliquely 
 from below (nat. size): II aerial leaves; 
 ww aquatic leaves, with sori, ss; 7c ter- 
 minal bud of the stem. S Longitudinal 
 section through three fertile teeth of 
 an aquatic leaf ( x 10), forming two 
 sori with microsporangia, (n) one with 
 macrosporangia ; i indusium. (After 
 Sachs.) 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICINJE ; HYDROPTERIDE^. 409 
 
 the fertile leaf -branches spring from the ventral surface of the 
 petioles of the foliage-leaves (compare Ophioglossaceee), and each 
 bears a sporocarp at the end of a longer or shorter stalk : the 
 petiole bears a single fertile leaf-branch near its base in some 
 species, or two or more adnate branches springing from the same 
 point ; or it bears (e.g. M. polycarpa) a series of 10-20 branches7 
 one above the other, each bearing a single sporocarp. In Pilularia 
 the fertile leaf-branches appear to be also 
 developed from the ventral surface of the 
 foliage-leaves : each leaf has at its base a 
 single almost sessile sporocarp. 
 
 The sporocarp of Marsilea (Fig. 269) is 
 dorsiventral, somewhat pod-shaped, with 
 its dorsal margin directed upwards ; the 
 stalk is continued along the dorsal margin 
 as a midrib : the sporocarp may, in fact, 
 be regarded as being developed from the 
 laminar portion of the leaf -branch. The 
 sporocarp of Pilularia is globular, though 
 ifc is slightly pointed at the apex: it may 
 be likewise regarded as being a leaf- 
 branch, four (usually) leaflets or segments 
 being concerned in its construction. In 
 both genera, especially in Marsilea, the 
 wall of the sporocarp is composed of 
 several layers of cells with thick hard 
 walls: vascular bundles, springing from 
 the stalk, are distributed in the wall. 
 
 The number of sori in the sporocarp of 
 Marsilea varies from five to twenty-three 
 in the different species : they are de- 
 veloped in tubular cavities, extending 
 from the ventral margin of the sporocarp 
 for some distance towards the dorsal 
 margin, which are disposed in two longi- 
 tudinal rows, one row on each side of the 
 middle line : when young, these cavities 
 are open at the ventral margin, but the 
 apertures become closed as the sporocarp matures : the external 
 wall of each cavity developes into a projecting ridge of tissue, the 
 placenta, which bears the sorus, consisting of a single median row 
 
 FIG. 269. Stem of Marsilea 
 Salvatrix with leaves (reduced 
 one-half). K Terminal bud; 
 b b leaves ; // sporocarps 
 borne on petioles. 
 
410 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OP PLANTS. 
 
 of macrosporangia and a double row of microsporangia on each 
 flauk. The cavities are surrounded by parenchymatous tissue. 
 
 The globular sporocarp of Pilularia contains four (sometimes 
 two or three) cavities, extending longitudinally from the base to 
 the apex, enclosed by parenchymatous tissue. The placenta is a 
 ridge of tissue on the external wall of the cavity, bearing the sorus 
 which consists, in its upper part, of microsporangia, and in its 
 lower of one or more macrosporangia. The cavities at first 
 communicate with the outer air at the apex of the sporocarp, but 
 eventually become completely closed. 
 
 In their development, the sporangia of the Heterosporous 
 Leptosporangiatse resemble those of the Homosporous Lepto- 
 sporangiatse (see p. 392) in all essential points : but no annulus is 
 developed. In each sporangium sixteen spore-mother-cells are 
 developed from the single tetrahedral archesporial cell, and each 
 of these mother-cells undergoes division to form four spores : but 
 whereas in the microsporangia all these sixty-four spore-rudiments 
 develope into microspores, in the macrosporangium. only one 
 developes into a macrospore, the others being abortive. 
 
 The development of the spores in this group, is remarkable on 
 account of the important part played by the multinucleate proto- 
 plasmic mass (epiplasm), derived from the disorganisation of the 
 tapetal cells, in which the free spore-mother-cells are embedded at 
 the time when the development of the spores is commencing. 
 Taking first the Salviniacese : the microsporangium of Salvinia 
 contains, when mature, a number of microspores embedded in a 
 spongy mass of a substance, which gives some of the reactions of 
 corky cell- walls and is derived from the protoplasm of the 
 tapetal cells : in Azolla the microspores are likewise embedded in 
 this substance, but in more than one group or massula (2-8) 
 according to the species. Each rnassula is surrounded by a 
 membrane, bearing in some- species a number of anchor-like hairs, 
 the glocliidia (absent in A. pinnata and A. nilotica) : membrane 
 and glochidia are developed whilst the massula still consists of 
 living protoplasm. In Salvinia the macrospore also is invested by 
 a layer of this spongy substance, constituting the epispore or 
 perinium. This is also the case in Azolla, but here the perinium 
 is remarkably developed. Over the rounded dorsal surface of the 
 radial macrospore, the perinium is a thick membrane, firm at the 
 surface, spongy within, with warty projections bearing filaments 
 of the same substance: on the three flattened surfaces of the ventral 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICIN^ ; HYDROPTERIDE^J. 411 
 
 aspect of the macrospore the periniura forms three (A. filiculoides 
 and caroliniana) or by segmentation nine {A. pinnata and nilotica) 
 large spongy masses which constitute the so-called floats of the 
 spore : at the pointed apex of the spore, between these masses, the 
 perinium usually terminates in a tuft of delicate filaments. 
 
 In the Marsileaceae the spores become invested by a perinium- 
 secreted by the epiplasm, consisting of an inner layer made up of 
 prisms placed with their long axes perpendicular to the surface of 
 the spore, and of an outer layer which is homogeneous in the 
 case of the microspore ; but in the case of the macrospore it is 
 stratified, swells up enormously on being wetted, and gives the 
 cellulose-reaction. 
 
 In all cases the spore has its own proper coats, the exospore 
 and the endospore, of the usual constitution. It contains a mass of 
 granular protoplasm, with a nucleus, and encloses numerous 
 starch-grains, oil- drops, and proteid granules. 
 
 The dissemination of the spores is effected by somewhat peculiar 
 means. In Salvinia the spores remain enclosed in the sporangia, 
 but the sporangia break off from their stalks and float on the sur- 
 face of the water. In Azolla the indusium, as also the wall of the 
 free microsporangia, slowly decays, and the massulse of micro- 
 spores escape ; but the macrospore remains covered in its upper 
 end by the wall of the sporangium and by the indusium : in those 
 species in which glochidia are present, the massulae become hooked 
 on to the projecting filaments of the macrospores. In the Mar- 
 sileaceae the hard sporocarp must first of all be opened; this is 
 effected by the mucilaginous walls of the internal tissue of the 
 mature sporocarp, which, when the sporocarp is moistened, absorb 
 water and swell up considerably. In Pilularia the tension thus 
 produced causes the wall of the sporocarp to split into 24 valves 
 at the apex, and through this opening the mucilage escapes carry- 
 ing with it the spores. In Marsilea there is a well defined strand 
 of swelling tissue extending along the dorsal and ventral margins of 
 the sporocarp and forming a continuous ring with which is con- 
 nected the tissue enclosing the chambers containing the sori : 
 when water gains entrance to the mature sporocarp, this tissue 
 swells and, first of all, causes the rupture of the wall of the 
 sporocarp along the ventral suture ; the ring continues to swell 
 and drags out with it the chambers and the contained sori till 
 they lie freely in the water ; it is estimated that the ring swells 
 up to about 200 times its original size ; the delicate tissue sur- 
 
412 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 rounding the sori soon becomes disorganised, as also the walls of 
 the sporangia. 
 
 The root is altogether absent in Salvinia ; in the other genera 
 the primary root is of but short duration, and the root-system 
 consists of numerous adventitious fibrous rootlets which have an 
 apical growing-point with a tetrahedral apical cell. In Azolla 
 the root-cap is but imperfectly developed, and in A. caroliniana it is 
 completely thrown off after a time. 
 
 General Histology. In the Salviniaceae the stem, is monostelic ; 
 there is an axial, closed, concentric, vascular cylinder, without any 
 pericycle but with a two-layered endodermis of which the outer 
 layer has the characteristic markings in the radial cell-walls. 
 
 In the Marsileacese the stem is polystelic and gamostelic ; there 
 are five steles which are distinct at the growing-point but fuse 
 further back forming a hollow cylinder enclosing some ground- 
 tissue which looks like, but is not, a pith. 
 
 On the whole the histology of these plants generally resembles 
 that of the allied homosporous Ferns, though in consequence of 
 their more or less aquatic habit the intercellular spaces of these 
 plants are more conspicuous, especially in Salvinia and in the root 
 of Pilularia where they form large air-chambers. 
 
 Azolla presents a case of symbiosis which resembles that of 
 Anthoceros (p. 353). On the upper surface of the dorsal lobe of each 
 leaf, near the base, a pit is formed which has a narrow aperture 
 and is occupied by Nostoc-filaments (Anabsena) amongst which 
 branch hairs which are developed from the epidermal cells lining 
 the pit: these filaments also occur in the macrosporangiate 
 indusium, having entered before the indusium becomes closed. 
 
 The Embrijogeny of the SporopJiyte. The early divisions of the 
 oospore are essentially the same as in the allied homosporous Ferns. 
 The individual peculiarities of subsequent development are briefly 
 as follows. In Salvinia the whole of the hypobasal half goes to 
 form the foot, no primary root being developed ; of the four 
 epibasal octants, one gives rise to the gro wing-point of the stem, 
 and two to that of the first leaf or cotyledon, and from the basal 
 region of these octants a transverse layer of cells is cut off which 
 eventually elongates forming a cylindrical hypocotyl, sometimes 
 termed the caulicle ; the cotyledon is termed the scutiform leaf on 
 account of its form and mode of attachment ; the young stem first 
 produces one or two isolated foliage-leaves, and then the regular 
 development of the whorls of two foliage-leaves and one water-leaf 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : FILICIN^ ; HYDROPTERIDEJ!. 413 
 
 (see p. 407) begins. In the other three genera, two of the epi- 
 basal octants give rise to the first cotyledon, one to the growing- 
 point of the stem, and the fourth to a second cotyledon, so that 
 here there are two cotyledons : the hypobasal octants give rise 
 to foot and root in the usual manner. 
 
 THE GAMETOPHYTE. As these plants are heterosporous, the" 
 gametophyte is represented by distinct male and female indivi- 
 duals : these remain connected with the spores producing them. 
 
 The male individual is developed from a microspore : it consists 
 of a rudimentary prothallium bearing generally a single male 
 organ (antheridium), though in Salvinia there are apparently two 
 antheridia. 
 
 In Salvinia the germination of the microspores takes place with- 
 in the microsporangium ; the inner coat (endospore) of the spore 
 grows out as a longer or shorter tube through the ruptured outer 
 coat (exospore), and eventually makes its way through the wall of 
 the sporangium so that its free end is in the water outside : a trans- 
 verse wall is formed within it which cuts off the apical portion of 
 the tube as the fertile portion of the prothallium 
 
 In Azolla the microspores germinate within the massula. The 
 exospore of the tetrahedral spore ruptures along the three edges, 
 and the endospore protrudes as a papilla at the apex. A transverse 
 Avail is formed across the base of the papilla, which now becomes 
 the mother-cell of the single antheridium. The spermato/oids 
 probably escape from the massula on the deliquescence of its sub- 
 stance. In the Marsileaceas the male prothallium is formed alto- 
 gether within the microspore : the spore divides into two cells, a 
 smaller basal cell which represents the vegetative portion of the 
 prothallium, and a larger one which is the mother-cell of the 
 antheridium. In all cases the prothallium has no chlorophyll. 
 
 The male organ, or antheridium, is developed from the antheridial 
 mother-cell mentioned above. It generally undergoes divisions so 
 as to form a central cell surrounded by a single layer of cells form- 
 ing the wall of the antheridium. But Salvinia is peculiar in that the 
 central cell of each antheridium is not completely surrounded by a 
 parietal layer of cells, but comes to the surface of the antheri- 
 dium. The central cell then undergoes further divisions to form 
 the mother-cells of the spermatozoids of which there are eight in 
 the Salviniaceae (four in each antheridium of Salvinia) and thirty- 
 two in the Marsileaceae. 
 
 The male cells, or spermatozoids, resemble those of the homo- 
 
J1 1 
 
 414 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 sporous leptosporangiate Ferns in all essential features of their form 
 and development, as also in their extrusion from the antheridium. 
 In the Marsileacese, the male prothallium is enclosed within the 
 microspore until the antheridium is mature, when the spore-walls 
 are ruptured by the swelling of the cells of the contained pro- 
 thallium, and the spermatozoids are set free. 
 
 The female individual is a small multicellular prothallium of a 
 green colour, and is developed from a macrospore to which it re- 
 mains attached. The development of the prothallium begins 
 inside the macrospore at its pointed apical end, where there is 
 an aggregation of protoplasm in which the nucleus lies. The 
 nucleus divides, and this is followed by the formation of a cell- 
 wall between the two nuclei, cutting off the apical portion of the 
 spore, as a small cell, from the basal larger portion ; this first 
 wall is termed the diaphragm, and it marks off that portion of the 
 macrospore which gives rise to the prothallium from that portion 
 which takes no part in the process. The small cell then under- 
 goes repeated division to form the prothallium which consists, in 
 the Salviiiiaceee, of several layers of cells (at least in the middle 
 region), and in the Marsileacese of two layers only. As the pro- 
 thallium developes, the coats of the macrospore split into three 
 valves at the apex, so that now the prothallium is in direct rela- 
 tion with the exterior. Whilst in the Marsileaceas the prothallium 
 projects but little from the spore, in the Salviniaceae (especially 
 Salvinia), where it is larger, the greater part of it is outside. In 
 Azolla its outline is that of a rounded triangle, projecting between 
 the lobes of the epispore, and throwing off the cap formed by the 
 wall of the sporangium and the indusium ; in Salvinia it is more 
 acutely triangular, two of the corners (anterior) growing out into 
 long wing-like appendages, and breaking through the wall of the 
 sporangium. 
 
 There is no clear differentiation of an archegoniophore, such as 
 occurs in some of the homosporous Leptosporangiatse (see p. 401), 
 though there is an indication of this in Salvinia where the pro- 
 thallium projects somewhat in the median line, especially an- 
 teriorly, where the archegonia are borne. 
 
 No cell-formation takes place in the larger basal portion of the 
 macrospore below the diaphragm, though nuclear division has 
 been observed in Azolla. This eventually becomes filled with 
 starch and other nutritive substances for the nutrition of the 
 embryo. 
 
GTIOUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA: FILICINJ! ; HYDROPTERIDE^. 415 
 
 R 
 
 A. 
 
 The female organ, or archegonium, differs in no essential feature 
 of structure or development from that of the homosporous lepto- 
 sporangiate Ferns. In the Marsileaceae, only a single archegonium 
 is developed ; it arises from a cell in the middle of the upper sur- 
 face of the prothallium ; in Azolla, if the archegonium does not 
 become fertilised, a few more arche- 
 gonia may be subsequently developed; 
 in Salvinia, at least three archegonia 
 are always formed, the first anteriorly 
 in the middle line, the second and 
 third one on each side of the first. 
 If none of these become fertilised, 
 the prothallium resumes its growth 
 both in breadth and length, and a 
 second row of archegonia is formed 
 in front of the first. Similarly a 
 third and a fourth row, with an in 
 creased number of archegonia in each 
 (seven or more), may be successively 
 produced. In Pilularia also the pro- 
 thallium grows to a considerable size 
 if the archegonium is not fertilised, 
 though no more archegonia are 
 formed. 
 
 The female cell, or oosphere, de- 
 veloped in each archegonium, does not require any special de- 
 scription. 
 
 Order 7. Salviniaceae : microsporangia and macrosporangia in distinct 
 sori, each sorus being covered by an indusium ; the spores are surrounded by 
 spongy mucilage, forming an episporium or perinium round the individual 
 macrospores, and holding all the microspores together within the sporangium 
 (Salvinia) or in several groups or massulse (Azolla) ; the female prothallium is 
 relatively large and bears several archegonia. 
 
 No species of Azolla is European : Salvinia natans occurs in Southern 
 Europe. 
 
 Order 8. Marsileaceae : microsporaugia and macrosporangia in the same 
 sorus, a number of sori being enclosed in the specially modified sporophyll- 
 segment, the whole forming a sporocarp. Each spore is invested by a mucila- 
 ginous prismatic perinium. The female prothallium is relatively small, and 
 bears but a single archegonium. 
 
 Pilularia globulifera is the one British species belonging to this order. The 
 European species of Marsilea are M. pubescens, which occurs in the Mediter- 
 ranean region, and M. quadrifoliata, in Central Europe. 
 
 Fro. 270. Gametophyte of Sal- 
 vinia (x 60). A Macrosporanginin 
 m with a germinated macrospore sp 
 (dotted outline) ; pt female pro- 
 thallium projecting from the apex 
 of the spore; ar archegonia. B A 
 microspore isolated from a micro- 
 sporangium : sp spore ; pt male 
 prothallium ; a antheridia. 
 
416 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 CLASS VI. EQTJISETHL33. 
 
 This class includes, among existing plants, only the homosporous 
 order, Equisetaceae ; bat there are many extinct fossil forms, some 
 of which are undoubtedly heterosporous. 
 
 Order 1. 
 (Horsetail). 
 
 f\ 
 
 Equisetaceae. This order includes the single genus Equisetum 
 Of the twenty species of this genus, about half are British (E. 
 
 arvense, maximum, silva- 
 ticum, palustre, limosum, 
 Injemale, trachyodon, va- 
 riegatum, pratense, litur- 
 ale). 
 
 THE SPOROPHYTE. The 
 stem consists of a horizon- 
 tal, subterranean, much- 
 branched rhizome ; some 
 of the branches come to 
 the surface, and are the 
 sub-aerial shoots. The 
 rhizome and its branches 
 are very distinctly seg- 
 mented into nodes and 
 internodes. At each node 
 is borne a whorl of scale- 
 leaves forming a con- 
 tinuous sheath. The 
 branches, as also the ad- 
 ventitious roots, spring 
 from the nodes, a bud 
 being developed in the 
 axil of each leaf, and an 
 adventitious root from the 
 base of each bud ; but in 
 the sub-aerial shoots the 
 rudimentary roots do not 
 grow out, whilst in the 
 
 Nwf^ : ^/^^// subterranean shoots re- 
 
 ? ' latively few of the buds 
 
 grow into branches. In 
 certain species (E. arvense, 
 silvaticum, maximum, pa- 
 lustre, etc.) some of the 
 
 FIG. 271. Median longitudinal section of the apical por- 
 tion of a vegetative shoot of Equisetum arvense ; pv apical 
 growing-point ; g bud-rudiment ; g'-g'" stages in the de- 
 velopment of lateral buds ; r v' developing adventitious 
 roots on the buds; m central ground-tissue (not pith); 
 vs developing (common) vascular bundle; n nodal 
 diaphragms, (x 26: after Strasburger.) 
 
 subterranean branches be- 
 come tuberous. 
 
 The sub-aerial shoots 
 generally live for one season only, and are herbaceous in texture, but in some 
 species they persist (e.g. E. hiemdle, trachyodon, variegatum). They are 
 
GROUP III. PTEKIDOPHYTA : EQUISETINjE. 
 
 417 
 
 B 
 
 generally green in colour, and their surface is more or less strongly ribbed. 
 Some of these shoots are sterile, whilst others are fertile, bearing the sporangia. 
 In most species the sterile and fertile shoots are alike (Equiseta homophyadica), 
 but in the four species E. arvense, maximum, silvaticum, pratense (Equiseta 
 heterophyadica) they are more or less widely different. Thus in E. arvense 
 and maximum, the fertile shoots are developed early in the spring, and are un- 
 branched, whereas the copiously branched sterile shoots are not developed till 
 the summer; moreover the fertile shoots are not green. In E. pratense the 
 diffetences between the fertile and sterile shoots is less marked, the former bear- 
 ing a few whorls of simple 
 branches. InE. silvaticum 
 the fertile shoot has no 
 branches at first, but after 
 the shedding of the spores 
 the terminal cone dies off, 
 the shoot throws out 
 branches, and thus comes 
 to be a sterile shoot. In 
 some species the sub-aerial 
 shoots are generally un- 
 branched (e.g. E. hiemale, 
 trachyodcn, variegatum). 
 
 The leaves are either cu- 
 taphylls or sporophylls. The 
 cataphylls, representing the 
 foliage-leaves, are borne in 
 whorls at the nodes, having 
 a common attachment, so 
 that they form a leaf-sheath 
 at each node. They are 
 small and brown in colour. 
 
 The sporophylls, like the 
 cataphylls, are developed in 
 whorls, but owing to the 
 fact that the internodes 
 
 k 
 
 between the whorls do not 
 elongate, the sporophylls 
 are aggregated into a cone- 
 like flower situated termin- 
 ally on the shoot (Fig. 272), 
 or less commonly (>'.g. E. 
 palastre) on some of the 
 lateral branches. The leaf- 
 
 Fia. 272. A Upper portion of a fertile branch of 
 Equisetum palustre. v Leaf-sheaths, below which the 
 branches (r) spring; 10 the uppermost sterile she ah 
 (ring) ; a the flower ; s the peltate sporophylls. B Trans- 
 verse section of the stem (x 6): c central cavity; s the 
 vascular bundles arranged in a circle, each having 
 a carinal cavity, It; f the vallecular cavities; r the 
 ridges. C Sporophyll with sporangia ( x 10) : st the 
 stalk; sp the sporangia. D Diagram of the course 
 taken by the vascular bundles where two internodeB 
 meet ; ti the internodes ; fc the node. 
 
 sheath below the cone, 
 
 marking off the reproductive from the vegetative region of the shoot, is peculiar, 
 
 being generally very much reduced, and is termed the ring (see p. 79). 
 
 Each sporophyll has a small hexagonal lamina which is inserted on the axis 
 of the cone by a short stalk attached to the centre of the inner surface of the 
 
 V. s. B. 
 
 E E 
 
418 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 lamina. Thus the sporophyll is peltate. It bears on its inner (dorsal) surface, 
 a small number (5-10) of sporangia arranged round the leaf-stalk. 
 
 The sporangia are somewhat elongated in fcim, and are sessile. The wall 
 of the sporangium consists of a single layer of cells with spiral thickening. 
 Dehiscence takes place longitudinally on the side facing the leaf-stalk. The 
 archesporium is usually a single (not tetrahedral) cell from which are derived 
 the mother- cells of the spores, each of which give rise to four spores. 
 
 The spores, which are all of one kind, are developed tetrahedrally, but are 
 nearly spherical when ripe. Each spore has two coats, exine and intine, and 
 originally a perinium is present. The perinium, as it developes, becomes 
 irregularly thickened in such a way that, when the thin portions are destroyed, 
 the thickened portions remain as four filaments, the elaters, all attached at one 
 point only to the spore. These elaters are very hygroscopic. When the air is 
 dry they expand, and stand out stiffly from the spore ; when moistened, they 
 suddenly roll up spirally round the spore. The spores become entangled by 
 their elaters, so that when set free from the sporangium a number of the 
 spores fall to the ground, and germinate near together. 
 
 The roots are all adventitious, though a short-lived primary root is developed. 
 Tliey are developed at the nodes of the rhizome. 
 
 General Histology. A striking feature in the anatomy of the stem is the pre- 
 sence of large, mainly lysigenous, air-cavities : thus, in some species, the rhizome 
 has a large central cavity in each internode (E. silvaticum [Fig. 273 C, a], ar- 
 vense, maximum) ; a similar cavity is present in the internodes of the aerial 
 shoots of nearly all the species (Fig. 273 A,a)\ the central cavities of successive 
 internodes are shut off from each other by diaphragms at the nodes (Fig. 271 n) : 
 a series of similar cavities occurs always in the cortex, alternating with the vas- 
 cular bundles internally and with the surface-ribs externally, hence termed 
 vallecular cavities (Fig. 273 I) ; finally, in connexion with each vascular 
 bundle, there is a large cavity, the carinal cavity (Fig. 273 c), extending, like 
 the others, from one node to another. 
 
 Tbe growing-point of the stern, and of its branches, is apical, and has a tetra- 
 hedral apical cell (Figs. 112, 113). The stem is, except at first, schizostelic 
 (see p. 152) ; the schizosteles may be either distinct (rhizomes and aerial shoots 
 of E. limosum and litorale [Fig. 2735] ; rhizomes of E. hiemale, trachyodo)i, 
 and ramosissimum) ; or they may fuse (gamodesmic, see p. 170), so that the 
 endodermis becomes continuous, forming either only a well-marked external 
 layer (rhizomes and aerial shoots of E. arvense, maximum, pratense, scirpoide*, 
 palustre [Fig. 274 A] ; aerial shoots of E. silvaticum), or well-marked external 
 and internal layers (rhizome of E. silvaticum [Fig. 2T4 C] ; rhizome and aerial 
 shoot of E. variegat uin ; aerial shoots of E. hiemale, tracJnjodon, ramosissimum). 
 
 Each schizostele contains a single bundle which is collateral, closed and 
 common, with very rudimentary xylem consisting of the few annular vessels of 
 the protoxylem and of two small groups of scalariform tracheids. 
 
 In the aerial shoots (except specialised fertile shoots of E. arvense, etc.) there 
 is a considerable development of assitnilatory tissue in the cortex, strands of 
 this tissue corresponding in position with the furrows on the surface in which 
 the stomata are developed ; whilst opposite the ridges on the surface there are 
 cortical strands of sclerenchyma. The development of assimilatory tissue in 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : EQUISETTNJ). 
 
 419 
 
 the shoots and branches is correlated with the absence of foliage-leaves, the 
 functions of foliage-leaves having therefore to be discharged by the shoots and 
 branches. The epidermal cell-walls are impregnated with silica. 
 
 The root grows in length by means of a tetrahedral apical cell; in its mode 
 of growth, development of root-cap, etc., it essentially resembles that of the 
 Ferns. Its structure is rather peculiar : the vascular cylinder consists 
 (usually) of three wood-bundles and three bast-bundles, and is invested by two 
 layers of sheathing-cells, the outer of which has the characteristic marks of an 
 endodermis, whilst the inner appears to be a pericycle and gives rise to the 
 growing-points of the lateral roots ; however, the inner layer is, as a matter of 
 fact, not a pericycle, but the innermost layer of the cortex, the endodermis 
 
 -End. 
 
 B 
 
 FIG. 273. Portions of transverse sections of stems of species of Equisetum, illustrating 
 schizostely (after Pfitzer : x 36). B Typical schizostelic rhizome of E. litorale ; C schizos- 
 telic gamodesmic rhizome of E. silvaticum ; A aerial stem of E. palustre, in which the 
 structure is the same as in C, but the markings of the internal endodermal layer are not 
 developed, so that the stem appears to be monostelic ; a central cavity; b vallecular 
 cavities in the eortes ; c carinal cavities in the schizosteles j End. endodermis. 
 
 being the las-fc layer but one of the cortex. Hence it appears that here, as in 
 the Ferns, the lateral roots spring from the innermost layer of the cortex. 
 There is no pericycle in the root of Equisetum. 
 
 Embryngeny of the Sporophyte. The oospore is divided by a transverse basal 
 wall, and then becomes segmented into octants, as in the Filicin. Of the four 
 epibasal octants, one gives rise to the growing -point of the primary stem ; two 
 to the first cotyledon ; and the fourth to the second cotyledon : the two cotyle- 
 dons cohere to form a leaf-sheath round the young primary stem. Of the four 
 
420 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 hypobasal octants, one gives rise to the growing-point of the primary root, and 
 two to the foot. 
 
 The primary stem grows erect, and its leaf -sheaths are three-toothed, the 
 three leaves corresponding to the three segments cut off from the apical cell of 
 the stem ; it branches at its base ; stouter shoots with an increasing number of 
 teeth in the leaf-sheaths are successively produced, and eventually a branch is 
 produced which becomes the perennial subterranean rhizome. 
 
 The GAMETOPHYTE is a green, dorsiventral, lobed prothallium which becomes 
 quite free from the spore. The prothallia are generally dioecious, the female 
 prothallia being larger than the male ; but the distinction of sex is not absolute, 
 for the female prothallia may eventually bear male organs, and the male pro- 
 thallia female organs ; it appears to depend largely on conditions of nutrition. 
 
 The germinating spore divides into two cells : one of these contains no 
 chloroplastids, and grows out into a hair which represents a root (see p. 61), 
 the other contains ohloroplastids, and grows and divides to form the first lobe 
 of the prothallium, which branches as its development proceeds, some of the 
 branches of the female prothallia growing erect. On its under surface the 
 prothallium bears numerous root-hairs. 
 
 At first the prothallium consists throughout of a single layer of cells ; in the 
 female prothallium, however, one of the lobes becomes thick and fleshy, con- 
 sisting of several layers of ,. cells formed by repeated horizontal cell-division, and 
 this constitutes the archegoniophore. 
 
 The male organ, or antheridium, is developed from a single cell of the margin 
 of the male prothallium : this ceil undergoes repeated division, with the result 
 that a wall, consisting of a single layer of cells, is formed surrounding a central 
 cell from which, by subsequent divisions, the numerous mother-cells of the 
 male cells are developed : the antheridium eventually dehisces by the separa- 
 tion of the cells forming the roof, in consequence of the swelling-up of the con- 
 tents of the antheridium. The male prothallium bears several antheridia, one 
 being developed terminally on each lobe, and others in succession on the lateral 
 margins. 
 
 The male cell, or spermatozoid, is larger than that of any other Pteridophyta ; 
 it has only two or three coils, and bears a tuft of short cilia at its anterior 
 pointed end. 
 
 The female organ, or archegonium, resembles, in all essential features of its 
 structure and development, that of the typical Filicinae : a distinctive peculi- 
 arity is afforded by the long recurved terminal cells of the neck, and by the 
 relatively small neck-canal-cell. Each prothallium bears a number of these 
 organs : they are developed each from an anterior marginal cell, and, as the 
 prothallium continues to grow, the organs come to lie on its upper surface. 
 
 The female cell is an oosphere, and calls for no special remark. 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : LYCOPODIN.E. 
 
 421 
 
 CLASS VII. LYCOPODIN'JE. 
 SUB-CLASS HOMOSPOEE^E. 
 
 Order 1. Lycopodiaceae. This order contains the two genera Lycopodium 
 and Phylloglossum : the former is a large genus, six species being British (L. 
 Selatjo, inundatiim, annotinum, clavatum, alpinum, complanatum} and commonly 
 termed Club-mosses : the genus Phylloglossum has a single species (P. Drum- 
 mondii) found in Australia and New Zealand. 
 
 THE SPOKOPHYTE. The stem. In Lycopodium the stem is slender and much 
 branched, erect (e.g. L. Selago), or growing horizontally on the surface of the 
 ground (e.g. L. clavatum [Fig. 274] annotinum}, or beneath the surface as a 
 rhizome (e.g. L. alpinum, complanatum) : the branching is in some cases dicho- 
 tomous, in others 
 monopodial ; it 
 may take place 
 in all directions 
 or in one plane 
 only (L.complan- 
 atum). 
 
 In Phylloglos- 
 sum the stem 
 (protocorm) is a 
 tuber, bearing an 
 apical tuft of 
 leaves : the only 
 branch formed 
 developes into 
 next year's tuber. 
 
 The leaves. In 
 some species of 
 Lycopodium all 
 the leaves are 
 alike (e.g. L. Se- 
 lago} ; but in 
 most species, as 
 also in Phyllo- 
 glossum, the foliage-leaves and the sporophylls are more or less widely different. 
 
 The foliage-leaves are small and very numerous in Lycopodium ; their 
 arrangement is various, whorled, or spiral, or in decussate opposite pairs (L. 
 complanatum, etc.) : in the last case there is heterophylly, as the decussate 
 leaves on the flattened sterile shoots vary in size, those on the lateral margins 
 of the shoots being larger than those on the flattened surfaces. The leaves are 
 sessile, simple, and have a rudimentary midrib. 
 
 In Phylloglossum the foliage-leaves are few (3-7) ; they are sessile, simple, 
 somewhat awl-shaped, and about half an inch long. 
 
 The sporophylls present considerable variety. In L. Selago and its allies they 
 are quite like the foliage-leaves ; in most species of Lycopodium (e.g. L. inundatum. 
 
 FIG. 274. Portion of Lycopodium ciavatum, somewhat smaller 
 than nafc. size : s, the cone-like flower. B a single sporophyll (b) 
 from the cone, bearing a sporangium sp, which has dehisced ( x 10). 
 
422 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 clavatum, Phlegmaria, etc.) the clearly differentiated sporophylls are aggregated 
 into terminal cone-like flowers, and in some cases the branch bearing the cone 
 grows out into a long peduncle (L. clavatum, complanatum, etc.). 
 
 ID Phylloglossum the small sporophylls are aggregated into a cone borne ter- 
 minally on a peduncle which grows from the apex of the tuber : the lower 
 sporophylls only are fertile. 
 
 The sporangia are, in both genera, borne singly on the upper surface of the 
 sporophylls near their base. The archesporium consists of a single row (L. 
 Selago, Phylloglossum) or of a few rows (I. clavatum) of cells which, by their 
 division, give rise to the mother-cells of the spores. The sporangia are unilocular, 
 somewhat reniform in shape, and (in Lycopodium) seated on a short broad 
 stalk : they dehisce by a longitudinal slit. 
 
 arch/. 
 
 FIG. 275. Embryogpny of Lycoj odium cernuum ( x 300 : after Treub). The embryo is 
 just emerging from the prothallium proth. ; arch, the neck of the archegonium ; I-I basal 
 wall; susp. suspensor ; cot. cotyledon ; tub. tuberous protocorm. 
 
 The spores are all of one kind, and are tetrahedral in form : they have the 
 ordinary structure. 
 
 The roots are all adventitious. In the erect species of Lycopodium they 
 spring as a tuft from the basal end of the stem : in the procumbent species they 
 are born singly on the under surface of the stem. The roots branch diehoto- 
 monsly in alternate planes. In Phylloglossum the short unbranched roots 
 (1-3) spring from the tuber just below the insertion of the leaves : they are of 
 exogenous origin. 
 
 General Histology. The growing-point of stem and root alike consist?, in 
 Lycopodium, of small-celled meristem, no apical cell being present. Both 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : LYCOPODINJ). 
 
 423 
 
 cob 
 
 stem and root have an axial vascular cylinder consisting of alternating bundles 
 of wood and of bast arranged radially : thus the stem is monostelic, and its struc- 
 ture only differs from that of the stouter roots in respect of the larger number 
 of bundles present : in smaller roots there is only one wood- and one bast-bundle. 
 In the stem the bundles frequently anastomose, more especially in the erect- 
 growing species, so that transverse sections taken at different levels present 
 diverse pictures. The wood-bundles consist of scalariform tracheids, with the 
 exception of the protoxylem. Neither stem nor root grows in thickness. In 
 both stem and root there is an endodermis, the cells of which have the charac- 
 teristic marking 
 when young but 
 eventually be- 
 come thick-wall- 
 ed and corky : the 
 endodermis does 
 not, however, ap- 
 pear to be the 
 innermost layer 
 of the cortex ; be- 
 tween it and the 
 vascular bundles 
 is what appears 
 to be a pericycle, 
 consisting of two 
 or three or more 
 layers of cells, 
 but this apparent 
 pericycle is really 
 the innermost re- 
 gion of the cor 
 tex. The adven- 
 titious roots are 
 developed from 
 the pseudo-peri- 
 cycle of the stem. 
 The leaves of Ly-. 
 copodimn are of 
 very simple struc- 
 ture; they usually 
 have stomata on 
 both surfaces. 
 
 In Phylloglossum, likewise, the growing-point of both stem and root has no 
 apical cell. The tuber consists wholly of parenchymatous tissue. In each leaf 
 and root there is a single bundle : these bundles anastomose at the point of 
 origin of these members : when there is a sporangiferous shoot it contains an 
 axial strand of vascular tissue connected at the base with those of the roots and 
 leaves. The bundles are rudimentary and ill-defined. 
 
 Embryogcny of the Sporophyte. The early stages have only been observed in 
 
 prolht. 
 
 FIG. 276. Embryogeny of Li/copodium inundatum (x42: after 
 Goebel): proth. prothallium ; proth. tub. tuberous portion of the. 
 prothallium; arch,, archegonium; emb. tub. tuberous protocorm oE 
 the embryo; cot. cotyledon; st. second leaf, at the base of which is 
 the growing-point of the stem. 
 
424 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 L. Phlegmaria, where the oospore is divided by a transverse basal wall, the cell 
 next to the neck of the archegonium being the hypobasal cell, and the lower cell 
 the epibasal. The hypobasal cell developes into a short, cylindrical, usually 
 unicellular, suspensor. The somewhat hemispherical epibasal cell becomes seg- 
 mented into four octants by two walls at right angles to each other and to the 
 basal wall, and then the octants are divided transversely, by a wall at right angles 
 to the two preceding, into two tiers or stages of four cells each. Of these two 
 tiers the lower forms a short hypocotyl (as in Salvinia, see p. 412) which is com- 
 monly (but erroneously) called the foot, though it is morphologically quite 
 different from the foot of the Filicinte and Equisetinse, the true homologue of 
 the foot in those groups being the suspensor in this. The upper tier of cella 
 gives rise to the first leaf or cotyledon, and to the primary stem. The first root 
 eventually springs adventitiously from cells belonging to the upper tier, below 
 the cotyledon : its origin is exogenous. 
 
 In the other species which have been studied (L. cernuum and inundatum), 
 whilst the early stages are probably much the same as in L. Phlegmaria, some 
 important differences become apparent later. The primary stem is not imme- 
 diately developed, as in L. Phlegmaria, but in its place a tuberous protocorm. 
 (closely resembling that of Phylloglossum) is produced, carrying the cotyledon 
 and other subsequently developed leaves, on its summit, and bearing adven- 
 titious roots of exogenous origin at its base: the proper primary stem is 
 eventually developed at the summit of the protocorm. 
 
 Nothing is known of the embryogeny of Phylloglossum. 
 
 Vegetative Propagation. In the creeping forms, as the main stems die off the 
 younger branches become independent and constitute new individuals. In 
 some species there are gemmse, as in L. Selago, where they are borne on the 
 stem, and are modified leafy branches; and as in L. cernuum, where they are 
 small tubercles, closely resembling the tuberous embryonic protocorm, and are 
 borne on the roots. 
 
 THE GAMETOPHYTE. In so far as the gametophyte has been investigated, it 
 is a monoecious prothallium, either containing chlorophyll (L. inundatum and 
 eernuum), or destitute of chlorophyll (L. annotinum and Phlegmaria) and sapro- 
 phytic. The gametophyte of Phylloglossum is unknown. 
 
 The contents of the germinating spore (in L. inundatum) undergo division 
 into two cells : of these the one, the hypobasal cell, representing the root- 
 portion of the gametophyte, contains no chlorophyll, and merely grows some- 
 what without undergoing division : the other, epibasal, contains chlorophyll 
 and, lupturing the exospore, grows and divides to form the shoot of the game- 
 tophyte, the further development of which is effected for a time by an apical 
 cell, and subsequently by marginal growth. 
 
 The morphology of the prothallium offers considerable variety. In L. inun- 
 datum and cernuum the prothallium is tuberous (see Fig. 276) ; its base is em- 
 bedded in the soil, and bears root-hairs ; its apex projects above the surface 
 and bears a tuft of green leafy lobes : the sexual organs are developed in a zone 
 from a layer of tissue which long remains merismatic and which is situated just 
 below the apical tuft of lobes ; occasionally some antheridia are developed on 
 the lobes. In L. annotinum the prothallium is also tuberous : it is somewhat 
 ovoid in form, bearing root-hairs on its lower surface, and reproductive organs 
 
GROCP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : LYCOPODIN^. 425 
 
 on the discoid central region of the upper surface. Whilst in the foregoing 
 cases the prothallium is very small and simple, in L. Phlegmaria and some 
 other species (L. carinatum and Hippuris) it is considerably larger and more 
 complex. It consists here of a cylindrical, monopodially-branched body, with 
 apical growing-points similar in structure to those of the sporophyte. The 
 superficial layer of cells, representing an epidermis, gives rise to a number of 
 root-hairs. The sexual organs are developed on special branches, gametophores,- 
 though antheridia sometimes occur on the vegetative branches ; the gameto- 
 phores are shorter and thicker than the vegetative branches, sometimes even 
 tuberous, and bear the sexual organs on the upper surface surrounded by stout 
 multicellular hairs, paraphyses. 
 
 The male organs, antheridia, are sunk in the tissue of the prothallium : they 
 resemble those of the Eusporangiate Filicinaa. Their development precedes that 
 of the female organs. 
 
 The male cells, spermatozoids, are oval in shape, and have two cilia: a vesicle 
 is extruded from the mother-cell together with the sperraatozoid, as in the Filicinas. 
 
 The female organs, archegonia, have short necks which project but little 
 above the surface of the prothallium. They have the structure usual among 
 Pteridophyta : in L. Phlegmaria there are generally several neck-canal-cells. 
 
 The female cell, oosphere, requires no special description. 
 
 In consequence of its position and of its mode of development, the embryo is 
 forced downwards into the tissue of the fleshy prothallium, being anchored, as 
 it were, at one end by the suspensor. As it grows it destroys the cells of the 
 prothallium with which it comes into contact, and absorbs the nutritive sub- 
 stances stored in these cells by means of the so-called foot, the superficial cells 
 of which grow out into short papillae. In its further growth the embryo becomes 
 more and more curved until it regains the surface of the prothallium and pro- 
 jects. In L. Phlegmaria the embryo remains for some time enclosed in a sac, 
 the calyptra, formed by active growth of the prothallial tissue. 
 
 The life of the prothallium is short and closes, in most cases, with the 
 development of an embryo from the oospore, but in L. Phlegmaria it seems to 
 persist from one season to another. In the latter species the prothallia are 
 multiplied vegetatively by the isolation of branches, as also by small multicellular 
 bulbils. 
 
 A remarkable biological feature is the constant association of a Fungus 
 (probably a Pythium) with the prothallia, as also with the embryo, of L. cernnuiii 
 and inundatiun. 
 
 Order 2. Psilotaceae. This order consists of the two genera Psilotum and 
 Tmesipteris ; of these the former is widely distributed in the tropics ; the 
 latter is confined to Australia, New Zealand, and Polynesia, and lives epi- 
 phytically, and perhaps parasitically, on the trunks of Tree-Ferns. 
 
 THE SPOROPHYTE. The most striking feature in the morphology of these plants 
 is the total absence of roots, the functions of these organs being performed by 
 specially adapted stem-branches bearing minute scale-leaves, and covered with 
 root-hairs. 
 
 The stem. In Psilotum the subterranean shoots have unlimited apical growth : 
 they are much branched, apparently dichotornously, but it seems probable that 
 the branching is really lateral. The subaerial shoots generally arise as lateral 
 
426 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 branches on the subterranean shoots : they have limited apical growth ; they 
 are branched, the mode of branching being probably the same as that of the 
 subterranean shoots ; and they bear small scattered leaves. 
 
 The stem of Tmesipteris appears to agree in all essential morphological points 
 with that of Psilotum ; but with this conspicuous difference, that it is much less 
 branched. 
 
 The leaves. In both genera the leaves of the subaerial shoots are of two 
 kinds. In Psilotum the vegetative leaves are minute scales, whereas in 
 Tmesipteris they are relatively well-developed as foliage-leaves : they are simple 
 and sessile. The sporophylls, on the contrary, are petiolate and bilobed in both 
 genera, a single sporangium being borne on the upper surface of each sporophyll 
 just at the junction of the bases of the two lobes : they are not borne in cones. 
 
 The sporangia are synangia (p. 375) ; that is, they are not unilocular, but 
 multilocular capsules : in Psilotum the synangium is generally trilocular (some- 
 times 2-4 locular), in Tmesipteris bilocular. Each loculus opens by a 
 longitudinal slit. The origin of the archesporium has not been fully traced : 
 but it appears probable that it consists primarily of a layer of cells, some of 
 .vhich become the mother-cells of the spores, whilst the rest are sterile and form 
 the tissue of the walls separating the loculi. 
 
 The spores are developed in tetrads from the mother-cells ; bilaterally, as in 
 Tmesipteris ; or either bilaterally or tetrahedrally, as in Psilotum. They have 
 the typical structure. 
 
 General Histology. The shoots of both genera are monostelic. The arrange- 
 ment of the bundles is radial, much as in Lycopodium ; but the number of the 
 bundles is generally smaller, especially in the subterranean shoots where there 
 may be only two protoxylem-bundles. There is no secondary growth in 
 thickness. The growth in length of the shoots is effected by an apical growing- 
 point which, when the shoot is quite young, consists of small-celled meristem ; 
 but in which a three-sided pyramidal apical cell can in certain cases 
 (subterranean shoots of Psilotum) be detected at a later stage. 
 
 The leaves have a midrib with a single bundle, whicii is, however, very 
 rudimentary in Psilotum triquetrum. 
 
 Vegetative propagation takes place in Psilotum by means of gemmas, 
 developed on the rhizomes, consisting of a single layer of cells, ovoid and 
 flattened in form. 
 
 THE GAMETOPHYTE. No observations have as yet been made on the gameto- 
 phyte of either genus, and consequently the embryogeny of the sporophyte is 
 also unknown. 
 
 SUB-CLASS HETEKOSPORE^. 
 
 OrderS. Selaginellaceae. This order consists of the single genus Selag- 
 inella, of which the numerous species are very widely distributed, but only one, 
 S. spinosa (selaginoides), is British. 
 
 THE SPOROPHYTE. The primary stem is slender and elongated, erect, or more 
 commonly procumbent; its symmetry is bilateral, isobilateral when erect, 
 dorsiventral when procumbent ; the branches spring from the flanks of the 
 primary stem, and, as this is subsequently repeated, the resulting branch- system 
 lies in one plane ; the mode of branching is lateral, though it appears to be 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : LYCOPODIN^. 
 
 427 
 
 dichotoraous. In some few species, however, the branches have radial 
 symmetry (e.g. S. spinosa). 
 
 At the points at which the normal branching takes place, leafless branches, 
 termed rhizophores, are in some species developed in a plane at right angles to 
 that of the normal branching ; thus in S. Kraussiana they arise singly on the 
 upper surface of the stem at the points of normal branching, whilst in S. 
 Martemii two are developed at each such point, one on the upper and one on 
 the lower surface. The direction of growth of the rhizophore is such that the 
 apex eventually penetrates into the soil, when roots arise from it and it ceases 
 to grow. 
 
 These organs have been regarded as roots, and are sometimes so designated 
 still. But in view of the important morphological facts that the rhizophore is 
 of exogenous origin like the leafy branches ; that it has no root-cap, whilst the 
 true roots of Selaginella have one ; and finally, that sometimes a rhizophore will 
 develope leaves and even cones, the probability is that they are modified 
 branches comparable with the root-like branches of the Psilotaceae. 
 
 The leaves can be readily distinguished as either foliage -leaves or sporo- 
 phylls. A characteristic feature in their morphology is the development of a 
 small ligule on the upper surface of each leaf near its base. 
 
 The foliage-leaves are simple, small, sessile, and rather numerous. Those 
 borne on the radial branches are all alike, and are arranged spirally ; the 
 bilateral branches show remarkable heterophylly, there being leaves of two 
 sizes in decussate pairs, each pair con- 
 sisting of one large and one small leaf ; 
 when the branch bearing these two kinds 
 of leaves is dorsiventral, the four rows of 
 leaves show displacement with the result 
 that the two rows of small leaves are 
 borne on the upper surface of the branch, 
 and the two rows of larger leaves are 
 borne infero-laterally (Fig. 277). 
 
 The sporophylls are generally collected 
 into more or less distinct cone-like flowers; 
 they do not differ materially from the 
 foliage-leaves, and, like them, may be all 
 of one size or of two sizes. 
 
 The sporangia are shortly stalked and 
 unilocular; they arise singly from a group 
 of superficial cells of the stem just above 
 the insertion of each sporophyll; the wall, 
 when mature, consists of two layers of 
 cells ; the archesporium probably consists of a single row of cells, and is entirely 
 sporogenous. 
 
 There are two kinds of sporangia, macrosporangia and micro sporangia, 
 distinguished by the kind of spores which they produce, and by their size. 
 The macrosporangia each give rise to generally four (sometimes 2 or 8) relatively 
 large macrospores ; the microsporangia each give rise to a considerable number 
 of micro spores. 
 
 FIG. 277. Selaginella helvetica (nat. 
 Bize) : s the upright fertile shoot, with 
 sporangia in the axils of the leaves. 
 On the procumbent sterile shoots, the 
 leaves on the under side (u) are larger 
 than those on the upper side (o). 
 
428 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The relative distribution of the two kinds of sporangia presents some varia- 
 tion. As a rule both kinds of sporangia are present in the same cone, so tht 
 it may be described as consisting of microsporophylls and macrosporophylls; 
 in this case there may be several macrosporophylls at the lower part of the 
 cone, or only a single one. 
 
 The spores are developed in fours from the mother-cells resulting from the 
 growth and multiplication of the archesporial cells. They are developed 
 tetrahedrally : but in the macrosporangium usually only one of the mother- 
 cells undergoes division to form spores. The structure of the spores is 
 normal. 
 
 The roots are all adventitious and endogenous. In - some species (P.O. 
 S. cuspidata and Wildenovii) they spring directly from the lower surface of the 
 
 stem at the points 
 where branching 
 takes place. In other 
 (e.g. S. Martensii and 
 Kraussiana) cases 
 they spring from 
 near the apex of the 
 rhizophores after the 
 rbizophores have 
 reached and entered 
 the soil. The roots 
 branch monopodi- 
 ally. 
 
 General Histology. 
 The stem is, in some 
 species (S. spinulosa 
 and denticulata) mo- 
 nostelic, but in most 
 species it is poly- 
 stelic (two or three). 
 The epidermal and 
 the fundamental 
 tissue of the stem 
 is prosencbymatous, 
 without intercellular 
 spaces. In corre- 
 lation with this each 
 stele is suspended, 
 by delicate trabecular 
 cells developed from 
 the endodermis, in 
 
 an air-chamber: each vascular bundle going to a leaf is in a similar chamber 
 which communicates in the lamina with the external air through the stomata. 
 Each stele is surrounded, towards the air-chamber, by a pericycle consisting of 
 one or sometimes two layers of cells. The stele is diarch, or polyarch, circular 
 or oval in transverse section, the wood-bundles joining in the centre. 
 
 '"'IG. 278. Prothallium and embryo of Selaginella Martensii 
 (x '65: after Pfeffer): s coat of macrospore ; p prothallium ; 
 o arcnojfonium ; d-d diaphragm ; end so-called endosperm : R 
 an embryo (there is a smaller one to the right): s suspensor; 
 c c developing cotyledons; st stem ; v origin of the root; / so- 
 called foot. 
 
GROUP III. PTERIDOPHYTA : LYCOPODIN^. 
 
 429 
 
 Rhizophore and root are both monostelic, and without air-chambers : the 
 stele is monarch. 
 
 The bundles are all closed ; there is no secondary growth in thickness. 
 
 The leaves are very simple in structure : they have a midrib with a single 
 /ascular bundle : the epidermal cells contain chloroplastids which, like those in 
 the other cells, are large and are present in small numbers (sometimes only one) 
 in the cells. The stomata are usually confined to the under surface, on the 
 sides of the midrib. 
 
 The growth in length of the stem is effected by an apical growing-point which 
 has, in some species (e.y. S. Martensii) a two-sided or three-sided apical cell, 
 whilst in others (e.g: S. Lyalli, Pervillei, etc.) it consists of small-celled stratified 
 meristern. The structure of the growing-point of the rhizophore agrees with 
 
 B 
 
 FIG. 279. Embryogeny of Selaginella Martensii (after Pfeffer). Two isolated embryos at 
 different stages. A Younger embryo ( x 610) B older ( x 165) : 8 susnensor; c l c 3 cotyledons; 
 ststem; i young foliage-leaves; hyp hypocotyl ; r root ; /so-called foot. 
 
 that of the stem in the various species : but the apical cell, when present, is a 
 four-sided pyramid at first, becoming eventually two-sided. The growing- 
 point of the root has a tetrahedral apical cell. 
 
 Embryogeny of the Sporophyte. The embryogeny of Selaginella closely re- 
 sembles that of Lycopodium. The oospore undergoes division, a transverse 
 basal wall being formed: the upper or hypobasal cell developes into a uni- 
 cellular or few-celled suspensor which is homologous with the foot iu the 
 Bryophyta : the lower or epibasal cell appears to undergo division into four 
 
430 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 octants, which eventually form two tiers of cells : from the basal tier of cells 
 the hypocotyl is developed ; from the apical tier the growing-point of the stem 
 and those of the two cotyledons. The hypocotyl elongates, and curves so as to 
 escape from the prothallium and the spore ; the convexity of the curve becomes 
 somewhat protuberant and is usually (but erroneously) termed the " foot," though 
 it doubtless acts as an organ of absorption ; morphologically it cannot be a foot 
 since it is epibasal in origin ; it would more appropriately be termed a feeder 
 (p. 14). The first root eventually springs, endogenously and adventitiously, from 
 the posterior portion of the convex surface of the hypocotyl ; it is not a true 
 primary root because it is epibasal in origin. 
 
 THE GAMETOPHYTE. 
 
 Selaginella being heterosporous, the gametophyte-generation is represented 
 by distinct male and female individuals, which are rudimentary prothallia 
 bearing the male and female organs respectively. 
 
 The male prothallium is developed inside the microspore : the germination of 
 the spore begins with the formation of a wall across the pointed apical end of 
 the spore, cutting off a small cell, the vegetative cell : the rest of the spore goes 
 to form the single antheridium which consists of a layer of parietal cells enclos- 
 ing the mother-cells of the spermatozoids. When the development of the 
 spermatozoids is completed, the coats of the microspore burst, as also the wall 
 of the antheridium, and the spermatozoids are set free. 
 
 The male cells or spermatozoids consist of a somewhat club-shaped slightly 
 twisted body, bearing two cilia at its pointed anterior end. 
 
 The female prothallium is developed inside the macrospore (Fig. 278) : ger- 
 mination begins with the formation of a wall, termed the diaphragm, across the 
 apical end of the macrospore : in the smaller upper cell thus cut off cell-division 
 proceeds, resulting in the formation of the meniscus-shaped prothallium con- 
 sisting of compact small-celled tissue : the larger portion of the spore, below 
 the diaphragm, is rich in reserve materials : here cell-formation goes on but 
 slowly, a large-celled loose tissue (sometimes called endosperm) being produced 
 which serves to nourish the embryo which is forced down into it by the elon- 
 gation of the suspensor. 
 
 The walls of the spore eventually split along the angles, thus forming an 
 apical aperture by means of which the upper surface of the prothallium, which 
 now becomes green, is exposed. 
 
 The female organ or archegonium is developed from a single superficial cell 
 at the centre of the upper surface of the prothallium (here several cells thick) ; 
 it does not call for any special description : if the first archegonium fails to be- 
 come fertilised, others may be subsequently formed. 
 
 The female cell or oosphere is contained in the venter of the archegonium. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAM1A. 
 
 431 
 
 GROUP IV. 
 PHANEROGAMIA (OB SPERMAPHYTA). 
 
 THESE are all heterosporous plants, having a definite alternation 
 of generations, which is, however, not readily perceived on account 
 of the great reduction of the sexual generation, and of the fact 
 that the female gametophyte remains enclosed in the macrospore, 
 that the macrospore remains enclosed in the macrosporangium, 
 and that the macrosporangium remains for a long time attached 
 to the sporophyte, the result being the development of a seed 
 which constitutes a characteristic feature of the group (see p. 217). 
 
 A. THE SPOROPHYTE. As in the Pteridophyta, so here, the plant 
 itself is the sporophyte or asexual generation. 
 
 It is unnecessary to go into detail at present with regard to the 
 morphology of the vegetative 
 organs ; full information is 
 given in the section on General 
 Morphology, and subsequent- 
 ly in the description of the 
 classes and orders. 
 
 The 'Reproductive Organs of 
 the sporophyte are sporangia 
 of two kinds, microsporangia 
 and macrosporangia, which 
 are usually borne on sporo- 
 phylls, but sometimes directly 
 on the axis : the modified 
 shoots bearing the sporangia 
 constitute flowers ; and they 
 usually bear, in addition to 
 the sporophylls, other floral 
 leaves (hypsophylls, see p. 
 79), protective or attractive 
 in function, some of which 
 usually constitute a perianth. em the embryo-sac. E The oosphere. 
 
 The flowering shoot consti- 
 tutes an inflorescence, which may consist of one or many flowers, 
 according to the extent to which the shoot branches. 
 
 The Flower (see p. 76) is a sporangium-bearing shoot or sporo- 
 phore with usually undeveloped or feebly developed internodes, 
 
 FIG. 290. Diagram of an angiospermous 
 flower. Ke Calyx. K Corolla j / filament of 
 stamen ; a anther with two pollen-sacs in each 
 half which are opened, showing the pollen- 
 grains (p). These fall on the stigma, and the 
 pollen-tube (ps) penetrates the style (g) as 
 far as the cavity of the ovary (F), reaching 
 the ovule (S) ; i the integument of the ovule; 
 
 V. S. B. 
 
 F F 
 
432 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 so that the sporophylls and hypsophylls which it bears are closely 
 aggregated together. Most commonly the flower is ambisporan- 
 giate (monoclinous, or hermaphrodite), but it is frequently mono- 
 sporangiate (unisexual) : in the latter case there are two kinds of 
 flowers, microsporangiate and macrosporangiate, which may be 
 borne by the same individual, when they are said to be diclinous 
 and monoecious; or by two distinct individuals, when they are 
 dioecious (see p. 86). Occasionally the same plant produces both 
 ambisporangiate and monosporangiate flowers, when it is said to 
 be polygamous. The microsporangiate flowers are frequently 
 termed staminate, and the macrosporangiate flowers carpellary 
 (p. 78) : the former are indicated by the sign $ , the latter by 
 the sign ?, and ambisporangiate flowers by the sign ty. In the 
 Gymnosperms the flower is always monosporangiate ; in the An- 
 giosperms it is generally, though by no means always, ambispor- 
 angiate. The flower 
 of the Gymnosperms 
 is nearly always de- 
 stitute of a perianth. 
 The special mor- 
 phology of the Peri- 
 anth is dealt with 
 under the Angio- 
 spermse, in which 
 class it attains its 
 highest develop- 
 ment. 
 
 The Sporophylls 
 are of two kinds : 
 microsporophylls, otherwise known as stamens; and macrosporo- 
 phylls, otherwise known as carpels : the former bear exclusively 
 microsporangia, the latter exclusively macrosporangia. The 
 sporophylls present considerable variety of form, and are on the 
 whole more highly specialised than in any of the Pteridophyta. 
 
 The microsporophyll, or stamen (see p. 78), in its most highly 
 specialised form, consists of a stalk of varying length, the filament, 
 bearing a terminal structure, the anther, which is a sorus of one 
 or more microsporangia embedded in more or less placental tissue. 
 In the less highly organised Phanerogams (e.^.most Gymnosperms), 
 the microsporophylls are morphologically simpler, having the 
 general character of sessile or shortly-stalked scaly leaves. 
 
 FIG. 2S1. Transverse section of a young anther of Sam- 
 bucun racemosa (x80): c the connective with the vascular 
 bundle ; ps the four pollen-sacs (microsporangiaj ; p the 
 mother-cells of the pollen; t tapetal layer; u- the wall of 
 the pollen-sac. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA. 433 
 
 The macrosporophyll, or carpel, bears (usually) macrosporangia 
 (see p. 78). In the Angiosperms the carpel, either by itself or by 
 cohesion with others, forms a closed cavity, the ovary, which is 
 frequently prolonged at its apex into a longer or shorter process, 
 the style, bearing at its summit a glandular surface, the stigma: 
 so.metimes the style is absent, so that the stigma is sessile 011 the" 
 ovary ; within the ovary the macrosporangia are developed. In 
 the Gymnosperms, the macrosporophylls (when present) do not 
 cohere, either individually or several together; so that in this 
 group there is no ovary, style, or stigma; they are thus distin- 
 guished from the Angiosperms, in which there is always an 
 ovary. 
 
 The Sporangia are of two kinds; microsporangia or pollen-sacs, 
 and macrosporanyia or ovules. The development of the sporangium 
 is, in both, eusporangiate (see p. 73). The sporangia are, as a 
 rule, borne on the sporophylls ; but in some few cases (e.g. micro- 
 sporangia of Naias, Casuarina; macrosporangia of Taxus, Poly- 
 gonum, Primulaceae, etc.) they are borne on the axis. 
 
 The microsporangia, or pollen- sacs, may be developed either 
 singly or in a sorus of two or more ; they may be very numerous 
 on the sporophyll, as in the Cycadaceae. When borne on the 
 sporophylls, they are developed on the lower (dorsal) surface of 
 the microsporophyll in the lower forms (e.g. CycadaceaB, Coniferae) ; 
 whereas in the Angiosperms they are usually developed both on 
 the upper (ventral) and the lower surfaces. 
 
 The microsporangia either project freely or are embedded in the 
 placental tissue of the member bearing them. The multicellular 
 hypodermal archesporium is either a row or a layer of cells. The 
 archesporial cells undergo, as a rule, division, giving rise to the 
 sporogenous cells together with a more or less extensive transitory 
 layer of investing cells, the tapetum, which is eventually dis- 
 organised. 
 
 The microsporangium is, as a rule, unilocular; but in a few 
 Angiosperms some of the sporogenous cells are sterile and, instead 
 of giving rise to spores, constitute walls which render the micro- 
 sporangium mnltilocular. The septa are either transverse, so that 
 the loculi are in a vertical row (e.g. species of MimoseaB ; also some 
 Onagraceae, such as Circsea, Gaura, Clarkia) ; or both transverse 
 and longitudinal, as in Rhizophora and Viscum. 
 
 The microsporangium eventually dehisces, generally by a longi- 
 tudinal slit, less commonly by a transverse slit or by a pore. 
 
434 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The dehiscence is mainly effected by a layer of traclieidal cells, 
 differentiated as part of the wall, which are highly hygroscopic. 
 
 The microspores, or pollen-grains, are developed from the sporo- 
 genous mother-cells of the sporangium. As a rule each mother-cell 
 divides so as to give rise to four microspores, all of which develope. 
 As a rule, also, the microspores eventually become quite free from 
 each other, but to this there are exceptions: thus, in the Mimosea?, 
 while the pollen-grains are isolated in some species, in other 
 species they cohere in groups of 4, 8, 12, 16, or 32, derived from 
 one, two, three, or more mother-cells ; again, in the OrchidaceaB, 
 whilst Cypripedium has isolated pollen-grains, in most genera the 
 pollen-grains are in groups of four (tetrads), and cohere into a 
 mass (or 2-8 masses), the pollinium, of varying consistence (see 
 Orchidaceas) : pollinia also occur in the Asclepiadacese. 
 
 The microspore has, as a rule, the ordinary structure of a spore 
 
 (see p. 69) ; it is a nucleated 
 cell, with a certain amount 
 of granular nutritive mate- 
 rial in its cytoplasm, and 
 has two coats, an intine and 
 an exine, the structure of 
 the latter being elaborate 
 in many cases. The spore 
 has not, however, always 
 two coats. In some plants 
 there is no exine, and only 
 a single thin coat, as in the 
 cells of the pollinia of Or- 
 chids and Asclepiads, and 
 in certain plants whose 
 
 flowers develope under water, such as certain Naiadacese (Zos- 
 tera, Posidonia, Cymodocea, Naias), in Halophila (Hydrochari- 
 dacene), and in some species of Callitriche. In others, again, 
 there is but one coat, but it is thick and is cuticularised externally 
 (e.g. Senecio), or the two coats are only distinguishable at those 
 points at which the pollen-tubes will be eventually protruded (e.g. 
 Onagraceae, Cobaea). 
 
 The exine is frequently highly differentiated with special refer- 
 ence to the protrusion of the pollen-tubes : it may be porous (e.g. 
 Malvaceae, Fig. 283) ; or there maybe thin areas at certain points ; 
 or (Onagraceae) much-thickened areas where the pollen-tubes are 
 
 FIG. 282. A Pollen-grain of Cucurbita Pepo, 
 showing the lid-like areas through which the 
 pollen-tubes will protrude (x240). B Section of 
 one of these areas (x6iO: after Strasburger). 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA. 
 
 435 
 
 eventually developed ; or, again, areas are marked off here and 
 there which come off like lids under the pressure of the developing 
 pollen-tube (Fig. 282). 
 
 The development of the microspores has already been dealt 
 with in general (see p. 125), so that it will be only necessary 
 here to mention certain special points. In the first place thei 
 is an exception to the rule that each mother-cell gives rise to 
 four microspores; in Asclepias each mother-cell developes directly, 
 without division, into a cell of the pollinium, each such cell 
 being, at any rate physiologically, equivalent to a microspore ; 
 
 Fro. 233. Pollen-grains of Malva crtspa. A Grain seen from surface ; B secMon of wall, 
 showing the exine with its alternate spines and pores, the latter closed internally by the 
 delicate innermost layer of t.he exine ; C germinating pollen-grain with pollen-tubes; 1) the 
 same in section, showing the protrusion of the pollen- tubes through the pores. (A, B, D 
 x540; Cx 240: after Strasburger.) 
 
 apparently the same is the case in Zostera where, however, the 
 microspores are isolated. The mother-cells of the microspores 
 either remain coherent, during the development of the microspores, 
 or (as in many Monocotyledons) they become free and float in 
 the granular fluid, derived from the disorganisation of the tapetum, 
 which fills the pollen- sac. The walls of the mother-cells usually 
 become very much thickened, especially in the planes of the future 
 
436 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 divisions. The division of the mother-cell is either successive 
 (Monocotyledons, Cycads), or simultaneous (most Dicotyledons 
 and Conifers) ; in the former case the microspores are usually 
 bilateral, in the latter tetrahedral. The form of the mature 
 microspore varies widely ; it may be spherical, etc. ; in plants in 
 which pollination takes place under water, the microspore be- 
 comes elongated and filiform (e.g. Zostera, Posidoriia, Cymodocea, 
 and to some extent also in Naias), and in Halophila the microspores 
 are aggregated into filaments. 
 
 In some cases the germination of the pollen-grain begins before 
 it is set free from the dehisced pollen- sac, so that it consists of 
 two (sometimes more in Gymnosperms) cells at the time of 
 pollination. 
 
 The macrosporangia, or ovules, are developed singly, or in pairs, 
 or more commonly several together, from a more or less well- 
 developed cushion of tissue, the placenta. When the ovules are 
 borne on sporophylls, the placenta is either marginal, or, less 
 commonly, it is ventral, including the whole of the upper or inner 
 surface of the carpel with, sometimes, the exception of the mid- 
 rib (e.g. Butomus, Nymphaea). When the ovules are borne on 
 the axis, they are either terminal (e.g. Taxus, Polygonum) or 
 lateral (e.g. Primulacea?, Composites). 
 
 The macrosporangium, like the microsporangium, makes its 
 appearance as a small cellular prominence on the surface of the 
 organ which bears it, formed by the division of a group of 
 hypodermal cells ; it is covered at the surface by an epidermal 
 layer which usually remains single, though in some cases (e.y. 
 Gymnosperms, Delphinium, Helianthemum, Rosaceae, Iris Pseuda- 
 corus) the epidermal cells undergo repeated periclinal divisions and 
 thus add considerably to the bulk of the micropylar portion of 
 the nucellus. 
 
 The macrosporangium proper (sometimes distinguished as the 
 nucellus) is invested by one or two coats, which grow up from the 
 base, but do not completely close over the apex, leaving there a 
 narrow channel termed the micropyle ; the base of the macro- 
 sporangium, where the coats and the tissue of the sporangium 
 proper become indistinguishable, is termed the chalaza. The 
 coats of the ovule in Phanerogams are the morphological equivalent 
 of the indusium in the Pteridophyta, though, in the former the 
 sorus consists of a single macrosporangium; but this is also the 
 case in Azolla, Isoetes, etc., among the Pteridophyta. 
 
GEOUP IV. PHANEROGAMTA. 
 
 437 
 
 The macrosporangium is not, as a rule, embedded in the placental 
 tissue, and is sometimes borne on a longer or shorter stalk, the 
 funicle. The point of attachment of the macrosporangium, whether 
 it be sessile or stalked, to the placenta, is termed the hilum. 
 
 The form of the macrosporangium presents many varieties, 
 of which the following are the more common. When the micro^ 
 pyle, the chalaza, and the funicle (or the hilum) all lie in one 
 and the same straight line, the ovule is said to be orthotropous : 
 when the micropyle and the chalaza lie in the same straight line, 
 but not the funicle, the ovule being bent back against the funicle 
 (termed the raphe along the line of contact), the ovule is ana- 
 
 FIG. 284. Diagrams of the Ovule. A Orthotropous. P Anatropous. C Campylotropous. 
 /Funicle; ai the outer integument; ii the inner integument; m micropyle; fcnucellus; 
 em embryo-sac; r the raphe ; c chalaza. 
 
 tropous', when the ovule itself is curved, so that the micropyle 
 and the chalaza do not lie in the same straight line, the ovule is 
 campylotropous. Various intermediate forms occur which may be 
 easily imagined. 
 
 The archesporium (see p. 73), which here, as elsewhere, is 
 hypodermal, consists generally of one cell, though sometimes 
 apparently of several lying side by side (e.g. Casuarina; some 
 Rosacese, such as Rosa livida, Fragaria vesca, Cydonia japonica, 
 Sanguisorba pratensis; possibly also some Gymnosperms, Gnetum, 
 Taxus, Ginkgo, Thuja). In some cases the archesporial cell 
 undergoes no division (e.g. Tulipa Gesneriana, Lilium bulbiferum) 
 but directly developes into the mother-cell of a macrospore ; but, 
 as a rule, the archesporial cell (or cells) undergoes more or less 
 frequent division. Thus, in most Phanerogams, the division of 
 the archesporial cell begins with the cutting off, by a periclinal 
 wall, of a sterile cell towards the organic apex (micropylar end) 
 
438 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 of the macrosporangium or sometimes two such sterile cells 
 which, with or without further division, represent a tapetal layer. 
 The large remaining cell now undergoes division into two by a 
 transverse wall, and one or both of these cells may divide in a 
 similar manner. Thus a longitudinal row of large cells, two to 
 four in number, is formed, all of which are potentially mother- 
 cells of macrospores. In some plants (e.g. Senecio and other 
 gamopetalous Dicotyledons; Orchis pall ens, Gymnadenia Conopsea, 
 and some Grasses, among Monocotyledons) no tapetal cells are 
 cut off. In a few plants (Cycads, Callitris quadrivalvis, Cupreous 
 sempervirens, among Gymnosperms ; Casuarina and some other 
 Amentales, among Angiosperms) the growth of the archesporial 
 cells is more extensive, leading to the production of a considerable 
 mass of sporogenous tissue, as in the macrosporangia of the 
 Pteridophyta. 
 
 Generally speaking, only one of the cells of the sporogenous 
 tissue shows any sign of developing into a macrospore ; and in 
 the normal Angiosperms, this cell is generally the lowest (nearest 
 the chalaza) of the longitudinal row described above. In some 
 exceptional cas3S (e.g. Rosa livida, Casuarina, Taxus, Ginkgo, 
 Thuja, Gnetum) several of the potential mother-cells begin, at 
 least, to develope, though even in these cases only one of them, 
 as a rule, ultimately gives rise to a fertile macrospore. 
 
 The growth of the fertile mother-cell of the macrospore is 
 vigorous. It causes the displacement and absorption of the sterile 
 cells of the sporogenous tissue. But Casuarina is an exception 
 in this respect ; here the numerous (as many as twenty) mother- 
 cells all grow with equal vigour, and, as they do not attain a 
 large size, there is space for them all in the macrosporangium. 
 Casuarina is further peculiar in that some of the small sterile 
 cells of the sporogenous tissue develope into tracheidal cells 
 somewhat resembling the elaters of the Hepaticee. 
 
 The macrosporangium is indehiscent, and only becomes de- 
 tached from the plant after it has developed into a seed. 
 
 The macrospore or embryo-sac is, as a rule, developed singly in 
 the macrosporangium ; and, further, it is always developed singly 
 from its mother-cell without any indication of that division into 
 four which is characteristic of the development of spores in 
 general. It is in fact impossible, as a rule, to fix upon any 
 stage at which the transition from macrospore-mother-cell to 
 macrospore may be considered to take place ; for the mother-cell 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA. 
 
 439 
 
 simply grows and becomes the macrospore without any special 
 differentiation. However, in the Cycadacese, the wall of the 
 mother- cell undergoes that differentiation which is characteristic 
 of spores, so that the wall of the macrospore consists of two 
 layers the outer of which is cuticularised. The macrospore is 
 simply a large cell, containing vacuolated protoplasm in which 
 lies a nucleus, and having, as a rule, a wall of cellulose. 
 
 FIG. 285. Torenia asiatica. A Two anatropous ovules on the placenta p ; e apex of 
 embryo-sac projecting beyond the micro pyle; e* its broad chalazal end in the ovule; 
 /funicle; i integument ( x 240). JB and C Free apex of embryo-sac, with egg-apparatus, 
 before fertilisation ; fl caps of the synergidae ; o oosphere. D and E The process of fertili- 
 sation ; t the pullen-tube ; / part of the funicle ( x 600 : after Strasburger). 
 
 In the course of its growth, the macrospore frequently causes 
 the absorption of more or less of the tissue of the nucellus, more 
 especially towards the micropylar end. It commonly attains 
 such a size that little or none of the nucellar tissue remains, and 
 it may even project beyond the micropyle {e.g. Santalum, Torenia 
 asiatica, Fig. 285) ; and in many gamopetalous Dicotyledons it 
 
440 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLAN1&. 
 
 developes tubular outgrowths, which penetrate into and destroy 
 the tissue of the integument (e.g. Rhinanthus, Lathraea, some 
 Labiatse). In some cases, however (e.g. Grymnosperms, Scitamineae, 
 most Nympheeaceae, Piper), the macrospore does not grow to such 
 an extent, so that a considerable mass of nucellar tissue is left, 
 which persists to some extent in the seed as perisperm, its cells 
 being then filled with nutritive substances. This may be due, as 
 in the Gynmosperms, to the fact that the macrospore is covered, 
 towards the micropyle, by a mass of nucellar tissue formed by 
 the growth and repeated division, both periclinal and anticlinal, 
 of either the tapetal cell, or of the apical epidermal cells of the 
 ovule, or of both ; or, as in the other cases, to the fact that the 
 macrospore, in its growth, which is relatively slight, does not 
 absorb the chalazal portion of the nucellar tissue. 
 
 General Histology. The following are the principal characteris- 
 tic features : The apical growth of shoot and root is only excep- 
 tionally effected by means of a single apical cell : the small-celled 
 meristem of the growing-point of the stem is more or less distinctly 
 differentiated into dermatogen, periblem, and plerome, so that the 
 stem has a true epidermis : the epiblema of the root is either the 
 persistent innermost layer of the original many-layered endodermis 
 (most Dicotyledons, Gymnosperms), or it is the external layer of 
 the cortex (Monocotyledons ; see p. 154) : stem and root are mono- 
 stelic, with but few exceptions (p. 152) : the vascular bundles of 
 the stem are generally collateral: both root and stem generally 
 present secondary growth in thickness (except Monocotyledons, 
 and a few other cases) by means of a normal cambium-ring (for 
 abnormal cases, see p. 204) : the growing-points of the lateral roots 
 are developed from the pericycle of the parent root (see p. 186). 
 
 The Embryogeny of the Sporophyte. The sporophyte is developed 
 from the fertilised oosphere in the ovule. The development of the 
 embryo is not continuous, but is in two stages, which may be con- 
 veniently distinguished as the intr a- seminal and the extra- seminal. 
 The intra-seminal stage includes the whole of the development 
 which the embryo undergoes during the conversion of the ovule 
 into the ripe seed that is, during what is known as the " ripening" 
 of the seed." The extra-seminal stage includes the development 
 of the embryo which follows the sowing of the seed ; that is, the 
 escape of the embryo from the seed, and the gradual development 
 of the characters of the adult plant. The interval between these 
 two stages may be brief, or it may extend over many years if the 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAM IA. 441 
 
 seed be kept dry, The " germination " of the seed when sown is 
 simply the resumption of development by the embryo in conse- 
 quence of exposure to the necessary conditions of moisture, 
 warmth, etc. 
 
 In most Phanerogams, each oospore gives rise to a single em- 
 bryo; but in most Gymnosperms each oospore gives rise to more 
 than one embryo (four or many), thus exhibiting polyembryony. 
 
 The primary development of the embryo is either holoblastic or 
 meroblastic (see p. 13) ; meroblastic embryogeny is common among 
 Gymnosperms. 
 
 In some exceptional cases (Cycads, Ginkgo, Ephedra) the 
 embryogeny begins with free cell-formation in the oospore (see p. 
 121). 
 
 Generally speaking, the oospore of holoblastic plants divides 
 into two by a transverse wall : the upper of the two cells remains 
 coherent to the micropylar end of the embryo-sac and developes 
 into the suspensor, an embryonic organ which is a characteristic 
 feature of the embryogeny of Phanerogams, which bears at its 
 lower end the other cell, termed the embryo-cell, from which the 
 whole or a considerable part of the body of the embryo is de- 
 veloped. In meroblastic plants, the suspensorial cell and the 
 ernbryo-cell are developed in a somewhat similar though more 
 complicated manner, from the embryogenic portion of the oospore 
 (see Gymnosperms, p. 471). 
 
 It is in comparatively few plants that the suspensor contributes 
 nothing to the development of the permanent members of the 
 embryo. This is necessarily the case in those plants (enumerated 
 below) in which no suspensor is developed ; it is also the case 
 in some plants in which a suspensor is present (e.g. plants 
 with massive suspensors, such as Geranium, Tropaaolum, many 
 Grasses; also most Leguminosae). Here the embryo is de- 
 veloped entirely from the embryo-cell. In some cases (Viciese, 
 Coniferae) the embryo-cell, on the other hand, contributes to the 
 elongation of the suspensor. In many cases, however, the lowest 
 cell of the suspensor contributes in part (e.g. Capsella, Fig. 286) or 
 entirely (e.g. Alisma, Fig. 287) to the construction of the embryo. 
 
 The suspensor may be regarded, in most cases, simply as a 
 temporary organ of the embryo : but it occasionally presents such 
 a degree of independence of growth, that it assumes the character 
 rather of a proembryonic organism, making the embryogeny 
 heteroblastic, than of a mere organ (see p. 14). 
 
442 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The following are noteworthy peculiarities in the morphology and physiolo'/y 
 of the suspensor. It is generally a filament consisting of a longer or shorter 
 single row of cylindrical cells, sharply defined from the rest of the embryo : in 
 some cases it consists of several such rows (e.g. Glaucium, Viciea?) : in others 
 it is massive (see above), consisting of a number of cells covering the posterior 
 end of the embryo, and not sharply defined from it : sometimes it consists 
 of a single cell (e.g. Funkia) : in some plants (e.g. Viciese) the segments of 
 the suspensor are cosnocytic. Barely, it is differentiated at a relatively late 
 stage of embryogeny (e.g. Cijtisus Laburnum, and some other Leguminosse). Its 
 common function is, by its growth, to force the embryo into the nutritive tissue 
 of the seed, and it is usually attached by its upper end to the micropylar end 
 of the embryo-sac : but it is not unfrequently adapted, more particularly when 
 the embryo-sac contains little or no store of nutriment, as an organ of ab- 
 sorption. Thus in some Orchids (e.g. Anacamptis pyramidalis, Platanthera 
 bifolia, Orchis latifolia), the filamentous suspensor grows through the wall of the 
 embryo- sac, and out at the micropyle, reaching the wall of the ovary where it 
 buries itself in the tissue of the placenta, from the cells of which it absorbs 
 nutriment for the embryo attached to its other end in the embryo-sac. Again, 
 iu other Orchids (Phalsenopsis, Vanda), the primitive suspensorial cell divides 
 longitudinally into six cells which grow out into long filaments, both upwards 
 and downwards, enveloping the embryo but not leaving the ovule, which act as 
 absorbent organs. In Tropseolum, the suspensor produces two lateral branches, 
 one of which bores through the wall of the ovule into the cavity of the ovary, 
 acting as an anchor for the embryo ; the other penetrates the wall of the ovule, 
 wl.ere it is in contact with the placenta, and, entering the placental tissue, acts 
 as an absorbent organ. In Gnetum the suspensor branches and bears an 
 embryo at the end of each branch. When the suspensor is massive, it is itself 
 a depository of nutrient substances for the use of the embryo. 
 
 No suspensor is developed in the following plants : Pistia Stratiotss, Listera 
 ovata, Epipactis palustris and latifolia, Cypripedium spectabile, among Mono- 
 cotyledons ; Corifdalis cava, and certain Leguminous plants, such as the 
 Mimoseae and some Hedysarese, among Dicotyledons ; Ginkgo, among Gymno- 
 sperins. 
 
 In those plants which have no suspensor, the development of 
 the embryo from the oospore is simple. The oospore divides 
 by a transverse (basal) wall into two; then by a longitudinal 
 wall into four ; and then by a second longitudinal wall, at 
 right angles to both the preceding, into eight cells, octants of a 
 sphere : generally speaking, from the half of the oospore next 
 the micropyle the primary root is developed, from the other half 
 the growing-point of the primary stem and the (one or two) 
 primary leaves or cotyledons. The early stages of the embryogeny 
 are essentially the same in those plants in which, though a sus- 
 pensor is present, it does not contribute to the structure of the 
 embryo, though here it is the embryo-cell that divides into octants. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA. 
 
 443 
 
 In those plants which have a snspensor which contributes to 
 the embryo, the embryo- cell is not a complete sphere. It divides, 
 
 Fro. 2S8. Embryogeny of Dicotyledons as represented by Capsella Bursa-Pastoris (dia- 
 grammatic, after Goebel and Hanstein). A-J) Successive stages: susp. suspensor; emb. 
 embryo ; 1-1, 2-2, octant-walls ; a lowest cell of suspenscr, dividing in B to form the hypo- 
 physial cell h; in Cthe hypophysial cell has divided into two, Ti^ and h a , the former con- 
 stituting the periblem, the latter the dermatogen, of the growing-point of the primary 
 root ; in D, h a has undergone a periclinal division to form the primitive root-cap : dderma- 
 tosien ; c periblem ; pi. plerome ; cot. cotyledons, between which lies the growing-point of 
 the primary stem. 
 
 as a rule, into two by a longitudinal wall, then transversely, and 
 then in a plane to both the preceding, into octants; but while 
 
444 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the four anterior octants are octants of a sphere, this is not the 
 case with the four truncated posterior octants abutting on the 
 suspensor. In some cases, the transverse division precedes the 
 longitudinal. From the anterior octants are developed, in Dicotyle- 
 dons generally (Fig. 286), the two cotyledons and the growing- 
 
 FIG. 287. "TCmbryogeny of Monocotyledon*, as represented by AUsma Plantago (diagram- 
 matic, after G-oebel, Hanstein, and Famintzin). A-C Successive stages: a embryo-ceil; 
 b lowest cell of suspensor, susp. : the products of the repeated transverse division of b are 
 indicated (c, d, e, f) in B and C. In G, a has given rise to the single terminal cotyledon ; 
 c to tl<e growing-point of the primary stem; d and e form the hypocotyl ; the growing- 
 point of the root is developed from/; ep dermatogen. D is a mature embryo, less highly 
 ma '.mined: cot. cotyledon; st. growing-point of stem; 7ij,p. hypocotyl. The nuclei of 
 the cells are indicated in A and B. 
 
 point of the primary stem, but the growing-point of the primary 
 root is supplied from the last cell of the suspensor (Fig. 286 
 A, a) which divides transversely into two (Fig. 286 B) and con- 
 tributes the cell h, the hypophysis, to complete the root- end of the 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAM1A. 445 
 
 embryo. In Monocotyledons, on the other hand, the embryo-cell 
 gives rise, as a rule (Fig. 287 A and (7, a), only to the single ter- 
 minal cotyledon ; whilst the last cell of the suspensor (Fig. 287 
 A, b) gives rise to the growing-point of the stem, which is here 
 lateral (Fig. 287 (7, c; D, st), arid to that of the root by a hypo- 
 physial cell (/). 
 
 In two cases only (Cephalotaxus Fortunei, Araucaria brasiliana, both Gymno- 
 sperms) are the cotyledons and the growing-point of the primary stem 
 developed endogenously : here they are at first covered by some cells at the 
 apex of the embryo, which are eventually thrown off. 
 
 la a few exceptional Monocotyledons (e.g. Dioscoreaceae, Commelynaceae) the 
 growing-point of the primary stem is developed, not laterally, but apically, 
 and the cotyledon is lateral. In some Dicotyledons (e.g. Carum BuWocastanum, 
 Ranunculus Ficaria) the embryo is pseudo-monocvtylfdonous', that is, only one 
 cotyledon is developed though two are originally indicated. 
 
 In the Gymnosperms, the number of cotyledons varies from one of fifteen. 
 
 With regard to the histological differentiation of the embryo, 
 the first step, after the division into octants, is the formation of 
 periclinal walls marking off a superficial layer, which is the 
 dermatogen (Figs. 286, 287) ; this differentiation proceeds from 
 the anterior end, or apex, backwards towards the posterior end of 
 the embryo. Jn those plants in which the root-end of the embryo 
 is formed by a hypophysial cell contributed by the suspensor 
 (Fig. 286 .B, /&), the dermatogen-layer is completed by the peri- 
 clinal division of the hypophysial cell, the inner cell forming the 
 periblem of the growing-point, the outer forming the dermatogen 
 which undergoes further periclinal division to form the primitive 
 root-cap. In the meantime, anticlinal and longitudinal walls 
 have also been formed, so that the embryo, as it increases in size, 
 consists of an increasing number of cells. The degree of histo- 
 logical differentiation attained varies widely : in the highest forms 
 (Fig. 286 D) a cylinder of plerome is differentiated in the axis 
 of the embryo, so that the three primary tissue-systems, der- 
 matogen, periblem, and plerome, are clearly defined. 
 
 The degree of morphological differentiation attained by the 
 embryo in its mtra-seminal development also varies widely, as 
 does also the size of the embryo. In the ripe seed of most Orchids 
 and parasitic plants (e.g. Orobanche, Monotropa, etc.), the body of 
 the embryo presents no differentiation into members. In most 
 plants, the embryo, in the ripe seed, consists of the following 
 members : (a) one, two, or several cotyledons ; (6) a primary 
 
446 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 stem bearing the cotyledon or cotyledons, but not projecting be- 
 yond them, termed the hypocotyl, passing posteriorly into (c) the 
 primary root or radicle. In some plants (e.g. Triticum and other 
 Grasses, Phaseolus, Vicia, Amygdalus, etc.) the primary stem has 
 elongated beyond the insertion of the cotyledon or cotyledons, 
 and bears the rudiments of future foliage-leaves : this portion of 
 the primary shoot is termed the plumule or epicotyl. 
 
 The size and texture of the cotyledons vary with the functions 
 which they have to perform. When, as in exalbuminous seeds, 
 such as peas and beans, the cotyledons are themselves the store- 
 houses in which food is deposited for the nutrition of the embryo 
 during its extra-seminal development, they are relatively large, 
 thick, and fleshy; but when, as in albuminous seeds (e.g. Ricinus, 
 Grasses, etc.), the food is stored in the endosperm, the cotyledons 
 are absorbent organs and, though still relatively large, are not 
 thick and fleshy. 
 
 In a few Phanerogams (e.g. Utricularia, which never developes 
 any root, Ruppia rostellata, Wolffia arrhiza) no primary root is 
 developed or even indicated. 
 
 The extra- seminal development of the embryo may be briefly 
 stated as follows : The first event is the elongation of the hypo- 
 cotyl, with the result that the radicle passes, through the micropyle, 
 out of the seed into the soil, where it becomes firmly attached: 
 when (as in some Gymnosperms, Grasses, Tropseolum) the growing- 
 point of the root is developed deep in the tissue of the embryo, 
 the radicle, before it can escape from the seed, has to penetrate 
 this more or less considerable mass of tissue which can be seen, 
 on examining the germinated seed, as a collar, termed the 
 coleorhiza, surrounding the base of the radicle. The other mem- 
 bers then escape from the seed, the coat of which becomes more 
 or less split. In those cases in which the growth of the hypocotyl 
 is active, the cotyledons appear above the surface of the soil, that 
 is, they are epigean (e.g. Cucurbita, Ricinus, Radish, Sunflower, 
 Scarlet Runner, etc., most Gymnosperms), either leaving the seed- 
 coat in the soil, or carrying it up to the surface. In those cases in 
 which the growth of the hypocotyl is comparatively slight, the 
 cotyledons do not reach the surface of the soil, that is, they are 
 hypogean (e.g. Vicia Faba, Pea, Grasses, etc.) : here it is the 
 epicotyl (plumule) which grows rapidly, and is the first member 
 to appear above ground. The part which first appears above 
 ground, whether it be hypocotyl, epicotyl, or cotyledon, usually 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA. 
 
 447 
 
 does so in the form of an arch, so that the apex is not exposed 
 to injury whilst the member is forcing its way up through the 
 soil. 
 
 Epigean cotyledons become green in colour, and in many cases 
 (e.g. Sunflower, Radish) assume the appearance, and discharge 
 the functions, of foliage-leaves ; but they do not ever precisely re- 
 semble, either in size or form, the true foliage-leaves of the plant 
 to which they belong. 
 
 Vegetative Propagation is common, among Phanerogams, by 
 
 c 
 
 n 
 
 FIG. 288. Germination of pollen-grain of Lilium Martagon (x750: after Guignard). A 
 Young pollen-grain: c centrospheres; n resting nucleus. B Commencement of germina- 
 tion : n the dividing nucleus ; c centrospheres. C Cell-formation has taken place, result- 
 ing in the formation of the generative cell g; n nucleus of remainder of pollen-grain (i.e. 
 vegetative cell). 
 
 means of bulbs (e.g. Lily, Onion, and many other Monocotyledons), 
 tubers (Potato), tuberous roots (Dahlia), etc. 
 
 B. THE GAMETOPHTTE. As all Phanerogams are heterosporous, 
 the sexual generation is represented by two individuals, a male 
 
 v. s. B. GO 
 
448 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 and a female., developed respectively from the microspore and the 
 macrospore. 
 
 The Male Prothallium is, in all cases, filamentous and relatively 
 small, consisting of but few cells. The first indication of its 
 development is the division of the nucleus of the microspore, 
 which may take place even before the microspore escapes from 
 the microsporangium, and this is followed by cell-formation. In 
 the Angiosperms (Fig. 288) the cell-formation is simple, consisting 
 in the aggregation of protoplasm round one of the two nuclei, with- 
 
 FIG. 239. Development of male prothallium from the pollen-grain of the Yew : A early 
 stage. B Later stage: st stalk-cell; an anthericlial cell; n nucleus of the large vegetative 
 cell which has grown out into the pollen-tube. In B the generative cell is travelling down 
 the pollen-tube as a preliminary to fertilisation, (x 350 : after Belajeff.) 
 
 out any formation of cell-wall, so that a small primordial cell, 
 the generative cell, is formed, floating freely in the protoplasm 
 of the microspore which, with the other nucleus, constitutes 
 the vegetative cell. In the G-ymnosperms the process is rather 
 more complicated. In the simplest case (e.g. the Yew, Fig. 
 289) th microspore divides into two cells, separated by a cell- 
 wall ; of these the one, the antheridial cell, undergoes division 
 into two, a stalk-cell (st) and a generative cell (an); whilst the 
 other remains as an undivided vegetative cell. In some cases, 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA. 
 
 449 
 
 however (e.g. Larch, Ginkgo, Fir, Ephedra), generally three cells 
 are successively cut off by parallel septa (Fig. 290) : of these, 
 the two first formed are merely vegetative prothallial cells, and 
 undergo disorganisation, whilst the last is the antheridial cell, and 
 undergoes division into a generative cell and a stalk-cell. In 
 some cases (Ginkgo, Ephedra, Cycads) the second prothallial cell 
 persists ; and it appears that in the Gnefaceae the antheruiial cell 
 does not divide to form a stalk-cell but is actually the generative 
 cell. 
 
 In both Angiosperms and Gymnosperms, the pollen-tube is 
 formed by 
 the o u t- 
 growth of 
 the large 
 vegetative 
 cell : in both 
 cases the 
 generative 
 cell (after 
 being set 
 free when 
 n e c e s s ary) 
 enters the 
 pollen-tube, 
 together 
 with the ve- 
 getative nu- 
 cleus, and, 
 in Gymno- 
 sperms, 
 with the nu- 
 cleus of the 
 stalk - cell ; 
 the vegeta- 
 tive nucleus 
 
 becomes disorganised (Fig. 289 B, n), whilst the generative cell 
 undergoes division into two ; either into two equal generative 
 cells, as is generally the case, or into two unequal cells only one 
 of which is generative (e.g. Taxus). More than one pollen-tube 
 may be developed from the microspore (Fig. 283). 
 
 Thus the male individual in the Phanerogams is a prothallium 
 
 72 
 
 FIG. 290 Development of the male prothallium of Ginkgo biioba. A 
 Pollen-grain in which cell division is proceeding whilst still in the 
 pollen-sac ; n nucleus : pr three prothallial cells, the innermost of 
 which is the antheridial cell. B Older pollen-grain developing a 
 pollen-rube ; pr prothallial cells; n nucleus of pollen-tube, (x 40: 
 after Strasburger.) 
 
450 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 consisting of but few cells, and the antheridium is at most two- 
 celled : the generative cell represents a spermatozoid-mother-cell, 
 the protoplasm of which is not, however, differentiated into a 
 spermatozoid, but simply constitutes a male cell. 
 
 The male cell is a small nucleated primordial cell in the pollen- 
 tube, and is either the original generative cell itself, or a product 
 of its division. It is eventually extruded through the apex of 
 the pollen-tube. 
 
 The Female Prothallium is developed in the interior of the 
 macrospore (embryo-sac) in a similar manner to that of the 
 heterosporous Pteridophyta : but, in the Phanerogams it does not 
 at any period project from the macrospore as it does in the 
 Pteridophyta, though this occurs exceptionally in the Cycadaceaa 
 among Gymnosperms, and in Avicennia among Angiosperms. 
 
 The development of the prothal- 
 lium (or endosperm) is simple in the 
 Gymnosperms. The nucleus of the 
 macrospore divides; repeated nu- 
 clear division takes place, until a 
 large nun.ber of nuclei are formed 
 which lie in the protoplasm round 
 the wall of the macrospore ; between 
 these nuclei cell-walls are developed, 
 so that a cellular tissue is produced, 
 the cells of which grow and multi- 
 ply by division until the cavity of 
 the macrospore is entirely filled with 
 this tissue which constitutes the 
 prothallium. In Gnetum, however, 
 the development of the prothallium 
 is not completed until fertilisation 
 has taken place. 
 
 In the Angiosperms the develop- 
 ment of the prothallium is more 
 complicated in that it generally 
 takes place in two stages, the one 
 preceding, the other following, fer- 
 tilisation. The nucleus of the ma- 
 crospore divides into two : of these 
 
 the one travels to the micropylar pole, the other to the chalazal 
 pole, of the macrospore; each nucleus then divides, and each of 
 
 FIG. 291. The female prothallium 
 of Gymnosperms, shown in a longitu- 
 dinal section of the ovule ( x about 
 15 ; diagrammatic) : ii integument ; 
 m rnicropyle. K Nncellus (macrospo- 
 rangium). E Embryo-sac (macro- 
 spore); e female prothaliium (endo- 
 sperm), in which are situnted, towards 
 the micropyle, two archegonia, c, 
 with neck h; ps pollen-tube entering 
 the neck of the left archegonium; 
 p pollen-grain seated on the apex of 
 the nucellus. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAM1A. 
 
 451 
 
 the four so formed divides again, so that eight nuclei are formed, 
 four at the micropylar, and four at the chalazal pole of the 
 macrospore ; one nucleus is then conveyed from each pole to- 
 ward the centre of the macrospore, where the two nuclei meet 
 and fuse into one which is termed the definitive nucleus of the 
 macrospore or embryo-sac. Three nuclei now lie at each pole, 
 and around these aggregation of protoplasm takes place, so that 
 cells are formed : those at the chalazal pole soon acquire a cell- 
 wall, and are termed ant ipodal 
 cells: those at the micropylar 
 end do not form any cell- wall ; 
 one of them is the female re- 
 productive cell or oosphere, 
 the other two are sterile 
 (though in rare cases they 
 are fertile), and are termed 
 the synergidce., the three to- 
 gether constituting the egg- 
 apparatus. This is the extent to 
 which the development of the 
 female prothallium takes place 
 previously to fertilisation (Fig. 
 '292). In most Angiosperms 
 the structure of the prothal- 
 lium is completed by the for- 
 mation, after fertilisation has 
 taken place, of additional cel- 
 lular tissue : this process is 
 initiated by the division of 
 the definitive nucleus of the 
 macrospore, nuclear division is 
 repeated, cell-formation takes 
 
 FIG. 292. The female prothallium of An- 
 giosperms, shown in a longitudinal section of 
 the ovule (x 70): ai outer, ii inner, integu- 
 ment ; i micropyle ; / funicle. K Macros- 
 porangium (nucellus). E Macrospore (em- 
 bryo-sac), fc Definitive nucleus of the em- 
 bryo-sac. The female prothallium consists 
 of the egg-apparatus at the micropylar end 
 of the macrospore, and of the group of anti- 
 podal cells at at the chalazal end. The egg- 
 apparatus consists of two synergidae s, and 
 an oosphere e. 
 
 place, in the manner described 
 
 above for the Gymnosperms, 
 
 and the macrospore becomes more or less completely filled with 
 
 cellular tissue, commonly termed endosperm. 
 
 In a number of dicotyledonous plants (e.g. Loranthacese. Orobanchaceae, 
 Labiates, Campanulaceffi) where the embryo-sac is long and narrow, the endo- 
 sperm is developed by cell-division : the embryo-sac is divided by two or more 
 transverse septa and longitudinal divisions follow. And even when the de- 
 velopment of the endosperm begins with free cell-formation, its further develop- 
 ment is effected by the growth and division of tbe first-formed cells. 
 
452 ' PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The degree of development attained by the endosperm in Angiosperms is 
 various. Whilst, as a rule, it completely fills the embryo- sac, leaving ^room, 
 however, for the embryo, in some cases it occupies but a portion of the 
 embryo-sac, as in the Coco-nut, where it forms a thick parietal layer ; or, as in 
 Nymphsea, Nuphar, Anthurium, Viscum, Lathraea, Thesium, Ehinauthus, etc., 
 where the development of endosperm is confined to the upper half of the 
 embryo-sac. In some cases the endosperm is rudimentary, being represented 
 merely by a number of nuclei, as in Tropaeolum, Trapa, Naiadaceae, Alismacese, 
 Orchidacese ; and in Ganua even this rudimentary development is wanting. 
 
 The antipodal cells do not, as a rule, undergo any further development, but 
 in some cases (e.g. some Graminacese) they have been observed to divide and 
 give rise to a considerable mass of cells. 
 
 The female organ is essentially an archegonium. In most 
 Gymnosperms it is actually an archegonium, like that of the 
 Pteridophyta ; it is developed from a single superficial cell of the 
 prothallium at the micropylar end, and has a neck, containing a 
 canal-cell, leading to a ventral cavity in which, lies the female cell 
 or oosphere ; but in Welwitschia the archegonium is reduced to a 
 single cell with a cell- wall ; and in Gnetum to a single cell with- 
 out a cell- wall, the oosphere. In the Angiosperms the female 
 organ resembles that of Gnetum, in that it is reduced to a single 
 naked cell : the three cells constituting the egg-apparatus repre- 
 sent each an archegonium reduced to a single cell ; but in one 
 only is this cell a true fertile oosphere, the other two (the syner- 
 gidte) being sterile as a rule. 
 
 In a few plants the egg-apparatus consists of but two cells (the rule in Santa- 
 liinmlbum; occasionally in Ornithogalum nutans, Sinningia, Gomphrena, some 
 Orchids such as Orchis latifolia, Cypripedium Calceolus, Gymnadenla Conopsea, 
 some Mimosese) : it would appear, that, in such a case, there has been but one 
 nuclear division in the micropylar end of the embryo-sac. Both the cells are 
 susceptible of fertilisation, and are therefore both to be regarded as oospheres. 
 
 In some plants (Crocus, Gladiolus, Torenia Fig. 285, Santalum) the syner- 
 gidae become elongated, and penetrate the wall of the embryo-sac ; their project- 
 ing ends are longitudinally striated and are covered with a coat of cellulose : 
 these structures are sometimes spoken of as ihejilifunn apparatus. 
 
 In Casuarina, the cells of the egg-apparatus (when fertile) are surrounded by 
 cell-walls (like the oosphere of Welwitschia) : no antipodal cells are developed. 
 
 Pollination. In view of the fact that the female cell (oosphere), 
 and the prothallium bearing it, remain (as a rule) permanently 
 enclosed in the macrospore, and that the macrospore remains en- 
 closed in the indehiscent macros porangiuin, it is clear that the 
 process of fertilisation can only be effected when the microspore 
 germinates in immediate proximity to the macrosporangium. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIC. 453 
 
 The bringing of the microspore into such close relation is what is 
 termed pollination. When the pollen of any one flower is brought 
 into relation with the macrosporangium of the same flower, the 
 case is one of self-pollination-, when the pollen of any one flower is 
 brought into relation with the macrosporangium of another flower 
 (whether on the same plant, or on another plant of the same 
 species), the case is one of cross-pollination. 
 
 The microspores when so brought are placed under conditions 
 of moisture and nutrition favourable to their germination. In 
 Gymnosperms, where there is no ovary and no stigma, the micro- 
 spore is brought into direct contact with the micropyle of the 
 macrosporangium. In the Angiosperms, where there is an ovary 
 and a stigma, the microspores cannot come into direct contact 
 with the macrosporangium ; they fall upon the stigma and ger- 
 minate on its moist surface ; the pollen-tubes then grow down into 
 the ovary, down the style, if there is one, and finally enter the 
 ovules (see Fig. 280). 
 
 In certain cases flowers, of course ambisporangiate, are so 
 modified as to ensure self-pollination: instances of this are afforded 
 by species of Viola, Lamium amplexicaule, Oxalis Acetosella, and 
 others, where the plant (in addition to the ordinary flowers) bears 
 inconspicuous flowers which do not open, and in which self- 
 fertilisation is perfectly effected by the pollen ; these peculiar 
 flowers are said to be cleistogamous. 
 
 In the great majority of Phanerogams, however, cross-pollina- 
 tion is the rule. In the case of monosporangiate flowers (e.g. 
 Gymnosperms) it is clear that pollen must be conveyed from a 
 staminate to a carpellary flower. It is also known that in a great 
 number of ambisporangiate flowers, pollination is effected by the 
 transfer of pollen from one flower to another : in some of these 
 cases it has been demonstrated that it is only the pollen of another 
 flower which can effect fertilisation; in other cases, that the 
 pollen of the same flower, though not absolutely useless, has less 
 fertilising power than that of another flower ; and in yet other 
 cases, that though the pollen of the flower itself has sufficient 
 fertilising effect, yet the progeny is less vigorous than when 
 pollen is supplied from another flower. 
 
 The conveyance of pollen from one flower to another is effected, 
 in the case of a number of plants with inconspicuous flowers (e.g. 
 Gymnosperms, Grasses, many Dicotyledonous Forest- trees), by 
 the agency of the wind, when they are said to be anemophilous-, but 
 
4, 
 
 454 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 in the case of flowers which are conspicuous by their size, colour, 
 perfume, or by their secretion of honey, the conveyance is effected 
 by the insects which are attracted to visit the flowers ; such 
 flowers are said to be entomophilous. 
 
 In those ambisporangiate flowers to which cross-fertilisation is 
 indispensable, or at least important, the most various contrivances 
 are exhibited for the purpose of hindering or limiting self-pollina- 
 tion on the one hand, and, on the other, of facilitating cross-pol- 
 lination ; or finally, in default of cross- pollination, of ensuring 
 ultimate self-pollination, this last, of course, only in those cases in 
 which the pollen of the flower itself is capable of fertilising it ; 
 for it is evident that self-pollination, even if not very advan- 
 tageous, is at any rate of some use to the plant. 
 
 Among the contrivances for the prevention of self-pollination, 
 one of the simplest is the arrangement of the anthers and stigma 
 in such positions that the pollen cannot possibly reach the stigma 
 of the same flower, e.g. Aristolochia (Fig. 293) : or secondly, the 
 abortion of all the microsporangia in some flowers and of all the 
 macrosporangia in others ; in such flowers the organs in question 
 are present, but they are not functional. This is an approach to 
 the diclinous condition ; it occurs in the Tiger- Lily, in which the 
 anthers are commonly abortive in some flowers and the ovaries in 
 others. Thirdly, dichogamy frequently occurs, that is, that the 
 stigmata and stamens attain their functional activity at different 
 times : flowers in which this occurs are either protandrous, that is, 
 the anthers are first developed and have already shed their pollen 
 when the stigma of the same flower is capable of receiving it; or 
 they are protogynous, that is, the stigma is fully developed before 
 the anthers of the same flower are ready to shed their pollen : in 
 the latter case self-pollination is obviously only excluded if the 
 stigma is withered before the pollen is shed ; there are, however, 
 protogynous flowers in which the stigma remains fresh for a long 
 time and which may be pollinated by their own pollen. As 
 examples of protandrous flowers, those of the Umbelliferse, and 
 most of the Compositae, Lobeliacese, and Campanulaceae may be 
 mentioned ; and of protogynous flowers, Aristolochia, Arum, 
 ticrophularia nodova, and some species of Plantago, but this con- 
 dition is less common than the preceding. 
 
 Among the contrivances which lead to the cross-pollination of 
 flowers by the agency of insects, the means of tempting insects to 
 visit the flowers, such as bright colours, odours, and the secretion 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMTA. 455 
 
 of honey, must be first mentioned. The peculiar marking of the 
 flower serves in many cases the purpose of guiding insects to the 
 nectary. The form of the flower, the situation of the honey, the 
 position of the stamens, and their relation to the other parts of the 
 flower, particularly to the stigma, the relative development in 
 point of time of the different parts, all these circumstances com- 
 bine and co-operate to secure cross-pollination, and sometimes to 
 allow of the visits of particular insects only, as, for instance, of 
 butterflies with long probosces, though there are also cases in 
 which the insects must occasionally convey the pollen to the 
 stigma of the same flower. A simple arrangement of this kind 
 known as Tieterostylism or dimorphism, and which occurs in species 
 of Primula, Pulmonaria, Linum, Polygonum, etc., may be men- 
 tioned here. These plants have two forms of flowers ; in one 
 form the stamens are short and the style much longer, so that the 
 stigma projects above the anthers ; in the other form, on the 
 contrary, the anthers are on long filaments above the stigma; 
 they are both so constructed that the anthers of one form stand on 
 the same level as the stigma of the other. From the position of 
 the nectary, and the form of the rest of the flower, an insect 
 visiting it is obliged to take up the same position at each visit ; 
 consequently after it has visited a flower of the one form, when 
 it visits a flower of the other form, it touches the stigma of the 
 latter with the same part of its body with which in the first 
 flower it brushed the anthers, and thus the pollen which it 
 carried away with it from the anthers of the one flower is trans- 
 ferred to the stigma of the other. Observations made by arti- 
 ficially transporting the pollen have shown that fertilisation is 
 most complete when the pollen of stamens of a certain length is 
 conveyed to the stigma of a style of the same length. The same 
 is the case with trimorphic plants, e.g. Oxalis, Lythrum Salicaria : 
 in these, three forms of flowers occur with three different lengths 
 of styles and stamens. 
 
 As examples of more complicated contrivances for the purpose 
 of securing cross- pollination, Aristolochia and Epipactis may be 
 described. 
 
 The flower of Aristolochia Clematitis (Fig. 293) is protogynous ; 
 insects can penetrate without difficulty down the tube of _the 
 perianth, which is furnished on its internal surface with hairs 
 which point downwards, and they thus convey the pollen they have 
 brought with them from other flowers, to the stigma ; the hairs, 
 
456 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS, 
 
 however, prevent their return. When the pollen has reached the 
 stigma, its lobes (Fig. 293 A and B n) spring upwards, and thus 
 the anthers, which now begin to open, are made accessible to the 
 insects ; these, in their efforts to escape (Fig. 293 i), creep round 
 the anthers and some of the pollen adheres to them; by this time 
 the hairs in the tube have withered, and the insect escapes, dusted 
 over with pollen which, in spite of experience, it proceeds to convey 
 
 in like manner to another flower. 
 Those flowers which are ready 
 for pollination have an erect 
 position, and the tube of the 
 perianth is open above so that 
 the insect can readily enter; 
 after pollination the peduncle 
 bends downwards and the tube 
 is closed by the broad lobe of 
 the perianth, so that it is im- 
 possible for insects to enter 
 flowers which have been fer- 
 tilised. 
 
 In the flower of Epipactis 
 (one of the Orchidacese), the 
 anther is situated above the 
 stigma and does not shed its 
 pollen in isolated grains ; but 
 when a certain portion of the 
 stigma (the abortive anterior 
 lobe), known as the rostelhim 
 (Fig. 294 h), is touched, the 
 two pollinia, together with a 
 mass of sticky substance (re- 
 tinaculum) derived from the 
 rostellum, are removed from the 
 pollen-sacs, adhering to the for- 
 
 FIG. 293. Flower of Aristolochia. 4 Before, eign body (Fig. 294 F, 7i). The 
 
 insect creeps into the flower 
 to obtain the honey which is 
 secreted in the cavity of one of 
 
 the leaves of the perianth, the labellum (Fig. 294 /) ; as it with- 
 draws from the flower, it carries away the pollinia on its head, 
 and on entering the next flower, deposits them upon the stigma. 
 
 and B after fertilisation; r the tube of the 
 perianth ; Ic the cavity below ; n stigma ; a 
 anthers ; i an insect ; fc/ovary. (After Sachs.) 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAM1A. 
 
 457 
 
 In the course of frequent cross-pollination it is inevitable that 
 the pollen of other species of plants should be applied to the stigma ; 
 but while the pollen of plants of widely different species is wholly 
 without effect, that of nearly allied species, particularly those 
 belonging to the same genus in certain groups, has a fertilising 
 effect ; the result of cross-fertilisation between species is hybridi~ 
 sation, that is, the development of a plant which combines the 
 characters of both parent-species to a certain extent, and which is 
 known as a bastard or hybrid. 
 Hybrids are for the most part 
 sterile among themselves, but 
 are often fertile when crossed 
 again with a plant of either 
 of the parent-species or of some 
 allied species. While hybrids 
 are produced with great ease 
 in certain genera, as Salix and 
 Cirsium, in others the artificial 
 production of hybrids has never 
 yet been found possible even 
 between very closely allied 
 species, as the Apple and Pear. 
 
 Fertilisation. As in other 
 plants, so here, the process of 
 fertilisation consists in the fu- 
 sion of the male and female 
 reproductive cells. The way in 
 which it takes place in Phane- 
 rogams is briefly as follows : 
 The pollen-tube makes its way 
 to the female organ, entering 
 the neck of the archegonium in 
 the Gymnosperms, and coming 
 into close relation with the egg- 
 apparatus in the Angiosperms. 
 The apex of the wall of the 
 pollen-tube is at this time 
 mucilaginous : a small nu- 
 cleated mass of protoplasm, the male cell (see p. 450), is forced out 
 through the mucilaginous membrane, into the oosphere ; the 
 nucleus of the male cell (male pronudeus) and that of the female 
 
 FIG. 294. Epipadis latifolia. A Longi- 
 tudinal section through a flower-bud. B 
 Open flower after removal of the perianth, 
 with the exception of the labellum, I. C The 
 reproductive organs, after the removal of 
 the perianth, seen from below and in front. 
 D as B : the point of a lead-pencil (l>) is in- 
 serted after the manner of the proboscis of 
 an insect. E and F The lead-pencil with 
 the pollinia attached ;fK ovary ; I labellum, 
 its sac-like depression serving as a nectary ; 
 n the broad stigma; en the connective of 
 the single fertile anther ; p pollinia ; h the 
 rostellum; a; x the two lateral starninodes ; 
 i place where the labellum has been cut 
 off; s the gynostemium. (Afier Sachs.) 
 
458 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 FIG. 295. Sections of ripe seed. A Nux vomica, 
 showing E endosperm. B Piper, showing both endo- 
 sperm E, and perisperm P. C Almond, devoid of 
 endosperm; the testa; e embryo; to its radicle; 
 c c its cotyledons. 
 
 cell (female pronucleus) approach each other and fuse into one, 
 the two protoplasms likewise fusing. Fertilisation is now com- 
 plete ; in consequence, 
 the oosphere surrounds 
 itself with a cell- wall, 
 becoming the oospore, 
 and begins to develope 
 into the embryo-sporo- 
 phyte. Further details 
 are given in the sec- 
 tions on Gymnosperms 
 and Angiosperms respec- 
 tively. 
 
 The Results of Fertilisation. The most direct result of fertilisa- 
 tion is the development of the embryo from the fertilised oosphere, 
 a process which involves the conversion of the ovule into the seed. 
 But the effect of fertilisation is not limited to this : other parts 
 of the flower are affected in such a way that they undergo marked 
 changes in structure, accompanied by considerable increase in size, 
 the product being the structure known as the fruit (p. 88). In 
 some cases the carpels only are affected, becoming either fleshy 
 and succulent (e.g. Plum), or dry and hard (e.g. Poppy) ; in others, 
 the floral axis becomes fleshy (e.g. Strawberry); in others again 
 the perianth. leaves also (e.g. Mulberry). It is convenient to 
 regard as true fruits only those which are developed from the 
 gynaeceum alone ; and as false fruits, or pseudocarps, those in the 
 formation of which other parts of the flower or of the inflorescence 
 take part. 
 
 The seed (p. 88) is produced from the ovule, as a consequence of 
 the fertilisation of the female cell contained within the ovule: its 
 characteristic feature is that it contains an embryo. The seed 
 (Fig. 295) may contain little or nothing but the embryo, in which 
 case it is said to be exalbuminous (e.g. Pea, Bean, Sunflower, 
 Almond, Oak) : or it may contain, in addition to a small embryo, 
 a considerable portion of the female prothallium (endosperm), when 
 it is termed albuminous (e.g. Grasses and most Monocotyledons, 
 Ranunculaceae) : in a few rare cases the albuminous seed contains, 
 in addition to the embryo and endosperm, some of the nucellar 
 tissue of the macrosporangium which is termed per/sperm (e.g. 
 Piperaceae, Nympheeacese, Zingiberaceae) : but generally, as in the 
 Musaceae, Cannaceae, Caryophyllaceae, Chenopodiaceae, Amararit- 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEEOGAMTA. 459 
 
 acene, Phytolaccacese, and Nyctaginaceae, when there is perisperm, 
 there is no endosperm in the ripe seed. 
 
 A formation of endosperm takes place in nearly all seeds, even 
 exalbuminous seeds, but in these latter it is more or less dis- 
 organised and absorbed by the growing embryo, so that little or 
 none remains in the ripe seed. 
 
 Whether the seed be albuminous or exalbuminous, it contains 
 (except in some parasitic or saprophytic plants, such as Orchids, 
 etc.) a supply of organic substances for the nutrition of the 
 embryo during its extra-seminal period of development. These 
 substances may be mainly stored in the cells of the cotyledons, as 
 in exalbuminous seeds; or in the cells of the endosperm, or in 
 the cells of the perisperm, when present, as in albuminous seeds. 
 The substances are nitrogenous and non- nitrogenous. The nitro- 
 genous substances are proteids, deposited in the solid form as 
 aleuron (see p. 112), and are present in all seeds. The non- nitro- 
 genous substances are starch, in the form of starch-grains (see 
 p. 109), in starchy seeds (e.g. Cereals, etc ) ; or fat, in the form of 
 oil-drops (see p. Ill), in oily seeds (e.g. Palm, Castor-Oil, etc.); 
 or cellulose, in thickened cell-walls (e.g. Coffee and Date). 
 
 The seed is generally enclosed in a single integument, the testa. 
 derived from the outer integument of the ovule, the inner integu- 
 ment of the ovule having been absorbed ; sometimes, however, the 
 seed has two integuments derived from those of the ovule, an 
 outer tesfa, and an inner endopleura (e.g. Euphorbiacese, Rosaceoe) : 
 in others again neither of the ovular integuments persists into the 
 seed, in which case the wall of the embryo- sac is in direct con- 
 tact with the wall of the ovary. 
 
 In a few cases additional integuments or appendages are de- 
 veloped in connexion with the seed, such new growths being 
 designated by the general term aril. The aril may be developed 
 from either the funicle or the hilum ; or from the micropyle, when 
 it is distinguished as an arillode. Good examples of a funicular 
 aril, which grows up round the seed like an additional integument, 
 are afforded by the Yew, Water-Lily (Nymphoea), Passion-Flower. 
 The Willow has a funicular aril in the form of a tuft of woolly 
 hairs. The most striking example of a membranous micropyla:* 
 aril is the Spindle-tree (Euonymns) : in Euphorbia and Polygala 
 the micropylar aril is a small mass of tissue, and in Asclepias it 
 is a tuft of hairs. Other excrescences, not especially connected 
 with either the hilum or the micropyle (sometimes distinguished 
 
460 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 as caruncles or strophioles), occur in certain plants : thus in the 
 Violet and the Celandine (Chelidonium) an elevated ridge marks 
 the course of the raphe, and in the Willow-herb (Epilobium) a 
 tuft of hairs springs from the chalaza. 
 
 The most important point to be considered is, however, that of 
 the structural conditions which determine the production of a seed 
 in the Phanerogams, the feature which sharply defines this group 
 of plants from all others. The structural conditions are briefly as 
 follows : the macrospore (embryo-sac) is not set free from the 
 macrosporangium (ovule), as is the case in the heterosporous 
 Pteridophyta.; nor does the macrosporangium itself separate from 
 the plant producing it until it has ripened into the seed: this 
 being so, the macrospore germinates inside the macrosporangium, 
 producing there the female prothallium with its reproductive 
 organs: fertilisation of the oosphere, as also the development of 
 the embryo from the oospore, takes place inside the macrospore ; 
 and thus the seed is formed. If the macrospore were set free 
 from the macrosporangium, no seed would be formed; but in that 
 case the condition of things would be that which actually exists 
 in the higher heterosporous Pteridophyta, such as Selaginella. 
 
 Some seeds can germinate as soon as they are shed : but, for 
 thi* most part, they onlv do so after a period of quiescence, though 
 thev may lose their germinating power if this period be too pro- 
 longed. 
 
 The Dissemination of the Seed. Fruits are either dehiscent, so 
 that the seeds escape, or are indehiscent : in the former case the 
 seeds, and in the latter case the fruits, present various adaptations 
 for ensuring their dispersion. The most conspicuous are those 
 which ensure dispersion by the wind : of this nature are the wing- 
 like appendages of the fruit in the Maple, Ash, Ailanthus, Elm, 
 etc. ; and of the seed of Pinus, Tecoma, Catalpa, etc. : also the 
 hairy appendages of fruits (e.g. the pappus of Composite, the 
 feathery style of Clematis, etc.), and of seeds (e.g. on those of 
 Grossypium the Cotton-plant, Willow, Poplar, Asclepias, etc.). 
 Other adaptations ensure dispersion by animals; such are the 
 hooks on fruits (forming burrs), as in various Boraginaceae, 
 Composite, Gralium, etc. : the succulence and agreeable taste of 
 many indehiscent fruits also promotes the dispersion of the seeds, 
 the fruits being eaten by animals and the seed being protected 
 from digestion by hard protective tissue either in the fruit (endo- 
 carp) or in the seed-coat (testa). In some cases (e.g. Ecljallium 
 
GROUP IV. PHAXEROGAMIA. 461 
 
 Elaterium, the Squirting Cucumber; Impatiens noli-me-tangere ; 
 Oxalis Acetosella; Hura, crepitans) the fruit dehisces suddenly, 
 ejecting and scattering the seeds with considerable force. Some 
 fruits, provided with a long appendage (awn), bore their way into 
 the soil (e.g. Stipa pennata, Erodium). 
 
 Tlie Life-History of the Phanerogams is essentially similar to 
 that of the heterosporous Pteridophyta, though, on account of the 
 structural peculiarities which bring about the formation of a seed, 
 ifc is not quite so easy to trace. The sporophyte, or asexual 
 generation, is represented by the plant itself, bearing macro- and 
 micro- sporangia and macro- and micro-spores. The gametophyte, 
 or sexual generation, is represented by the male and female pro- 
 thallia developed respectively from the microspore and the 
 macrospore. Thus there is a definite and regular alternation of 
 generations, since the male and female prothallia can only be 
 developed from the spores of the sporophyte ; and, on the other 
 hand, the sporophyte can only be developed from the immediate 
 product of fertilisation, the oospore. 
 
 The gametophyte is here very much reduced, even more so than 
 in the highest heterosporous Pteridophyta, especially as regards 
 the female individual. In the Phanerogams, in consequence of 
 the indehiscence of the macrosporangium and of its remaining 
 attached to the plant producing it, the macrospore germinates 
 Avhilst still in organic connexion with the sporophyte, with the 
 remarkable consequence that the female individual (or pro- 
 thallium) is actually an appendage of the sporophyte, and seems 
 to be so much a part of it that its true morphological significance 
 is easily overlooked. 
 
 The life-history of these plants is made clear by a morphological 
 consideration, as indicated in the following table, of the structure 
 of the seed : 
 
 Seed-coats . . . ~) = macrosporangium of parent- 
 Perisperm (if present) ) sporophyte. 
 
 Endosperm . . . = gametophyte : female pro- 
 thallium. 
 Embryo . . . = young sporophyte. 
 
 When a plant perishes after once producing flowers and seeds, 
 it is said to be monocarpous. In rare cases (e.g. Agave americann) 
 several or even many years elapse before the plant blooms: more 
 common are annual plants (indicated by the sign 0), i.e. such as 
 
462 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 complete the whole course of their development in a single year, 
 as the Wheat; and biennials, which do not blossom until the 
 second year of their life, when they perish, as the Turnip, Carrot, 
 Beetroot, etc. By polycarpous plants are meant such as produce 
 flowers and fruit year after year; such are trees and shrubs, as 
 also many herbaceous plants which have underground rhizomes, 
 tubers, etc. 
 
 The group of the Phanerogams falls into two natural divisions ; 
 the one containing but a single class; the other, two classes. 
 
 A. GYMNOSPERM^E. 
 
 Sporophytic Characters. The ovule is not enclosed in an ovary, 
 nor is there any style or stigma : in pollination, the pollen-grain 
 enters the micropyle and comes into direct contact with the 
 nucellus: the flowers are never ambisporangiate, and are generally 
 without a perianth : there are no companion-cells in the phloem, 
 and the secondary wood does not (except Gnetacese) contain true 
 vessels. 
 
 Gametophytic Characters. The female prothallium is completely 
 formed before fertilisation : the female organ is generally a well- 
 developed archegonium. 
 
 CLASS VIII. GYMNOSPERMJ:. 
 
 B. ANGIOSPERM.E. 
 
 Sporophytic Characters. The ovule is enclosed in an ovary, and 
 there is always a stigma : the pollen-grain does not come into 
 direct relation with the ovule, but falls upon the stigma and 
 germinates there : the flowers are commonly ambisporangiate and 
 possess a perianth : there are companion-cells in the phloem, 
 and the secondary wood generally includes true vessels. 
 
 Gametophytic Characters. The female prothallium is only partly 
 formed before fertilisation: the female organ is a reduced uni- 
 cellular archegonium. 
 
 Class IX. MONOCOTYLEDONES. The embryo has but one cotyle- 
 don : the ripe seed is usually albuminous. 
 
 Class X. DICOTYLKDONES. The embryo has two opposite coty- 
 ledons: the ripe seed is frequently exalbuminous. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA: GYMNOSPERMJ1. 463 
 
 DIVISION" A. 
 CLASS VIIL GYMNOSPERM^S. 
 
 The plants of this class .are all perennial trees and shrubs, for 
 the most part evergreen : they are classified into the three natural 
 orders, Cycadaceae, Coniferae, and Gnetaceae. 
 
 THE SPOROPHYTE. 
 
 General Morphology of the Vegetative Organs. The body is dis- 
 tinctly differentiated into stem, leaf, and root. 
 
 The Stem grows above ground, usually erect, but climbs in 
 several species of Gnetum : it is woody, and is generally branched 
 monopodially : the symmetry of the main stem is radial, whilst 
 that of the branches is frequently bilateral, either isobilateral (e.g. 
 Thuja, phylloclades of Phyllocladus) or dorsi ventral (e.g. Thujopsis 
 dolabrata, Abies Nordmanniana and concolor, Taxus, Torreya, and 
 many other Coniferae in which the branches are horizontal). The 
 branches in many Coniferae (e.g. Pinus, Sciadopitys, Phyllocladus, 
 Larix, Taxodium, Cedrus, Ginkgo) are dimorphous, being either 
 long shoots or dwarf-shoots (see p. 39) : in Phyllocladus the 
 dwarf-shoots are developed into phylloclades; in the other forms 
 the dwarf-shoots all bear foliage-leaves and fall off, sooner or later, 
 with the leaves which they bear : in Pinus and Sciadopitys the 
 dwarf-shoots alone bear foliage-leaves, whilst in the other genera 
 the long shoots bear foliage-leaves as well. 
 
 The Leaves are either foliage-leaves or scale-leaves. The foliage- 
 leaves are either small and numerous, as in the Coniferae ; or large 
 and few, as in the Cycadacese, and as in Welwitschia where there 
 are only two foliage-leaves : they are branched only in the 
 Cycadaceae: they are sessile in the Coniferas and in Welwitschia: 
 their growth is basal: their form varies considerably, one of the 
 most peculiar forms being that characteristic of certain Coniferae 
 (Abietineae) where the leaf is needle-like (acicular) and either 
 flattened or prismatic and angular. Larix, Ginkgo, Taxodium 
 distichum, and Glyptostrobus, are the only forms in which the 
 leaves fall annually ; in the others the leaves persist for two to 
 ten years, or, as in Welwitschia, throughout the life of the plant. 
 Foliage-leaves are absent in Phyllocladus and generally in Ephedra. 
 A certain amount of heterophylly is observable in some cases : 
 thus the leaves of the shoots bearing flowers sometimes differ from 
 
 v. s. B. H H 
 
464 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 those of the vegetative shoots, as in Dacrydium cnpressinum, where 
 the leaves of the fertile shoots are scale-like and radially arranged, 
 whilst those on the vegetative shoots are linear and are arranged 
 in two lateral rows ; or as in Sequoia gigantea where the leaves of 
 the fertile shoots are shorter, broader, and more closely arranged 
 than of the vegetative shoots : or the younger leaves may differ 
 from the older, as, for instance, in certain Cupressineee with scale- 
 like foliage-leaves, where the first foliage- leaves of the young 
 stem are acicular (Thuja), or where some of the branches bear 
 .acicular leaves (Juniperus) : or in these same Cupressineae (e.g. 
 Thuja) the leaves borne on the flanks of the shoot differ in 
 shape from those on the upper and lower surfaces, the latter 
 being further distinguished by having each a resin-receptacle (see 
 Fig. 306, p. 486). 
 
 Scale-leaves, destitute of chlorophyll, occur in nearly all the 
 Cycadaceae, in most Conifers (absent in most Cupressinese and 
 Araucariese) and in Ephedra (Gnetaceae). In the Cycadaceae the 
 scale-leaves are present in great number, completely covering the 
 .surface of the stem, and are developed at the growing-point alter- 
 nately with the foliage-leaves, bat in much greater numbers: in 
 Pinus, Phyllocladus, and Sciadopitys, the scale-leaves are the only 
 leaves borne by the long shoots; in Phyllocladus and Ephedra 
 they are the only vegetative leaves. 
 
 The Primary Root always persists as a tap-root. 
 
 General Histology. The Stem. The growing-point of the stem is 
 generally described as presenting in the Abietiiieas a well-marked 
 differentiation into dermatogen, periblem and plerome, whilst in 
 the other Coniferse the distinction between periblem and plerome 
 is less clear, and in Ephedra even the distinction between derma- 
 togen and periblem is not definite ; it has been asserted from time 
 to time, though without absolute demonstration, that, in the Cy- 
 cadaceae, the Coniferae, and in Gnetum and Ephedra among the 
 Gnetaceas, there is an apical cell, either three-sided or four- sided, 
 in the growing-point. 
 
 The stem is monostelic : the stele is surrounded by a pericycle 
 which may be simply pa,renchymatous (e.g. Pinus) or consist of 
 thick- walled fibres (e.g. Taxus) : the primary vascular bundles are 
 collateral, are open, and have the usual general structure ; they 
 are generally arranged in a single circle round the pith, but in 
 Cycas there is a system of cauline bundles in the cortex, in 
 Encephalartos there is a similar system in the pith, and in Welwit- 
 
GROUP IY. PHANEKOGAMIA : GYMNOSPERMJ3. 465 
 
 schia there are apparently both a cortical and a medullary system. 
 Secondary growth in thickness takes place as a rule by means of 
 a normal cambium-ring ; but in some cases the activity of the 
 normal cambium is short-lived, and a new merismatic layer is 
 developed in the pericycle ; thus in Cycas, Encephalartos, and 
 species of Gnetum, the merismatic layer resembles the true 
 cambium in that it forms wood internally and bast externally, 
 and in these plants successive merismatic layers are formed ; 
 in Welwitschia the merismatic layer forms vascular bundles 
 and ground-tissue internally, and cortex externally, and persists 
 throughout the life of the plant. In the Cycadaceas and Coniferee, 
 the secondary wood consists exclusively of tracheides with rounded 
 or elongated bordered pits (scalariform tracheides) and of paren- 
 chymatous medullary rays, but true vessels are formed in the 
 Gnetaceoe ; the secondary bast has generally the normal structure, 
 but in some cases (Abietineae) it has no bast-fibres. 
 
 The Foliage-leaf is characterised by its well-developed epidermis 
 the cells of which are fibrous (Pinus, Torreya) : the stomata 
 are always depressed below the surface, and are borne usually on 
 the under surface only, when the leaf is flat (e.g. Cunninghamia, 
 Abies, Taxus, Ginkgo, etc.), or on both sides (some Araucarias, 
 Podocarpus), or on the upper side only (Juniperus), but on all 
 sides when the leaf is acicular (e.g. Pinus, Picea, etc.) : the 
 epidermis is supported by a hypodermal layer of fibrous scleren- 
 chymatous cells ; when the leaf is flat, the mesophyll is more or 
 less clearly differentiated into palisade and spongy tissue, but 
 when it is acicular the mesophyll is uniform throughout, consisting 
 of parenchymatous cells with curiously infolded walls : the acicular 
 leaves (Abietineae) have a single central vascular strand en- 
 closing two bundles which give off no branches ; in the flattened 
 leaves there may be several ribs which either do (e.g. Ginkgo) or do 
 not (f.g. Dammara, Araucaria) branch in the lamina, and in all 
 these cases the bundles end blindly ; in Gnetum the leaf, and in 
 Stangeria the leaf-pinna, has a midrib and pinnate venation; the 
 multicostate leaf of Welwitschia has parallel venation. A remark- 
 able feature in the structure of the leaf is the presence, in all the 
 genera, of a tissue, termed transfusion-tissue (p. 169), which consists 
 of parenchymatous cells, 'some of which contain no protoplasm and 
 have pitted walls, being in fact tracheides, whilst others con- 
 tain protoplasm and have nnpitted walls : in the Abietinese this 
 tissue is a development of the pericycle of the vascular strand, 
 
466 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 and is surrounded by a well-marked endodermis ; in the other genera 
 it appears to be specially differentiated mesophyll frequently (e.g. 
 Cycas, Podocarpus, Cephalotaxus) consisting of cells elongated 
 transversely to the long axis of the leaf : the use of the trans- 
 fasion-tissue is to compensate for the absence of a much-branched 
 Vascular system in the leaf, the tracheidal cells serving to distri- 
 bute water from the xylem of the bundles to the mesophyll, the 
 other cells serving to convey organic substances formed in the 
 mesophyll to the phloem of the bundles. 
 
 The Root grows in length by means of a growing-point differen- 
 tiated into dermatogen, plerome and periblem, and root-cap as in 
 Dicotyledons (see p. 154) ; there are commonly two xylem-bundles 
 in the stele: the cambium-ring is formed in the usual way: the 
 phellogen is derived from the pericycle ; in many cases the cortical 
 cells, other than those of the endodermis, show thickenings on 
 their radial walls similar to those of the endodermis-cells ; this is 
 either confined to a single (penultimate) layer of the cortex (e.g. 
 Cupressus, Thuja, Biota, Taxus, Cephalotaxus, Ginkgo), or it 
 extends to several layers (e.g. Sequoia, Taxodium, Juniperus, 
 Araucaria) : the epiblema is generally devoid of root- hairs, but 
 these are abundant in Taxus. 
 
 General histological peculiarities. In all the Coniferae, except 
 Taxus, resin-ducts (see p. 139) are present: they are always to be 
 found in the leaves and in the cortex of the stem, sometimes also 
 in the pith of the stem (Ginkgo), in the primary wood (Pinus, 
 Larix), or in the primary bast (Araucaria); they are absent from 
 the root in many genera (Cryptomeria, Taxodium, Podocarpus, 
 Dacrydium, Tsuga, Cunninghamia, Ginkgo), and when present 
 they never occur in the cortex, but are situated in the primary 
 wood (Pinus, Larix), in the primary bast (Araucaria), or as a single 
 canal in the centre of the conjunctive tissue (Cedrus, Abies, Pseu- 
 dolarix) : they are formed also in the secondary wood (Pinus, 
 Picea, Larix) or in the secondary bast (Cupressus, Thuja, Arau- 
 caria) of both stem and root. Mucilage-ducts, resembling the 
 resin-ducts of the Coniferae, occur in the cortex of the stem in the 
 Cycadaceae. 
 
 The bast of the Gymriosperms resembles that of the Pterido- 
 phyta, and differs from that of the Angiosperms, in that it contains 
 no companion-cells (see p. 137), the function of these cells being 
 performed by certain cells belonging either to the medullary rays 
 (Abietineae, some Cupressineae and Taxodineae) or to the bast- 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : GYMNOSPERMyE. 467 
 
 parenchyma (Araucarinese, Taxoideee, some Cupressineee and Taxo- 
 dineo3, the Cycadaceas and Gnetaceae). 
 
 A remarkable feature in the histology of Welwitschia is the 
 presence in the ground-tissue of large thick-walled fibrous cells, 
 called spiculur cells, in the walls of which crystals of calcium 
 oxalate are deposited ; the occurrence of these crystals in the cell- 
 walls is common throughout the class (Fig. 65). 
 
 The General Morphology of the Reproductive Organs. The repro- 
 ductive organs are micros porangia (pollen-sacs) and macrosporangia 
 (ovules) : the micros porangia are always borne on sporophylls, but 
 the macrosporangia are sometimes borne directly on the axis 
 (e.g. macrosporangia of Taxeae and of the Gnetaceae) : they are- 
 developed on distinct shoots, and frequently on distinct plants 
 (e.g. Cycadaceae: some Conifers, such as most Araucarinese and 
 Taxese; Gnetaceae generally). 
 
 Certain shoots are more or less clearly differentiated as flowers ; 
 the only exception being Cycas in which there is no proper macro- 
 sporangiate flower. The flower is always monosporangiate : its 
 structure varies widely ; it may consist merely of a terminal 
 sporangium invested by a few small bracts (e.g. macrosporangiate 
 flower of Taxeae) ; of a terminal sporangium with a rudimentary 
 perianth (macrosporangiate flower of Gnetacae) ; of one or more 
 sporophylls borne on a short axis and surrounded by a perianth 
 (microsporangiate flower of Gnetaceae) ; or of a larger or smaller 
 number of sporophylls arranged on an elongated axis, the whole 
 forming a cone. 
 
 In the Gnetaceas the flowers are arranged in spicate inflor- 
 escences, and are situated in the axils of bracts which are more 
 highly developed in this order than in any other Gymrios perms. 
 
 The Sporophylls are of two kinds, distinguished by the nature 
 of the sporangia which they respectively bear, as microsporophylls 
 and macrosporophylls. When the flower is a cone, the sporophylls 
 have a general resemblance to scaly leaves : in other flowers 
 (Taxeas, Cycas, Gnetaceae) they have various and specialised 
 forms. 
 
 The microsporophyll (stamen) occurs in its simplest form in the 
 Cycadaceas, where it is a large stout scale bearing usually an in- 
 definite number of microsporangia on its under surface. In some 
 of the Coniferae (e.g. Pinus), the microsporophyll essentially re- 
 sembles that of the Cycadaceae, though it is much smaller (in 
 proportion with the smaller flowers) and bears only two micro- 
 
468 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 sporangia. In the other Coniferae the microsporophylls, bearing 
 215 sporangia, show more or less distinct differentiation into 
 a stalk bearing a terminal leafj expansion, until, in Taxus, a 
 stage is reached where the microsporophyll consists of a stalk 
 bearing a peltate lamina, on the under surface of which the spor- 
 angia are developed. In other words, the microsporophyll con- 
 sists of a filament bearing a sorus of sporangia which constitutes 
 an anther (see p. 432). In all cases the microsporangia are 
 developed on the morphologically under (dorsal) surface of the 
 sporophyll. 
 
 The gradual differentiation of the microsporophyll, which can be 
 
 FIG. 296. A Microsporophyllary (or staminal) 
 flower of Abies pectinata ; b scaly bracts; o xni- 
 crosporophyll with two microsporangia (pollen- 
 sacs). B Microspore (pollen-grain) (highly 
 mag.) ; eexine expanded into two hollow vesicles 
 bl) ; y male prothallium. (After Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 297. Pinu* sylvestris (x7: after 
 Strashurger). Macrosporophyll b, bear- 
 ing on its upper surface the placenta! 
 scale fr, which bears two ovules s at its 
 base ; c apophysial projection of the 
 placental scale ; m prolonged integument 
 of the ovule within which pollen-grains 
 have lodged. 
 
 traced in the Conifers, leads on to the more complete differen- 
 tiation and specialisation which obtains in the Gnetacea? and in 
 the Angiosperms. In Gnetum, however, there are no microsporo- 
 phylls. 
 
 The macrosporophi/ll (carpel) appears in a simple, yet typical, 
 form in Cycas (see Fig. 303), the one Gymnosperm which has no 
 distinct macrosporangiate flower. Here the carpels are essentially 
 similar to the foliage-leaves, though they are smaller, of a yellow 
 colour, and of a somewhat different form : they are, in fact, de- 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : GYMNOSPERMJ3. 469 
 
 veloped at the growing-point of the stem in the place of a whorl 
 of foliage-leaves. The few sessile macrosporangia are borne 
 laterally on the lower part of the sporophyll. 
 
 In the other Cycadacese, the macrosporophyll is a stout scaly 
 leaf, thickened at its outer end, bearing usually two lateral ovules, 
 one on each side. 
 
 In the Coniferae, the simplest form of macrosporophyll is to be 
 found in Dammara ( Araucarineae) , for instance, where it is simply 
 a scaly leaf bearing a single macrosporangium on its upper surface : 
 in other forms the superior surface of the macrosporophyll is 
 clearly marked out, by outgrowths of various kinds, into an apical 
 and a basal half, the latter alone bearing the (1-7) macrosporangia 
 (e.g. Taxo.dineoe, Cupressineee): in the Abietinese (Pinus, Larix, etc.) 
 the sporangiferous structure of the preceding families is developed 
 from the base of the carpel as a placental scale, which is much 
 larger than the carpel itself, and bears the two macrosporangia on 
 its upper surface. In most Podocarpeae, the macrosporophyll is 
 likewise differentiated into an apical and a basal half, the latter 
 being much thickened, but here it is the apical portion which bears 
 the single macrosporangium. In the Taxeae the macrosporophylls 
 are rudimentary (e.g. Phyllocladus, Cephalotaxus) or absent (e.g. 
 Torreya, Taxus) ; even when present they do not bear the macro- 
 sporangia. 
 
 In the Gnetaceae there are no macrosporophylls. 
 
 The microsporangia (pollen-sacs) are borne, in nearly all cases, 
 on the lower (dorsal) surface of a sporophyll ; they may be 
 numerous (about 1,000) as in some Cycadaceaa ; or few (215) in 
 the Coniferse and Gnetaceas : scattered (some Cycads), or more 
 commonly grouped into one or more sori, with more or less well- 
 developed placental tissue ; either imbedded in the tissue of the 
 sporophyll (e.g. Abietineae), or freely suspended (e.g. Araucaria, 
 Ginkgo) : in the Cupressineas, the sporangia, when young, are 
 covered by an outgrowth of the under surface of the sporophyll 
 which is comparable to the indusium of Ferns. In Gneturn, as 
 there is no microsporophyll, the two microsporangia are borne on. 
 the apex of the floral axis. 
 
 The structure of the microsporangium is simple : it is unilocu- 
 lar; it contains, at an early stage, a mass of spore-mother-cells 
 derived from the archesporium, surrounded by a layer of tapetai 
 cells also derived from the archesporium, and by a wall consist- 
 ing of one. two, or more, layers of cells : each spore-mother-cell 
 
470 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 gives rise to four microspores, which are usually tetrahedral, 
 bat bilateral in the Cycads. The dehisceiice is generally longi- 
 tudinal. 
 
 The microspores (pollen-grains) present no special features be- 
 yond the fact that in some genera of Coniferae (e.g. most Abietinese 
 and Podocarpese) the exine is dilated into two hollow expansions 
 which lighten the pollen-grains and facilitate their dispersal by 
 the wind. 
 
 The macrosporangia (ovules) are borne either terminally on a 
 floral axis (e.g. Taxese, Gnetacea?), or on the upper surface of a 
 macrosporophyll ; on the floral axis they are borne singly, on the 
 sporophylls their number varies (1-7) : they are orthotropous and 
 sessile, the micropyle being directed either towards the axis of the 
 cone (in Abietineae, Podocarpese), or away from it (Cupressinese) : 
 they have a single integument, though in some genera (most 
 Taxoidece) an arillus is eventually developed. The macrospo- 
 rangia are indehiscent. 
 
 The archesporium consists of one or more hypodermal cells of 
 the micropylar end of the nucellus : from the archesporium the 
 sporogenous cells are developed, as also tapetal cells. By the 
 formation of several layers of tapetal cells, and also by the re- 
 peated periclinal division of the micropylar epidermis, the 
 sporogenous cells come to be deeply placed in the nucellus, being 
 surmounted by a considerable mass of nucellar tissue which, in the 
 Cycadacea3, is hollowed out at the apex to form the pollen- chamber. 
 There may be a considerable mass of sporogenous cells (Cycadaceee, 
 etc., see p. 438), a condition which recalls that in the higher 
 Pteridophyta, or there may be a single sporogenous cell (Abietinese). 
 The sporogenous cell, or one of the sporogenous cells, grows 
 rapidly, causing the absorption of the adjacent cells, and is the 
 mother-cell of the macrospore : in some cases, where there are 
 many sporogenous cells, several of them may begin to grow in this 
 way, but as a rule, one gains the upper hand so that eventually 
 only one mother-cell is present. 
 
 The macrospore (embryo-sac) is developed singly in the macro- 
 sporangium, by the growth and maturation of the mother-cell 
 which does not undergo division into four as in the Pteridophyta. 
 In the Cycadacese the wall of the macrospore, like that of spores 
 generally, is differentiated into two layers, the outer of which is 
 cuticularised. 
 
 Pollination. The microspores are conveyed by the wind from 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : GYMNOSPEKMvE. 471 
 
 the rnicrosporangiate to the macrosporangiate flowers, tlie Gymno- 
 sperms being anemophilous, and they come into direct relation with 
 the micropyle. In the case of cone-flowers, the scales separate at 
 the time of pollination, to permit of the pollen-grains being blown 
 in between them. The micropyle of the ovule secretes a mucila- 
 ginous liquid which catches one or more of the pollen-grains : by 
 the gradual evaporation of this liquid, the pollen-grain is drawn 
 down the micropyle and is lodged on the apex of the nucellus, 
 where it germinates. 
 
 Embryogeny of the Sporophyte. The Gymnosperms are all mero- 
 blastic and have a suspensor, with the single exception, in both 
 respects, of Ginkgo : they are frequently polyembryonic (most 
 Cupressineae, Abietineee, and Gnetaceae). 
 
 The most peculiar type of development is that which is char, 
 acteristic of the Cycadaceae, of Ginkgo among Coniferoe, and of 
 Ephedra among Grietaceaa. In these plants the germination of 
 the oospore begins with repeated nuclear division followed by 
 free cell-formation which leads, in the Cycadaceae, to the production 
 either of a layer of cells round the wall of the archegonium (Cycas), 
 or of a mass of cells occupying its lower end (Ceratozamia), a 
 considerable cavity being left vacant in both cases : in Ephedra, 
 several (2-8) loose spherical cells are formed in a similar manner, 
 in the oospore, each with its own proper wall : and in Ginkgo, it 
 becomes completely filled with a mass of cells forming a compact 
 tissue. In the Cycadaceae, the embryonic cells at the lower end of 
 the oospore grow out into the endosperm, forming a suspensor at 
 the free end of which the body of the embryo is developed. In 
 Ephedra, each of the cells elongates into a suspensor which grows 
 out into the endosperm and produces an embryo. In Ginkgo, the 
 mass of cells constitutes the embryo itself ; there is no suspensor, 
 but the embryo, in the course of its growth, breaks out of the 
 archegonium into the endosperm. In the Coniferae (except Ginkgo) 
 the type of development is essentially the same throughout, though 
 with slight variations. In the Abietineae the nucleus of the oospore 
 descends towards the lower end of the cell, and divides into two, 
 and each of these again into two ; cell-formation takes place, walls 
 being formed in two planes at right angles to each other, so that the 
 lower end of the oospore is occupied by a group of four cells lying 
 in one plane ; these cells then divide by transverse walls, so that three 
 tiers of four cells each are formed ; of these, each cell of the middle 
 tier grows out into a long unicellular suspensor ; those of the upper 
 
472 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 tier simply maintain the connexion of the suspensors with the 
 rest of the oospore ; those of the lowest tier, whilst also contribu- 
 ting to the suspensors, each give rise to an embryo, from the cells 
 
 FIG. 298. Fertilisation, and early stages in the embryogeny, of Picea excelsa ( x 90 ; 
 after Strasburger). A Oosphere, with nucleus on, and canal-cell cl. B Fertilisation in pro- 
 gress : p pollen-tube; sn nucleus (male pronucleus) of the male cell now in the oosphere ; 
 on female pronucleus. C Fusion of male and female pronuclei. D Commencing cell-forma- 
 tion at the chalazal end of the oospore ; E a further stage : F three tiers of four cells each 
 have been formed : G the cells of the middle tier have elongated into suspensors, bearing 
 the single embryo at their lower end. 
 
 at the base of which one or more embryonal tubes are developed 
 which grow backward along the suspensor. Picea excelsa departs 
 from this type in that the suspensors remain coherent, bearing at 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMJA : GYMNOSPEKM^E. 
 
 B 
 
 473 
 
 FIG. 2P9. Later stages in the embryogeny of the sporophyte of Picea excelsa (after 
 Strasburger). A Optical section of young embryo borne on the end of the suspensors ( x 240) : 
 I? older embryo, with suspensor and embryonal tubes ; at this stage the growing-points of 
 primary root and stem are already differentiated : C half-grown embryo in surface-view : 
 D longitudinal section of a half-grown embryo : E surface-view of the apex of the shoot of 
 this embryo (x27): F longitudinal section of a fully developed embryo in a ripe seed; c 
 cotyledons; 7i hypoctyl; pi apex of the plerome in the root; cp root-cap ; m pith; op pro- 
 carnbial ring. 
 
474 TART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 their end the cells of the lowest tier which develope into but a 
 single embryo, whereas in the typical Abietiuese four embryos 
 originate from each oospore. 
 
 Among the Cupressinese, the first step is the formation of three 
 cells one above the other at the lower end of the oospore : in 
 Thuja occidentalis only the two upper cells undergo longitudinal 
 division, and, consequently (as in Picea excelsa) only a single 
 embryo is developed from each oospore : in Juniperus, all three 
 cells undergo longitudinal division, so that four embryos are here 
 developed from each oospore. In this group the cells of the 
 uppermost tier elongate to form the suspensors : those of the 
 middle tier contribute to the length of the suspensors, and also 
 give rise to short embryonal tubes which invest the suspensor for 
 some distance, as also the base of the embryo : the cell or cells 
 of the lowest tier give rise to the embryo (Thuja) or embryos 
 (Juniperus). 
 
 In the Taxeas, as represented by Taxus and Cephalotaxus, the 
 embryogeny closely resembles that of Thuja, though there is not 
 the same degree of constancy ; two or three tiers of cells, varying 
 in number, are formed at the lower end of the oospore ; of these, 
 the uppermost tier (Taxus) or second tier (Cephalotaxus) grow out 
 into the (usually six) suspensors ; those of the lower or lowest tier 
 form the single embryo and the embryonal tubes. 
 
 The embryogeny of the Gnetaceous genera Gnetum and Welwit- 
 schia is peculiar : in Welwitschia the oospore, whilst still enclosed 
 in the wall of the archegonium, undergoes a transverse division at 
 its base, which cuts off a small flat cell as the embryo- eel I ; the 
 wall of the archegonium continues to grow, and forms the sus- 
 pensor ; the embryo-cell gives rise to the single embryo and to a 
 number of embryonal tabes which invest the lower portion of tho 
 suspensor : in Gnetum, so far as the embryogeny is known, it 
 appears that an embryo-cell is formed at the end of the suspensor, 
 as in Welwitschia, from which the embryo and the embryonal tubes 
 are also developed ; the suspensor appears to branch, each branch 
 bearing an embryo. 
 
 The growing-point of the stem is developed at the anterior end 
 of the embryo: two species of Coniferae (Cephalotaxus Fortunei, 
 Araucaria brasiliana) present the peculiarity that the growing- 
 point is not quite terminal, but is covered by a small group of cells 
 which are subsequently thrown off : in some cases (Cupressinece, 
 Pinus Strobus, apparently Taxus and Gnetum, and occasionally 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGA3VIIA : QTMKOSPERMa, 
 
 475 
 
 Ephedra), there is a two-sided apical cell in the growing-point at 
 its first development. 
 
 The cotyledons vary in number : one, in Ceratozamia, and some- 
 times in other Cycadaceae ; two, in the CycadaceaB generally, in 
 
 the Cupressineaa 
 generally, in some 
 Araucarias, in the 
 Taxoideae, and in 
 the Gnetaceae ; in 
 the Cupressinese 
 sometimes 3-5 ; in 
 the Taxodineae 4-9 ; 
 in the Abietineae 
 5-15. The cotyle- 
 dons are generally 
 epigean: they are 
 hypogean in the Cy- 
 cadaceae, as also in 
 Araucaria (sect. 
 Colymbea) and in 
 Ginkgo among the 
 Coniferae: in the 
 Cycadaceae, and in 
 Ginkgo, the two hy- 
 pogean cotyledons 
 are closely coherent 
 at the apex, whereas 
 in these Araucarias 
 the cotyledons are 
 free. 
 
 The growing- 
 point of the root is 
 in all cases differen- 
 tiated endogenously, 
 at some distance 
 from the posterior 
 end of the embryo. 
 
 THE GAMETOPHYTE. 
 As the Gymno- 
 sperms are hetero- 
 sporous, the sexual 
 
 FIG. 300. Germinating seeds of Pinus Pinea: I first 
 stage, in longitudinal section : II second stage, with pro- 
 truding radicle ; A external view; B view after removal of 
 half the seed-coat ; C longitudinal section, without seed- 
 coat; D transverse section, without seed-coat; III ger- 
 mination is here completed, the cotyledons having expanded, 
 and the hypocotyl elongated : s seed-coat; e endosperm; w 
 radicle ; c cotyledons ; y micropyle ; r red membrane (re- 
 mains of nucellus) ; x the embryo-sac. 
 
476 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 generation is represented by two individuals, a male and a 
 female. 
 
 The Male Individual is a prothallium developed from the 
 
 cl 
 
 FIG. 301. A Longitudinal section of the micropylar portion of the female prothallium of 
 Picea excelsa showing two archegonia ( x 100) : c neck of archegonitim ; cl canal-cell. 
 B Surf ace- view of unopened neck of an archegonium ( x 250). C Pollen-tube penetrating 
 to the oosphere through the neck of the archegonium ( x 250). (After Sirasburger.) 
 
 microspore as described on p. 448. It consists of two or more 
 cells, one of which grows out into a pollen- tube (see Fig. 290). 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA: GYMNOSPERM^E. 
 
 477 
 
 The male organ is a rudimentary anther idium consisting of two 
 cells, the stalk-cell and the generative cell. 
 
 The male cell is derived from the generative cell of the an- 
 theridium which travels into the pollen-tube (see Fig. 289) ; this 
 cell undergoes division into two similar cells, near the apex of 
 the pollen- tube, both of which are, as a rule, functional male cells 
 
 equivalent to spermatozoids ; in 
 Taxus, however, the two cells 
 differ in size, and it is only the 
 larger one that is a functional 
 male cell. The male cell is of 
 somewhat spherical or oval 
 form. When, as in Juniperus, 
 and other Cupressineae, several 
 archegonia aro fertilised by 
 means of a singlo pollen-tube, 
 repeated cell-division takes 
 place in the pollen-tube. 
 
 The Female Individual is a 
 prothallium (sometimes called 
 endosperm) developed within 
 the macrospore. The germina- 
 tion of the macrospore begins 
 with the division of its nucleus ; 
 nuclear division is repeated 
 until a large number of nuclei 
 are formed, lying in the parietal 
 protoplasm of the spore; free 
 cell-formation then takes place, 
 walls being formed between the 
 cells so that the interior of the 
 macrospore is lined by a layer 
 of cells which grow and divide 
 until the cavity of the macro- 
 spore is entirely filled. It is 
 characteristic of Gymnosperms 
 that the development of the 
 prothallium is uninterrupted, 
 and that it is completed, except in Gnetum, before the female 
 organs are developed and, consequently, before fertilisation can 
 have taken place. 
 
 FIG. 302. Fertilisation of two archegonia 
 by mean* of a single pollen-tube in Junipe- 
 rus virginiana (x230: after Strasburger): e 
 prothallial tissue ; r neck of archegonium ; 
 n nucleus in the pollen-tube ; mp male pro- 
 nucleus, fp female pronucleus, in the 
 oosphere; v vacuole in the oosphere ; os 
 lower part of oosphere. 
 
478 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The female prothallium is a mass of parenchymatous tissue, 
 which does not, as a rule, escape to any extent from the spore, 
 and which, in consequence of the exclusion of light, is destitute 
 of chlorophyll ; the only exception to this rule is offered by the 
 Cycadaceae where, if the female organ is not fertilised, the pro- 
 thallium, resuming its growth, protrudes through the micro pyle 
 and turns green in the light. 
 
 The female organ is an archegonium, and is developed from a 
 single superficial cell of the female prothallium at its micropylar 
 end. The mother-cell generally divides transversely into two ; 
 an upper, the neck-cell ; a lower, the central cell : the neck-cell 
 usually divides, by two vertical walls, into four cells, which form 
 the neck ; the central cell grows, and divides transversely at its 
 upper end so as to cut off a small cell, the canal-cell, which lies 
 in the canal formed by the separation of the neck-cells, and a 
 large cell which is the female cell or oosphere (Figs. 301, 302). 
 
 The most striking deviations from the development of the archegonium, as 
 described above, are the following : the mother-cell does not divide but becomes 
 the central cell of a necldess archegonium, either with a cell-wall (Welwitschia) 
 or without a cell-wall (Gnetum); the neck-cell remains undivided (Tsuga cana- 
 densis) ; the neck-cell divides only once, longitudinally, so that the neck con- 
 sists of two cells (e.g. Cycadacese, Ginkgo) ; by a third vertical division of the 
 neck-cell, the neck comes to consist of eight cells, all in one plane (some 
 Cupressinese) ; by one or more transverse divisions, the neck consists of two 
 or more tiers of cells (e.g. Pinus Pinaster with four cells in each tier ; Picea 
 excelsa with eight cells in each tier). 
 
 The number of archegonia developed on the female prothallium 
 varies from a small number (3-5) in the Abietineae, to a large 
 number (20-60) in Welwitschia and Gnetum. The archegonia 
 are either scattered (Abietineos), or in a group (Cupressineaa) : 
 when scattered, each central cell is surrounded by a layer of small 
 cells belonging to the prothallium ; when in a group, the central 
 cells are in actual contact and have a common investment of 
 small-celled tissue. 
 
 In Welwitschia, the unicellular archegonia grow out into 
 filaments, at the upper end, which make their way through the 
 tissue of the nucellus toward the micropyle. 
 
 The female cell or oosphere is a relatively large nucleated cell, 
 the protoplasm of which is so highly vacuolated that it presents a 
 frothy appearance. 
 
 Fertilisation. When the microspore has reached the apex of 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : GYMNOSPERMJ]. 479 
 
 the nucellus, it developes a pollen-tube which penetrates the tissue 
 of the nucellus, making its way to the archegonia which have 
 been, or are being, developed on the prothallium. inside the 
 macrospore ; the pollen-tube at length reaches the xnacrospore, 
 pierces its wall, and enters the neck of an archegoniura (when 
 scattered), or spreads out over the necks of a group of archegonia; 
 a male cell is forced out through the tip of the pollen-tube into 
 the oosphere, or into each of the oospheres of a group of arche- 
 gonia so that one male organ fertilises several archegonia (Fig. 
 302); the act of fertilisation is completed by the fusion of the 
 male pronucleus with the female pronucleus, to constitute the 
 nucleus of the oospore. 
 
 In Welwitschia the process is somewhat different ; here fertilisa- 
 tion takes place in the tissue of the nucellus, where the pollen-tubes 
 meet and fuse with the filamentous outgrowths of the archegonia. 
 
 The Results of Fertilisation. 
 
 1. The fruit. In all the Gymnosperms which have a cone-like 
 macrosporangiate flower (Cycadaceae, except Cycas ; Coniferae, 
 except Taxese), one effect of fertilisation is to cause more or less 
 considerable growth in the macrosporophylls, or in the placental 
 scales, as also tissue-change resulting in their becoming woody 
 (e.g. Pinus, Abies, etc.) or fleshy (e.g. Juniperus), the product 
 being the fruit. 
 
 The fruit-cone, in most cases, sets free the seed by the separa- 
 tion of the macrosporophylls, or of the placental scales, which fall 
 off from the axis of the cone, leaving it bare (most Cycadaceae, 
 Araucaria, Abies, Agathis, Cedrus) ; or they merely separate enough 
 to let the seeds fall out, and then the cones either remain on 
 the tree (e.g. Larix), or, as is more commonly the case, drop 
 off entire. However, where the fruit is a berry-like cone (e.g. 
 Juniperus), the macrosporophylls do not separate, and the disper- 
 sion of the seed depends on the fruit being eaten by animals. 
 
 In other cases the effects of fertilisation extend to the bracts 
 (Ephedra) or to the perianth (Gnetum), causing them, to grow and 
 become succulent. 
 
 2. The seed is albuminous in all Gymnosperms, the single 
 straight embryo being imbedded in the endosperm (see Fig. 300 /) 
 in all cases, also, some portion of the nucellar tissue persists as 
 perisperm, amounting, in the Cycadaceae and Coniferae, to little 
 more than a membranous layer, but in the Gnetaceae (at least 
 in Ephedra and Welwitschia) it is more considerable. 
 
 v. S.B. II 
 
PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The development of the seed-coats varies widely. In the 
 Cycadaceaa the testa consists of two layers, an outer fleshy and 
 succulent, and an inner hard and woody, so that the seed bears a 
 superficial resemblance to a fruit such as a plum : in those Coni- 
 feraa in which the seeds are produced in a cone-fruit, the testa is 
 hard and tough ; but in those in which the seed is exposed from 
 the first, the testa is either fleshy (e.g. Ginkgo, Cephalotaxus), 
 being developed after the manner of that in the Cyeadaceae, or it 
 is hard, and is invested by a succulent aril (e.g. Taxus, Podo- 
 carpus). In those Coniferse with woody cones (e.g. Abietinece, 
 Araucarinese, most Cupressineae) the seed is usually winged, either 
 by means of a membranous outgrowth of the testa, or (Abietinere) 
 by the adhesion to the seed of a thin strip of tissue, split off from 
 the surface of the placental scale. Among the Gnetaceae, the 
 testa is hard and woody in Ephedra and Gnetum ; in Welwitschia 
 the seed is enclosed by the expanded perianth, which acts as a 
 wing. 
 
 Classification of the Gymnospermce. 
 
 The class contains the following three orders : 
 
 1. CYCADACE^E: the trunk is generally unbranched : the leaves 
 are large and branched : no vessels in the secondary wood. 
 
 2. CONIFEE^:: trunk much branched: leaves many, small, and 
 unbranched : no vessels in the secondary wood. 
 
 3. GrNETACK-ffi: habit various: flowers have a rudimentary 
 perianth : there are vessels ia the secondary wood. 
 
 Order 1. Cycadaceae. The Cycadaceae are plants which, in many respects, 
 show affinity with the Ferns, while, on the other Land, they resemble the 
 Palms in external appearance. The stern is tubercular or cylindrical. The 
 vegetative leaves are of two kinds ; scaly leaves, brown and dry, closely 
 covering the surface of the stem ; foliage-leaves, pinnate, of a leathery consis- 
 tency, produced annually or at a longer interval, forming a crown at the top 
 of the stem ; the foliage-leaves are generally developed expanded, but in Cycas 
 the piiinse are circinate in vernation, as is also the phyllopodium in Stangeria 
 and Zamia. 
 
 The dioecious flowers are produced, either singly or several together, at the 
 apex of the stem ; they are cones (except Cycas). The development of the 
 cones does not arrest the growth in length of the stem : hence the stem may 
 be regarded as a sympodium, its growing -point being maintained by either 
 dichotomous or lateral branching (pp. 33, 35). The macrosporophylls of Cycas 
 do not constitute a true flower, since they are not borne, as in the other genera, 
 on a special axis, but simply take the place of a whorl of foliage-leaves. The 
 cones consist of an elongated axis, bearing numerous spirally-arranged scaly 
 sporophylls, which vary in number from 30 to 600. The microsporoph.ylls bear. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAM1A: GYMNOSPERJLE : CONIFERS. 
 
 481 
 
 on the under surface, usually numerous (2 to 1000) microsporangia, either 
 scattered or in sori (Cycas, Stangeria, Zamia). The macrosporophylls bear 
 two orthotropous macrosporangia, one on each flank, developed upon the peltate 
 terminal lamina ; but the exceptional macrosporophylls of Cycas (see Fig. 303) 
 may bear as many as five macrosporangia. 
 
 The macrosporangia are all sessile, and have a single integument, and are of 
 considerable size ; those of Cycas are as large as a plum before fertilisation. 
 
 In the coniferous genera, the macrosporangiate flower becomes the fruit ; 
 that is, a dry cone, the sporophylls of which fall away, and so set free the 
 seeds In Cycas, the sporophvlls bend outwards and drop off, bearing the 
 seeds. The seed is covered by a testa, developed from the integument of the 
 ovule, which is succulent externally and stony internally. It contains a single 
 straight embryo, on a coiled suspensor, lying in the endosperm. The embryo, 
 has generally two cotyledons (one in Ceratozamia, and occasionally in other 
 genera also), which are hypogean, 
 remaining in the seed. 
 
 The Cycadacese, of which there 
 are nine genera, and about seventy- 
 five species, are all tropical or sub- 
 tropical. Cycas is a native of the 
 East Indies and Australia ; Macro- 
 zamia and Bowenia, of Australia ; 
 Encephalartos and Stangeria, of 
 Africa ; Zamia, Ceratozamia, Dio- 
 on, and Microcycas, of tropical 
 America. 
 
 Cycas is clearly distinguished 
 from the other genera by its pe- 
 culiar macrosporophylls, involving 
 the absence of a macrosporangiate 
 flower ; Bowenia is characterised 
 by its bi-pinnate leaves ; Stangeria 
 by the pinnate venation of its 
 leaves ; the other genera, by the 
 form of their sporophylls. 
 
 Order 2. Coniferae. This 
 order includes the Pines, Firs, 
 Cypresses, Yews, etc., which, for 
 the most part, are extra-tropical, 
 inhabiting more especially the 
 northern hemisphere. 
 
 The conspicuous features of their morphology are the regular monopodial 
 branching of the stem, the small (often acicular) simple leaves, and the tap- 
 root. In their histology, these plants resemble the Dicotyledons in that the 
 ptem grows in thickness by a normal cambium-ring ; but the vascular tissue of 
 the wood consists entirely of tracheides with bordered pits. The presence of 
 resin-ducts is another characteristic feature. 
 
 The flowers are always monosporangiate ; some genera are dioecious. The 
 
 FIG. 303. Sporophylls of Cycads. A macrc- 
 sporophyll of Cycas revoluta (i nat. size) : f 
 pinnae ; s ovules. JB Macrosporopbyll of Zamia 
 muricata, with two ovules (s) ; C microsporophyll 
 of this species with numerous microsporangia 
 (P). 
 
482 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 microsporangiftte flower is a cone, consisting of an elongated axis bearing 
 microsporophylls (Fig. 304), which are generally somewhat peltate in form. 
 Each microsporophyll bears two or more microsporangia on its under (dorsal) 
 surface. The macrosporangiate flower is also a cone in certain cases (Pinoideae, 
 Fig. 305), in which case the macrosporophylls bear the macrosporangia ; in 
 other cases there is a less perfect cone, or none at all (Taxoideae, see Fig. 308), 
 the macrosporophylls are either rudimentary or absent, and the macrosporangia 
 are generally borne on the axis. 
 
 In some genera (e.g. Pinus, Juniperus) the seed takes two years to ripen ; in 
 the first year, pollination takes place, and the pollen-tube begins to grow 
 through the tissue of the nucellus ; in the second year, after a period of rest, 
 
 FIG. 304. Pinus montana (Pumilid). A Longitudinal section of a microsporangiate flower 
 (x 10). B Longitudinal section of a microsporophyll, showing the cavity of one pollen-sac 
 (x 20). C Transverse section of a microsporophyll, showing the cavities of both pollen- 
 sacs. D Germinating two-celled miorospore of Pinus sylvestris, showing the expansions of 
 the exine (x 400). (After Strasburger.) 
 
 the pollen-tube completes its growth, reaches the archegonium, and fertilises 
 the oosphere ; as a consequence, the embryo is developed, and the ovule is 
 changed into a seed. 
 
 In spite of the fact that so many of the Conifer are polyembryonic (see 
 p. 471), and that each ovule contains several archegonia, the ripe seed contains 
 only a single embryo, though occasionally two are found (e.g. Ginkgo). The 
 embryo has two, or more, cotyledons, which are epigean, except in Araucaria, 
 sect. Colymbea, and in Ginkgo, where they are hypogean. 
 
 The order, which includes 34 genera and about 350 species, may be natur- 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : GYMNOSPERMJ] : CONIFERS. 
 
 483 
 
 ally divided into the two sub-orders, Pinoideas and Taxoideee, based upon tbe 
 structure of the macrosporaugiate flower ; each of these sub-orders includes 
 several families. 
 
 Sub-order I. PINOIDE^E. The macrosporangiate flowers are cones ; the seed 
 has a woody or leathery testa, is enclosed between the macros porophy 11s or 
 the placental scales, and has no aril. 
 
 Fam. 1. Araucarinea : usually dioe- 
 cious ; macrosporophyll simple, bearing 
 a single macrosporangium. The micro- 
 sporophyll bears 5 to 15 free microspor- 
 angia ; microspores without expansions 
 of the exine ; all leaves arranged 
 spirally ; cotyledons 2-4. 
 
 This family includes the two genera, 
 Agathis (Dammara) and Araucaria. 
 Agathis inhabits the Malayan islands, 
 parts of Australia, New Zealand, Fiji 
 Islands ; A. australis is the Kauri 
 Gum-tree : Araucaria inhabits South 
 America (A. brasiliana, Brazil; A. im- 
 bricata, Chili), and Australasia (A. 
 excelsa, Norfolk Island). 
 
 Fam. 2. Abietineee : monoecious; on 
 . its upper surface at the base, the macro- 
 sporophyll bears a large placental scale 
 on the upper surface of which two in- 
 verted macrosporangia are borne. The 
 ripe seed has two wings derived from 
 tissue of the placental scale ; the micro- 
 sporophyll bears two microsporangia ; 
 microspores usually have expansions of 
 the exine ; all leaves arranged spirally ; 
 cotyledons, more than 2, commonly 5, 
 sometimes as many as 15. 
 
 The most important genera may be 
 distinguished as follows : 
 
 A. No dwarf-shoots ; placental scales 
 flat; seed ripens in one year; stem 
 bears whorled branches. 
 
 1. Fruit-cones erect, falling to 
 pieces when ripe; foliage-leaves 
 flat, cylindrical at the base, and not 
 decurrent ; placental scales about 
 
 the same length as the macrosporophylls 
 
 2. Fruit-cones pendent, falling off entire ; foliage-leaves with 
 decurrent projecting base. 
 
 (a) Leaves 4-angular ; placental scales much longer than the 
 macrosporophylls . Picea. 
 
 FiG. 305. Abies pectinata. A Carpel c, 
 seen from above (ventral surface), show- 
 ing s the placental scale, and sk the two 
 ovules (mag.). B Mature cone (nat. size) ; 
 sp axis ; c carpel ; s enlarged placental 
 scale. C Ripe placental scale (s) isolated, 
 seen from above ; ?a the two seeds, each 
 with a wing (/). (After Sachs.) 
 
 Abies. 
 
484 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 (6) Leaves flat ; placental scales longer or shorter than the 
 
 macrosporophylls Tsvga. 
 
 B. Long and dwarf-shoots. 
 
 1. Placental scales flat ; foliage-leaves borne on both long and 
 dwarf-shoots ; branching of the stem irregular. 
 
 (a) Leaves annually deciduous ; seed ripens in one year . Larix. 
 
 (b) Leaves persistent ; seed ripens in two years . . . Cedrus. 
 
 2. Placental scales thickened externally into an apophysis : 
 foliage-leaves confined to the dwarf-shoots : branches whorled . Pinua. 
 
 1. Abies, the Silver Firs. The foliage-leaves are flat, marked on the under 
 surface with two longitudinal white streaks, and show in section two lateral 
 resin-ducts: the macrosporangiate cone is developed in the axil of a leaf borne 
 on a shoot of the previous year, at some distance from its apex, and when ripe 
 falls to pieces so that the naked axis remains. To this genus belong A. pectinata 
 (A. alba), the Silver Fir, the emarginate leaves of which stand out in a comb-like 
 manner from the branches ; A. Nordmanniana, from the Caucasus; A. balsamea, 
 which produces Canada-balsam ; A. cephalonica, which grows in Greece, and A. 
 Pinsapo, which grows in Spain, both having pointed leaves which, in the latter 
 species, are borne on all sides of the branches. 
 
 2. Picea, the Spruce Firs. The foliage-leaves are quadrangular, and have 
 two lateral resin-ducts : the macrosporangiate cone is borne terminally on a 
 shoot of the previous year, becomes pendent after fertilisation, thus enabling 
 the seeds to drop out, and then falls off entire. To this genus belong P. excelsa, 
 the Norway Spruce, the leaves of which are compressed laterally ; in some 
 species, however, the leaves are compressed vertically (e.g. P.omorica, in Servia, 
 and P. ajanen^is, in Eastern Asia), and are streaked with white on the upper 
 surface. P. alba and nigra are the White and Black Spruces of North 
 America. 
 
 3. Tsuga, the Hemlock Firs. The flat foliage-leaves are somewhat chan- 
 nelled above, with a midrib projecting on the under surface. In other respects 
 this genus, more especially the Section Eutsuga, generally resembles Picea. In 
 the Section Eutsuga (e.g. Ts. canadensis) the placental scales are much longer 
 than the macrosporophylls ; whereas in the section Pseudotsuga (e.g. Ts. Doug- 
 lasii) the macrosporophylls are as long as, or longer than, the placental scales : 
 in Eutsuga there is a single median resin-duct in the projecting midrib of the 
 leaf. 
 
 4. Larix, the Larches. The deciduous leaves are arranged spirally on long 
 shoots, and also in clusters on dwarf-shoots developed in the axils of the leaves 
 of the long shoots of the previous year : the microsporangiate cones are borne 
 terminally on leafless dwarf-shoots, the macrosporaugiate cones terminally on 
 leafy dwarf-shoots. L. europcea is the common Larch, a native of the Alps and 
 Carpathians. The sub-genus Pseudolarix, including the single species Ps. 
 Kaempferi (otherwise Lariat Koempferi), the Golden Larch, differs from the true 
 Larches mainly in that its macrosporangiate cones fall to pieces when ripe : it 
 is a native of China. 
 
 5. Cedrus, the Cedars. This genus differs from Larix in that the leaves, 
 which are arranged in the same way, persist for more than one year, and in 
 that the seed takes two years to ripen. The genus includes three species : 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : GYMNOSPERMJ] : CONIFERS. 485 
 
 C. Libani, in Asia Minor ; C. atlantica, in the Atlas mountains of North Africa : 
 C. Deodar a, in the Himalayas. 
 
 7. Finns, the Pines. The thick placental scales are expanded at their free 
 end into a flattened rhombic surface, the apophysis : the seed takes two years to 
 ripen : the foliage-leaves persist for several years and are confined to dwarf- 
 shoots which bear cataphyllary leaves at their bases, and are borne in the axils 
 of the cataphyllary leaves of the long shoots of the same year : the primary- 
 branches are arranged in false whorls near the apex of the shoot of any one 
 year, and the branches of a higher order are developed in the same manner : 
 the microsporangiate cones take the place of dwarf-shoots at the base of a long 
 shoot of the same year, and are closely packed : the maerosporangiate cones 
 also occupy the place of dwarf-shoots near the apex of long shoots of the same 
 year. 
 
 In the section Pinaster, the apophysis has a rhombic free surface with a 
 central projection (umbo) : it includes three sub-genera : Pinea, characterised 
 by the fact that each dwarf-shoot bears two leaves, with about twenty species, 
 including Pinus aylvestris, the Scots Pine ; P. Laricio, the Black Pines ; P. 
 Pinaster, the Cluster Pine of South Europe; P. montana, the Mountain Pinesof 
 Europe ; P. Pinea, the Stone Pine of the South of Europe, the seeds of which 
 are large and edible : Tasda, where each dwarf-shoot bears three leaves, with 
 about sixteen species, including Pinus Tada, the Frankincense tree of North 
 America : Pseudostrobus, where each dwarf-shoot usually bears five leaves, 
 with about ten North American species. 
 
 In the section Strobus, the dwarf-shoots usually bear five leaves, and the 
 apophysis runs out into a projection (umbo) at its upper edge : it includes two 
 sub-genera: Eustrobus, with pendulous fruit-cones and winged seeds, in- 
 cluding Pinus Strobus, the Weymouth Pine; P. excelsa, i he Himalayan Pine ; 
 P. Lambertiana, the Sugar Pine, and P. monticola, both of California and' 
 Oreg<m: Oetnbra, with erect or divergent cones and seeds without wings, in- 
 cluding Pinus Cembra,the Stone Pine of Switzerland and Siberia; P.flexilis, of 
 North America ; and P. parviftora, of Japan. 
 
 Fam. 3. Taxodinece : monoecious : the macrosporophyll is clearly differen- 
 tiated into an outer and an inner (placental) half ; the latter forms an out- 
 growth across the upper surface of the macrosporophyll, which may even reach 
 the surface of the cone : seeds 2-9, either axillary and erect, or borne on the 
 surface of the macrosporophyll and inverted, generally without a wing : micro- 
 sporophylls bear 2-8 microsporangia : microspores with expansions of the exine: 
 leaves arranged spirally. 
 
 Sciadopitys (S. verticillata), the Umbrella Pine of Japan, is the only member 
 of the family which has long and dwarf-shoots, the latter being a single pair of 
 confluent linear leaves ; the placeutal outgrowth projects beyond the apex of 
 the macrosporophyll, and bears a transverse row of about seven seeds at its 
 base. In Cunninghamia, the placental outgrowth is narrow and membranous. 
 In Athrotaxis, the Tasrnanian Cypress, the placental outgrowth is a thick 
 ridge. Sequoia includes the two species of large Californian trees, S. sempervircits, 
 the Californian Eed-wood, and S.- (Welling tonia) yiyantea, celebrated for the 
 great height to which they grow (over 300 feet), with a circumference of 50-60 
 feet at the base ; the placental outgrowth is a slight transverse ridge. In the 
 
486 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 preceding genera, the seeds are all borne on the placental region of the macro- 
 sporophyll and are inverted ; in the following genera the seeds are axillary and 
 erect. Cryptomeria has an erect fringed placental outgrowth. Taxodium, is 
 the deciduous Cypress of North America ; its leaf-bearing twigs are thrown off 
 each year (T. distichum), or persist for two years (T. mexicanum) : the placental 
 outgrowth overgrows the macrosporophyll as the cone ripens. Glyptostrobus 
 is the Chinese Water Pine ; it differs from Taxodium only in that the seed has 
 a wing. 
 
 Fam. 4. Cupressinece : monoecious, sometimes dioecious: macrosporophylls 
 with a projecting placental outgrowth: seeds axillary, erect, often winged: 
 microspores without expansions of the exine : leaves always arranged in whorls. 
 In the sub-family Actinostrobince, including the genera Actinostrobus, Calli- 
 tris, and Fitzroya, the ripe cone is woody and the constituent macrosporophylls 
 are arranged in a valvate manner. 
 
 In the sub-family Thujopsidince, including the genera Thujopsis and Thuja 
 (incl. Libocedrus and Biota) the ripe cone is woody and the constituent macro- 
 sporophylls are arranged in an imbricate 
 manner. The most familiar species are 
 Thuja occidentalis, the American Arbor 
 Vitae, and Thuja (Biota) orientalis, the 
 Chinese Arbor Vitse. 
 
 In the sub-family Cupressince, includ- 
 ing the genera Cnpressus and Chamaecy- 
 paris, the ripe cone is woody and con- 
 sists of 2-6 pairs of peltate macrosporo- 
 phylls coherent by their margins in a 
 valvate manner. The genus Cupressus, 
 the Cypress, has several seeds on each 
 macrosporophyll : in Chamaacyparis each 
 macrosporophyll bears only two seeds. 
 
 The sub-family Juniperince, including 
 the single genus Juniperus, is distin- 
 guished from the preceding sub-families 
 in that the flowers are, as a rule, dioe- 
 cious ; the ripe cone is somewhat fleshy, 
 resembling a berry or a drupe ; it usually 
 consists of one whorl of macrosporophylls 
 each bearing one or two wingless seeds. 
 The section Caryocedrus (Arceuthos), containing the single species Jumper us 
 drupacea, has a cone consisting of 3 or 4 whorls of macrosporophylls ; whereas 
 in the section Oxycedrus (including Juniperus communis, the Juniper ; J. Oxy- 
 cedrus, J. macrocarpa, and other species), the cone consists of 1-2 whorls ; and 
 in the section Sabina (including J. Sabina, J. virginiana, etc.), it consists of 2-3 
 whorls ; the innermost or uppermost whorl alone is fertile as a rule, in Caryo- 
 cedrus and in Oxycedrus, but is sterile in Sabina : in Caryocedrus the (2-3) seeds 
 are coherent, in the other two sections they are free : in Sabina the flowers 
 are generally monoecious ; in Sabina also the leaves (including sporophylls) are 
 usually in whorls of 2, whilst in the other two sections they are in whorls of 3. 
 
 FIG. 306. A Branch of Thuja occi- 
 dentalism (x6) showing heterophylly ; fe 
 flank-leaves ; / surface-leaves ; 7i resin- 
 receptacle (see p. 464). B Fruit of Biota 
 orientalis (nat. size) : / macrosporophylls 
 with ventral outgrowths d; d (in the 
 middle line) sterile sporophylls. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMJA : GYMXOSPERMJE : CONIFERS. 
 
 487 
 
 Sub-order II. TAXOIDEJE : the macrosporangiate flowers are, as a rule, not 
 cones ; the seed usually projects beyond the macrosporophylls (when present) 
 and has a succulent testa or an arillus : 
 flowers generally dioecious. 
 
 Farn. 1. Podocarpece : the macrosporangiate 
 flower consists of several macrosporophylls 
 each bearing a single macrosporangium : the 
 ripe seed is invested by an arillus : the micro- 
 sporophylls each bear two microsporangia ; 
 the microspores have expansions of the 
 exine. 
 
 This family includes the genera Saxegothea, 
 Microcachrys, Podocarpus, and Dacrydium. 
 Saxegothea resembles the Cupressinese in 
 that the macrosporophylls enclose the seeds : 
 this genus is monoecious. On the other hand 
 Dacrydium resembles the Taxeae in that the 
 macrosporophylls are very similar to the 
 foliage-leaves, and in that the macrospor- 
 angia are sometimes borne in the axils of 
 the macrosporophylls, and are then erect, 
 whereas in all other cases they are inverted. 
 
 Fam. 2. Taxece : the macrosporophylls 
 are usually rudimentary or absent, and the 
 macrosporangia are borne on the axis : the 
 seed has an arillus in some forms, while in 
 others it has a succulent testa : microsporo- 
 phylls with 2-9 microsporangia : microspores without expansions of the exine. 
 
 Phyllocladus, remarkable for its rudimentary leaves and for the development 
 of its dwarf-shoots into phylloclades, has thick persistent macrosporophylls ; 
 in the axil of each there is a single erect macrosporangium with an arillus : 
 flowers sometimes monoecious. 
 Gitiligo biloba (S<ilisbnria adianti- 
 folia), the Maiden-Hair Tree, is 
 characterised by its fan-shaped de- 
 ciduous leaves with furcate vena- 
 tion : the macrosporophylls are 
 rudimentary : the macrosporangia 
 are borne in an opposite pair at the 
 end of a short stalk : no arillus, 
 but the testa of the seed becomes 
 succulent. Cepbalotaxus (the Fl(J 308 _ A Branch of Taxus laccata bearing 
 Chinese Yew) and the genera Taxus a f ru i t /, which consists of a fleshy arillus en- 
 (the Yew) and Torreya (the Fetid closing a seed. B Longitudinal section of the 
 
 end of a branch terminating in a macrospo- 
 rangiate flower: b scaly bracts; k terminal 
 macrosporangium (nucellus) ; i the integument ; 
 m the micropyle : o the rudiment of the arillus 
 (x20). 
 
 FIG. 307. A Macrosporangiate 
 flower of Juniperus Sabina, seen from 
 above : //fertile macrosporophylls, 
 bearing macrosporangia s; f'f 
 upper part of sterile sporophylls 
 (mag.). ^B and C Juniperus com- 
 munis. B young fruit : /// macro- 
 sporophylls, of which the anterior 
 is turned down : e the ovules. Cripe 
 fruit; the limits of the three carpels 
 are only distinguishable at the 
 apex. 
 
 B 
 
 Yew of North America) have only 
 long shoots : the macrosporangiate 
 flowers and the ripe seeds of Ce- 
 phalotaxus resemble those of Gink- 
 
488 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 go: in Torreya and Taxus (Fig. 308) there are no macrosporopli.ylls, the macro- 
 sporangia being borne singly at the end of short lateral shoots, and the seed 
 has a fleshy arillus. Tixus has no resin-ducts in its tissues : its microsporo- 
 phyll is peltate, bearing 5-9 microsporaugia on its under surface. 
 
 Order 3. Gnetaceae. This order includes but three genera, Ephedra, 
 Gnetum, and Welwitschia. Though they differ widely from each other in 
 many respects, they agree in that they have opposite leaves ; flowers which are 
 not cones and which have a rudimentary perianth, but have no macrosporophylls 
 as the macrosporangia are borne on the axis ; an albuminous erect seed ; 
 a dicotyledonous embryo ; and secondary wood which contains true vessels. 
 They are generally dioecious. 
 
 The flowers are arranged in single or compound spicate inflorescences, a-ising 
 either singly (Welwitschia) or in clusters from the axils of pairs of opposite and 
 decussate bracts. The bracts are highly developed and closely packed in Wel- 
 witschia, so that the whole inflorescence has a somewhat cone-like appearance. 
 
 The perianth, in all cases uncoloured, consists of a single pair of coherent 
 perianth-leaves, except in the microsporangiate flowers of Welwitschia, where 
 there are two decussate pairs of free perianth-leaves. 
 
 The microsporangiate flower, in addition to the perianth, consists : in 
 Ephedra, of a short projecting axis bearing 2-8 microsporophylls represented 
 by sessile or shortly- stalked anthers each bearing two microsporangia; in Gnetum, 
 of a short projecting axis directly bearing one or two microsporangia ; in Welwit- 
 schia, of six monadelphous microsporophylls with well-developed filaments each 
 bearing a terminal anther with three microsporangia, surrounding a rudimentary 
 macrosporangium, with a projecting integument, in the centre of the flower. 
 
 . The macrosporangiate flower, in addition to the perianth, consists, in all 
 three genera, of a terminal macrosporangium, borne on the axis ; it is invested 
 either by a sing'e integument, as in Ephedra and Welwitschia, which is pro- 
 duced into a long projecting micropyle ; or by two integuments (Gnetum) the 
 inner of which forms a long projecting micropyle. 
 
 The fruit is formed : in Ephedra, by the succulent development of some of 
 the bracts of the inflorescence which assume a red colour and enclose the fruit- 
 lets formed from the several flowers by the lignificatton of the perianth round 
 the seed ; in Gnetum, by the succulent development of the perianth and the 
 lignification of the outer integumeut, in each separate flower; in Welwitsehia, 
 by the further development of the bracts, which assume a bright scarlet colour, 
 and by the growth of the perianth around the seed so as to form a wing-like 
 expansion, the winged seeds being set free by the falling to pieces of the cone- 
 like inflorescence from below upwards. 
 
 Ephedra is a genus of shrubby plants, with rudimentary leaves, somewhat 
 resembling an Equisetnm. It is especially remarkable on account of its 
 peculiar embryogeny (see p. 471). Habitat, warmer temperate zone. 
 
 Gnetum is a genus of shrubs or trees, for the most part climbers, but some 
 erect-growing (Gnetum Gnemon] : with its broad well- developed foliage-leaves, 
 with pinnate venation, it resembles the Dicotyledons in habit. Habitat, the 
 tropics. 
 
 Welwitschia includes the single species W. mirabilis : it is remarkable for its 
 short thick stem, prolonged below into a tap-root, with a broad flat somewhat 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJ3 489 
 
 circular bilobed upper surface, a single long persistent foliage-leaf beinsj borne 
 at the margin of each lobe: the inflorescences are borne in dichotomous cymes, 
 usually in the axil of each of the two leaves. Habitat, Damaraland, Western 
 South Africa. 
 
 DIVISION B. 
 ANGIOSPERM^E. 
 
 The plants of this class are to a large extent herbaceous annuals, 
 biennials, or perennials ; but it also includes a great number of 
 shrubs and trees. 
 
 THE SPOROPHYTE. 
 
 The General Morphology of the Vegetative Organs is so varied that 
 it cannot be dealt with in a general way. The reader is referred 
 to the treatment of the subject in Book I., and to the descriptions 
 given in the systematic account of the class. 
 
 The General Morphology of the Reproductive Organs. The repro- 
 ductive organs are pollen-sacs (microsporangia) and ovules (macro- 
 sporangia), borne generally on sporophylls, but sometimes directly 
 on the floral axis (e.g. microsporangia of Naias, Casuarina, etc. ; 
 raacrosporangia of Polygonum, Primulaceee, etc.) : they are de- 
 veloped in special shoots differentiated as flowers, and the flowers 
 are arranged in a more or less complex branch-system, the in- 
 florescence. 
 
 The Inflorescence (see p. 76). It is only in comparatively few 
 cases that the primary axis of the plant terminates in a flower ; 
 such plants are said to uuiaxial : it is usually not until the secon- 
 dary or tertiary branches, or even those of a higher order, are 
 developed, that a flower is formed. Such plants are said to be 
 bi-, tri-, or poly- axial. 
 
 The floral axis of the Angiosperms frequently forms an elaborate 
 branch-system which is usually sharply denned, as a sporophore, 
 from the vegetative shoots, and which bears leaves which are 
 either sporophylls or hypsophylls (p. 59). 
 
 In the inflorescence, as usually in all parts of the shoot of 
 Angiosperms, the branching is almost always monopodial and 
 axillary. Some apparent exceptions may be easily reduced to this 
 type: thus, in the racemes of most of the Cruciferse the bracts at 
 the bases of the individual lateral branches are abortive, and the 
 same occurs in many of the Composites. In the Solanaceoe and 
 
490 PAET III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Boraginaceae the bract often undergoes displacement, so that it 
 appears to be inserted laterally o-pon the axillary branch ; on the 
 other hand, it sometimes happens that the axillary branch is 
 adherent to the main shoot for some distance. 
 
 The flowers of an inflorescence are either sessile or stalked, the 
 stalk being termed a pedicel. 
 
 In accordance with the principles of branching laid down on 
 p. 33, the different forms of inflorescences may be classified as 
 follows : 
 
 A. Racemose Inflorescences consist of a main axis (rhachis, peduncle), 
 bearing a number of lateral branches developed in acropetal (or centripetal) 
 succession, constituting a monopodial branch-system. The lateral branches do 
 not usually grow longer than that portion of the main axis which lies above 
 their points of origin. If the lateral shoots of the first order terminate in a 
 flower without again branching, the inflorescence is said to be simple ; but if 
 they branch, it is compound. 
 
 These inflorescences are also termed indefinite, not because the apical growth 
 of the main axis or of its branches is unlimited, but because, owing to the 
 acropetal succession in the development of the flowers, the growth of branches 
 of a high order is arrested, by the development of a terminal flower, earlier than 
 tbat of branches of a lower order : for instance, the growth of the secondary 
 branches is arrested before that of the main axis, that of the tertiary branches 
 before that of the secondary branches, and so so. 
 
 I. Simple racemose inflorescences : 
 
 (a) With an elongated main axis : the lateral shoots spring from the axis at 
 some distance from each other. The three following forms may be distin- 
 guished : 
 
 (1) The spike, in which the lateral branches are flowers which are sessile on 
 the main axis, or have very short pedicels (Fig. 309 A] ; e.g. the inflorescence 
 of the Plantain (Plantago). The small spikes of the Glumales are termed 
 spikdets. 
 
 (2) The spadix, which differs from the spike only in having a thick and fleshy 
 axis ; a large bract forming a sheath, called a spathe, commonly grows at the 
 base of the inflorescence and envelopes it more or less ; e.g. Arum and 
 Kichardia. 
 
 (3) The raceme, in which the lateral branches are flowers with pedicels of 
 nearly equal length, e.g. the Cruciferse, as the Eadish, Cabbage, etc. ; in these 
 the bracts of the individual flowers are not developed; also Berberis and others. 
 
 (/3) With a short main axis ; the lateral branches are set closely together on 
 the short or flattened main axis. 
 
 (4) The capitulum (head) in which the short main axis is conical or disc- 
 shaped or even hollowed out, and is closely covered with lateral branches in 
 the form of sessile flowers (Fig. 309 Z>), e.g. the Compositae, as Dandelion, 
 Sunflower; also the Scabious. The bracts (paleae) of the individual flowers 
 (Fig. 309 Dp) are sometimes wanting ; but the whole head is surrounded at the 
 
GEOUP IV. PHANEROGAM1A : ANGIOSPERJYLE. 
 
 491 
 
 base by a number of bracts forming an involucre (Fig. 309 D i] which gives the 
 inflorescence the appearance of being one single flower. 
 
 (5) The umbel, composed of a number of lateral branches, in the form of 
 pedicillate flowers, springing together from a very short axis which commonly 
 terminates in a flower (Fig. 309 C d) ; e.g. the Umbelliferas and the Ivy. The 
 bracts of the separate pedicels forming the rays are usually present in diminished 
 number ; they form an involucre. 
 
 II. Compound racemose inflorescences are formed when the lateral shoots 
 which bear flowers, as described above, are again branched, or, in other words, 
 when inflorescences of the types above enumerated are united to form a larger 
 inflorescence ; for instance, when several capitula are arranged on the main 
 axis in the same way as the flowers of a raceme. The same terms are applied 
 to the first ramification of the compound inflorescence as to the simple ones 
 described above ; the above-mentioned example, for instance, is a raceme of 
 capitula, and is termed a capitulate raceme. Compound inflorescences may be 
 classified as follows : 
 
 (a) Homogeneously compound; ill these the branches of the first and second 
 (or higher) orders 
 are of the same 
 character. 
 
 (6) The com- 
 pound spike ; in 
 this form many 
 simple spikes are 
 arranged on the 
 main axis of the 
 inflorescence in 
 the same way as 
 the flowers in a 
 simple spike, or, 
 in other words, 
 the main axis of 
 the spike bears 
 secondary spikes 
 instead of single 
 
 flowers, e.g. the inflorescence of Wheat, Bye, etc. 
 
 (7) The compound raceme ; in this case smaller racemes grow on the main 
 axis of the raceme ; the ramification is in many cases still further repeated in 
 such a way that it is more complex at the base of the primary raceme than 
 towards tbe apex, e.g. the Grape-vine (Fig. 309 B). 
 
 (8) The compound umbel (Fig. 309 C). This is far more common than a 
 simple umbel, and is in fact usually called an umbel ; the separate simple 
 umbels (Fig. 309 C d) are then called umbellules, and their respective involucres 
 are inv>lucels. 
 
 (|8) Heterogeneously compound inflorescences; in these the branches of the 
 different orders are dissimilar. In consequence of this so many complicated 
 forms arise that it is impossible to enumerate and name all the combinations. 
 As examples, the following will only be mentioned : the capitulate raceme, 
 
 FIG. 309. Diagrams of the varieties of racemose inflorescences. 
 A Spike. B Compound raceme. C Compound umbel; d rays 
 of the umbel; i involucre; d x secondary rays of the umbellules; 
 i 1 involucel. D A capitulum ; i involucre ; b flower ; p bracts. 
 
492 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 which consists of a number of capitula arranged in a raceme ; it occurs in many 
 of the Compositas, e.g. Petasit.es : the spicate capituluin, which consists of 
 several spikes "forming a capitulum, as in the Scirpoideas : the spicate raceme, 
 which occurs in many Grasses, in which the last branches of a compound 
 raceme are spikes. 
 
 B. Cymose Inflorescences : the main axis produces one, two, or more lateral 
 branches rarely several at the same level below its apex, which grow more 
 vigorously thau the main axis, and repeat the same type of branching. 
 
 These inflorescences are als > termed definite because the growth of each axis 
 is arrested, by the development of a terminal flower, before that of the lateral 
 branch or branches which it bears. The simplest kind of definite inflorescence 
 is that in which the axis (peduncle) does not branch, but bears a single terminal 
 flower. 
 
 Cymose inflorescences are also termed centrifugal, because the development 
 and expansion of the flowers begins with the primary axis, and occurs succes- 
 sively in the axes of the second, third, and higher orders. 
 
 I. In the simp'e cyme the ramification in the secondary and higher orders 
 follows the same type. 
 
 (a) Without a pseud-axis (see page 35). 
 
 The cyme : beneath the terminal flower spring several three or more 
 lateral shoots of equal vigour, e.g. many Euphorbias. This inflorescence greatly 
 resembles the true umbel, and in fact cannot be distinguished from a true 
 umbel which has a terminal flower. The identification of an inflorescence as 
 belonging to the cymose type depends in many cases on the fact that in the 
 higher orders of branching the cymes are reduced to dichasia. 
 
 The dichasium (Figs. 19 G and 20) consists of only two equal lateral shoots 
 arising at the same level below the terminal flower, and branching in a similar 
 manner. The successive false dichotomies commonly decussate, e.g. Valerian- 
 ella and the weaker inflorescences of many Euphorbias. 
 
 (/3) With a pseud-axis. 
 
 The scorpioid cyme (cincinnus and rhipidium) : in this th^ lateral branches 
 occur alternately on opposite sides (Fig. 19 A and B) : Boraginaceae, Crassu- 
 laceas, Iridaceae, Commelyuaceas, etc. 
 
 The helicoid cyme (bostryx and drepanium) : the lateral branches of the 
 successive ramifications always occur on the same side (Fig. 19 D) : this is 
 frequently found in Monocotyledons, such as Hemerocallis, Ornithogalum, 
 Alstroemeria, Juncaceas. 
 
 It has been ascertained, however, that in many cases (various Solanaceaa and 
 Boraginaceas) the so-called scorpioid cymes are monopodial; the axis is there- 
 fore not a pseud-axis but a true one, and the infloiescence must be regarded as 
 a i. trilateral raceme. 
 
 II. Compound cymose inflorescences arise on the one hand from the reduction 
 of the ramification in the higher orders, as, for instance, when the secondary 
 members of a cyme are not cymes, but dichasia: these are dichasia i cymes ; 
 they occur in many Euphorbias : again, when dichasia terminate in scorpioid or 
 helicoid cymes. On the other hand it sometimes occurs that helicoid cymes 
 are combined to form scorpioid cymes, as in Geranium. 
 
 C. Compound racemose and cymuse. inflorescences. It may occur that a com- 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJ). 493 
 
 pound inflorescence changes in type in the different orders of ramification. 
 Thus the branches of the first order may exhibit a racemose arrangement, and 
 those of the second a cymose arrangement, as in the dichasial racemes of many 
 Euphorbiae (e.g. E. Esula, amygdaloides), in the scorpioid racemes of the Horse- 
 chestnut, and in the helicoid capitula of many species of Allium. On the other 
 hand the branches of the first order may have a cymose, and those of the 
 second a racemose arrangement ; for instance, the helicoid cymes of capitula in 
 Cichorium. 
 
 Finally, there are certain terms used in describing inflorescences which refer 
 only to the general external appearance rather than to the mode of formation of 
 the inflorescence : thus, the panicle is a pyramidal inflorescence generally of the 
 racemose type, at least in its first ramification : the corymb is a racemose in- 
 floreecence of which all the ultimate ramifications lie in one plane and bear 
 flowers, e.g. the Elder, many Cruciferse : the amentum (catkin) is a simple or 
 compound spicate inflorescence, usually pendulous and elongated, bearing in- 
 conspicuous monosporangiate flowers, which falls off entire from tbe plant when 
 the flowering is over. Of cymose inflorescences there is the fascicle, consistiug 
 of a number of flowers on pedicels of equal length (Sweet William) ; the glome- 
 rule (Nettle and Box) or verticillaster (many Labiataa), consisting of a few sessile 
 or shortly pedicillate flowers; and the anthela, which is a compound inflores- 
 cence, in which the branches of the first order are gradually shorter from below 
 upwards (or rather from without inwards), as in Juncaceae. 
 
 To a floral axis arising from the ground, with no leaves, or with only a few 
 bracts, bearing a single flower or a more or less complex inflorescence, the term 
 scape is applied. 
 
 The Bracts (p. 79) are leaves borne on the inflorescence, in the 
 axils of which the flowers are developed : there may be a single 
 large bract, termed a spathe, enclosing the whole inflorescence, as in 
 Palms and in the Arum Lily (Z anted eschia cethiopicci) where fche 
 bract is white ; or the bracts may be brightly coloured (petaloid), as 
 in Poinsettia and other Euphorbiaceee where they are red, and in 
 Leyoesteria formos<i. Melampyrum, etc. ; or the bracts may be scaly, 
 forming an involucre round the inflorescence as in the Composite : 
 the glumes of the Grasses are scaly bracts ; the bracts are frequently 
 not very unlike the foliage-leaves, differing from them mainly in 
 form and size. 
 
 The portion of the floral axis below the flower (i.e. the peduncle 
 or the pedicel) commonly bears one or more bracteoles or prophylla. 
 In most Monocotyledons there is a single posterior prophyllum, 
 whilst in most Dicotyledons there are two lateral prophylla. In 
 some Monocotyledons, however (e.g. Hydrocharidacese, such as 
 Elodea, Vallisneria, Halophila ; and Amaryllidaceae, such as 
 Galanthus, Narcissus, Leucojum, etc.), there are two lateral pro- 
 phylla (remaining free in Haemanthus) which unite to form the 
 
494 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 so-called spathe which invests the flower of these plants. On the 
 other hand, some Dicotyledons have a single prophyllum which is, 
 however, always lateral : this is frequently the result of the sup- 
 pression of the second prophyllura, but there are cases (Ranunculus 
 aquatilis, auricomus. Lingua) in which this is apparently the normal 
 condition. 
 
 In some cases several bracteoles are arranged in a whorl, forming 
 
 an epicalyx, either close beneath the flower (as in Malva, Anemone 
 
 Hepati'ca, Dipsacus, Clusia, Camellia), or at some distance below it 
 
 (other species of Anemone). In some Nyctaginacese the epicalyx 
 
 may become an involucre enclosing several flowers ; this is due to 
 
 the fact that flowers are developed in the axils of some of the bracte- 
 
 ii oles of the terminal flower. Though they are generally ffreen, the 
 
 11 bracteoles are sometimes brightly coloured, as in some Amarantaceae 
 
 I and Nvctagmacese ; or scaly, as the lodicules of Grasses. 
 
 I || " * *"" ^^^^""""^^^^^^^ -**" '"" ' f "*" """ "'"" -^ ' ^ ^M 
 
 The Flower ($. 76) consists of an axis bearing, as a rule, both 
 perianth-leaves and sporophylls on the somewhat shortened and ex- 
 panded terminal portion of the axis which is the receptacle or torus. 
 
 The perianth-leaves are generally differentiated into two series : 
 an outer, of usually rather small green leaves, the sepals, consti- 
 tuting the calyx : an inner, of usually conspicuous brightly coloured 
 leaves, the petals, constituting the corolla. 
 
 The flower is usually ambisporangiate (hermaphrodite, mono- 
 clinous), but is not infrequently monosporangiate (unisexual, 
 diclinous, or even dioecious). The sporangia, with but few excep- 
 tions, are borne upon sporophylls (see p. 78) : the microsporophylls 
 (stamens) constitute the andrcecium, the macrosporophylls the 
 gynceceum, of the flower. 
 
 The growth of the floral axis terminates with the development 
 of the floral leaves at its apex, excepting in abnormal cases ; and 
 buds are not developed, except in monstrosities, in the axils of 
 these leaves. The characteristic feature of that portion of the 
 floral axis which actually bears .the flower is that the internodes 
 between successive floral leaves or whorls of leaves, are not as a 
 rule developed, so that all the floral leaves are closely packed and 
 are nearly at the same level, the perianth- leaves being external 
 and the sporophylls internal. It occasionally happens, however, 
 that one or more of the internodes within the flower may be deve- 
 loped to some extent : for instance, the internode (termed antho- 
 phore) between the calyx and the corolla, as in Lychnis and some 
 other Caryophyllaceoe ; that (termed gonophore} between the corolla 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJ). 
 
 495 
 
 and the androecium, as in the Passion-Flower, and in Orchids 
 where the styles adhere to it forming the gynostemium or column ; 
 that (termed gynophore} between the andrcecium and the gynaeceum, 
 as in Cleome (Capparidaceas), some Gentians, and some Cruciferse : 
 in Gynandropsis (Capparidacese) two internodes are developed, a 
 gonophore and a gynophore. 
 
 When the axis grows, as is usually the case, equally in all parts, 
 tbe gynceceum, being nearest to its apex, is the uppermost part of 
 the flower. When this is the case its insertion is above that of 
 the androecium and perianth (Fig. 310 H), and the ovary is said 
 to be superior and the flower hypogynous, as in Ranunculus, Papa- 
 . ver, Lilium, and Primula. But in a great number of plants the 
 perianth and androecium are raised by the intercalary growth (see 
 p. 17) of a lower portion of the axis (as represented by the outer 
 
 FIG. 310. Diagram of H hypogynous ; P perigynous ; E epigynous flowers ; o axis ; 
 fc calyx ; c corolla ; s stamens ; / carpels ; n stigma ; sit ovule. 
 
 portion of the torus) and stand on a circular rim surrounding the 
 apex of the axis which lies at a lower level. Of this condition 
 two different forms occur: in the one, the carpels are inserted in 
 the depression at the apex of the axis (Fig. 310 P), and there form 
 one or more ovaries free from it, primarily at least, though they 
 may subsequently become adherent to it; in such cases, as in the 
 Rose and Apple, the flower is said to be perigynous : in the other, 
 the carpels spring from the upper rim of the cavity which is 
 formed by the axis itself and simply cover it in at the top ; such 
 flowers are said to be epigynous, and the ovary to be inferior, e.g. 
 Gourds and UmbelliferaD (Fig. 310 E). Many transitional forms 
 between these two extremes are found. 
 
 Stipules are sometimes developed in connection with the floral 
 leaves; thus in some Rosaceae (Potentilla, Comarum, Geum, Al- 
 
 v. s. B. K K 
 
496 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 chemilla) the stipules of the sepals form a calyculus or epicalyx: 
 stipules are developed in connexion with the petals of some 
 Sapotacece (Dipholis, Mimusops) ; and in connexion with the 
 stamens of Allium, Ornithogalum, some Zygophyllaceas, etc. 
 
 The Pliyllotaxy of the Flower. The floral leaves, like the foliage- 
 leaves on the stem (see p. 25), are frequently arranged spirally, 
 (e.g. Calycanthus, Anemone, Trollius) when the flower is acyjdic^ 
 The most common divergence is f, but higher divergences also 
 occur, especially in the androecium, when numerous small organs 
 are inserted upon an expanded axis (e.g. Ranunculus). In the 
 spiral or acyclic flower there is either no well-marked distinction 
 of the various series, that is, the members of the calyx, coroVlg,, 
 and andrcecium, are connected by intermediate forms (e.<^Nym- 
 phsea) ; or the various series are sharply defined, each series taking 
 up one or more turns of the spiral. 
 
 In most cases the floral leaves are arranged in whorls, that is, 
 the flowers are cyclic. Cyclic flowers are connected by inter- 
 mediate forms with the acyclic, especially through pentamerous 
 forms. Thus some pentamerons flowers are hemicyclic, that is, 
 some of their floral leaves are arranged spirally, and the others in 
 whorls. Instances of a spiral perianth combined with cyclic sporo- 
 phylls are afforded by those flowers in which the members of the 
 perianth, calyx, or corolla are developed in - succession, and the 
 prefloration is quincuncial (see p. 60) ; the perianth is spiral in 
 the flowers of the Cannabinacese, Chenopodiacea3, and Amarantacese; 
 the calyx is spiral in the flowers of the Bindweed (Calystegia 
 Sepium), the Rose, some Boraginacese (Cerinthe, Echium, etc.), 
 Geraniaceae, Oxalidacese, Linacea3, Caryophyllaceaa, and many other 
 dicotyledonous orders; both calyx and corolla are spiral in Tern- 
 strcemia and Clusia. Though the phyllotaxy is not f in Camellia, 
 the calyx and corolla are spirally arranged. In other cases, the 
 Sorophyljis are spirally arranged, whilst the perianth-leaves are 
 cyclic. For instance, in Magnolia, Ranunculus, and Helleborus, 
 both stamens and carpels are spirally arranged ; and in Delphinium 
 and Aconitum, the stamens only. 
 
 Closely related to the foregoing cases of phyllotaxy occur- 
 ring in fact not only in flowers of closely allied species, but also 
 in flowers of the same species arc certain of the typical forms of 
 cyclic arrangement in which each series (whether perianth, calyx, 
 corolla, or androecium), instead of consisting of five floral leaves, 
 taking up two turns of a spiral with a divergence of -f , consists of 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM^. 497 
 
 four or six leaves arranged in two whorls, consisting respectively 
 of two or three leaves. 
 
 For purposes of comparative description, it is convenient to 
 regard each turn of the spiral in an acyclic or a hemicyclic flower 
 as equivalent to a whorl : thus a well-defined series with f arrange- 
 ment would represent two whorls. 
 
 As in the case of the foliage-leaves (see p. 4.5), so in that of the 
 floral leaves, the order of development is as a rule acropetal : 
 hence each whorl of the flower is developed later than the one 
 external to ifc, and earlier than the one internal to it. When, 
 however, a series of floral organs is becoming degenerate, its de- 
 velopment is retarded ; for instance, in the Composite, Valeri- 
 anaceaa, and Umbellifer83, the degenerate calyx is developed after 
 the corolla, or even after the androecium. The members of each 
 whorl may be developed either simultaneously or successively. 
 
 In their arrangement, also, the floral leaves resemble the foliage- 
 leaves. When, in an acyclic or hemicyclic flower, the spiral is 
 continuous with the same divergence from one series of floral 
 organs to another, the members of the successive series lie on 
 the same radii drawn from the centre of the flower, that is, they 
 are directly superposed. A good example of this is afforded by 
 the terminal flower of the inflorescence of Berberis (Fig. 311 ; 
 occasionally in Epimedium, and also in Gagea among Monocotyle- 
 dons), where the stamens, petals, and sepals are all directly super- 
 posed : similarly in Ternstrcomia and Clusia, where the sepals and 
 petals are in a continuous -- spiral, the petals are superposed on 
 the sepals. When, on the other hand, the divergence varies from 
 one series to another, direct superposition does not occur, but some 
 form of alternation, as is generally the case in acyclic flowers : for 
 instance, the calyx of certain (pentamerous) forms of Anemone 
 and other Ranunculaceae is arranged with a f divergence, whereas 
 the divergence of the stamens is -fa or -/ f . In hemicyclic flowers 
 with a simple spiral perianth and cyclic stamens (e.g. Canna- 
 binaceiB, Chenopodiacese, Amarantaceee), the stamens are super- 
 posed on the perianth-leaves. 
 
 When the floral leaves are in whorls consisting of equal numbers 
 of members, the general rule is that the members of the successive 
 whorls alternate with each other : thus, in a flower with calyx, 
 corolla, andrcecium, and gynaeceum, each consisting of a single 
 whorl of five members, the petals alternate with the sepals, the 
 stamens with the petals, and the carpels with the stamens ; and 
 
498 
 
 PAKT 111. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 if radii be drawn from the centre of the flower, it will be seen 
 that the stamens are opposite to the sepals and the carpels to the 
 petals, or more briefly, that the stamens are antisepalous and the 
 carpels are antipetalous. This is not, however, a case of direct 
 superposition, since the corolla intervenes between the androecium 
 and the calyx, and the androecium intervenes between the gynce- 
 ceum and the corolla. 
 
 There are, however, certain cases in which this law of alternation 
 does not prevail, in which, that is, the members of successive 
 whorls are directly superposed. For instance, the (45) stamens 
 are directly antipetalous in several natural orders (Primulaceee, 
 Myrsinaceae, Sapotacea3, Plumbaginacese, Ampelidacese, Rham- 
 iiaceae) ; again, in some Campaiiulacese (e.g. Campanula Medium, 
 Fig. 312, Michauxra) the (5) carpels are directly superposed on 
 the stamens. 
 
 The Floral Diagram. These various arrangements of the floral 
 
 FIG. 311. -Floral diagram (ground-plan) 
 of an acyclic flower, with f divergence in 
 the calyx, corolla, and androecium (ter- 
 minal flower of Berberis : after Eichler). 
 
 FIG. 312. Floral diagram of Cam- 
 panula Medium : the five carpels are 
 directly superposed on the stamens. 
 (After Eichler). 
 
 leaves, like those of the foliage-leaves, are most clearly repre- 
 sented by means of diagrams (see p. 25). In & floral diagram, the 
 calyx lies externally, and the gynasceum, as being the uppermost 
 series of organs (even in epigynous flowers) lies most internally. 
 In order to be able readily to distinguish the various series, 
 symbols are used which recall some peculiarity of their form : 
 thus the midrib of the sepals is indicated, and, in the case of 
 the stamens, the anthers. 
 
 If only such relations of position as can be actually observed in 
 a flower are indicated in the diagram, a simple empirical diagram 
 is the result. If, however, the results of the investigation of the 
 development of the flower and of the comparison of it with others 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANQIOSPERJLI. 
 
 499 
 
 be borne in mind, a general plan of arrangement will he detected, 
 and the individual peculiarities of arrangement, quit k apart from 
 any variation in the form of the organs, will be seen to be due 
 either to the suppression of one or more whorls or of one or more 
 members of a whorl, or, more rarely, to a multiplication of the_ 
 whorls or of their members. If, however, the organs which are 
 absent, but which should typically be present, be indicated in the 
 empirical diagram by dots, it becomes a theoretical diagram. In 
 this way it is possible to arrive at general types on which large 
 numbers of flowers are constructed. Fig. 313, for instance, is 
 the empirical diagram of the flower of the Lily, and it is at the 
 same time the type on which the flower of Grasses (Fig. 314) is 
 constructed in which certain members are suppressed, 
 
 In constructing a floral diagram the position of the main axis 
 should be indicated by a dot placed above the diagram : the 
 bract, which would of course be exactly opposite to it, may or may 
 
 FIG. 313. Floral Diagram 
 of a Lily. 
 
 FIG. 314. Floral Diagram 
 of a Grass. 
 
 FIG. 315. Floral Dia- 
 gram of a Crucifer ; the 
 median stamens are 
 duplicated. 
 
 not be indicated : the side of the flower toward the main axis is 
 said to be posterior, and that toward the subtending bract, anterior. 
 A plane which passes through the flower and also through the 
 main stem and the median line of the bract is termed the median 
 plane or section of the flower : the plane which cuts the median 
 })! ne at right angles is the lateral yjlane or section: and the 
 plane which bisects the angles made by the intersection of the 
 median and lateral planes is the diagonal plane or section: any 
 plane other than these is said to be oblique. By means of these 
 conceptions the position of the parts of a flower may be accurately 
 indicated : thus, in describing the flower of the Cruciferee (Fig. 
 315), the two external sepals lie in the median plane; the two 
 inner sepals, the two outer stamens, and the two carpels, in the 
 
500 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 lateral plane ; whilst the petals and the four inner stamens lie in 
 the diagonal planes. 
 
 The number and the relations of the different parts of the flower 
 may be indicated not by diagrams only, but also by formulae in 
 which, as in the diagrams, for the sake of clearness, all the 
 peculiarities of form are overlooked. Thus the diagram Fig. 
 313 may be expressed by the formula 3, 03, AS + 3, G, which 
 means that the calyx K, and the corolla (7, each consist of a 
 single whorl of three members, the andrcecium of two whorls 
 each of three members, and the gyna3ceum of one whorl of three 
 members, all in regular alternation. When one whorl is super- 
 posed on another, the superposition is indicated in the formula by 
 a line_J^ between the^ whorls. If the number of members in any 
 whorl is variable, the letter n is used instead of a number. Thus, 
 for instance, Kn, Cu, An + n, GIL is the theoretical formula of 
 most Monocotyledons. The absence of a whorl is expressed by a 
 cypher 0, and of individual members by the number of those 
 actually present. Thus the formula for the flower of a Grass 
 (Fig. 314) is IfO, CO, A3 + 0, 6? 1 . Superior and inferior ovaries 
 are indicated by a stroke below or above the corresponding figure, 
 and duplication by the exponent 2; thus the diagram Fig. 315 
 is represented by the formula K2 + 2, X 4, A2 + 2 2 , G^ 
 the_X_after G indicating that the position of the petals is diagonal^ 
 i.e. that the four petals alternate with the four sepals, as if the 
 latter all belonged to the same whorl. The bracket in which the 
 number of the carpels of the gynaeceum G is enclosed, indicates 
 that the members thus bracketed are coherent. Staminodia may be 
 distinguished by a f before the figure. When the perianth is not 
 differentiated into calyx and corolla, it is expressed by the letter 
 P: thus the formula for the flower of Chenopodium is P5 | A5 G ( ^. 
 
 The Number of Members in a Whorl shows considerable varia- 
 tion : thus, in Monocotyledons it is generally three (rarely two or 
 five), whereas in Dicotyledons it is frequently five, less frequently 
 two or four, rarely three (e.q. most Lauracese, Berberis, Rheum, 
 Polygonum). The number of members in a whorl is indicated 
 by the terms di- tri- tetra- penta-merous, etc. Whorls containing the 
 same number of members are said to be isomerous ; or, when the 
 number of members is not uniform, heteromerous. Flowers having 
 isomerous whorls are said to be encyclic or isocyclic, whereas when 
 the whorls are heteromerous the flowers are said to be heterocyclic. 
 Of these two conditions the latter is the more common, though the 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJI. 501 
 
 former is frequently realized (e.g. many Monocotyledons). The 
 heterocyclic condition is due either to the number of members in 
 one or more of the whorls being smaller (oUgomery) or greater (pleio- 
 mwry) than that which is the typical number. The commoner cases 
 of oligomery are to be found in the whorls of sporophylls, especi- 
 ally in the gynasceum : for instance, the typically pentamerous~ 
 flower of the Saxifragacea3 is heterocyclic because of the oli- 
 gomerous (dimerous) gynaeceum; similarly, in the Scrophula- 
 riacete, the androecium is generally, and the gynaeceum is always, 
 oligomerous, the former consisting of but two or four stamens, the 
 latter of but two carpels. Pleiomery is of less frequent oc- 
 currence : however in the Cruciferae (Fig. 315) the whorls of the 
 calyx, the outer whorl of stamens, and the gynaeceum, are 
 dimerous, but the corolla and the inner whorl of stamens are 
 tetramerous and hence pleiomerous : similarly, one or more whorls 
 of the androecium in the Papaveraceae, Phytolaccacese, and Poly- 
 gonacece, are pleiomerous : and probably in other cases where the 
 number of the stamens is twice that of the petals or sepals, that 
 is, where the flower is diplostemonous, the condition is due rather 
 to pleiomery (duplication) of a single whorl than to the develop- 
 ment of two whorls as is usually assumed (see below, under 
 pleiotaxy). Pleiomery of the corolla is common in double flowers. 
 
 Heteromery necessarily affects the alternation of the floral leaves 
 of the successive whorls. Thus, in the Cruciferae, where the calyx 
 consists of two alternating dimerous whorls, and the corolla of a 
 single tetramerous whorl, the four petals alternate with the four 
 sepals just as if the sepals all belonged to a single whorl. When, 
 as is very frequently the case, the gynaeceum is oligomerous, the 
 carpels (or carpel) present do not appear to occupy any definite 
 position with regard to the preceding organs. 
 
 The Number of Whorls in the Flower. The simplest case is that in 
 which each series of floral organs calyx, corolla, androecium, gynae- 
 ceum occupies a single whorl, or is monocyclic : this is realised in 
 a few natural orders, either accompanied with regular alternation 
 (e.g. Asclepias, Cornus, Caprifoliaceas generally, Iridaceae, Orchi- 
 daceae), or with antipetalous stamens (e.g. Bhamriaceae, Ampeli- 
 daceae). In this case the flower is tetracyclic. 
 
 More commonly one or more of the series may occupy two 
 whorls, or be dicyclic. This is generally the case when the whorls 
 are dimerous (e.g. both corolla and androecium of Oleaceae and 
 Fumariaceae: corolla of Papaver : calyx and androecium of Cruci- 
 
502 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 ferae ; perianth of Urtica and Moras). Where the whorls are 
 trimerous the dicyclic condition is frequent : thus in the majority 
 of Monocotyledons there are two whorls of stamens whilst all the 
 other series of the flower are monocyclic, so that the flower is 
 diplostemonous with regular alternation : in the comparatively 
 few trimeromTSowers of Dicotyledons the dicyclic condition may 
 be observed in the andrcecium (Rheum, Polygonum, Berberis), or 
 in calyx, corolla, and andrcecium (Cocculus). The -f calyx, which 
 is to be found in very many Dicotyledons, may be regarded as 
 equivalent to a dicyclic calyx (see p. 497). A dicyclic-gynasceum 
 is to be found in a few Monocotyledons (e.g. Alisma, Butomus) 
 and Dicotyledons (Phytolacca, and Malvaceae such as Malva, 
 Althaea, Lavatera). 
 
 The conclusion to be drawn from these facts is that in the com- 
 plete dichlamydeous ambisporangiate flowers of Angiosperms there 
 are, as a general rule, five whorls of floral leaves ; the flowers are 
 pentacyclic. In most Monocotyledons the five whorls belong, one 
 to the calyx, one to the corolla, two to the andrcecium, and one to 
 the gynaeceum: in most Dicotyledons they belong, two to the calyx, 
 one to the corolla, one to the Andrcecium, and one to the gynaeceum. 
 
 If, now, such a pentacyclic flower with regularly alternating 
 whorls be taken as a type or standard of comparison, it will be 
 observed that many flowers deviate from it by having either a 
 larger or a smaller number of whorls, the deviation being combined 
 in some cases with direct superposition. 
 
 Pleiotaxy, or an increase in the number of the whorls in a flower, 
 is characteristic of a number of genera belonging to various 
 natural orders. Instances have been mentioned above of Mono- 
 cotyledons and of Dicotyledons having flowers with a dicyclic 
 gynseceum ; of Dicotyledons with a dicyclic corolla or andrce- 
 cium : but the number of whorls is sometimes much greater 
 (15 in Aquilegia), when the flowers, as also the special series, are 
 said to be poly cyclic. Thus, the calyx is polycyclic in Nandina 
 (Berberidaceaa) and in Sychnosepalum (Menispermaceas) ; the 
 androecium, in Aquilegia, Camellia, Rosa, Lauraceae, and Papaver- 
 aceae ; the gynaeceum, in some Alismaceae and Butomaceas. JEn 
 some cases, one series becomes polycyclic at the expense of 
 another : thus in the acyclic flowers of Clematis, Anemone, and 
 Caltha, the petals are replaced by stamens so that the number of 
 turns of the spiral ( = whorls) in the andrcecium is increased whilst 
 the corolla disappears. The " doubling " of flowers is commonly 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM^E. 
 
 503 
 
 due to the polycyclic development of the corolla, the additional 
 whorls being either new formations, or the result of the more or 
 less complete replace- 
 ment of the sporophylls 
 bj petals. 
 
 An important case is 
 that to be found in 
 several Dicotyledonous 
 orders (Ericaceas, Fig. 
 455, p. 655, Pyrolaceee, 
 Crassulaceae, Fig. 318, 
 Saxif ragacea?, some 
 Caryophy llacene, Fig. 
 317; Onagraceae, Fig. 
 323 ; GeraniaceoD, Ox- 
 alidacese, Zygophyllacese, 
 Rutacea3, Fig. 317 0) 
 where the flower is diglo- 
 stemonous, and the 
 andrcecium is apparently dicyclic : but the flower is not simply 
 diplostemonous (as in the Monocotyledons), because the whorls do 
 not alternate regularly; the stamens of the apparently outer whorl 
 are directly antipetalous, consequently the stamens of the inner 
 whorl are antisepalous, and the carpels (in eucyclic flowers) are 
 antipetalous. Such flowers are said to be obdiplostemonous (Fig. 
 317 0). 
 
 A variation of the typical obdiplostemonous flower is found in certain Caryo- 
 phyllacese (e.g. Viscaria, Fig. 317 A ; Lychnis, Cerastium, some species of 
 
 O 
 
 FIG. 316. Floral diagram of Rosa tomentosa, show, 
 ing the polycyclic androecium and gynaeceum. (After 
 Eichler.) 
 
 A B C 
 
 Fio. 317. Floral diagrams of two Caryophyllaceous flowers illustrating two forma of 
 obdipiostemony : A (Viscaria vulgaris) with antisepalous carpels: B (Spergula arvensis) 
 with antipetalous carpels (after Eichler) : C diagram of obdiplostemonous flower of 
 Dictamnus. 
 
504 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Silene) with encyclic (tetra- or penta-merous) flowers, in that, though the ap- 
 parently outer stamens are directly antipetalous, the carpels are antisepalous. 
 This case seems to be connected with that of the Primulaceae (see p. 498), where 
 there is a single whorl of antipetalous stamens and the carpels are antisepalous, 
 through the Sapotacea where a whorl of antisepalous staminodes (Sideroxylon, 
 Lucuma) or of fertile stamens (Isonandra) is developed. It would, in fact, 
 appear that obdiplostemony may be the result of either pleiomery or pleiotaxy 
 taking place in a primitively isomerous monocyclic antipetalous androscium 
 (as in Primula) ; when the carpels, in an obdiplostemonous flower, are anti- 
 sepalous, it seems to be simply a case of pleiomery; when they are antipetalous, 
 it would seem to be a case of pleiotaxy, the androecium having become dicyclic 
 by the development of an inner whorl of stamens consequently involving a 
 change in the position of the gynaeceum. 
 
 OUgotqxij) or a decrease in the number of whorls in a flower, is 
 frequently due to suppression. For instance, owing to the sup- 
 pression of one whorl of stamens in some Monocotyledons, either 
 the outer (some Haemadoraceae, also Cypripedium), or the inner 
 (Iridaceae, most Orchidaceae), the andrcecium is monocyclic. In 
 some cases a whole series is suppressed : for instance the corolla 
 may be absent (e.g. Glaux, among the Primulaceae ; Alchemilla, 
 Sanguisorba, among the Rosaceaa : some Caryophyllacese, such as 
 Sagina apetala, Scleranthus, etc.) : or the androecium or gynaeceum 
 (monoclinous flowers, such as those of Sedum Rhodiola, Rhamnus 
 cathartica, Hydrocharidaceae, ray-florets of Composites, etc.) : or 
 the whole perianth (Fraxinus excelsior). 
 
 In most cases of oligotaxy in isomerous flowers, the relative 
 position of the remaining whorls is undisturbed : thus, in the 
 apetalous flower of Glaux, the typically antipetalous stamens 
 alternate with the sepals, and in that of Sanguisorba the stamens 
 are opposite to the sepals ; in the carpellary flower of Rhamnus 
 the carpels are antisepalous as in an ambisporangiate flower. 
 But this is by no means always the case : for instance, in the 
 apetalous flow^er of Alchemilla the stamens alternate with the 
 sepals, seeming to take the place of the missing petals : again, 
 the staminate flower of Sedum Rhodiola (Fig. 318) has rudi- 
 mentary carpels which are antipetalous, whereas in the carpellary 
 flowers the carpels are antisepalous, apparently occupying the 
 place of one of the missing staminal whorls; similarly in Halophila 
 (Hydrocharidaceae) the three carpels of the carpellary flower occupy 
 the same relative position as the three stamens in the staminate 
 flower. 
 
 Alt'.ough it is true that, as explained in the foregoing paragraphs, both 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANG10SPERM.E. 
 
 505 
 
 oligotaxy and oligomery are frequently due to suppression, in the one case of 
 one or more whorls, in the other of one or more members of a whorl, it must 
 not be assumed that this is the only possible explanation. On the contrary, 
 it is very probable that the simple structure of the flower in some plants (e.g. 
 Urticales and Amentales among Dicotyledons) is not the result of suppression, 
 but is itself typical : in other words, these flowers are probably to be regarded, 
 not as reduced, but as primitive, belonging to plants which are, it may be, of a 
 relatively low type among Phanerogams, but which are on the up-grade, and 
 not on the down-grade of organisation. The distinction of primitive from 
 reduced forms is, at 
 the present time, per- 
 haps the most im- 
 portant morphological 
 problem presented by 
 Angiosperms, for until 
 it is solved the classi- 
 fication of the group 
 will continue to re- 
 main unsatisfactory 
 and inconclusive. 
 
 FIG. 318. Floral diagrams of Sedum RJiodiola. In the 
 staminate flower A, the (abortive) carpels are antipetalous : in 
 the carpellary flower B, the carpels are antibepalous. (After 
 Eichler.) 
 
 The Relations of 
 Position between the 
 floral leaves and 
 those which precede them on the floral axis, can be most readily 
 made out in the case of a flower borne laterally on a main axis, 
 the pedicel springing from the axil of a bract. Where^as in most 
 Monocotyledons, the flower-stalk bears but a single bracteole or 
 prophyllum (see p. 
 493), this is gener- 
 ally situated op- 
 posite to the bract 
 
 (Fig. 319 A), that 
 
 i / ^"SVN \ i m ^ ,?r^\ - % \ i 
 
 -P. 
 
 is, posteriorly to 
 the flower ; in this 
 case the odd sepal 
 of the trimerous 
 calyx is situated 
 anteriorly. When, 
 as in most Dico- 
 tyledons, there are 
 two lateral pro- 
 phylla (usually indicated as a and /?), one on each side of the 
 flower-stalk, the position of the sepals varies according to the 
 
 PIG. 319. Floral diagrams of Lilium bulbi/emm (after 
 Eichler) : A with normal position of the prophyllum p, op- 
 posite to the bract b: B with lateral prophyllum (p). 
 
506 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 composition of the calyx : thus, if the calyx be trimerous or penta- 
 merous, the odd sepal is, as a rule, median, generally posterior or, 
 less commonly, anterior (e.g. Leguminosse) : the tetramerous calyx 
 has usually two sepals in the median plane and two in the lateral 
 (e.g. Philadelphus; Isnardia among Onagraceae; Rhamnus cathartica, 
 
 A 
 
 FIG. 320. Floral diagrams of Jasminum nudiflorum (after Eichler) : A with normal lateral 
 position of the prophylla : B with antero- posterior position of the prophylla : the calyx is 
 hexamerous and dicyclic, the two sepals of the outer whorl alternating with the prophylla : 
 the symmetry of the flower is isobilateral. 
 
 Ilex). In some few cases, when there are two lateral prophylla, 
 the four sepals of an apparently tetramerous calyx are arranged 
 diagonally (e.g. Veronica and other Scrophulariacese, Plantago, 
 probably also Mimosa, Fig. 321); this exceptional position is due 
 to the fact that in these plants the calyx is typically pentamerous, 
 though, in consequence of the suppression of the posterior median 
 sepal, it appears to be tetramerous. 
 
 As a general rule, the genetic relation between the sepals and 
 the prophylla is that the first sepal of a 
 successively-developed calyx arises on 
 the opposite side of the axis (though 
 higher) to the single prophyllum or to the 
 upper (/?) when there are two. Hence 
 the position of the prophylla affects that 
 of the sepals and, consequently, that of 
 all the floral organs. Thus, it is not un- 
 common in the Monocotyledons for the 
 single prophyllum to be placed either 
 obliquely or laterally (some Liliacese, 
 Canna, etc.), and then all the whorls of the flower present a 
 corresponding displacement (Fig. 319 B) ; the same thing occurs 
 
 FIG. 321. Floral diagram of 
 Mimosa, showing the diagonal 
 position of the sepals (after 
 Eichler). 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM.E. 507 
 
 in Dicotyledons when, as is frequently the case, the prophylla 
 are not exactly lateral, but converge anteriorly or posteriorly, or 
 are even anterior and posterior (Fig. 320 JB). 
 
 When the one or the two prophylla are suppressed, the position 
 of the sepals may be the same as if the prophylla were present 
 {e.g. Cruciferae) ; but, more commonly, the first sepals are de- 
 veloped in the places of the missing prophylla. Thus, in the 
 absence of two lateral prophylla, the first two sepals of a tetra- 
 merous calyx are lateral (e.g. tetramerous calyx of Francoa, 
 Epilobium, Clarkia) ; again, in a trimerous calyx, .the first nor- 
 mally anterior sepal tends to be posterior when the single pos- 
 terior prophyllum is absent (e.g. Orchis, Musa) ; and, further, in a 
 pentamerous calyx the first and second sepals are postero-lateral 
 (e.g. Primula, Reseda) since the first sepal occupies the place of 
 prophyllum a, and the second that of prophyllum /?, with slight 
 posterior convergence. 
 
 The Symmetry of the Flower. The flower presents all the 
 varieties of symmetry which are discussed in Part I. (p. 8) ; these 
 are mainly determined by the number and the relative develop- 
 ment of the floral leaves, and in a few cases by the development 
 of the floral axis or receptacle. 
 
 The symmetry maybe radial or actinomorphic. When an eucyclic 
 flower is also regular, that is, when the members of each whorl 
 are similar to each other in size and form, it can be divided into 
 symmetrical halves by sections made in two or more planes, the 
 halves produced by section in one plane being similar to those 
 produced by section in one or more other planes. Such a flower 
 is poly symmetrical (see p. 9). The number of these planes of 
 symmetry depends upon the numerical constitution of the flower. 
 Thus a regular eucyclic trimerous flower (e.g. Lilium and other 
 Monocotyledons) can be so divided in three planes, the median 
 and the two diagonals, that all the three pairs of resulting halves 
 are exactly alike (Fig. 322 B). Similarly, the pentamerous flower 
 of Primula, Geranium, species of Campanula, is divisible in five 
 planes (Fig. 322 A}. But where the flower is tetramerous (e.g. 
 Fuchsia, Rhamnus catliartica, Euonymus europceus), there are but 
 two planes of section, the median and the lateral, which will give 
 exactly similar halves, though the flower is also symmetrically 
 but diversely divisible in the diagonal planes (Fig. 323 ^4) ; or, 
 again, where the flower is hexamerous (e.g. species of Sedum) it 
 is symmetrically divisible in twelve planes, but the halves produced 
 
508 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 A B 
 
 FIG. 322. A Diagram of the pentamerons flower 
 of Primu'a, showing the five planes of symmetry; 
 the stamens are antipetalous ; there are no pro- 
 phylla. B Diagram of the tdmerous flower of 
 Lilium, showing the three planes of symmetry. 
 (After Eichler.) 
 
 by the section in six of the planes are unlike those produced by 
 section in the other six planes. 
 
 The symmetry may be isobilateral ; in this case the flower is 
 divisible into symmetrical halves in two planes, but the halves 
 
 produced by section in one 
 plane are unlike those pro- 
 duced by section in the 
 other plane. Thus, a re- 
 gular eucyclic dimerous 
 flower (e.g. Circcea luteti- 
 ana, Fig. 323 B ; Fraxinus 
 dipetala\ is symmetrically 
 divisible in the median 
 and lateral planes, but the 
 halves produced by the 
 median section differ from 
 those produced by the 
 lateral section. This is 
 true also of some regular 
 heterocyclic flowers, such as those of the Cruciferae, Jasminum, 
 Olea europcea, Cornus, Hamamelis, the whorls of which are 2- 
 or 4- merous, and of the somewhat peculiar flower of Dicentra. 
 
 The symmetry may be zygomorphic, that is, the flower may be 
 mow asymmetrical, there being only one plane in which it is sym- 
 metrically divisible. This condition is to be found in regular 
 
 heterocyclic flowers, and 
 is the result of oligomery 
 of the whorls, generally of 
 the gynseceum, rarely of 
 the androecium. Flowers 
 of this type are common 
 among Dicotyledons (e.g. 
 in the Ribesiaceae, Apo- 
 cynaceas, Boraginacece, 
 Solanacea3, Gentiariaceae, 
 Campanulaceee, Compo- 
 sitae, Rosaceae, Saxifrag- 
 aceas, Umbelliferee, etc), 
 
 FIG. 323 A Diagram of the tetramerons flower 
 of Fuchsia, showing the four planes of symmetry. 
 B Diagram of the dimerous flower of Circsea, show- 
 ing isobilateral symmetry. 
 
 the oligomerous gynasceum having 1-4, generally 2, carpels, the 
 rest of the flower being pentamerous or hexamerous. In this case 
 the plane of symmetry is determined by the position of the carpels. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANER00AMIA : ANGIOSPERJLE. 
 
 509 
 
 Tims, when thev- -arpels, the plane of symmetry is generally 
 
 median ^ s are frequently median or, less com- 
 
 p,, minor, Ribes alpinum, Fig. 324 A, B) : 
 
 are placed obliquely (e.g. many Solanaceae, 
 
 ti as Petunia, Fig. 324 D ; Datura, Hyoscyamus : Menyanthes 
 among Gentianacew, Fig. 324 1* 7 ; Saxifraga), the plane of symmetry 
 is oblique. Similarly, when the trynaeceum is monomerous 01 
 trimerous, if it is so situated that it > plane of symmetry coincides 
 with the median plane of th-- dower (e.g. with monomerous 
 Mirabilis, Mahomu with trimerous gynaeceum, Pole- 
 
 D E F 
 
 FIGK 324. Floral diagrams illustrating monosymmetry due to oligomery of the prynse- 
 ceum : A Vinca minor; B Ribes alpinum ; iu these the plane of symmetry is median : C Sxi- 
 fraga; D Petunia; in these the plane of symmetry is oblique: gl gland: a /3 prophylla : 
 E terminal flower of Gentiana verna, with median plane of symmetry: F lateral flower of 
 Menyanthes trifoliata, with oblique plane of symmetry ; p p prophylla. (After Eichler.) 
 
 monium ; some Caryophyllaceae including most species of Silene, 
 Stellaria, Spergularia, etc.; some Campanulaceae; Deutzia crenata; 
 Sambucus Ebulus, etc.), then the plane of symmetry of the flower 
 is the median plane ; but when the plane of symmetry of the 
 gynaeceum. is oblique (e.g. with monomerous gynaeceum, Berberis, 
 Anacardium ; with trimerous gynaeceum, some Malpighiacese, 
 ^Esculus) the plane of symmetry of the whole flower is oblique 
 likewise. 
 
510 
 
 PAET III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Fio. 325. Floral diagram of 
 Commelyna ccelestis showing mo- 
 nosymmetry due to oligomery 
 of the androecium : the plane 
 of symmetry is oblique : the 
 three black stamens are sterile, 
 and the postero-lateral stami- 
 node is often absent : the 
 antero-lateral fertile stamen 
 has a broader connective than 
 the others. (After Eichler.) 
 
 Monosymmetry in consul uence of an oligomerous androeeium 
 is less COI-P ""'?! ^a good ii 
 afford ' coelestis, in \v 
 
 flower the pL uimetry is oblique 
 
 (Fig. iinetry is also cha- 
 
 racteri.s. flowers, whether 
 
 eucyclic or heterocyclic ; oi , wers, tliac 
 is, in which the members of one or 
 more wb/ x- ' differ in various respects 
 amon^ 1 - lemselves, accompanied fre- 
 quently by a reduction in the typical 
 number of members in one or other of 
 the whorls, frequently of the andrceciunv. 
 it is, in fact, to irregular flowers that 
 the term zygomorphic is specially applied 
 in Descriptive Botany. Such a flower 
 usually presents a clear distinction into 
 two diverse portions, an anterior and a 
 posterior, separated by the lateral plane, whilst the two lateral 
 halves about the median plane are symmetrical ; hence it is 
 clearly dorsiventral (Fig. 326). 
 
 Dorsiventrality is presented by some flowers which, so far as 
 
 their early development is 
 concerned, or even so far 
 as is shown by their floral 
 diagram, are actinomorphic, 
 isobilateral, or simply zy- 
 gomorphic, the dorsiven- 
 trality being due to the 
 subsequent irregular de- 
 velopment of some of the 
 floral leaves ; as in some 
 eucyclic flowers (e.g. among 
 Monocotyledons, Agapan- 
 thus, Alstroemeria, Ama- 
 ryllis, Gladiolus ; among 
 Dicotyledons, Dictamnus, 
 and other Rutese, species of 
 Impatiens, Pelargonium), 
 and in some heterocyclic 
 flowers (e.g. some Scrophulariaceas, Labiate, some Caprifoliacea3, 
 
 FIG. 326. Dorsiventral flower cf a Heracleum 
 (mag) 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM^. 
 
 511 
 
 Violaceae, Echinm, Lobelia, Orchidacese, the marginal flowers of 
 the inflorescences in some Umbellifera3 and the ray- florets of some 
 Composite). The degree of irregularity in these flowers varies 
 widely ; the irregularity may be very slight, due to the more active 
 growth of the leaves (perianth- leaves only, or stamens also) of 
 one half of the flower, either the posterior (e.g. Gladiolus), or the 
 anterior (e.g. Amaryllis), which causes an upward or a downward 
 curvature ; this is more marked in Dictamnus where the calyx 
 and corolla tend to form two lips, an upper and a lower; this 
 bilabiate form of flower is more f ally developed in the calyx and 
 corolla of the Labiatae, the corolla (personate, the lips being closed) 
 of the Scrophulariaceae, and of the Orchidaceaa and Lobelia. In 
 not a few cases the irregularity of the flower is increased by the 
 development of spurs from some portion of the perianth (e.g. 
 among Monocotyledons, Or- 
 chis, Rhinopetalum, from the 
 corolla ; among Dicotyledons, 
 Linaria, Viola, from the co- 
 rolla ; Pelargonium, from the 
 calyx). A remarkable mor- 
 phological feature is offered by 
 the flowers of Orchis and of 
 Lobelia which are resupinate ; 
 that is, in consequence of tor- 
 sion of the pedicel, the pos- 
 terior side of the flower becomes 
 anterior. The plane of sym- 
 metry is generally median in 
 these flowers. 
 
 In some few cases the irregularity, leading to dorsiventrality, 
 is due, not to the unequal development of the floral leaves, but 
 to the configuration of the floral receptacle, so that the floral 
 leaves are not developed in a radially symmetrical manner (e.g. 
 Reseda, Papilionea?, Fig. 327). 
 
 When in irregular flowers the single plane of symmetry is the 
 median plane, the flower is dorsi ventral : but there are other cases 
 (e.g. flowers of some Fumariaceae, Fumaria, Corydalis) in which 
 the single plane of symmetry is the lateral ; these flowers are 
 therefore not dorsiveritral, that is, they have not antero-posterior, 
 but lateral, asymmetry. The zygomorphic symmetry of a flower 
 is indicated in its floral formula by symbols ; when the plane of 
 
 v. s. B. L L 
 
 A 
 
 FIG. 327. Diagram illustrating dorsiventral 
 symmetry in. leguminous flowers: A Vicia 
 Faba (Papilionese) : B Cercis Siliquastruni 
 (Caesalpiniese) : in both cases the odd sepal 
 is anterior : the plane of symmetry is median. 
 
512 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 symmetry coincides with the median plane the symbol ^ is used, 
 and when it coincides with the lateral plane the symbol ->. 
 
 Sometimes regular flowers are developed by plants which 
 usually produce irregular flowers : these exceptional flowers are 
 termed peloria. This is due in some cases to the fact that the 
 primitive number and arrangement of the floral organs is not 
 disturbed by the irregular development of the parts which usually 
 takes place : such cases are distinguished as regular peloria (e.g. 
 Viola, Grloxinia, Labiatae, etc.) In other cases the peloric flower 
 is to some extent the result of the symmetrical development of the 
 irregularity (e.g. the development of five spurred petals and five 
 stamens in Linaria). Dorsi ventral flowers are, generally speaking, 
 such as are borne laterally on the inflorescence ; whilst the ter- 
 minal flowers (which may be regarded as peloric) are frequently 
 regular. Peloric lateral flowers are, however, known to occur. 
 
 There remain to be considered those flowers which cannot be 
 symmetrically divided in any plane : such flowers are asymmetric. 
 Amongst these are to be included most of the acyclic or hemi- 
 cyclic flowers in which the number of members is high and the 
 divergence variable (e.g. Calycanthus, some Ranunculaceae, etc.) : 
 the asymmetry of most of these is approximately, though not 
 quite accurately, actinomorphic, but in some it is dorsi ventral (e.g. 
 Delphinium, Aconitum). Asymmetry is rare in cyclic flowers, 
 but is to be found in some heterocyclic flowers : for instance, 
 in Tropaeolum, Canna and other Marantacese, Valeriana and 
 other Yalerianaceee, where the asymmetry is dorsiventral and is 
 due to oligomery and irregularity combined, whilst in other cases 
 (e.g. some Paronychieae, Fig. 328 0) it is due merely to oligomery. 
 
 The Floral Organs. 
 
 The Perianth is completely absent, that is, the flower is achlamy- 
 deous, in a few families (e.g. Piperaceae, Aracea?, Grraminaceee, many 
 Cyperacese, Salicaceas). When present, it is usually differentiated 
 into calyx and corolla, the flower being termed dichlamydeous or 
 liseriate: when the calyx and corolla clearly differ from each other 
 in colour, texture, etc., the flower is said to be heterochlamydeous ; 
 for instance, when the calyx is green and the corolla highly 
 coloured (as in most Dicotyledons, and in some Monocotyledons 
 such as Tradescantia and Commelyna) ; or when the calyx is 
 coloured (petaloid) and the petals reduced to nectaries (as in Helle- 
 borus and other Ranunculaceas). When the perianth-leaves are all 
 alike, the flower is said to be homochlamydeous. This condition 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMvE. 
 
 513 
 
 may be due to different causes in different cases : the flower is 
 sometimes homochlamydeoup, even though calyx and corolla are 
 differentiated, because the sepals and petals are very similar, as 
 in most Monocotyledons where the sepals are often petaloid : in 
 other cases the flower is homochlamydeous, because only one 
 series of perianth-leaves is developed ; that is, because the flower 
 is monochlamydeous. The flower may be monochlamydeous be- 
 cause, though typically dichlamydeous, either the calyx or the 
 corolla is suppressed (e.g. calyx suppressed in some Umbelliferae 
 and Composite; corolla suppressed in most Thymelaeaceae, 
 Paronychiea3, Glaux, some Rosaceae, such as Alchemilla and 
 Sanguisorba) ; wh^re_the_cprolla , is suppressed or rudimentary the 
 calyx_ is Jr^iientij^etaloid (e.g. Clematis, Anemone, Caltha, and 
 
 FIG. 328. Floral diagrams illustrating asymmetry. A Dorsiventrally asymmetrical 
 heinicyclic flower of Delphinium Ajacis : B Dorsiventrally asymmetrical heterocyclic flower 
 ofTropceohtm majus : C Asymmetry due to oligomery in Anycliia dichotoma (Paronychieae): br 
 subtending bract ; p-p, a j3 propbylla; st stipules of bract and prophylla. (After Eichler.) 
 
 other Ranunculacese) : or the flower may be monochlamydeous 
 merely because the perianth is undifferentiated (simple), and is 
 then generally sepaloid (e.g. Urticaceae, Betulaceae, Proteaceee, 
 Chenopodiacese, etc.), or petaloid (e.g. some Amarantaceae, Phyto- 
 laocaceae, Nyctaginaceas). 
 
 It is not always easy to determine whether a homochlamydeous 
 flower is dichlamydeous .or monochlamydeous ; but the decision is 
 facilitated by the consideration that, as a rule, the calyx and 
 corolla each consist of a single whorl of perianth-leaves in the 
 Monocotyledons, whereas in Dicotyledons the calyx generally con- 
 sists of two whorls. Hence, in the absence of contrary informa- 
 tion afforded by its development, a homochlamydeous flower having 
 
514 
 
 PART III. THE CLASS [Fl CATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 two perianth- whorls should, if a Monocotyledon, be regarded as 
 being probably dichlamydeous ; whereas, if a Dicotyledon, it 
 should be regarded as probably monochlamydeous, the two whorls 
 representing either a calyx or a simple perianth. 
 
 The individual leaves of the perianth may be either perfectly 
 separate (eleutheropetalous or polypeialous corolla, eleutherosepalous 
 or polysepalous calyx), e.g. Ranunculus ; or they may cohere from 
 the base upwards, so as to form a longer or shorter tube, which 
 divides at its upper end into as many teeth or lobes as there were 
 originally leaves (gamosepalous calyx, gamopetalous corolla) (Fig. 
 329 A B G c and B k) ; e.g. the Primrose and the Tobacco plant. 
 In Dianthus (the Pink) the sepals alone are coherent, as also in 
 
 Daphne (Fig. 329 I)) 
 where the corolla is 
 absent. More rarely 
 all the leaves of the 
 perianth cohere to 
 form one tube, e.g. the 
 Hyacinth and allied 
 genera ; the six lobes 
 of the tube correspond 
 to the three sepals 
 and the three petals. 
 The simple perianth 
 also may consist of 
 separate leaves (eleu- 
 theropJiyllous or poly- 
 pTiijllous perianth), e.g. 
 Amarantus, or the 
 leaves may be coher- 
 ent (gamophyllous) t e.g. 
 Aristolochia. 
 
 D 
 
 FIG. 329. Cohesion of sepals and petals. A Flower of 
 Convolvulus arvensis, with a funnel-shaped corolla (c); and 
 a 6-partite calyx (fc). B Nicotiana Tabacum, with a5-cleft 
 calyx (fc) ; tubular corolla (f), with a distinct 5-toothed 
 limb (s). C The rotate corolla of Sambucus. D Gamose- 
 palous calyx of Daphne Mezereum ; r the tube; s the limb. 
 
 The degree of division presented by gamophyllous perianths into teeth or 
 lobes is indicated by the same terms which are used in describing the incision 
 of the leaf-blade (page 54). The form of the gamopetalous corolla may be 
 campanulate, as in the Campanula ; funnel-shaped (or infwidibuliform), as in 
 the Bindweed (Fig. 329 A)\ totate, as in the Elder (Fig. 329 C). The upper 
 and lower portions may frequently be distinguished, the lower as the tube (Fig. 
 329 B r), the upper expanded part as the limb (Fig. 329 B s). Other peculiar- 
 ities of form are connected with the symmetry of the flower (page 511). 
 
 The petal frequently consists of two parts, the daw and the 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : AHGIOSPERMJE. 
 
 515 
 
 limb, as in the Pink (Fig. 330 A B). The Corona (paracorolla) in 
 the Narcissus and Lychnis is formed by ligular outgrowths from 
 the claws (Fig. 330 B I). Any segmentation of the petal, as in 
 the Pink (Fig. 330 ^4) is unusual ; emarginate or obcordate petals 
 are more common. In many cases the petals have spur-shaped 
 appendages (Violet, p. 511), or they are prolonged at the base into 
 tubes, as in Helleborns and Aconitum. This peculiarity is con- 
 nected with the secretion of the nectar (page 526). 
 
 The Reproductive Organs of the Flower are sporangia of two 
 kinds, microsporangia and macrosporangia, borne usually on 
 sporophylls, though sometimes directly on the floral axis. The 
 flower is usually ambisporangiate ( 5 , hermaphrodite, see p. 432) ; 
 but it is not infrequently monosporangiate (unisexual), in which 
 case the flowers are either microsporangiate ( $ , staminal) or 
 
 FIG. 330. A Petal of Dianttius superbus, with (n) the claw and (j) the limb, much divided. 
 B Petal of Lychnis : n claw ; p limb ; I ligula. C Flower of Potentilla, seen from below : 
 c corolla; fc calyx; a epicalyx. 
 
 macrosporangiate ( $ , carpellary). The plants which have mono- 
 sporangiate flowers may be either monoecious (e.g. Zostera, Arum, 
 Carex, Typhaceae, Zea, Betulacese, Euphorbia, Buxus, Juglans, 
 Quercus, etc.): or dioecious (e.g. Pandanacea?, some Palms, Naias, 
 Vallisneria, Hippophae, Cannabinacese, Salicaceae, Mercurialis, 
 Viscum, Empetrum, Feuillea, etc.) : or polygamous. Of polygamy 
 there are several varieties : thus, the plant may bear ambi- 
 sporarigiate flowers and staminate flowers (e.g. Veratrum, Ptelea, 
 JEsculus Hippocastanum, Celtis) ; or ambisporangiate flowers and 
 carpellary flowers (e.g. Thymtis vulgaris and T. Serpyllum, Parie- 
 taria diffusa and P. officinalis) : or it bears ambisporangiate flowers 
 and both staminate and carpellary flowers (e.g. Fraxinus excelsior, 
 Sapon aria ocym oides) . 
 
516 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Some flowers are probably primarily monosporangiate (p. 505) ; 
 that is, there is no reason to believe that the monosporungiate 
 condition is due to the suppression of either micro- or macro- 
 
 sporangia (e.g. Hemp, Oak, Walnut, Poplar, Willow). Others are 
 / secondarily monosporangiate ; that is, there is reason to believe, 
 either from their development and structure, or from their relation 
 to allied ambisporangiate forms, that they are typically ambi- 
 sporangiate, but have become monosporangiate by suppression : 
 thus, in the Cucurbitacese some genera (e.g. Cucurbita, Ciicumis, 
 Bryonia, etc.) have monosporangiate flowers, whilst in others (e.g. 
 Schizopepon) the flowers are always ambisporangiate; similarly, 
 in the Caryophyllaceae, the flowers are generally ambisporangiate, 
 but in the species Lychnis. juesperiina and L. diurna they are mono- 
 sporangiate ; and again in the Polygonacese certain species of 
 Rumex (R. Acetosa, Acetosella, etc.) alone are monosporangiate : 
 in some monosporangiate flowers traces of the missing organs are 
 to be found, such as staminodia in carpellary flowers (e.g. Cocculus 
 and other Menispermaceae, Feuillea among the Cucurbitaceae ; 
 Laurus nobilis), or rudimentary pistils in staminate flowers (e.g. 
 Rhamnus cathartica, Cocculus, Lychnis vespertina and diurna}. 
 
 I-t sometimes happens that typically dioecious plants become 
 exceptionally monoacious (e.g. development of ? flowers on <$ 
 plants of Myrica Gale and Cannabis sativa ; or of $ flowers on $ 
 plants of Cannabis sativa and Mercurialis annua) : or that a typi- 
 cally diclinous monoecious plant bears some monoclinous flowers 
 (e.g. Ricinus). 
 
 The Androeoium comprises the microsporophylls (one or more) 
 of the flower, the stamens. Each stamen usually consists of two 
 parts; a slender stalk called the filament (Fig. 331.?), and a 
 placental portion which bears the pollen-sacs (Fig. 331 Dp), known 
 as the anther (Fig. 331 a). The anther consists of two longi- 
 tudinal halves, termed thecce, each of which usually contains two 
 pollen-sacs ; these two halves are united by the placental portion 
 of the filament which is known as the connective (Fig. 331 c). 
 This is occasionally very narrow, so that the two halves of the 
 anther lie close together (Fig. 331 A 1 a) : in this case it may be 
 that the anther is not sharply marked off from the filament, and 
 is attached throughout its whole length to the filament (adnate, 
 Fig. 332 C) : when the anther is sharply marked off from the 
 filament, it may be attached to the filament by its base, when it is 
 said> to be innate or basijixed (e.g. Tulip); or the filament is in- 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : AWQIOSPER1LE. 
 
 517 
 
 serted in the middle of its dorsal surface, when it is dorsifixed 
 (Fig. 331 A) ; in the last case it may be articulated as by a joint, 
 so that the anther with the connective can oscillate on the apex 
 of the filament (versatile anther, Fig. 331 0), as in Grasses and some 
 other plants. But the connective is often broader, so that the 
 halves of the anther are widely separated (Fig. 331 J3) ; it may be 
 much elongated (distractile) and very delicate, so that, with the 
 filament, it forms a T-shaped body (Fig. 331 0) ; in this plant, 
 the Sage, the further peculiarity is exhibited that one-half of the 
 anther is abortive and is modified for another purpose. It is only 
 
 FIG. 331. Stamen: A^ Of Lilium: s fila- 
 ment; a the dorsifixed anther. A a Side 
 view. B Of Tilia: c connective. C Of 
 Salvia, with dorsifixed versatile anther : 
 b is the half of the anther that has been 
 modified. D Transverse section of the 
 anther of Hypericum (mag.) : p the 4 
 pollen-sacs ; c connective. 
 
 FIG. 332. -4 Stamen of Allium. B 
 Of Vaccinium MyrtiUus. C Of Paris 
 quadrifolia (mag,): /filament; c 
 connective; a anther; b appen- 
 dages; p the pores by which the 
 anther opens. 
 
 rarely, as in Herb Paris, that the connective is prolonged beyond 
 the anther into a point, or into a bristle as in the Oleander. 
 
 The filament is usually round and stalk-like, of a delicate 
 coloured or colourless tissue, with a central vascular bundle ; it is 
 occasionally flattened ; when it is very short or absent the anthers 
 are sessile. 
 
 In some plants, e.g. Allium (Fig. 332 J.), the filament has 
 what appear to be stipular appendages ; in others, e.g. Erica (Fig. 
 332 J5) and Asclepiadaceae, the anther is furnished with appen- 
 dages, such as spurs and so forth: in Viola, the "spurs borne by 
 the two anterior stamens are glandular. In certain plants the 
 
518 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 stamens, that is to say the filaments, branch; either, like most 
 leaves in a plane perpendicular to the median plane, as in Myr- 
 tacege and FumariaceaB, or in various planes, as in Ricinus (Fig. 
 333) and Hypericacea? ; an anther is borne on each of the branches 
 of the filament. 
 
 Somewhat similar in appearance, but essentially different in 
 structure, are the coherent stamens of the PapilioneaB and other 
 plants. The stamens of each flower may be coherent into one or 
 more bundles. The arrangement becomes complicated when the 
 filaments are at the same time coherent and branched as in the 
 Malvacea?. When the filaments are all coherent into a single 
 bundle (e.g. Malvaceae), they are said to be monadelphous : when 
 in two bundles (e.g. some Papilioneae, Fumariaceee), they are 
 diadelphous ', when in several bundles (e.g. Hypericacese), they are 
 polyadelphous. In the Composite (e.g. Sunflower and Thistle), 
 though the filaments are free, the anthers become coherent or 
 syngenesious. When the stamens are quite free from each other 
 they are said to be polyandrous. 
 
 A variety of the monadelphous condition is found in the $ flowers of 
 certain Araceae, where the stamens are united into a central column termed a 
 synandrium. 
 
 Besides these varieties of cohesion, adhesion frequently occurs ; 
 that is the filaments adhere to other portions of the flower, par- 
 ticularly of the perianth, so that they or when they are very 
 short, the anthers appear to be inserted not upon the axis of 
 the flower, but upon the leaves of the perianth (epipetalous or 
 epipliyllous) . This condition is most frequently present when the 
 petals themselves are connate and form a tubular corolla, e.g. 
 Primula. The adhesion of the stamens to the carpels is of rarer 
 occurrence (e.g. Orchidaceae, Stylidium, and Aristolochia) ; the 
 flower is then termed gynandrous. 
 
 In many flowers it happens that certain filaments, occupying a 
 definite position with regard to the other parts of the flower, are 
 longer than the others ; thus, of the six stamens of the Cruciferae 
 (e.g. Wallflower and Cabbage), four are much longer than the other 
 two; of the four stamens of the Labiatae (e.g. Lamium), two are 
 longer than the other two. In the former case the stamens are 
 said to be tetradynamous, in the latter didynamous. 
 
 Stamens which bear no anthers are termed staminodia : they 
 are to be found in flowers which have become monosporangiate 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPEKM^. 
 
 519 
 
 by suppression (e.g. carpellary flowers of Laurus nobilis), as well as 
 in others where suppression of the pollen-sacs is incomplete (e.g. 
 Ganna, Trollius, some Lauraceae) ; in the latter case the stamin- 
 odia are frequently petaloid. In many acyclic flowers (e.g. 
 Nymghaea), the stamens and the petals are connected by infcer^_ 
 mediate structures, of which it is difficult to say whether they are 
 to be regarded as petaloid stamens or as staminoid petals. 
 
 The M/'crosporangia or Pollen- Sacs are borne on the anther. 
 There are commonly four of them, (quadrilocular anther), two 
 forming a sorus in each longitudinal half (or theca) of the anther, 
 situated usually side by side, but sometimes (Lauraceae) one above 
 the other; in the former case the typical arrangement seems to be 
 that of each pair of pollen- sacs one 
 belongs to the anterior or inner 
 surface of the anther, the other 
 to the posterior or outer surface. 
 
 In some cases, however, there 
 are but two pollen-sacs (bilo- 
 cular anther) : this may be due to 
 the non-development of one longi- 
 tudinal half of the anther (e.g. 
 Cucurbitaceae, Salvia, Canna) ; or 
 to branching (e.g. Adoxa, Malva- 
 ceae) ; or to the abortion of one 
 pollen-sac, generally the posterior 
 one, of each pair (e.g. Asclepia- 
 daceae, Grubbia) ; or (some Laura- 
 ceae) of the upper or lower one of 
 each pair; or, finally, to the early 
 fusion of the archesporia of two 
 adjacent pollen-sacs (some Orchi- 
 daceae). In the Araceae the process of fusion is carried to such 
 an extent that all four archesporia fuse, so that the anther is uni- 
 locular. 
 
 Rarely (e.g. Sarcophyte, among Balanoplioraceas) the anther 
 bears numerous pollen-sacs : the pollen-sac is sometimes multi- 
 locular (see p. 433). 
 
 Each pollen-sac encloses an archesporium from which the 
 mother-cells of the microspores (pollen-grains) are developed by 
 division : each group of spore-mother-cells is invested by a layer 
 of granular cells, the tapetum (Fig. 281 ), which eventually be- 
 
 FIG. 333. Part of a staminal flower 
 of Ricinus communis cut through length- 
 ways : / / the basal portions of the 
 compoundly-branched stamens j o the 
 anthers. (After Sachs.) 
 
520 PAET III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 comes disorganised : externally to this is the wall of the pollen- 
 sac consisting of one or more layers of cells with usually reticu- 
 lately thickened walls, followed by the epidermis at the surface. 
 
 The pollen-sacs dehisce usually by a longitudinal slit which, 
 when the anther is quadrilocular, is generally so situated that it 
 at once opens into both the pollen-sacs of each half of the anther, 
 and frequently the tissue separating each pair of pollen-sacs 
 becomes dried up and ruptured whilst the anther is ripening : 
 sometimes the dehiscence of the pollen-sac is transverse (Al- 
 chemilla); sometimes it is valvular (Lauracese, Berberidaceae) ; or 
 by apical pores (Ericacese, Polygalaceae). Though in a quadril ocular 
 anther the pollen-sacs typically belong, two to the inner (ventral), 
 two to the outer (dorsal), surface of the anther, it frequently 
 happens that in the course of their development they become 
 somewhat displaced, so as to appear all to belong to either the inner 
 or the outer surface ; hence, when dehiscence takes place, the 
 pollen is shed, in the former case, towards the centre of the flower, 
 when the anthers are said to be introrse ; and, in the latter case, 
 towards the periphery of the flower, when the anthers are said to 
 be extrorse. These terms are similarly applicable in the case of 
 bilocular anthers. Introrse anthers are the more common ; ex- 
 trorse anthers occur in the Calycanthaceae, Aristolochiaceae, 
 Iridaceae, Juncaginese, Araceae, and in various genera of other 
 orders. In rare cases some of the anthers of the flower are introrse, 
 and others extrorse, as in some species of Polygonum (P. Bistorta, 
 tataricum, avimdare, etc.), when the anthers of the outer whorl are 
 introrse, and those of the inner whorl extrorse ; and as in most 
 Lauraceae, where the anthers of the innermost staminal whorl are 
 extrorse, whilst those of the outer whorls are introrse. 
 
 The Microspores or Pollen-grains. The essential features in the 
 structure and development of the microspores have been already 
 fully described (see pp. 125 and 434). 
 
 The shapes of the pollen -grain are very various (p. 436) : it 
 may be spherical, oval, triangular, etc., or long and cylindrical 
 (confervoid) as in the Naiadacese. In Halophila the shortly cylin- 
 drical pollen-grains adhere so as to form filaments. 
 
 On germination the pollen-grain gives rise to one or more 
 pollen-tubes, which consist of outgrowths of the intine: these 
 penetrate the exine (when present), either rupturing it irregularly, 
 or at determinate points where the exine is thinner and less re- 
 sistent (e.g. Onagracese, Malvaceae), or where there are lid-like 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPEKALffl. 
 
 521 
 
 areas which are easily removed (e.g. Cucurbitacece, Fig. 282). 
 These points are definite in number (1, 2, 3, 4, or more), sometimes 
 very numerous (Malvaceae). 
 
 The Gynce.ceum or Pistil is always the terminal structure of the 
 flower, occupying the apex of the 
 floral axis. It consists of the 
 macrosporophylls or carpels, which, 
 in the Angiosperms form the 
 whole or part of the ovaries, that 
 is, closed cavities containing the 
 ovules. If in a flower where 
 there are several carpels, each of 
 them closes by the cohesion of 
 its margins ^ they form so many 
 ovaries ; the gynaeceum is then 
 said to be apocarpous (Fig. 335^4), 
 e.g. Ranunculus, Pseonia, and 
 Butomus ; if there is only one carpel (Fig. 335 B), the pistil is 
 said to be apocarpous and simple ; if several carpels in one flower 
 cohere and form a single ovary (Fig. 335 C), the gynseceum is said 
 to be syncarpous, e.g. Poppy and Lily. Intermediate forms occur 
 in that the carpels may cohere by their lower ends whilst their 
 upper ends remain free (Fig. 335 D). 
 
 The ovary is said to be monomerous when it is formed of only 
 one carpel (Fig. 336 A), the margins of which cohere on the side 
 
 FIG. 334. Germinating pollen-grain of 
 Epilobium (highly mag.) bearing a poll en- 
 tube 3 ; e exine ; i intine ; ab c the three 
 spots where the exine is thicker in antici- 
 pation of the formation of the pollen-tube 
 developed in this case at a. 
 
 A 
 
 FIG. 335. A Apocarpous gynseceum of Aconite. B Simple apocarpous gyntcceum of 
 Melilotus. C Tetramerous syncarpous gynseceum of Rhamnus cathartica. D Ovary of 
 Saxifraga, formed of two carpels which diverge towards the top: t torus ; /ovaries; 
 g style ; n stigma ; b ventral suture. 
 
 opposite to the midrib. The outer side along which the midrib 
 runs is the dorsal surface (Fig. 336 A r), and the midrib itself is 
 the dorsal suture ; opposite to it is the line of cohesion, the ventral 
 
522 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 suture, which runs therefore along the ventral surface. The cavity 
 thus enclosed (loculus) is not usually divided by dissepiments, but 
 it is a simple cavity, as in the Vetch ; such an ovary is said to be 
 unilocular. False or spurious dissepiments, formed by growths 
 on the inner surface, occur in some few instances, as in Astragalus. 
 When, on the other hand, several carpels cohere to form a syn- 
 carpous ovary, it is polymerous (di- tri- or tetra-merous, etc). The 
 syncarpous ovary is unilocular (Fig. 336 B) when the individual 
 carpels cohere simply by their edges without any portion of them 
 projecting inwards ; but if the margins project into the cavity so 
 as to form incomplete longitudinal dissepiments, the ovary is cham- 
 bered (Fig. 336 C}, e.g. Poppy; but since the chambers are open to- 
 wards the centre, the ovary is still unilocular. When the margins 
 form dissepiments which meet in the middle, the ovary is multilo- 
 cular ; sometimes the margins turn outwards again towards the cir- 
 cumference. 
 In the last 
 case the in- 
 d i v i d u a 1 
 loculi are 
 completely 
 separated ; 
 but there 
 
 FIG. 336. Transverse section of ovaijes; p placenta. A Monomerous 
 
 and unilocular; r dorsal suture ; b ventral suture ; p placentation mar- ^ r Others 
 
 ginal. B Polymerous and unilocular ; placentation parietal. C Poly- in which 
 
 rnerous and many-chambered, but unilocular ; placentation parietal. , i 
 
 D Polymerous and multilocular j placentation axile. * e mar m 8 
 
 of the car- 
 pels do not extend so far towards the centre at the upper part as 
 at the lower, but the two margins of each carpel simply cohere 
 together above ; consequently the lower part of the ovary is poly- 
 merous and multilocular, while the upper part is composed of a 
 number of monomerous ovaries, e.g. Saxifraga (Fig. 335 D). In 
 all these cases the floral axis may grow up into the interior of the 
 cavity of the ovary, and when the ovary is multflocular the axis 
 may coalesce with the dissepiments. 
 
 False dissepiments may be formed in polymerous ovaries by in- 
 growths from the internal surface of the carpels ; thus the ovary 
 of the Boraginacese and Labiatoe is originally bilocular, but each 
 loculus becomes divided into two by a false dissepiment, and when 
 the fruit is ripe the four loculi separate completely ; similarly, the 
 unilocular ovary of the Cruciferae becomes spuriously bilocular. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA: ANGIOSPERM^E. 523 
 
 The inferior ovary of epigynous flowers (see p. 495) is rarely 
 monomerous, that is to say, the cavity formed by the axis is but 
 seldom closed by one carpel only : it is commonly polyrnerous, but 
 it may be either unilocular or multilocular ; in the latter case, the 
 margins of the carpels grow down along the internal surface of the 
 cavity. 
 
 In some bases the axis is prolonged between the carpels, con- 
 stituting a carpophore, as in the Geranraceee and Umbelliferae 
 (Fig. 341). 
 
 The Style (Figs. 335 and 337) is the prolongation of the upper 
 part of the carpel : it is commonly a slender cylinder, but some- 
 times it is leafy and petaloid (e.g. Iris). Monomerous ovaries 
 have but one style ; polymerous ovaries have as many styles as 
 there are carpels, which may cohere throughout 
 their whole length, or at their lower parts only, 
 the upper parts remaining distinct ; or they may 
 remain quite free, and they may even branch. 
 The style originally arises from the apex of the 
 ovary, but it is frequently displaced forwards, by 
 the vigorous development of the dorsal portion of 
 the carpel, on to the inner side, so as to appear 
 to be a prolongation of the floral axis (gynobasic 
 style) : this is conspicuous in the Boraginacese 
 and Labiatoe, where it is surrounded by the four 
 rounded loculi of the ovary which have been 
 already mentioned (p. 522). The style is some- 
 times very short, and appears only as a constric- 
 tion between the ovarv and the stigma, as in the 
 
 T M. V 11 i, -j. FlG - 337. Gy- 
 
 Poppy. In some rare cases it is hollow, but it is na-ceum of the 
 
 usually filled with a loose tissue, called conducting Lily: /ovary; g 
 tissue, through which the pollen- tube can easily /^size) ^ 
 penetrate. 
 
 The Stigma (Figs. 335 and 337 n) is usually terminal, but it may 
 be lateral (e.g. Iris) ; it is distinguished by being covered with 
 papillae, or frequently with hairs, and by the secretion of a sugary 
 fluid which retains the pollen-grains which fall upon it, and 
 which promotes the development of the pollen-tubes. The stigma 
 is often evidently distinct from the style, appearing as a lobed 
 expansion ; in other cases it seems to be merely a portion of the 
 style at its end or sometimes on its side. In Papaver it is a 
 sessile disk-shaped expansion on the upper surface of the ovary ; 
 
524 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 more rarely it is represented by bands of papillae on tlie ovary 
 itself, when it is said to be pleurogynous. 
 
 The number of the stigmata often affords a means of ascertain- 
 ing whether the ovary is monomerous or polymerous : for instance, 
 the ovary of the Compositse seems, at first sight, to be mono- 
 merous; but the two short branches of the style, each bearing 
 a stigma, show that it is dimerous. On the other band, this 
 character may be misleading : for instance, in various Grasses the 
 ovary bears two or three stigmata, either directly, or springing 
 from the style; hence it might be inferred that the ovary is di- 
 or tri-merous, whilst as a matter of fact it is monomerous. In 
 this respect some few other plants, belonging to the Naiadacese 
 and other families, resemble the Grasses. 
 
 The Macrosporangia or Ovules are always enclosed in the cavity 
 of the ovary, either singly or in larger or smaller number. 
 Usually they may be readily seen to be developed on the carpels 
 (Fig. 338 J-, J5, (7), bul in many cases they appear to be de- 
 veloped from the floral axis (Fig. 338 JD, F, G). However, from 
 careful comparative examination, it seems that the apparently 
 axial ovules may be regarded in some cases as having been de- 
 veloped on the carpels, their position on the axis being merely the 
 result of a more or less considerable subsequent displacement due 
 to the coalescence of the carpels with the axis. That portion of 
 the ovary which bears the ovules is called the placenta. 
 
 The ovules, when borne by the carpels, are but rarely developed 
 over the whole surface of the carpel, but are confined to the margin : 
 in other words the placentation is rarely superficial but generally 
 marginal. Superficial placentation (Fig. 338 C) is to be found in 
 Butomus, Nymphaea, and Nuphar, the dorsal suture (midrib) of 
 the carpel being the only sterile portion of its internal surface. 
 Of marginal placentation there are two varieties : in the one the 
 ovary is syncarpous but unilocular, and the contiguous placental 
 margins of the carpels constitute so many placentae on the wall of 
 the ovary, that is, the placentation is parietal (Fig 336 B, G), as in 
 the Violaceas, Cruciferae, Papaveracea3, E/ibesieae, Orchidaceae, 
 etc. ; in the other the ovary is syncarpous and multilocular, the 
 margins of the carpels meeting in the centre and there bearing the 
 ovules, so that each placenta is at the inner angle of each loculus, 
 that is, the placentation is axile or axillary (Fig. 336 D, and Fig. 
 338 B): in a monomerous ovary (Fig. 336 A, and Fig. 338 A) the 
 placentation is essentially parietal, but it is simply termed marginal. 
 
GttOtTP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJ3. 
 
 525 
 
 The position of attachment is a point of descriptive importance, 
 more especially where the number of ovules is small, or where there 
 is but one, in the loculus. When the ovule Is attached to the top of 
 the carpel, so that it hangs into the loculus, it is said to be pendulous ; 
 when it is attached high up, but at the side, it is suspended ; when 
 it is attached to the side and projects straight, it is horizontal \ 
 when it is attached at the side, but towards the base of the carpel, 
 and stands up into the loculus, it is ascending. 
 
 FIG. 338. Diagrams of tbe different modes of Placentation. A Monomerons vary of 
 Helleborus, opened along the ventral suture; s the ovules on (q) the marginal placenta. 
 B Transverse section of the ovary of Nicotiana : / wall of the ovary ; q placenta, largely 
 developed by the union of the margins of the carpels (axile placentation). C Transverse 
 section of the ovary of Butomus. The ovules are scattered over the whole of the inner 
 surface, except the midrib, m (superficial placentation). D Longitudinal section of an 
 ovary of one of the Composite : / the wall ; the erect, anatropous ovule (s) grows from the 
 base by the side of the apex of the axis, a. E Longitudinal section of the ovary of one of 
 the Umbelliferae ; in each chamber an anatropous ovule is suspended. F Longitudinal 
 section of Rheum; a single erect orthotropous ovule grows at the apex of the floral axis. 
 G Longitudinal section of the ovary of one of the Primulaceae; the ovules grow on a 
 prolongation of the axis (tree ceutral placentation). Fig. 336 B represents parietal 
 placentation. 
 
 When the ovules are borne, either actually or apparently, by the 
 axis, the placentation is said to be axial. When many ovules are 
 borne on the axial placenta (as in the PrimulaceaB, Santalaceas, etc., 
 Fig. 338 6r), the placentation is termed free central. When there 
 is but a single ovule in the loculus, the placentation is basilar or 
 basal, and the ovule is erect : in this case the ovule is borne either 
 
526 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 terminally at the apex of the floral axis (e.g. Polygonum, Piper, 
 Naias, Fig. 338 F); or laterally, below or behind the actual apex 
 (e.g. Composite, Fig. 338 D). 
 
 For other descriptive terms relating to the ovule, refer back to 
 p. 437. 
 
 The macrosporangium or ovule, consists primitively of a mass of 
 cellular tissue, the nucellus, invested by one or two integuments, 
 with a micropyle at the apex (see p. 436) : generally speaking, two 
 integuments are present in the Monocotyledons, in most polypetal- 
 ous Dicotyledons (with exceptions such as some Umbelliferae and 
 Ranunculacese), and in the Cucurbitaceae among Gamopetalae; 
 whereas there is only one integument in the Gamopetaloe (except 
 Cucurbitacea3) and in the polypetalous orders, Umbelliferae and 
 Ranunculaceae. In some few cases (e.g. Santalaceae, Loranthaceae, 
 Balanophoracese), where the development of the ovule is degraded 
 in correlation with the parasitic habit of the plants, the ovule has 
 no integument. 
 
 The Macrospore or Embryo-sac. The structure and development 
 of the macrospore are described on p. 438. 
 
 Accessory Organs of the Flower. The most common of these is 
 the Nectary, a glandular organ secreting odorous or sweet liquid, 
 and thus attracting insects. The nectary is sometimes borne on 
 some other organ which is not thereby materially modified (e.g. 
 petals of Ranunculus, stamen of Viola) ; or on a specially modified 
 perianth-leaf (e.g. petals of some Ranunculaceae, as Helleborus, 
 Eranthis, Delphinium), or on staminodia (e.g. the posterior of the 
 five stamens in Gesneraceae ; a whorl in Parnassia ; one or more 
 whorls in various Lauraceae) : in some cases it is borne on the 
 carpels, in the septa of a multilocular ovary (septal glands of many 
 Monocotyledons, Liliacese, Amaryllidaceae, and Iridacea3). Generally 
 the nectary is borne on the floral axis, when it is described by the 
 general term disc : it may be a single tubular outgrowth (Crista- 
 tella) or a flattened scale (other Capparidacese, some Resedaceae) ; a 
 single posterior scale ; or several in a whorl, as scales or rounded 
 prominences (e.g. Apocynacese; two in a whorl in Vinca, Dipladenia; 
 five in Forsteronia; many in Nerium: CruciferaB, generally four: in 
 Vitis five) ; or as a ring of tissue, round the base of the ovary 
 (e.g. Rutaceae, Anacardiaceae, Rhamnaceae, Celastraceae) ; or on the 
 upper surface of the inferior ovary (e.g. Umbellif erae) . 
 
 The position of the axial nectaries or discs is various : in some 
 flowers it is extra-staminal, and then it is situated either between 
 
GROUP IT.- -PHANEEOGAM1A : ANGIOSPERM^E. 
 
 527 
 
 the andrcecimn and the corolla {e.g. Capparidaceae, Snpindaceae, 
 Resedaceae), or, less commonly, between the corolla and the calyx 
 {e.g. some Apocynaceas, such as Xerium) : in others it is intra- 
 staminal, that is, between the androecium and the gynseceum (as 
 in Rutaceae, Rhamnaceaa, Celastraceae, etc.). Again, the disc is 
 generally hypogynous, but sometimes epigynous (Umbelliferse). 
 
 Generally speaking, when the nectaries, of whatever kind, are 
 towards the outside of the flower, the anthers are extrorse (e g. 
 Ranunculaceae); and when towards the centre of the flower, the 
 anthers are introrse. 
 
 The most striking accessory structures are those of the Passion- 
 flower : these are coloured filaments, borne in successive whorls 
 (as many as five), between the corolla and the androecium: they 
 are not glandular, neither 
 can they be regarded as 
 staminodia or as modified 
 petals. 
 
 The General Histology 
 of the sporophyte is suf- 
 ficiently treated of in Part 
 II., and in the general 
 account of the Phanero- 
 gams (p. 440). 
 
 The Hmbryogeny of the 
 sporophyte is considered 
 on p. 440. 
 
 The GametopTiyte is con- 
 sidered on p. 447. 
 
 Fertilisation. After 
 reaching the stigma the 
 pollen-grains protrude the pollen-tubes which penetrate through 
 the tissue of the style into the cavity of the ovary, and through 
 the micropyle of each ovule to its nucellus (Fig. 339 P n). The 
 time required by the pollen-tube for this process depends partly on 
 the distance of the pollen-grain from the ovule and partly on the 
 specific peculiarities of the plant; thus the pollen-tube of the 
 Crocus takes only from one to three days to traverse the style, 
 which is from five to ten centimetres in length ; but in the Orchids, 
 where the length of the style varies from two to three millimetres, 
 several days, weeks, or even months are needed, and it is during 
 this process that the ovules are formed in the ovary. 
 
 V, S. B. MM 
 
 Fia. 339. Diagram of an ovule shortly after 
 fertilisation ; a outer, and i inner integuments ; / 
 f unicle : fc nucellus. S Embryo-sac in which E is 
 the embryo developed from the fertilised oosphere. 
 The sac also contains the endosperm-cells which are 
 being formed by free cell-formation. P The pollen- 
 tube, passing through the micropyle, n. 
 
528 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 In Oasuarina the pollen-tube does not enter the ovary by the style, but makes 
 its way through the tissue of the wall of the ovary into the placenta, whence it 
 penetrates into the ovule by the chalaza : the pollen-tube now grows towards 
 the micropylar end of the ovule through one of the elongated sterile macro- 
 spores (see p. 438), and comes into close relation with the fertile macrospore, 
 without, however, entering it ; the male cell is apparently extruded from the 
 pollen-tube into the macrospore, and enters the oosphere from below. The ter- 
 minal portion of the pollen-tube becomes, in this case, completely abstricted off 
 from tbe rest : and generally, when the pollen-tube is very long, the terminal 
 portion becomes shut off from the rest by a plug of cellulose. Some other 
 Atnentales (Corylus, Carpinus, Alnus, Betula) also are chalazogamic. 
 
 The Results of Fertilisation. The Seed is described on p. 458. 
 
 The Fruit. In view of the variety in the strncture and morph- 
 ology of the fruit of Angiosperms, a somewhat detailed account of 
 it is necessary. 
 
 The word fruit, in its strictest sense, means the whole product 
 of the development of the gynseceum as a result of fertilisation. If 
 other parts of the flower take part in the formation of the organ 
 which is formed in consequence of fertilisation, and which contains 
 the seed (of what, in short, is commonly called the fruit), it is 
 termed a spurious fruit or pseudocarp. The apple, for instance, is 
 such a spurious fruit, for the outer fleshy part belongs to that 
 part of the axis of the perigynous flower which surrounds the 
 ovaries and which still bears the sepals (Fig. 2 A). What are 
 called the pips of the apple are the seeds. This kind of spurious 
 fruit is termed a pome. The strawberry also is a spurious fruit: 
 in it the receptacle, which belongs of course to the axis, de- 
 velopes largely and becomes fleshy and bears the true fruits 
 (achenes) in the form of small hard grains. The fig is another 
 example of a spurious fruit ; it is in fact a fleshy receptacle 
 (i.e. an axis) which bears a multitude of distinct flowers situated 
 inside the cavity of the receptacle, and the individual fruits 
 appear as hard grains ; such a fruit is termed a sycunus. Again, 
 when the ovaries and floral envelopes of closely crowded flowers, 
 as in the Mulberry and the Pine-apple, become succulent, a kind 
 of spurious fruit is formed which is termed a sorosis. 
 
 In other cases, a husk, called the cupule is formed, which contri- 
 butes to the formation of a spurious fruit: this is formed by the 
 bracteoles and is not developed until after fertilisation ; it may 
 surround either a solitary distinct fruit, like the acorn-cup, or 
 several distinct fruits, like the four-valved spiky husk of the 
 Beech-tree or the prickly husk of the edible Chestnut. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA: ANGIOSPERM-B. 
 
 529 
 
 FIG. 340. Fruitof lllidum 
 anisatum: st pert uncle; // 
 the separate frnits, each 
 with a seed (s) forming an 
 apocarpous fructification. 
 
 When the fruit consists of one or more monomerous ovaries, it 
 is said to be apocarpous : examples of this occur in Ranunculus, in 
 the Raspberry, where the individual ovaries are succulent, and in 
 the Star- Anise (Fig-. 340). The individual 
 fruits may be developed in very different 
 ways ; they may be dehiscent or iridehis- 
 cent, dry or succulent. 
 
 When the fruit consists of a single poly- 
 merous ovary, it is said to be syncarpous. 
 When the carpels of such a fruit separate 
 septicidally during the process of ripening, 
 so that it ultimately appears as if a number 
 of distinct fruits were present, it is termed 
 a schizocnrp : it may thus split into only 
 two distinct fruits, as in the Umbelliferee (Fig. 341); or, as in the 
 Geraniacese and many Malvaceae, into several distinct fruits : each 
 of them is termed a coccus or mericarp ; the individual coccus 
 is generally indehiscent (dehiscent in most Euphorbiacese). 
 
 In various mnltil ocular ovaries only one loculus becomes fully 
 developed and bears seeds, as in Valerian, 
 the Coco-Nut, and the Oak; the others 
 are abortive. It sometimes happens in 
 cultivated plants that the fruit becomes 
 perfectly formed without any development 
 of seed, as in a particular seedless variety 
 of Grape, the Banana, the Pine-Apple, 
 etc. 
 
 In all true fruits the wall of the ovary 
 forms the pericarp or rind. In some more 
 or less succulent fruits, the pericarp con- 
 sists of three distinct layers ; the external 
 layer is the epicarp, the middle the meso- 
 carp, and the innermost the endocarp. 
 
 The following varieties of true fruits have been 
 distinguished by the character of the pericarp, 
 whether it is dry or succulent, hard or soft, and by 
 the dehiscence or indehiscence of the pericarp. 
 
 A. DRY FRUITS. The pericarp is woody or cori- 
 aceous; when ripe, the sap has usually disappeared 
 from all the cells. 
 
 I. Dry Indehiscent Fruits. The pericarp does not 
 
 FIG. 341. Carum Carui, 
 one of the Umbelliferae. A 
 Ovary of the flower (/). 
 B Ripe scbizocarp which 
 has divided into two cocci 
 or mericarps (m), a portion 
 of the median wall (a) forms 
 the carpophore. 
 
530 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 rupture, but encloses the seed until germination ; the testa is usually thin, and 
 frequently coalescent with the pericarp. 
 (1) One-seeded fruits : 
 
 (a) The nut (glans), e.g. Acorn, Hazel-Nut (but not the Walnut) ; the 
 dry pericarp is hard and sclerenchymatous : it is inferior and syn- 
 carpous. 
 
 (6) The achene is superior and monomerous : the pericarp is thin and 
 coriaceous; e.g. the Eose and the Buttercup. The similar fruit 
 of the Coinpositae is a cypsela ; it is inferior and dimerous. 
 
 The fruit of Grasses, termed a caryopsis, is very similar to the 
 achene ; it differs from it in that the testa and the pericarp closely 
 adhere, whereas in the achene they are not adherent. 
 
 D 
 
 PIG. 342. Dry dehiscent fruits. A The pod (legume) of the Pea: r the dorsal suture ; b 
 the ventral ; c calyx; s seeds. B Septicidal capsule of ColcMcum autumnale : fff the three 
 separating carpels. C Siliqua of Brassica; fc the valves; w the dissepiment and placentae 
 (replum); s seeds ; g style ; n stigma. D Capsule, opening by pores, of Papaver sommferum, 
 the Poppy ; n stigma ; j the pores which open by the removal of the valves (a). E Pyxidiam 
 of Hyoscyamus ; d the lid; w the dissepiment; s seeds. 
 
 (2) Many-seeded fruits : these (schizocarps) commonly split into one-seeded 
 fruits, whicti usually enclose the solitary seeds until germination : e.g. the 
 Umbelliferse (Fig. 341) and Maple, with two mericarps ; the Geraniacese, with 
 five mericarps ; and most Malvaceae, where the fruit is termed a carcerule, and 
 splits into many mericarps (see p. 532, and Fig. 413). 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA: ANGIOSPERM^. 531 
 
 The pericarp of dry indehiscent fruits is sometimes developed into a mem- 
 branous wing (e.g. Ash, Elm, Birch); to such a fruit the termsawara is applied: 
 the fruit of the Maple is a double samara (Fig. 418). 
 
 II. Dry Dehiscent Fruits. The pericarp ruptures and allows the seeds, which 
 usually have a firm and thick testa, to escape : they are commonly many- 
 seeded. 
 
 (1) Deldscence longitudinal. 
 
 (a) The follicle, consisting of a single carpel which dehisces along the 
 ventral suture, where also the seeds are borne, e.g. Paeonia and 
 Illicium (Fig. 340) ; but sometimes (e.g. Magnolia) along the dorsal 
 suture : it is superior. 
 
 (6) The legume or pod likewise consists of but one carpel which dehisces 
 along both the dorsal and ventral sutures (Fig. 342 A, trans- 
 verse section Fig. 336 A) : e.g. the Vetch, Pea, Bean, and many 
 other Leguminosae ; in some cases (Astragalus) a spurious dissepi- 
 ment occurs : it is superior. 
 
 The lomentum is a modification of the legume ; it is constricted 
 between the seeds, and it is either indehiscent or it breaks across, 
 when ripe, at the constricted parts. It occurs in the Hedysareas. 
 
 (c) The siliqua consists of two coherent carpels. The two carpels 
 
 when ripe separate from tbe base upwards into two valves, leaviug 
 their margins (with the parietal placentae and the spurious dis- 
 sepiment) attached, as a frame or replum, to the apex of the 
 pedicel ; e.g. Rape, Mustard, and most of the Cruciferae (Fig. 342 
 C) : it is superior. 
 
 When the siliqua is short and broad, it is termed a silicula, as 
 in Thlaspi and Capsella. In some cases, as in the Radish, the 
 siliqua is jointed and indehiscent, breaking transversely into one- 
 seeded portions. It resembles the lomentum, and is therefore 
 said to be lomentaceous. 
 
 (d) The capsule is derived from a polymerous syncarpous ovary which 
 
 may be uni- or multilocular ; it splits into two or more valves, 
 either for a short distance only from the apex downwards, or down 
 to the very base (Fig. 342 B). If the carpels become separated 
 from each other, and in the case of multilocular ovaries this in- 
 volves the splitting of the dissepiments (Fig. 343 A), the dehiscence 
 is said to be septicidal ; if, on the other hand, each carpel splits 
 along its dorsal suture, the dehiscence is said to be locuHcidal 
 (Fig. 343 B). In either form of dehiscence in a multilocular ovary 
 the placentas may either adhere to the valves (Fig. 343 B), or re- 
 main united into a central column which is free from the valves ; 
 in the latter case the dehiscence is further described as being 
 teptifragal (Fig. 343 C). 
 
 The capsule is usually superior, but sometimes, as in Iridaceaa 
 and Campanulaceffl, it is inferior ; a special term, diplote<jium, is 
 applied to the inferior capsule by some authors. 
 (2) The form of capsule known as a pyxidium has a transverse dehiscence, 
 
 e.fj. in Plantago, Anagallis, Hyoscyamus (Fig. 342 E) ; the upper part falls off 
 
 like a lid. 
 
532 
 
 PART 111. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 (3) The porous capsule, eg. the Poppy (Fig. 342 /)), sheds its seeds through 
 small holes arising from the removal of small portions of the wall in certain 
 spots. 
 
 B. SUCCULENT FRUITS. In these the pericarp is usually differentiated into 
 
 layers, and some portion of it re- 
 tains its sap until it is ripe, and 
 usually becomes fleshy at that 
 stage ; it is indehiscent. 
 
 (1) The drupe (Fig. 344), is su- 
 perior and moiiomerous, e.g. the 
 Plum, Cherry; or syncarpous, e.g. 
 the Walnut and Coco-Nut. The 
 most internal layer, the endocarp, 
 is very hard and sclerenchymatous 
 (Fig. 344 e) ; it is commonly known 
 as the stone in Plums, Peaches, 
 etc., and encloses the seed until 
 FIG. 343. Diagrammatic sections of dehiscent germination: the mesocarp is 
 multilocular capsules. A Septicidal, B loculi- generally succulent, and the epi- 
 cidal, dehiscence; C loculicidal septifragal carp is a delicat e membrane : when 
 dehiscence. .... . , , 
 
 the fruit consists of several drupes, 
 
 they are commonly termed drupels (e.g. Raspberry). 
 
 (2) The berry (bacca) : the endocarp is soft and juicy as well as the mesocarp, 
 so that the seeds are imbedded in the pericarp : there may be one seed only, as 
 in the Date; or many, as in the Gourd, Currant and Grape : the fruit may have 
 one loculus, as in the Grape and the Gourd, or several loculi, as in the Orange; 
 and further, it may be superior, as in the Grape, 
 Orange, and Lemon ; or inferior, as iu the Cur- 
 rant, the Gooseberry, and the Gourd. 
 
 When the fruit is apocarpous and 
 consists of many achenes, drupels, or 
 follicles, it is termed an elcerio ; for in- 
 stance, the fruit of the Buttercup, the 
 Rose, and the Strawberry is an etaerio 
 of achenes ; that of the Raspberry and 
 the Blackberry is an etcerio of drupels; 
 that of the Tulip-Tree and of the Mag- 
 nolia is an eteDrio of follicles. 
 
 The transition between a syncarpous and an 
 apocarpous fruit can be readily traced in the 
 Malvaceae, from the loculicidal capsule of the 
 Hibisceae, through the schizocarpous carcerule 
 of the Malveae, to the fruit of the Malopeae 
 which resembles an etaerio of achenes though the styks are coherent. 
 
 FIG. 844. Longitudinal sec- 
 tion of the drupe of the Almond. : 
 s the seed attached by the fun- 
 icle (/) ; e the hard endocarp ; 
 m the mesocarp; and x the 
 epicarp these constitute the 
 pericarp (p). 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJi ; MONOCOTYLEDONES. 533 
 
 The Angiosperms are subdivided as follows : 
 
 Class IX. MONOCOTYLEDONS : the embryo has usually a single 
 terminal cotyledon, and the growing-point of the primary stem is 
 developed laterally : the ripe seed usually contains abundant endo- 
 sperm : the vascular bundles of the stem are closed : the leaves 
 commonly have parallel venation: the flower belongs usually to 
 the pentacyclic trimerous type. 
 
 Class X. DICOTYLEDONES : the embryo has usually two opposite 
 cotyledons, and the growing-point of the primary stem is de- 
 veloped terminally : the ripe seed is commonly exalbuminous : 
 the vascular bundles of the stem are usually open : the leaves 
 commonly have reticulate venation : the structure of the flower 
 varies, but it frequently belongs to the pentacyclic pentamerous 
 type. 
 
 CLASS IX. MONOCOTYLEDONES. 
 
 Although the seed typically contains endosperm, it contains 
 none in certain orders; namely, the Orchidaceae, most aquatic 
 Monocotyledons (Alismales, Hydrocharidacese), and in some genera 
 of AraceaB (Orontium, Symplocarpus, Scindapsus, Monstera, 
 Amorphophallus). In the Scitamineaa perisperm is always 
 present in the seed, either together with endosperm (Zingi- 
 beracese), or without endosperm (Musacese, Marantacese). In the 
 albuminous seeds, the embryo is usually small in proportion to 
 the endosperm (Fig. 345 I, e, c). 
 
 Whilst the single cotyledon of the embryo is, as a rule, terminal 
 and the growing-point of the stem lateral, in some forms the 
 growing-point of the stem is terminal (apical) on the longitudinal 
 axis of the embryo (Dioscoreaceae, Commelynacese, see p. 445). 
 The growing-point of the primary stem frequently developes into 
 a plumule. The axis of the embryo terminates posteriorly in a 
 short radicle. 
 
 On germination, the upper end of the cotyledon commonly 
 remains in the seed and absorbs the nutritious substances de- 
 posited in the endosperm (Fig. 345 II -IV.) ; the lower part of the 
 cotyledon elongates and pushes the rest of the embryo out of the 
 seed. In Grasses the cotyledon has a peculiar shield-like form, and 
 is termed the scutellum (Fig. 346 sc) : in the ripe seed it almost 
 entirely encloses the embryo, and is in contact by its outer surface 
 
534 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 with the endosperm ; during germination the cotyledon absorbs the 
 nutritious matters con- 
 tained in the endo- 
 sperm, while the stem 
 with the other leaves 
 grows out of the seed. 
 In other Monocoty- 
 ledons either the coty- 
 ledon is a sheathing 
 scale, or it is the first 
 green leaf differing but 
 little from the foliage- 
 leaves which are sub- 
 sequently developed. 
 
 In many Grasses there is 
 a scaly appendage borne 
 opposite to the scutellum ; 
 this is termed the epiblast, 
 and is sometimes regarded 
 as a rudimentary second 
 cotyledon (Fig. 346 B, I). 
 
 The primary root 
 usually remains small 
 and inconspicuous : in 
 Grasses generally, the 
 radicle begins to branch 
 before it escapes 
 through the micropyle 
 on germination, so that 
 the root is then fibrous; 
 when this is the case 
 the inadequate root- 
 system is supplemented 
 by the development of 
 adventitious roots in 
 succession at higher 
 and higher levels upon 
 the stem. The epi- 
 blema of the root is the 
 external layer of the 
 cortex (see p. 154). 
 
 FIG. 345. Germination of Phoenix dactylifera, the 
 Date. I. Transverse section of the dormant seed. III., 
 IF. Different stages of germination (IV, the natural 
 size). A Transverse section of the seed at xx in IF. 
 B Transverse section of the seedling at x y : C at z z. 
 The horny endosperm ; s the sheath of the cotyledon ; 
 st its stalk ; c its apex developed into an organ of ab- 
 sorption which gradually consumes the endosperm and 
 at length occupies its place ; w the primary root; w' 
 secondary roots ; b' b" the leaves which succeed the 
 cotyledon ; (b") becomes the first foliage-leaf, in B and C 
 its folded lamina is seen cut across. (After Sachs.) 
 
GROUP TV. PHANEROGAM1A : ANGIOSPERMJ) : MONOCOTYLEDONS. 535 
 
 The stem of Monocotyledons is traversed longitudinally (Fig. 
 132, p. 172) by scattered closed vascular bundles (Fig. 137) ; it 
 lias therefore no growth in thickness by the means of cambium. 
 In a few genera only, as Yucca and Dracaena, it grows subse- 
 quently in thickness by the formation of meristem in the pericycle 
 from which additional closed vascular bundles are developed (see 
 p. 205, and Fig. 154). 
 
 The axis of the embryo in many cases continues to be the main 
 axis of the plant ; at first it is thin and weak, and since no 
 
 FIG. 346. Grain of Triticum milgare, the Wheat. A Cross-section throngh the pericarp 
 and testa. Of these, ep is the epidermis, e the outer layers, and M the chlorophyll, 
 layer, of the pericarp: ii remnants of the ovular integument, and n the outermost 
 thickened layer of the nucellus ; these together constitute the testa : al the aleuron- 
 layer of the endosperm (x 240). B Median longitudinal section through the lower 
 part of a ripe grain, in the plane of the furrow. At the bottom of this to the left is 
 the embryo : the scutellum, sc ; I' the ligule of the scutellum ; vs its vascular bundle ; ce 
 its layer of cylindrical epithelium : c the sheath of the plumule (coleoptile); pv the grow- 
 ing-point of the stem; lip the hypocotyl; I the epiblast; r the radicle; cp the root-cap of 
 the radicle ; cl the root-sheath (coleorhiza) ; m place of exit of the radicle, corresponding 
 with the micropyle of the ovule,; p the funicle ; vp vascular bundle in the funicle ; / 
 lateral surface of the furrow (x 14). (After Strasburger.) 
 
 secondary growth in thickness of the stem takes place, and since 
 the successive portions of the stem are thicker and more vigorous, 
 the whole stem gradually assumes the appearance of an inverted 
 cone; but whan the plant has reached a certain height it may 
 
536 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 then grow cylindrically : this is the reason why in Palms, in the 
 Maize, and other similar erect stems, there is a diminution in 
 thickness at the lower end. Frequently, however, the primary 
 axis of the plant perishes when it has given rise to lateral 
 shoots. 
 
 The arrangement of the leaves is at first alternate : when the 
 stem is well developed this alternate arrangement often passes 
 over into complex spiral arrangements, as in Fritillaria and in 
 Palms, in which plants a crown of leaves is conspicuous. In the 
 Grasses, an a few other families, the phyllotaxis is permanently 
 
 alternate. A whorled arrange- 
 ment of the foliage -leaves 
 occurs but rarely. 
 
 The leaves commonly have a 
 well- developed sheathing leaf- 
 base : they may be described 
 as exstipulate, although certain 
 structures, such as the axillary 
 scales (sqnamulse intravagi- 
 nales) of Naias, Elodea, Acorus, 
 etc., and the tendrils springing 
 from the petioles of Smilax, 
 have been described as stipules, 
 but without conclusive evi- 
 dence. The scales of Naias, 
 etc., seem rather to be ligular. 
 The lamina is usually entire, 
 simple in outline, often long 
 and narrow, linear or eiisi- 
 form, more rarely orbicular, 
 cordate or sagittate. Branched 
 leaves occur only in a few of 
 the Aracese : the pinnate or 
 palmate leaves of the Palms 
 acquire this form by the splitting of the originally entire laminae, 
 and the same is the case with the perforated leaves of many 
 Araceas (see p. 54). 
 
 The venation of the leaves is characterized by the fact that the 
 weaker veins do not usually project on the under surface. In 
 linear leaves, and in such as are inserted by a broad base, the 
 stronger veins run almost parallel; in broader ones, e.g. Lily of 
 
 FIG. 347. Longitudinal section of the grain 
 of Zea Mais (x about 6) : o pericarp; n re- 
 mains of the stigma ; fs base of the grain ; eg 
 hard yellowish part of the endosperm ; ew 
 whiter less dense part of the endosperm ; so 
 scutellum of the embryo ; ss its apex ; e its 
 epidermis ; fe plumule ; w (below) the primary 
 root ; ws the coleorhiza ; w (above) secondary 
 roots springing from the epicotyl (st). (After 
 Sachp.) 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM^ J MONOCOTYLEDONES. 537 
 
 the Valley (Convallaria majalis), they describe a curve which is 
 more or less parallel to the margin ; the weaker veins usually run 
 at right angles between the stronger ones. In the Scitammese 
 and a few other plants, a number of parallel transverse veins are 
 given off at various angles (sometimes acute, and sometimes nearly 
 right angles) from the midrib. Reticulate venation of the leaves 
 is unusual ; but it occurs in Avoids, in Paris quadrifolia, etc. (see 
 p. 56). 
 
 The flower of Monocotyledons consists typically of five alternat- 
 ing and isomerous whorls, two belonging to the perianth, two to 
 the androecium and one to the gynseceum. Thus the typical 
 formula is IiCn, On, Jn + n, 6?n, where n in 1 most cases = 3, more 
 rarely = 2, 4 or 5. 
 
 Lateral flowers have a posterior prophyllum ; hence the first 
 perianth-leaf is anterior. The perianth-leaves are generally all 
 much alike, and petaloid in both series : sometimes they are all 
 sepaloid (e.g. Juncaceas) ; more rarely those of the external whorl 
 are sepaloid, those of the internal petaloid (e.y. Commelynaceae, 
 Alismacea3). 
 
 This type is most closely adhered to in the Liliaceae. The simplest 
 departure from it is exhibited in the suppression of the inner 
 whorl of stamens in the Iridaceae, and in the inferior position of 
 the ovary. This latter character occurs also in the Scitamineae 
 and Orchidacece, which are further characterized by the zygomor- 
 phism of their flowers and the considerable reduction of the 
 androecium. Other various and considerable deviations by re- 
 duction from the Liliaceous type of flower occur among the 
 Araceae, and in the Glu males, and Typhaceae, and in certain water- 
 plants (e.gr. Naiadaceae, Lemnaceae). On the other hand, the 
 deviation may be due to increase in number, more especially of the 
 members of the gynaeceum and to some extent of the androecium 
 (e.g. Alismaceas). 
 
538 
 
 PART in. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 
 
 
 Ed 
 O 
 
 
 
 
 
 "o 
 
 
 ^ 
 
 
 
 
 
 ft 
 
 tn 
 
 M 
 
 
 M 
 
 CO 
 
 S M i| 
 
 o 
 
 ^ 
 
 
 
 [DE^E. 
 ii. EPJGYN^E. 
 
 Hydrales. 
 
 1. HYDROCHARI 
 
 Dioscoreale! 
 
 1. DlOSCOREACt 
 
 2. TACCACKJI. 
 
 3. BROMELIACE 
 
 Amomales 
 mineae). 
 
 r 1. MUSACEJ;. 
 
 O Ed 1 1 CO 
 
 a ^ s 1 s 
 
 Mill 
 
 S ^ J= ^ o 
 S] g p O s- 
 
 S_ OS 
 
 c?q co O r-5 Z 
 
 r 1. AMARYLLID- 
 
 2. IBIDACEJE. 
 
 
 O x 
 
 r-i 
 
 CD 
 
 oq 
 
 CD 
 
 
 
 CO ^ 
 
 R ^ r^ ^ 
 
 o 
 
 ^ 
 
 
 ^1 
 
 -p 
 * 
 
 
 
 | 
 
 i 
 
 
 
 
 
 ** 
 
 1 6 
 
 1 6 1 
 
 
 
 
 
 E 
 
 O 
 
 
 
 
 o 
 O 
 
 
 
 
 'o 
 
 
 
 o o 
 
 
 
 
 
 g 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 CO 
 
 M 
 
 
 
 
 h 1 
 
 SJ 
 
 
 
 H 
 
 
 
 
 
 W td 
 
 
 
 I 
 
 CO 
 
 o 
 
 Sub-class 
 HYPOGYN^E 
 
 ts 
 gs 
 
 
 -^ 
 
 CO 
 
 lismales. 
 
 NAIADACEJJ. 
 
 JUNCAGINACE2 
 
 ALISMACEJ;. 
 
 BUTOMACEJ!. 
 
 38. Syncarpce. 
 ommelyna! 
 
 XYRIDACEJ;. 
 
 S 
 
 P si ^ * 
 
 a -,i 8 1- 
 
 5 S 3 B 
 
 o "c5 ^ "^ 
 := ^3 ^ fS 
 
 
 
 1 
 
 .* 
 
 ' 
 
 < 
 
 rH 
 
 cq 
 
 CO 
 
 ^' 
 
 g o ^ 
 
 CQ -^ r-5 oi co 
 
 
 
 30 
 
 GO 
 
 CD 
 
 
 ^ 
 
 
 
 
 w t" 
 
 ^ 
 
 
 
 a 
 
 2 
 
 i 
 
 r 3 
 
 CD 
 
 
 
 
 
 c<i 53 
 
 
 
 1 
 
 CD 
 
 GO 
 
 1 
 
 1 
 
 O 
 
 5 
 
 s 
 
 " 
 
 w J 6 
 
 1 ^ 
 
 
 
 H 
 
 
 
 O 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 o 
 
 
 
 SH 
 
 
 
 Q 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 O 
 
 
 
 h 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 J 
 
 t l 
 
 i 
 
 (0 
 
 ACEJ3. 
 
 
 
 to 
 
 O 
 
 5 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 ^* 
 
 , "i 
 
 r ^ 
 
 ^ 
 
 "Jj 
 
 _o; 
 
 <j 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 Oj 
 
 ^ 
 
 OS 
 
 E 
 
 
 
 <! 
 
 02 
 
 Cb 
 
 
 o 
 
 o 
 
 
 S 
 
 w 
 
 
 
 
 CO 
 
 B 
 
 B & 
 
 ^ 
 
 O 
 
 
 
 d> 
 
 H 
 
 
 93. 
 
 
 
 
 O 
 
 so Q 
 
 O 
 
 . 
 r ~ l 
 
 oq 
 
 DC 
 
 p-j 
 
 e 
 
 r<l 
 
 
 
 
 pO) 
 
 ei j 
 
 . 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 s* 
 
 
 
 ^ 
 
 CD 
 
 
 2 
 
 CD 
 
 ^ 
 
 CD 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 Ul 
 
 o 
 
 r^ 
 
 O 
 
 
 o 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 M 
 
 
 O 
 
 
 
 o 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 o 
 
 
 Q 
 
 
 
 O 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 *0 
 
 HH 
 
 
 
 
 
 M 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 ^ 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 H 
 CD 
 
 "E 
 
 HH 
 
 P 
 
 
 
 
 E4 
 
 1 
 
 K 
 
 H 
 
 M 
 
 K 
 
 
 , a 
 
 to o 
 
 
 
 
 o 
 
 Cu r . 
 
 
 c> 
 
 S 
 
 < 
 ft 
 
 ^ 
 
 -aj 
 H5 
 
 CD J 
 
 
 
 
 -* 
 
 OQ kn 
 
 CO 
 
 <fl 
 
 ^ 
 
 ^ 
 
 O 
 
 
 OJ J 
 
 
 
 
 Q 
 
 3 
 
 ^? 
 
 ^ 
 
 f3 
 
 (5 
 
 
 
 H 
 
 <1 
 p . 
 
 
 
 
 
 HH O 
 
 L_ 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 "^ 
 
 
 
 
 eu 
 
 CO 
 
 co r^ 
 ctf ^^ 
 
 < 
 
 ^ 
 
 (M 
 
 CO 
 
 ^ 
 
 10 
 
 Q. ^ 
 
 
 
 
 JS 
 
 
 "H 
 
 1 
 
 
 
 ; 
 
 
 
 - 
 
 <*' 
 
 
 
 
 ^H 
 
 t ^> 
 
 " 
 
 /'s 
 
 
 
 
 
 f-i O 
 
 
 
 
 
 a 
 
 o 
 
 ^**^ 
 
 
 
 
 
 o 
 
 
 
 
 
 02 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 o 
 O 
 
 
 
 
 
 
 1 
 
 
 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPER1VLE : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 539 
 
 SUB-CLASS I. SPADICIFLORJE. 
 
 Inflorescence usually a spadix with a spathe, but flower some- 
 times solitary : flowers frequently monosporangiate, sometimes 
 dioecious : perianth, often wanting, never petaloid : anthers usu- 
 ally extrorse, or dehiscing by pores : ovary superior. 
 
 Cohort 1. Arales. The flowers are small and numerous; the 
 inflorescence a spadix or a panicle with thick branches, commonly 
 enclosed in a greatly developed spathe; the brauts of the indi- 
 vidual flowers are frequently wanting ; perianth 0, or polyphyl- 
 lous ; the flowers are usually diclinous, but both kinds of flowers 
 frequently occur in the same inflorescence : gynaeceum apocarpous 
 or syncarpous : the seeds have a large endosperm : the embryo is 
 straight and minute. 
 
 Order 1. ARACE^]. Flowers monoecious or ^ : perianth or of 
 4-6 leaves : stamens 1-8, frequently coherent into a synandrium 
 in the <$ flowers ovary monomerous, or 
 polymerous and multilocular : fruit a berry : 
 seed sometimes exalbuminous. Mostly tro- 
 pical. 
 
 In many of the genera the flowers are 
 complete and conform to the monocotyle- 
 donous type, Kin, Cii, Au + n G ( n ), where 
 
 n may stand for 2, or 3, 
 
 as in Acorus (Fig. 348), 
 
 in which the flowers 
 
 are exactly typical. In 
 
 other genera, however, 
 
 the flowers are reduced 
 
 in various ways and de- 
 grees ; not only does 
 
 the perianth disappear, 
 
 bat the number of the 
 
 stamens and carpels is 
 
 frequently diminished. 
 
 In many ? flowers 
 
 staminodia are present, 
 
 either in the typical or in a smaller number, 
 offered by those diclinous flowers of which the consists of only 
 a single stamen (e.g. Arisarum), and the ? of only one monomerous 
 
 FIG. 348. Flower of 
 Acorns Calamus (mag.) : 
 a outer, i inner peri- 
 anth : st stamens ; / 
 ovary. 
 
 FIG. 349. Spadix of Arum 
 maculatum (nat. size) : / 
 macrosporangiate , a micro- 
 sporangiate, and b rudi- 
 mentary flowers; c the up- 
 per club-shaped end of the 
 spadix. 
 
 I 
 
 An extreme case is 
 
540 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 ovary. These much reduced flowers are disposed in regular 
 order on the spadix : thus in Arum (Fig. 349) the numerous $ 
 flowers, consisting each of one carpel (Fig. 349/). y are inserted on 
 the base of the spadix ; and the <J flowers, each consisting merely 
 of 3-4 stamens, are closely packed higher up on it (Fig. 349 a). 
 The upper part of the spadix is covered with rudimentary flowers 
 (6, c). When, as in this case, the perianth of the true flowers is 
 wholly wanting, the whole inflorescence may assume the aspect 
 of a single flower; but irrespectively of the numerous intermediate 
 forms which are to be found, such a view is untenable when it is 
 borne in mind that here the ovaries are invariably situated below 
 the stamens, while in a flower they are invariably above them. 
 
 The usually sympodial stem may be underground, a tuber, or a 
 rhizome, or it may be aerial ; in the latter case it often climbs, 
 clinging to trees by means of aerial roots. The leaves are either 
 alternate and distichous or, more often, spiral with a divergence 
 of f . They are rarely narrow, linear, or ensiform, and commonly 
 consist of leaf-base, petiole, and blade ; the venation is reticulate, 
 and the leaf often exhibits a more or less complicated segmenta- 
 tion. Laticiferous sacs or cells (see p. 141) occur in some families 
 of the order, as do also sclerotic cells (see p 133). 
 
 Fam. 1. Pothoidea : without either laticiferous or sclerotic cells: flowers 
 usually $ , with or without a perianth. This family includes a number of 
 genera, such as Pothos, Anthurium, Acorus. The only member which occurs in 
 Britain is Acorus Calamus, the Sweet Flag, which grows on the margins of 
 ponds and rivers : its subterranean rhizome bears long ensiform alternate 
 leaves, crimped at the edges ; its flowering-shoot is triquetrous, bearing a 
 terminal spadix which is, however, displaced to one ,side by the spathe which 
 developes so as to form a continuation of the long axis of the flowering-shoot : 
 the spadix is densely covered with flowers (Fig. 348). 
 
 Fam. 2. M onsteroidea : without laticiferous cells, but with sclerotic cells : 
 flowers $ , mostly without a perianth. Monstera deliciosa (sometimes called 
 Pliilodcndron pertusum), with perforated leaves, is commonly cultivated in hot- 
 houses : it comes from Mexico. Scindapsus. 
 
 Fam. 3. Calloideee : with straight rows of laticiferous cells : flowers usually 
 $ , with or without a perianth : leaves never sagittate. No member is indi- 
 genous in Britain : Calla palustris occurs in the marshes of Northern Europe ; 
 it has a white spathe and parallel-veined leaves. Symplocarpus. Orontium. 
 
 Fam. 4. Lasioidece: with straight rows of laticiferous cells : flowers mono- 
 or ambi-sporangiate, mostly without a perianth : leaves sagittate, often 
 segmented. This family includes a number of typical genera, of which Amor- 
 pbophallus is the most conspicuous. 
 
 Fam. 5. Philodendroidece : with straight rows oi laticiferous cells : flowers 
 
GEOUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM2B ; MONOCOTYLEDONES. 541 
 
 diclinous, without a perianth : stamens usually connate : leaves generally 
 parallel-veined. Zantedetchia (Calla or Richardia) cetliiopica, with a white 
 spathe, is commonly cultivated under the name of the Trumpet Lily. 
 
 Fam. 6. Colocasioidece : with a net- work of laticiferous vessels : flowers 
 diclinous, mostly without a perianth ; stamens connate : leaves with reticulate 
 venation. The genera Alocasia, Colocasia, and Caladium, are commonly culti- 
 vated as foliage-plants. 
 
 Fam. 7. Aroidece : with straight rows of laticiferous cells : flowers diclinous: 
 usually without perianth. Arum maculatum, the Cuckoo-pint or Lords and 
 Ladies, is a British plant, common in wood and hedges ; the large green spathe 
 completely envelopes the spadix (Fig. 349). Dracunculus and Arisarum are 
 also European genera. 
 
 Fam. 8. Pistioidea: no laticiferous tissue: flowers diclinous, without 
 perianth : microsporangiate flowers numerous and whorled, macrosporangiate 
 flower single, on the spadix. 
 
 Pixtia Stratiotes, a tropical water-plant, is characterized by having the flowers 
 on the spadix reduced to two, one <J flower, and one 9 flower consisting of a 
 single carpel : the spadix and spathe are adherent. It appears highly pro- 
 bable that the Lemnaceae. mentioned below, are in 
 fact very simple forms of this family. 
 
 Order 2. LEMNACB^E. Stem leafless. jl 
 Each inflorescence consists of two $ flowers 
 and one ? flower borne on a lateral branch 
 of the stem : the $ flowers consist of a 
 single stamen, and the $ flower of one 
 carpel. 
 
 Lemna trisulca, L. (Spirodela) polyrldza, minor 
 and gibbet, are known as Duck- weed ; they are FIG. 350. Part of a plant 
 
 common in tanks and ponds, floating on the water. of Lemnn Msulca ' seen from 
 m . , . , . . above : a the young lateral 
 
 The stem, which is leafless, is almost flat, re- brancheg (nafc . size) . 
 
 sembling a thallus: it bears two rows of branches 
 
 (Fig. 350), as also roots on its under surface which are suspended in the water. 
 Boots are, however, absent in Wolffia arrliiza, which is also devoid of vascular 
 bundles ; its flower has no spathe, and it bears only one row of branches : it 
 is the smallest known flowering plant. 
 
 Order 3. PANDANACEJS. Flowers dioecious, perianth : the ? 
 flower sometimes consists of a single carpel; or of several carpels 
 forming a multilocular (species of Pandanus) ovary, each loculus 
 containing a single ovule ; or of several carpels forming a uni- 
 locular (Freycinetia) ovary with numerous parietal ovules; they 
 are closely crowded on the spadix, which becomes a spurious fruit : 
 the ^ flower has numerous stamens: in the genus Freycinetia, 
 each flower usually has rudiments of the missing reproductive 
 organs. 
 
542 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Pandamis utilis, the Screw-Pine, and other species, form thickets in the 
 tropics, particularly on the banks of rivers. The straight woody stems, which 
 subsequently branch, give off numerous strong adventitious roots which attach 
 them to the soil, and bear crowns of large narrow linear leaves, the margins 
 of which are frequently set with sharp spinous teeth. The tough vascular 
 bundles are used for the manufacture of fabrics. The genus Freycinetia in- 
 cludes a number of shrubs, some of which climb. Tropics of Australasia, and 
 the Malay Archipelago. 
 
 Order 4. CYCLANTHACEJ:. Plants of a palm-like habit in Southern 
 and Central America ; the diclinous flowers, which usually have a 
 perianth, are disposed on the spadix in regular spirals : ovules 
 many, parietal. 
 
 The leaves of Carludovica palmata are applied to various purposes, e.g. 
 Panama hats are woven of them. 
 
 Order 5. TYPHACE^. Flowers monoecious; the perianth repre- 
 sented only by scales, or 0. Stamens usually 3. Ovary usually 
 monomerous, containing one ovule. Inflorescence a spadix, with- 
 out a spathe, elongated or compact. 
 
 In Pparganium, the Bur-Keed, the inflorescences are spherical spikes which 
 are borne terminally and laterally in two rows on the upper part of the stem. 
 The lower spikes bear only ? , and the upper only $ flowers ; the perianth 
 consists of 3-6 scales ; stamens 3-8, free ; gynaeceum sometimes dimerous with 
 an ovule in each loculus. Sparganium simplex and ramosum are not rare in 
 ditches. 
 
 Typha, the Eeed-Mace or Bulrush, bears its flowers on a long terminal spadix; 
 the J flowers are borne directly on the upper and thinner portion of the main 
 axis ; on the lower and thicker portion are borne the ? flowers, partly on 
 the main axis and partly on very short lateral shoots ; the perianth is replaced 
 by long hairs ; stamens 1-5, monadelphous. Typha angustifolia and latifolia 
 occur in bogs and wet places. 
 
 Cohort 2. Pal males. Order 1. PALMACEJ:. The dioecious or 
 monoecious, rarely monoclinous or polygamous, flowers are inserted, 
 with or without bracts, on the spadix or on the thick axis of a 
 spicate or paniculate inflorescence (Fig. 351) : they generally con- 
 form to the type X3, C3, A3 + 3, G ( -> : in some instances a larger 
 or a smaller number of stamens are present : anthers sometimes 
 introrse : carpels rarely more or less than 3, either free or connate ; 
 when the gynoeceum is apocarpous, the ovary is unilocular ; when 
 syncarpous, the ovary has from one to three loculi. Each loculus 
 contains, typically, a single basal ovule ; but in trimerous ovaries, 
 two of the ovules are generally abortive : frequently not more 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEKOGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM^! : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 543 
 
 than one of the carpels (whether the gynseceum be apocarpous or 
 syncarpous) developes into the fruit : the fruit is generally bac- 
 cate or drupaceous, one-seeded: the seed is large, and the contained 
 endosperm is horny. 
 
 Their mode of growth is somewhat various. Most palms bear 
 their leaves closely arranged in a crown at the top of a tall or of 
 a quite short stem, which is clothed for some distance below its 
 apex with the remains of the older withered leaves. But in some 
 genera, e.g. Calamus, the stems creep or climb and the leaves are 
 inserted at some distance from each other. The blade of the 
 leaf commonly splits in the course of its growth, assuming a com- 
 pound palmate or pinnate form (see p. 54). The inflorescence 
 is invested by bracts : there is usually a large bract (spathe) which 
 envelopes the whole inflorescence when young, 
 and other, inner, bracts which either partially 
 invest it or (when branched) its branches. 
 
 Palms chiefly inhabit the tropics, particu- 
 larly the Moluccas, Brazil, and the region of 
 the Orinoco, and the different genera belong 
 exclusively (at least originally) either to the 
 Old or to the New World. 
 
 Fam. 1. Coryphina : the gynaeceum consists of three 
 free, or but slightly coherent, carpels : fruits 1-3, bac- ' 
 cate : the leaf-segments are concave above. Phcenix 
 dactyHfera (the Date Palm) a native of Asia and Africa, 
 has pinnatind leaves. Of the three ovaries, one only Fi& 351 _p art of tne 
 developes to form the fruit which is known as the Date ; panicle of macrosporan- 
 the stoue of the Date consists of a very thin testa en- giato flowers of Chamse- 
 closing the large mass of hard endosperm in which the dorea : sthe thick axis ; 
 embryo is imbedded. Chamcerops humilis is a frequently Eternal who'rl of the 
 cultivated ornamental plant, with fan-like leaves, which perianth ; /ovary (x 3). 
 belongs to the Mediterranean region. 
 
 Fam. 2. Borassina : ovary syncarpous, trilocular at its base : fruit 1-3 
 seeded, smooth, drupaceous, with hard endocarp : leaves fan-shaped, the seg- 
 ments concave above. To this family belong Hyphcene thebaica, the Doum 
 Palm of Egypt ; and Borassusflabelliformis, the Palmyra of India and Africa. 
 
 Fam. 3. Lepidocaryivte : ovary syncarpous, trilocular : fruit covered with 
 scales, enclosing a single seed : leaf-segments convex above. 
 
 Mauritia is an American genus. Kaphia, an African genus, but occurring 
 in America, is one of the few instances in which a genus of Palms is repre- 
 sented in both the New and the Old Worlds : from its leaves " Eaphia-bast " 
 is obtained ; R. vinifera is the Bamboo Palm from which Palm-wine i^ made in 
 Africa. Metroxylon (Eu-Sagus) Rumphii and lave, growing in the Moluccas, 
 are the plants from which Sago is obtained ; it consists of the starch-grains 
 V. S. B. N N 
 
544 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 obtained from the parenchyma of tbe trunk. The stems of species of Calamus, 
 in the East Indies, supply Malacca-cane. 
 
 Fam. 4. Ceroxylince: ovary syncarpous, uni- or tri-locular: fruit a berry 
 (sometimes 3 berries by separation of the carpels after fertilisation) or a drupe, 
 1-3 seeded : leaves pinnate. 
 
 Areca Catechu (Fig. 352 J) is the Betel-Palm of tropical Asia. Cocos nudfera 
 (the Coco-nut Palm) has, as is well known, many uses. The fruit itself is a 
 gigantic drupaceous fruit ; tbe mesocarp is traversed by an immense number of 
 vascular bundles, which are used to make ropes, etc. Inside the excessively 
 hard innermost layer of the pericarp, the endocarp, lies a single large seed. 
 When the fruit is mature, the endosperm forms a layer only a few millimetres 
 in thickness, which lines the hard shell ; the rest of the space (the remaining 
 cavity of the embryo-sac) is filled with fluid, known as coco-nut milk. The 
 embryo, which is small, is imbedded in the firm tissue of the endosperm, under 
 
 FIG. 352. A Part of the macrosporangiate inflorescence of Phoenix reclinata (nat. size) : 
 B single macrosporangiate flower: C two carpels: D floral diagram. J Fruit of Areca 
 Cafechu: one half of the fibrous pericarp has been, removed. 
 
 the spot where there is a hole (corresponding in position to the style of the 
 single fertile loculus of the ovary) in the endocarp. Elais guineensis is the 
 Oil Palm of West Africa ; the mesocarp of the plum-like fruit yields the oil. 
 
 Fam. 5. Phytelephantince : flowers dioecious (Phytelephas) or monoecious 
 (Nipa) ; in the former genus, the ? flowers have numerous staminodes ; in the 
 latter the two kinds of flowers are respectively confined to distinct branches of 
 the same spadix, the staminate branches being lateral and arnentoid, whilst the 
 carpellary flowers form a cluster at the apex of the main axis: stamens 
 numerous and free (Phytelephas), or three connate (Nipa) : perianth sometimes 
 absent ( $ flowers of Nipa) : ovary syncarpous, tri-carpellary, one-seeded (Nipa), 
 or of 4-9 carpels (Phytelephas) with as many seeds. 
 
 These are low-growing-Palms, Nipa belonging to the East Indies, and 
 Phytelephas to tropical America : the hard endosperm of Phytelephas is known 
 as vegetable ivory. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOS PEBBLE : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 545 
 
 SUB-CLASS II. GLUMIFLOR^E. 
 
 Flowers ambisporangiate or monosporangiate and then mostly 
 monoscious, usually in heads or spikelets invested by imbricate 
 bracts : perianth absent, or scaly : ovary superior, uni- or multi- 
 locular, with one ovule in the loculus : seeds with endosperm. 
 
 Cohort 1. Glumales. Ovary unilocular : ovule erect. 
 
 Order 1. GRAMINACEJ;. True Grasses. The leaves are alternate 
 on the stem, which is known as the haulm ; the embryo lies on the 
 side of the endosperm (Figs. 346-7). The usually ambisporangiate 
 flowers generally have the formula KQ, CO, -43 + 0, GI ; they are 
 enclosed by bracts here termed palece, and are arranged in compli- 
 cated inflorescences ; the monomerous unilocular ovary contains 
 only one ovule ; the grain is the fruit, a caryopsis, to which one 
 (the inferior) or, less commonly, both, of the paleas sometimes 
 adhere, e.g. Barley and Oats. 
 
 The flower is sessile in the 
 axil of a bract, which is 
 termed the inferior or outer 
 palea, sometimes also called 
 the flowering -glume (Fig. 355 
 &!, 7> 2 ...), and there is also a 
 bracteole opposite to and 
 somewhat higher than this 
 which is termed the superior 
 or inner palea (Fig. 355 ps). 
 the flower. 
 
 Within the inferior palea are usually two small (antero-lateral) 
 scales, the lodicules (sometimes only a single anterior one. 
 MclicaX and occasionally (e.g. Stipa, some Bambuseee Fig. 353 A\ 
 there is a third scale situated posteriorly within the superior 
 palea. These lodicules are frequently regarded as rudimentary 
 perianth-leaves (Fig. 353), but it is more probable that they 
 
 Fro. 353. Diagrams of Grass flowers. A 
 Bambusa. B Common type of Graminace*. 
 In A there are three, in B two lodicules. 
 
 The two palese completely enclose 
 
 are bracteoles, the two antero-lateral 
 two halves q 
 They grow 
 
 lodicules representing the 
 
 single bracteole, present, as 
 and become 
 
 such, in Mel ica. ^ 
 
 succulent at the time of flowering, thus 
 forcing apart the paleas and the glumes (Fig. 354). Usually two 
 or more flowers, thus enclosed by palea3, are present on an axis 
 (Fig. 355 aj), and constitute the spikelet of the Grass, and beneath 
 the lowest flower there are usually two (or more) bracts which 
 
546 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 bear no flowers in their axils and are known as the glumes (Fig. 
 355 g). Thus a spikelet consists of a main axis bearing two rows 
 of bracts of which the two first and lowest are barren, while the 
 succeeding ones bear each a flower in its axil, and beneath each 
 flower there is also a bracteole (superior palea) belonging to the 
 floral branch itself. The inferior palese often have, either at the 
 apex or else borne on the midrib, a spinous process called the 
 arista or awn (Fig. 355 gr). 
 
 The number of flowers in each spikelet varies, however, according 
 to the genas ; often there is but one, the lowest, with rudiments of 
 
 FIG. 354 Single-flowered spikelet of 
 Ponicwm, miliaceum (mag.); C a and C, 
 second and third glumes : D inferior 
 palea: E superior palea. 
 
 FIGK 355. A spikelet of Wheat dis- 
 sected (mag.) : x axid of the spikelet; 
 g glumes ; bj b 2 b 3 b inferior palese bear- 
 ing (gr) the awn ; b 4 is sterile. -B x # 2 B 3 
 the flowers raised (as indicated by the 
 dotted lines) out of the axils of the in- 
 ferior palese ; ps superior paleae ; a an- 
 thers ; /ovaries. 
 
 others above it; if, however, only one of the upper flowers is de- 
 veloped, then the lower paleae bear no flowers in their axils and 
 are regarded as glumes, several being therefore present in such a 
 case. The spikelets themselves are in many genera, e.g. Rye and 
 Wheat (Fig. 356 .B), arranged in two rows on a main axis ; the 
 inflorescence may then be designated a compound spike (see p. 
 491); in most of the other genera the main axis of the inflor- 
 escence bears lateral branches which are slender, of various length, 
 and often branched again, and which bear the terminal spikelets ; 
 in this way a panicle is formed, as in the Oat (Fig. 356 A). This 
 may be either loose and spreading, with long lateral branches, or 
 compressed, with very short branches, e.g. Alopecurus. The 
 
GKOUP IV. PHANEROGAM1A : ANGIOSPERMJ! : MONOCOTYLEDON ES. 547 
 
 position of the branches of the panicle is more or less bilateral ; 
 dorsiventral, when (e.g. Festuca) the branchlets of the main 
 branches of the panicle all arise on the same side (unilateral or 
 secund panicle). 
 
 The andrcecinm consists commonly of one (Fig. 353 B) or two 
 (A) whorls of 2-3 stamens ; when there is but one whorl of 
 stamens, it corresponds to the outer whorl in those flowers in 
 which two whorls are present. Sometimes (e.g. LuzioJa, Ochlandra, 
 Pariana) the stamens are numerous (about 1820), or there may 
 be but one or two. When there are normally only two stamens, 
 they are usually situated in the median plane (e.g. Anthoxanthum), 
 sometimes in the lateral plane (e.g. Coleanthus); but where this 
 is the result of suppression (Diarrhena, Orthoclada) they are 
 postero- lateral, the anterior stamen being suppressed : when there 
 is only a single stamen, this is generally the anterior stamen (e.g. 
 species of Festuca and Andropogon), the two postero-lateral 
 stamens being suppressed. 
 
 The monomerous gyn88ceum consists of a single median carpel 
 (Fig. 353), bearing 13 styles (see p. 524): the single, somewhat 
 campylptropous ovule is sessile on the ventral suture of the carpel. 
 
 The stem is generally characterised by swollen or tumid nodes, 
 to which the sheathing leaf-bases contribute. The long interned es 
 are hollow : the sheathing leaf-bases are largely developed, and 
 frequently extend over several internodes. A membranous ligule 
 is developed at the junction of leaf-base and lamina (see p. 48; 
 Fig. 28). 
 
 The more common Grasses are classified as follows : 
 
 Series A. PANICOIDE^E : spikelet one-flowered, or sometimes two-flowered 
 and then the lower flower is imperfect ; articulated so that it falls off entire 
 after flowering ; no prolongation of the axis beyond the flower. 
 
 Tribe 1. Panicece: spikelets dorsally compressed, in compound spikes: 
 glumes 3, of which the lowest is the smallest : inferior palea without an awn. 
 
 Panicum glabrnm (Digitaria humifusa), P. (Echinuchloa) Crus-galli, and P. 
 (Setaria) viride occur occasionally on cultivated land. P. miliaceum yields 
 Millet (Fig. 354). 
 
 Tribe 2. Maydece : the diclinous flowers are in distinct ppikelets ; the two 
 kinds of spikelets usually form distinct inflorescences, but sometimes they occur 
 in different parts of the same inflorescence : the lowest glume is the largest. 
 
 Zca Mais, the Maize Plant, cultivated in warm countries, is a native of 
 Tropical America : the $ spikelets form a loose panicle at the apex of the 
 haulm, and the 9 flowers are borne laterally on a thick spadix, which is en- 
 sheathed by leaves. Coix belongs to this tribe. 
 
548 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Tribe 3. Antiropnyonea; : flowers monoecious or polygamous : glumes 3, of 
 which the lowest is the largest. 
 
 Saccharum 0/icinarum, the Sugar-cane, is a native of the East Indies. 
 Andropogon Sorghum, in different varieties (vulgaris, Durra, etc.), yields a kind 
 of Millet seed : the flour of this is known in Arabia and India as Durra. 
 
 Tribe 4. Oryzece : spikes laterally compressed : glumes 2-4, often represented 
 only by bristles : stamens generally 6. Ori/za satlva is the Kice-plant, from 
 the East Indies ; cultivated in marshy regions of Southern Europe. Leersia 
 oryzoides, the Cut-Grass, is found in ditches in the South of England. 
 
 Series B. POOIOE^E : spikelet one- or many-flowered, with distinct internodes 
 between the flowers : when one-flowered, the axis of the spikelet is prolonged 
 
 beyond the flower : the ripe fruits 
 fall, leaving the glumes behind. 
 
 Tribe 5. Plialaridece : spike- 
 lets pedicillate in panicles, later- 
 ally compressed, 1- flowered : 
 glumes 4, the inner pair being 
 smaller. Phalaris amndinacea, 
 the Heed-Grass, is common on 
 the banks of streams, etc.: a 
 variety with white- streaked leaves 
 is cultivated in gardens. Anthox- 
 an/hnm odoratum, Vernal-Grass, 
 which has only two stamens and 
 a paniculate inflorescence, is 
 common in meadows : it gives 
 the peculiar odour to fresh hay. 
 
 Tribe 6. Agrostidece : spike- 
 lets 1-flowered, in panicles : 
 glumes 2. 
 
 In Agrostis, the Bent-Grass, 
 the axis of the spikelet is gla- 
 brous, or it bears short hairs ; A. 
 vulgari* and alba are common in 
 meadows : Apera Spica Venti is 
 common in fields : in Calama- 
 grostis, the Small Eeed, several 
 species of which occur on the 
 banks of rivers and in woods, the 
 axis of the spikelet is covered with long hairs. Stipa pennata, the Feather- 
 Grass, has a long hairy awn. Milium cff'usum, Millet-Grass, without an awn, 
 is common in woods. Amongst the forms with dense cylindrical panicles, 
 Alopecurus, the Fox-tail Grass, has the glumes coherent at the base, and one 
 rudimentary palea. Phleum, the Cat's-tail Grass, has free glumes and two 
 distinct paleas. Phltum pratense is commonly known as Timothy-Grass. 
 
 Tribe 7. Avenece : the paniculate, or rarely spicate, spikelets consist of several 
 (usually two) flowers one of which is sometimes <? ; the glumes (or one of them 
 at least) are as long as the whole spikelet, longer than the inferior pale*, which 
 usually have a long twisted or bent awn. 
 
 B 
 
 FIG. 356. A Panicle of Oat, Arena sativa : s main 
 axis; s' lateral axes; a spikelet (J nat. size). B 
 Spike of Wheat: s axis; g the depressions in 
 which the spikelets (a) lie. These are removed 
 at the lower part. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROC4AMIA : ANGIOSPERMJ3 : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 549 
 
 Avena, the Oat-Grass, has loose panicles, and a two-toothed inferior palea ; of 
 this genus there are many species ; A. fatu<i (Wild Oats, or Havers), praten*i* 
 and pu'tescens, are common in cornfields and meadows. The following species 
 are cultivated : A. sativa, the Oat (Fig. 356 A), with its panicles in various 
 planes ; A. oriental^, with its panicles in one plane; A. xtrigo<a, with a hairy 
 floral axis; and A. nuda, the spikelets of which usually consist of three flowers 
 2'risetum (Avna) flavescem, the jellow Oat-Grass, with a free fruit, occurs in 
 pastures. Aira (Deschampsia) ctftpitosa, a,nd.flexuosa, Hair-Grasses, have truncate 
 inferior palese, and are common in meadows and woods. Holcus, the Honey- 
 Grass, has spikelets consisting of two flowers, the upper of which is usually $ 
 and the leaf-sheaths are covered with silky hairs ; it is common in damp meadows. 
 In Arrhenatherum, the False Oat-Grass, the lower of the two flowers is $ . 
 
 Tribe 8. Festiicea : the spikelets are usually many-flowered, and the glumes 
 shorter than the inferior paleae which either have no awn or a straight terminal 
 awn. Melica, the Melic-Grass, has sometimes spikelets consisting of a single 
 flower only : the glumes are long ; it is common in woods. Molinia coerulea has 
 a very long haulm, consisting for the most part of a single internode ; its spike- 
 lets are in loose purplish panicles ; it occurs on moors. Briza, the Quaking- 
 Grass, has spikelets which are compressed laterally and are cordate at the base ; 
 it is common in meadows. Koeleria cristata has dense panicles ; it is common 
 in dry meadows. Dactylis glomerata, the Cock's-foot Grass, has dense panicles 
 divided into parts which have longer stalks ; it is common in meadows. Poo, 
 pratensis, trivialis,ekc. (Meadow- Grass), are common in meadows; their spikelets 
 are compressed laterally ; the glumes have a sharp keel ; P. annua is common 
 by the roadside. Other Meadow-Grasses are Glyceria aqnatica and fluitans, 
 with obtuse unequal glumes, and a lower palea with 5--7 prominent parallel 
 veins, growing in ditches ; and Schlerovhloa maritima, distans, etc., growing in 
 salt marshes and by the sea-shore, with acute unequal glumes. In all the 
 Meadow-Grasses, the fruit is free from the paleas. Festuca elatior, and others, the 
 Fescue Grasses, are common in meadows. Bromus, the Brome-Grass, of which 
 there are several species, is common in fields (B. secalinu*), in meadows (B. 
 raceinonus and others), by the roadside (B. sterilis and mollis). Brachypodium, 
 with shortly-stalked spikelets in a simple raceme, and unequal glumes, is common 
 in woods (B. sylraticum) and on heaths (B. pinnatum). In Phragmites the 
 axis of the spikelet is covered with long silky hairs ; Phragmites communis, the 
 Eeed, occurs abundantly in marshes. Sesleria ccerulea, the Moor-Grass, has 
 laterally compressed spikelets in dense panicles. Gynerium, the Pampas- 
 Grass, also belongs here ; it is dioacious. The upper flowers in the spikelets 
 of plants belonging to this tribe are often unisexual, and <J ; Phragmites is 
 peculiar in that the lower flower of the spikelet is $ . 
 
 Tribe 9. Chluridece : spikelets laterally compressed, usually 1-flowered, sessile, 
 in compound spikes : glumes 2. Cynodon Dactylon, the Dog's-tooth Grass, is 
 often abundant on waste ground. Spartina stiicta occurs in salt-marshes. 
 
 Tribe 10. Hordece : spikelets solitary, or 2 or 3 together, 1- or many-flowered, 
 situated in depressions on the main fl< -ral axis nearly always in two opposite 
 rows, forming the so-called spike: glumes 1-2. In Lolium, the Eye-Grass 
 (L. perenne, Darnel, is common everywhere), the posterior surface (that is, the 
 middle line of the posterior glutne) is directed towards the main axis, and this 
 
550 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 glume is usually rudimentary. In all the other genera the side of the spikelet 
 is directed towards the main axis, and there are two glumes. In Agopyrum, the 
 palese adhere and fall off with the fruit : A. repens, the Couch-Grass, is common 
 everywhere, and is a troublesome weed on account of its spreading rhizome. 
 Stcnle cerealt, the Eye, has 2 flowered spikelets and narrow awl-shaped glumes. 
 In Nardus stricta, the Mat-Grass, the two rows of spikelets converge laterally ; 
 the glumes are rudimentary ; there is but one stigma ; the leaves and haulms 
 are rough ; it grows on moors. Triticum, the Wheat, has 3- or more flowered 
 spikelets, with ovate glume?". Three species are cultivated, T. moncoccu>n, 
 T. sativum, and T. pnlonicum ; in the first species the terminal spikelet is abortive. 
 The following varieties of T. sativum are cultivated ; T. vulgare, the common. 
 Wheat, with long glumes, which have no keel, and T. turyidtim, English Wheat, 
 with short keeled glumes; T. compaction, the Dwarf Wheat, with short, stout 
 spikelets ; and T. durum, the Hard Wheat, known by its long rigid awns ; all 
 these varieties have a wiry floral axis (hence sometimes described as T. sativum 
 teuax), and the fruit easily falls out of the glumes, and in all but T. durum there 
 are awned and un-awned (beardless) forms : T. Spelta, the Spelt, which has an 
 almost quadrangular spike, and T. dicoccum, with a compact spike, have a brittle 
 floral axis, and the fruit is firmly enclosed by the glumes. In all the species 
 the length of the awn varies very much. Hordeum, the Barley, has 3 single- 
 flowered spikelets inserted together in one depression on the floral axis. H. 
 murinum is common on the roadside and on walls. The following varieties of 
 H. sativum are cultivated: H. vulgare and H. hexastichum, with only fertile 
 spikelets ; in the latter species the spikelets are all equally distant, and are 
 therefore arranged in six rows ; in the former species the median spikelets are 
 nearer together, and the lateral ones more distant, so that they are described as 
 being in four rows : further, H. disticlium is the two-rowed Barley, the lateral 
 spikelets of which are $ , so that the fruits are arranged in two rows. The 
 fruit usually adheres to the palea ; the embryo has no epiblast. The genus 
 Elymus, the Lyme- Grass (E. arenarius, British) belongs to this tribe, as also 
 Pariana, a tropical genus remarkable for its numerous stamens. 
 
 Tribe 11. Bambusece : spikelets 2- or many-flowered, rarely 1-flowered, in 
 racemes or panicles, clustered at the nodes of the branches of the inflorescence : 
 glumes 2 or many, becoming larger upwards, but shorter than the nearest palea 
 (see Fig. 353 A) : stamens generally 6. Large Grasses, known as Bamboos, 
 having perennial aerial shoots with often shortly petiolate leaves, growing mostly 
 in the Tropics. The most familiar genera are Arundinaria and Bambusa. 
 
 Order 2. CYPERACE^. The leaves are arranged in three rows 
 on the stem : perianth 0, or of 3-6 or more bristles or scales : the 
 andrcecium consists typically of two trimerous whorls, though one 
 whorl (the inner) is absent in some genera : the gynasceum is 
 typically trimerous, though it is sometimes dimerous : ovary 
 nnilocular: ovule erect, anatropous; the embryo is enclosed in 
 the endosperm. 
 
 Tribe 1. Scirpoidea : flowers $ ; perianth 0, or of bristles : glumes disti- 
 chous : the odd carpel is anterior. The spikelets are often arranged so as to 
 
GROUP IV. - PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM^E : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 551 
 
 form spikes, panicles, umbels, or capitula : the flower has the formula 
 K3, 03, 43 + or 3, G!>. 
 
 Cyperus, the Galingale, has many-flowered compressed spikelets with 
 deciduous bracts or glumes : Schoenus, the Bog-Bush, has few-flowered (1-4) 
 spikelets with persistent glumes : C. longus and fusciis, and S. nigrictm*, 
 occur in England. Cy perns Papyrus (Papyrus Anti quorum] is an Egyptian 
 species from which the Papyrus of the ancients was made. 
 
 Scirpus, the Club-Bush, has a bristly perianth, cylindrical spikelets, and the 
 glumes are imbricate on all sides ; in some species the spikelets are solitary, 
 as in Scirpus ccespitosus, in others there are lateral spikelets, in addition, on 
 short stalks, as in S. lacustris (the true Bulrush), or on long stalks, as in S. 
 sijlvaticus. Eriophorum polystachium and other species (Cotton-grass) are 
 
 FIG. 357. A Flower of Scirpus (magnified): 
 1> the bristly perianth ; a the three stamens ; 
 / the ovary: n the three stigmata. B Its 
 floral diagram. 
 
 D 
 
 FIG. 358. Flower of Carex (mag.). 
 A ? flower with (b) bract (giume); s 
 second bract (utriculus); / ovary; n 
 stigma. B $ flower : st the three 
 stamens; a anthers. C Diagram of the 
 $ and (D) of the <J flower : r axis of the 
 spike ; b bract (glume) ; s second bract. 
 
 common on boggy moors ; the hairs of the perianth, after flowering, grow to a 
 con-iil erable length. 
 
 Tribe 2. Caricoidece : spikelets cylindrical; flowers monosporangiate ; 
 perianth 0. 
 
 These plants have diclinous (sometimes dioecious) flowers. In the genus 
 Carex the <? flowers have the formula KQ, CO, 43 + 0, GO; they are situated in 
 the axils of bracts (glumes) (Fig. 358 B and D) and form simple spikes. The $ 
 flowers have the formula KQ, CO, 40 + 0, (?<! or <> and are not sessile in the 
 axils of the glumes (6 in Fig. 358 A and C), but a short branch springs from 
 the axil of each of these leaves bearing a second bract (s in the Fig.) and it 
 is in the axil of this second bract that the ? flower, which consists of a 
 trimerous, or more rarely, dimerous (in Carex dioica and pnlicaris, etc.) ovary, 
 is situated. The second bract increases greatly and invests the fruit (and the 
 short branch which sometimes projects beyond the fruit as a seta), forming the 
 so-called utriculus : this structure has been regarded as a perianth, and termed 
 
552 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the perigynium. In Kobresia (Elyna) the second bract is not tubular, and 
 therefore does not completely invest the ovary. In consequence of there being 
 a second bract, the odd carpel of the trimerous gynseceurn is posterior : when 
 the gynseceum is dimerous, the two carpels are lateral. 
 
 The genus Carex, the Sedge, contains numerous species which grow mostly 
 in damp localities ; they have stiff leaves with sharp or saw like edges. Only a 
 few of them are dioecious (G. dioica, scirpoidea) : in most the J and $ in- 
 florescences occur on the same axis. In one large section of them the two 
 kinds of flowers occur on the same spike which is either $ at the base and ? 
 at the top, or vice versa. When this is the case the axis bears either only one 
 terminal spike, as in Carex pulicaris and C. pauciflora, or several spikes 
 forming a capitulum at the apex, as in C. cyperoides, or a spike or a panicle, 
 as in G. muricata, arcnaria, and paniculata. In a second section, on the other 
 hand, each spike is monosporangiate, and then the $ spike is almost always 
 terminal on the axis and the ? lateral, as in Carex acuta, glauca, prcecox, 
 digitata,flava, and paludosa. 
 
 Cohort 2. Restiales. Ovary usually multilocular ; a single 
 orthotropous and suspended ovule in each loculus ; hence in the 
 seed the radicle of the embryo is directed away from the hilum 
 (enantioblastic) . Flowers monosporangiate, rarely ambisporangiate, 
 with bracts : floral formula K'3, (73, ^3 + 3, Cr(3), but occasionally 
 some of the members are wanting. 
 
 Order 1. ERIOCAULONACEJE. Flowers monosporangiate, in 
 capitula, often monoecious in the same capitulum, or rarely 
 dioecious : stamens generally in two whorls, anthers generally 
 bilocular : ovary 2-3-locular : seed ribbed. 
 
 Eriocaiilon sfptangulare, the Jointed Pipewort, occurs in the Hebrides and 
 on the west coast of Ireland : other genera mostly tropical : generally marsh- 
 plants. 
 
 Order 2. RESTIACEJ:. Flowers usually dioecious by suppression, 
 in spikes : only the inner whorl of stamens is present, anthers 
 frequently bilocular : ovary 1-3-locular : seed smooth or tubercu- 
 late. 
 
 These are grass-like sub-tropical plants living in the southern hemisphere. 
 This order includes the group CentrolepidaceaB (Desvauxiacere, Lindl.) ; in these 
 the perianth is much reduced, the $ flower probably has only one stamen, and 
 the $ one or more monomerous ovaries. 
 
GttOUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : A.NGIOSPERM^ : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 553 
 
 SUB-CLASS III. PETALOIDE^E. 
 
 Flowers ambisporangiate, rarely nionosporangiate ; perianth 
 rarely wanting, usually biseriate, the corolla usually petal old, and 
 sometimes the calyx also. 
 
 SERIES I. HYPOGYN/E. 
 
 Ovary superior. 
 
 Sub-series. Apocarpce. 
 
 Gynseceum more or less completely apocarpous. 
 
 Cohort 1. Alismales. Marsh- or water-plants ; flowers fre- 
 quently monosporangiate ; seeds without endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. NAIADACEJ;. Perianth 0, or of 2-4 segments ; stamens 
 1-4 : ovaries 1-4, with usually a single erect or suspended ovule. 
 Water-plants. 
 
 Fam. 1. Naiadece. Flowers monosporangiate. 
 
 In the genius Naias the flowers are solitary or in spikes, and are dioecious: 
 perianth of one or two gamophyllous series : c flowers with 1 stamen, 9 flowers 
 with 1 carpel : ovule erect. N. ftexilis is the only British species. 
 
 Fam. 2. Zostcrece. Flowers monosporangiate. 
 
 In Zostera, the Grass-wrack, the flowers are monoecious, and without a 
 perianth ; they are borne in two rows on one side of a flattened spike ; stamen 
 1, carpel 1. Zostera marina and nana are the British species living in the 
 brackish water of estuaries. Phyllospadix, a North American (west-coast) genus, 
 also belongs to this family : it is dioecious. 
 
 Fam. 3. Zamrichelliece. Flowers monosporangiate. 
 
 In Zannichellia, the Horned Pondweed, the monosporangiate flowers are 
 monoecious, and are solitary or in spikes : $ flower, perianth 0, stamen 1 ; ? 
 flower, perianth bell-shaped, carpels 4-6. Z.palustris is the only British species. 
 Altheuia, the other genus, is sometimes dioecious. 
 
 Fam. 4. Cyinodocece. Marine. Flowers mouosporangiate, dioecious : perianth 
 : (J flower consists of two connate stamens; flower of two adjacent mono- 
 inerous ovaries, each bearing a style which branches into two stigmata ; ovule 
 single, suspended, orthotropous. 
 
 To this family belongs the genus Cymodocea (with the sub-genera Phu- 
 cagrostis, Physoschoenus, and Amphibolis) ; widely distributed on tropical and 
 sub-tropical sea-coasts. 
 
 Fam. 5. Posidoniece. Marine. Flowers monosporangiate, sometimes , in 
 cylindrical compound spikes, the upper flowers of which are <$ : perianth : the 
 $ flower consists of 3 stamens, the $ flower of a single carpel. 
 
 To this family belongs the siugle genus Posidonia ; P. oceanica inhabits the 
 shores of the Mediterranean. P. australi* the shores of temperate Australia. In 
 Zostera, Posidonia, and Cymodocea, the pollen is filiform or confervoid (see p. 520j. 
 
 Fain. 6. Potainogetonetf. Flowers $ . 
 
554 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 In Potai.ogeton, the Pondweed, the flowers are in spikes: general formula 
 PO, A2 + A2, Gx4: the extrorse stamens navy a broad leafy connective. 
 This genus is represented in Britain by many species : in some (P. pusillux) 
 the stem bears only submerged leaves which are narrow and linear ; in others 
 the leaves are somewhat broader (P. densus), and in others again it bears a few 
 broad leaves which float on the water (P. natans). 
 
 In Enppia, the Tassel Pondweed, the flowers are generally two on a spike ; 
 formula PO, A2, G4. R. maritima is the British species. 
 
 Fam. 7. Aponogetnnece. Flowers $ , in spikes: perianth of 2 or 3 petaloid leaves: 
 general floral formula P2-3, A&, GB, but sometimes (as in Apnuofletondistachi/us) 
 there may be six stamens and many carpels : ovules marginal, anatropous, either 
 numerous, or as few as three. 
 
 This family includes the single genus Aponogeton, an aquatic plant inhabiting 
 the tropical and temperate regions of Asia, Africa, and Australia. 
 
 A. (Ouvirandra) fenestralis is remarkable for the peculiar structure of its 
 leaves (see p. 55). 
 
 Order 2. JUNCAGINACEJ;, Flowers sometimes dioecious ; both 
 perianth- whorls are sepaloid and inconspicnous ; anthers extrorse; 
 carpels sometimes coherent ; the outer whorl of carpels is occasion- 
 ally abortive ; ovules 1-2, anatropous, embryo straight. 
 
 Triglochin palustre, the Arrow-Grass, is common in marshes and on the 
 margin of pools : carpels coherent till mature. The flowers are disposed spirally 
 in a long loose spike without bracts. Scheuchzeria puluttris is rarer ; it occurs 
 in bogs ; the flowers are set in the axils of distichous bracts : carpels free. The 
 other genera are, Tetroncium, from the Straits of Magellan, with dioecious 
 flowers ; and Lilsea, from the mountains of North and South America, which is 
 polygamous, having <5 , ? , and $ flowers. 
 
 FIG. 359. -Diagram of the Flower of 
 Tiiglochiu. 
 
 Fis. 360. Floral cli>i grams. A of 
 Butou.us. B Of Alitma. 
 
 Order 3. ALISMACE^!. Flowers sometimes monoecious ; flora", 
 formula JT3, C3, ^3 2 + or 3, or oo, 3 + 3 or oo : perianth hetero- 
 chlamydeous ; the sepals are often coherent at the base ; the petals 
 are white or violet ; anthers extrorse or introrse ; carpels sometimes 
 partially coherent ; ovules 1-3, campylotropous, embryo curved. 
 
 AHama Plantago (Water Plantain, Fig. 360 B), has the floral formula #3, C3, 
 A3'* + 0, G6 or more ; the numerous, monomerous, one-seeded ovaries are 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM.E : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 555 
 
 crowded on the broad receptacle. The main axis of the inflorescence bears 
 whorls of branches which have a helicoid ramification. It is rather common in 
 damp spots. Damasonium stellatum, the Star-fruit, is found in ditches in the 
 South of England : it has two-seeded ovaries. 
 
 Sagittaria sagittcefolia, the Arrowhead, has monoecious flowers with the 
 formula KB, (7:3, A GO, $ Gj^. The flowers are disposed in trimerous whorls, 
 the 6* in the upper and the ? in the lower whorls. The anthers are extrorse. 
 The ovaries, which are very numerous and one-seeded, are inserted on a fleshy 
 receptacle. Only the sagittate leaves aud the inflorescence appear above the 
 water. 
 
 Order 4. BUTOMACEJE. Flo wersnevermonosporangiate; general 
 floral formula the same as in Alismacese ; anthers introrse ; carpels 
 distinct ; ovules numerous, with superficial placentation j embryo 
 straight or curved. 
 
 Dutnmus umlellatus ia 
 the Flowering Bush (Figs. 
 3(50 A, 361). The flowers, 
 which have violet petals, 
 have the following for- 
 mula : KB, (73, .43 2 -f3, 
 G 3 + 3 ; they are arranged 
 in an umbellate helicoid 
 cyme at the apex of the 
 scape, which is about 3 
 feet high ; this and the 
 leaves, which are of about 
 the same length, spring 
 from an underground rhi- 
 zome. The ovules, which 
 are numerous, are borne 
 on the inner surface of 
 the carpels (Fig. 338 C) : 
 the embryo is straight. 
 
 The other genera all 
 have a curved embryo : in 
 
 FIG. 361. Butomus umbellats. A Flower (nat. size). 
 J3 Gynaeceum (mag.); stigmata. I Diagram: p p 
 perianth; /stamens of the outer whorl duplicate: /' 
 stamens of the inner whorl; c outer, and c' inner whorl 
 of carpels. (After Sachs.) 
 
 Tenagocharis (Butomopsis) there are nine stamens and six carpels: in Hydro- 
 cleis there are indefinite stamens (some sterile) and six carpels : in Liuinocharis 
 both the stamens (some sterile) and carpels are indefinite. 
 
 Sub-series. Syvcarpx. 
 Gynseceum syncarpous. 
 Gommelynales. Perianth heterochlamydeous ; 
 
 Cohort 1. 
 seeds with starchy endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. XYIUDACEJJ. Herbaceous 
 
 sedge-like plants ; floral 
 
556 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 formula If3, (73, .43 + 0, G-^; anthers extrorse ; ovary usually 
 unilocular, with parietal plaoentation. 
 
 These plants (Xyris, Abolboda) inhabit swamps in tropical or sub-tropical 
 regions. 
 
 Order 2. COMMELYNACE^E. Herbaceous plants; general floral 
 formula K'3, 03, A3 + 3, <9-^, but the number of stamens varies in 
 the genera ; anthers usually introrse ; ovary usually trilocular. 
 
 These are mostly tropical plants. Species of Commelyna and Tradescantia 
 are cultivated as ornamental plants. 
 
 Cohort 2. Liliales. Perianth homochlamydeous, usually 
 petaloid ; seeds with endosperm ; general floral formula IC3, C3, 
 
 Order I. LILIACEJ;. The flowers conform generally to the 
 above formula, but 3 is replaced sometimes by 2 or 4: they are 
 not zygomorphic : endosperm oily ; fruit a capsule or a berry. 
 
 Mostly rhizomatous or bulbous plants : 
 
 rarely trees or shrubs. 
 
 Sub-order 1. LILIOIDEJE, with aloculicidal cap- 
 sule, introrse anthers, and united styles. Bulbous 
 plants. 
 
 The family Tulipea includes the following 
 genera : Lilium, Fritiliaria, Tulipa, Erythronium, 
 Lloydia, Calochortus (with septicidal capsule). 
 
 Many species are cultivated. Lilium candidum 
 r IG. 3P2. Flower of the 
 
 Hyacinth : a a a the three is the white Lil J '> L - bulbiferum, producing bulbils 
 outer ; i the three inner in the axils of the upper leaves ; L. Martagon, 
 segments of the perianth, the Turk's Cap Lily ; L. tigrinum, the Tiger-Lily ; 
 L ' $ P eciosum ' ratum, etc. Fritiliaria imperial* 
 is the Crown Imperial, the flowers of which are 
 surmounted by a crown of leaves. Tulipa Gesneriana is the Tulip. Erythron- 
 ium Dens-Canis is the Dog-Tooth Violet. Calochortus is the Mariposa Lily of 
 California. The following occur wild in Britain: Lilium Martagon; Tulipa 
 sylrestris, wild Yellow Tulip ; Fritiliaria Meleagris, the Snake's Head ; Lloydia 
 serotina. 
 
 The Scillta includes the following genera amongst others : Galtonia, 
 Hyacinthus, Muscari, Chionodoxa, Lachenalia, etc., in which the seg- 
 ments of the perianth cohere more or less (Fig. 362); Scilla, Camassia, 
 Ornithogalum, etc., with free perianth-leaves. The following occur wild in 
 Britain : Hyacinthus non- script us, the Blue Bell ; Muscari racemosum, the 
 Grape Hyacinth; Scilla verna and autumnalis ; Ornithogalum nutans, the Star 
 of Bethlehem. 
 
 Sub-order 2. MELANTHIOIDEJE or COLCHICOIDE^E, with a usually septicidal 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERM4] : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 557 
 
 capsule, usually extrorse anthers, and separate styles. Mostly rhizomatous 
 plants. 
 
 Not many genera are common in cultivation ; among these Gloriosa, Uvularia, 
 and Veratrum may be mentioned ; Veratrum album and nigrum have broad 
 ovate leaves. 
 
 Tofieldia palustris, the Scottish Asphodel, has ensiform radical leaves ; the 
 flowers, which are pale green, are disposed in a raceme on a scape ; it occurs 
 
 PIG. 363. The underground part of a flowering plant of Colchicum. autumnole. A Seen 
 in front ; fc the conn; s' s" cataphyllary leaves embracing the flower-stalk; io?i its base, 
 from which proceed the roots, w. B Longitudinal section : h h a brown membrane which 
 envelops all the underground parts of the plant; st the flower and leaf-stalk of the 
 previous year which has died down, its swollen basal portion (fc) only remaining as a 
 reservoir of food-materials for the new plant now in flower. The new plant is a lateral 
 phootfrom the base of the corm (k), consisting of the axis, from the base of which proceed 
 the roots (ic), and the middle part of which (7c') swells up in the next year into a corm, the 
 oLl corm (Ic) disappearing ; the axis bears the sheath-leaves (s &' s") and the foliage-leaves 
 (l r I") ; the flowers (b b') are placed in the axils of the uppermost foliage-leaves, the axis 
 itself terminating amongst the flowers. (After Sachs.) 
 
558 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 in Scotland, in wet places on mountains, but it is rare. Nartheciumossifragum, 
 the Bog-Asphodel, somewhat resembles Tofieldia, but the flowers are yellow 
 and the capsule is loculicidal ; common in Scotland and in the north of 
 England. 
 
 The Colchic"(E are bulbous plants and hare introrse anthers. Colchicum 
 autumnale is the Autumn Crocus or Meadow Saffron; when it is flowering in 
 the autumn, the stem is underground; it is at this time short and slender 
 (Fig. 363 &'), attached laterally to the corm of the previous year's growth (/c), 
 and bears a few imperfectly developed leaves (V I") as well as one or two flowers 
 (I' b'') : the ovaries of the flowers are also subterranean ; the six leaves of the 
 perianth cohere and form a tube of some centimetres in length, which grows 
 far beyond the ovaries and above the surface of the soil, terminating in a 
 petaloid six partite limb ; the stamens are attached in the upper portion of 
 the tube. In the spring the underground stem swells at its base (k r ) into a 
 corm, and grows upwards, so that the developing leaves (V i") and the capsule 
 rise above ground ; a lateral shoot is formed at its base, which, in the autumn, 
 produces flowers, and this repeats the process. 
 
 Sub-order 3. ASPHODELOIDEJE ; rhizomatous plants, with usually radical 
 leaves, but the leaves are sometimes borne on an aerial rarely branched stem ; 
 inflorescence usually a terminal spike or raceme: perianth-leaves free or 
 connate ; anthers introrse ; fruit capsular. 
 
 Asphodelus, Eremurus, Anthericum, Chlorophytum, Bowiea, Hemerocallis, 
 Phormium (Phormium tenax is the New Zealand Flax), Kniphofla, Aloe, 
 Gasteria, and Xanthorhaea are cultivated. The only British species is Simethis 
 bicolor in the south of England. 
 
 Sub-order 4. ALLIOIDE^E ; generally bulbous plants : inflorescence umbellate, 
 more or less completely enclosed by two or more bracts. 
 
 Agapanthus, Nothoscordum, Milla, Brodiaea, and Allium are the more com- 
 monly cultivated genera. Of Allium, several species are in cultivation for 
 culinary purposes, as A. Gepa, the Onion; A. ascalonicum, the Shalot ; A 
 Rchoenoprasum, Chives; A. Porruin, the common Leek; A. sativum (vulgare), 
 Garlic. Some species (Wild Garlic) are wild in Britain, such as A. oleracewn, 
 vineale, ursiiium, and triqnetrum in Guernsey. The leaves of the various 
 species of Allium are generally tubular and hollow ; the flowers are disposed 
 in spherical heads or umbels ; bulbils are occasionally produced among the 
 flowers. Gagea lutea is also British. 
 
 Sub-order 5. DRAC^ENOIDE^E. stem erect, usually arborescent, with secondary 
 growth in thickness (see p. 205). 
 
 Species of Yucca are commonly cultivated in gardens; Cordyline and Dasy- 
 lirion in greenhouses. Diaccena Draco is the Dragon's Tree of the Canary 
 Islands, yielding a red gum-resin (Dragon's blood). 
 
 Sub-order 6. ASPARAGOIDE^E, with a subterranean rhizome bearing aerial 
 leafy stems : fruit baccate. 
 
 Asparagus qfficinalu is the Asparagus ; the young shoots, which spring from 
 the underground rhizome, are eaten. Convallaria mnjalis is the Lily of the 
 Valley. Maianthemum bifolium has a dimerous flower. Polygonatum is 
 Solomon's Seal. Ruscus aculeatus (the Butcher's Broom), and other species, 
 are small shrubs, with leaf- like branches (phylloclades, see p. 45), on which 
 
GROUP IV. PHANUROGAMIA: ANGIOSPERM^ : MONOCOTYLEBONES. 559 
 
 the diclinous flowers are borne in the axils of minute leaves. Paris quadrifolia 
 (Herb Paris) is poisonous: the flowers are tetramerous, or exceptionally tri- 
 inerous or pentamerous : they are terminal, and the stem beneath bears four 
 (or three or five) leaves in a whorl beneath the flower (Fig. 364) ; the venation 
 of the leaves is reticulate. Trillium, the Wood Lily, is frequently cultivated. 
 Aspidistra lurida is the Parlour Palm. 
 
 Maianthemum bifolium, Paris quadrifolia, Puscus aculeatus, Convallaria 
 majalis, Polygonatum verticillatum, multiflorum, and officinale, are wild in 
 England. 
 
 Sub-order 7. SMILA.COIDE#;, scrambling shrubs, having 3-5 ribbed leaves with 
 reticulate venation. The roots of species 
 of Smilax constitute Sarsaparilla. 
 
 The other sub-orders are : OPHIOPO- 
 GONOIDE.E, of which Ophiopogon and 
 Sansevieria are the more familiar 
 genera: ALETROIDEJE, Aletris (Star- 
 Grass) cultivated in gardens: Luza- 
 RiAGoiDE.aE, Lapageria cultivated in 
 greenhouses. 
 
 Order 2. JuxcACEa;. Floral 
 formula, K3, 03, A3 + 3, G$. 
 Plants of a grass-like aspect; 
 they differ from the preceding 
 order in the dry and glumaceous 
 character of the perianth, and 
 in the starchy endosperm. The 
 leaves are linear or tubular ; 
 the inflorescence is an anthela (see p. 493). 
 
 FIG. 364. Diagram of the flower of Paris 
 quadrifolia ; I the foliage-leaves ; op the 
 outer; ip the inner whorl of the perianth; 
 aa outer; ia inner whorl of stamens. 
 (After Sachs.) 
 
 The species of Luzula, which has a unilocular three-seeded ovary, muWflora 
 pilosa, campestris, and sylvatica, are common in woods and on heaths. Juncus 
 has a trilocular many-seeded ovary; plants of this genus are called Bushes; 
 J. glaucus and effusus have a tubular stem and leaves, and a terminal in- 
 florescence which, is displaced laterally by a tubular bract which appears to be 
 a prolongation of the stem ; they are common in wet fields ; J. bufonius, by 
 waysides. 
 
 Order 3. PONTEDERTACEJ:. Water-plants of tropical America, 
 with an irregular zygomorphic petaloid perianth : in other respects 
 they resemble the Liliacese. 
 
 The commoner genera are Pontederia and Eichhornia: Eichltornia azurea 
 and crassipes are frequently cultivated as hot-house aquatics. 
 
 V. S. B, 
 
 
 
560 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 SEEIES II. EPIGYKE. 
 Ovary inferior. 
 
 Cohort 1. Hydrales. Order 1. HYDROCHARIDACE^;. The in- 
 florescence is at first enclosed in a spathe formed of a single bract, 
 or more commonly of two connate bracts. The flowers have a 
 perianth, the inner whorl being petaloid, and usually conform to 
 the monocotyledonous type, but with pleiotaxy in the andrce- 
 cium and gynaeceum ; formula K3, 03, A3 + 3 + , Gr (3 + ... } : The 
 flowers are usually monosporangiate and dioecious ; the $ flowers 
 have staminodia ; the <$ flowers have no gynaeceum but an in- 
 creased number of whorls in the andrcecium. Seeds generally 
 numerous ; without endosperm. Water-plants. 
 
 Fam. 1. Hydrillece. Ovary unilocular. Stem elongated, with whorls of 
 small leaves. 
 
 Elodea (Anacharis) canademis came originally from North America and has 
 spread in our waters so as even to impede navigation in canals. 
 
 Fam. 2. Vallisneriece. Ovary unilocular. Stem short, with crowded leaves. 
 
 Vallisneria spiralis inhabits the lakes and ditches of the warmer parts of 
 Europe. The leaves are long, narrow, and linear. The ? flowers are raised 
 above water on long peduncles ; the $ inflorescences break away from their 
 peduncles and float about on the water to fertilise the $ flowers ; the fruit 
 ripens under water. 
 
 Fam. 3. Halophilea. Perianth of outer whorl only ; ovary unilocular. 
 
 Submerged marine plants, forming the single genus Halophila. 
 
 Fam. 4. Stratiotece. Ovary 6- (or more) chambered. Stem short, with 
 crowded leaves. 
 
 Stratiotes aloides (Water- Soldier) has stiff narrow leaves. Hydrocharis 
 Morsus Ranee is the Frog's Bit ; the plant is small and floats on the water, 
 with small roundly- cordate leaves. 
 
 Cohort 2. Dioscoreales. Flowers regular : floral formula IiT3, 
 (73, .43 + 3, G (3, : fruit a berry or a capsule : endosperm oily. 
 
 Order 1. DIOSCOREACEJ;. The ovary is trilocular, with one or 
 two ovules in each loculus : the flowers are monosporangiate and 
 dioecious. They are climbing plants, with twining stems, having 
 large above- or under-ground tubers, and usually triangular 
 leaves with reticulate venation. 
 
 Dioscorea sativa, Batatas and others, known as Yams, are largely cultivated 
 in the tropics, their tuberous roots yielding a food rich in starch. Tamus 
 communis, the Black Bryony, is common in England. 
 
 Order 2. TACCACEJ:. The ovary is unilocular and many-seeded. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJ! : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 561 
 
 The flowers are $. They are tropical herbs, and the leaves which 
 spring from the subterranean rhizome have reticulate venation. 
 
 Order 3. BKOMELIACE^E. K3, 03, A3 + 3, G (3). The ovary is 
 superior, inferior, or semi-inferior, trilocular, with many seeds. 
 Perianth heterochlamydeous. The leaves are usually long and 
 narrow, sharply serrate ; the stem is generally very short. The 
 flowers are $ f and form spikes or panicles with bracts. 
 
 The fruit is a berry, and the berries of 
 
 Ananas sativa is the Pine-apple, 
 each inflorescence coalesce into 
 a spurious fruit (somsis), above 
 which the axis of the inflorescence 
 extends and bears a crown of leaves 
 (Fig. 365; see p. 528). In a state 
 of cultivation the berries contain 
 no seeds. It is a native of America, 
 and is cultivated in all warm coun- 
 tries and in bot-houses. 
 
 Cohort 3. Amomales 
 (Scitamineae). The flowers 
 are irregular, zygomorphic or 
 asymmetrical : general for- 
 mula, ^ K3, 03, .43 + 3, G-0,, 
 occasionally with a great 
 reduction in the andrcecium. 
 Perianth wholly petaloid, or 
 clearly heterochlamydeous : 
 ovary usually trilocular : 
 fruit, a capsule or a berry. 
 Usually no endosperm, but 
 abundant perisperm. They 
 are tall herbaceous plants; 
 the leaves are large and have 
 pinnate venation. 
 
 Order 1. MUSACEJ:. ^ K3, 03, ^43 + 2 f 1 or 0, M. Flower 
 dorsiventral ; the anterior external member of the petaloid perianth 
 is usually very large, and the posterior always very small. In the 
 family Museae the odd sepal is anterior ; the sepals are usually free, 
 as are also the petals in Ravenala ; but in Strelitzia the two lateral 
 petals are connate, and in Musa the five anterior members of the 
 perianth are connate, forming a tube which is open posteriorly : 
 the posterior stamen is sterile or absent, and the others are not 
 always fertile. The flower of the family Heliconieae differs from 
 
 FIG. 365. Fruit of the Pice-apple (reduced). 
 
562 
 
 PAET III. - THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 this type in that the odd sepal is posterior, and the abortive 
 posterior stamen belongs to the outer whorl. Seeds, one (Heli- 
 conia), or many, in each loculus, without endosperm. They are 
 all shrubs of colossal growth, with enormously long leaves : the 
 flowers are usually arranged in spicate inflorescences in the axils 
 of large and often coloured bracts ; sometimes several flowers 
 spring from the axil of one bract. 
 
 Musa paradisiaca (Plantain), M. Sapientum (Banana), and M. Ensete are 
 natives of the tropics of the Old World ; the two former are now distributed 
 throughout America and applied to a great variety of purposes ; the fruit, which 
 is of the nature of a berry, is an article of food, and the vascular bundles are 
 used for making textile fabrics. The other genera are Kaveuala, Strelitzia, 
 Heliconia. 
 
 FIG. 366. Diagram of flower of Musa. 
 
 FIG. 367. Diagrams of the two types of flower in 
 the Zingiberaceae. A Hedycbium. B Alpinia. 
 
 Order 2. ZINGIBEBACEJS. | X3, C3, A t 2 or + 1 f 2, G-. 
 Flower dorsiveiitral : calyx not always distinct. Of the inner 
 whorl of stamens the posterior alone bears a perfect anther, the 
 other two being transformed into a usually petaloid body, the 
 labellum. The outer whorl of stamens is absent, or but slightly 
 indicated, in the Zingibereas (Fig. 367 #); but is represented in 
 the Hedychieae and Globbeae by two postero-lateral petaloid 
 staminodes (Fig. 367 A}. There is a small amount of endosperm 
 in the seed, in a depression in the perisperm. 
 
 The commoner genera are Curcuma, Hedychium ; Zingiber, Alpinia ; Globba, 
 having a unilocular ovary with three parietal placentae. 
 
 The starch which is prepared from the rhizome of Curcuma angustifolia and 
 leucorrhiza is known in commerce as East Indian arrowroot : Turmeric is 
 obtained from the rhizome of C. longa. Cardamoms are the fruits of Elettrria 
 Cardamomum. The dried rhizomes of Zingiber officinale are the common 
 ginger. 
 
 Order 3. MARANTACEJ: or CANNACEJE. X3, (73, .40 + 1 f 1, 0, or 
 A f 2, + 1 f 2, G. Flower asymmetric, often heterochlamyde- 
 ous. The androacium is represented by a number of petaloid bodies, 
 of which one only, the posterior stamen of the inner whorl, bears 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGlOSPERMvE : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 563 
 
 a bilocular anther (Fig. 368 st, an) ; of the staminodia one is 
 larger than the others, and is reflexed, forming a Idbellum (Fig. 
 368 /) ; the narrow ones vary in 
 number in the different species 
 (Fig. 368 a and) : seed without 
 endosperm ; seeds numerous in 
 Canna, single in each loculus 
 in the other genera. 
 
 Canna indica and other species are 
 commonly grown as ornamental 
 plants. 
 
 Amylum Marantas, the starchy meal 
 prepared from the rhizome of Maranta 
 aruiidinacea, is true or West Indian 
 arrowroot. 
 
 Cohort 4. Orchidales. 
 Flower irregular, dorsiventral, 
 zygomorphic, gynandrous (see 
 pp. 495, 518), reduced in the 
 androecium : perianth petaloid. 
 Seeds very small, without en- 
 dosperm or perisperm; the 
 embryo a minute undift'eren- 
 tiated mass of cells. 
 
 Order 1. OPCHIDACE^E. The flowers of most of the genera have 
 the formula ^ K'3, 03, A\ +f 2, G^ : those of the Cypripediinae, 
 however, have the formula ^ "3, (73, A f 1 + 2, G^ (Fig. 369 
 A, B). The flower is generally so placed, in consequence of 
 torsion of the ovary, that the posterior side of the flower, instead 
 of being uppermost, as is normally the case, comes to lie inferiorly 
 (resupinate), but there are exceptions (e.g. Liparis, Nigritella, 
 Epipogum). The posterior segment (petal) of the inner whorl 
 called the laltellum (Fig 370, see also Fig. 294 l\ is always larger 
 than the others, and varies greatly in form ; it frequently has a 
 spur (Fig. 370 sp) or a sac-shaped cavity (Fig. 294). The an- 
 droecium and the three stigmata are, in most Orchids, borne on a 
 prolongation of the floral axis the gynostemium (Fig. 294 s ; Fig. 
 372 B and G gs). In the androecium usually three stamens are 
 represented : in the monandrous Orchids there is a fertile an- 
 terior stamen belonging to the outer whorl (Fig. 369, A), and 
 often two staminodes, which are sometimes petaloid (e.g. Diuris) 
 
 FIG. 368. Flower of Canna indica (nat. 
 size) : /inferior ovary ; pa the outer ; pi the 
 inner whorl of the perianth ; g style ; st the 
 fertile stamen, with (an) the anther; I label-. 
 lum ; a and the two staminodia. (After 
 Eichler.) 
 
564 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 or small tooth-like prominences (auriculae, stelidia) on the 
 gynostemium (e.g. Orchis, Epipactis, Fig. 294 ), belonging 
 generally to the inner andrcecial whorl, but sometimes apparently 
 to the outer: in the diandrous Orchids (e.g. Cypripedium, Fig. 
 369 B} there are, generally, two fertile stamens belonging to the 
 inner whorl ; the outer whorl being only represented by an 
 anterior staminode. The anther usually has four pollen-sacs, 
 but may have two (e.g. Collabium) or eight (e.g. Calanthe, Bletia). 
 In some genera the pollen-grains are separate from each other, 
 in the majority they are united into a mass, pollinium, which fills 
 an entire pollen-sac (Fig. 294 /, F,p). The pollinium may consist 
 of tetrads with a common exine (e.g. Neottia) ; or of larger groups 
 of cells, termed massulce (e.g. Orchis), when it is said to be sectile] 
 or of uniform tissue. In those Orchids which have pollinia, 
 
 SP I 
 
 FIG. 369. Diagram of Orchidaceous FIG. 370. Flower of Orchis mascula ( x 2) : 
 
 flowers, neglecting resupination. A The / the twisted ovary ; o a a the three outer 
 
 monandrous type. S The diandrous type perianth-leaves ; i i two of the inner, I the 
 
 (Cypripedium): the shaded stamens are third inner perianth-leaf, the labellum, with 
 
 btaminodia. (sp] the spur ; n stigma : p pollen- sacs. 
 
 it is frequently the case that the tissue of the pollen-sac is 
 prolonged, according to the position of the anther, either to the 
 lower (basitunnus, e.g. Ophrydinas) or to the upper end of the 
 anther (acrotonous, e.g. Phajiinae, Oncidiinae), and here almost 
 exclusively gives rise to a mucilaginous filament, the caudicle, 
 attached to the pollininm (or to the two or more pollinia of each 
 half of the anther) below or above. 
 
 The ovary is unilocular (rarely trilocular as in some Cypri- 
 pediinae), and contains numerous anafcropous ovules on three 
 parietal placentae. In all the monandrous Orchids, the anterior 
 lobe of the trilobate stigma is not susceptible of pollination, and 
 is either rudimentary or developes into an organ termed the 
 roftellum (Fig. 294 7>), which is situated either above or below 
 the anther, and in the tissue of which one or two small masses 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGTOSPERM^ : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 565 
 
 of sticky mucilage (retinacula) are formed, and are frequently 
 enclosed in one or two pouches (bursiculce) formed by the rest of 
 the tissue of the rostellum. The pollinia adhere to the retinacula 
 by the caudicle, when present, and are removed, in pollination, by 
 
 Fio. 371. Tubers (A) of Orchis Morio ; B of tiymnadenia Conopsea : s the peduncle ; 1 this 
 year's tuber ; 2 next year's tuber ; fc the bud ; w and w' roots (nat. size). 
 
 the adhesion of the retinacula to the proboscis of the insect (see 
 p. 456). 
 
 Most of the indigenous species have underground rhizomes or 
 tubers. In the latter case, two 
 tubers are usually present : the older 
 one, which, at the time of flowering, 
 becomes flaccid (Fig. 371 A and J5, 1), 
 throws up the flowering scape (s} 
 or, in young plants, a short under- 
 ground stem which produces only 
 leaves above ground. At the upper 
 end of this tuber another much 
 firmer tuber is formed (Fig. 371), 
 bearing at its apex the bud of the 
 next year's stem (K). The tuber is 
 to be regarded as a lateral bud 
 which coalesces with its first root 
 (or more than one, Fig. 371 B) and 
 then increases in bulk : the lower 
 end of an undivided tuber, as well 
 as the ends of palmate tubers, has, 
 in the young state at least, the same 
 structure as the apex of a true root. 
 
 FIG. 372. Flower of C[/jmj>edium 
 Calceolus ; p p the leaves of the peri- 
 anth have been cut away. A Side 
 view. B Back view. C Front view; 
 / ovary; gs gynostemium ; a a the 
 two fertile stamens ; s staminode j n 
 stigma. (After Sachs.) 
 
566 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The genera of Orchidaceae are so numerous and so diverse that it is impos- 
 sible to give more than a summary of those which are British. 
 
 DIANDR.E : two fertile stamens, belonging to the inner whorl : all three lobes 
 of the stigma are susceptible of pollination : pollen-grains cohering but slightly. 
 
 Fam. 1. Cypripediince. Cypripedium Calceolus, the Lady's Slipper, now 
 very rare, occurs in woods in the north of England : it has a creeping rhizome 
 and broad ovcite leaves : the perianth is of a reddish-brown colour, except the 
 labellum which is yellow and forms a shoe-like sac (Figs. 369, 372). 
 
 MONANDK.E : one fertile stamen, the anterior, belonging to the outer whorl : 
 only the two lateral lobes of the stigma are susceptible of pollination ; the 
 anterior lobe is rudimentary, or is developed as the rostellum : pollen-grains 
 coherent into pollinia. 
 
 Fam. 2. Ophrudince : anther short and broad ; the waxy pollinia are basit- 
 onous ; a rostellum, forming retinacula to which the caudicles of the pollinia 
 adhere. 
 
 To the sub-family Serapiadea, which is characterised by the short gynos- 
 temium and the erect anther, belong the genera Ophrys, Orchis, and Aceras, 
 In Ophrys there are two distinct bursiculee and retiuacula, and the pollinia 
 remain distinct : the flowers resemble insects : 0. apifera the Bee Orchis, 0. 
 aranifera the Spider Orchis, and O. muscifera the Fly Orchis, occur in chalk 
 pastures. In Orchis there is but one bursicula, but there are two retinacula, so 
 the pollinia may be removed separately, and the labellum is spurred : Orchis 
 Morio, mascula, and miiitaris, have round or oval tubers ; whilst O. latifolia, 
 maculata, and pyramidalis have palmate tubers. In Aceras (Aceras anthropo- 
 phora is the green Man-Orchis) the 3-lobed lip is not spurred, and there is but 
 one retinaculum. 
 
 To the sub-family Gymnadeniete, characterised by the absence of a bursicula, 
 and consequently bare retinacula, belong the British genera Gymnadenia, 
 Habenaria, Neotinea, Herminium (as also other interesting European genera, 
 such as Chamseorchis and Nigritella). In Gymnadenia (G. Conopsea, the 
 fragrant Orchis) the retinacula are contiguous: in Habenaria (H. albida, bifolia, 
 viridis, Butterfly Orchis) the retinacula are distant : in Neotinea (N. intacta) 
 the pink perianth- segments are connivent : whilst in the preceding genera the 
 labellum is spurred, it is not spurred in Herminium (H. Monorchis, the green 
 Musk Orchis). 
 
 Fam. 3. Neottiince : pollinia usually soft and granular, either acrotonous or 
 altogether without caudicles. 
 
 To the sub-family Cephalantherece, in which the labellum is transversely 
 segmented, belong the genera Cephalanthera, Epipactis, and Epipo^um. 
 Cephalanthera (C. yrandiftora, C. ensifolia, C. rubra) and Epipactis (E. latifolia 
 and E. palustris), the Helleborines, are rhizomatous leafy plants with well- 
 developed leaves on the peduncles : the labellum is not spurred, and the rostel- 
 lum is rudimentary. Epipogum Ginelini is a saprophyte, has no roots, and 
 its leaves are scaly and not green ; it has granular pollinia with acrotonous 
 caudicles, a rostellum producing a retinaculum, and a spurred labellum ; the 
 flower is not resupinate. 
 
 To the sub-family Spiranthece, characterised by a rostellum as long as the 
 anther, producing a retiuaculuin to which the granular pollinia (without cau- 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJE : MONOCOTTLEDONES. 567 
 
 dicles) adhere, belong the genera Spiranthes, Listera, and Neottia. Spiranthes, 
 Lady's Tresses (S. autumn alls, cetti-valis, and gemmipara) has a spike unilateral 
 by torsion, perianth-segments connivent, no spur. Listera, T way-blade (L. 
 cordata and ovata), has only two foliage-leaves, and spreading perianth- 
 segments, no spur. Neottia Nidus-Avis, the BirdVnest Orchid, is a saprophyte, 
 with scaly leaves which do not contain chlorophyll ; labellum not spurred. 
 
 To the sub-family Physitrea, characterised by the structure of the pollinium, 
 which is sectile, belongs the genus Goodyera (G. repens) in which the labellum 
 has no spur, and the pollinia have acrotonous caudicles ; the inflorescence is, 
 like that of Spiranthes, a unilateral twisted spike ; the plant is rhizomatous. 
 
 Fam. 4. Liparidince : the anther produces four waxy pollinia without cau- 
 dicles. Liparis (Sturmia) Loeselii, has only two foliage-leaves and a pseudo- 
 bulb ; the flower is not resupinate ; there are two retinacula, to each of which 
 a pair of pollinia become attached. Malaxis (M. paludosa, Bog Orchis) has a 
 short gynostemium and a single retinaculum ; reproduced by pseudo-bulbs. 
 Corallorhiza (G. innata, the spurless Coral-root) is a saprophytic plant, without 
 roots or foliage-leaves. 
 
 There are many other families, including a large number of genera which 
 are mainly tropical and commonly epiphytic with aerial roots (see p. 155). 
 Many of these are cultivated in hot-houses such as Oncidium, Vanda, Bendro- 
 bium, Angraecum, etc. Vanilla is the dried fruit of Vanilla planifolia, a climb- 
 ing species. 
 
 Though pollination is usually dependent upon the visits of insects (see p. 
 456), self-pollination is by no means uncommon. For instance, among British 
 Orchids, Ophnjs apifera and Neo tinea Intacta are probably always self-pollinated, 
 and Neottia Nidus-Avis, Epipactis ovalis and E. latifolia, are frequently self- 
 pollinated, simply by the falling of the pollen on to the stigma. Cephalan- 
 thera rubra is commonly pollinated whilst in the bud, by the germination of 
 the pollen-grains, the pollen-tubes making their way to the stigma. 
 
 Cohort 5. Narcissales. Flowers regular or irregular: not 
 less than three stamens in the androeciam : perianth petal oid : 
 seeds with oily endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. AMARYLLIDACKJS. K3, C3, ,43 + 3 or 12 to 18, Gfc,, 
 The flower is occasionally zygomorphic and narrowly funnel- 
 shaped : anthers usually introrse. The fruit is usually a trilocular 
 loculicidal capsule, sometimes a berry. 
 
 The principal of the numerous genera are arranged in the following fami- 
 lies : 
 
 Fam. 1. Amaryllidoidete : subterranean stem, bulbous : scape leafless, bear- 
 ing a single terminal flower, or an umbellate inflorescence, invested by one or 
 more bracts. Amongst the genera without a corona (see p. 515) are Amaryllis 
 (A. Belladonna, the Belladonna Lily), Vallota (V. purpwea, the Scarborough 
 Lily) with zygomorphic flosvers ; Zephyranthes, Sternbergia, Crinum, Galanthus 
 (G, uivalis, the Snowdrop), and Leucojum (L. vernum, the Spring Snowflake ; 
 L: attivuni, the Summer Snowflake) with actiuomorphic flowers. Amongst 
 
568 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the genera with a corona are the many species of Narcissus ; N. (Corbnlarin) 
 Bulbocodium, the Hooped Petticoat Daffodil ; N. (Ajax) Pseudo-narcissus, the 
 common Daffodil ; N. (QueUia) Jonquilla, the Jonquil, and N. inconiparubiUs 
 the Star Daffodil ; N. poeticus, the Poet's or Pheasant's Eye Narcissus ; N. 
 Taz?tta, the Cluster Narcissus : also the genera Pancratium and Eucharis. 
 
 Fam. 2. Afiavoidece : stem not subterranean, short or elongated into a 
 trunk. Here belong the genera Agave (incl. Bonapartea) and Fourcroya. 
 Aaare americana, commonly known as the false or American Aloe, is a native 
 of Mexico but has been naturalised in Southern Europe. The short stem 
 bears a rosette of large thick prickly leaves : when it has attained sufficient 
 vigour in Southern Europe in from 10 to 20 years it throws up a scape 20-30 
 feet high, which branches and bears a large number of flowers in a pyramidal 
 panicle. 
 
 Fam. 3. Uypoxi^oid-ce : subterranean stem a rhizome, bearing a terminal 
 flowering-shoot. Alstroemeria, the Peruvian Lily, has a leafy flowering-shoot 
 
 and the habit of a Lily. 
 
 The British species of the 
 order are the common Daffodil, 
 the Snowdrop, and the Snow- 
 flakes. 
 
 Order 2. 
 
 K3, 03, ^13 + 0, GW. The 
 flower is sometimes zygo- 
 morphic : stamens some- 
 times monadelphous ; the 
 anthers are extrorse : the 
 fruit is usually a trilocular 
 loculicidal capsule. 
 
 Fam. 1. CROCOIDE^E : flowers 
 actinoru orphic, terminal, single, 
 with sometimes other axillary 
 flowers, each invested by a 
 spathe : stem, a corm. 
 
 To this family belong, 
 amongst others, the genera 
 Crocus and Romulea. Many 
 species of Crocus (e.g. G. aureus, 
 bijiorus, speciosus, vernus, etc.) 
 are cultivated ; C. nations is the 
 Saffron Crocus, the dried stig- 
 mata of which are termed Saf- 
 fron : the only indigenous 
 British species is C. nudijiurus 
 
 which is autumn-flowering. Romulea (Trichonema) Columns occurs in the 
 
 Channel Islands. 
 
 FIG. 373. Diagram of the flower of Iris, and view 
 of the same after the removal of the perianth: s 
 peduncle ; /inferior ovary; r tubular portion of the 
 perianth; pa the insertion of the outer, pi of the 
 inner leaves of the perianth ; st stamen ; a anther ; 
 n n n the three pelaloid stigmata (nat. size). 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANG10SPEBMJE : MONOCOTYLEDONES. 569 
 
 Fam. 2. IKIDIOIDE.E : flowers mostly actinomorpliic, forming many-flowered 
 inflorescences of various form with spathes, each of which invests more than one 
 flower : stem bulbous or rhizomatous. 
 
 This large family includes several sub-families, of which the following are 
 the more important : 
 
 Sub-fam. Iridince : perianth-tube short or absent ; the capsule is not en- 
 closed by the spathe ; the styles are petaloid, with the stigma on the undeF 
 surface. Iris, the Flag, is the principal genus. The species of this very large 
 genus may be divided into two groups based upon the bulbous or the rhizoma- 
 tous character of the stem. The most familiar of the bulbous Irises are, I. 
 xiphioides (or Xiphion latifoiium, or Iris anglica) the so-called English Iris ; 
 I. Xipltium (Xiphion vulgure) the Spanish Iris ; I. reticalata, p/rsica, and Histrio. 
 The rhizomatous Irises are classified according to the presence or absence of 
 hairs (beard) on the perianth-segments : thus, 
 
 Sect. Hexapogon : all the perianth-segments bearded along the upper surface 
 of the midrib of the claw : e.g. I. longiscapa and falcifolia. 
 
 Sect. Pogoniris : only the three outer perianth-segments bearded on the 
 midrib of the claw ; e.g. I. flur<"ntina, germanica, pallida, pitmila. 
 
 Sect. Oncocvclus : the three outer perianth-segments bearded on both claw 
 and limb : e.g. I. susiana, iberica. 
 
 Sect. Apogoii : perianth-segments beardless : e.g. 1. graminea and siberica 
 with linear leaves ; /. Pseudacorus, ochrolenca, foetidis*ima, etc., with ensiform 
 leaves. I. Pseudacorus (Yellow Flag) and foetidissiina are British. 
 
 Sub-fam. Tigridince: perianth-tube absent; styles branched with an apical 
 stigma ; the inner whorl of perianth-segments is smaller than the outer ; sta- 
 mens monadelphous : bulbous plants. Tigridia Pavorria is the Tiger Flower. 
 
 Sub-fam. Sisijiinchince, : perianth-tube short ; styles unbranched, nearly 
 cylindrical, alternate with the stamens (not opposite as in Iris) : stamens free, 
 or connate at the base : rhizomatous plants. 
 
 Here belong the genera Libertia (with free stamens) and Sisyrinchium 
 (with basally connate stamens), having actinomophic flowera ; S. (Bermudiana) 
 augustifolium, Blue-eyed Grass, occurs in Galway. 
 
 Sub-fam. Aristince : perianth-tube elongated ; capsule enclosed by the spathe ; 
 stamens monadelphous (Patersonia) or free (Aristea) ; generally rhizomatous. 
 
 Fam. 3. IXIOIDE^S : the flowers, which are frequently zygomorphic, are each 
 invested by a spathe : stem, usually a corm. 
 
 In the sub-fam. Ixiece, the zygomorphism of the flower is but slightly 
 marked: Schizostylis is rhizomatous, whilst the other genera (Ixia, Geisso- 
 rhiza, etc.) are bulbous. 
 
 In the Gladiolece, the zygomorphism of the flower is well-marked, but the 
 flower may be either straight and erect (e.g. Tritonia, Montbretia, Sparaxis), or 
 curved (e.g. Gladiolus). Gladiolus illyricus (comnmiiis}, the lesser Gladiolus 
 or Corn-Flag occurs in England. 
 
 In the WatsoniecK (Watsonia, Lapeyrousia, Freesia), the styles are 2- 
 branched. 
 
570 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 CLASS X. DICOTYLEDONES. 
 
 The ripe seed (Fig. 295) may be albuminous, containing a mass 
 of endosperm and a relatively small embryo, as in the Umbelliferaa 
 and Euphorbiaceee ; but sometimes the embryo is relatively large 
 and the endosperm occupies only a small space, as in the Labiatae : 
 more commonly the seed is exalbuminous, the endosperm being 
 wholly absent, and then the embryo, which has large and fleshy 
 cotyledons, fills the entire cavity of the testa, as in the Rosaceee, 
 the Leguminosae, and the Compositae. Perisperm is rarely pre- 
 sent, either together with endosperm (e.g. some Piperales and 
 Nymphaeaceaa), or alone '(Chenopodiales, Caryopbyllales). 
 
 The embryo (see p. 443) usually has distinct members, consist- 
 ing of an axis and two opposite cotyledons ; in rare cases, e.g. 
 Coryda.lis, only one cotyledon is present, or abnormally three may 
 occur, as is occasionally the case in the Oak, the Sycamore, and 
 the Almond. In parasites and saprophytes which are devoid of 
 chlorophyll and which have very small seeds, such as Monotropa 
 and Orobanche, the embryo is quite undifferentiated, and it con- 
 sists of only a small number of cells. 
 
 The axis of the embryo frequently persists as the main axis of 
 the plant which grows in length and produces numerous less 
 vigorous lateral shoots ; but it often happens that some of these 
 lateral branches subsequently grow as vigorously as the main axis : 
 when this is the case, and when also the lower and feebler shoots 
 die off, a head, such as is common in forest-trees, is the result ; in 
 the case of shrubs, vigorous branches are formed quite low down 
 on the main stem. The branching of the stem is almost invariably 
 axillary and lateral : it is frequently monopoclial (p. 40), but in. 
 many forest-trees the stem (trunk) and branches form a sympo- 
 dium, the uppermost lateral bud growing each year in the direc- 
 tion of the main axis, which does not itself develope any further. 
 
 When the axis of the embryo continues to be the main axis of 
 the plant, the primary root also developes greatly, and forms a 
 tap-root from which the lateral roots grow in acropetal succession ; 
 in cases in which the growth in length of the tap-root is limited, 
 numerous adventitious roots spring from its older portions ; these 
 may again give rise to lateral roots, and by a repetition of this 
 process an elaborate root-system is formed. 
 
 The stem is almost always monostelic (see p. 152). The 
 vascular bundles of the stem are almost always conjoint, collateral, 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJ] ; DICOTYLEDONES. 571 
 
 and open, and the stem grows in thickness by the activity of the 
 cambium-ring which is formed (p. 191). 
 
 The epiblema of the root is (except Nymphseacese) the per- 
 sistent innermost layer of the original many-layered epidermis 
 (see p. 154). When the stem grows in thickness, the root does 
 so also (see p. 191). 
 
 The leaves exhibit infinite variety both in their relative position 
 and in their form. The foliage- leaves almost always consist of 
 
 FIG. 374. Vicia Fala, the Bean. A Seed with one of 
 the cotyledons removed; c the remaining cotyledon ; 
 w radicle ; kn plumule ; s testa. B Germinating seed ; 
 s testa ; I a portion of the testa torn away ; n hilum ; 
 st petiole of one of the cotyledons ; Jc curved epi- 
 cotyl ; he the very short hypocotyl ; h the primary 
 root; ws its apex; Ten, bud in the axil of one of the 
 cotyledons. 
 
 FIG. 375. Seedling of theMaple 
 (nat. size) : c c the cotyledons ; Ten 
 the plumule ; Tic the hypocotyl ; 
 w primary root; h root haira 
 (the lower part is cut off). 
 
 petiole and blade ; amplexicaul leaf -bases are comparatively rare, 
 but stipules, on the contrary, are very common. Branching or 
 segmentation of the leaves is common, and is frequently indicated 
 by the incision of the margin. The usually reticulate venation of 
 the leaves is characterized by the presence of a large number of 
 veins which project on the under surface, except in thick, fleshy 
 
572 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 leaves, and which frequently anastomose; a midrib is almost 
 always present, giving off lateral branches to right and left. 
 
 The flowers, when they are lateral, are usually furnished with 
 two prophylla or bracteoles (see p. 505) : they differ very con- 
 siderably in their structure, and cannot be referred to any one 
 type. The following are the principle forms: 
 
 1. In a considerable number the perianth, which is simple, and 
 the androecium are isomerous, consisting of four, five, or six 
 members; their arrangement is either spiral (), or whorled so 
 that the stamens are always superposed on the leaves of the 
 perianth ; the latter are all similar and are sepaloid. Formula 
 P5 | A5, or Pn + n, An + n, where n = 2 or 3. This structure 
 prevails in some of the Monochlamydeae (Urticales, Amentales). 
 
 2. In a second group, all the parts of the flower are arranged 
 in a continuous spiral, the stamens, and sometimes the carpels, 
 being generally more numerous than the leaves of the perianth : 
 the perianth may consist only of a calyx, or a corolla may be 
 developed in place of the external stamens : when this is the case 
 the corolla alternates with the calyx, provided that it is isomerous 
 with it, as in most Banales. 
 
 3. With these two types are connected by many intermediate 
 forms those flowers in which the biseriate perianth and the stamens 
 are in whorls: their formula is JCn, Cn, An + n, where n usually 
 = 5 or 4. This is the most common type of structure of the 
 flower; it occurs in most Polypetalae and Gamopetalae ; it may be 
 modified either by the suppression of one (usually the inner) 
 whorl of stamens, or by their multiplication, their branching, or 
 their cohesion, or by the suppression of the corolla. 
 
 4. Finally, there remain certain flowers which cannot be directly 
 referred to any one of the above types, and they must therefore 
 be left unexplained for the present, and the relationships of their 
 families must remain uncertain. 
 
 The sub-divisions in which the Dicotyledons are arranged in the 
 following classification are especially characterized by peculiarities 
 in the structure of the flower. It is impossible, however, to draw 
 sharp distinctions between the sub-classes, the cohorts, the orders, 
 and sometimes even between the families, for the position of a 
 plant in the system depends, not upon any one character, but upon 
 the aggregate of its characters. 
 
 The principal orders of Dicotyledons may be arranged as 
 follows : 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : ANGIOSPERMJ) : DICOTYLEDONES. 573 
 
 SUB-CLASS I. MONOCHLAMYDEJE. 
 
 Cohort I. Pipe rales. 
 Order 1. PIPERACE^:. 
 2. CHLORANTHACEJS. 
 ,, 3. SAURURACE.E. 
 Cohort II. Urticales. . 
 Order^l. URTICACE^E. 
 * 2. 
 
 3. 
 
 4. ULMACEJ:. .. 
 Cohort III. Amentales. 
 Order 1. BETULACEJ;. 
 2. CORYLACEJI. 
 3. FAGACE.E. 
 4. JUGLANDACE.E. 
 5. MYRICACEJS. 
 6. CASUARINACE^J. 
 7. SALICACE^;. 
 
 Cohort IV. Proteales. 
 
 Order 1. PROTEACE^;. 
 Cohort V. Chenopodiales. 
 Order 1. CHENOPODIACEJ:. 
 2. AMARANTACE^E. 
 3. PHYTOLACCACE^;. 
 4. NYCTAGINACEJJ. 
 Cohort VI. Asarales. 
 
 Order 1. ARISTOLOCHIACE^E. 
 
 2. CTTINACEJS. 
 Cohort VII. Santalales. 
 Order 1. SANTALACE.E. 
 . 2. LORANTHACEJ). 
 
 3. BALANOPHORACE^. 
 
 SUB-CLASS II. POLYPETAL^E. 
 SEBIES I. THALAMIFLOK^l. 
 
 Order 4. CAPPARIDACEJ:. \ 
 5. 
 6. 
 7. 
 8. 
 
 Cohort I. Ranales. 
 
 Order 1. RANUNCULACE^:. I 
 2. MAGNOLIACE^. *L 
 3. CALYCANTHACE^J. : 
 4. NYMPH^EACE^E. 
 Cohort II. Menispermales. 
 Order 1. MENISPERMACEJ:. 
 2. BERBERIDACE^!. ^ 
 3. LAURACE^;. 
 4. MYRTSTICACE^. 
 5. POLYGONACE^;. 
 6. CERATOPHYLLACEJ;. 
 Cohort III. Caryophyllales. 
 Order 1. CARYOPHYLLACE^;. 
 2. PORTULACE^J. 
 3. AIZOACE^;. 
 Cohort IV. Parietales. 
 Order 1. PAPAVERACEJE. 
 
 ,, 2. FUMARIACEJB. U 
 
 3. CRUCIFERJ:. t/x - 
 
 RESEDACEJE. 
 
 ClSTACE2E. 
 
 VlOLACEJU. 
 
 Cohort V. Sarraceniales. 
 
 2. NEPENTHACE^}. 
 3. DROSERACE^. M 
 Cohort VI. Guttiferales. 
 
 Order 1. HYPERICACEJ:. 
 ,, 2. TAMARTCAOEJI. 
 3. ELATINACE^;. 
 4. TERNSTROCMIACE^:. 
 ,, 5. CLUSIACE^. 
 
 ,, 6. DlPTEROCARPACE^I. 
 
 Cohort VII. Mai vales, 
 Order 1. TTLIACEJ;. 
 2 STERCULIACEJ:. 
 3. MALVACEJ;. 
 
574 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 SEEIES II. DISCIFLOK^E. 
 
 Cohort I. Geraniales. 
 Order 1. G-ERANIACEJE. 
 
 2. LINAGES. 
 
 3. ERYTHROXYLACEJ:. 
 
 4. OXALIDACEJ]. 
 
 5. BALSAMINACE.E. 
 
 6. TROPJEOLACEJE, 
 
 7. ZYGOPHYLLACEJS. 
 
 8. RUTACE^E. 
 
 9. MELIAGEJJ. 
 
 10. SlMARUBACE^J. 
 . 11. BURSERACE^]. 
 
 Cohort II. Sapindales. 
 Order 1. SAPINDACEJ:. 
 2. ACERACE^S. 
 3. POLYGALACE^J. 
 4. ANACARDIACEJE. 
 
 Cohort III. Celastrales. 
 Order 1. CELASTRACE^. 
 
 2. STAPHYLEACE^J. 
 
 3. AQUIFOLIACE^:. 
 
 4. THYMELEACE^;. 
 
 5. EL^AGNACE^. 
 
 6. RHAMNACE^;. 
 
 ,, 7. AMPELIDACE^;. 
 Cohort IV. Euphorbiales. 
 Order 1. EUPHORBIACE^:. 
 
 2. BUXACE^;. 
 
 3. EMPETRACE^;. 
 
 4. CALLITRICHACEJ:, 
 
 SEKIES HI. CALYCIFLOE^. 
 
 Cohort I. Umbellales. 
 Order 1. UMBELLIFER^E. 
 
 2. ARALIACE^E. 
 
 3. CORNACEJ:. 
 Cohort II. Passiflorales. 
 Order 1. PASSIFLORACE.E. 
 
 2. PAPAYACE^. 
 
 3. BEGONIACE^E. 
 
 4. CUCURBITACEJ;. 
 
 ,, 5. CACTACEJS. 
 Cohort III. Myrtales. 
 Order 1. ONAGRACE^;. 
 
 2. HALORAGIDACEJ:. 
 
 3. LYTHRACE^. 
 
 4. MYRTACE^:. 
 
 5. RHIZOPHORACE^E. 
 
 Cohort IV. Resales. 
 
 Order 1. ROSACES. 
 2. LEGUMINOS^:. 
 3. PLATANACEJ:. 
 Cohort V. Saxifragales. 
 Order 1. SAXIFRAGACE^. 
 2. CRASSULACE^E. 
 3. CEPHALOTACE^B. 
 
 4. PlTTOSPORACE^E. 
 
 5. HAMAMELIDACE^;. 
 
 6. PODOSTEMACE^!. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : DICOTYLEDONES : MONOCHLAMYDE^. 575 
 
 SUB-CLASS III. GAMOPETAL^E. 
 SERIES I. HYPOGYKZE. 
 
 Cohort I. Lamiales. 
 Order 1. LABIATE. 
 2. VERBENACE^;. 
 3. GLOBULARIACEJ;. 
 Cohort II. Personales. 
 
 Order 1. SCROPHULARIACEJ:. 
 
 ,, 2. PLANTAGINACEJS. 
 
 3. BIGNONIACE^:. 
 
 4. ACANTHACEJS. 
 
 5. GESNERACEJ;. 
 
 6. OROBANCHACEJ;. 
 
 7. LBNTIBULARTACEJE. 
 Cohort III. Polemoniales. 
 
 Order 1. CONVOLVULACEJJ. 
 
 2. POLEMONIACEJJ. 
 
 3. SOLANACE^S. 
 
 4. BORAGINACE2E. 
 
 Cohort IV. Gentianales. 
 Order 1. GENTIANACEJJ. 
 
 2. LOGANIACE.E. 
 
 3. APOCYNACEJE. 
 
 4. ASCLEPIADACEJL. 
 
 5. OLEACEJE. 
 Cohort V. Ebenales. 
 Order 1. SAPOTACEJ:. 
 
 2. EBENACEJ:. 
 
 3. STYBACEJS. 
 Cohort VI. Primulales. 
 
 Order 1. PBIMTJLACELB. 
 
 2. MYRSINACEJ:. 
 3. PLUMBAGINACEJ:. 
 Cohort VII. Ericales. 
 Order 1. ERICACE.E. 
 2. EPACRIDACEJJ. 
 3. DIAPENSIACE.E. 
 4. PYROLACEJI. 
 5. VACCINIACEJS. 
 
 SEKIES II. 
 
 Cohort I. Campanales. 
 Order 1. CAMPANULACEJJ. 
 
 2. LOBELIACEJJ. 
 Cohort II. Rubiales. 
 
 Order 1. RUBIACE^J. 
 
 2. CAPRIFOLIACE^. 
 
 Cohort III. Asterales. 
 
 Order 1. VALERIANACEJJ. 
 2. DIPSACE^J. 
 3. COMPOSITE. 
 
 SUB-CLASS I. MONOCHLAMYDE^J. 
 
 The flowers have a simple, usually sepaloid, perianth, or it may 
 be absent ; they are commonly monosporangiate. 
 
 It must not be assumed that all Dicotyledons with apetalous flowers belong 
 to this sub-class : on the contrary, many such plants must, in view of the 
 aggregate of their characters, be placed in the other sub-classes. The plants 
 included here are such as have flowers the perianth of which appears to be 
 primitively simple, and not such as have flowers the perianth of which seems 
 to have become simple by suppression (see p. 505). 
 
 V. S. B. p p 
 
576 
 
 PART JII. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Cohort I. Piperales. The flowers are usually ambisporangiate, 
 and they are arranged in a spike or a spadix, with bracts ; perianth 
 usually absent. Ovary usually superior, nionomerous or trimerous, 
 unilocular. Ovule orthotropous, solitary, basal or suspended ; in 
 some cases there are several parietal ovules. The embryo is small 
 and lies imbedded in endosperm, usually in a depression of the 
 abundant perisperm (Fig. 295 B, p. 458). 
 
 Order 1. PIPERACK^E. Ovary superior, usually trimerous or 
 monomerous, unilocular, with a single orthotropous, erect, central 
 ovule. The inflorescence is a long spadix, 
 with usually peltate subtending bracts 
 (Fig. 376 /, below), in the axils of which 
 the flowers are situated. The flower con- 
 sists only of a ovary (Fig. 376 /, above) 
 and generally six, three, or sometimes two 
 stamens ; the fruit is a berry. 
 
 FIG. 376. Part of the spa- 
 dix of Peperomia, with a 
 flower : / (below) the sub- 
 tending bract ; s s the two 
 stamens ; / (above) ovary ; fc 
 surface of the spadix (mag.). 
 
 Piper nigrnm is a climbing shrub belonging to 
 the East Indies ; the unripe dried fruits are black, 
 pepper ; white pepper consists of the ripe fruits 
 of the same plant, which, after maceration, are 
 freed from their outer coat. Cubebs are the fruits 
 of Piper Cubeba of Java. 
 
 Order 2. CHLORANTHACE.E. Flowers 
 sometimes with a rudimentary perianth. Ovary inferior, mono- 
 merous, with a single suspended ovule. Seed with oily endosperm, 
 but no perisperm. Tropical or sub-tropical. 
 
 Order 3. SAURURACE^. Flowers without perianth. Gynseceum 
 of three or four carpels, either apocarpous or syricarpous : in the 
 former case each ovary bears 2-4 orthotropous ovules on its ventral 
 suture (marginal placentation) ; in the latter case the unilocular 
 ovary bears 6-10 ovules on each parietal placenta ; ovary superior. 
 Seed as in Piperaceae. Herbs with a rhizome, belonging to North 
 America and Eastern Asia. 
 
 Houttuynia cordata (see p. 48) is a common weed in Japan and China. 
 
 Cohort II. Urticales. Flowers usually diclinous, in inflor- 
 escences of various forms : perianth usually present, simple, 
 sepaloid, consisting tYBJgally of five () or reduced to four (2 + 2) 
 segments; stamens equal in number and opposite to the segments 
 of the perianth, in consequence, apparently, of the essentially 
 spiral arrangement of the floral organs (see p. 497) ; ovary 
 
GROUP IV. PHASEROGA3HA : DiCOTYLEDONES : MOKOCHLAMYDEj;. 577 
 
 superior, monomerous, unilocular, or sometimes dimerous, with 
 two styles, and then rarely bilocular: ovule solitary, in different 
 positions. Seed_ commoiiljgL_contaming_eTidoserm. The inflor- 
 escences in orders 1-3 are usually situated 
 two together at the base of a leafy dwarf- 
 shoot which springs from the axil of a 
 leaf, and they are cymose (Fig. 377). The 
 leaves are generally hirsute. Cystoliths 
 (p. 108) are commonly present. 
 v Order 1. URTICACEJE. Ovary monomer- 
 ous : ovule central, orthotropous, erect. 
 Seed containing* endosperm. They are 
 mostly herbs or shrubs without milky 
 juice and frequently provided with sting- 
 ing-hairs : leaves alternate, stipulate. 
 Flowers polygamous, monoecious, or dioe- 
 cious, in paniculate or glomerulate inflor- 
 escences. 
 
 Fro. 377. Part of the stem 
 of Urtica urens, with a leaf (/) 
 in tbe axil of which is the 
 branch (m), at the base of 
 which are the inflorescences 
 (b), without any bracts (nut. 
 size). 
 
 Urtica urens and dioica (Stinging Nettles) are known by the stinging hairs 
 which are distributed over their whole surface : perianth 2 + 2 ; the two outer 
 segments of the perianth of the $ flower are larger than the inner segments 
 (Fig. 378 D). In the former species the $ and ? flowers are contained iu 
 the same panicle, and the floral axis is but feebly developed ; in the latter 
 they are on different plants, and the axis is well developed and bears leaves. 
 Bohmeria nivea, a native of China and Japan, has strong bast-fibres used for 
 weaving the material known in England as Grass-cloth. Parietaria officinalis, 
 Wall-Pellitory, having polygamous flowers with a erumoplr llous perianth, and 
 destitute of stinging-hairs, occurs occasionally on walls, by roadsides, etc. 
 
 Order 2. MORACE^E. Ovary gener- 
 ally dimerous, and sometimes bilocn- 
 lar (Artocarpus) : ovule suspended, 
 anatropous or campylotropous, more 
 rarely basal and orthotropous : seed 
 with or without endosperm ; the fruit 
 is enveloped by the perianth (usually 
 2 + 2), which becomes fleshy, or by a 
 fleshy floral axis. Trees and shrubs 
 with milky juice, scattered leaves and 
 caducous stipules. 
 
 FIG. ?78. A staminal <J ; B cnr- 
 pellary 9 flowers of the Stinging 
 Nettle, Urtica : p perianth ; a 
 stamen ; n' rudimentary ovary of 
 the <J flower; ap outer; ip inner 
 whorl of the perianth ; n stigma of 
 the ? flower (mag). 
 
 Morus alba and nigra (Mulberry) come from Asia ; the flowers are disposed 
 in short catkins ; the catkins are borne singly on shoots, which, at the time of 
 
578 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 flowering, are still buds, and they contain monosporangiate, but monoecious, 
 flowers; the $ flowers give rise, as ripening takes place, to a spurious fruit 
 (sorosis, p. 528), consisting of spurious drupes formed by the perianths. The 
 leaves, particularly of the former species, are the food of the silkworm. Bmu*- 
 soiietia papyri/era (Paper Mulberry) has flowers like the preceding, but they are 
 dioecious : the bark is made into paper in China 
 and Japan. Madura tincturia, in Central America, 
 yields Fustic, a dye. Ficus Carica is the Fig- tree of 
 Southern Europe ; the fig itself (termed a syconus) 
 is the deeply concave axis of the inflorescence, on the 
 inner surface of which the flowers and subsequently 
 the fruits, in the form of hard grains (achenes), are 
 borne (Fig. 379 mf) ; the cavity is closed above by 
 small bracts (Fig. 379 b). Ficus elastica is the India- 
 rubber tree; it is frequently cultivated in rooms. 
 F. reliyiosa and other East Indian species yield 
 Caoutchouc, which is their inspissated milky juice 
 (latex). Ficus indica is tbe Banyan. Artocarpus 
 incisa is the Bread-fruit tree of the South Sea Islands ; 
 the large spuiious fruit (sorosis) of this tree is roasted 
 and eaten as bread. Galactodendron utile, the Cow- 
 tree of Columbia, has a nutritious latex, while that of Antiaris toxicaria (Java) 
 is poisonous. 
 
 FIG. 379. Longitudinal 
 section of a Fig (nat. size) t 
 a a fleshy axis of the in- 
 florescence ; / ?, i <J, 
 flowers ; b bracts. 
 
 Order 3. CANNABINACE^. Ovary dimerous, unilocular : ovule 
 suspended, campylotropous : seed with endosperm. Flowers 
 dioecious : the J flowers (Fig. 380 A) have a 5- partite perianth 
 and 5 short stamens; the $ flowers have a tubular entire perianth 
 (Fig. 380 B, p) enclosed in a bract (Fig. 380 B, d). Herbs with 
 
 decussate leaves at least the 
 
 In K ^ A If II lower ones and persistent stip- 
 
 ules ; devoid of latex. 
 
 Cannabis sativa, the Hemp, a native 
 of As7a7Tsl^Ttiva"ted throughout Europe. 
 The $ inflorescences are panicled di- 
 chasia or scorpioid cymes, and are dis- 
 posed on both sides of a rudimentary 
 shoot at the apex of the plant ; the ? 
 flowers are placed singly on both sides of 
 a similar shoot, which bears secondary 
 shoots in the axils of its leaves, each 
 having two flowers. The tough bast- 
 fibres are used in weaving and for ropes; 
 the seeds contain a great deal of oil. 
 cultivated and found wild. The stem, 
 the right, bears its leaves in pairs ; each 
 
 FIG. 380. .4 $ flower of ttie Hop : p 
 the perianth; o stamens. B Part of ? 
 inflorescence : p perianth ; / ovary, with 
 two stigmata (n) ; each flower is enclosed 
 in. its bracteole (d) ; s scale, i.e. one of the 
 two stipules, from the common axil of 
 which the branch bearing the flowers 
 springs. 
 
 Humulus Lnpulus, the Hop, is both 
 which has the peculiarity of twining to 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : DICOTYLEDONES : MONOCHLAMYDEJS. 579 
 
 leaf has a pair of membranous stipules. In the inflorescence the leaves (bracts) 
 are placed singly, and are finally represented only by their stipules. In the ? 
 inflorescence, which somewhat resembles a fir-cone, a rudimentary shoot is 
 present in the common axil of each pair of stipules, and bears two flowers 
 on each side ; it seems at first sight as if two flowers were developed in the axil 
 of each stipule (Fig. 380 B). All the scales and bracts are covered, especially on 
 the upper surface, with numerous yellow glands. In the $ inflorescence the 
 shoot which bears the flowers is well developed. 
 
 Order 4. ULMACEJ:. Ovary dimerous, sometimes bilocular, but 
 generally unilocular by abortion. Ovule suspended and solitary. 
 Flowers mostly ambisporangiate, with a 4 6-partite perianth 
 (Fig. 381 A), Woody plants devoid of milky juice : leaves alter- 
 nate, with caducous stipules. The inflorescences (glomerules) are 
 borne directly in the axils of the leaves. 
 
 In the genus Ulmus the compact dichasial inflorescences- are developed in the 
 axils of the leaves (either persistent or deciduous), of the previous year, and 
 they are invested by bud-scales ; one or more 
 flowers are developed in the axil of each of the 
 more internal scales (bracts), and they open before 
 the unfolding of the leaves. The ovary is some- 
 times bilocular. The fruit is a samara, that is, 
 an achene with a broad membranous wing (Fig. 
 381 B}. The leaves are alternate, and always 
 
 oblique. The annual shoots have no terminal 
 
 Fia. 381. -A Flower of 
 bud, and so they form a sympodium. Two species mmus montana (mag<) . d 
 
 of Elm are indigenous in England. Ulmus cam- bract ; p perianth ; a stamens. 
 pestris, the common Elm, and Ulmus montana, B Fruit (samara) (nat. size) : 
 the broad-leaved Wych, or Scotch, or Mountain ^ membranous margin 
 Elm : the former has rather slender branches, 
 
 leaves with distinct petioles and crenate serrate margins, somewhat narrow at 
 the base, and a seed which is above the centre of the samara ; the latter has thick 
 horizontally-spreading branches, leaves with very short petioles and doubly 
 serrate margins, broad at the base, and a seed which is central in the samara. 
 C fit is au*tralis, from Southern Europe and C. occidentalis, from North America, 
 art; often cultivated as oruamental trees ; their flowers are polygamous, and 
 are placed sing y or several together in the axils of the oblique accuminate 
 leaves : the fruit is drupaceous. 
 
 Cohort TIL Amentales. The flowers, which are always dicli- 
 nous and generally monoecious, are arranged in catkins (amenta). 
 The perianth, when it is present, consists typically of 5 (-f^ 
 segments ; or it may deviate from the type so as to consist of four, 
 (i.e. 2 + 2), or six (i.e. 3 + 3) segments: the stamens, when their 
 position can be determined, are superposed on the segments of the 
 perianth for the reason given in the case of the Urticales (see p. 576). 
 
580 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The ovary is either superior or inferior, di- or tri-merous, with few 
 ovules. The fruit (with the exception of Order 7, the Salicacece) 
 becomes by abortion one-seeded, and is indehiscent : the seed has 
 no endosperm. The flowers are furnished with bracts which often 
 form investments for the fruit : their arrangement in most of the 
 orders is as follows ; in the axil of a scaly bract (the bracts being 
 arranged spirally in the amentum) is a flower (Z>) with two 
 bracteoles a and ft, in the axil of each of which is another flower 
 with two more bracteoles a' and ft' (Fig. 382). The plants are 
 trees and shrubs. 
 
 Order 1. BfiTULACEJI. The flowers are monoecious, but in dif- 
 ferent catkins. The ? flowers have no perianth : the ovary is 
 bilocular, with two ovules : the fruit is one-seeded, indehiscent, 
 
 .11 
 
 s\ 
 
 FIG. 382. Typical diagram of 
 a group of flowers in the Amen- 
 tales : d bract ; b the median 
 flower with, its bracteoles, a and 
 /3 ; j>' b" the two lateral flowers, 
 with their bracteoles -' and /3'. 
 
 FIG. 383. A Scale from a <J catkin of 
 Alnus incana : the axillary branch adheres 
 to the scale (s), it bears four bracteoles and 
 three flowers : two of the flowers are seen 
 laterally (b' b'), the median one from above ; 
 p perianth; a stamens. B Bract (s) of a ? 
 catkin of the same plant : its axillary branch 
 bears two lateral branches, each of which 
 bears two bracteoles (v v) and one flower; / 
 the ovary; n the stigmata (magnified and 
 diagrammatic) . 
 
 without any investment : the bract is coherent with the two or four 
 bracteoles (the bracteoles a' are always absent) to form a three- 
 or five-lobed scale, which does not adhere to the fruit. 
 
 Alnus, the Alder. In the $ amenta three flowers with four bracteoles 
 (a, /3, 0', /3') occur in the axil of the bract, each flower having a perianth of 
 four segments, and four unbranched stamens. In the <j> amenta the median 
 flower is absent ; the four bracteoles coalesce with the primary bract (Fig. 383 B, 
 v s) to form a five-lobed woody scale which persists after the fall of the f i uit 
 which is not winged. The <? catkins are borne terminally, and the $ laterally 
 on the highest lateral branch, on the shoots of the previous year ; they are not 
 enclosed by bud-scales during the winter, and blossoming takes place before 
 the unfolding of the leaves. The leaves have usually a arrangement: in 
 A. incana, the White Alder, the leaves are acuminate and gray on the under 
 
GROUP IY. PHANEROGAMIA : DICOTYLEDONES : MONOCHLAMYDE.E. 581 
 
 surface; in A. glutinosa, the black or common Alder, they are obovate or evea 
 emarginate, and green on both surfaces. In Ainu* viridis, the mountain Alder, 
 only the $ catkins are destitute of bud-scales in the winter: the fruit is winged. 
 Betula, the Birch. In both kinds of catkins the three flowers have only the 
 bracteoles a and /3. In the $ flowers the perianth is usually incomplete, and 
 there are only two stamens, the filaments of which are forked. In the ? 
 catkins, the two bracteoles cohere with the bract to form a three-lobed scale 
 which falls off together with the winged fruit. The $ catkins are borne ter- 
 minally on the shoots of the previous year, and are not covered with bud- scales 
 during the winter ; the 9 catkins are borne terminally on lateral dwarf-shoots 
 which have only a few leaves, and they are enclosed by bud- scales during the 
 winter ; as a consequence, flowering takes place after the unfolding of the 
 leaves. The shoots of successive yeais form sympodia, and the leaves are 
 arranged spirally. B. verrucosa has white glands on the leaves and young 
 shoots : B. pubescens has no glands, but the shoots are hairy ; it is a northern 
 form : B. fruticosa and B. nana are shrubs occurring in high latitudes : B. alba 
 is the common Birch. 
 
 Order 2. CoRYLACEvE. Flowers 
 monoecious, in ^ and $ catkins. 
 The flowers have no perianth ; 
 that of the $ flower is rudi- 
 mentary. The inferior ovary is 
 bilocular ; one loculus is sterile, 
 the other contains two sus- 
 pended anatropous ovules : the 
 fruit is one- seeded and indehis- 
 cent (a nut). Two flowers are 
 borne in the axil of the bract of 
 the ? catkin, the median flower 
 being absent. The one-seeded 
 fruit is surrounded by a leafy 
 investment (cupule) formed by 
 the three bracteoles (a a i j3 l and 
 ft a, ft respectively, Fig. 382) of 
 median flower only is developed 
 deeply forked. 
 
 Fio. 38 L Alnus glutinosa. A Branch 
 bearing catkins (in winter). B a group of 
 <J flowers (from above). C The same after 
 removal of flowers (lateral view). E Group 
 of ? flowers, seen from -within. F The 
 same after the removal of the flowers. G 
 a scale from the ? catkin : 6 bract ; a, /3, /3' 
 bracteoles. 
 
 each side. In the <^ catkin the 
 : the filaments of the stamens are 
 
 In Corylus, the Hazel, the ? catkin resembles a bud, since the external 
 sterile brcts have the same structure as the bud-scales (Fig. 385 B) ; the red 
 stigmata p'oject at the top ; the investment of the fruit is irregularly cut ; a 
 small piojection is formed on the fruit, the nut, by the remains of the epigynous 
 perianth. Each bract of the $ amentum bears two bracteoles a and /3, and a 
 flower consisting of four forked stamens (Figs. 385-6). Both kinds of amenta 
 are placed in the axils of the leaves of the previous year, and are not enclosed 
 
582 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 by scales during the winter ; hence flowering takes place before the unfolding 
 of the leaves. Leaves distichous. C. Avellana is the common Hazel ; a 
 variety of C. tubvlosa, with red leaves, the Purple or Blood Hazel, is cultivated 
 as an ornamental shrub. 
 
 In Carpinus, the Hornbeam, the fruit has a three-lobed cupule (Fig. 387), 
 the fruit is ribbed and is surmounted by the perianth. The bract of the $ 
 catkin bears 4-10 deeply forked stamens ; there are no bracteoles. The catkins 
 of both kinds are borne at the apex of short leafy shoots of the same year, 
 hence flowering takes place after the unfolding of the leaves. Leaves distichous. 
 The annual shoots form sympodia. C. Betulus has an irregular stem and 
 serrate leaves which are plicate along the lateral veins. In Ostrya (Southern 
 Europe) the investment of the fruit is an open tube. 
 
 FIG. 386. Corylus Avellana. A 
 Flowering branch. S $ flower 
 with its bract. C Bract after the 
 removal of the anthers. JP Group 
 of 9 flowers seen from within : 
 b bract. 
 
 FIG. 385. Corylus Avellana. A Bract (s) of a 
 $ catkin, with a <J flower: stamens (/), and 
 anthers (a). JB ? catkin: the lower bracts (s) 
 have no flowers : the stigmata (n) project above. 
 C A single ? flower surrounded by the cupule 
 (bracteoles), (c), with two stigmata (n) (mag. 
 and diag.) 
 
 Order 3. FAGACEJL Flowers monoecious, with a perianth of 
 five or six segments. Ovary inferior, trilocular, with two ovules 
 in each loculus ; ovules anatropous, ascending or suspended ; the 
 fruit is one-seeded and indehiscent (a nut); it is invested by a 
 cupule formed probably by the connate bracteoles a' ft f a j3 f (Fig. 
 382), arid having its surface covered with scales, prickles, etc. 
 The filaments are not forked. 
 
 In Quercus, the Oak, the <? catkins are loose ; each braet bears a single 
 flower in its axil without bracteoles : the perianth is 5-7 lobed, and the stamens 
 from 5-10 or indefinite (Fig. 388 A). There is a single flower, the median one, 
 in the axil of each bract of the $ catkin ; thus the cupule invests only a 
 single fruit, and forms the so-called cup at its base. The leaves are developed in 
 order, and are aggregated towards the apices of the annual shoots ; the annual 
 shoots are always terminal. The 3 catkins are borne in the axils of the 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : DTCOTYLEDONES : MONOCHLAMYDE2E. 583 
 
 uppermost bud-scales (pairs of stipules) on both long and dwarf-shoots of the 
 same year ; the ? catkins in the axils of the foliage-leaves of the terminal 
 shoots : flowering takes place shortly after the unfolding of the leaves. The 
 ovules are ascending. The hypogean cotyledons remain enclosed in the testa 
 during germination. Quercus Robur is the English species, of which there are 
 two varieties, Quercus pedunculata and Quercus sessiliflora : the former has 
 elongated <j> catkins, so that the fruits are widely separated from each other, 
 and its pinnately lobed leaves are shortly stalked and cordate at the base : 
 the latter has compact ? catkins, so that the fruits form a cluster, and its 
 leives have longer petioles, and are narrowed at the base. Quercus Snber is 
 the Cork-Oak of Southern Europe. There are also several North American 
 species. 
 
 In Fagus, the Beech, the catkins of both kinds are stalked dichasial clusters, 
 borne each in the axil of a foliage-leaf. The flowers have no bracts, or bracteoles, 
 except the cupule of the ? flower. The flowers of the pendulous $ catkin are 
 
 FIG. 387. - Fruit of 
 Cnrpinus Betulus with 
 three-lobed cupule. 
 
 FIG. 388. Quercus pedunculata. A <J flower magnified : 
 jr> perianth ; a stamens. B ? flower magnified : d bract ; c 
 cupule; p the epigynous perianth; g the stvle ; n the 
 stigma. C The same, still more magnified, in longitudinal 
 section ; / ovary ; s ovules. 
 
 closely packed ; they have a perianth of 4-7 segments, and 8-12 stamens. The 
 erect $ catkin consists of two flowers only, which are invested by a tetramerous 
 cupule. The cupule is covered with hard bristles, and when ripe splits into four 
 valves to allow the two triquetrous fruits to escape ; each fruit bears at its apex 
 a brush-like remnant of the perianth. The ovules are suspended. The $ 
 inflorescences are borne on erect axes in the axils of the leaves of the apical 
 shoot of the same year, the $ on pendulous axes springing from the axils of 
 the lower leaves of the shoot. Leaves distichous, approaching each other on 
 the under surfaces of the shoots, their axillary buds approaching each other on 
 the upper surface : the winter buds are elongated and pointed. The epigean 
 cotyledons escape from the seed on germination. Fagus syluatica is tLe 
 common Beech : varieties with tinted leaves, such as the Purple Beech and the 
 Copper Beech, are commonly cultivated. 
 
 In Castanea, the edible or Spanish Chestnut, some of the catkins consist at 
 
584 PART 111. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 their lower part of ? flowers and at their upper of $ flowers, whilst others 
 have only $ flowers. In the axil of each bract there are usually either seven 
 $ or three ? flowers : the latter are invested by the bracteoles a and ^3, and 
 by a cupule formed by the other four bracteoles ; the cupule, which is covered 
 with prickles, completely encloses the fruit until it is ripe, when it splits into 
 four valves. Both kinds of catkins are formed in the axils of leaves of shoots 
 of the same year, the mixed catkins being nearer to the apex than the $ ones, 
 The ovules are suspended. The leaves are arranged spirally on vigorous shoots ; 
 they are distichous on the less vigorous lateral shoots. C. vulgaris, from 
 Southern Europe, is cultivated in parks ; it has undivided toothed leaves. 
 
 Order 4. JUGLANDACE.E. Flowers monoecious, the two kinds of 
 flowers being contained in distinct catkins. Each bract bears in its 
 axil a single flower w r ith two bracteoles. The ? flower has usually 
 a perianth : the inferior ovary is dimerous, and encloses a single 
 erect orthotropous ovule. The <$ flowers are usually borne on the 
 bract ; they may or may not have a perianth, and the stamens are 
 
 indefinite (Fig. 389 A). The 
 fruit is drupaceous ; the 
 leaves arc pinnate, and, like 
 the flowers, they are aro- 
 matic. 
 
 In Juglans the $ catkins are 
 
 x borne o.. tlie apices of the leafless 
 
 Fio. 889. .4 Bract of the <y catkin of Juglans shoots of the previous year, and 
 mgrabearingaflowerrpperianthandbrHcteoles; the few-flowered ? catkins on the 
 s stamens ; x axis of the catkin. B ? flower 
 
 of the same plant: I bracteoles; o perianth; n a P 1C6S f the leat y sh ts f the 
 stigmata (magnified). same year. The biacteolesof the 
 
 ? flowers (Fig. 389 I) grow up 
 
 around the ovary. The succulent mesocarp is thin, and ruptures irregularly ; 
 the hard endocarp opens on germination along the line of junction of the two 
 carpels, and then the incurved margins of the carpels are seen as an incom- 
 plete longitudinal septum projecting between the two cotyledons of the embryo 
 which is closely invested by the endocarp. J. regia, the Walnut Tree, is a 
 native of Southern Europe : in North America, J. cinerea and itigra occur; also 
 various species of Carya, the Hickory, remarkable for its very hard wood. 
 
 Order 5. MYRICACEJS. Trees or shrubs ; the flowers, which are 
 diclinous and sometimes dioecious, are arranged in catkins ; perianth 
 absent. The ovary is dimerous and unilocular, with one erect 
 orthotropous ovule. 
 
 Myrica Gale, the Bog-Myrtle, is a shrub occurring on moors. M. cerifera, 
 belonging to North America, secretes a quantity of wax on its drupaceous 
 fruits. 
 
GROUP IV. PHANEKOGAMIA : DICOTYLEDONES : MONOCHLAMYDE2E. 585 
 
 Order 6. CASUARINACEJ:. Trees having somewhat the appearance 
 of Horse-tails (Equisefcum), with long- channelled internodes, and 
 leaves forming a toothed sheath. The monoecious flowers are in 
 distinct catkins; the rf flowers consist of a single axial stamen 
 (see p. 78) and two perianth-leaves : the ? of a dimerous uni-_ 
 locular ovary invested by two bracteoles, which, when ripe, are 
 hard and woody ; the whole ? catkin then resembles a pine-cone : 
 ovules, generally two, orthotropus, ascending. (For peculiarities 
 of fertilisation, etc., see p. 528.) 
 
 Several species of Casuarina are indigenous in Australia. 
 
 FIG. 390. A <J, B ? flower of Salix : d bract; 
 h disc; o stamens; / ovary; n stigmata (en- 
 larged). C Dehiscent fruit of the Poplar: s seeds; 
 p disc. 
 
 Order 7. SALICACEJE. The dioecious flowers are arranged in 
 amenta, and they are borne in the axils of the bracts without any 
 bracteoles. There is no 
 perianth, but each flower 
 contains a glandular disc 
 or nectary. The ovary is 
 dimerous and unil ocular, 
 and contains a number of 
 parietal ovules. The de- 
 hiscence of the fruit is 
 loculicidal ; the numerous 
 seeds are furnished with 
 a pencil of silky hairs at 
 their bases (p. 459). The 
 catkins are developed at the ends of lateral dwarf -shoots which 
 always bear scales or even a few foliage-leaves. 
 
 Salix, the Willow or Sallow, has entire bracts, a one or two-toothed nectary 
 in each flower, and usually two stamens, entire shortly-stalked leaves, and its 
 winter -buds are covered by a scale which is formed by thejaoalescence of two. 
 The shoots, which grow throughout the summer, die down yearly. Some species, 
 such as S. alba, fragi^is, and babylonica, the Weeping Willow, have pendulous 
 branches, and are arborescent : most of them are shrubby, and some, Fuch as 
 S. reticulata, retusa, and herbacea are small decumbent shrubs occurring in the 
 Alps and in high latitudes. In S. purpurea and incana the two stamens are 
 connate : S. triandra has three stamens. Most of the species grow on the banks 
 of rivers ; S. anrita and caprea in forests, and S. repens and others on moors. 
 
 Populus, the Poplar, has toothed or lobed bracts, a cup-shaped nectary (Fig. 
 390 C, p), and numerous (4-80) stamens ; the leaves are often lobed and have 
 long petioles ; the winter-bu-ls are enclosed by a number of scales ; the shoots 
 have a terminal bud. In the Section Leuce the young shoots are pubescent, 
 and the buds are not viscid ; the $ flowers have usually only from 4-8 stamens, 
 aud the stigmata have 2-4 lobes : to this section belong P. alba, the White 
 
586 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Poplar or Abele. with five-lobed leaves on the elongated shoots, which are white 
 and woolly beneath; and P. Tremula, the Aspen, with sinuate-serrate leaves, 
 glabrous beneath, which are versatile on the long slender and compressed 
 petiole, and which are therefore very readily set in motion by the wind. In the 
 Section Aigeiros, the young shoots and the buds are viscid and glabrous ; the 
 bracts are glabrous, and the number of stamens is usually from 15-30 ; the 
 stigmata are entire or shortly lobed : to this section belong P. nigra, the Black 
 Poplar, and a variety with erect branches, the Lombardy Poplar ; of the latter, 
 only (J individuals are usually cultivated. In the Section Tacamahaca, the 
 young shoots and bnds are viscid ; the leaves grey below, with compressed 
 petioles : and the stamens 20-30 : to this section belongs P. balsamifera of 
 North America and Siberia. 
 
 Cohort. IV. Proteales. Characters, those of the natural order. 
 
 Order 1. PROTEACEJ:. Affinities doubtful. Flowers ambispor- 
 angiate ; the very short stamens are superposed on the four seg- 
 ments of the simple perianth, and are adnate to them (Fig. 391 B) : 
 
 FIG. 391. -Flower of Manglesia glalrata. A Before Fro. 392. Flower of Cheno- 
 opening. B Open : p segment of the perianth ; a podium (enlarged) : fc peri- 
 anther; n stigma. C Ovary (below) in longitudinal atith ; a stamens; / ovary; 
 section ; gp gyuophore. D Transverse section of n stigma, 
 the ovary. E Ripe fruit. (After Sachs.) 
 
 when the flower opens, the tube of the perianth often becomes still 
 more deeply cleft : the superior monomerous ovary is usually 
 borne upon a prolongation of the axis (Fig. 391 C, gp) : ovules one 
 or more, ascending : seeds without endosperm. 
 
 Protea, Grevillea, Manglesia, and others occur mostly in South Africa and in 
 Australia. 
 
 Cohort Y. Chenopodiales. Flowers usually am bisporangiatej 
 perianth sepaloid or petaloid : ovary monomerous or polymerous ; 
 ovule usually solitary ; embryo coiled or curved : ripe seed con- 
 tains perisperm, but no endosperm. 
 
GROUP IV. PHAXEROGAMIA : DICOTYLEDOXES : MOXOCHLAMYDEJ]. 587 
 
 This cohort is sometimes placed, though apparently without sufficient reason, 
 in the sub-class Thalaminorae close to the Garyophyllacese, with which order it 
 is, however, connected by the Phytolaccacese. 
 
 > 
 
 Order 1. CHENOPODIACEJE. Flowers small, united to form a 
 
 dense inflorescence : the bracteoles are frequently suppressed._ 
 Stamens typically equal in number to and superposed on the 
 usually four (2 4 2) or five (f ) free or connate sepaloid perianth- 
 leaves for the same reason as in the Urticales (p. 576) (Fig. 392). 
 Ovary usually medially dimerous and unilocular, with a single 
 campylotropous, erect or horizontal, basal ovule. Stipules 
 wanting. 
 
 Ghenopodinm album, the Goose-foot, and C. Bonus Henricns, the All-good, 
 are common weeds on garden-ground and waste land. Spinacia oleracea is 
 Spinach, cultivated as a vegetable. Beta vulgaris is cultivated under the var. 
 Cicla (Mangold) ; B. altissima is the species used in the manufacture of sugar, 
 and B. rubia is the red Beetroot ; B. maritima is the wild Beet. Salsola, the 
 Salt-wort, and its allies, Suaeda, the Sea-blite, and Salicornia, the Marsh- 
 Samphire or Glass-wort, with fleshy stems and leaves, are conspicuous in the 
 vegetation of the sea-shore. Atriplex, the Orache, is the other British genus. 
 
 V Order 2. AMARANTACEJJ. The flowers have the same structure 
 as those of the preceding family : they usually have bracteoles 
 which are frequently petaloid : perianth sometimes petaloid : ovary 
 unilocular, apparently di- or tri-merous : ovule solitary and basal, 
 but in some cases (Celosia) the ovules are numerous. Stipules 
 absent. The flowers usually form dense inflorescences. 
 
 Species of Amarantus and Celosia (Cock's-comb), the latter having a mon- 
 strous floral axis, are well known as ornamental plants. Aiiiarautus Blituni is 
 found wild in Britain. 
 
 Order 3. PHYTOLACCACEJI. The flowers have a simple, gener- 
 ally 5-leaved, perianth which is often peta- 
 loid, and there are frequently two regularly 
 alternating whorls of stamens ; when there 
 is but one whorl of stamens they are some- 
 times superposed on the perianth -leaves 
 (Microtea) ; the number of the stamens in 
 one or both whorls is in many cases doubled 
 (Fig. 393) : the number of carpels varies 
 
 FIG. 393. Diagram of the 
 
 very much ; when the ovary is polymerous flower of Phytolacca decan- 
 
 it is multilocular, each loculus contain- dra - 
 
 ing a single ascending ovule. Stipules occasionally present. 
 
588 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS'. 
 
 The juice of the berries of Phytolacca decandra, a native of North America, is 
 used as a colouring- matter in the manufacture of wine and in other processes. 
 
 V Order 4. NYCTAGINACEJ]. Perianth a simple whorl, petaloid, 
 gamophyllous, 5-leaved ; the basal portion persists as an investment 
 to the fruit, often becoming succulent or woody : stamens in 
 greater or smaller numbers (1-30) ; when isomerous they usually 
 alternate with the perianth-leaves, but are sometimes opposite to 
 them (Colignonia) : ovary monomerous, unilocular, with one basal 
 campylotropous ovule ; the flowers are surrounded by an involucre 
 or epicalyx of 3, 5, or many bracts, enclosing 1, 3, or many flowers. 
 
 Mirabilis Jalapa, the Marvel of Peru, is an ornamental plant from America ; 
 the roots are often substituted for those of the true Jalap. Whilst generally 
 sepaloid, the involucre is petaloid in Bougainvillea where it encloses three 
 flowers, and in Tricycla where it encloses but one : in the latter case, as the 
 single flower appears to be terminal, the involucre may be more correctly des- 
 cribed as an epicalyx of bracteoles (see p. 494). The embryo of Abronia is 
 pseudo-monocotyledonous. 
 
 Cohort VI. Asarales. Affinities doubtful. Mowers mono- or 
 ambi-sporangiate : ovary inferior : ovules numerous. 
 
 Order 1. AniSTOLOCHiACEJ). Mowers 3-6-merous, ambisporan- 
 giate : perianth of three connate petaloid segments forming a three- 
 lobed tube : stamens 6 or 12, with extrorse anthers : ovary usually 
 6-locular, with numerous ovules in two longitudinal rows along the 
 inner angles of each loculus. The minute embryo is enclosed in 
 the copious endosperm. They are herbs or shrubs, often climbing, 
 with large leaves. 
 
 In Asarum enropaum (Asarabacca) the three lobes of the perianth are equal ; 
 alternating with them are three scales which probably represent a corolla : the 
 
 twelve stamens (apparently in two whorls) 
 are free, and the connective is produced (Fig. 
 394). The annual shoots of the creeping stem 
 bear four cataphyllary leaves, two large petio- 
 late reniform foliage-leaves, and a terminal 
 flower. The lateral branches spring from the 
 axils of the uppermost folinge-leaf and of the 
 scales. In Aristolocliia, the Birthwort (see 
 Fig. 293, p. 456), the limb of the perianth is 
 obliquely lipped ; the six anthers are sessile 
 and adnate to the short style (see p. 518). 
 Fi. 394.-^am europium. A ' Si ! jho is * climber frequently cultivated : 
 Longitudinal section of the flower A ' ' I*fftfrti| though not indigenous, is 
 (mag.); p perianth. (After Sachs.) found wild in Britain, generally on ruins ; the 
 
a 
 
 GROUP IV. PHANEROGAMIA : DICOTYLEDONES : MONOCHLAMYDEJE. 589 
 
 flowers of the latter occur usually several together in the axils of the leaves, 
 and those of the former in pairs, one above the other, together with a branch, 
 in the axils of the leaves of the shoot of the previous year. 
 
 The presence in Asarum of what is apparently a corolla renders the position 
 of this order among the MonochlamydeaB rather doubtful. 
 
 " 
 
 Order 2. CYTINACEJ:. Parasites devoid of chlorophyll and with- 
 out fob' age- leaves, with a usually deformed vegetative body, and 
 either solitary flowers of remarkable size, or small flowers in ~ 
 compact inflorescence. Flowers of various structure, mono- or 
 ambi-sporangiate : perianth campanulate : the stigmata and anthers 
 are borne on a central column : ovary generally unilocular: ovules 
 very numerous, having generally one or two integuments : embryo 
 rudimentary : seed with or without endosperm. 
 
 Sub-order 1. CYTINE^E. Flowers monosporangiate. Cytinus Hypocistis is 
 parasitic on the roots of Cistus in Southern Europe ; another species occurs in 
 Mexico, and another in South Africa. 
 
 Sub-order 2. HYDNORE.E. Flowers ambisporangiate. Hydnora is parasitic 
 on the roots of Euphorbias, etc., in South Africa ; Prosopanche is parasitic on 
 the roots of Prosopis in South America : the seed contains both endosperm and 
 perisperm. 
 
 Sub-order 3. BAFFLESIE;E. Kafflesia and Brugmansia are parasitic on the 
 roots of Ampelidaceae and Leguminosas in the Malay Archipelago : Pilostyles 
 belongs to tropical South America. Rafflcsia Arnoldi is conspicuous for the 
 enormous size of its flower. Brugmansia has ambisporangiate flowers. 
 
 Cohort VII. Santalales. Parasitic plants: leaves, when 
 present, entire : stamens equal in number to the leaves of the 
 perianth and superposed upon them : ovary inferior, unilocular ; 
 ovules usually devoid of integument. 
 
 Order 1. SANTALACEJ;. Parasites provided with chlorophyll : 
 flowers generally ambisporangiate : ovules 14, suspended, upon a 
 free central placenta: perianth 3-5-lobed ; fruit a nut or drupe : 
 seed with endosperm. 
 
 Theeium linopht/llum, the Bastard Toad-flax, is an indigenous plant which is 
 parasitic on the roots of other plants. The leaves are narrow and linear. The 
 bracts of the flowers, which are disposed in racemes, are usually placed high up 
 on the pedicels, close under the flowers, and in most of the species constitute 
 with the bracteoles a three-leaved epicalyx. The stamens are filiform, inserted 
 at the base of the lobes of the perianth. The perianth is persistent, remaining 
 curled up at the apex of the indehiscent fruit (Fig. 395 B). Santalum album, 
 an East Indian tree, yields Sandal-wood. 
 
 Order 2. LORANTHACEJ:. Parasites provided with chlorophyll : 
 flowers mono- or ambi-sporangiate ; sometimes dioecious : perianth 
 
590 
 
 PAET III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 of 4, 6, or 8 leaves : ovary 1-2-merous : in the free central placenta, 
 which becomes more or less closely adherent to the wall of the 
 ovary, are developed several embryo-sacs, each of which probably 
 represents an ovule, but usually one only is fertile : fruit a berry : 
 seed generally with endosperm. 
 
 Viscum album, the Mistletoe, is parasitic on various trees, forming conspicuous 
 evergreen bunches. The stem bears a pair of opposite leaves (Fig. 396 b b), 
 from the axils of which new branches spring, each bearing a pair of cataphyllary 
 leaves and then a pair of foliage-leaves, while the main axis ceases to grow, or 
 produces a terminal inflorescence, consisting of three flowers (Fig. 396 h /) : 
 branches or inflorescences may also spring from the axils of the cataphyllary 
 leaves. The flowers are dioecious. The fruit is a one-seeded berry with a viscid 
 pericarp, by means of which the seeds become attached to trees, and thus effect 
 the distribution of the plant. The $ flowers have multilocular sessile anthers 
 which are inserted (Fig. 396 B a) upon the leaves of the perianth. Loranthus 
 europceus occurs upon Oaks in Eastern Europe. 
 
 FIG. 395. .4 Flower; B fruit 
 of Thesium montanum : /ovary ; 
 p perianth ; s stamens ; n stigma 
 (enlarged). 
 
 B p 
 
 FIG. 393. A Terminal shoot of a $ plant of the 
 Mistletoe, Viscum, album : s stem ; b b leaves ; k k 
 axillary buds ; / three $ flowers with the fruit set ; 
 7i bracts. B <$ flower (mag.) p perianth ; a anthers 
 adherent to the leaves of the perianth. 
 
 Order. 3. BALANOPHORACE^. Parasites devoid of chlorophyll 
 and without foliage-leaves, with a deformed vegetative body. 
 Flowers dioecious or monoecious, in many-flowered inflorescences. 
 The staminate flowers have usually a 3-4-lobed perianth. The 
 carpellary flowers have usually no perianth, and consist of a one- 
 seeded ovary of 1-3 carpels : the ovule is suspended, and it fre- 
 quently adheres closely to the ovary ; an integument is present in 
 Cynomorium. The embryo is very small. 
 
 Balanophora inhabits the tropics of Asia, Lophophytum and others those of 
 America ; others (Mystropetalon, Sarcophy te) inhabit tropical Africa ; Cyno- 
 morium coccineum is found in the Mediterranean region. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETAL^ : THALAMIFLORai. 591 
 
 SUB-CLASS II. POLYPETAL^E. 
 
 Flowers usually ambisporangiate : perianth, usually consisting 
 of calyx and corolla, the petals being free. 
 
 SERIES I. THALAMIFLOR.E. 
 
 Sepals usually free : petals often indefinite : stamens hypo- 
 gynous, often indefinite : gynaeceum apocarpous or syncarpous. 
 
 Cohort I. RanaleS. Flowers generally acyclic or hemicyclic : 
 perianth consisting of calyx only, or of calyx and corolla : stamens 
 usually indefinite : gynaeceum apocarpous, sometimes reduced to a 
 single carpel ; very rarely syncarpous, with a multilocular ovary. 
 Seed with or without endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. RANUNCULACE.E. Perianth either consisting of a petaloid 
 calyx, or of calyx and corolla, usually spiral : stamens numerous, 
 occupying several turns of the spiral, or arranged in several alter- 
 nating whorls; anthers usually with lateral dehiscence, sometimes 
 extrorse or introrse : carpels numerous, spirally arranged ; rarely 
 one only ; the ovules are disposed on the connate margins of 
 each carpel, that is, in two rows down the ventral suture ; in 
 several genera the number of the ovules in each ovary is reduced 
 to one, which then originates from either the upper or the lower end 
 of the cavity of the ovary : seed with endosperm. They are almost 
 all herbaceous plants, and are either annuals or they have perennial 
 rhizomes ; they have no stipules, but they have amplexicaul leaves. 
 
 Tribe 1. Anemonea. Petals generally replaced by stamens : sepals frequently 
 petaloid : ovaries numerous, each containing a single suspended or ascending 
 anatropous ovule ; fruit consists of a number of achenes. 
 
 The genus Clematis consists of shrubs which creep, or climb by their petioles, 
 and have opposite leaves, and a petaloid usually valvate calyx. Clematis 
 Vitalba, the Old Man's Beard, is common in hedges ; it has a greenish-white 
 calyx, and fruits with long feathery styles ; C, Viticella, patens, and others are 
 cultivated as decorative plants. Atragene alpina, occurring in the Alps and in 
 Siberia, has its external stamens converted into petaloid staminodes. 
 
 Thalictrum ; the species of this genus, as T. ruajus, minus, flavum, and 
 alpinum, the Meadow-Rues, have stems well covered with leaves, and flowers 
 with an inconspicuous, fugacious, 4-5-leaved calyx, and a flat receptacle. 
 
 Anemone haa an hemispherical receptacle (Fig. 397 A t), and a petaloid, 
 usually 5-6-leaved calyx. In most of the species the underground rhizome 
 elongates into an erect scape which bears a single whorl of three bracteoles form- 
 ing an epicalyx (p. 494), beneath the terminal flower. In A.nemorosa, ranun- 
 culoides, and others, these bracteoles resemble the foliage-leaves, and often bear 
 flowers in their axils ; but in A. Pulsatilla, and others, they differ from the foli- 
 
 V. S. B. Q Q 
 
592 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 age-leaves in that they are palmatifid (Fig. 397 A h) ; in A. Hepatica, in which 
 the scapes spring from the axils of cataphyllary leaves, the three bracteoles are 
 simple and lie so closely under the petaloid calyx that at first they appear to 
 be the calyx of the flower. 
 
 Myosurus minimus (Mouse- tail) has a very long cylindrical receptacle, bearing 
 the indefinite spirally arranged carpels : stamens 4-14 ; the 5 sepals are spurred. 
 Adonis, the Pheasant's Eye, has completely acyclic flowers ; eepals 5, petals 8 
 or more, not glandular at the base ; stamens and carpels indefinite, arranged in 
 & order : A. autumnalis is the species which occurs in England. 
 
 In Eanunculus, the calyx, which is not petaloid, consists of 5 (f) sepals, and 
 the corolla of 5 imbricate petals which alternate with the sepals and have a 
 
 FIG. 397. Flowers of Rnmmcnlaccse: s peduncle; fe sepals; c petals; a stamens; 
 / ovary; n stigma (all of natural size or slightly magnified). A Flower of Anemone 
 PaUatilla in longitudinal section ; h epicalyx ; t receptacle. B Gyiiseceum of Ranunculus : 
 * receptacle with the points of insertion of the stamens which have been removed : C flower 
 seen from below. D Flower of Helleborus viridis. E Flower of Aconitum Napellus : 7i 
 bracteoles ; k' hooded posterior sepal the lateral sepal on this side is removed. 
 
 nectary at their base : the stamens and carpels are arranged spirally ; anthers 
 extrorse ; the ovule is ascending, whereas it is suspended in all the preceding 
 genera. The genus includes water-plants with finely-divided leaves and white 
 flowers, as R. aqiiatilis, Water Crowfoot, fluitans, etc. ; and land- or bog-plants, 
 usually with a yellow corolla, as JR. acris, the Buttercup, repem, bulbosus, and 
 sceleratus (all known as Crowfoot), and Lingua and Flammula (the Greater and 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLTPETALJ! : THAL AMI FLORAE. 593 
 
 Lesser Spearworts) ; they are all more or less poisonous. R. Ficaria (the 
 Lesser Celandine) has 3 sepals and usually 8 petals. 
 
 Tribe 2. Hellcborece. Perianth generally consisting of calyx and corolla, the 
 latter being occasionally suppressed ; the petals are glandular at the base : 
 ovaries usually fewer in number than the leaves of the perianth ; ovules numer- 
 ous, borne on the ventral suture ; fruit usually consists of several follicles. 
 
 (a) With regular, generally actinornorphic, flowers : 
 
 Helleborus, with acyclic flowers; sepals more or less petaloid in arrange- 
 ment ; the petals, which are small and tubular, in f or ^ ; stamens in ^ or 
 ,f T ; ovaries usually 3-5 (Fig. 397 D). H. niger is the Christmas Eose ; //. 
 viridis and fcetidus are not rare. Nigella has 5 petaloid sepals and usually 8 
 (superposed if 5) small glandular petals : its carpels cohere partially or com- 
 pletely, forming a septicidal capsule. Trollius, the Globe-flower, has 5-15 
 petaloid sepals, and a similar number of small petals which, like the stamens 
 and carpels, are all arranged spirally : T. europceus occurs in sub-alpine regions. 
 Caltha, the Marsh-Marigold, has 5 yellow petaloid sepals, but no corolla : C. 
 pulustris is common in damp places. Eranthis, the Winter Aconite, has a 
 3-leaved epicalyx, and small petals with long 
 claws. Actaea has a petaloid calyx and an 
 alternating (sometimes suppressed) corolla ; 
 it has a single carpel which becomes a baccate 
 fruit: A. spicata, the Baneberry or Herb 
 Christopher, occurs in woods. Aquilegia, the 
 Columbine, has a cyclic flower (Fig. 398) : 
 it has 5 petaloid sepals, and petals with long 
 spurs ; there are several whorls of stamens : 
 A. vulgar is, atrata, Aklei, and others occur 
 wild, or are cultivated as decorative plants. 
 
 (/>) With irregular dorsi ventral flowers: 
 
 Delphinium, the Larkspur, has the pos- 
 terior of the 5 petaloid sepals prolonged into FlG ' m ~ f fl W6r f 
 a spur : there are typically 5-8 petals, of 
 which only the 2 (D. Ajacis ; see Fig. 328 A) or 4 (D. Staphitagria) posterior 
 are developed ; the spurs of the two posterior petals project into that of the 
 posterior sepal : D. Staphisagria has 3-5 carpels ; D. Consolida and D. Ajacis, 
 common garden plants, have usually but one carpel. In Aconitum, the 
 Wolf's-bane or Monk's-hood, the posterior of the 5 petaloid sepals is large and 
 hooded ; the two posterior of the 8 petals have long claws, and are covered by 
 the posterior sepal, the others being inconspicuous (Fig. 397 E, c). 
 
 Tribe 3. Pceoniece. The perianth consists of calyx and corolla, and the petals 
 are not glandular : ovaries with numerous ovules, surrounded by a disc : fruit 
 of several follicles. 
 
 In Fasonia, the Peony, the flower is acyclic : the calyx consists of 5 sepals 
 which gradually pass into the foliage-leaves ; the petals are 5 or more. P. ojficin- 
 alix, coral Una, and others are cultivated as decorative plants ; P. Moutan has a 
 woody stem and a tubular disc. 
 
 Order 2. MAGNOLIACE^:. Perianth cyclic, consisting usually of 
 
594 FART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 three alternating trimerous whorls, one of sepals and two of 
 petals : stamens and carpels numerous, arranged spirally : seed 
 containing endosperm. Woody trees or shrubs. 
 
 Tribe 1. JUagnoliece. Carpels very numerous on an elongated cylindrical 
 receptacle : flowers invested by a spathoid bract ; stipules connate. Magnolia 
 grand/flora and other species, and Liriodendron tulip if era, the Tulip-tree, from 
 North America, are ornamental trees. 
 
 Tribe 2. llliciece. Carpels in a single whorl on a flat receptacle (Fig. 340). 
 lllicium anisatum, the Star-Anise, is a native of China. 
 
 Order 3. CALYCANTHACE^;. Flowers acyclic, perigynons : fruit, 
 an etaerio of achenes, resembling that of the Rose. 
 
 Calycanthus floridus, Carolina Allspice, is an ornamental shrub with brown 
 aromatic flowers. Chimonanthus, a fragrant shrub, also belongs here. 
 
 Order 4. NYMPH^EACE^E. Flowers usually acyclic without any 
 sharp demarcation between the petals and the stamens : pistil 
 either apo- or syn-carpous. Water-plants, generally with broad 
 floating leaves. 
 
 Tribe 1. Nymphceince. Carpels connate, forming a polymerous multilocular 
 ovary which may be either superior or inferior. Ovules numerous, placenta- 
 tion superficial : seeds numerous, containing both endosperm and perisperm, 
 sometimes arillate (p. 459). The rhizome grows at the bottom of the water and 
 throws up broad, flat, cordate leaves with long petioles which float on the surface. 
 The flower also reaches the surface, borne on a long peduncle. 
 
 Nymph<ea alba, the white Water-Lily, has four green sepals, a great number 
 of white petals which, together with the very numerous stamens, are arranged 
 spirally, and a semi-inferior ovary, Nuphar luteum, the yellow Water-Lily, 
 has a calyx consisting usually of five greenish-yellow sepals ; the petals, which 
 are smaller and yellow 1 , are usually 13 in number, and form a continuous spiral 
 with the indefinite stamens ; the ovary is superior. Victoria regia, a Brazilian 
 species, has peltate leaves of more than a yard in diameter. 
 
 Tribe 2. Nelumblece. Ovaries numerous, distinct, imbedded in the fleshy 
 receptacle : seeds solitary, exalbuminous. 
 
 Nelumbium spcciosum is the Lotus of Egypt and Asia. 
 
 Tribe 3. Cabumbece. Flowers cyclic. Calyx and corolla each three-leaved. 
 Stamens 3-18 or oo . Ovaries 3-18, monomerous, each with two or three 
 ovules attached to its walls or to the dorsal suture of the carpel. Seeds con- 
 taining endosperm and perisperm. The submerged leaves are much divided, 
 the floating leaves peltate. Cabomba occurs in tropical America: Brasenia is 
 widely distributed. 
 
 Cohort II. Menispermales. Flowers usually ambisporangiate, 
 sometimes monosporangiate and then frequently polygamous; cyclic, 
 typically trimerous : perianth usually differentiated into calyx 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETAL^ : THALAMIFLORJ3. 595 
 
 and corolla, and then either homochlamydeous or heterochlamy- 
 deous: stamens usually 3 or a multiple of 3 : gynaeceum trimerous 
 and apocarpous or syncarpous, or monomerous ; ovary unilocular, 
 with usually a single basal or suspended anatropous or orthotro- 
 pous ovule ; seed with or without endosperm ; endosperm some- 
 times ruminated. 
 
 Order 1. MENISPERMACEJE. Flowers usually dicecious, but with 
 traces of the missing organs : perianth usually biseriate, hetero- 
 chlamydeous : the calyx, corolla, and androecium have usually two 
 whorls each. Carpels usually 3-6, distinct, one-seeded, but many- 
 seeded in the sub-family LardizalbeaB. Seed with or without 
 endosperm. They are mostly tropical climbing plants with woody 
 twining stems and palmate leaves. 
 
 The structure of the flower is very variable: pleiotaxy is frequent; thus 
 the calyx may consist of 3 or more (8-10 in Sychnosepalum) whorls, the 
 corolla of 3 whorls (occasionally in Menispermum), 
 the androecium of as many as 8 whorls (Meui- 
 spermum, Anamirta) : on the other hand oligotaxy 
 sometimes occurs ; the corolla may be completely 
 suppressed (e.g. Abuta, Akebia), and in the latter 
 genus the calyx consists of only a single whorl The 
 c? flower of Cissampelos is dimerous, and the $ flower 
 has a rudimentary perianth and a unilocular ovary 
 with three stigmata. The endosperm is ruminated 
 in some genera (e.g. Anomospermum, Abuta, Chas- Fl - 399 - ~~ Dia J? ram * 
 manthera) : the seed is exalbuminous in the Pachy- f ^^^ f 
 goneae (e.g. Pacbygone, Sychnosepalum, Kameya). 
 
 Order 2. BKRBERIDACEJE. Flowers ambisporangiate- : the calyx, 
 corolla, and andrcecium, each consist of two di- or tri-merous 
 whorls. Gryneeceum monomerous ; ovary with numerous- marginal 
 ovules. Fruit capsular or baccate. Seed with endosperm'. 
 
 Berberis vulgar is is the Barberry ; its floral formula is A"3 + 3, C3 + 3, ,43+3, 
 GJL; the flowers are in pendent racemes, usually without terminal flowers; 
 when a terminal flower is present it is acyclic and its formula is Kb \ C5 \ A5 
 (see Fig. 311, p. 498). Fruit an oval berry. The leaves of the ordinary 
 shoots are transformed into spines (Fig. 38), in the axils of which are dwarf- 
 shoots bearing the foliage-leaves and the inflorescences. Epknedium has a 
 dimerous flower; calyx of 4-5 whorls ; petals spurred. In Berberis, sub-genus 
 Mahonia, there are 3 whorls of sepals, and in Nandina many whorls the inner 
 of which gradually become petaloid. Podophyllum has sometimes 3 whorls 
 of petals (though the number of petals varies in consequence of oligornery), 
 and shows duplication of the stamens of the inner whorl. The anthers usually 
 dehisce by valves, but in Podophyllum and Nandina the dehiscence is longi- 
 tudinal. 
 
596 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS 
 
 Order 3. LAURACEJ;. Flowers ambisporangiate, or polygamous, 
 somewhat perigjnous, usually trimerous (sometimes dimerous or 
 tetramerous) : perianth sepaloid, in two whorls : stamens 9-12, in 
 three or four whorls, those of one or more whorls being frequently 
 staminodes ; the anthers open by 2 or 4 valves, the outer introrse, 
 the inner extrorse ; the filaments have glandular appendages (Fig. 
 400 b b). Ovary trimerous, uiiilocular, with one suspended ovule, 
 two of the three loculi being abortive. Fruit a berry or a drupe. 
 Seed devoid of endosperm. 
 
 This order is frequently placed in the sub-class Monochlamydeae ; but there 
 can be no doubt that such a position is unsatisfactory : the order seems rather 
 to be allied to the Menispermaceae. The chief morphological difficulty is the 
 
 FIG. 400. Stamen of Laums. An- 
 thers opened, aa; d d the valves; 
 b b glandular appendages. Diagram 
 of Cinnamomum. 
 
 FIG. 401. Fruit of the Nutmeg- 
 tree, Myristica moschata. P Pericarp, 
 half of it removed; s the seed; a 
 aril (nat. size). 
 
 interpretation of the perianth; since it consists of two whorls, and is homo- 
 chlamydeous and sepaloid, it may be regarded as corresponding to the two- 
 whorled calyx of other Menisperinales ; from this point of view the Lauracese 
 would be held to have no corolla : on the other hand, the fact that the two 
 whorls are developed differently, the segments of the outer whorl being de- 
 veloped successively and those of the inner whorl simultaneously, tends to prove 
 that the outer whorl is a c^lyx and the inner whorl a corolla. In Laurus nobili* 
 what appear to be petals are exceptionally present in addition to the two normal 
 perianth-whorls ; but these petals are really staminodes, due to petaloid meta- 
 morphosis of the four stamens of the external whorl. 
 
 These are usually evergreen shrubs with coriaceous leaves (e.g. Laurus nobilis, 
 the Sweet Bay) ; a few, as Cassytha, are parasites resembling the Dodder in 
 habit. The flowers of the Bay are diclinous. 
 
 Order 4. MYRISTICACEJ;. Flowers dioecious, perianth of a 
 single whorl, gamophyllous, 3-lobed. Stamens 3-18 coherent into 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJJ : THALAMIFLORJ!. 
 
 597 
 
 one bundle. Ovary monomerous, with one basal anatropous 
 ovule : fruit a fleshy two-valved capsule : seed with ruminated 
 endosperm. 
 
 Myristica moschata, the Nutmeg, is a native of New Guinea. The seed is 
 invested by an aril (see p. 459), an integument which is developed after 
 fertilisation ; it has a netted or laciniate appearance (Fig. 401 a) ; it is known 
 in commerce as Mace. Seed large, with abundant ruminated endosperm ; the 
 innermost layer of the brown testa closely follows all the windings, and this 
 gives the endosperm a marbled appearance. 
 
 The affinities of this order are doubtful : it is commonly regarded as closely 
 allied to the Lauraceae. 
 
 Order 5. POLYGON- 
 ACE^. Flowers ambi- 
 sporangiate, sometimes 
 monosporangiate by 
 suppression, trimerous 
 (sometimes dimerous), 
 with the typical formula 
 K3, 03, ^3 + 3, (9(3): 
 perianth in two whorls, 
 homochlamydeous, either 
 sepaloid or petaloid, 
 sometimes reduced to 5 
 leaves : stamens in us- 
 ually two regularly al- 
 ternating whorls ; the 
 number of stamens in 
 the outer whorl is fre- 
 quently increased by 
 duplication ; the number 
 of the stamens is fre- 
 quently reduced by sup- 
 pression. Ovary usually trimerous, nnilocular, with a single basal 
 orthotropous ovule. The fruit is more or less enveloped by the 
 persistent perianth (Fig. 402 0). The seed contains endosperm, 
 in which the straight or curved embryo is imbedded. The leaves 
 have sheathing bases, and connate stipules (Fig. 402 A), forming 
 an ocrea (see p. 48) which embraces the stem for some distance 
 above the leaf-sheath (absent in Eriogonum). 
 
 This order, like the Lauraceae, is commonly placed in the Monochlamydeae, 
 and the interpretation of the two-whorled perianth preseats the same difficulty 
 
 FIG. 402. A Portion of the stem (s) of Polygonum, 
 with a leaf (b), its sheath (v), and the ocrea (o) (nat. 
 size). S Flower of Rheum : fc external, c internal 
 perianth-whorl ; a the stamens. C Fruit of Rumex, 
 enclosed by the inner whorl of the perianth c ; s dorsal 
 ridge of one of the perianth-leaves ; Is external peri- 
 anth-leaves. D fruit of Rheum (/) : fc outer, c inner 
 perianth-whorl (enlarged). 
 
598 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 and may be regarded from the two points of view in both orders (see 
 Lauraceae). 
 
 The typical structure of the flower is to be found in the genus Pterostegia. 
 As regards the perianth, it is dimerous in Oxyria, it is 5-leaved in most species 
 of Polygonum, in Coccoloba, Muehlenbeckia, etc., and is apparently quincuncial 
 () ; however, the development of the flower shows that this is not really the 
 case, but that it is the result of reduction by the absence of the anterior seg- 
 ment of the inner perianth-whorl : it may be mentioned further that when the 
 perianth is trimerous, there is (if any) but a single prophyllum, whereas when it 
 is pentamerous there are two prophylla. As regards the andrcecium, in a trimer- 
 ous flower, only a single whorl of stamens may be developed ; either the outer 
 (e.g. Eumex, Kcenigia, as also in the dimerous flower of Polygonum diospyri- 
 folium), or the inner (Leptogonum). Duplication obtains in the single whorl of 
 stamens of Kumex and Polygonum diospyrifolium, and in the outer whorl of 
 many genera, in which either all the typical number of stamens are duplicated 
 (e.g. Kheum, Oxyria), or some only (e.g. species of Polygonum, in which also 
 suppression is frequent). It is important to note that the number (usually 5-8) 
 of stamens in a flower with a pentamerous perianth bears no direct relation to 
 the number of the perianth-leaves ; whereas in dimerous flowers the number of 
 the stamens is a multiple of 2. In some rare cases the number of the stamens 
 is large (12-50). When two whorls of stamens are present, the outer being dupli- 
 cated, it is frequently the case (e.g. species of Polygonum) tbat the anthers of 
 the external stamens are introrse and those of the inner stamens extrorse. 
 The gynseceum is sometimes dimerous when the perianth is pentamerous (e.g. 
 Polygonum orientale, amphibium and other species) ; always when the perianth 
 is dimerous. The endosperm is sometimes ruminated (Coccoloba). The British 
 genera are the following: Polygonum, the Bistort or Knot-Grass, of which 
 there are many species (e.g. Bistorta, Hydropiper, Persicaria, amphibium, avi- 
 culare, Convolvulus) ; Kumex, the Dock or Sorrel, the leaves of which contain 
 a large quantity of oxalic acid ; Oxyria, the Mountain Sorrel. 
 
 The most important economic plants are : Kheum, the Khubarb ; the 
 Khubarb of the pharmacopoeia is obtained from H. palmatum tanguticum and 
 R. officinale, (China) ; the garden Rhubarbs are jR. rhaponticum and undulatum: 
 Fagopyrum esculent-urn, the Buckwheat. 
 
 Order 6. CERATOPHYLLACE.S. Submerged water-weeds of doubtful 
 affinity, with whorled sessile leaves dichotomously branched and 
 subdivided ; in the axils of some of these the diclinous flowers 
 occur. The <$ flowers consist of from 6-12 perianth-leaves and 
 about as many stamens ; the ? flowers have a similar perianth and 
 a monomerous ovary with a single suspended orthotropous ovule : 
 seed with endosperm. 
 
 Ceratophyllum demersum and submersum occur submerged in ponds and 
 ditches. Pollination takes place under water, and in correlation with this the 
 wall of the pollen-grain is not cuticularised (see p. 434). 
 
 Cohort III. Caryophyllales. Flowers cyclic, generally actino- 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ) : THALAMIFLOEJ]. 
 
 599 
 
 morphic and pentamerous, sometimes monochlamydeous : calyx 
 often gamosepalous : stamens usually definite : ovary unilocular, 
 with basal placenta : seedwith_perisperm. 
 
 Order 1. CARYOPHTLLACEJE. Flowers generally pentamerous, with 
 calyx and corolla, though the latter is suppressed in some cases; 
 sepals distinct or coherent : stamens in two whorls (see p. 503), 
 of which the inner is often wanting ; ovary 2-, 3-, or 5-merous, uni- 
 locular, or multilocular at the base, with a central placenta or 
 with a single basal ovule : fruit usually a capsule : leaves opposite, 
 decussate : stems usually tumid at the nodes. 
 
 Tribe 1. Alsinece. The corolla and the inner whorl of stamens are usually 
 present ; the calyx is eleutherosepalous ; fruit a capsule ; usually no stipules. 
 
 The British genera are Sagina 
 (Pearl-wort), Arenaria (Sand- 
 wort), Cerastium, Stellaria 
 (Chick-weeds and Stitch-worts), 
 Spergula(Spurrey),Lepigonum, 
 Holosteum, Moenchia ; they 
 are mostly small herbaceous 
 plants with white petals, occur- 
 ring in meadows, on roadsides, 
 etc., but species of Lepigonum 
 (Spergularia), the Sandwort- 
 Spurrey, and Arenaria (Hone- 
 Itenya] peploides, Sea- Purslane, 
 grow on the sea-coast ; they 
 are distinguished from each 
 other principally by the number 
 of carpels present, and by the FIG. 403. Longitudinal section of the flower of 
 
 mode of dehiscence of the fruit. Lychnis Flos Jovis: y prolonged axis (anthophore; 
 
 Tribe 2. Silenea. The corolla 8ee P- 494) between the cal y* and th corolla; 
 , , , . , , , , x ligular appendages or corona. (After Sachs.) 
 
 and the inner whorl of stamens 
 
 are always present : the calyx is gamosepalous ; stamens 10, filaments connate 
 at base : the fruit is a capsule (in Cucubalus a berry) : the leaves have no 
 stipules ; the floral axis is often elongated between the calyx and the corolla 
 (Fig. 403 y) : the petals (as in Lychnis and Saponaria) often have ligular ap- 
 pendages (Fig. 403 a? : see p. 515). 
 
 The species of Dianthus, the Pink, which commonly occur wild are D. dcltoides, 
 D. ccesius and D. Armeria; D. Caryophyllus, the Carnation, and D. chinensis, 
 are well-known garden flowers : there are two styles, and the calyx is sur- 
 rounded at its base by bracteoles. The genus Saponaria has two styles but no 
 bracteoles ; S. officinalis, the Soap-wort, occurs on the banks of rivers. The 
 genus Silene (Catchfly) has three styles ; S. inflata, nutans, and others, are 
 common in meadows. The genus Lychnis (Campion) has five styles; the 
 species alba (vespertma) and diurna are dioecious; L. Githago, the Corn-cockle, 
 is common in fields. 
 
600 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Tribe 3. Polycarpece. Leaves with scarious stipules : calyx eleutherosepalous ; 
 the corolla is present, but the inner whorl of stamens is wanting: style 3-fid. 
 This group includes the British genus Polycarpon (Allseed) and others. 
 
 Tribe 4. Paronychiece. Sepals distinct or coherent : the corolla and the inner 
 whorl of stamens are usually wanting : style usually bifid : ovary unilocular, 
 with 1-4 ovules : fruit generally indehiscent. 
 
 The British genera are Scleranthus (Knawel), Herniaria, Corrigiola (Strap- 
 wort), and Illecebrum: they are small inconspicuous herbs, with scarious 
 stipules (except Scleranthus). 
 
 The Paronychieae have also been placed, as a distinct natural order ILLECE- 
 BRACEvE, among the Monochlamydeaa. There is no doubt that they have 
 affinities with the Chenopodiales, and that they thus connect that cohort with 
 tLe Caryophyllaceae. 
 
 Order 2. PORTULACEJ;. Calyx usually of 2 sepals and corolla of 
 5 petals: stamens usually 5, antipetalous : ovary usually trimerous 
 and uniiocular ; fruit a capsule. They are herbs with alternate or 
 opposite leaves ; the corolla is fugacious. 
 
 The structure of the flower is essentially the same in this order as in the 
 Chenopodiales, with the addition of a calyx of two antero-posterior sepals. 
 
 Portulaca oleracea, the Purslane, from Southern Europe, and other species 
 are cultivated as vegetables and as ornamental plants. Montia (Blinks) has an 
 irregular (apparently gamopetalous) corolla; it grows in ditches or in damp 
 places. In the genus Lewisia there are 4-8 sepals, 8-16 petals, and indefinite 
 stamens. 
 
 Order 3. AIZOACEJ: (FicoiDE^;). Flowers with a simple perianth, 
 and usually indefinite stamens, the more external of which are 
 often transformed into petaloid staminodes : ovary multilocular, 
 sometimes inferior. 
 
 This order has marked affinities with the Phytolaccacese and the Nyctaginaceae, 
 so that it is sometimes placed among the Monochlamydeaa ; but the occurrence 
 of forms with petaloid staminodes justifies the position in which it is here placed. 
 It is of special interest inasmuch as it well illustrates the evolution of the 
 dichlamydeous from the monochlamydeous type of flower, with multiplication 
 of the sporophylls and the gradual metamorphosis of the more external of them 
 into petaloid staminodes which are, in fact, primitive petals. 
 
 Mesembryanthemum is the genus with an inferior ovary : it has fleshy leaves 
 and conspicuous flowers ; many species are cultivated ; it comes from South 
 Africa. 
 
 Cohort IV. Parietales. Flowers cyclic, with calyx and corolla : 
 sepals free : stamens definite or indefinite : gyneeceum. of two or 
 more carpels : ovary unilocular, sometimes many-chambered, with 
 parietal placentation : seed with or without endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. PAPAVEEACEJ:. Flowers usually actinomorphic, K2, 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ] : THALAMIFLORJ). 
 
 601 
 
 02 + 2, J.cc , Q ( Q or (oc ), or rarely with trimerous whorls : calyx 
 sepaloid, corolla petaloid : the numerous whorls of stamens alter- 
 nate : ovary of two lateral carpels or of more (Fig. 404 a), two- 
 or more-chambened : ovules numerous, attached to the more or 
 less infolded edges of the carpels : endosperm abundant, embryo 
 small. The sepals commonly fall off before the flower expands 
 (Fig. 404 &). Plants with abundant milky latex. 
 
 Papaver, the Poppy, has a many-chambered ovary ; the iruit is a porous 
 capsule (Fig. 342 D) : P. somniferum is cultivated for the sake of the oil con- 
 tained in tbe seeds, and for the latex obtained from its capsules, which, when 
 inspissated, constitutes opium : several species are British, such as P. Rhceus, 
 tbe Field Poppy; P. Argemone, the Pale or Long Prickly-headed Poppy; P. 
 hyhridum, tbe Eound Prickly-headed Poppy ; P. dnbium, the Long Smooth- 
 headed Poppy ; and Meconopsis cambrica, the Yellow Welsh Poppy. Chelidonium 
 majus, the Celandine, has 
 two carpels, a siliquose 
 fruit, and orange-coloured 
 milky latex. Glaucium, 
 the Horned Poppy, has a 
 siliquose fruit which is 
 generally spuriously bilo- 
 cular. Eschschultzia cali- 
 fornica is a cultivated 
 plant ; it has a hollow re- 
 ceptacle, so that its flowers 
 are almost perigynous. 
 
 Order 2. FUMARI- 
 ACEJ;. Flowers isobi- 
 laterally symmetrical, 
 or zjgomorphic with 
 lateral symmetry: 
 floral formula K>, (72 + 2, .42 + 2, G. The three whorls of the 
 perianth alternate; one of the outer petals (rarely both) is usually 
 furnished with a,spur: in most genera there are three stamens on 
 each side, a central one, with a perfect anther (the stamen of the 
 outer whorl, Fig. 405 -Ba), and two lateral stamens, each with only 
 half an anther (apparently the halves of the stamens of the inner 
 whorl; Fig. 405 Ba t a^). The fruit is siliquose and many-seeded, 
 or one-seeded and indehiscent. Herbaceous plants without milky 
 latex, sometimes climbing by means of their petioles which act as 
 tendrils (Adlumia, Fumaria). Seeds containing endosperm. 
 
 FIG. 404. Flower of Chelidonium, majus (nat. size); 
 fc calyx ; ca outer, ci inner petals ; a S'amens ; n btigma. 
 A Diagram of the flower of Chelidonium. o Many, 
 chambered ovary of Papaver. 
 
 The flowers of Adlutnia, Dicentra, and Hypecoum are isobilaterally syrmnet- 
 
602 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 rical. Dicentra spectaMlis is a favourite ornamental plant ; both the outer petals 
 are spurred, the two inner petals are hollowed at their apices, so that they 
 completely enclose the anthers. In Hypecoum the flower is isobilaterally sym- 
 metrical, but the petals are not spurred, and there are four stamens, two lateral 
 forming the outer whorl, and two antero posterior forming the inner whorl : 
 fruit usually indehiscent. In Corydalis and Fumaria only one of the outer 
 
 ca 
 
 FIG. 405. A Mower of Dicentra spectaHlis : one of the outer petals is removed : s pedicel ; 
 ca the outer, ci the inner petals ; /stamens. S The three stamens of one side, seen from 
 within : /filaments ; a the middle complete anther ; a, a, the lateral half-anthers. C Flo wer- 
 bnd, with the sepals, which soon fall off, still adhering (fc) ; (nat. size). . Diagram of Fumi- 
 tory. 
 
 petals is spurred, and consequently the flower is irregular and laterally zygo- 
 morphic. In Corydalis the fruit is a two-valved capsule with numerous parietal 
 seeds : some species, e.g. C. cava and solida, have a tuberous rootstock ; others, 
 as C. lutea and aurea, have rhizomes. Fumaria officinalis and others (Fumi- 
 tories) are common in fields ; the ovaries contain but few ovules, and of these 
 only one ripens to a seed ; fruit globose, indehiscent. 
 
 Order 3. CRUCIFERJ;. Flowers regular, isobilateral : floral for- 
 mula X2 + 2, (7x4, A2 + 2 2 , G. The four petals form a whorl, 
 alternating with the four sepals as if the latter formed one whorl ; 
 there are, however, three perianth- whorls, as 
 in the two preceding families ; but whereas 
 in them only the outermost whorl is sepa- 
 loid, in this family the two outer whorls 
 are sepaloid, and the innermost, which alone 
 is petaloid, is a whorl^consjsting of four 
 instead of two" memrjers^ The two outer 
 stamens are lateral, as in those families ; the 
 two inner ones, which in most Fumariaceas 
 are apparently divided, are here duplicate, having longer filaments 
 (Fig. 407 Ebb) than the outer ones (a) ; hence the flower is tetra- 
 dynamous. There are usually four, sometimes more, glands at the 
 
 FIG. '108. Diagram of the 
 flower of Cruciferse. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ] : THALAMIFLORJ!. 
 
 603 
 
 base of the stamens (Fig 407 Bd}. The ovary consists of two 
 carpels with the ovules in two longitudinal rows on the connate 
 margins of the carpels ; these two parietal placentae are connected 
 by a membranous growth which, as it is not formed of the margins 
 of the carpels, must be regarded as a spurious dissepiment (Figs. 
 407 D* E*v, 342 Gw). When the fruit opens, the pericarp splits 
 into two valves corresponding to the carpels, leaving their mar- 
 gins, as a frame or replum, bearing the placentae with the spurious 
 dissepiment attached : the seeds remain attached to them for some 
 time (Fig. 342 C, p. 530). 
 
 1 ' ; 
 
 B 
 
 FIG. 407. Flowers, fruits, and embryos of various Cruciferae. A Flower of Brassica (nat. 
 size); s pedicel; fefc calyx; c corolla. B The same after removal of the perianth (much 
 mag.): a a the two outer short stamens ; b the four longer inner ones; /the ovary; n the 
 stigma ; d gland. C Siliqua of Brassica : v dissepiment. D Angustissptal silicula of Thlaspi. 
 E Latiseptal silicula of Draba. D* and E* Diagrammatic transverse section of the preced- 
 ing v dissepiment; s seed. F Indehiscent silicula of Isatis. O Jointed siliqua of Raphanus 
 Raplianixtrum : g style ; III separate segments. K-H Diagrams of differently-folded 
 embryos, with transverse sections : r radicles ; c c cotyledons. 
 
 The flowers are in racemes in which the bracts are suppressed ; 
 when the lower pedicels are longer than the upper ones, the raceme 
 becomes a corymb, and then the lower flowers are usually zygomor- 
 phic, the petals turned towards the periphery being larger than 
 those directed towards the axis of the inflorescence, as in Iberis. 
 
 The form of the fruit is of importance in the subdivision of this 
 order. In some genera it is much longer than it is broad, when it 
 
604 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 is termed a siliqua, (Figs. 407 (7, 342 C) ; in others, it is not much 
 longer, or about as long as it is broad, when it is termed a silicula 
 (Fig. 407 D and E}. The latter is commonly somewhat com- 
 pressed in one direction ; either parallel to the dissepiment, that is 
 to say laterally (Fig. 407 E and E*), so that the dissepiment lies 
 in the direc-tion of the greatest diameter, when it is latiseptal ; or 
 perpendicularly to the dissepiment, that is in the median plane, 
 so that the dissepiment lies in the narrowest diameter, when it is 
 angustiseptal (D and D*). Fruits with only one or a few seeds, and 
 which are indehiscent, are confined to only a few genera, such as 
 Isatis (Fig. 407 F). So likewise is the jointed siliqua, which has 
 transverse dissepiments between the seeds ; when they are ripe it 
 divides transversely into segments, as in Raphanus (Fig. 407 6). 
 
 The seed is exalbuminoiis. The embryo is folded in the seed 
 in various ways ; the radicle may lie in the same plane as one of 
 flat cotyledons (Fig. 407 K), when the cotyledons are said to be 
 incumbent, Notorhizece (the diagram being O ||) ; or the radicle 
 may occupy the same position, the cotyledons being folded (Fig. 
 407 /), when the cotyledons are said to be incumbent and folded, 
 Orthoplocece (diagram of section O ^>) ; or, thirdly, the radicle may 
 be lateral to the two cotyledons (Fig. 407 JET), when the cotyledons 
 are said to be decumbent, Pleurorhizew (diagram O =) : more 
 rarely the cotyledons are spirally rolled so that in a transverse 
 section they are cut through twice, Spiral obece (diagram O || ||) ; 
 or, finally, they may be doubly folded, and be seen four times in 
 a section, Diplocolobece (diagram O || || || ||). The seeds contain 
 much fatty oil. 
 
 Sub-order 1. SILIQUOS.E. Fruit a siliqua, much longer than it is broad. 
 
 Tribe 1. Arabidece. Q Gheiranthus Cheiri, the Wall-flower, and Matthiola 
 annua and incana, the Stocks, are cultivated as garden-plants. Nasturtium 
 qfficinale is the Water-cress. Barbarea vulgaris is the Yellow Rocket. Carda- 
 mine (iucl. Dentaria) also belongs to this tribe. 
 
 Tribe 2. Sitymbriea. OH- Sisymbrium ojficinale, the Hedge-Mustard, is 
 common on rubbish heaps; am Erysimum, the Treacle-Mustard, on walls, etc. 
 Hesperis is the Dame's Violet. 
 
 Tribe 3. Brassicete. Q y/ The species and varieties of Brassica are much 
 cultivated. Brassica oleracea is the Cabbage, with the following varieties; 
 acephala, Scotch kale, Cow-cabbage or Borecole ; bullata, the Savoy-cabbage ; 
 capitata, the red and white Cabbage ; caulorapa, with the stem swollen at the 
 base, is the Kohl-rabi ; Botrytis, with connate fleshy peduncles and abortive 
 flowers, is the Broccoli (asparagoides) and the Cauliflower (caulijlora) ; gemmifera, 
 with numerous lateral leaf-buds, known as Brussels-sprouts. Brassica cam- 
 pc.ftris is the wild Navew ; it includes the following sub-species : Rapa, the 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJE : THALAMIFLORJJ. 605 
 
 wild Turnip, with bright green hispid leaves and flat corymbs of flowers, among 
 the cultivated varieties of which is the var. depressa, the Turnip : Napus, the 
 wild Rape, with glabrous glaucous leaves and long racemes of flowers, several 
 varieties of which are cultivated for their oily seeds, and one (var. esculenta, 
 the Teltow Turnip) for its fleshy root : Napobrassica, the Turnip-cabbage, 
 including Rutabaga, the Swedish Turnip. B. campestris oleifera is the true 
 Colza or Coleseed, from the seeds of which colza-oil is obtained. Brasrica 
 (Sinapis) nigra and alba are the black and white Mustard. Brasica Sinapis 
 (Sinapis arvensis) is the Charlock or Corn-Mustard. To this tribe belongs also 
 the genus Diplotaxis. 
 
 Sub-order 2. SILICULOS.E. Fruit a silicula. 
 
 A. Laiiseptce. The dissepiment is in the longest diameter of the silicula. 
 Tribe 4. Alyssinece. Q = - Cochlearia officinalis is the Scurvy-grass; G. 
 
 Armoracia, the Horse-radish, has a thickened root. Alyssum calycimini and 
 Draba (Erophila) verna, the Whitlow-grass (Fig 407 E), are common weeds: 
 Lunaria biennis is Honesty. 
 
 Tribe 5. Camelinece. Q || . To this tribe belong Camelina (Gold-of-pleasure), 
 and Subularia, the Awl-wort, an aquatic plant. 
 
 B. Anguttiseptce. The dissepiment is in the shortest diameter of the silicula. 
 Tribe 6. Lepidine.ce. Q II Gapsella Bursa Pastoris, the Shepherd's Purse, 
 
 is common, as also various species of Senebiera and Lepidium (Cresses). 
 
 Tribe 7. Thlaspideae. Q =. Various species of Thlaspi, the Penny-Cress, 
 are common. To this tribe belong also the British genera Iberis (Candytuft), 
 Teesdalia, andHutchinsia. 
 
 Sub-order 3. NUCUMENTACE;E. Silicula indehiscent, few-seeded. 
 
 Tribe 8. Isatidece. Isatis tinctoria, the Woad, has compressed, pendulous, 
 unilocular, one-seeded fruits (Fig. 407 F) : the leaves yield a blue dye. 
 
 Sub-o der 4. LOMENTACE^E. Fruit a siliqua or silicula, constricted into one- 
 seeded segments ((amentaceous) (Fig. 407 G). 
 
 Tribe 9. Caltilinece. Silicula two-jointed. 
 This tribe contains the genera Cakile, the Sea- 
 Rocket, and Crambe, the Sea-Kale. 
 
 Tribe 10. Jtaphanrte. Silicula more or less 
 moniliform. Raphaimx sativus is the Radish ; 
 R. Raplianistrum, the Wild Radish or White 
 Charlock, is a common weed. 
 
 Order 4. CAPPARIDACE^E. Flower iso- 
 bilateral ; formula K2 + 2, C x 4, A2 + 
 2 2 or oc , G or x : stamens 4 or more, 
 when 6 very rarely tetradynamous : 
 gynoeceum borne on a special prolong-a- Fia - 408 -~ Flower of 
 
 ..' ,-, / A(^"\ spinosa (nat. size) : s pedicel; It 
 
 tion of the axis (gynophore, p. 495) calyx . c corolla . St ame n8 j / 
 (Fig. 408 t). Fruit a siliqua or a berry. gynseceum on (t) gynophore. 
 
 The flower-buds of Capparis spinosa horn the South of Europe are known as 
 Capers. 
 
606 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Order 5. R-ESEDACEJ:. Flowers irregular, dorsiventral : sepals 
 and petals 5-8, the latter laciniate : stamens numerous : carpels 
 2-6 connate, forming a unilocular ovary, open at the apex, with 
 numerous ovules ; seed without endosperm : inflorescence a 
 raceme, without bracteoles. 
 
 Reseda Luteola, the Dyer's Weed, or Weld, yields a yellow dye ; R. odorata is 
 Mignonette. 
 
 Order 6. CISTACEJ:. Flowers usually actinomorphic and penta- 
 merous : the two external of the five sepals are generally smaller, 
 and sometimes they are absent : stamens numerous, in conse- 
 quence of multiplication : carpels 3-10, forming a uni- or multi- 
 locular ovary; ovules orthotropous ; seed with endosperm. 
 Trees or shrubs with generally opposite stipulate leaves. 
 
 Cistus has 5-10 carpels forming a chambered or completely multilocular ovary. 
 Cistus ladaniferus, creticus, and other species, grow in the south of Europe ; 
 a balsam is derived from them. Helianthemum has a unilocular trimerous 
 ovary : Helianthemum vulgare, the Eock Eose, is an under-shrub which grows 
 wild on dry soils. 
 
 Order 7. BIXACE^:. The seed of Bixa orellana, a native of 
 America, yields an orange- coloured dye known in commerce as 
 Annatto. 
 
 Order 8. VIOLACEJ:. Floral formula K5, 05, 45, G : flowers 
 always borne laterally: ovules anatropous : fruit a loculicidal 
 
 capsule (Fig. 409 G): seed 
 with endosperm. The 
 indigenous species have 
 irregular dorsiventral 
 flowers ; the anterior in- 
 ferior petal is prolonged 
 into a hollow spur (Fig. 
 409 A cs) in which the 
 nectar secreted by the 
 spur-like appendages of 
 
 Fm.m.-Viola tricolor. A Longitudinal section of the tw lower stamens 
 
 flower: v bracteole on the peduncle; I sepals; Is ap- collects (Fig. 409 A fft). 
 
 pendage; c petals; cs spur of the lower petals- fs rni i 
 
 glandular appendage of the lower stamens; a an! The S6 P als are Produced 
 thers (after Sachs). S Ripe fruit; fc calyx. C After 
 dehiscence: p parietal placentae; s seeds. (Mag.) 
 
 base (Fig. 409 
 
 at the 
 A Is). 
 
 Viola is the Violet, Pansy, or Heart's-ease :-many species, as V. odorata, the 
 Sweet Violet, have only an underground stem which bears cataphyllary leaves, 
 
D1COTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJI : THALAMIFLOfLE. 
 
 607 
 
 and which throws up petiolate foliage-leaves, and bracteolate peduncles each 
 bearing a single flower : V. odorata has runners, but hirta and collina have 
 none: in others, as V. canina, the Dog-Violet, the main stem is above ground 
 and bears the foliage-leaves : in V. mirabilis these two forms are so combined 
 that, in the spring, flowers are developed from the rhizome which have large blue 
 petals but are always sterile ; it is not till later that inconspicuous (cleistoga- 
 mous, p. 453) flowers with minute petals appear on the leafy stem, and these 
 only are fertile : in V. tricolor and its allies the stipules are leafy and 
 pinnatifid. 
 
 Cohort V. Sarraceniales. Flowers regular, generally actino- 
 morphic, sometimes monochlamydeous : stamens often numerous, 
 ovary syncarpous, uni- or multi-locular ; placentation various; 
 seeds many, with endosperm ; 
 leaves adapted in various ways 
 for the capture of insects. 
 
 Order 1. SARRACENIACEJ;. 
 Flowers $ , usually dichlamy- 
 deous, hemicyclic : stamens 15 
 or more : ovary either unilocular 
 and more or less chambered, or 
 3- or 5-looular ; placentation pa- 
 rietal or axile : leaves pitchered 
 (Fig. 410). 
 
 This order includes the three her- 
 baceous genera Sarracenia, Darling- 
 tonia, and Heliamphora. The two 
 former have pentamerous dichlamy- 
 deous flowers, each borne singly on a 
 peduncle ; the sepals and petals are 
 in f arrangement, and the stamens 
 are indefinite in Sarracenia and 15 in 
 Darlingtonia ; carpels 5, antisepalous 
 in Sarracenia, antipetalous in Dar- 
 lingtonia : they grow on moors and 
 marshes in North America. Heliam- 
 phora ^ ars its flowers in racemes ; 
 the flower has a simple petaloid peri- 
 anth, indefinite stamens, and a trilocular ovary; it is a native of British 
 Guiana. 
 
 Order 2. NEPENTHACEJ:. Flowers dioecious, monochlamydeous, 
 tetramerous : stamens generally 4-16, coherent into a central 
 column : ovary quadrilocular, with axile or somewhat superficial 
 placentation: leaves pitchered (Fig. 37, p. 58). 
 
 FIG. 410. Leaves and flowers of 
 cenia purpurea (|) : the leaf to the left has 
 been cut across. 
 
 V. S. B. 
 
 R R 
 
608 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 This tropical order includes the single genus Nepenthes, with about 40 
 species, chiefly inhabiting the Malay Archipelago, but extending to Ceylon, 
 Australia, the Seychelles, and Madagascar: they are mostly climbing shrubs 
 with leaf-tendrils. 
 
 Order 3. DROSERACE.S:. Flowers $, dichlamydeous, generally 
 pentamerous : stamens 5 or 5 n : carpels 2-5 ; ovary usually uni- 
 locnlar with parietal placentae : leaves not pitchered. 
 
 Herbaceous plants, constituting the six genera Dionaea, Aldrovanda, Eoridula, 
 Byblis, Drosera (the Sundew) and Drosophyllum : in Dioneea, Aldrovanda, and 
 Drosophylluoa, the gynaeceum consists of 5 antipetalous carpels, and the ovary 
 is unilocular ; in Drosera and Roridula the gynaeceum is usually trimerous, the 
 ovary unilocular in the former, trilocular in the latter ; in Byblis it is dimerous 
 and bilocular. The leaf -blade of Dionaea (Venus' fly-trap) and of Aldrovanda 
 is sensitive to touch, the two halves closing sharply along the middle line when 
 irritated : the leaves of the other genera are provided with irritable glandular 
 tentacles (see Figs. 42, 43, p. 66). Aldrovanda (A. veslculom) is a rootless, 
 floating water-plant. 
 
 Cohort VI. Guttiferales. Flowers usually cyclic, generally 
 actinom orphic, arid pentamerous : sepals usually free, with 
 imbricate aestivation: stamens usually indefinite: gynseceum 
 syncarpous, ovary uni- or multi-locular : seed exalbuminous. 
 
 Order 1. HYPERiCACE-ffi. Formula usually If5, (75, ^0 + 5 GO, 
 G- } j or AQ + 3^0 , G' Sepals sometimes united at the base : sta- 
 mens usually indefinite and polyadelphous ; 
 when in five bundles, the bundles are super- 
 posed on the petals ; this position of the 
 stamens is generally attributed to the sup- 
 pression of an outer whorl of stamens which 
 is indicated by staminodes in species of all 
 the genera : ovary nni- or multi-locular, or 
 FIG. 411. Diagram of many-chambered ; capsule septicidal ; ovules 
 Hypericum. numerous, anatropous ; placentae parietal or 
 
 axile. Herbs or under-shrubs with decussate entire leaves, which 
 are dotted over with translucent oil-glands ; exstipulate. 
 
 The following are examples of the different relative numbers of staminal 
 bundles and of carpels : 
 
 Staminal bundles 5, carpels 5 : Hypericum calycinum. 
 
 Staminal bundles 3, carpels 3 : H. humifusum, hirsutum, montanum, per- 
 
 foratum, undulatum, barbatum. 
 
 Staminal bundles 5, carpels 3 : H. Androscemum, hircinwn, elatum. 
 Staminal bundles 3, carpels 5 : H. peplidifoUum. 
 
 All these species, except the last (St. John's Worts, or Tutsans), occur wild in 
 Britain. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLY PETALS : THALAMIFLOFJ!. 609 
 
 Order 2. TAMARICACEJ;. Flowers 4- or 5-merous, with one or 
 two whorls of stamens : calyx gamosepalous : ovary usually tri- 
 merous, unilocular, with basal or parietal placentation : capsule 
 loculicidal : seeds with hairs : flowers in racemes or spikes. 
 
 This order includes the shrubs known as Tamarisks : Myricaria, Tamarix, 
 Keaumuria, and Fouquiera. Myricaria (Tamarix} germanica has monadelphous 
 stamens. Tamarix gallica (or T. anglica) has become naturalised in England. 
 
 Closely allied with this order and with the Elatinacea is the small order of 
 FBANKENIACE^E ; the flower resembles that of Tamarix in the gamosepalous 
 calyx and in the morphology of the gynaeceum : Frankenia Icevis, the Sea-Heath, 
 occurs in salt marshes in Britain. 
 
 Order 3. ELATINACE^;. Small water-plants, with entire stipulate 
 leaves opposite or in whorls : flowers 3-4-merous ; formula IiTii, 
 On, A 11 + n, G ( ^ ; solitary, without bracteoles, borne in the axils of 
 the foliage-leaves : ovary multilocular. 
 
 E. hexandra and Hydro piper (Waterworts, or Water-peppers) occur, but not 
 commonly, on the margins of lakes in England. 
 
 Order 4. TERNSTRCEMIACEJE. Perianth spiral ; the calyx is not 
 clearly distinguishable from the numerous bracteoles : stamens in- 
 definite : ovary multilocular. Trees or shrubs with scattered, 
 generally coriaceous, entire leaves, without stipules. 
 
 Camellia japonica is a favourite ornamental shrub : The. a cMnensis, of which 
 the dried leaves are tea ; black and green tea are varieties resulting only from 
 the mode of drying the leaf. 
 
 Order 5. CLUSTACE^ (GUTTIFERJ:). Trees or shrubs with di- 
 clinous flowers. 
 
 Order 6. DIPTEROCARPACEJ;. Trees: leaves usually stipulate: 
 the gamosepalous calyx enlarges very much during the ripening of 
 the fruit. 
 
 Dnjobalanops Camphora, a native of Sumatra, yields the Borneo Camphor. 
 
 Cohort VII. Mai vales. Flowers cyclic, generally pentamerous 
 and actinomorphic : calyx often gamosepalous, with valvate eesti- 
 vation : corolla with usually contorted aestivation : stamens typi- 
 cally in two whorls, frequently obdiplostemonous, sometimes 
 branched, and often connate : carpels usually five and then anti- 
 petalous, often forming a multilocular ovary: seed usually with 
 endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. TILTACEJ:. Sepals usually free: stamens 10 or 
 indefinite, sometimes polyadelphous; in the indigenous species the 
 
610 
 
 PART ill. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 staminal whorl opposite to the sepals is suppressed, and there are 
 5 antipetalous staminal bandies ; anthers 4-Iocular, opening by 
 pores or valves : gynseceurn usually completely syncarpous ; style 
 1 ; ovary usually 5-locular, each loculus containing two ovules ; 
 but the fruit is generally only one-seeded. Mostly trees or 
 shrubs : leaves alternate, stipulate. 
 
 The only indigenous genus is Tilia, the Lime-tree. It has oblique leaves with 
 deciduous stipules; the annu.il shoots have not a terminal bud. The inflor- 
 escence is cymose, few-flowered : the 
 peduncle is adnate to the leafy bract ; 
 this is brought about in the following 
 manner : in the axil of the leaves 
 there is usually a bud, together with 
 an inHurescence (Fjg. 412) : the bract 
 (Fig 412 h) and the bud- scale, which 
 is opposite to it, are the first two 
 leaves of the axillary shoot which is 
 terminated by the inflorescence, the 
 peduncle of which is adnate to the 
 bract for some distance : 'the bud is a 
 winter-bud developed in the axil of 
 the above-mentioned bud-scale. The 
 inflorescence itself terminates in a 
 flower ; other flowers are borne in the 
 axils of its two bracteoles, and other 
 flowers again may be developed in the 
 axils of their bracteoles, and so on. 
 T. platypliyllos, the large-leafed Lime, 
 has a few-flowered inflorescence, and 
 leaves which are bright green and 
 downy on the under surface : T. car- 
 data has an inflorescence which con- 
 sists of a large number of flowers, and 
 has small leaves which are bluish- 
 green and pubescent with red hairs on 
 the under surface. T. vulgaris is the 
 common Lime. In the American 
 species the innermost stamens are 
 staminodia. Corchorus, in the East 
 Indies, yields Jute, which consists of 
 the bast- fibres. 
 
 PIG. 412. Inflorescence of the Lime, Tilia 
 platyphyllos : a branch ; b petiole with 
 axillary bud. Attached to the peduncle is 
 the bract (h) : fc calyx; c corolla; s stamens; 
 /ovary; fc flower-bud (riat. size). 
 
 Order 2. STERCULIACEJ:. 
 Calyx gamosepalous : androecium obdiplostemonous ; the stamens 
 which are opposite to the petals are 5 or multiple, sometimes 
 more or less monadelphous ; those which are opposite to the 
 
D1COTYLEDONES: POLYPETALJ! : THALAMIFLORJ!. 
 
 611 
 
 sepals are staminodes or they are suppressed : anthers 4-locular : 
 the corolla is sometimes wanting : gynaeceum usually syncarpous, 
 with a single style and a 5-locular ovary with 2-oo seeds in each 
 loculus. Flowers sometimes diclinous (Sterculiese). 
 
 Theobroma Cacao is a tree of tropical America, the seeds of which contain a 
 nitrogenous substance Theobromine and a fixed oil ; from them Chocolate is 
 prepared. The seeds of Cola acuminata, a tropical African tree, have similar 
 properties. 
 
 Order 3. MALVACEJ:. Calyx nsually gamosepalous, frequently 
 invested by an epicalyx (p. 494) ; the corolla is adnate at the 
 base to the androecium : the typically obdiplostemonous androe- 
 
 D 
 
 FIG. 413. A Flower of Malva Alcea (nat.size): fc calyx; c corolla ; connate stamens, 
 with the anthers (a); n stigmata. B Fruit of Althaea rosea enclosed in (k) the calyx: ak 
 epicalyx. C The same after the removal of the calyx. D A single coccus of the same in 
 longitudinal section : s seed ; w radicle ; st cotyledon of the embryo (mag.) . 
 
 cium is a long tube (Fig. 413 A} consisting of five monadelphous 
 nsually branched stamens which are opposite to the petals, each 
 branch bearing a bilocular anther ; there is somstimes an inner 
 series of staminodes opposite to the sepals: carpels 5-oo ; styles 
 many, connate ; the gynseceum, is sometimes almost apocarpous 
 (Malopeae) ; usually syncarpous with a multilocular ovary, split- 
 ting into cocci (Fig. 413 C D), with usually one ovule in each 
 coccus (p. 530), or a loculicidal capsule (Hibisceae), Under- 
 shrubs or herbs : leaves stipulate and generally palmately veined. 
 
 Malva, the Mallow, has an epicatyx of three bracteoles, Hibiscus has one of 
 many bracteoles, and Althasa has one of 6-9 bracteoles : Alth&a rosea is the 
 
612 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Hollyhock, and A. qfficinalis is the Marsh-mallow : several species of Malva are 
 indigenous, M. sylvestris, rotundifolia, and moschata : Gossypium herbace.um 
 (with the vars. religiosum and hirsutum) and G. arboreum in Egypt and the East 
 Indies, and G. barbadense (with var. peruvianum) in America, yield Cotton, 
 which consists of the long hairs on the testa of the seed. 
 
 SERIES II. DISCIFLOR.E. 
 
 Flowers typically encyclic and generally pentamerous, often 
 obdiplostemonous sepals free or coherent: petals in a single whorl: 
 stamens usually definite, and hypogynous: a disc is usually present: 
 gynaeceum generally syncarpous. 
 
 Cohort I. Geraniales. Flowers usually pentamerous through- 
 out ; formula K5, (75, | J.5 + 5, Cr ; generally obdiplostemonous : 
 
 the carpels are opposite to the petals : 
 ovary usually 5-locular, with 1 or 2 
 suspended ovules ; the micropyle is 
 directed inwards : disc various or 
 wanting. 
 
 Order 1. G-ERANIACEJ;. Disc usually 
 represented by a gland at the base of 
 and outside each of the antisepalous 
 stamens : flowers usually actinomor- 
 phic : stamens connate at the base : 
 the carpels are prolonged into a car- 
 pophore (Fig. 414 A a) ; two ovules in 
 each loculus ; the fruit is septicidal 
 from below upwards, the awns of the 
 separating carpels (cocci) rolling up 
 (Fig. 414 B). Seed devoid of endo- 
 sperm. Herbs; leaves simple, stipu- 
 late. 
 
 B 
 
 FIG. 414. Fruit of Geranium. A 
 Before, B after dehiscence; s pe- 
 dicel ; / loculi of the ovary ; a in B 
 the awn : n stigma j a and b carpo- 
 phore. (Mag.) 
 
 Geranium has 10 stamens : in most species 
 the seed is expelled on the sudden rolling up 
 of the awn: Geranium pratense, sylvaticum, 
 sanguineum, columbinum, and other species, the Crane's-bills, are wild in Eng- 
 land; G. Kobertianum, Herb-Robert, is universally distributed. Erodium, the 
 Stork's-bill, has the 5 stamens which are opposite to the petals transformed 
 into staminodes ; E. cicutarium is common in waste places. Pelargonium, in 
 many varieties, is a well-known garden-plant : the flowers are irregular and 
 dorsiventral ; the disc is absent, but the posterior sepal is provided with a 
 glandular spur which adheres to the pedicel. The cocci of Erodium and 
 Pelargonium are indehiscent, and are forced into the ground by the liovement 
 of the hygroscopic awn. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJS : DISCIFLORJ1. 613 
 
 Order 2. LINAGES. Disc generally a whorl of 10 small extra- 
 staminal glands : formula K5, (75, ( | A f 5 + 5), G ( ^ : flowers acti- 
 nomorphic, rarely all the whorls are tetramerous : stamens mona- 
 delphons at the base; the whorl of stamens opposite to the petals 
 is replaced by staminodia : each loculus of the ovary contains two 
 ovules, and is often divided into two by a more or less complete 
 false dissepiment : seed usually contains endosperm : capsule septi- 
 cidal. Herbs or shrubs ; leaves simple, entire, with or without 
 stipules. 
 
 Linum usitatissimum is the Flax : the strong bast-fibres are used in weaving 
 linen ; the seeds contain oil ; the walls of the outer cells of the testa are muci- 
 laginous. There are several British species of Linum. Badiola, the other 
 British genus, has tetramerous flowers. 
 
 Order 3. EEYTHEOXYLACE^. Flowers regular: petals five, with 
 a ligular appendage : stamens ten, connate at the base by means 
 of a disc and forming a tube : ovary 2-3-locular, with one sus- 
 pended anatropous ovule in each loculus : seed with endosperm. 
 
 The wood of most of the species contain a red dye. The leaves of Erythroxy- 
 lon Coca are used as a stimulant : they contain cocain. 
 
 Order 4. OXALIDACEJ:. Disc present as small glands at the base 
 of the antipetalous stamens, or of all of them : flowers actino- 
 morphic; formula I5 7 (75, (1-45 + 5), 67 '^ ; the antipetalous 
 stamens are sometimes staminodial ; those which are opposite to 
 the sepals are the longest : ovules numerous ; fruit a capsule, or 
 more rarely a berry ; seed containing endosperm. Herbs, with 
 compound (ternate), generally exstipulate leaves. 
 
 Oxalis Acetosella, the Wood- Sorrel, is frequent in woods; it contains much 
 potassium oxalate. The tuberous roots or underground stems of some American 
 species, as 0. esculenta, crenata, and Deppei, contain much mucilage, and are 
 used as food. Some species (e.g. 0. gracilis) show trimorphic heterostylism 
 (p. 455) : others (e.g. 0. Acetosella), have cleistogamous flowers (p. 453). The 
 leaves of Oxalis and Averrhoa show sleep-movements : those of Biophytum are 
 sensitive to touch. 
 
 Order 5. BALSAMINACEJE. Disc 0: flowers irregular, dorsi ventral ; 
 formula K5, C5, I .40 + 5, G ( ^-: the posterior sepal is spurred, and 
 the two anterior are small or absent : the anterior petal is large : 
 ovary 5-locular ; ovules numerous ; the fruit is loculicidally septi- 
 fragal, the valves separate elastically and roll upwards, so that the 
 seeds are projected to some distance; seed without endosperm. 
 Herbs, with simple exstipulate leaves. 
 
614 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 linpatiens Noli-me-tangere t the yellow Wild Balsam, occurs in damp and 
 shady spots; the ripe fruit flies open with violence at a touch. Impatieris 
 Balsamina, an Indian species, is cultivated. 
 
 Order 6. TROPJIOLACE^). Disc 0: flowers irregular, asym- 
 metric (Fig. 328 B, p. 513); formula JT5, 05, ,44 + 4, G: the 
 posterior sepal is prolonged into a spur ; the three anterior petals 
 are clawed and ciliate : the two median stamens, one belonging to 
 each whorl, are suppressed, so that there are eight instead of ten : 
 one ovule in each of the three loculi of the ovary : seed without 
 endosperm. Herbs, with exstipulate leaves ; often petiole-climbers. 
 
 Tropceolum majus and minus, Indian Cress, often wrongly termed Nasturtium, 
 are universally cultivated. 
 
 Order 7. ZYGOPHYLLACEJ:. Disc annular, fleshy: flowers acti- 
 nomorphic, 5 or 4-merous. Herbs or shrubs with decussate, fre- 
 quently paripinnate, stipulate leaves : seeds with endosperm. 
 
 Lignum Vital is the wood of Guiacum officinale (West Indies) 
 
 Order 8. RUTACE^;. Disc usually annular : flowers usually acti- 
 nomorphic and obdiplostemonous : gynseceum sometimes partially 
 apocarpous, but the styles are usually connate: seed with or without 
 endosperm. There are numerous oil-glands on the leaves and stems. 
 
 Sub-order 1. BUTEJE. The placentae project into the loculi of the ovary ; 
 each bears 3 or more ovules : fruit a loculicidal capsule : seed with endosperm. 
 Euta gravcolens, the Rue, has pentamerous terminal 
 flowers, and tetrameroua lateral flowers. Dictamnus 
 Fraxinella has an irregular dorsiventral flower. 
 
 Sub- order 2. DIOSME^E. Ovules 2 in each loculus : 
 leaves simple : seed without endosperm. 
 Barosma, Agathosma, Empleurum. 
 Sub-order 3. ZANTHOXYLE^E. Flowers usually dioe- 
 cious and polygamous : endosperm usually present. 
 
 Zanthoxylum fraxineum, from North America, is a 
 FIG. 4l5.-Diagram of the s h rub which is sometimes cultivated. 
 
 Sub-order 4. TODDALIE^. Gynasceum syncarpous : 
 fruit iodehiscent, winged, dry or succulent : seed with endosperm. 
 Ptelea trifoliata is a North American shrub with white flowers. 
 Sub-order 5. AUBANTIE.E. Gynaeceum syncarpous : calyx gamosepalous : 
 seed without endosperm. 
 
 The genus Citrus has an indefinite number of bundles of connate stamens 
 (polyadelphous) (Fig. 416 A), all belonging apparently to the antisepalous inner 
 whorl : the carpels are usually more numerous than the petals, and during 
 ripening they become filled with a succulent tissue derived from their walls ; 
 the various parts of the flower and the fruit (p. 532) contain much ethereal oil : 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLTPETALJE : DISCIFLOR^S. 
 
 615 
 
 the leaf, which is typically pinnate, is reduced to its terminal leaflet which is 
 articulated to the winged petiole (Fig. 32 G) ; the leaf is sometimes spinous. 
 
 Citrus medico, is the Citron ; G. medico, var. Limonum, is the Lemon ; C. 
 me.dica var. Limetta, is the Lime; Citrus Aurantium var. Bigaradia (or C.vulyari*) 
 is the Bitter or Seville Orange, and C. Aurantium sinense is the Sweet Orange ; 
 Citrus nolrilis is the Mandarin Orange ; and Citrus decumana is the Shaddock : 
 all orig nally derived from tropical Asia. 
 
 B 
 
 FIG. 416. Flower and floral diagram of Citrus. A Open flower ; o corolla; s the partially 
 connate stamens ; n the stigma. B Bud ; Tc calyx ; o corolla ; d oil-glands. 
 
 Order 9. MELIACE,E. Disc various : stamens 5-10, generally 
 monadelphous ; the filaments have stipulate appendages ; carpels 
 usually 5 ; no oil-glands, but simple sacs (p. 139). 
 
 Mahogany is the wood of Swietenia Mahagoni (America). The wood of species 
 of Cedrela is often erroneously termed " cedar-wood " : Guarea, Carapa, Melia, 
 are other well-known genera. 
 
 Order 10. SIMARUBACEJ;. Disc conspicuous : flowers actino- 
 morphic, sometimes diclinous : stamens usually 10, and then 
 sometimes (e.g. Ailanthus) distinctly obdiplostemonous : gyiiaeceum 
 sometimes apocarpous : ovule usually solitary in each loculus : 
 there are no oil-glands in the leaves, but the cortex and wood 
 contain a bitter substance. 
 
 Ailanthus glandulosa, the Tree of Heaven, from China, is a tree with multi- 
 jugate pinnate leaves and a winged indehiscent fruit ; it is often cultivated. 
 
 Order 11. BURSERACEJD. Disc usually annular : flowers actino- 
 morphic : gynseceum syncarpous ; ovary with two ovules in each 
 loculus : there are resin-passages in the bast. 
 
 Boswelli'i serrata (East Africa) yields Olibanum, a gum-resin; Commiphora 
 Schimperi and abyssinica yield the gum-resin Myirh (Arabia and Abyssinia). 
 
 Cohort II. Sapindales. Flowers typically pentamerous and 
 obdiplostemonous but with reduction in the androecium, actino- 
 morphic or zygomorphic, sometimes monosporangiate : gynoDceum 
 oligomerous, usually syncarpous. Mostly trees. 
 
616 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Order 1. SAPINDACEJE. Flowers usually irregular, obliquely zy- 
 gomorphic or asymmetric, in that the two petals of one side are 
 larger and of somewhat different form to the three others; of 
 these, one, which lies in the plane of symmetry, is sometimes want- 
 ing : two or three of the antisepalous stamens are usually sup- 
 pressed, so that the number is eight or seven ; they are inserted 
 within the disc: the ovary is trilocular ; ovules two in each 
 local us : seed without endosperm. 
 
 2Esculus has opposite, palmately compound, exstipulate leaves ; the flowers 
 are in terminal scorpioid racemes ; the fruit has a loculicidal dehiscence : JE. 
 Hippocastanum is the Horse-Chestnut, derived from Asia ; J&. carnea, yE. 
 Pavia, and other species are frequently ciiltivated. A great number of genera 
 and species grow in warm climates ; they have generally scattered pinnate 
 leaves : often climbers with branch-tendrils. The fleshy fruit of Sapindus 
 Sayonaria makes a lather with water like soap. 
 
 Fi&. 417. Floral dia- 
 gram of ^Esculus : but 
 the missing stamens 
 should be represented 
 
 as antisepalous. 
 
 FIG. 418. Fruit of A. ; 7a'an<nl"., dividing into 
 two mei-icarps m ; s pedicel ; Jl wings (nat. size). 
 
 Order 2. ACERACEJ:. Flowers regular: stamens commonly eight, 
 in consequence of the suppression of the two median ones, variously 
 inserted : disc annular, rarely absent, extrastaminal or intra- 
 staminal : ovary bilocular; ovules two in each loculus; when ripe 
 the fruit splits into two one-seeded winged mericarps (samaras) 
 (Fig. 418): leaves opposite, palmately lobed, sometimes compound, 
 exstipulate : flowers in terminal racemes, sometimes in corymbs, 
 with an apical flower : seed without endosperm. 
 
 The principal species of Acer, the Maple, are A. Pseudoplatanus, the Sycamore, 
 having leaves with crenate margins, flowers in elongated pendulous racemes, 
 blooming after the unfolding of the leaves, and parallel-winged fruits ; A. 
 platanoides, having leaves with serrate margins, flowers in short erect racemes 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ1 : DISCIFLORJS. 
 
 G17 
 
 blooming before the unfolding of the leaves, and fruits with widely diverging 
 wings (even more than in Fig. 418) ; A. campestre, the common Maple, which 
 is sometimes shrubby, with a trilobate leaf, short erect racemes of flowers which 
 bloom after the unfolding of the leaves, and fruits with wings which are dia- 
 metrically opposite. Some North American species are often cultivated, such as 
 A. rubrum, with five stamens opposite to the sepals, and a rudimentary disc ; 
 A. dasycarpum, with the same number and position of the stamens, without any 
 corolla, and having dioscious flowers ; A. Neyundo, with compound 3-5 foliolate 
 leaves, and dioecious flowers like those of the preceding species. Sugar is 
 prepared from the sap of A. saccharinum and dasycarpum especially. 
 
 Order 3. PoLYGAr,ACE2E. Flowers irregular, dorsiventral ; the 
 two lateral sepals conspicuously large and known as " wings " 
 (Fig. 419 k') : petals three, the two lateral being absent; the an- 
 terior petal is very large and carinate : stamens usually eight, 
 forming a tube open posteriorly, to which the corolla, or at least 
 the anterior 
 petal, is adnate B 
 
 ( Fig. 419): disc 
 rudimentary : 
 carpels two, 
 median, forming 
 a bilocular 
 ovary, each 
 loculus con- 
 taining a single 
 suspended 
 ovule : fruit 
 
 usually, a capsule. The flower somewhat resembles that of the 
 Papilionese, but it must be borne in mind that here the two " alee " 
 or wings belong to the calyx. 
 
 The flower of the Polygalaceae resembles that of the Aceracese in the suppres- 
 sion of two stamens in the plane of the two carpels. 
 
 Polygala vulgaris, amara, and others, the Milkworts, are herbs, woody at 
 the base, occurring in woods and meadows. 
 
 Order 4. ANACARDIACEJ;. Flowers usually actinomorphic, and 
 often diclinous: stamens usually inserted on the disc, but disc 
 sometimes absent: gynaeceum of but few carpels; sometimes one 
 only is developed, the others being represented by two or more 
 stigmata; each loculus of the ovary contains one anatropous 
 ovule with dorsal raphe : resin-ducts present : seed without endo- 
 sperm. 
 
 FIG. 419 Flower of Polygala grandiflora. A SHOII from out- 
 sitle after the removal of the wing-sepal fe. JB Longitudinal 
 section: fc calyx ; k' wing; c corolla; s tube of stamens. (After 
 Sachs.) 
 
618 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Various species are cultivated as ornamental plants. In Cotiuus many of the 
 flowers are abortive, and the hairy peduncles become much elongated. The 
 genus Ehus includes the Sumachs; there are no 
 antipetalous stamens : P. Coriaria (Southern 
 Europe) is used in tanning. Pistacia vera, in 
 Southern Europe, bears edible seeds (Pistachio- 
 kernels) ; in the flowers of this genus the petals, 
 and in the $ flower the stamens which are 
 opposite to them, are suppressed. 
 
 FIG. 420. Floral diagram of 
 Rhus. 
 
 Cohort III. Celastrales. Flowers 
 regular, frequently actinomorphic, 4-5- 
 merous ; only one whorl of stamens 
 which either alternates with or is opposite to the petals, is usually 
 present : disc usually within, sometimes external to, the androe- 
 cium : ovules usually erect : the seed nearly always contains 
 endosperm. Trees or shrubs. 
 
 Order 1. CELASTRACE^E. Formula, Kn, Cn, Ar\, G (n) or less, 
 n 4 or 5 : sepals imbricate: stamens and carpels inserted on a 
 flattened disc : stamens alternate with the petals : usually two ovules 
 in each loculus of the ovary : leaves scattered, entire, stipulate. 
 
 In the genus Euonymus, the Spindle-tree, the loculicidal capsule contains 
 seeds invested by an orange -coloured arillode (p. 459); E. europcea occurs both 
 cultivated and wild. 
 
 Order 2. STAPHYLEACE.S!. Flowers pentamerous : stamens alter- 
 nate with the petals: disc intrastaminal : ovary generally trimerous 
 and trilocular ; ovules numerous : leaves decussate, pinnate, stipu- 
 late: seed with small endosperm. 
 
 Staphylea pinnata is grown in gardens. 
 
 Order 3. RHAMNACEJS. Formula, Kn, Cn, \ An, G^; n=4> 
 or 5 : calyx usually gamosepalous, val- 
 vate : petals usually small and often 
 hood-shaped (Fig. 421 c), enclosing the 
 stamens which are opposite to them : 
 flowers sometimes diclinous : usually a 
 single ovule in each loculus of the ovary 
 which is invested by a disc : leaves 
 usually scattered, entire, stipulate : fruit 
 or a capsule. 
 
 Pia. 421.-Flow 
 Fmngula (mag.) : fe sepals con- 
 nate at the base into a tube (d) ; 
 c hood-Rhaped petals enclosing 
 the stamens (a). 
 
 p hamnng ea thartica, the Buckthorn, has op- 
 P osite leaves and Hory twigs : the berries of 
 R. infectoria, in Southern Europe, yield a green 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJJ : 
 
 619 
 
 or yellow dye ; R. Frangula has scattered leaves ; its wood produces a par- 
 ticularly light charcoal. 
 
 Order 4. AMPELIDACEJ:. Formula same as in RhamnaceEe: sepals 
 small ; the corolla is often thrown off before it opens (Fig. 422 A c) : 
 a glandular disc between the andrcecium and the gyneeceum : 
 ovules one or two in each loculus: fruit baccate. Climbing plants, 
 with stem-tendrils ; leaves palmate, exstipulate or stipulate. 
 
 Vitis vinifera, the Grape-Vine, probably derived from the East, is cultivated 
 in endless varieties ; other species, such as V. vulpina and Labrusca, as also 
 Ampelopsis hederacea, the Virginian Creeper, are also frequently cultivated. The 
 tendrils of the Vine (Fig. 24 A) are branches bearing scaly leaves in the axils of 
 which other branches arise : their peculiar position opposite to the foliage- 
 leaves may be explained as follows : the ordinary shoots are sympodia, and 
 each tendril is the terminal segment of a member of the sympodium ; the fol- 
 lowing member is a shoot springing from the axil of the loliage-Kaf which is 
 opposite to the tendril. 
 Every third leaf has no 
 tendril opposite to it, 
 that is to say, the mem- 
 bers of the sympodium 
 alternately bear one or 
 two leaves. The inflor- 
 escences occupy the 
 same positions as the 
 tendrils. Each leaf has 
 also a bud in its axil, 
 which either remains 
 undeveloped or gives rise to a dwarf-shoot : from the axil of the cataphyllary leaf 
 of the dwarf-shoot an ordinary shoot is developed. In some species of Ampe- 
 lopsis (e.g. A. Ve.itcliii and Roylei) the tendrils attach themselves to flat surfaces 
 by means of discoid suckers developed at their tips. 
 
 Order 5. AQUIFOLIACEJ;. Disc wanting: one or two suspended 
 ovules in each loculus of the usually tetramerous ovary : stamens 
 free, or adnate to and alternate with the petals : petals often con- 
 nate at the base : leaves scattered, exstipulate. 
 
 Ilex Aqui folium, the Holly, with its coriaceous, spinous, evergreen leaves, is 
 common in plantations and woods : fruit a berry. The leaves known in com- 
 merce as Paraguay tea are derived from /. paraguensis in South America. 
 
 Order 6. THYMEL^ACEJI. Flowers more or less perigynous, 
 with a disc ; calyx and receptacle petaloid, with a four-lobed 
 limb (Fig. 329 D) ; corolla often suppressed, or more or less rudi- 
 mentary : stamens sometimes in two whorls, and then the four 
 stamens opposite to the sepals are inserted hio-her on the tube of 
 
 FIG. 422. Flower of Vitis vinifera, and diagram. A At 
 the moment of opening:. B Open ; fc calyx; c corolla; d 
 glands; s stamens; /ovary; n stigma (slightly mag.). 
 
620 PART III. ^THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the calyx than the four which alternate with the sepals (Fig. 423) : 
 gynseceum usually moiiomerous ; ovule suspended; fruit a berry : 
 seed without endosperm. 
 
 Daphne Mezereon is common in woods ; the usually 3-flowered inflorescences 
 are borne in the axils of the foliage leaves of the previous year, and they bloom 
 before the development of the leaves of the same year. 
 
 This order is frequently placed among the Monochlamydeae, but this position 
 is untenable in consequence of the presence of a corolla in some genera (e.g. 
 Gnidia). 
 
 Order 7. ELJ:AGNACEJ]. Flowers diclinous or polygamous, 4- or 
 2-merous; the corolla is suppressed: the stamens opposite to the 
 sepals are sometimes wanting (Fig 424 J5) ; a disc (Fig. 424 A, d} 
 usually closes the receptacle : fruit an achene, surrounded by the 
 
 Pio. 423. Calyx of the f ower of FlG. 421 Flower of Elceagnus fusca. A 
 
 Daphne Mezereon laid open (x 6) : o In longitudinal section. B Floral diagram 
 
 the four superior, u the four inferior d disc (mag.: after Sachs), 
 stamens, adnate to the calyx. 
 
 receptacle or by the whole perianth : gynaeceum monomerous : 
 ovule basal : seed with small endosperm : the leaves are covered, 
 especially on the under surface, with scaly hairs. 
 
 This order is also frequently placed among the Monochlamydese : but although 
 no corolla is indicated, the order must be retained near the Thymelaeaceae. 
 
 Hippophae rhamnoidrs, the Sea Buckthorn, is a shrub which is sometimes 
 common on the banks of streams; the smaller branches mostly terminate in a 
 thorn ; the flowers are dioecious and dimerous ; when the fruit is ripe the fleshy 
 receptacle is of an orange colour. Elasaguus has tetramerous polygamous flowers 
 (Fig. 424) ; it is commonly cultivated. 
 
 Cohort IV. Euphorbiales. Flowers monosporangiate, monce- 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLTPBTAUB : DISC1FLOE2E. 
 
 621 
 
 cious or dioecious ; the perianth sometimes consists of calyx and 
 corolla, sometimes it is simple, and occasionally it is absent : the 
 ovary is usually trilocular, with one or two anatropous and gener- 
 ally suspended ovules in each loculus: the seed contains endosperm : 
 the structure of the flowers is very various. The affinities of the 
 cohort are not accurately known ; but it can no longer be retained 
 among the Moriochlamydeas. 
 
 Order 1. EUPHORRIACE^E. The flower exhibits all possible de- 
 grees of reduction. The perianth may consist of calyx and corolla 
 (e.g. some Phyllanthese, such as Andrachne, Savia, Bridelia ; some 
 Crotoneaa, such as Chrozophora, Croton sub-gen. Eluteria, Ja- 
 tropha, Cluytia, etc.) : more commonly the corolla is suppressed, 
 and in some cases (e.g. Euphorbia) the calyx also. The androecium 
 varies from 1 to 8 stamens: thus in 
 Euphorbia the flower consists of a 
 single stamen, whilst in Ricinus the 
 .stamens are numerous and repeatedly 
 branched (Fig. 333) : they are some- 
 times isomerous with the perianth- 
 leaves. The gynseceum is typically 
 trimerous, but the carpels may be more 
 numerous (5-20 in Hura) or fewer (1 
 in Eremocarpus) : the syncarpous ovary 
 has as many loculi as there are car- 
 pels : each loculus contains one or two 
 (then collateral) suspended anatropous 
 ovules, the micropyles of which are 
 directed outwards ; the micropyle is 
 usually invested by a micropylar aril 
 (see p. 459), often termed the caruncle, 
 which is conspicuous on the seed. The 
 fruit is usually dry and dehiscent, splitting septicidally into cocci. 
 A disc is commonly present, and is frequently annular in the 9 
 flowers: in the <$ flowers the disc is usually extra-staminal. 
 
 They are plants of various habit, from herbs to trees, some 
 resembling species of Cactaceae. Many of them possess laticiferous 
 tissue (absent in Phyllanthese and some Stenolobeae), consisting 
 either of laticiferous ccenocytes (EhiphorbieaB : see p. 142) or of 
 laticiferous vessels (Crotoneaa) : the latex is usually milky, and in 
 this case the laticiferous tissue is more highly developed than 
 when (as in Mercurialis) the latex is not milky. 
 
 FlO. 4?5. Part of an inflores- 
 cence of a Euphorbia : b b bracts, 
 in the axils of which are the 
 buds (Ten) . p is the involucre 
 of the open cyathium ; dr the 
 glands; a the <J flowers; g the 
 pedicel of the ? flower (/) ; n the 
 stigmata (enlarged). 
 
622 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 The inflorescence requires special consideration : it is, generally- 
 speaking, of the mixed type, the earlier branchings being racemose 
 whilst the final branchings are cymose : in the monoecious plants, 
 as a rule, both kinds of flowers are borne in the same inflorescence, 
 the 9 flowers above, the <$ flowers below. 
 
 In the family Euphorbieae the general inflorescences are cymose 
 umbels or dichasia, the branches of which terminate in what 
 were formerly regarded as ambisporangiate flowers, but are really 
 inflorescences, each one being termed a cyathium. The cyathium 
 consists of a tubular involucre (Fig. 425 j>), consisting of bracts, 
 often brightly-coloured {e.g. Poinsettia), between the five lobes 
 of which glandular appendages, often of a semilunar form, are 
 situated (Fig. 425 dr). Within this involucre are numerous 
 flowers in five groups, each of which consists of a single stamen 
 (Fig. 425 a) and is terminal on a long pedicel, and one ? flower 
 (Fig. 425 g), consisting of a trilocular ovary (Fig. 425 /), at the 
 base of which an indication of a perianth may in some cases be 
 detected. That the cyathium is an inflorescence and not a single 
 flower is most clearly visible in the genus Anthostema, in which a 
 perianth is distinctly developed round each stamen. 
 
 Of Euphorbia, the Spurge, most indigenous species are annual herbs, as E. 
 Peplus, exigua, platypliyllos and helioscopia (the common Sun Spurge), whilst 
 others are perennial (E. amygdal aides, and Paralias) : some South European 
 forms are small shrubs, as E. dendroides and fruticosa : in Africa and the 
 Canary Islands the genus is represented by species which much resemble 
 Cactacese in appearance ; their stems are thick and cylindrical or angular 
 or sometimes spherical, producing small leaves which usually soon fall off. 
 In Mercurialis the flowers are apetalous ; the $ flowers have a three-leaved 
 perianth and numerous stamens ; the $ flowers have a similar perianth 
 and a bilocular ovary : Mercurialis annua and perennis (Dog's Mercury) are 
 weeds, the first common in cultivated ground, the second in woods; their 
 flowers are dioecious. Kicinus bears its monoecious apetalous flowers in a 
 compound inflorescence, in which the $ flowers are placed below and the ? 
 flowers above: the perianth is simple and five-lobed: Ricinus communis (the 
 Castor-oil plant) is a native of Africa, now frequently cultivated ; Castor-oil is 
 obtained from its seeds. Croton-oil is obtained from the seeds of Croton 
 Tiglium. Some species - of Pbyllanthus (Xylophylla) have phylloid branches 
 which bear their small flowers in the axils of minute bristle-like leaves situated 
 in indentations at the edge of the phylloclade. The root of Manihot utilis- 
 sima, a South American plant, when ground, constitutes cassava, and it yields 
 the starchy meal known in commerce as tapioca. From Siphonia elastica, a 
 species growing iu Central America, most of the caoutchouc is obtained. 
 
 Order 2. BUXACEJ;. Disc wanting : flowers monoecious, in 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ] : CALYCTFLOR2E. 623 
 
 glomerules in which the terminal flower is usually ? and the 
 lateral ones g ; the latter flowers have a simple 4-leaved perianth 
 and four superposed stamens (rarely numerous) ; the former 
 have a trilocular ovary with two ovules in each loculus, the 
 micropyle of the suspended ovule being directed inwards: fruit 
 a capsule, with loculicidal dehiscence. For the most part shrubs. 
 
 Buxus sempervirensy the Box, is an evergreen shrub of Southern Europe ; the 
 wood is valuable. 
 
 Order 3. EMPETRACEJ;. Disc wanting : flowers dioecious, with 
 three sepals, three petals, three stamens or a 6-9-locular ovary : 
 ovules solitary, ascending : fruit drupaceous. They are shrubs 
 resembling Heaths in appearance. 
 
 Empetrum nigrum, the Crakeberry, is a small shrub occurring in the north of 
 Europe and in the Alps. 
 
 Order. 4. CALLITRICHACEJ). Aquatic plants, with decussate, 
 linear or ovate leaves, in the axils of which stand the solitary 
 diclinous flowers which are destitute of a perianth: the g flowers 
 consist of a single stamen; the ? of a bilocular, spuriously 
 quadrilocular, ovary, with four suspended ovules, the micropyles 
 of which are directed outwards. 
 
 Callitriche verna and otber species, forming the section Eu-calhtriche, are 
 eitber partially submerged or tbey creep on muddy banks, and in them pollin- 
 ation takes place in the air : but in the section Pseudo-callitricbe (of which (7. 
 autumnalis is tbe British representative) the plants are entirely submerged, and 
 consequently pollination takes place under water (see p. 434). 
 
 This order has been associated with the Haloragidaceee ; but the general 
 structure of the flower, especially the remarkable reduction which it presents, 
 and the number and attachment of the ovules, seem rather to indicate affinity 
 with the Euphorbiaceae. 
 
 SERIES III. CALYCIFLOKjE. 
 
 Flowers epigynous or perigynous : calyx usually gamosepalous : 
 stamens definite or indefinite : gynseceum syncarpous or apo- 
 carpous. 
 
 Cohort I. Umbellales. Flowers regular, sometimes actino- 
 morphic, epigynous, with generally a single whorl of stamens 
 opposite to the sepals : calyx inconspicuous : ovary bilocular, with 
 one ovule in each loculus : a disc between the stamens and the 
 styles : inflorescence usually umbellate : seed containing endo- 
 sperm : leaves exstipulate. 
 
 V, S. B. S S 
 
624 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Order 1. UMBELLIFERJE. Flowers generally regular, bat zygo- 
 morphic in consequence of oligomery in the gynseceum (p. 508): 
 formula, K5, (75, ^45, Gffi ' the calyx is generally very small, often 
 hardly visible, though sometimes well developed (e.g. Eryn- 
 gium, Astrantia) : the corolla consists of five rather small white or 
 yellow petals ; occasionally the outermost petals of tke flowers at 
 the circumference of the umbel are larger than the others, and the 
 umbel is then termed radiant : stamens five ; ovary inferior, bi- 
 locular : the base of the two styles is fleshy and thickened, forming 
 an epigynous disc (Fig. 426 A d} ; one suspended ovule in each 
 loculus of the ovary (Fig. 338 E) : the fruit, when ripe, splits 
 into two mericarps, each, loculus of the ovary being permanently 
 
 m 
 
 Fi. 426. A Flower of Foeniculum (mag.): / ovary; c corolla; s stamens ; d disc. B 
 Fruit of Heracleum : p pedicel ; g style ; r r v ridges (costae) : rr marginal ridges ; o oil- 
 ducts (vittse) (mag.). C Transverse section of mericarp of Carum Carui (Orihospermeoi) . 
 m surface that comes into contact with the other mericarp ; o vittse : e endosperm. D 
 Transverse section of mericarp of Conium (Campylospermece). E Fruit of Coriandrum, 
 (Codospermeat) : fc margins of the surface along which the two mericarps are in contact ; r 
 ridges ; n secondary ridges : F section of a mericarp. (Mag.) 
 
 closed by a median septum (Fig. 427a; seep. 530). The struc- 
 ture of the pericarp is an important characteristic for the classifica- 
 tion of the family. The fruit is commonly either oval in form, or 
 compressed (Fig. 426 B\ or nearly spherical (Fig. 426 JE7) : its sur- 
 face generally bears longitudinal ridges (costm or jug a primaria) en- 
 closing vascular bundles, five generally on each mericarp; of these, 
 two run along the margins (Fig. 426 B, C, D, rr), and the other three 
 along the dorsal surface (Fig. 426 B, (7, D, r). In the spaces be- 
 tween the ridges which form furrows, lie oil-ducts or receptacles 
 
DICOTYLEDONKS : POLYPETALJS : CALYCIFLOR^. 
 
 625 
 
 (Fig. 426 B, C, o), and sometimes other secondary ridges, 
 (juga secund'iria) (tig. 426, E, F, n), which do not enclose vascular 
 bundles. The mericarp when ripe is filled by the seed, which 
 consists of the abundant endosperm (Fig. 426 (7, D, jP, e) en- 
 closing a small embryo. According to the form assumed by the 
 endosperm, the following groups may be distinguished : the OrtTio- 
 spermece, in which the surface of the endosperm, which is directed 
 towards the plane of junction of the two mericarps, is flat or con- 
 vex, as in Carum (Fig. 426 0) : the Campylnspermew, in which the 
 endosperm is concave towards the same plane, as in Conium (Fig. 
 426 I)\ and the Coelospermece, in which the whole endosperm is 
 curved, so that it is seen to be concave 
 towards this plane both in longitudinal 
 and in transverse section, as in Coriander 
 (Fig. 426 F). 
 
 The flowers, with few exceptions (Hy- 
 drocotyle, Astrantia, Eryngium), are in 
 compound umbels ; in some few cases, as 
 in Caucus, the umbel has a distinct ter- 
 minal flower which is black in colour : an 
 involucre and involucels are largely de- 
 veloped in some species, in others they 
 are wholly wanting. The hollow stem 
 bears large leaves with generally well- 
 developed sheathing bases and much 
 divided lamina? : rarely the leaves are 
 simple, as in Hydrocotyle and Bupleurum. 
 
 The British genera are arranged as follows : 
 Sub-order I. ORTHOSPERMK^E. 
 
 A. Umbels simple. 
 
 Tribe 1. Hydrocotylece. Fruit laterally com- 
 pressed. The genus Hydrocotyle consists of 
 marsh -plants with peltate leaves (Fig. 31). 
 
 Tribe 2. Saniculea. Fruit nearly cylindrical. This group includes the 
 genera Astrantia, Eryugium, and Sanicula. 
 
 B. Umbels compound. 
 
 Tribe 3. Amminece. Fruit without secondary ridges, laterally compressed: 
 Ammi, Bupleurum, Petroselinum, Apiutu, ^gopodiurn, Carum (Figs. 426 G, 
 and 427), Cicuta, Slum, Pimpinella, Trinia, Conopodium, Sison. 
 
 Tribe 4. Seselinece. Secondary ridges absent, or if present (Siler) not so 
 prominent as the primary : fruit not compressed: ^Ethusa,Foeniculum,(Enautbe, 
 Seseli, Meum, Ligusticum, Silaus, Crithmum, Siler. 
 
 Tribe 5. Angelicece. Fruit without secondary ridges, dorsally compressed, 
 
 FIG. 427. Fruit of Carum 
 Carui. A Ovary of the tlower 
 (/). B Ripe Fruit. The two 
 carpels have separated so as 
 to form two mericarps (m). 
 Part of the septum consti- 
 tutes the carpophore (a). 
 
626 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 the lateral primary ridges winged, the wings of the 'two mericarps divergent; 
 Angelica, Archangelica. 
 
 Tribe 6. Peucedanece. Fruit without secondary ridges, dorsally compressed, 
 the lateral primary ridges winged, the wings of the two mericarps apposed : 
 Peucedanum (incl. Irnperatoria), Pastinaca, Heracleum, Tordylium. 
 
 Tribe 7. Daucinece The secondary ridges are spinous : Daucus. 
 
 Sub-order II. CAMPYLOSPEKME^E. 
 
 Tribe 8. Cancalinece. Secondary ridges spinous: Caucalis (incl. Torilis). 
 
 Tribe 9. Smyrniece. Fruit without secondary ridges : Anthriscus, Myrrhis, 
 Conium (Fig. 426 D), Smyrnium, Physospermum. 
 
 Sub-order III. COJ;LOSPERME;. 
 
 Tribe 10. Kcandicece. Fruit sub-globose, without secondary ridges : Scan- 
 dix, Chaerophyllum, Echinophora. 
 
 Tribe 11. Coiiandrcce. Fruit spherical ; secondary ridges more prominent 
 than the wavy primary ridges : Coriandrum (Fig. 426 E, F). 
 
 Anthriscus silvestris, the Cow-Parsley ; Carum Carui, the Caraway ; Herac- 
 leum Sphondylium, the Cow-Parsnip ; ^Egopodium Podagraria, the Gout- Weed ; 
 Pastinaca sativa, the Wild Parsnip, are common in meadows and woods: 
 Crithmum, the Samphire, grows on rocks by the sea : Ecbinophora, the 
 Prickly Samphire, growing on sandy sea-shores, has been exterminated in 
 Britain. The following are cultivated : Apium graveolens, Celery ; Petro- 
 selinum sativum, Parsley ; Daucus Carota, the Carrot ; Pastinaca oleracea, the 
 Parsnip ; Anthriscus Cerefulium, the Chervil. The following are poisonous : 
 Conium maculatum, the Hemlock ; Cicuta virosa, the Water-Hemlock ; 
 sEthusa Cynapium, Fool's-Parsley. 
 
 Order 2. ARALIACEJ:. Mowers generally pentamerous ; stamens 
 sometimes more numerous ; carpels more or less numerous : fruit, 
 a berry or a drupe. Shrubs, sometimes root-climbers, with 
 scattered palmate leaves. 
 
 Hedera Helix, the Ivy, does not blossom till it is some years old : the umbels 
 are borne on erect branches, the leaves of which are entire. Fatsia papyrifera 
 is used in Japan for making a kind of paper known as rice-paper ; it is made 
 from the pith. 
 
 Order 3. CORNACEJI. Flowers tetramerous, isobilateral (see p. 
 508), with a usually dimerous bilocular ovary : fruit usually a 
 drupe. Shrubs with woody stems and entire opposite leaves. 
 
 Cornus mas, the Cornel, has yellow flowers which bloom before the unfolding 
 of the leaves, and a red fruit: C. sanguinea and suecica are common shrubs: 
 Aucuba japonica has dioecious flowers, and a monomerous baccate fruit. 
 
 Cohort II. Passiflorales. Flowers frequently monospo- 
 rangiate, regular; epigynous, perigynous or hypogynous ; penta- 
 merous : stamens in one or two whorls, or indefinite : gynee- 
 ceum syncarpous ; ovary usually trimerous and unilocular ; ovules 
 numerous, on parietal placentae. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETAL.E : CALYC1FLORJS. 627 
 
 Order 1. PASSTFLORACE^;. Flowers pentamerous, perigynous, 
 sometimes dioecious ; between corolla and androecium there is a 
 so-called corona consisting of a number of filamentous appendages, 
 probably representing a disc (see p. 527) : the gynaeceum fre- 
 quently, and generally also the androecium, is elevated upon an 
 elongation of the axis (gynophore, or gonophore, p. 495) : stamens 
 five, often monadelphous, opposite to the sepals : ovary unilocular 
 with three parietal placentas : leaves palmate. Climbing plants, 
 with tendrils, each tendril being a lateral axillary branch, and 
 frequently the main axis of an inflorescence. 
 
 Several species of Passiflora, the Passion-Flower, from tropical America, are 
 cultivated. 
 
 Order 2. PAPAYACE^;. Flowers diclinous, hypogynous : stamens 
 in two whorls : ovary usually unilocular with five parietal 
 placentae. 
 
 Carica Papaya, the Papaw, is cultivated in the tropics on account of its 
 edible fruit : its latex is rich in proteolytic ferment (papain). 
 
 Order 3. B.EGONIACEJ1. Affinity doubtful. Flowers diclinous ; 
 perianth rarely heterochlamydeous : the flowers have two 
 dimerous petaloid perianth-whorls, and indefinite stamens crowded 
 together : the ? flowers are epigynous ; the perianth consists of 
 five petaloid leaves; the ovary is usually trilocular, with numerous 
 anatropous ovules borne on axile placentas : fruit a capsule : leaves 
 often very large, usually oblique : inflorescence cymose, the < 
 flowers being terminal on the first branches, the ? terminal on 
 the last. 
 
 Many species of Begonia, derived from the tropics, are cultivated as orna- 
 mental plants. 
 
 Order 4. CuCURBITAGEJE. Flowers diclinous or polygamous, often 
 irregular : corolla of five petals, often gamopetalous : stamens 
 epipetalous, five, but they frequently cohere, either in pairs, so 
 that there appear to be but three (Fig. 428, diagram), or all 
 completely into a single continuous ring (Cyclaiithera) ; the 
 anthers are commonly long and sinuous : ovary inferior, unilocular, 
 becoming spuriously multilocular, with one or (more often) many 
 ovules; it is, however, often described as multilocular (usually 3) 
 with projecting axile placentae : fruit baccate, a pepo or a succu- 
 lent berry, often of great size, with a relatively thick and solid 
 
628 
 
 PART ITI. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 pericarp : seed without endosperm. Herbs with scattered leaves, 
 mostly climbers, with tendrils growing by the side of the leaves. 
 
 There is considerable difference of opinion as to the morphological nature of 
 the tendril in this order, but it appears to be essentially a leaf, in fact the first 
 leaf of the flowering-shoot which arises in the axil of the related foliage-leaf : 
 the vegetative branch, which is always developed by the side of the flowering- 
 shoot, seems to spring from the axil of the tendril. The tendril often bears a 
 number of branches at its distal end, but, whether simple or branched, its 
 structure shows that the proximal portion corresponds in structure to a petiole, 
 whilst the distal irritable portion (including the branches) has a bilateral 
 structure which suggests correspondence with a lamina. 
 
 Cucurbita Pepo is the Pumpkin : the genus Cucumis has free stamens ; 
 Cucumis t>ativa is the Cucumber, and Cucumis Melo is the Melon : Citrullns 
 
 vulgaris is the Water Melon. 
 The genus Bryonia has a small 
 white corolla ; the loculi of the 
 ovary are 2-seeded, and the 
 fruit is a succulent berry ; B. 
 dioica is common in shrubberies 
 
 Order 5. CACTACE^B. 
 Flowers acyclic, epigyn- 
 ous, with numerous sepals, 
 petals, and stamens, which 
 gradually pass into each 
 other : ovary unilocular, 
 with three or more parietal 
 placentae : ovules horizon- 
 tal ; endosperm little or 
 none : stems of the most 
 various forms : leaves usu- 
 ally represented by tufts 
 of spines. They are in- 
 digenous to the dry dis- 
 tricts of tropical and sub- 
 tropical America, but 
 many have been intro- 
 duced into the eastern hemisphere : however, a species of the genus 
 Rhipsalis (B. Cassytha) is indigenous to South Africa and Ceylon. 
 
 The Cactaceae are typically xerophilous plants : in consequence of the great 
 reduction of the foliage-leaves, their transpiration is comparatively slight, and 
 the succulent stems serve to store relatively large quantities of water. They 
 are protected from being eaten, by the development of numerous spines. 
 
 FIG. 428. A Longitudinal section of ? flower of 
 Cucumis: / ovary; sk ovules; fc calyx; C corolla; 
 n stigma ; st' rudimentary stamens. B Longitudi- 
 nal section of <J flower; st stamens ; 71' rudimentary 
 ovary; the corolla (c) is not all shown (somewhat 
 mag.). Floral diagram of Cucurbita. 
 
D1COTYLEDONES : POLYPETAL2E : CALYCIFLORJ!. 
 
 629 
 
 Mamillaria has a spherical or cylindrical stem on which tubercules, arranged 
 spirally and bearing spines, represent the leaves. Echinopsis and Echinocactus 
 have angular ridges on which the tufts of spines grow. Cereushas an angular, 
 columnar, elongated stem. Phyllocactus and Ehipsalis have compressed leaf- 
 like stems. Opuntia and Nopalea have flattened stems composed of a suc- 
 cession of flattened ovate shoots. The Cochineal insect lives on Nopalea cocci- 
 nellifera. 
 
 Cohort III. Myrtales. Flowers usually actinomorphic, 
 encyclic, epigynous or perigynous, with usually two whorls of 
 stamens, typically obdiplostemonous : gynaeceum syncarpous, with 
 usually a single style : leaves usually opposite. 
 
 PIG. 429. A Flower of Fuchsia: pedicel ; / inferior ovary; fc sepals, connate at the 
 base, forming a tube (r) ; a stamens ; g style ; n stigma. J5 Flower of Epilobium hirsutum 
 (letters as before). C Fruit of Epilobium after dehiscence; w outer wall; m columella 
 formed by the septa ; sa seed with tufts of hairs (nat. size). 
 
 Order 1. ONAGRACEJ;. Flowers usually tetramerous throughout, 
 generally epigynous : antipetalous stamens sometimes suppressed : 
 ovary multilocular, with generally numerous ovules on axile 
 placentae: fruit a berry or a capsule; seed without endosperm. 
 Calyx often petaloid, forming a long tube (Fig. 429 A, r). 
 
 (Enothera biennis, the Evening Primrose, occurs on river banks ; the seed has 
 not a tuft of hairs, and the flowers are yellow. Epilobium is the Willow Herb, 
 of which many species are common ; E. angustifolium, hirsutum, aod montanum 
 occur in fields, hedges, and ditches ; the seeds have a tuft of long hairs ; flowers 
 
630 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 red; fruit a septifragal capsule. Circtea lutetiana (Enchanter's Nightshade) has 
 dimerous flowers jK"2, (72, A2, 0$ (Fig. 323 B) ; common in damp and shady 
 spots. Isnardia palustris has no corolla ; its fruit is a septicidal capsule. 
 Fuchsia (Figs. 429 A, 323 A), many species of which are cultivated as 
 ornamental plants, is a native of South America ; fruit a berry. 
 
 Trapa natans, the Water-Chestnut, a not very common water-plant of Central 
 Europe, has a stem bearing a rosette of leaves which float on the surface of the 
 water ; in the axils of these leaves the flowers are borne singly : their formula 
 is K4, (74, 44, G* 2 ), and they are perigynous : the fruit is indehiscent, and the 
 sepals remain adherent to it in the form of four horns : it contains two seeds. 
 
 Order 2. HALORAGIDACEJI. Flower sometimes monosporangiate, 
 epigynous, usually tetramerous throughout ; stamens often in two 
 whorls, and then obdiplostemonous : sometimes the corolla or the 
 whorl of stamens opposite to the petals is wanting : ovary 
 
 1-4-merous, with a single sus- 
 pended ovule in each loculus; 
 seed containing endosperm. 
 
 JHyriophyllum verticillatum and spi- 
 catum, the Water-Milf' ils, are aquatic 
 plants with finely divided leaves and 
 small, generally diclinous, flowers 
 borne above the water in terminal 
 spikes. 
 
 The genus Gunnera includes land- 
 plants with large leaves : the flower is 
 dimerous, but is frequently reduced by 
 the suppression of the corolla, or of 
 one of the series of sporophylls (diclin- 
 ous) : the dimerous ovary produces but 
 a single ovule. 
 
 The genus Hippuris consists of the 
 single (British) species H. vulgaris 
 
 the Mare's-tail. It is an aquatic plant, bearing its very much reduced flowers 
 singly in the axils of the whorled leaves : there is no corolla, and the calyx is> 
 rudimentary : there is a single epigynous stamen, and a mononaerous ovary 
 containing a single suspended anatropous ovule. 
 
 Order 3. LYTHRACEJE. Flowers perigynous, with usually both 
 whorls of stamens : formula Kn, (7n, | An + n, G^M), where n = 3 16 : 
 ovary free in the hollow receptacle : an epicalyx formed by connate 
 stipules is often present : seed without endosperm. 
 
 Lythrum Salicaria, the Loosestrife, occurs in bogs and ditches : flower 
 usually pentamerous or hexamerous : the stamens of the two whorls are unequal 
 in length, and the length of the style also varies ; three forms of flowers are 
 thus produced (trimorphism ; see p. 455) : the other British genus is Peplis ; 
 
 FIG. 430. Part of a flowering stem of 
 Hippuris vulgaris. The leaves are cut away. 
 (After Sachs.) 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ! : CALYCIFLOR^. 
 
 631 
 
 P. Portula is the Water-Pur$1ane ; it has usually hexamerous flowers and an 
 indehiscent fruit : gynaeceum dimerous in both genera. Several species of 
 Cuphea, having a dorsiventral flower, with a posteriorly spurred calyx-tube, 
 from Mexico, are cultivated. 
 
 Order 4. MYRTACE^;. Flowers 4- or 5-merous, epigynous : sta- 
 mens often very numerous, free, or connate in usually antipetalous 
 bundles (Fig. 431) ; sometimes few and obdiplostemonous : ovary 
 1-co -Jocular ; seeds 1-co in each loculus, without endosperm: 
 placentation and fruit various : leaves usually opposite, dotted 
 with oil-glands. Shrubs or trees. 
 
 Tribe 1. Myrtece. Fruit a berry or a drupe ; stamens indefinite. 
 
 Myrtus communis is the Myrtle of Southern Europe ; the genus Eugenia 
 includes a number of ornamental shrubs, among which is E. (Jambosa) Caryo- 
 phyllus, the buds and flowers of which yield the spice known as cloves (Fig. 432). 
 
 Tribe 2. Leptospermece. Fruit a capsule, dehiscing loculicidally from above 
 downwards: stamens generally indefinite, frequently in bundles which are 
 opposite either to the sepals or to the petals (Fig. 431). 
 
 FIG. 431. Longitudinal section of 
 tbe flower of Calothamnus : / ovary ; 
 s calyx ; p corolla ; st antipetalous 
 bundle of stamens; g style. (After 
 Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 432. Flower-bud of Jambosa 
 Caryophyllus, the Clove, in longitudi- 
 nal section ; /the inferior ovary, with 
 the oil-glands (dr); sk the ovules; Je 
 calyx; c corolla; st stamens; a an- 
 thers ; g style (enlarged). 
 
 Callistemon, Melaleuca, Metrosideroa, Calothamnus, and others, are or- 
 namental plants : Eucalyptus Globulus, from Australia, is much planted in 
 marshy districts, which it tends to dry up by its active transpiration. 
 
 Tribe 3. Cliamcelauciece. Stamens often definite and obdiplostemonous : 
 ovary unilocular : fruit usually one-seeded and indehiscent. 
 
 Tribe 4. Lecythidece. Fruit large, woody, dehiscing with a lid, or inde- 
 hiscent ; leaves scattered, without oil-glands ; stamens indefinite. This tribe is 
 sometimes regarded as a distinct order, LECYTHIDACE.E. 
 
 Bertholletia excelsa grows in tropical America ; its seeds are known as 
 Brazil nuts. 
 
632 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Tribe 5. Granatece. Fruit resembling a pome ^ leaves opposite, without oil- 
 glauds. This tribe is sometimes regarded as a distinct order, PUNICACE^. 
 
 Panica Granatum, the Pomegranate, grows in Southern Europe ; flowers 
 5-8-merous ; receptacle petaloid ; stamens indefinite ; in the ovary there are two 
 whorls of loculi, an external superior of which the loculi are as numerous as 
 and are opposite to the petals, and an internal inferior consisting of three loculi. 
 
 Order 5. RHIZOPHORACEJ;. Tropical trees with aerial roots, 
 known as Mangroves : the seed germinates in the fruit whilst it is 
 still attached to the tree; when the projecting radicle has attained 
 a length of one or two feet, either the whole fruit drops off, or only 
 the radicle (incl. hypocotyl) ; in either case the pointed free end 
 of the radicle sticks firmly in the mud on which the Mangroves 
 grow. 
 
 The principal genera are Khizophora, Bruguiera, Carallia. 
 
 Cohort IV. Resales. Flowers actinomorphic or zygomorphic, 
 usually ambisporangiate and perigynous : stamens rarely fewer in 
 number than the petals or equal to them, generally indefinite in 
 numerous whorls : gynseceum more or less completely apocarpous : 
 ovules anatropous, suspended or erecfc : seed generally without 
 endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. ROSACES. Flowers actinomorphic, rarely zygomorphic, 
 perigynous : gynaeceum generally apocarpous ; carpels l-oo ; ovules 
 1 or few, anatropous : fruit various ; seed generally without 
 endosperm : leaves scattered, stipulate ; the odd sepal is posterior. 
 
 Tribe 1. Rosece. Carpels numerous, attached to the base and sides of the 
 hollow receptacle, which is narrow above (Fig. 433 0) ; each contains a single 
 suspended ovule ; when ripe, they are achenes enclosed in the fleshy receptacle : 
 the sepals are frequently persistent at the top of it. Shrubs with imparipinnate 
 leaves; the stipules are adnate to the petiole (see Fig. 316j. 
 
 Many species of Kosa, the Eose, are wild, such as R. arvensis, canina, and 
 rubiginosa (Sweet-Briar or Eglantine) ; and many others are cultivated, as R. 
 centifolia, darnascena, indica, galllca, etc. 
 
 Tribe 2. Spiraea. Carpels usually 5, each containing two or more suspended 
 ovules ; they are inserted upon the floor of the flat open receptacle, and become 
 follicles ; the calyx is persistent till the fruit is ripe. 
 
 Spiraea Ulmaria, Meadow-sweet, andS. Filipendula, Dropwort, occur in woods, 
 meadows, etc. ; Sp. sorbifolia, media, ulmifolia, and other species, Kerria 
 japonica, and Rhodotypus (with drupes), are ornamental shrubs. 
 
 Tribe 3. Prunece. The single carpel, containing two suspended ovules, is 
 inserted on the floor of the receptacle (Figs. 433 A and 434 A) ; the receptacle 
 and the calyx fall off when the fruit is ripe : stamens usually in three whorls 
 of 5 or 10 ; fruit a drupe (Fig. 341) ; only one seed is usually present. 
 
 Prunus is the principal genus of the tribe. In the sub-genus Amygdalus the 
 fruit has a furrowed coriaceous endocarp ; Prunus Amygdalus (A. communis), 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ] : CALYCIFLORJ3. 
 
 638 
 
 the Almond-tree, and nana, are trees of Southern Europe ; P. Persica is the 
 Peach : in the sub- genus Prunophora, the fruit has a smooth stony endocarp; 
 P. communis (spinosa) is the Sloe or Blackthorn ; P. Armeniaca is the Apricot ; 
 P. domestica is the Wild Plum, it has an ovoid fruit and glabrous shoots ; P. 
 imititia is the Bullace, it has a globoid fruit and hirsute shoots : in the sub- 
 genus Cerasus, P. Cerasus, the Dwarf or Morello Cherry, has foliage-leaves at the 
 
 A 
 
 FIG. 433. Diagrammatic longitudinal sections of Rosaceous flowers. A Prunes;. 
 B Potentilleae. C Rosese. D Pomeae : fc calyx ; c corolla; /ovaries ; n stigmata. 
 
 base of its umbellate inflorescences; P. Avium, the Wild Cherry or Gean, has 
 only scales at the base of its inflorescences : in the sub-genus Laurocerasus, 
 P. Mahaleb, the Damson, has fragrant bark; P. Padus, the B rd- Cherry, has 
 elongated racemose inflorescences ; P. Laurocerasu.t,the Cherry-Laurel, has ever- 
 green leaves which somewhat resemble those of the true Laurel ; P. lusitanica 
 is the Portugal Laurel. 
 
 Tribe 4. Poteriea. Flowers often monosporangiate : corolla often absent : 
 ovaries few, often but one, monomerous, enclosed in the cavity of the receptacle 
 which hardens as the seed ripens : ovules solitary, suspended. 
 
 The genus Alchemilla has tetramerous flowers destitute of a corolla, the 
 stamens (4 or fewer) alternate with the sepals ; an epicalyx is present : A. 
 vulgar is, the Lady's Mantle, and A. arvensis, are common. In the genus Pote- 
 rium, the flowers of the sub-genus Sanguisorba (P. ojjicinale, the great Burnet), 
 have no corolla, the four stamens are opposite the sepals, and they have no 
 epicalyx : the flowers of the sub-genus Poterium (P. Sanguiaoiba, the Salad 
 Burned) , resemble those of the pre- 
 ceding, but the stamens are in- 
 definite, and they are polygamous. 
 The flower of Agrimonia is penta- 
 merous ; it has a corolla and in- 
 definite stamens ; the outer surface 
 of the receptacle is beset with 
 bristles. 
 
 TribeS. Potentillea. The ovaries, 
 which are numerous, are inserted 
 upon a prolongation of the axis into 
 the cavity of the receptacle (Figs. 
 
 433 B and 434 B) ; each usually con- 
 tains one ovule. The calyx is often 
 
 FIG. 434. 4 Flower of the Cherry: s pe- 
 duncle ; c corolla ; n stamens ; g style, pro- 
 jecting out of the cavity of the receptacle. B 
 Fruit of the Blackberry, Rubus fruticosus: 
 it calyx ; / fleshy ovaries. 
 
634 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 surrounded by an epicalyx formed by the connate stipules of the sepals (F ; g. 
 330 C). The stamens are usually indefinite, each whorl consisting of as many 
 or twice as many stamens as there are petals. These flowers are distinguished 
 from those of the Ranunculaceae, which they somewhat resemble, by the whorled 
 arrangement of the stamens and by the presence of the hollow receptacle ; 
 for in Kanunculaceous flowers the stamens are arranged spirally and the sepals 
 are quite free. 
 
 Of the genus Potentilla, the Cinquefoil, which has dry fruits and a dry 
 receptacle, many species are common, such as P. anserina, the Silver-weed, 
 reptans, Tormentilla, and others: the sub-genus Sibbaldia includes the species 
 P. procumbent, which is found on Scottish mountains : the sub-genus Comarum 
 includes the species P. Comarum,tlae Marsh Cinquefoil. Fragaria is the Strawberry; 
 the receptacle becomes succulent as the fruit ripens and bears the small achenes 
 on its surface; F. vesca and elatior are found in woods ; F. virginiana and other 
 North American species are cultivated. In the genus Eubus there is no 
 epicalyx, the ovary contains two ovules, and the fruits are succulent (drupels) ; 
 Eubus Idceus is the Raspberry ; its fruits separate from the dry receptacle when 
 they are ripe : in R. fruticosus, the Blackberry, and E. ccesius, the Dewberry, 
 the upper part of the receptacle separates together with the fruits when ripe. 
 Dryas octopetala, the Mountain Avens (without epicalyx) is a procumbent 
 alpine shrub with an oval long-tailed fruit (resembling that of Clematis Vitalba). 
 An epicalyx is present in most species of Geum : Geum urbanum and rivale 
 (Avens) occur in woods and damp fields ; the long style is hooked. 
 
 Tribe 6. Pomece. Ovaries five or fewer, contained in the cavity of the 
 receptacle, connate, and adnate to the wall of the receptacle (Fig. 433 D). The 
 spurious fruit is surmounted by the calyx. The individual fruits either become 
 hard and are like small drupes imbedded in the fleshy receptacle, or they have 
 only a thin wall, so that they are more like capsules and seem to be loculi of the 
 whole fruit, as in the apple for instance, where the succulent portion is derived 
 from the receptacle, and the core consists of the Iruits enclosing the seeds. 
 which are basal, generally two in each carpel. Stamens indefinite : no epicalyx, 
 Shrubs or trees with deciduous stipules. 
 
 I. With stony fruits. 
 
 In the genus Cotoneaster, the fruits project above the receptacle : in Cratae- 
 gus, the Hawthorn, they are completely enclosed ; C. Oxyacantha, the May, and 
 its var. monogyna, the common White Thorn, are common ; other species from 
 the East and from North America are cultivated : Mespilus, the Medlar, has a 
 large fruit which is surmounted by the five large sepals. 
 
 II. With coriaceous fruits. 
 
 The genus Cydonia, the Quince, has numerous ovules on the ventral suture of 
 each carpel ; the outer layers of cells of the testa are mucilaginous. The genus 
 Pyrus has two basal ovules: P.communis and others are the Pear-trees ; the 
 loculi of the spurious fruit, seen in transverse section, are rounded towards the 
 exterior ; the fruit is not hollowed at the base : the sub-genus Malus includes 
 P. Malus and others, the Apple-trees ; the fruit is hollowed at the base, and 
 the loculi, seen in transverse section, are pointed towards the exterior : the sub- 
 genus Sorbus resembles the preceding, but has pinnatifid leaves ; it includes 
 P. Aucuparia, the Mountain Ash or Rowan-tree, as also P. domestica, the 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ) : CALYCIFLORJ). 635 
 
 true Service-Tree, and P. torminalis, the Wild Service-Tree : the sub-genus 
 Aria, includes P. Aria, the White Beam. The genus Amelanchier includes 
 the European A. vulgaris, and A. canadensis, the June Berry. The genera 
 Kaphiolepis and Photinia (incl. Eriobotrya, the Loquat), include well-known 
 cultivated flowering shrubs. 
 
 There are two other tribes of exotic Bosaceae, the Quillaieas, and the Chryso- 
 balaneas, concerning which it is impossible to go into detail ; in the latter the 
 gynasceum, which is monomerous as in the Prune, is peculiar in that the 
 style is gynobasic ; and in some of the genera (Hirtellinae), the flower is 
 irregular and zygomorphic. 
 
 Order 2. LEGUMINOSJ:. Flowers usually dorsiventral, perigy- 
 nous. pentamerous, with calyx arid corolla : stamens ten or more : 
 ovary of a single anterior carpel ; ovules borne on the ventral 
 suture: fruit a legume or a lomenturn: flowers always lateral: 
 leaves nearly always compound. 
 
 The Leguminosae, more particularly the Papilioneas, are remarkable physi- 
 ologically by the presence of tubercles on their roots, caused by^thejtttack .of a 
 Fungus, and by their extraordinary faculty of flourishing in soils poor in com- 
 bined nitrogen : these two facts are un- 
 doubtedly correlated, but the exact nature 
 of the correlation is still a matter of dis- 
 cussion (see Part IV.). 
 
 Sub-order 1. PAPILIONE^E. Flowers dorsi- 
 ventral, papilionaceous (Fig. 327 A). The 
 five sepals, the odd one being anterior, are 
 usually connate, forming a tube above the 
 insertion of the corolla and the androecium : 
 the five lobes are usually unequal and 
 
 sometimes form two lips, the lower of three 
 
 FIG. 435. Flower of Lotus cwnicu- 
 and the upper of two teeth : petals five, latus ( 80mewbat mag . )> A with one 
 
 alternate with the sepals, imbricate so that a la removed ; k calyx; fa vexillum; 
 the anterior petals are overlapped by those jiala; s carina. B With the corolla 
 behind them ; the posterior petal is much removed ; r tube formed by the nine 
 
 enlarged, and is called the vexillum (Fig. stame s ' ' the free 8tamen an ' 
 
 ther ; n stigma. 
 435 A fa) ; the two lateral petals, which 
 
 are much smaller, are termed the ala (Fig 435 A, fl) ; the two anterior petals 
 are connate or sometimes simply apposed, and form a hollow boat-shaped body, 
 the keel, or carina (Fig. 435 A, s). In a few cases the corolla is entirely or 
 partially suppressed ; thus in Amorpha, only the vexillum is present. The ten 
 stamens belong to a single whorl, with direct diplostemony ; they are either 
 connate and monadelphous, forming a tube, or the posterior stamen may be free, 
 so that the tube consists of nine stamens, and is incomplete posteriorly (Fig. 435 
 J5), in which case the androecium is diadelphous (9-1) ; rarely the stamens are 
 all free ; they mostly curve upwards, and diminish in length from in front back- 
 wards. The ovary, enclosed by the staminal tube, consists of a solitary anterior 
 carpel ; it is often diuded into chambers by a spurious longitudinal septum, or 
 
636 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 by transverse septa into several chambers. The fruit is usually a legume or a 
 lomentum (Fig. 342 A), rarely one-seeded and indehiscent : the seed frequently 
 contains scanty endosperm. The flowers are solitary and axillary, or in 
 racemes. The leaves are only rarely entire, usually palmately or pinnately 
 compound, with often large stipules (Fig. 28 C), which are sometimes spines 
 (Kobinia). 
 
 Tribe 1. Sophorece. Stamens all free : leaves usually compound pinnate : 
 trees or shrubs. Species of Sophora, Cladrastis, and Virgilia, are cultivated. 
 
 Tribe 2. Podalyriece. Stamens all free : leaves usually simple or ternate 
 shrubs or herbs. Species of Baptisia and Thermopsis are cultivated as herbace- 
 ous plants in gardens. 
 
 Tribe 3. Genistecs. Stamens usually monadelphous : leaves simple or com- 
 pound ternate. 
 
 In Ulex, the Whin, Gorse or Furze, Genista the Green-weed, Cytisus (Saroth- 
 amnus) the Broom, andLupinus, the stamens are monadelphous; in Genista the 
 leaves are simple ; in Cytisus the leaves are ternate ; in Ulex the leaves are 
 ternate in seedlings, but in mature plants they are scaly or spinous ; inLupinus 
 the leaves are palmately compound. Cytuus Laburnum is a well-known flower- 
 ing tree. 
 
 Tribe 4. Trifoliea. The posterior stamen is usually free; leives ternate, 
 and leaflets with serrate margins. 
 
 In Medicago (Medick). Melilotus, and Trifolium, the stamens are diadelphous : 
 in Ononis, the Eest-harrow, they are monadelphous. Trifolium is the Clover : 
 the stamens are partially adnate to the corolla ; the withered corolla persists 
 and encloses the small legume : flowers in capitulaj T. pratense, the Eed 
 Clover, T. repens, the White Clover, and T. liybridum, the Alsike Clover, which 
 are common in meadows, and T. incarnatum, from the East, are cultivated. 
 Medicago has usually a spirally-wound legume, and a deciduous corolla ; M. 
 falcata and lupulina are common ; M. saliva, Lucerne, is cultivated. Melilotug 
 (Melilot) has a globular legume ; M. alba and altissima are common on the 
 banks of streams. Trigonella is the Fenugreek. 
 
 Tribe 5. Lotece. Stamens diadelphous, the posterior stamen being free : 
 leaves pinnate ; leaflets sessile, entire. 
 
 Lotu* corniculatus, the Bird's-foot Trefoil, with a beaked carina and nearly 
 straight legume, is common in meadows. In Anthyllis, the Kidney-Vetch, the 
 stamens are monadelphous at first, the posterior stamen becoming more or less 
 separate: Anthyllis Vulneraria, Ladies' Fingers or Wouudwort, is common in 
 dry pastures. 
 
 Tribe 6. Galegece. Stamens diadelphous : leaves multijugate imparipinnate ; 
 leaflets stalked. 
 
 Indigofera tinctoria, in the East Indies, produces Indigo. Glycyrrhiza is the 
 Liquorice. Colutea, the Bladder Senna, has an inflated fruit : C. arborescens 
 and various species of Caragana are cultivated as ornamental plants. Robinia 
 Pseu'lacacia, the false Acacia, is a native of North America, but it has become 
 naturalized. Amorpha fruticosa is a common shrub from North America. 
 Astragalus has a legume with a spurious longitudinal dissepiment : very many 
 species of it occur, especially in the East. 
 
 Tribe 7. Hedyare<e. Leaves imparipinnate ; stamens diadelphous : fruit a 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : POLYPETALJ] : CALYCIFLOR^. 637 
 
 lomentum, with transverse septa, dividing into segments. Cotyledons leafy, 
 epigaeal. 
 
 Hippocrepis, the Horse-shoe Vetch, and Coronilla are common in meadows ; 
 Onobrychis sativa, the Sainfoin, is cultivated. Arachis hypogcea, the Earth- 
 Almond or Ground-Nut of tropical America, ripens its fruits in the earth. 
 Desmodium gyrans, the Telegraph-plant, has motile leaflets. 
 
 Tribe 8. Viciea. Stamens diadelphous : legume unilocular; cotyledons 
 hypogean; leaves paripinnate and usually cirrhose (see Fig. 28 C). 
 
 Vicia sativa, the Vetch, and V. Faba, the Bean, are cultivated : other species 
 occur wild. Pisum sativum and arvense, the Pea, are cultivated. Lens esculenta, 
 the Lentil, belongs to Southern Europe. Various species of Lathyrus (incl. 
 Orobus) occur wild in woods : L. odoratus and others are cultivated. 
 
 Tribe 9. Phaseolece, Stamens diadelphous : legume unilocular ; cotyledons 
 usually epigean, but not leafy : leaves usually imparipinnate, frequently ternate. 
 Mostly climbing plants with twining stems. 
 
 Phaseolus vulgaris, the French Bean, and P. multiflorus, the Scarlet Eunner, 
 are cultivated. Wistaria (Glycine) chinensis is an ornamental climber. Phy- 
 sostigma is the Calabar 
 
 FI&. 437. Flower of an 
 
 Fro. 436. Flower of a Cassia j Acacia (mag.): k calyx; c 
 
 fcculyx; c corolla ; a stamens; a' corolla; st stamens, with 
 
 the central shorter ones ; / ovary. (an) anthers ; n stigma. 
 
 Tribe 10. r>albergie<z. Stamens mono- or dia-delphous : legume indehi scent ; 
 cotyledons fleshy. 
 
 Pterocarpus. Dipteryx odorata, the Tonka Bean of South America, contains 
 coumarin in the seed. 
 
 Sub-order 2. C^ESALPINIEJE. Flower dorsiventral, but not papilionaceous 
 (Fig. 327 B and Fig. 436) ; petals imbricate so that the posterior petal is 
 overlapped by those anterior to it ; stamens ten or fewer, free, more rarely 
 connate : the legume is frequently divided by transverse septa, and is in- 
 dehiscent : flowers in panicles or racemes : seeds often albuminous. 
 
 Gleditschia triacanthos and other species are culivated for ornament. Cercis 
 Siliquastrum, the Judas tree, has rounded leaves. The wood of Ccesalpinia 
 braziliensis is known as Pernambuco or Brazil wood. Hsematoxylcn, Cassia, 
 Bauhinia, Tamarindus, and Ceratonia (C. Siliqua, the Carob-tree) are other 
 well-known genera. 
 
 Sub-order 3. MIMOSE^E. Flowers regular; petals with valvate aestivation 
 
638 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 (see Fig. 321) : stamens ten, rarely fewer, frequently very numerous, free 
 (Fig. 437), usually much longer than the perianth : legume sometimes divided 
 by transverse septa : seed rarely albuminous : flowers usually grouped in spikes 
 or capitula. 
 
 Mimosa pudica, the Sensitive Plant, has irritable leaves. Species of Acacia 
 are numerous in Africa, Asia, and Australia. In the Australian species the 
 leaves are represented by flattened petioles (phyllodes, p. 49) which are extended 
 in the median plane. 
 
 Order 3. PLATANACEJJ. Trees, with diclinous flowers in 
 capitula borne laterally on pendulous branches; flower perigynous, 
 perianth differentiated into calyx and corolla, 3-4-merous : andrce- 
 cium of but few stamens : gyneeceum apocarpous ; each ovary 
 contains usually a single ovule, and developes into a caryopsis ; seed 
 suspended, orthotropous, with but little endosperm: leaves 
 
 scattered, with persistent sheathing 
 
 stipules. 
 
 Platanus occidentalism from North America, 
 with three-lobed leaves, and P. orientalis, from 
 the East, with usually five-lobed leaves, which 
 are often cuneiform at the base, are frequently 
 cultivated (especially the former). The smooth 
 bark, which is shed in flakes, is very character- 
 istic (p. 212). The Plane may be at once dis- 
 tinguished from the Maples, which resemble it a 
 good deal in the form of the leaf, by the scattered 
 Ei G .438. ? flower of Platanus arraugeme nt of the leaves, 
 (mag.). 
 
 Cohort Y. Saxifragales. Flowers generally ambisporangiate 
 and actinomorphic ; hypogynous, perigynous or epigynous ; en- 
 cyclic ; stamens usually in two whorls, with obdiplostemony ; 
 ovary generally syncarpous, multilocular, with more than one style 
 or stigma ; ovules usually numerous in each loculus ; seed with 
 or without endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. SAXIFRAGACEJ:. Flowers usually 4-5-merous, epigy- 
 nous or perigynous, completely actinomorphic only when there are 
 five carpels: stamens usually in two whorls; carpels less numer- 
 ous, usually connate below and free above ; seeds numerous, 
 containing endosperm. 
 
 Tribe 1. Saxifrageae. Flowers perigynous or epigynous, regular, but 
 generally zygomorphic in consequence of oligomery in the gynseceum : petals 
 with imbricate aestivation, sometimes suppressed : two whorls of stamens, but 
 one or other of the whorls is suppressed in some genera and species : carpels 
 
DICOTTLEDONES : POLYPETALJ1 : CALYCIFLORJ;. 
 
 639 
 
 usually two, diverging above (Fig. 335 D) : inflorescence of racemose cymes : 
 fruit a capsule : leaves alternate. 
 
 The British genera are Saxifraga and Chrysosplenium : Saxifraga has an 
 oblique bilocular ovary, and the flower is consequently obliquely zygomorphie 
 (Fig. 324 C) ; the receptacle invests the lower connate portion of the ovary : 
 many species occur in mountainous districts, and in several of them there is a 
 deposit of carbonate of lime on the margins of the leaves (see Fig. 100, p. 139) ; 
 only a few species, such as S. tridactylites and granulata, occur in the plains : 
 Chrysosplenium, the Golden Saxifrage, has a tetramerous flower destitute of a 
 corolla ; they are small plants, somewhat resembling a Euphorbia, occurring in 
 damp places. Among the more familiar cultivated genera are Astilbe (Hoteia), 
 Eodgersia, Bergenia (Fig. 439), Tiarella, Heuchera, etc. 
 
 Tribe 2. Parnassieae. Flowers perigynous, often actinomorphic ; the five 
 stamens opposite to the petals are transformed into glandular staminodes ; 
 
 FiG. 431).- Longitudinal section of the 
 ovary of Bergenia : g style ; n stigmata j 
 p plttcentee (mag.). (After Sachs.) 
 
 FIG. 410. Floral dia.gram of Parnassia ; 
 but the whorl of antipetalous staminodes 
 should be represented as external to the 
 whorl of stamens. 
 
 petals with imbricate aestivation : ovary 4-5-merous, unilocular : fruit a loculi- 
 cidal capsule : leaves alternate, 
 
 Parnassia palustris, Grass of Parnassus, has a whorl of radical leaves, and 
 terminal and lateral peduncles each bearing a single flower and adnate to a 
 bracteole : it is frequently found in damp localities. 
 
 Tribe 3. Hydrangece. Flowers epigynous, actinomorphic, obdiplostemonous : 
 petals with valvate aestivation : carpels 3-5 : shrubs with opposite leaves. 
 
 Hydrangea hortensis is a well-known garden plant. The inflorescence is an 
 umbellate panicle, the marginal flowers of which (in cultivated plants all of 
 them) are sterile, having a very much enlarged calyx, and either no stamens or 
 only the whorl of stamens opposite to the sepals. 
 
 Tribe 4. Philadelphece. Flowers epigynous, actinomorphic, 4-5-merous : 
 stamens in two whorls but not obdiplostemonous, or indefinite : petals with 
 various aestivation : fruit a capsule : shrubs with opposite leaves. 
 
 Philadelphus coronarius (called Syringa or Mock Orange) has sweetly- scented 
 tetramerous flowers. Deutzia scabra, crenata, and others are cultivated. 
 
 V. S. B. T T 
 
640 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Tribe 5. Pibesiece. Flowers epigynous, incompletely actinomorphic, penta- 
 merous : stamens five, opposite to the sepals ; carpels usually two, usually 
 median, sometimes lateral (Fig. 324B) : fruit a berry : leaves scattered : inflo- 
 rescence racemose. Shrubs. 
 
 Several species of Ribes, the Currant, are cultivated : R. rubrum is the Bed 
 Currant ; R. nigrum, the Black Currant ; R. Grossularia, the Gooseberry : the 
 spines of the last species are developed from the pulvinus. 
 
 Various species of Escallonia are cultivated as ornamental flowering shrubs. 
 
 Order 2. CKASSULACE.S. Formula JCn, On, ) An + n, On, where 
 n = 3 30: flowers actinomorphic, perigynous or hypogynous, 
 with two (rarely one) whorls of stamens : gynaeceum, generally 
 completely apocarpous ; carpels opposite to the petals, with a scale 
 (disc), external to each carpel : ovules numerous, marginal : fruit 
 
 St 
 
 Fio. 411. Flower of Eibes (mng.): 8 FIG. 412. Flower of Sedum acre ( x 3). 
 
 pedicel; fc calyx; c corolla ; st stamens ; 
 b disc ; g styles. 
 
 a follicle : seed with endosperm : inflorescence usually cymose. 
 Plants with entire fleshy leaves, arranged spirally, often in rosettes. 
 
 The genus Sedum has usually pentamerous flowers ; Sediim acre, the Stone- 
 crop, is common on walls and rocks ; S. Rhodiola has dioecious flowers (see 
 Fig. 318). S. Telephium, the Orpine and others are common. The genus Sem- 
 pervivumhas at least 6-merous flowers; S. Tectorum, the Houseleek, and other 
 species, as also species of Echeveria, Crassula, etc., are frequently cultivated. 
 Tilla3a has usually tetramerous flowers without the hypocarpellary scales. 
 
 Order 3. CEPHALOTACE.S. Flowers apetalous, perigynous, 6- 
 merous : stamens in two whorls: gynseceum of six apocarpous 
 carpels, each containing a single basal ovule. 
 
 This order consists of the Australian genus Cephalotus, with the single 
 species C. follicularis : the lower of the tuft of radical leaves are pitchered and 
 have lids. 
 
 Order 4. PITTOSPORACE^]. Flowers hypogynous: stamens five, 
 antisepalous : carpels 2-5, ovary syncarpous, uni- or multi-locular, 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETALJ3. 641 
 
 with parietal or axile placentation : ovules numerous : seed with 
 endosperm. Shrubs with simple exstipulate leaves, and schizo- 
 genous resin-ducts. 
 
 Pittosporum Tobira, undulatunt, crassifolium, are ornamental shrubs from 
 Australia. 
 
 Order 5. HAMAMELIDACEJS. Flowers frequently diclinous and 
 apetalous, 4-5-merous, perigynous, or nearly epigynous : stamens 
 typically in two whorls, but one or other of the whorls is fre- 
 quently suppressed : ovary usually bilocular : leaves stipulate. 
 
 Hamamelis virginica, the Witch-Hazel, is an ornamental shrub from North 
 America, the leaves of which somewhat resemble those of the Hazel. Other 
 well-known shrubs are Parrotia, Liquidambar, etc. 
 
 Order 6. PODOSTEMACE.E. Small aquatic plants: flowers some- 
 times diclinous or dioecious: perianth generally much reduced, and 
 sometimes completely suppressed : stamens one or many, some- 
 times monadelphous : ovary superior, 1- 2- or 3-locular : seeds 
 many. 
 
 A very remarkable group of plants, growing on stones, etc., in swiftly flowing 
 streams and rivers of the tropics : so complete is their adaptation to their en- 
 vironment that they have more or less completely assumed the general habit 
 and appearance of Lichens, Algee, Mosses, and Liverworts. 
 
 SUB-CLASS II. GAMOPETAL^J. 
 
 Flowers usually ambisporangiate : perianth differentiated into 
 calyx ond corolla; calyx usually gamosepalous ; corolla generally 
 gamopetalous, in some cases suppressed: ovary usually syncarpous. 
 
 SERIES I. HYPOGYN^). 
 
 Ovary superior (except in Vacciniaceae) : stamens epipetalous, 
 or free and hypogynous. 
 
 Cohort I. Lamiaies. Flower pentamerous, usually dorsiven- 
 tral: the formula is generally ^ K (5) (G (5) A 5) G ; corolla 
 usually bilabiate, the two posterior petals being connate and. 
 forming a frequently helmet-shaped (.gale&te) projecting upper 
 lip; the anterior petal, with the two lateral petals, forming the 
 under lip : stamens epipetalous ; the posterior stamen is usually 
 suppressed or is a staminode ; the two lateral stamens are generally 
 shorter than the two anterior ones, so that the flower is didynam- 
 
642 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 ous: the two median carpels form a usually bilocular ovary which 
 sometimes becomes sub-divided into four loculi : leaves scattered, 
 or opposite decussate exstipulate : the leafy shoots have no ter- 
 minal flower. 
 
 Order 1. LABIATE. Stamens four, didynamous (Fig. 443 5); 
 rarely, as in Salvia and its allies, only the two anterior stamens are 
 developed : the bicarpellary ovary becomes subdivided by spurious 
 dissepiments into four loculi (see Fig. 450 C), which part, as the 
 
 seed ripens, into four 
 nutlets (Fig. 443 C) ; 
 style gynobasic : the 
 ovule in each loculus 
 is solitary and erect: 
 seed without endo- 
 sperm. Herbs with 
 decussate leaves and 
 quadrangular stem. 
 The flowers are dis- 
 posed apparently in 
 whorls round the 
 stem, but the inflor- 
 
 Fm.443. ^Flower of Lamium, side view :fc calyx ;o egcence is in fact 
 upper; u under lip. B Flower of Leouurns opened : o 
 
 upper : u divided under lip ; s lateral lobes of the corolla ; made up of compound 
 
 //short, //long stamens (mag.). C Gynseceum ; n 4- cymes or dichasia, 
 
 lobed ovary; g style (mag.). J . 
 
 termed verticiilasters, 
 developed in the axil of each of the two opposite leaves. 
 
 Tribe 1. Ocimoidece. Stamens 4, descending. 
 
 Oeimum basilicum, the Sweet Basil, from India, and Lavandula, the Laven- 
 der from Southern Europe, are cultivated as pot-herbs : several species of Coleus 
 are cultivated. 
 
 Tribe 2. Menthoidece. Stamens 4, equal, ascending, divergent : corolla 
 almost regular, 4- or 5-lobed. 
 
 Many species of Mentha, Mint, are common. Pogostemon Patchouli yields 
 oil of Patchouli. Lycopus has only 2 fertile stamens, the two posterior ones 
 being abortive. 
 
 Tribe 3. Satureinea. Stamens 4, with broad connective, ascending, either 
 almost equal (Thymus, Origanum), or didynamous and remote at base, con- 
 niving under the upper lip. 
 
 Origanum vulgare is the Wild Marjoram ; the Sweet Marjoram which is cul- 
 tivated is an exotic species. Tliyinus Serpyllum is the wild Thyme ; the garden 
 Thyme is T. vulgaris, from Southern Europe. Satureia hoitensis (exotic) is the 
 Summer Savory. Various species of Calamintha (stamens not divergent) are com- 
 mon, such as C. arvensis, the Common Basil, and C. Clinopodium, the Wild Basil. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETAUE. 643 
 
 Tribe 4. Melissinfte. Stamens 4, didynamous, with narrow connec'ive, re- 
 mote at base, conniving under upper lip. 
 
 Melissa officinalii, the Balm, and Hyssopus, the Hyssop, are cultivated as 
 pot-herbs. 
 
 '\ ribe 5. Monardece. Stamens 2, ascending : one theca of each antber is 
 either wanting or it is widely separated from the other (see Fig. 331(7). 
 
 Salvia verbenacea, the Wild Sage or Clary, is common. Rosmaiinus officin- 
 alis, the common Eosemary, is exotic. 
 
 Tribe 6. Nepetece. Stamens 4, didynamous, ascending, parallel ; the pos- 
 terior two are the longer. 
 
 Nepeta Cataria, the Catmint, occurs in hedges ; and Nepeta Glechoma, the 
 Grouud Ivy, is very common. 
 
 Tribe 7. Stadiydece. Stamens 4, didynamous, ascending, parallel; the 
 anterior two are the longer : upper lip of corolla usually arched (ringent). 
 
 Lamium album, the Dead-Nettie, and purpureum, are very common. Various 
 species of Galeopsis (Hemp-Nettle), Stacbys (Wound wort or Betony), Marrubium 
 (H rehound), r Ballota, Melittis, and Leonurus (Mother- wort) are found in 
 England. 
 
 Tribe 8. Scutellariea. Stamens 4, didynamous, ascending, parallel; calyx 
 closed when the fruit is ripe. 
 
 In the genus Scutellaria, the antbers of the anterior pair of stamens have but 
 one theca; S. galericulata, the common Skullcap, and S. minor, the Lesser 
 Skullcap, are common. In the genus Prunella each filament has a small 
 tooth below the anther : P. vulgaris is common. 
 
 Tribe 9. Ajuyoidfce. Stamens 4, didynamous, ascending, parallel ; the pos- 
 terior two are the shorter : upper lip of corolla very short. 
 
 Ajuga reptans, the Creeping Bugle, and Teucrium Scorodonia, the Wood 
 Germander, are common. 
 
 Order 2. VERBENACEJ;. Flower sometimes regular : stamens 
 four, didynamous, or two: ovary 1- or 2-locular, with two ovules 
 in each loculus, or spuriously 2- or 4-locular in consequence of the 
 presence of false dissepiments, with one ovule in each loculus : 
 endosperm small or absent : the fruit separates into 2-4 nutlets : 
 style terminal : leaves usually opposite. 
 
 Verbena ojficinali*, the Vervain, is common on waste ground and roadsides : 
 V. Aubletia is a common garden plant. Tectona grandis, the Teak-tree of the 
 East Indies, has a hard wood used in ship-building. Vitex Agnus castus, the 
 Chaste or Hemp-tree, is an ornamental cultivated shrub. 
 
 Order 3. GLOBULARIACEJ;. Stamens four, didynamous : ovary 
 unilocular, with one suspended ovule : style lateral : seed with en- 
 dosperm : leaves scattered : inflorescence capitulate. 
 
 Globularia vulgaris and cordifolia, with radical leaves, occur here and there in 
 dry places on the Continent. 
 
 Cohort II. Personales. Flowers pentamerous, usually dorsi- 
 ventral : stamens epipetalous: the posterior stamen is usually 
 
644 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 suppressed, or appears as a staminode : carpels 2, median : ovules 
 usually indefinite. 
 
 Order 1. SCKOPHULAEIACE^;. Ovary bilocular, with numerous 
 anatropous ovules borne on axile placentae : seed with endosperm : 
 stamens four, didydamous, often with a rudimentary fifth posterior 
 stamen (Fig. 445 B, st) ; sometimes only the two lateral stamens 
 are present ; rarely all five are fertile : corolla with imbricate 
 (cochlear) aestivation : general floral formula as in Lamiales. 
 
 Sub-order 1. PSEUDOSOLANE^E. Flower nearly regular : the two posterior 
 petals are external, the anterior internal : stamens usually 5 : leaves scattered. 
 The genus Celsia has only 4 stamens. In the British species of the genus 
 Verbascum, V. Thapsus, the great Mullein, has unequal stamens, the two 
 anterior being longer and glabrous, whilst the three posterior are short and 
 their filaments have white hairs ; the stamens are similarly unequal in V. virga- 
 tum and in V. Blattaria, but here the hairs are purple and are present (though 
 fewer) on the filaments of the long stamens : in V. Lychnitis, nig rum, and 
 pulverulentum tl>e stamens are all similar, the hairs being purple in V. nigium 
 and white in the two other species. 
 
 FIG. 414. Floral din grams, A of most Scrophulariacefe ; B of Veronica; Cof the Lenti- 
 bulariacese : o upper, u under lip. 
 
 Sub-order 2. ANTIRKHOIDE^;. Flowers irregular : corolla as in the preceding, 
 the two posterior petals forming the upper lip of the corolla : stamens 4 : leaves 
 opposite. Antirrhinum, the Snapdragon, has a projection on the lower lip of 
 the personate corolla, termed the palate ; the corolla is gibbous at the ba*e ; 
 stamens 4 (Fig. 445 A B): A. majus, the great Snapdragon, is a well-known 
 garden plant. Linaria has a spurred personate corolla ; stamens 4 : L. vuluaris, 
 the yellow Toad-Flax, is common in fields. In Gratiola the two anterior 
 stamens are represented by staminodes. Pauloicnia imperialis is an ornamental 
 flowering tree from Japan. Limosella (L. a^uat'ca, the Mudwort) has a sub- 
 cam panulate corolla with a short tube. Mimulus ( /. luteu*, the Yellow Monkey- 
 flower) has a subcampanulate corolla with a two-lipped limb ; the two lobes of 
 the stigma close together on being touched. Mnurandia and Ehodochiton are 
 genera of plants climbing by means of sensitive petioles. Many species of 
 Mimulus (Musk), Calceolaria, Chelone, and Pentstemon, are cultivated. 
 
 Sub-order 3. KHINANTHOIDE*:. Flower irregular: the two posterior petals 
 are overlapped by the lateral petals : stamens 4, or 2. Digitalis, the Foxglove, 
 
D1COTYLEDONES : GAMOPETALJJ. 
 
 645 
 
 has an obliquely campanulate (digitaliform) corolla ; stamens 4 : D. purpurea 
 is common in woods ; the yellow D. grandiftora is cultivated. Scrophularia 
 has a globose corolla; S. nodosa (Figwort) and S. aquatica are common. 
 Veronica, the Speedwell, has only the 2 postero-lateral stamens, and the two 
 lobes of the upper lip of the (rotate) corolla are united ; the posterior lobe of 
 the calyx is suppressed (Figs. 444 B, 445 C) : V. Anagallis and V. Beccalmnga, 
 are common in ditches ; V. arvensi*, agrestis, serpyllifolia, ChanMedrys, and 
 others in pastures and fields. Sibthorpia has a sub-rotate 5-8-fid corolla, 
 and four stamens ; S. europtea is the Cornish Moneywort. 
 
 Pedicularis, the Lousewort, has a 5-toothed calyx, and the upper lip of the 
 corolla is galeate : Euphrasia, the Eyebright, has a 4-toothed calyx, the upper 
 lip of the corolla has two spreading or reflexed lobes : Bartsia has a 4-toothed 
 calyx, upper lip of the ringent corolla entire or only notched : Ehinanthus, the 
 
 Pro. 445. Flowers of Scrophulariaeeee. A Antirrhinum : fc calyx ; r tube of the personate 
 corolla, gibbous at the base (/i); o upper, u under lip of the corolla; g prominence (palate) 
 of the under lip. B Upper lip of the same, seen from within: s the two longer anterior 
 stamens ; s' the short lateral ones ; st rudimentary posterior one. C Flower of Veronica : 
 Ic calyx ; u u u the three lobes of the lower lip of the rotate corolla : o the upper lip ; s s the 
 two stamens ; n stigma. 
 
 Eattle, has a four-toothed inflated calyx : Melampyrum, the Cow-Wheat, has a 
 4-toothed tubular calyx, and the capsule is few-seeded : all these plants possess 
 chlorophyll, but they are more or less parasitic upon the roots of other plants. 
 
 Order 2. PLANTAGINACEJJ. Flowers regular, isobilateral, and 
 apparently tetramerous, but the true interpretation of them is de- 
 duced from those of Veronica (Figs. 444 B and 446) : the posterior 
 sepal is suppressed, as also the posterior stamen ; the two posterior 
 petals cohere to form an upper lip which is quite similar to one of 
 the lobes of the three-lobed lower lip (Fig. 445 (7) : stamens four, 
 the two anterior not being suppressed : ovary dimerous, bilocular, 
 or sometimes unilocular or spuriously 4-locular : ovules solitary 
 and basal, or numerous : fruit a capsule with transverse dehis- 
 cence, or a nutlet : seed with endosperm. 
 
646 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Plantago lanceolata (Eibwort), major, media, the Plantains, are weeds 
 universally distributed. P. Coronopus, the Buck's-horn Plantain, and P. mari- 
 tima, grow in dry places and on sandy sea-shores. The leaves form a rosette 
 just above the root, and the long scapes spring from their axils, bearing simple 
 spikes (Fig. 446 a, d). In P. Cynops, Psyllium, and others, the main stem is 
 elongated : the testa of the seed is mucilaginous. In Littorella lacustris the 
 
 flowers are monoecious ; fruit 1- 
 seeded, indehiscent ; stamens hy- 
 pogynous : it grows on the bottom 
 in shallow waters. 
 
 Order 3. BIGNONIACE m. 
 Stamens generally four, di- 
 dynamous : ovary bilocular 
 or unilocular: seeds usually 
 winged, -without endosperm. 
 Woody plants ; frequently 
 climbers, by means of twin- 
 ing stems, or leaf-tendrils, or 
 roots (Tecoma). 
 
 FIG. 416. Flower of Plantago : a axis of the 
 inflorescence (scape) ; d bract ; fe calyx ; c cor- 
 olla ; st stamens; n stigma (mag.). In the dia- 
 gram, o is the upper, and u the under lip. 
 
 Catalpa bignonioides is an ornamental tree from North America : Bignonia, 
 Tecoma, and Eccremocarpus, are well-known cultivated climbers. 
 
 Order 4. ACANTHACEJI. Stamens four, didynamous (diagram 
 as in Fig. 444 A) : ovary bilocular : ovules few on projecting 
 placentae : seed without endosperm. Herbs. 
 
 Acanthus mollis and other species from Southern Europe, are ornamental 
 plants : Thunbergia and Euellia are commonly cultivated : Adhatoda, Justicia, 
 and others have only the two antero-lateral stamens (as in Fig. 444 C). 
 
 Order 5. GESNERACEJ:. Stamens usually four, didynamous, or 
 sometimes two only : ovary nnilocular, with numerous parietal 
 ovules: seed with, or without endosperm. Generally herbs with 
 opposite leaves. 
 
 Columnea, Gloxinia, Achimenes, Sinningia, Streptocarpus, and others, are 
 ornamental plants from tropical America : Ramondia inhabits the mountains 
 of Southern Europe. 
 
 Order 6. OROBANCHACEJE. Plants which are destitute of chlo- 
 rophyll, with scaly leaves, parasitic on the roots of other plants : 
 otherwise similar to the Gesneracese. 
 
 The commoner species of Broomrapes, occurring in Britain, are Orobanche 
 major and minor, parasitic on Leguminosae, elatior on the Greater Knap- 
 weed, HedertB on Ivy, ramosa on Hemp; mostly of a brownish or whitish 
 hue. Lathrcea Squamaria, the Greater Toothwort, is generally parasitic on 
 
D1COTYLEDONES : GAMOPETALJ!. 647 
 
 the roots of the Hazel : it is of a pale rose colour with slightly bluish flowers : 
 the subterranpan scaly leaves each form a kind of pitcher apparently for the pur- 
 pose of catching insects. 
 
 Order 7. LENTIBTJLARTACE/E. Only the two antero- lateral stamens 
 are developed (Fig. 444 C) : ovary unilocular : ovules numerous on 
 a free central placenta : seed without endosperm. 
 
 The numerous species of Utricularia are floating water-plants with finely 
 divided leaves bearing bladder-like appendages (modified leaflets) which serve to 
 catch small aquatic animals (Fig. 447). Pinguicula vulgaris and alpina (Batter- 
 worts) are small plants growing in damp places, with rosettes of radical leaves 
 which catch insects by their viscid secretion. 
 
 Cohort III. Polemoniales. Flowers generally regular, but 
 zygomorphic in consequence of oligomery in the gynseceum ; pen- 
 tamerous : stamens epipetalous : ovary of two, rarely five, carpels : 
 leaves usually scattered and 
 exstipulate : the inflorescence is 
 
 often cymose, with a terminal ^JBT^^X \S^te&^ ** 
 
 flower : formula K (5) ((7(5) A5) 
 G to (). 
 
 Order 1. CON VOLYULACE.E. 
 
 Usually two median carpels 
 forming a bilocular ovary, with 
 1-2 anatropous ovules in each FlG - 447.- Bladders of mncuiaria. A 
 
 , , ,, ii 11 Outside view : s pedicel ; o entrance ; i and 
 
 10CU1US : the corolla has usually fc bri8t i y appendages. B Section: a valve 
 a contorted aestivation, twisted opening inwards and preventing the exit of 
 
 to the right : fruit a septif ragal the im P ris(med 
 
 capsule, or a berry : seed with endosperm. Commonly plants 
 
 climbing by twining stems : with milky latex. 
 
 Convolvulus arvensis, the lesser Bindweed (Fig. 329 A), and Calystegia 
 Sepium, the larger Bindweed, the former with two small bracteoles, the latter 
 with two large bracteoles which invest the calyx, and C. Soldanella, the Sea- 
 Bindweed, are common wild plants. Batatas edulis is cultivated in tropical 
 America for its edible tuberous rhizome, the Sweet Potato. 
 
 The genus Cuscuta consists of parasites destitute of chlorophyll, with filiform 
 twining stems, which attach themselves to other plants by means of haustoria 
 (see p. 66), and derive their nourishment from them: the small flowers are 
 arranged in fascicles (Fig. 448 6) : the corolla has imbricate aestivation : fruit a 
 capsule with transverse dehiscence. 
 
 Cuscuta europaa, the greater Dodder, which occurs commonly on Nettles and 
 Hops, is widely distributed : C. Epilinum is the Flax Dodder, and C. Epithymum, 
 the lesser Dodder, occurs on various low-growing plants ; C. Trifolii attacka 
 Clover, which it often destroys. 
 
CAS 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Order 2. POLEMONIACEJ:. Ovary usually trimerous and trilo- 
 cular, with one erect or several oblique ovules in each loculus : 
 capsule loculicidal : teed with endosperm. Mostly herbs. 
 
 Polemonium cceruleum is Jacob's Ladder ; various species of Phlox and Gilia 
 are common garden plants. Cobaea is a genus of plan.s climbing by means 
 of leaf-tendrils. 
 
 Order 3. SOLANACEJB. Ovary usually consists of two obliquely 
 placed carpels (Fig. 324 />), bilocular, with numerous ovules in 
 each loculus; the axile placentae sometimes project so far into the 
 loculi that the ovary appears to be quadrilocular, as in Datura : 
 ovules campylotropous ; fruit a capsule with various dehiscence, or 
 a berry : seed with endosperm. Herbs, occasionally woody plants, 
 sometimes climbers by irritable petioles (e.g. species of Solanum) ; 
 without milky latex. Inflorescence cymose, but complicated by 
 
 B 
 
 FIG. 448. Stem of FlG. 449. .4 Upper portion of a flowering stem of Atropa 
 
 Cuscittaurop<Ea(s),with Belladonna. B Diagram of the same stem : 1 2 3 the 
 
 inflorescence (J>) twining flowers; a and /3 the bracteoles and bracts. From the 
 
 round a stem of Hop (ar). axils oi spring the new floral axes, along which the bract 
 
 /3 is displaced. 
 
 the displacement of the bracts: Fig. 449 B, for instance, is a 
 diagram of the inflorescence of Atropa ; the main axis which ter- 
 minates with the flower 1, bears a bracteole la and a lateral shoot 
 terminating in the flower 2 ; this springs from the axil of a bract 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETALJI. 649 
 
 1/2, which, however, is not inserted at the base of its axillary shoot 
 (the point of the arrow indicates its proper position), but is dis- 
 placed upwards until it is close under the bracteole 2a ; this 
 displacement is repeated throughout the whole system of the cyme, 
 so that in Atropa there are always two leaves below each flower, a 
 larger one (Fig. 449 A la, 2a, and so on) which is the bracteole of 
 the flower, and a smaller one (Fig. 449 A 0/3, 1(3, 2ft etc.,) which 
 is the bract from the axil of which the flowering-shoot springs. In 
 other of the Solaneas similar arrangements are found. Most plants 
 of this order are poisonous. 
 
 Tribe 1. S>>lanr<e. Fruit a berry : embryo curved. In the genus Solatium 
 the anthers are syngenesious : S. Dulcamara, the Bittersweet or Woody Night- 
 shade, has a blue flower, and S. nigrum has a white flower 7 both are common : 
 S. tuberosum is the Potato plant. Phy*alis Alkekengi, the Winter Cherry, has 
 an inflated red calyx which encloses the berry. Lycopersicum esculentum is 
 the Tomato. The fruits of Capsicum lonyum and annuum are known as Chili 
 Peppers. Atropa Belladonna is the Deadly Nightshade ; the anthers are not 
 syngenesious, and the corolla is campanulate ; the berries are black and very 
 poisonous. Lycium barbarum is a shrub belonging to Southern Europe 
 which has become wild in places in the North. Hyoscyamus niger is the 
 common Henbane : the capsule dehisces transversely (pyxidium). 
 
 Tribe 2. Daturece. Capsule almost quadrilocular in consequence of the 
 outgrowth of the placenta, 4-valved : embryo curved. Datura Stramonium is 
 the Thorn-apple. 
 
 Tribe 3. Cestrece. Embryo straight : all five stamens fertile. Nicotiana 
 Ta> acum is the Tobacco plant (Fig. 329 B) : Petunia is commonly cultivated 
 (Fig. 324 D) : Cestrum is a well-known genus of greenhouse shrubs. 
 
 Tribe 4. Salpiylotsidece. Embryo straight : stamens unequal, only 2 or 4 
 fertile. The tribe includes many cultivated herbaceous or shrubby plants, such 
 as Salpiglossis, Schizanthus, Browallia, Streptosolen. 
 
 Order 4. BORAGINACE^E. Ovary consisting of two median carpels, 
 spuriously quadrilocular in consequence of a constriction along 
 the dorsal suture of each carpel (Fig. 450 C, r) : the single style 
 usually arises from the incurved apices of the carpels (gynobasic), 
 and is surrounded at its base by the four loculi (Fig. 450 JB) : each 
 loculus contains a single suspended anatropous ovule : when the 
 fruit is ripe the loculi separate completely, and appear to be four 
 nutlets : seed without endosperm : the corolla usually has live scaly 
 ligular appendages at the junction of the limb with the tube (Fig. 
 450 A b) : inflorescence scorpioid (see p. 492), often very compli- 
 cated. Herbs or shrubs generally covered with harsh hairs and 
 only rarely glabrous, e.g. Myosotis palustris. 
 
650 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Sub-order 1. EHRETOIDE^E. Style at the apex of the ovary. 
 
 Heliotropium peruvianum, is a well-known garden plant with fragrant flowers. 
 
 Sub-order 2. BORAGINOIDE^. Style inserted between the four lobes of the 
 ovary (gynobasic). 
 
 Myosotis is the Scorpion-grass ; M. palustris, the Forget-me-not, occurs in 
 damp places, M. sylvatica in woods, and M. arvensis and others in fields. 
 Lithospermum arvense (Gromwell), L. officinale, Echium vulgare (Viper's Bu- 
 gloss), with an irregular flower, Syrnp)iytum officinale, the Comfrey, Lycopsis 
 arvensis (Common Bugloss), Cynoglossum officinale (Hound's-tongue), and Borago 
 officinalis, the Borage, are common. Anchusa officinalis, the Alkanet ; Mertensia 
 inaritima, the smooth Gromwell or Sea-Bugloss ; and Pulmonaria angustifolia, 
 the Lung- wort, are rare in Britain. 
 
 A t 
 
 FiG. 450. A Flower of Anchusa (slightly mag.): 
 fc calyx ; c corolla ; b the scaly appendages. B 
 Fruit of Myosotis (mag.) ; t the receptacle ; m m 
 the four achaenia ; g the gynobasic style. C Dia- 
 gram of the quadrilocular ovary in trans, section : 
 r the dorsal sutures ; pp the placenue; s the ovules 
 
 FIG. 451 . Corolla of Ery- 
 tlnrcea Centaurium spread out : 
 r tube ; s liinb ; a stamens. 
 
 Cohort IY. Gentianales. Flowers regular, zygomorphic in 
 consequence of oligomery in the gynseceum (see Fig. 324) : perianth 
 and androecium usually 4- or 5-merous : corolla with frequently 
 contorted aestivation (to the right) : stamens inserted on the tube 
 of the corolla : carpels two : leaves commonly decussate and exsti- 
 pulate : formula K (5) (C (5) A 5) G. 
 
 Order 1. GENTIANACEVE. Carpels perfectly connate, forming a 
 uni- or incompletely bi-locular ovary : ovules parietal, numerous, 
 anatropous : seed with endosperm. Usually herbs without milky 
 latex : leaves almost always entire. 
 
 Sub-order 1. GENTIANE.E. Leaves decussate : corolla with contorted aesti- 
 vation. 
 
 Gentiana (Fig. 324 E), the Gentian, has a bilobed stigma; it occurs in 
 mountainous districts. Erythraea has a capitate stigma ; E. Centaurium, the 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETALJ!. 
 
 651 
 
 common Centaury, is common in pastures (Fig. 451). Species of Cicendia and 
 Chlora also occur in Britain. 
 
 Sub-order 2. MENYANTHEJE. Leaves spiral : corolla with valvate aestivation. 
 
 Menyanthes trifoliata, the Buck-bean or Bog-bean, with ternate leaves, is 
 common in marshes (Fig. 324 F) : Villarsia nymphceoides (or Limnanthemum 
 peltatum) is found in ponds and rivers. 
 
 Order 2. LOGANIACE^. Corolla with usually valvate aestivation: 
 ovary usually bilocnlar, each loculus containing one or several 
 ovules : seed with endosperm (Fig. 295 A). Mostly trees with 
 opposite and usually exstipulate leaves ; some are climbers with 
 either twining stems (e.g. Fagraea, Grelsemium), or stem-tendrils 
 (species of Strychnos). 
 
 Semen Strychni, or Nux vomica, the seed of Strychnos Nux vomica, in the East 
 Indies, is extremely poisonous. The South American Indians poison their 
 arrows with a substance known as Curare, in the preparation of which the 
 cortex of species of Strychnos is used. 
 
 Order 3. APOCYNACE^;. Corolla with contorted aestivation. The 
 two carpels are usually connate only by their styles, which become 
 free as they ripen : seed usually devoid of endosperm. Herbs or 
 shrubs, sometimes climbers, with milky latex. 
 
 Tinea minor (see Fig. 324 A) and other species, the Periwinkles, are common 
 creeping plants, wild and in gardens. Nerium Oleander, an ornamental shrub, 
 and species of other genera (e.g. Allamanda, Landolphia, Amsonia, Dipladenia) 
 are often cultivated : Allamanda and Dipladenia include scrambling species, 
 climbing by means of hooks : Allamanda has a unilocular ovary with two 
 parietal placentae. 
 
 Order 4. ASCLEPIADACEJ;. 
 Corolla with usually imbri- 
 cate aestivation. The two 
 carpels usually form two dis- 
 tinct monomerous ovaries : 
 styles short, united into one 
 stigma : stamens connate, 
 forming a tube surrounding 
 the gynaeceum, having pouch- 
 shaped (Fig. 452 A B, t) and 
 spar-shaped (Fig. 452 A B, h) 
 appendages : anthers 2-4 
 locular ; the pollen of each 
 sac forms a mass (pollinium, see p. 434), and the masses of each 
 pair of contiguous sacs adhere (Fig. 452 (7, p, p) and are conveyed 
 
 FIG. 452. A Flower of Asclepias (mag.).- c 
 the reflexed corolla; n stigma; 7i the spurs, 
 the pouches, of the stamens. B A solitary sta- 
 men; a the anther. C Pollen -masses, p and p. 
 
652 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 by insects to the stigmata: ovules numerous, attached to the 
 ventral suture : seed usually without endosperm. Generally woody 
 plants, often climbers, with milky latex. 
 
 Asclepias syriaca and other species are grown in gardens. Stapelia has a 
 fleshy cactus-like stem. Hot/a carnosa, the Wax flower, Periploca grccca and 
 Ceropegia Gardner i, are cultivated climbing plants with twining stems. Dis* 
 chidia is a genus of epiphytic pitcher-plants. 
 
 Order 5. OLEACE^B. Calyx and corolla usually 4-merous, some- 
 times wanting ; stamens and carpels two, alternate : ovary bilo- 
 cular : ovules 2 in each loculus : fruit a capsule, a berry, a drupe, 
 or a samara: seeds 1-4, usually with endosperm: stem woody: 
 leaves always decussate. 
 
 Sub-order 1. OLEIN^. Fruit a berry or a drupe : seed suspended. 
 
 FIG. 453. A Flower of Froaunws Ornus (enlarged): fc calyx; c corolla; st stamens; 
 / ovary; n stigma. B $ -flower of Fraxinus excelsior, the common Ash; an anthers; 
 /ovary ; n stigma (enlarged). Floral diagram of the Oleacese. 
 
 Ligustrum has a baccate fruit ; L. vulgare, the Privet, is a common shrub. 
 Olea has a drupaceous fruit ; O. eurbpcea is the Olive-tree of the East and of 
 Southern Europe. Phillyrea, Osmanthus, and Chionanthus, are cultivated as 
 ornamental shrubs. 
 
 Sub -order 2. FRAXINE.E. Fruit a samara: seed suspended. 
 
 The genus Fraxinus has a winged fruit ; in F. excelsior, the common Ash, the 
 perianth is suppr ssed and the flowers are polygamous ; in F. Ornus, the Manna- 
 Ash of Southern Europe, the perianth is complete, and the corolla is deeply 
 cleft (Fig. 453 A). 
 
 Sub -order 3. SYRINGED. Fruit a loculicidal capsule : seed suspended. The 
 genus Syringa has a tubular corolla with a 4-lobed limb ; S. vulgaris is the Lilac : 
 Forsythia is a well-known shrub, having numerous seeds. 
 
 Sub-order 4. JASMINES. Fruit a constricted capsule or berry : ovules 
 ascending: seeds exalbuminous : calyx and corolla often 5-10-merous (see 
 Fig 320). 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETALS. 653 
 
 The flowers of Jasminum graidiflorum and other species belonging to 
 Southern Europe, contain a very fragrant ethereal oil. 
 
 Cohort V. Ebenales. Flowers actinomorphic, 4-8-merous ; 
 formula often JC(4) C(4) J4 + 4, G ( 2 t the outer (antisepalous) 
 stamens being sometimes suppressed : stamens epipetalous : carpels 
 opposite to the sepals : ovary multilocular, with one or two sus- 
 pended ovules in each loculus : fruit usually fleshy : seed usually 
 with endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. SAPOTACEJ:. Tropical trees with latex in sacs. 
 
 The latex of species of Palaquium, Isonandra, Mimusops, etc., constitutes 
 gutta-percha. 
 
 Order 2. EBENACEJ;. Trees ; flowers generally diclinous. 
 
 Diospyros Ebenum in the East Indies, and other species in different parts of 
 the world, yield the wood known as Ebony : D. Kaki, the Persimmon, has an 
 edible fruit. 
 
 Order 3. SlTRAOE^C. Flowers perigynous or epigynous : trees. 
 
 Gum Benzoin is the resin of Siyrax Benzoin in the East Indies : Halesia 
 tetraptera the Snowdrop-tree, is a shrub frequently cultivated. 
 
 Cohort VI. Primulales. Flowers actinomorphic, usually pen- 
 tamerous : formula K(6) (0(5) ^40 + 5) G&: stamens inserted on 
 the tube of the corolla and opposite to its lobes : gynseceum con- 
 sisting of five connate carpels which are opposite to the sepals ; 
 ovary unilocular, with a free central placenta or a single central 
 ovule : seed with endosperm. 
 
 Order 1. PRIMULACE^. Style single : ovules indefinite, on a free 
 central placenta (Fig. 338 G) : the corolla is gamopetalous, tubular 
 below, expanding above into a 5-lobed limb ; it is suppressed in the 
 genus Grlaux : the stamens (Fig. 454 a) are generally adnate to the 
 tube of the corolla and are opposite to its lobes ; this position of 
 the stamens is explained by assuming the suppression of an outer 
 antisepalous whorl of stamens which is represented in some genera 
 {e.g. Soldanella) and in the following order by petaloid staminodes, 
 an assumption which is confirmed by the analogy of those Ebenales 
 in which the outer whorl of stamens is suppressed : fruit a capsule. 
 Herbaceous plants with conspicuous flowers. 
 
 The genus Primula has a 5-valved dehiscent capsule, and a 5-cleft calyx. 
 Primula vulgaris is the Primrose ; Primula elatior and P. veris are the Oxlip 
 and the Cowslip or Paigle ; they are remarkable in that they are heterostyled 
 (see p. 455). The capsule of Anagattis arvensis, the Pimpernel, dehisces 
 transversely (pyxidium). Cyclimen europaum, the Sow-bread, has an under- 
 ground tuber; the lobes of the corolla are reflexed. Lysimachia, the Yellow 
 
654 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Loosestrife, has a deeply 5-cleft calyx. Trientalis, the Chickweed Winter- 
 green, has usually a 7-merous flower. The other British genera are Hottonia 
 (H. palwtris, the Water- violet), Samolus (S. Valerandi, the Brookweed), and 
 Glaux (G. maritima, the Sea Milk- wort). 
 
 13 
 
 FIG-. 454. Dimorphic flowers of Primula elatior in longitudinal section. A Short-styled, 
 B long-styled form ; fc calyx j c corolla ; a anthers ; / ovary j g style ; n stigma. Floral 
 diagram of Primula. 
 
 Order 2. MYRSINACEJJ. These plants differ from the preceding 
 in that the fruit is baccate and the stem woody : a whorl of sta- 
 minodes alternating with the petals is present in some genera (e.g. 
 Theophrasta) . 
 
 Ardisia, with red berries, is a well-known ornamental plant. 
 
 Order 3. PLUMB AGINACE.E. Styles five : there is a single basal 
 ovule in the cavity of the ovary, pendulous on a long funicle : 
 flowers often small, in dense inflorescences with numerous bracts : 
 no trace of an external antisepalous whorl of stamens. 
 
 In the genus Armeria the flowers are in capitula of scorpioid cymes, which are 
 surrounded by an involucre formed of the lower scarious bracts with downward 
 prolongations embracing the peduncle ; A. maritima, the Thrift, occurs on sandy 
 soils. Statice Limonium, the Sea-Lavender, with racemose cymes, occurs on 
 sandy sea-shores. Plumbago occurs in Southern Europe and in the East 
 Indies. 
 
 Cohort VII. Ericales. Flowers 4-5-merous, actinomorphic : 
 stamens usually in two whorls and then obdiplostemonous, usually 
 hypogynous : carpels opposite to the petals : formula If(n), (7(n), 
 I -4n + n, 6r(n), where n = 4 or 5: ovary superior or inferior, 
 multilocular, with large recurved axile placentae : seed with en- 
 dosperm : anthers sometimes appendiculate (Fig. 332 B). 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPBTAL.B. 
 
 655 
 
 Order 1. ERICACEAE. Anthers generally opening by two pores at 
 the top (Fig. 455 A), often furnished with appendages : pollen 
 in tetrads : fruit a capsule, or succulent : a well-developed disc. 
 
 Sub-order 1. RHODODENDROIDEJE. Fruit a septicidal capaui* ; cefoils, fug 
 cious : anthers without appendages. 
 
 Rhododendron ferrugineum and hirsutum, the Alpine Koses, are wild on the 
 continent : other species of Rhododendron (incl. Azalea), from the mountains 
 of Asia and North America, as also species of Kalmia from North America, are 
 cultivated. Daboecia, polifolia, the Irish Menziesia or St. Dabeoc's Heath, 
 Phyllodoce taxifolia, the Scottish Menziesia, and Loiseleuria procumbens, the 
 trailing Azalea, represent the sub-order in the British Flora. 
 
 Sub-order 2. ARBDTOIDE^S. Fruit a berry, or a drupe, or a loculicidal cap- 
 sule : corolla fugacious : anthers usually appendiculate. 
 
 Andromeda Polifolia, the Marsh Andromeda or Wild Rosemary, occurs in 
 peat-bogs, and Arctostapliylos Uva, Ursi and alpina, the red and the black 
 
 Fro. 455. A Flower of Erica : pedicel ; fc calyx ; c corolla ; a anthers. B Fruit of 
 Pyrola rotundifolia : s pedicel ; fc calyx ; / fruit, the loculi of which alternate with the sepals ; 
 g style ; n stiguia. C Flower of Vaccinium Myrtillus : /ovary (inferior); fc calyx ; c corolla. 
 Floral diagram of Erica : the stamens opposite to the petals are faintly shaded. 
 
 Bearberry, on the mountains of Scotland. Arbutus Unedo is the Strawberry 
 tree of Southern Europe, and Gaultheria is the Aromatic Winter-green. 
 
 Sub-order 3. ERICOIDEJE. Fruit usually a loculicidal capsule : corolla per- 
 sistent : anthers usually appendiculate. 
 
 Calluna Erica, the Ling or Heather, with a septicidal capsule and a deeply 
 4 -partite coloured calyx, is common on moors: the principal British species 
 of Erica, are E. mediterranea (or carnea), the Irish Heath ; E. Tetralix, the 
 cross-leaved Heath ; E, cinerea, the grey or fine-leaved Heath ; and E. vagans, 
 the Cornish Heath. Very many species belong to the Mediterranean region, 
 and to the Cape. 
 
 Order 2. EPACRIDACEJ:. The whorl of stamens opposite the 
 petals is usually wanting : the anthers open by one fissure only. 
 Australian plants. 
 
 v. s. B. 
 
 TJ U 
 
656 PAET III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Order 3. DIAPENSIACEJ:. Stamens five, inserted in the throat of 
 the corolla: a whorl of antipetalous starainodes sometimes present: 
 anthers opening by oblique longitudinal slits : ovary trilocular. 
 Low-growing evergreen shrubs. 
 
 ' Diapensia lapponica is a creeping shrub of the far North : Shortia and 
 Galax grow on the mountains of North America. 
 
 Order 4. PTEOLACEJ;. Sepals more or less distinct : petals com- 
 motily connate at the base only : anthers without appendages, 
 dehiscing generally transversely or by pores : fruit a loculicidal 
 capsule : seed minute, with an extremely small embryo consisting 
 of only a few cells, and a relatively massive integument. Sapro- 
 phytes containing chlorophyll. 
 
 Pyrola rotundifolia, secunda, minor, and uniftora, the Winter-greens, are 
 found in woods. 
 
 The Monotropese are saprophytes devoid of chlorophyll, with scale-like 
 leaves. Monotropa Hypopitys (Hypopitys multifiora}, the Bird's nest, is not 
 very common in England. 
 
 Closely allied with the Pyrolaceae is the order LENNOACE^E, consisting of & 
 few root-parasites destitute of chlorophyll. 
 
 Order 5. YACCINIACBJI. Ovary inferior (Fig. 455 C) : anthers 
 with appendages (Fig. 332 B), usually opening by two pores : 
 fruit a berry. 
 
 Vaccinium Vitis-Idtea is the red Whortleberry or Cowberry ; it usually 
 blossoms and bears fruit twice in the year : V. Myrtillus is the Bilberry, 
 Blaeberry, or Whortleberry, with deciduous leaves : V. Oxycoccos (Oxycoccos 
 paluxtris, or Schollera Oxycoccos) is the Cranberry : and V. uliyinosum, the 
 great Bilberry or Bog-Whortleberry. They are all low shrubs occurring on 
 
 SERIES II. EPIGYN.E. 
 
 Ovary inferior. 
 Cohort I. Cam pan ales. Flowers actinomorphic or zygo- 
 
 morphic, pen tarn erous ; formula If(5) (7(5) ^4(5) G^ } to ^ : 
 leafy and narrow : stamens usually free from the corolla, but 
 often connate : ovary multilocnlar, of two to five carpels, inferior. 
 Order 1. CAMPANITLACE^J. Flowers regular, frequently zygo- 
 morphic in consequence of oligomery in the gynaeceum ; sometime^ 
 actinomorphic (Fig. 312): stamens five, often connate at the base 
 ovary usually trilocular, with numerous ovules ; placentatioti 
 axile fruit a capsule : seed with endosperm. Mostly herbs witt 
 milky latex. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETAL.E. 
 
 657 
 
 The gynfeceum is often oligomerous, and then usually trimerous (e.g. 
 most species of Campanula and Phyteuma), sometimes bilocular (Jasione. 
 species of Phyteuma) : when isomerous, the carpels are either antisepalous 
 and therefore opposite to the stamens (e.g. a few species of Campanula, Fig. 
 312, Michauxia, Wahlenbergia), or antipetalous and therefore alternate with 
 the stamens (e.g. Musschia, Platycodon). 
 
 FIG. 456. Andrcecium and gynseeenm of 
 Campanula : / inferior ovary ; c insertion 
 of the corolla; a anthers; b expanded base 
 of the stamens ; n stigmata (mag.). 
 
 FIOK 457. A Floral diagram of a spe- 
 cies of Campanula with a trimerous 
 ovary (e.g. C. persicifolia) : a gynaeceum 
 of Lobelia. 
 
 Campanula rotundifolia, the Hare-bell, glomerata, and other species are com- 
 mon in fields, on heaths, etc., etc. : C. Medium is the Canterbury-bell cultivated 
 in gardens. Phyteuma orbicular e and spicatum, the Kampions, are indigenous 
 in parts of England ; the flowers are in capitula, and the cal; x is deeply 5 cleft 
 with spreading teeth: nearly allied is the genus Jasione; J. montana, the 
 Sheep's-bit, is common in England. Specularia has a rotate corolla ; S. 
 Speculum, Venus's Looking-glass, is cultivated. 
 
 Order 2. LOBELIACE.E. Flowers dorsiventral, resupinate (Fig. 
 458; see p. 511): the corolla commonly forms a tube which is 
 more or less cleft on one side, and 
 the limb is divided into two lips, 
 the lower one consisting of three 
 lobes (Fig. 458 A, w), and the upper 
 of two smaller ones (A, 6} : at their 
 first formation the position of these 
 parts is exactly the reverse, but 
 in the course of development the 
 pedicel undergoes torsion, so that 
 those parts which are originally 
 posterior become anterior, and vice 
 versa: anthers syngenesious (Fig. 
 458 B, sr) and unequal in con- 
 sequence of the dorsiventrality of 
 the flower: ovary 1-, 2-, or 3-locu- 
 
 FIG. 458. A Flower of Lobelia: / 
 ovary ; fc calyx ; o upper, u under lip of 
 the corolla; s stamens. B Androecium 
 and gyneeceum of the same : sr tube 
 formed by the stamens 5 an anthers 
 (mag.). 
 
658 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 lar, with numerous anatropous ovules : fruit a capsule : seed with 
 endosperm. Herbs or shrubs usually with milky latex. 
 
 L. Dortmanni, the Water Lobelia, and L. urens, the acrid Lobelia, occur in 
 some parts of England. 
 
 Cohort II. Rubiales. Flowers generally regular, actinomor- 
 phic or zygomorphic: calyx generally present: stamens epi- 
 petalous : gynceceum 2-5-merous : ovary uni- or multi-locular : 
 ovules 200 : leaves generally opposite. 
 
 Order 1. RuBiACEJi. Flowers regular, 4- or 5-merous : calyx 
 leafy or suppressed : corolla with valvate aestivation : ovary 
 1- or 2-locular, consisting of 2 carpels, 1- or many- seeded : seed 
 
 usually containing 
 endosperm : leaves 
 decussate, stipu- 
 late : stipules (see 
 p. 48) often similar 
 to the true leaves 
 (Fig. 459 A, n n) : 
 the true leaves are 
 distinguished by 
 the branches which 
 arise in their axils 
 (Fig. 459,1, //,**). 
 
 B Sub-order 1. STEL- 
 
 LATE. Stipules large 
 and leafy : loculi 1- 
 seeded. 
 
 Galium, Bed straw, 
 has a rotate 4-lobed 
 corolla and an incon- 
 spicuous calyx, usually 
 tetramerous: G.verum, 
 Molluyo, Aparine, and 
 others are common in 
 hedges and pastures. 
 Asperula has an infundibuliform corolla, but in other respects the flower 
 resembles that of Galium ; A. odorata, the Wood-ruff, is common : A. cynanchica 
 is the Squinancy-wort. Eubia Tinctorum, the Dyer's Madder, has a pentamerous 
 flower, a rotate 5-lobed corolla, and a baccate fruit ; it is used in dyeing and 
 largely cultivated; it is indigenous in Southern Europe and the East; it ia 
 closely allied to the British species R. peregiina, the Wild Madder. Sherardia 
 has a tubular 4 lobed corolla, and a conspicuous calvx with a 4-6 toothed 
 
 FIG. 459. J. Portion of a stem of Eubia Tinctorum : ff the 
 decussate leaves with the young shoots (s s) in their axils; 
 n n the free stipules resembling the leaves (nat size). JB 
 Flower (mag.) : / ovary ; fc calyx (rudimentary) ; c corolla ; a 
 anthers ; n stigma. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETAL2E. 659 
 
 limb which persists on the top of the fruit ; S. arvensis, the Field Madder, is 
 found in cultivated and waste places. 
 
 Sub-order 2. COFFEES. Stipules scaly: loculi 1-seeded. 
 
 Cqffea arabica, the Coffee-tree of Africa, is grown in the tropics ; the fruit, a 
 berry, contains one or two seeds ; the so-called coffee-bean is the seed, which 
 consists of hard endosperm and contains a small embryo. Cephaelis yields 
 Ipecachuana. 
 
 Sub-order 3. CINCHONE.E. Stipules scaly ; loculi many-seeded. 
 
 Various species of Cinchona, indigenous to the eastern slopes of the Andes, 
 but cultivated in Java and the East Indies, yield the cinchona bark from which 
 Quinine is prepared. Bouvardias are ornamental greenhouse plants from 
 Central America. 
 
 Order 2. CAPRIFOLIACEJ;. Flowers usually pentamerous, actino- 
 morphic or zygom.orph.ic : corolla usually with imbricate aestiva- 
 tion ; gynfleceum 2-5-merous : ovules suspended : fruit baccate ; 
 seed with endosperm: leaves opposite, usually exstipulate. 
 Mostly trees or shrubs. 
 
 FIG. 460. Floral diagram of 
 Caprifoliacese. A Le.ycesteria : 
 a gyiiaeceum of Lonicera ; b of 
 Symphoricarpus. 
 
 FIG. 461. Flower of Lonicera Caprifolium : /ovary; 7c calyx; r corolla-tube; e c the five 
 lobes of the limb ; st stamens ; g style ; n stigma. 
 
 Tribe 1. SamJmcece. Flower regular, sometimes completely actinomorphic, 
 corolla rotate (Fig. 329 C) : one ovule in each loculus. 
 
 Sambucus has a 5-partite corolla, and 3-5 seeds in the berry ; S. nigra is the 
 Elder ; S. Ebulus is the Dwarf Elder or Danewort. Viburnum has a 5-partite 
 corolla, and one seed in the trimerous berry, two carpels being abortive ; V. 
 Lantana and V. Opulus, the Guelder Rose, are common ; a form of the last 
 species is cultivated in which all the flowers (and not merely those at the 
 circumference of the corymb as in the original species) have a large corolla, and 
 are barren ; V. Tinus is the Laurustinus. Adoxa moschatellina, the Moschatel, is a 
 small plant occurring in damp woods ; its flowers are 4- or 5-merous ; it appears 
 
660 
 
 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 that there is no calyx, that which is regarded as the calyx being probably an 
 involucre of bracteoles and bract : the stamens are each divided into two, so 
 that there are 8-10 bilocular anthers. 
 
 Tribe 2. Lonicerece. Flowers more or less irregular, zygomorphic ; corolla 
 tubular : loculi containing several ovules. 
 
 Lonicera, the Honeysuckle, has a somewhat bilabiate corolla (Fig. 461), and a 
 2-3-locular ovary ; L. Caprifolium and Periclymenum, with a climbing stem, are 
 well-known garden shrubs; in many species the fruit of two adjacent flowers 
 grow together to form a single berry (e.g. L. alpigena). Symplioricarpus 
 racemosun, the Snowberry, has a 4-5-locular ovary with white berries ; it is a 
 common ornamental shrub. Diervilla (or Weigelia) has a bilocular capsule ; D. 
 florida and rosea are ornamental shrubs. Linncea borealis is a small creeping 
 plant in Scotland ; it has 4 unequal stamens, the posterior being suppressed, and 
 a trilocular ovary. 
 
 Cohort III. Asterales. Flower either irregular or regular, 
 pentamerous, zygomorphic in consequence of oligomerj in the 
 gyneeceum : calyx inconspicuous, often wanting : stamens epi- 
 
 petalous, alternating with 
 the segments of the corolla : 
 ovary .unilocular, ovule soli- 
 tary. 
 
 Order 1. VALERIANACEJE. 
 Flower irregular : calyx 
 rudimentary, sometimes 
 eventually assuming the form 
 of a hairy crown of ten rays, 
 called a pappus, which is not 
 developed until after flower- 
 ing (Fig. 462 B, p) ; during 
 flowering it remains short 
 and infolded (Fig. 462 A, ty: 
 stamens 1-4, usually three : 
 carpels three, of which, how- 
 ever, usually only one de- 
 velopes, so that the fruit is 
 unilocular (Diagram A, Fig. 
 462) ; ovule single, sus- 
 pended : seed without endo- 
 sperm : leaves decussate, ex- 
 
 7. , 
 
 Stipulate. 
 
 FIG. 462. 4 Flower, B Fruit of Valerian: / 
 ovary ; fc calyx ; c corolla ; a spur : t stamens ; 
 g style; p pappus. Floral diagrams, A of 
 Valerian ; abortive carpels x x : of Cen- 
 tranthus. 
 
 Of the genera occurring in 
 Britain, Valeriaua and Centranthus 
 
DICOTYLEDONES: GAMOPETALJ!. 661 
 
 have a pappus whilst Valerianella has not. Valeriana offieinalu, and dioica, are 
 common in damp places. Valerianella has a toothed calyx-limb ; many species 
 are common in fields : Valerianella olitoria, Corn-salad, or Lamb's-lettuce, is 
 eaten. Centranthus ruber is an ornamental plant ; only one stamen and one 
 carpel are developed (Fig. 462, Diagram B) ; at the base of the tube of the 
 corolla is a spur which is indicated in Valeriana by a protuberance. 
 
 Order 2. DIPSACEJ:. Flower more or less dorsiventral, sur- 
 rounded by an epicalyx (Fig. 463 &') formed of connate bracteoles: 
 calyx often plumose or bristly (Fig 463 &) : corolla usually bila- 
 biate : stamens only four, the posterior one being suppressed : 
 ovary apparently dimerous, one carpel being more or less com- 
 pletely suppressed, unilocular, with one suspended ovule : seed 
 with endosperm : leaves decussate, exstipulate : flowers in a dense 
 capitulum surrounded by an involucre of bracts : the outer florets 
 are usually ligulate : the receptacle may or may not bear scaly 
 bracts (paleas) : fruit invested by the epicalyx which is cleft longi- 
 tudinally. 
 
 Dipsacus, the Teazle, has a calyx without bristles ; the capitula of Dipsacus 
 Fullonum are used in finishing woollen cloth, for the sake of the strong hooked 
 spines of the paleae : D. syivestiis is common on waste ground. In the genus 
 Scabiosa, the pales, which are usually present, are not spinous : in the sub-genus 
 Asterocephalus, the epicalyx (or involucel) is 8-furrowed, and its projecting limb 
 is dry and scarious ; S. Columbaria, with a 5-lobed corolla, is common in dry 
 pastures : in the sub -genus Succisa, the limb of the 8-furrowed epicalyx is her- 
 baceous ; S. succisa, with a 4-lobed corolla, occurs in damp meadows: in the 
 sub-genus Knautia, there are no palea but the receptacle is hairy, and the epi- 
 calyx is 4-furrowed ; S. arvensis is common in fields. 
 
 Order 3. COMPOSITE. The flowers are always collected into 
 many-flowered capitula (sometimes only 1-flowered) ; different 
 kinds of flowers ( , ? , or sterile) generally present in the same 
 head : ovary dimerous unilocular, with a basal, erect, anatropous 
 ovule : the calyx is rarely present in the form of small leaves or 
 scales (Fig. 466 D, p) ; more commonly it is a crown of simple or 
 branched hairs (pappus; Figs. 464 p ; 466 A, E, p), and is not 
 developed till after the flowering is over ; sometimes the 
 calyx is wholly wanting : corolla tubular, either regular, and 5- 
 toothed (Figs. 464 A, c; 466 (7, m, c), or irregular and expanded 
 at the upper end in a lateral limb with 3 or 5 teeth (Figs. 464 B ; 
 466 B, ra; 466 A, ra, c), when it is said to be ligulate : the sta- 
 mens are short, inserted upon the corolla (Fig. 464 A, st) ; the 
 anthers are elongated and syngenesious, forming a tube through 
 which the style passes (Figs. 464 A, a ; 466 A } a) : this is bifid at 
 
662 
 
 PAKT TIT. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 its upper end (Fig. 464 J, n ; 466 A and C, n) : on each of these 
 branches the stigmatic papillee are arranged in two rows : in the 
 wholly $ flowers the styles are usually shorter (Fig. 464 B, g) : 
 fruit a cypsela (p. 530), crowned by the pappus (Fig. 466 A, E, D, 
 p) when it is present (Fig. 466 F, f) : sometimes the fruit has its 
 upper end prolonged into a beak, and its surface is covered with 
 ridges or spines (Fig. 466 E) : seed without endosperm. 
 
 Usually herbs with scattered (more rarely decussate), exstipulate 
 leaves, often with milky latex. The capitula are always surrounded 
 
 FIG. 463. Flower of 
 Scabiosa(mag.) : /ovary ; 
 fc' epicalyx (long sect.); 
 fc calyx ; c corolla ; *t sta- 
 mens ; n stigma. 
 
 FIG. 465. Floral dia- 
 gram of Compositse 
 (tubular floret). 
 
 FIG. 464.- Flower of Arnica (mag.) . A Tubular floret from the centre (disc) (longitudinal 
 sect.). B Ligulate marginal floret (ray) :/ ovary ; p pappus; c corolla; a anthers ; n stigma; 
 g style ; 8 ovule. 
 
 by a number of bracts forming an involucre (Fig. 466 P, C, ). 
 The scaly bracts of the individual florets (palese) may be present 
 or wanting (Fig. 466 C, d). 
 
 The Composites are classified according to the form of the 
 flowers and to the distribution of the different kinds of flowers in 
 the inflorescence. 
 
 Sub-order I. TTJBULIFLOR.E. The capitula either consists entirely of tubu- 
 lar florets (by tubular flowers are meant those with a regular 5-toothed corolla) 
 or the central florets (florets of the disc) are tubular and (Fig. 464 A], 
 whereas the florets of the ray are ligulate and $ or sterile, and form one or two 
 rows (Figs. 464 B ; 466 B and G, rd). 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETALJE. 
 
 663 
 
 Tribe 1. Eupatoriece. Leaves mostly opposite : flowers all tubular, $ the 
 branches of style narrow ; papillae extending to the middle. 
 
 Eupatorium cannabinum, the Hemp Agrimony, is common in damp places. 
 
 Tribe 2. Asteroidece. Leaves alternate : ray-florets $ or sterile, generally 
 ligulate : branches of the style hairy above, papillae extending to where the 
 hairs begin. Many species of Aster, belonging chiefly to North America, are 
 cultivated as ornamental plants, as also Callistephus hortensis, commonly known 
 as the China Aster. Erigeron acre, alpinum, and canadense occur in England ; 
 the last is an imported weed. Bellis perennis, the Daisy, has no pappus. Solidago 
 virgaurea is the Golden Eod. 
 
 Fia. 466. Flowers of Composite: / fruit or ovary ; h its beak ; p pappus; c corolla; a 
 stamen* ; a anthers; n stigmata. A Ligulate flower of Taraxacum, with a5-toothe<J corolla- 
 limb, $ . B Capitulum of Achillea : ra floret of the ray, with ligulate 3-toothed corolla, ? ; 
 m $ florets of the disc, with a 6-toothed tubular corolla ; i involucre. C Longitudinal 
 section more highly magnified ; r receptacle; i involucre; d bracteoles (palese) ; ra floret 
 of the ray ; m florets of the disc ; n' stigmata of the $ flowers. D Fruit of Tanacetum 
 with a scaly pappus: E of Taraxacum, with a hairy pappus; h beak: F of Artemisia 
 without a pappus (mag.). 
 
 Tribe 3. Senecionidfce. Leaves alternate : ray-florets in one row, ligulale 
 ? , rarely absent: branches of the style tufted at the tips. 
 
 Senecio vulgaris, the common Groundsel, has no ray-florets. Arnica montana 
 occurs in Alpine woods. Two species of Doronicum (D. Pardalianches and 
 plantagineum) have become naturalized in England. Petasites vulgaris, the 
 
664 PART III. THE CLASSIFICATION OF PLANTS. 
 
 Butter-bur, and Tussilago Farfara,ihe common Coltsfoot, are common in damp 
 fields. 
 
 Tribe 4. Anthemidea. Leaves alternate: ray-florets $ , ligulate or tubular: 
 branches of style tufted at the tips: involucral bracts scarious :<pappus 0, or 
 minute. 
 
 Artemisia Absinthium, Wormwood, A. vulgaris and campestris are common: 
 Chrysanthemum Leucanthemum, the Ox-eye Daisy, is common in fields : Matri- 
 caria Chamomilla, the Wild Chamomile, has a hollow conical receptacle 
 destitute of palese : Anthemis nobiiis, the Common Chamomile, has a receptacle 
 bearing paleas, as also A. arvensis, the Corn Chamomile : Achillea Millefolium 
 is the Milfoil, or Yarrow : Tanacetum vulgare is the Tansy : Diotis mantima is 
 the seaside Cotton-weed. 
 
 Tribe 5. Helianthoidece. Leaves opposite : ray -florets or ligulate, yellow, 
 $ or sterile : branches of style as in Asteroideae. 
 
 Bidens is common in wet places. Galinsoga is naturalized in England. Heli- 
 anthus annuus is the Sunflower ; oil is extracted from the seeds : the tubers of 
 H. tube.rosus, a West Indian species, are rich in inulin (p. 114), and serve as 
 a vegetable (Jerusalem Artichoke). Species of Zinnia, Eudbeckia, Dahlia, and 
 Coreopsis are cultivated. 
 
 Tribe 6. Helenioidece. Eesemble the Helianthoidese, but the receptacle is 
 without paleae. Species of Helenium, Tagetes, Gaillardia, are commonly culti- 
 vated as garden flowers. 
 
 Tribe 7. Inuloidea. Leaves alternate : ray-florets frequently ligulate, $ , 
 yellow : anthers appendiculate at base. 
 
 In Inula (I. Helenium, the Elecampane), Pulicaria (P. dysenterica, the Flea- 
 bane), and others, the ray-florets are ligulate; whereas, in other genera, Gna- 
 phalium (the Cudweed), Filago, Antennaria, the ray-florets are filiform ; Anten- 
 naria is dioecious. 
 
 Tribe 8. Cynareee. Flowers all tubular, the outer ones sometimes $ or 
 sterile : style thickened below the branches : anthers often appendiculate at 
 base : leaves generally armed with spines, alternate. 
 
 Arctium Lappa (A. majus), the Burdock, is common by roadsides ; the leaves of 
 the involucre are hooked and spinous. Carduus nutans and crispus are common 
 (true) Thistles ; Cnicus lanceolatus, paluatris, pratensis (Plume- thistles), are 
 common in damp districts. Carlina vulgaris is the Carline-Thistle ; the inner 
 leaves of the involucre, which are white, fold over the flower-head under the 
 influence of moisture, but in drought spread widely open. Onopordon Acanthium 
 is the Scotch or Cotton Thistle. Centaur ea Scabiosa and jiigra, the Knapweeds, 
 are common everywhere : C. Cyanus is the Corn-flower or Bluebottle, occurring 
 in wheat-fields. Cynara Scolymus is the Artichoke ; the flower-buds are eaten 
 as a vegetable. Carthamus tinctoria, the Safflower, is used in dyeing, In Echi- 
 nops, the Globe- Thistle, numerous one-flowered capitula are collected into one 
 large spherical head. Saussurea and Serratula are the Saw-worts. 
 
 Tribe 9. Calendulea. Ray-florets $ and usually ligulate : disc-florets usu- 
 ally sterile. 
 
 Calendula officinalis, the Pot -Marigold, is a familiar garden plant. 
 
 Sub-order II. LABIATIFLOBJE. The disc-florets have a regular or a bilabiate 
 corolla ; the ray-floreta have usually a bilabiate corolla. 
 
DICOTYLEDONES : GAMOPETAL^. 665 
 
 Tribe 10. Mutisiea. This tribe includes all the Composite with a bilabiate 
 corolla : they come mostly from South America. Mutisia is one of the few 
 climbing genera : it climbs by means of leaf- tendrils. 
 
 Sub-order III. LIGULIFLOK^;. All the florets are ; limb of the corolla 5- 
 toothed and ligulate (Fig. 466 A). 
 
 Tribe 11. Cichoriea. Mostly herbs, all containing latex in laticiferous 
 vessels (p. 142). 
 
 Taraxacum officinale, the Dandelion, is the commonest of wild flowers. 
 Laduca tativa is the Lettuce : L. Scariola, virosa, and others are common in 
 waste places. Scorzonera hispanica is eaten as a vegetable. Tragopogon por- 
 rifolius is the Salsafy ; T. pratensis, the Goafs-beard, is common. Cichorium 
 Intybus, the Chicory, is found by roadsides ; the roasted roots are mixed with 
 Coffee: C. Endivia (Endive) is a vegetable. To this tribe belong also the 
 British genera Hypochseris (Cat's-ear), Arnoseris (Lamb's Succory), Leontodon 
 (Hawkbif.), Hieracium (Hawkweed), Sonchus (Sow-Thistle), Crepis (Hawk's- 
 beard), Lapsana (Nipplewort), Picris. 
 
PAET IV. 
 THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 1. Introductory. The province of physiology is the study 
 of those phenomena which, taken together, constitute the life of 
 the plant; in other words, whilst morphology is concerned with 
 what plants are, and histology with their structure, physiology 
 deals with what they do. These phenomena may be classified, 
 according to their nature, into functions, or different kinds of 
 physiological work. 
 
 The body of the plant, whether it be unicellular or multicellular, 
 is one physiological whole. In the lower and simpler plants the 
 various functions are equally discharged by all parts of the body ; 
 but in more highly-organised plants the functions are distributed 
 among the members and tissues, that is, there is physiological 
 division of labour (see pp. 2, 92). In these higher plants each 
 member, and each tissue, is adapted to the performance of one 
 or more functions, and is the organ (p. 2) by which these special 
 kinds of physiological work are done. 
 
 The performance of their functions by the organs of the plant is, 
 however, materially affected by various external conditions. For 
 instance, the activity of the assimilatory function of green leaves 
 is altogether dependent upon exposure to light of adequate in- 
 tensity. Hence the object of physiology is not only to distinguish 
 and study the various functions, and to demonstrate the relation 
 between them and the internal structure and the external form of 
 the organs performing them, but also to determine what are the 
 external conditions by which the performance of the various 
 functions is affected, and the modes in which these conditions exert 
 their influence. 
 
 CHAPTER I. 
 GENEEAL PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 2. The Functions. In entering upon the analysis of the 
 vital phenomena of plants, it must be clearly understood that these 
 phenomena all depend upon the living protoplasm ; that the vital 
 
 666 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 667 
 
 functions are performed by the protoplasm, though the other cell- 
 contents and the cell- walls are not without their physiological 
 importance. With regard to the functions themselves, it is 
 apparent, in the first place, that the outcome of the physiological 
 activity of the plant is the maintenance of itself, and the produc- 
 tion of new individuals resembling itself. Hence a distinction may 
 at once be drawn between the nutritive and the reproductive pro- 
 perties of protoplasm. Moreover, during its life, the plant 
 responds, in a more or less marked manner, to the action of 
 external forces, such as light, gravity, etc. This is a manifesta- 
 tion of another property of the protoplasm, namely irritability or 
 sensitiveness. Very commonly the response to the action of the 
 external forces is of the nature of movement : but movements may 
 be spontaneously performed by various parts in virtue of the auto- 
 matism of the protoplasm : the motile property of protoplasm may 
 be termed motility. 
 
 The nutritive property of protoplasm requires, however, further 
 analysis. First, it is clear that nutrition necessarily depends upon 
 the absorption of food from without ; hence the plant is capable 
 of performing the function of absorption. Secondly, from the food 
 absorbed, protoplasm must ultimately be formed ; the building up 
 of protoplasm out of the food is termed assimilation, and the pro- 
 perty by means of which this function is performed is termed the 
 metabolic property of protoplasm. 
 
 But the metabolic processes going on in the protoplasm are not 
 only such as lead to its maintenance or increase in bulk ; on the 
 contrary, the protoplasm is continually undergoing decomposition. 
 
 Stating these points in a more general form, it is to be clearly 
 apprehended that there are two sets of chemical processes con- 
 tinually and simultaneously going on in living protoplasm. Of 
 these, which together constitute the metabolism of the plant, one 
 set includes those -processes which lead to the formation of more 
 complex substances from simpler ones ; the other, those processes 
 which lead to the formation of simpler substances by the decom- 
 position of more complex ones. The former are designated the 
 constructive metabolism or more shortly, the anabolism, of the proto- 
 plasm ; the latter are designated the destructive metabolism, or the 
 catabolism, of the protoplasm. It must also be clearly understood 
 that these two sets of processes affect not only the state of the 
 matter or substance of which the plant consists, but also the state 
 of the energy in the plant : for the anabolism is accompanied by 
 
668 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 a conversion of kinetic into potential or latent energy, and the 
 catabolism, by a conversion of potential into kinetic energy. 
 
 These various points will now be severally considered. 
 
 1. ABSORPTION. The main idea connected with this function is 
 the taking np of water and other substances into the plant from 
 without ; but it must not be overlooked that, in a multicellular 
 plant, the cells absorb from each other. 
 
 In any case, the function of absorption depends upon the 
 physical process of diffusion through membrane of substances in 
 solution, or osmosis. For instance, supposing two adjacent cells, 
 one of which has its cell-sap charged with sugar, whereas that 
 of the other has none ; the sugar will diffuse through the inter- 
 vening cell-wall until the sap in both cells holds the same pro- 
 portion in solution. This being the mode of absorption, it is 
 clear that the substances can only be absorbed in the fluid form, 
 either as liquids or gases. 
 
 So far the function of absorption would appear to be a simply 
 physical process. It must, however, be borne . in mind that the 
 cell- wall is lined by living protoplasm, which modifies the purely 
 physical diffusion through the cell- wall, both as regards the nature 
 and relative quantity of the substances which pass into or out of 
 the cell ; so that the physical laws of osmosis, as determined by 
 experiments with dead membrane, are not directly applicable to 
 the osmotic phenomena of a living cell. 
 
 There is one manifestation of the osmotic properties of living 
 plant-cells which is of such fundamental importance, particularly 
 in connexion with movement, that it requires special mention. 
 It is this, that the cells tend to take up such large quantities of 
 water, that a considerable pressure is set up in the cell between 
 the cell-sap, on the one hand, and the elastic cell- wall on the 
 other. This state of tension is known as turgidity or turgescence, 
 and a cell in this state is said to be twgif. The conditions upon 
 which turgidity depends are three : first, the presence of osmoti- 
 cally active substances in the cell-sap to attract water ; second, 
 the presence of a layer of protoplasm lining the cell-wall ; third, 
 the presence of an elastic cell- wall. With regard to the first of 
 these conditions, the necessity for it is obvious. It appears that the 
 osmotically active substances in question are especially the organic 
 acids or acid salts, which are abundantly produced in the meta- 
 bolism of plants. The significance of the second condition is, 
 fhat the layer of protoplasm prevents, at least within certain 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 669 
 
 limits, the escape of the cell-sap as the pressure in the cell in- 
 creases, and it is on this account that the high degree of turgidity 
 of plant-cells is attained. Finally, the presence of an elastic 
 cell-wall is obviously a necessary factor, for without resistance 
 there can be no pressure. 
 
 It commonly happens, as will be subsequently pointed out in 
 many instances, that an escape of cell-sap from turgid cells may 
 take place without any rapture or injury of the cells ; this is 
 termed the escape of cell-sap by filtration under pressure. 
 
 It is clear, since the plant can only absorb dilute solutions of 
 solids dissolved in water, that a much larger quantity of water 
 than is necessary for the immediate wants of the plant, must be 
 absorbed ; and it is necessary that this excess of water should be 
 got rid of. It is got rid of mainly in the form of watery vapour 
 which is exhaled into the air. This exhalation of watery vapour 
 is not simply physical evaporation, but is a vital phenomenon 
 controlled by the living protoplasm ; it is termed transpiration. 
 
 2. METABOLISM. This term refers to all the chemical changes 
 which go on in living protoplasm itself, and which it induces in 
 other substances. 
 
 a. Anabolism. It has been already stated that the metabolic 
 processes included under this head, are those in which complex 
 substances are formed from simpler ones. The most complex 
 substance of all being protoplasm, it may be stated that the end of 
 the anabolic processes is the construction of protoplasm. 
 
 The anabolic process which is most fundamentally important, 
 and which is most characteristic of plants as opposed to animals, 
 is the construction, by the green parts of plants under the in- 
 fluence of light, of organic substance from carbon dioxide 
 absorbed from the air, and water absorbed from the soil. This is 
 the first step in the process of assimilation as carried on in 
 plants containing chlorophyll. 
 
 b. Catabolism. Under this head are included the dissociations 
 which the molecules of protoplasm undergo, and those which it 
 induces in other complex substances, either directly, or by means 
 of certain metabolic substances known as enzymes or unorganised 
 ferments. 
 
 In most cases the catabolism of the plant is accompanied by a 
 gaseous interchange between the plant and the air, of this nature 
 that the plant absorbs oxygen gas and gives off carbon dioxide. 
 This gaseous interchange is known as respiration. 
 
670 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 The Products of Metabolism may be classified as plastic products 
 and waste-products: the former are such as can be further worked 
 up in anabolism ; the latter are not so used, but are withdrawn 
 from the sphere of the metabolic activity, by being either ex- 
 creted, or secreted in the insoluble form in special receptacles 
 (see pp. 137 ff ). Of the products of catabolism, carbon dioxide is 
 the most constant. 
 
 3. IRRITABILITY. It is in virtue of the irritability of its 
 protoplasm that the plant is in relation with the external condi- 
 tions under which it is living. Any sudden change in the ex- 
 ternal conditions, or in the direction or intensity of the forces 
 acting upon the plant, evokes some more or less evident response ; 
 that is, it acts as a stimulus, inducing a more or less sudden evolu- 
 tion of kinetic energy. The most striking response to the action 
 of a stimulus is the performance of a movement : it must not, 
 however, be inferred that because stimulation may fail to produce 
 a responsive movement of any part, the protoplasm of that part 
 is not irritable ; for it must be borne in mind that the mechanical 
 conditions may be such as to render movement impossible. 
 
 That it is essentially the protoplasm which is the seat of 
 irritability is shown by the fact that naked masses of protoplasm, 
 such as zoospores and the plasmodia of Myxomycetes, are highly 
 irritable. 
 
 4. AUTOMATISM. Movements may, however, take place without 
 the action of a stimulus, such movements being distinguished as 
 spontaneous or automatic. They are to be ascribed to spontaneous 
 evolutions of energy in the plant, which may be sudden or 
 periodic. 
 
 5. MOTILITY. This property, by means of which the move- 
 ments, whether spontaneous or induced by stimuli, of parts of 
 plants are performed, resides, like the irritability, in the proto- 
 plasm, as is clearly shown by the movements of naked masses of 
 protoplasm. 
 
 6. REPRODUCTION. The function of reproduction consists essenti- 
 ally in the throwing off by the individual of portions of its 
 protoplasm, by which new individuals resembling itself are pro- 
 duced. The reproductive property is generally widely dis- 
 tributed in plants, so that almost any part, if cut off, can develope 
 the missing members, thus completing its segmentation and 
 producing a new individual. In most cases, however, there is 
 provision for the formation of special reproductive cells, termed 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 671 
 
 generally spores, each of which is capable of developing into a new 
 organism (see pp. 3, 67). 
 
 3. The External Conditions. The functions of the plant 
 can only be carried on under a certain coincidence of favourable 
 external conditions. Thus, an ordinary green plant will only 
 nourish when the conditions are such that it is supplied with 
 appropriate food, with water, and with oxygen for its respiration, 
 and is exposed to a suitable temperature and to sufficiently in- 
 tense light. 
 
 The importance of a supply of food and of water is sufficiently 
 obvious to need no further explanation here. The importance of 
 a supply of oxygen is that without it the normal catabolic pro- 
 cesses which are attended by an evolution of kinetic energy in 
 the plant would either cease, or be so far suppressed that the plant 
 would no longer manifest its vital phenomena ; for instance, it 
 would cease to grow, and would eventually die. But it must not 
 be assumed that these catabolic processes are the ultimate source 
 of energy in the plant : on the contrary, the energy evolved in 
 the decomposition of a substance only represents a part or the 
 whole, according to the degree to which decomposition proceeds, 
 of the energy expended in producing the substance. And here it 
 is that the importance of heat and light to the plant becomes 
 apparent; for the heat and light of the sun are the ultimate 
 sources from which the plant obtains the energy necessary for the 
 maintenance of its life. Heat is an essential condition to the per- 
 formance of all the vital functions of the plant : and light is an 
 essential factor in that most fundamental of all the nutritive 
 processes of the green plant, the assimilation of carbon dioxide. 
 
 Inasmuch as the influence of heat and light is so comprehen- 
 sive, it may be generally considered now, the detailed considera- 
 tion of these and other external conditions being relegated to the 
 discussion of the functions which they especially affect. 
 
 HEAT. Every function of the plant can only take place within 
 certain limits of temperature : that is, between a certain minimum 
 and a certain maximum degree. Between these limits there is for 
 each function a degree of temperature, the optimum, at which that 
 function is carried on with the greatest activity ; any fall of 
 temperature from this optimum, or any rise above it, leads to a 
 diminished activity of the function. These general laws have been 
 arrived at by observation of such processes as movement, absorp- 
 tion by the roots, assimilation, etc. 
 
 v. s. B. xx 
 
672 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 It may be stated generally that all the functions of plants 
 inhabiting temperate climates begin to be carried on at a tempera- 
 ture a few degrees above the freezing-point ; as the temperature 
 rises to 25-30 C. the activity of the functions is increased and 
 the optimum attained; with a further rise the activity of the 
 functions is diminished, and at 45 50 C. they commonly cease 
 altogether. In the case of plants which naturally grow in warmer 
 climates, the minimum-temperature is somewhat higher than that 
 stated above. Thus a pumpkin-seed will not germinate at a 
 temperature below 13 C. 
 
 The power of withstanding the injurious effect of exposure to too 
 high a temperature depends mainly upon the proportion of water 
 which the plant, or any particular part of it, contains. Thus, dry 
 peas can withstand exposure for an hour to any temperature up to 
 70 C., whereas, when they have been soaked in water, exposure 
 to a temperature of 54 C. proves fatal. Most parts of plants are 
 killed by prolonged exposure to a temperature, in air, of about 
 50 C., and in water, of about 45 C. 
 
 Injury or death by exposure to cold, is only induced when the 
 temperature falls in some cases many degrees below freezing- 
 point. Some plants just those, namely, such as Lichens, and 
 some Fungi and Mosses, which can undergo desiccation without 
 
 injury are not killed by exposure 
 to low temperature. Here, also, the 
 liability to injury depends upon the 
 amount of water contained in the 
 tissue. Thus, dry seeds and the 
 winter-buds of trees can readily 
 withstand low temperatures ; but 
 when they contain a considerable 
 quantity of water, as when the seeds 
 are germinating or the buds unfold- 
 ing, they are very susceptible to 
 injury. When a part of a plant, 
 which contains a large proportion 
 of water, is exposed to a low tem- 
 perature, a portion of the water 
 contained in the cells escapes from 
 them and becomes frozen on their 
 surface, the whole tissue at the same time contracting ; the water 
 does not freeze in the interior of the cells. The water which has 
 
 FIG. 467. Transverse section of a 
 frozen leaf-stalk of Cynara Scolymus : 
 e the detached epidermis ; g the paren- 
 chyma in which lie the transverse 
 sections of the vascular bundles (left 
 white) ; K K the incrustation of ice 
 consisting of densely-crowded prisms 
 (the cavities of the ruptured tissue 
 are left black in the figure). 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 673 
 
 thus escaped and frozen forms an incrustation (Fig. 467), con- 
 sisting of a number of elongated ice-crystals arranged side by 
 side. This ice is very pure, for the substances in solution in the 
 cell-sap remain behind in a more concentrated form. 
 
 It has been ascertained that this formation of ice is, in itself, 
 not necessarily fatal in all cases. If the frozen part be slowly 
 thawed, the cells may gradually reabsorb the water, and so return 
 to their previous normal condition. If, however, the frozen part 
 be rapidly thawed, the cells cannot absorb the water sufficiently 
 rapidly ; it therefore either collects in the intercellular spaces, 
 causing discolouration and decay, or it runs off and evaporates, so 
 that the part dries up. In many cases, however, slow thawing 
 does not ensure immunity ; for instance, the leaves of the Pump- 
 kin or the Dahlia : it appears that, in such cases, the escape of 
 water from the cell, which takes place at the time of freezing, 
 causes fatal disorganisation of the cells. Again, in the case of 
 long-continued cold, the ice formed outside the cells may be 
 gradually removed by evaporation, so that on thawing, the water 
 necessary to restore the normal condition of the cells is not forth- 
 coming. 
 
 The effect on the trunks of trees of exposure to cold is to cause 
 radial splits, which close up again as the temperature rises, but 
 which actually heal only in the cortex. The splitting is due to 
 the unequal contraction of the wood, which is greater in the 
 external more watery portion, than in the interior. 
 
 LIGHT. The influence of light may be considered under two 
 heads : (1) the chemical effects, produced for the most part by the 
 less refrangible rays of the spectrum ; (2) the mechanical effects, 
 produced mainly by the highly refrangible rays. 
 
 The most conspicuous chemical effects are manifested in plants 
 which normally contain chlorophyll. They are : 
 
 a. The formation of chloropht/ll : in Phanerogams the colouring- 
 matter of the chloroplastids cannot acquire its green hue (except in 
 the seedlings of Conifers and some other plants), but remains 
 yellow (etiolin), unless exposed to light of not too great intensity. 
 This effect is not confined to the rays of low refrangibility, but 
 is produced (with equal intensity of light) also by those of high 
 refrangibility. The formation of chlorophyll is also dependent on 
 temperature, and will not take place if it be too low ; hence the 
 shoots of plants developed in the early spring remain yellow if 
 the weather is cold. 
 
674 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 b. The assimilation of carbon dioxide by the chloroplastids will 
 only take place in the presence of light of considerable intensity ; 
 it is especially a function of the rays of low refrangibility, as will 
 be subsequently explained. This is also true of the first steps in 
 the assimilation of mineral nitrogenous food (nitrates). 
 
 The most conspicuous mechanical effects, exhibited by plants of 
 all kinds are : 
 
 a. The paratonic effect. All parts of plants grow more rapidly 
 in feeble than in strong light, as is shown by the excessive length 
 attained by the shoots of plants grown in the dark ; hence, light 
 exercises a retarding influence on the rate of growth ; it likewise 
 inhibits the spontaneous movements of motile leaves. 
 
 b. The photutonic effect. Dorsi ventral leaves, when growing, 
 generally cease to grow, and when motile, lose the power of move- 
 ment, if long kept in darkness ; but they soon regain the power 
 of movement on being again exposed to light; this condition of 
 motility induced by light is known as filioiotonus. 
 
 c. The directive effect. The direction of the incident rays of 
 light affects the position of growing and other motile members : 
 these phenomena are designated by the general term heliotropism. 
 
 The various influences of light are well illustrated by plants 
 grown in darkness, or etiolated plants. For instance, an etiolated 
 potato-shoot has a stem with excessively long internodes, a result 
 of the absence of the paratonic effect of light ; very small leaves, 
 in consequence of the absence of the phototonic effect ; no chloro- 
 phyll, in consequence of the absence of the chemical action of 
 light. Etiolation can, however, be induced, not only in plants 
 which normally possess chlorophyll, but in others as well ; for 
 instance, Fungi grown in darkness exhibit the characteristic 
 excessive elongation. Again, plants grown in light of low re- 
 frangibility (yellow or red) show the elongation characteristic of 
 etiolation ; chlorophyll is formed, and the leaves are fairly well 
 developed, but there is no heliotropic curvature : grown in light 
 of high refrangibility (blue), the stem is stunted and the leaves 
 very small, though chlorophyll is developed, and heliotropic 
 curvature is well marked ; they soon die. 
 
 4. The Functions of the Tissues. In dealing with this 
 subject, it is important to distinguish between the vital and the 
 physical functions ; to distinguish, that is, the functions which 
 depend upon the activity of the living protoplasm, from those 
 which depend upon some chemical or mechanical property of the 
 
CHAPTER I.. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 675 
 
 cell-sap, or of the cell-wall, of the constituent cells. The follow- 
 ing remarks apply especially to the terrestrial higher plants. 
 
 a. The Tegumentary Tissue (pp. 132, 153, 208), whether pri- 
 mary (epidermis) or secondary (periderm), has as its primary 
 function the mechanical protection of the underlying tissues : but 
 it has the further functions of absorption and of preventing 
 excessive transpiration. 
 
 The absorptive function is confined to the primary tegumentary 
 tissue : it is by means of this tissue that absorption is carried 
 on by subterranean roots, either with or without root-hairs (see 
 pp. 154, 159), as also by the general surface of submerged parts 
 of aquatic plants (p. 157). 
 
 The prevention of excessive transpiration is effected by the 
 more or less well-marked cuticularisation of the walls of the 
 epidermal and peridermal cells of sub-aerial parts. Since these 
 walls, though more or less pervious to gases, are almost or 
 altogether impervious to watery vapour, the watery vapour 
 evolved in the interior of the plant has to escape through special 
 apertures, namely the stomata and the lenticels : and the tran- 
 spiration is further regulated (see p. 156) by the opening and 
 closing of the stomata. The importance of the tegumentary tissue 
 in preventing desiccation is directly established by the fact that 
 parts of plants deprived of their tegumentary tissue quickly dry 
 up : and indirectly, by the relation between the degree of develop- 
 ment of this tissue and the conditions of life of the plant. Thus, 
 this tissue is highly developed in plants which grow in dry 
 situations, whereas in the submerged parts of aquatic plants it is 
 imperfectly differentiated, and there are usually no stomata or 
 lenticels : hence, the more the conditions of life tend to promote 
 transpiration, the more highly-developed is the tegumentary tissue. 
 
 The epidermis of sub-aerial parts also produces hairs of various 
 kinds. The function of these is often secretory, indicating the 
 importance of the epidermis as a glandular tissue (see p. 142). 
 But, more commonly, they are purely protective, serving to 
 diminish transpiration and radiation, and to screen the chlorophyll 
 from too intense light. A clothing of hairs is characteristic of 
 xerophilous plants ; plants, that is, which habitually grow in dry 
 soil and sunny situations. 
 
 The primary tegumentary tissue is also of importance in con- 
 nection with reproduction, as it sometimes gives rise to repro- 
 ductive organs (e.g. sporangia of Leptosporangiate Filicinae). 
 
676 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 1. The Parenchymatous Tissue (see p. 131), consisting as it 
 typically does of cells which contain living protoplasm, is the 
 seat, not only of the metabolic processes, but also of the movements 
 and irritability of plants. 
 
 Different nutritive functions are discharged by various regions 
 of this tissue. For instance, the parenchymatous tissue of sub- 
 aerial parts, lying near the surface and exposed to light, contains 
 chlorophyll, and carries on the assimilation of carbon : this applies 
 especially to the leaves. Again, the cells of this tissue are 
 frequently glandular (see p. 137), containing or excreting various 
 waste-products : or they serve as depositories of reserve plastic 
 substances (e.g. starch, etc.), or as conducting- tissue for organic 
 substances. 
 
 It may also be pointed out that this tissue is connected with 
 the reproductive processes in that the reproductive organs (e.g. 
 hypodermal archesporium of most plants) are developed from it 
 in part. 
 
 Further, the cells of this tissue, having usually extensible 
 walls, are capable of being turgid and of varying in bulk : hence 
 they are the seat of the movements of those members, or parts of 
 them, in which movement is a mechanical possibility ; and when 
 turgid, they give a considerable degree of rigidity to the member 
 of which they form part. 
 
 The intercellular spaces of this tissue, which are especially 
 large in submerged parts of aquatic plants, are of great im- 
 portance in connexion with transpiration and the distribution of 
 gases in the plant : they communicate with the exterior by means 
 of the stomata and the lenticels. 
 
 c. The Sclerencliymatous Tissue (see p. 132), more especially the 
 prosenchymatous or fibrous form of it, has the purely mechanical 
 function of giving firmness to the members in which it is present. 
 Whilst it is true that a considerable degree of rigidity is afforded 
 by turgid parenchymatous tissue, and that many members con- 
 taining little or no sclerenchymatous tissue can grow erect (e.g. 
 gonidiophores of moulds, and succulent stems of herbaceous 
 annuals), yet this source of rigidity is precarious, as it is so largely 
 dependent upon external conditions, and is therefore insufficient 
 in the case of perennial plants. In these plants rigid tissue 
 (stereom ; see p. 133) is developed, and it is distributed in the 
 body in just such a manner as most adequately meets the 
 mechanical requirements in each particular case (p. 170). Stereom 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 677 
 
 is most perfectly developed in the stems of land-plants which 
 grow erect and have to support the weight of many leaves and 
 branches : whereas in water-plants the development of stereom 
 is rudimentary, for their stems, being supported by the water, do 
 not need to be highly rigid. 
 
 When it is developed in the walls of fruits or in the seed- 
 coats, the sclerenchymatous tissue serves to protect the seed from 
 being eaten or digested by animals. 
 
 d. The Tracheal Tissue of the Xylem (see p. 133). It is clear 
 that when a plant-body is massive, partly subterranean and partly 
 subaerial, there must be some means for readily distributing the 
 water and other substances absorbed by the root. This dis- 
 tribution may take place by diffusion from cell to cell ; and, as a 
 matter of fact, this mode of distribution suffices in some plants in 
 which the seat of absorption is not far from that of consumption 
 (e.g. larger Fungi and Algae). But when these points are widely 
 separated, special conducting-tissue, in the form of the tracheal 
 tissue of the xylem, is differentiated. 
 
 The function of this tracheal tissue is demonstrated by the 
 following experiment. If a cut be made all round the stem of a 
 dicotyledonous tree, to such a depth as to penetrate far into the 
 xylem, the effect is that the leaves, borne on the stem and its 
 branches above the incision, will soon droop and wither. This is 
 due to loss of water, in consequence of which the cells of the 
 leaves lose their turgidity, and the leaf-blades and petioles are no 
 longer sufficiently rigid to maintain their position of expansion. 
 The loss of water is the result of the continuance of transpiration 
 in the absence of a supply of water to meet it. The incision 
 which has destroyed the continuity of the wood has also cut off 
 the supply of water from the root. The relation between the 
 development of the xylem and the activity of transpiration is well 
 illustrated by the comparison of the vascular bundles of a land- 
 plant with those of an allied submerged aquatic species. The 
 former transpires actively and has well-developed xylem : the 
 latter does not transpire at all, and has quite rudimentary xylem. 
 
 Conduction takes place in dicotyledonous tree-trunks only 
 through so much of the peripheral portion of the wood as includes 
 living parenchymatous cells. The thickness of this conducting 
 region varies widely ; it is relatively small where the wood is 
 sharply differentiated into alburnum and duramen (see p. 199), 
 and in such trees (e.g. Oak) section of the alburnum is soon 
 
678 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 followed by the withering of the leaves above the wound ; it is 
 more considerable in trees like the Beech, in which the transition 
 from alburnum to duramen is gradual ; and it is most extensive in 
 those, such as Birch and Maple, in which there is no differentiation 
 of alburnum and duramen. The dead portion of the wood does 
 not conduct, but at most only serves as a reservoir of water. 
 
 The tracheal tissue of the xylem discharges a purely mechanical 
 function in connexion with the conduction of water ; it is in- 
 capable of any vital action inasmuch as it contains no protoplasm. 
 
 A fundamental anatomical fact connected with the conduction 
 of liquids by the wood is that the functional tracheal tissue is 
 destitute of intercellular spaces, and is, in fact, shut off from all 
 communication with the external air. This occlusion is ensured, 
 generally speaking, by the endodermis (p. 165); but in stems 
 and roots which have grown in thickness, and in which the 
 endodermis has been disorganised or thrown off, the compact 
 bast-tissue replaces it functionally. 
 
 The liquid conducted from the roots to the leaves by the 
 tracheal tissue is not pure water, but holds in solution substances 
 absorbed by the roots from the soil ; hence this tissue plays an 
 important part in the distribution of food-materials in the plant. 
 
 e. The Sieve-Tissue (see p. 135). The function of the sieve- 
 tubes or phloem-vessels is to convey proteids from the organs in 
 which these substances are deposited or are being formed, to other 
 parts in which they are either being consumed or deposited as 
 reserve plastic material. This is demonstrated by the following 
 experiment : If a ring of tissue, extending inwards as far as the 
 cambium, be removed from the trunk of a young dicotyledonous 
 tree, the sieve-tubes will all be cut through, and their continuity 
 interrupted. The effect of this upon the tree is that the portion 
 of the trunk below the wound, and the roots, cease to grow and 
 slowly die, whereas the trunk and branches above the wound 
 remain healthy and continue to grow until the roots are no longer 
 able to absorb water, etc., from the soil with sufficient activity. 
 Inasmuch as the cortical tissue, through which the sugar travels, 
 is necessarily also cut through, the operation deprives the lowei 
 parts of the body of the whole of their supply of organic plastic 
 material from the leaves, but does not interfere with the conduc- 
 tion of water from the roots to the leaves. 
 
 The sieve-tubes differ from the vessels of the xylem in that 
 they contain living protoplasm ; their function is therefore 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 679 
 
 probably not purely mechanical, but it is vital, though the 
 relation of the protoplasm to the conduction of proteids in the 
 sieve- tubes is not clear. 
 
 The companion-cells, and in their absence the cells of the bast- 
 parenchyma (p. 180), which abut on the sieve- tubes, apparently 
 serve in the leaves as the means by which the nitrogenous 
 products of anabolism are brought to the sieve-tubes, and in other 
 parts as the means by which the proteids of the sieve-tubes are 
 distributed to the adjacent tissues ; there is some evidence to 
 show that these cells themselves actually carry on the formation 
 of the proteids which form the characteristic contents of the sieve- 
 tubes. 
 
 In certain cases (e.rj. Mimosa pudicd) some of the parenchymatous cells of the 
 bast are specially modified apparently for the conduction of stimuli. 
 
 /. The Glandular Tissue. The essential function of the glandular 
 tissue is to secrete, and the secreta are either plastic substances 
 or waste-products. 
 
 It may be stated generally that the excretion of plastic sub- 
 stances on the surface of plants has special reference to their 
 relation with insects. Thus, the excretion of sugar by floral 
 nectaries is to attract insects to visit the flowers, and thns to 
 ensure the advantages of cross-pollination at a certain, though 
 relatively inconsiderable, cost. The excretion of sugar by extra- 
 floral nectaries (p. 138) is an expense incurred by the plant with 
 the object of attracting to it insects of a kind which will keep 
 off noxious insects or other animals ; these organs are especially 
 characteristic of myrmecophilous (ant-loving) plants, which by this 
 means provide themselves with a police of ants to keep off either 
 other injurious (e.g. leaf-cutting) species of ants, or insects of 
 other kinds (e.g. boring bees, etc.), or even herbivorous mammals. 
 Perhaps the most remarkable instances of this kind is the pro- 
 duction of small, solid, cellular " food-bodies " on the tips of the 
 leaf-pinnules of a myrmecophilous species of Acacia (A. sphceru- 
 cepliala). 
 
 The secretion of waste-products has, as its immediate object, 
 the removal of these substances from the sphere of metabolism ; 
 but their deposit at or near the surface serves the purpose of 
 protection in various ways. For instance, the secretion of wax on 
 the surface is an obvious protection against wet. Similarly there 
 can be little doubt that when the system of resin-ducts, in plants 
 
680 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 which contain them (e.g. most Conifers, etc.), is opened by a 
 wound, the resin serves to protect the raw surface both mechani- 
 cally and antiseptically ; and this doubtless also applies to the 
 latex present in many plants. Further, these waste- products, by 
 their bitter, acrid, or astringent taste, by their frequently poisonous 
 properties (e.g. alkaloids), or by their hardness, serve to protect 
 the plants from being eaten by animals ; for instance, the pre- 
 sence of raphides, or of strongly acid sap, in the cells of leaves, 
 etc., has been proved to protect them against the attacks of snails. 
 The secretion of mucilage by the glandular hairs (colleters) often 
 developed near the growing-points of stems and leaves, serves to 
 keep the young tissues moist. 
 
 The special functional importance of the laticiferous tissue is 
 not fully understood. There is no doubt that it is, in the first 
 place, a reservoir of waste-products, since the latex generally 
 consists largely of such substances (e.g. caoutchouc, as in Siphonia 
 elastica ; alkaloids, as in the opium of the Poppy, etc.). But the 
 latex has also been found to contain plastic substances, such as 
 proteids and carbohydrates, and in one case (the Papaw, see p. 627) 
 a proteolytic ferment, and it has hence been inferred that this 
 tissue may serve to conduct plastic substances throughout the 
 plant ; but this inference has not been satisfactorily established. 
 
 5. The Functions of the Members. It has been pointed 
 out (p. 6) that, in its highest development, the plant-body consists 
 of the following members : root, stem, leaf. These members will 
 now be considered from the physiological point of view. 
 
 a. THE ROOT. The most general of the functions of the root is 
 that it absorbs the solid food of the plant in solution from the 
 substratum, whatever it may be, on which the plant is growing ; 
 and that, at the same time, it acts as an organ of attachment : in 
 submerged plants the latter is its main use. 
 
 In some few cases the plant is rootless (p. 63) : under these circumstances 
 other members become modified to perform the absorbent function of the root ; 
 in Salvinia, the aquatic leaves ; in Psilotum, the subterranean shoots. In the 
 "carnivorous" plants (e.g. Drosera, Dionaea, Nepenthe>), though they possess 
 roots, the leaves are adapted for the absorption of organic food in solution. 
 
 In a typical land-plant the development of the root-system is 
 such as to ensure an adequate supply of food from the soil, and a 
 supply of water sufficient to maintain the general turgidity of the 
 plant in spite of continued loss of water by transpiration. 
 
 The root of such a plant is adapted for the performance of its 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 681 
 
 functions both in its structure and in its properties. The most 
 striking structural adaptation is that the walls of the superficial 
 cells of the younger parts are not cuticularised, but remain per- 
 vious to water. Generally speaking, the absorbent area of the 
 root is increased by branching ; and, in many cases, also by the 
 growing-out of the superficial cells of this region into root-hairs 
 (see p. 159). It appears that the development of root-hairs is de- 
 termined by the difficulty of obtaining water, on the one hand, 
 
 FIG. 468. A Root-hairs (7i) on the primary root (10) of a seedling, grown in water of 
 Buckwheat (Polygonum Fagop>,rum); Tic hypocotyl ; c cotyledons. B (after Sachs) Ends of 
 root-hairs showing their intimate connexion with particles of soil which adhere to the 
 mucilaginous external layer of the cell-walls. 
 
 and by the relative activity of transpiration on the other : thus 
 root-hairs are usually not developed by aquatic plants, the roots of 
 which, at least, are habitually immersed in water; nor by plants 
 in which the transpiring surface is relatively small in proportion 
 to the root-system (e.g. small-leaved Conifers; saprophytes, such 
 
682 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 as Monofcropa and Neottia). The root-hairs not only promote the 
 absorption of water, but also the absorption of salts from the soil, 
 coming, as they do, into very intimate relation with the minute 
 particles of the soil. They thus give the root a firmer hold on the 
 soil, and render it more serviceable as an organ of attachment. 
 
 Roots are capable of absorbing certain substances in the soil 
 which are insoluble in water, or even in water holding carbon 
 dioxide in solution. This is due to the fact that the absorbent cells 
 (including root- hairs) contain acid sap, which saturates the walls, 
 and can thus act upon substances with which the cells may be in 
 contact. 
 
 The tegumentary tissue of aerial roots is specially modified in 
 accordance with their external conditions. They have no root- 
 hairs (except when they come into contact with a moist surface), 
 but they have a more or less well-developed velamen (see p. 155)> 
 which serves as a means of absorbing water- vapour and gases from 
 the air. Sometimes these roots contain chlorophyll, and act as 
 assimilatory organs : this is also the case to a remarkable degree 
 with the roots of the (aquatic) Podostemaceee (see p. 63). 
 
 The primary internal structure of the root is remarkably con- 
 stant through all the various groups of plants. It is always mono- 
 stelic with the vascular bundles compacted into an axial cylinder 
 (p. 171): between the axial cylinder and the epiblema is a con- 
 siderable parenchymatous cortex, the cells of which take up from 
 the absorbent cells the water and substances absorbed, and transfer 
 them to the tracheal tissue of the bundles for conduction to the 
 upper parts of the plant. 
 
 The growing-point is usually provided with a root-cap (pp. 61, 
 154) to protect it as it makes its way through the soil. 
 
 In many cases the root becomes adapted to serve as a depository 
 of reserve plastic materials : such are the tuberous roots (p. 63) of 
 various plants, in which secondary growth in thickness (see p 195) 
 produces a large amount of parenchymatous tissue, in the cells of 
 which the plastic substances (starch, etc.) are deposited. 
 
 The physiological adaptation of the root is even more remark- 
 able in its properties than in its structure, as is shown by its 
 irritability to the action of various stimuli. Thus the action of 
 the force of gravity causes roots (at least primary roots) to grow 
 towards the centre of the earth (positive geotropism) : the action of 
 light, as a rule, causes the growing root to curve away from the 
 source of light (negative leliotropism) : a moist body causes the 
 
CHAPTER I. 3ENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 683 
 
 root to curve towards it (-positive liydrotropism) : contact with hard 
 substances produces curvatures by which the direction of growth 
 of the root is altered. 
 
 These various kinds of irritability are of great importance in 
 ensuring the due performance of its functions by the subterranean 
 root. Positive geotropism causes it to penetrate into the soil, and 
 this is also promoted by negative heliotropism : positive hydro- 
 tropism causes it to grow towards the moister parts of the soil, 
 and thus tends to ensure an adequate supply of water. Its sen- 
 sitiveness to contact enables the root to get round obstacles which 
 it may meet with in the soil. Similar phenomena of irritability 
 are exhibited by aerial roots, but with various modifications in 
 accordance with the widely different conditions. 
 
 b. THE STEM. The function of the stem is essentially this : to 
 bear the foliage-leaves and the reproductive organs, and to bear 
 them in such a way that they shall occupy the most favourable posi- 
 tion for the performance of their respective functions. Further, it 
 is the means of communication between the roots and the leaves. 
 Occasionally it is specially modified to subserve other functions. 
 
 It has been already pointed out that the form of the stem varies 
 widely in plants, and the most characteristic forms have been 
 described (pp. 40, 44). The general physiological meaning of this 
 variety of form is that different plants attain the most favourable 
 position of their foliage-leaves and reproductive organs in differ- 
 ent ways which depend upon the particular combination of ex- 
 ternal conditions under which they severally have existed. 
 
 The internal structure of the stem varies to some extent with 
 its general habit, and mainly in the arrangement and relative 
 degree of development of the sclerenchyma ; thus, the scleren- 
 chyma is more largely developed in an erect than in a trailing 
 perennial stem. 
 
 The arrangement of the vascular tissue, however, depends 
 essentially, at least in all those plants which have common 
 bundles, upon the arrangement of the leaves. In stems having 
 cauline bundles (p. 171) there is a more or less marked aggrega- 
 tion of the bundles towards the centre, so as to lead to the 
 formation of an axial vascular cylinder, as in roots ; this is espe- 
 cially marked in stems bearing small leaves, as in Lycopodium. 
 
 There is one point in connexion with the relation of the vascu- 
 lar tissue to the leaves which requires more special consideration. 
 It has been pointed out (p. 191) that vascular tissue is formed 
 
684 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 secondarily in the stems (and roots) of most Dicotyledons and 
 Gymnosperms, whereas it is not so formed in those of most Mono- 
 cotyledons and Vascular Cryptogams. A consideration of the 
 general habit of the plants in question at once affords a clue to 
 this remarkable diversity. In the plants of the former groups, 
 the stem, as a rule, branches considerably, and consequently there 
 is every year an increase in the area of the leaf -surf ace of the 
 plant ; whereas in the plants of the latter groups, the stem 
 branches but little if at all, and the area of leaf-surface remains 
 approximately constant in the adult plant. It is clear that, in 
 the former case, the increase of leaf-surface necessitates an increase 
 in the conducting vascular tissue, a demand which is met by the 
 annual formation of: an ever-widening ring of vascular tissue 
 by the cambium. Hence, in a plant of this kind, the vascular 
 bundles in the leaves of any one year are continuous, in the stem, 
 with the new vascular tissue formed in that year by the cambium. 
 
 Stems may be specially modified both in external form and 
 internal structure for the performance of special functions. Thus 
 in leafless plants the stem or its branches may become phylloid ; 
 that is, it may assume a flattened, leaf-like appearance (p. 44). 
 The cortical ground-tissue of the stems of such plants resembles 
 the mesophyll of foliage-leaves, not only in that the cells contain 
 chlorophyll-corpuscles in abundance, but also in the more or less 
 complete differentiation of a superficial palisade-layer from a 
 more deeply placed spongy tissue. The reduction of the foliage- 
 leaves and the compensating development of the stem is a charac- 
 teristic of many xerophilous plants : under these circumstances 
 the stem generally becomes succulent (as in Cactaceee, p. 628, and 
 some Euphorbiacese) owing to the development of a large amount 
 of parenchymatous tissue. 
 
 Again, stems may be specially modified to serve as depositories 
 of reserve materials (eg. tubers of potato), or of water (e.g. stems 
 of Cactacese), when they are much thickened by the development 
 of a large quantity of parenchymatous ground-tissue, in the cells 
 of which the water or the reserve-materials are deposited. Or 
 they may be developed into thorns (p. 44) as a protection against 
 being eaten. 
 
 The special physiological properties of stems by which they 
 assist in placing the foliage-leaves and reproductive organs in the 
 most favourable position, are their various kinds of irritability to 
 the action of external stimuli. 
 
CHAPTER 1. GEN REAL PHYSIOLOGY. 685 
 
 The physiological adaptation of stems is such that the move- 
 ments which they perform in response to the action of external 
 stimuli are always such as shall place the foliage-leaves and the 
 reproductive organs in the most favourable position. Some stems, 
 for instance, grow away from the centre of the earth (negative 
 geotropism) and towards the light (positive heliotropism) ; these 
 stems consequently grow up into the air, and take up such a 
 position with regard to the direction of the incident rays of light 
 that the leaves may be adequately exposed to them. Others, 
 again, grow horizontally under the influence of gravity (diageo- 
 tropism) and of light (diaheliotropism), and in this way spread 
 out their leaves to the sun's rays. 
 
 In some cases stems which tend to grow erect into the air are 
 unable to do so in consequence of being insufficiently rigid to 
 maintain their own weight, and that of their leaves, etc. Such 
 stems are enabled to obtain the necessary support by becoming 
 attached to foreign bodies, such as other plants, rocks, etc. This 
 attachment is sometimes purely accidental, as in the case of the 
 hook-climbers, such as the Bramble, where the stem is covered with 
 prickles which become fixed as the swaying shoot is blown about 
 by the wind. Bat in other cases the attachment is the result of 
 the mode of growth of the stem or its branches, in virtue of which 
 they twine round any suitable foreign body with which they may 
 come in contact. In some cases the stem and its branches are 
 sensitive to contact, e.g. Dodder ; in others, this sensitiveness is 
 restricted to certain specially modified branches, termed tendrils 
 (see p. 43, e.g. Vitis, Passiflora), and it is possessed by them in a 
 very high degree. 
 
 c. THE LEAF. In the discussion of the morphology of the leaf it 
 was pointed out that the forms of leaves are very various ; so 
 much so that it was necessary to classify them into a number of 
 categories. Each of these will now be briefly considered with 
 regard to its functions. 
 
 (1). Foliage-leaves. It may be stated generally with reference 
 to land-plants, that the two great functions subserved by the leaf 
 are, first, the construction of organic substance from the raw 
 materials of the food; and second, the exhalation of watery vapour, 
 or transpiration. 
 
 The internal structure of the leaf is in direct relation to these 
 two functions (see p. 162). The particular significance of the 
 form and arrangement of the cells of the mesophyll is made clear 
 
686 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 by the following considerations. The palisade-layers occur 
 always, beneath the epidermis, at those surfaces which are directly 
 exposed to the sun's rays. Further, if a plant which, when grown 
 exposed to sunlight, has well-marked palisade-layers in its leaves, 
 be grown in the shade, it will be found that the palisade-layers 
 are imperfectly differentiated, even if they can be detected at all. 
 The development of the palisade-layers is clearly a peculiarity of 
 leaves which are exposed to sunlight. One explanation is this 
 that bright light not only promotes the assimilatory function, but 
 also promotes the oxidation and decomposition of the chlorophyll. 
 The palisade-tissue affords a means of protection from the latter 
 effect. . When a leaf-surface is exposed to diffuse daylight, the 
 position of the chlorophyll-corpuscles in the palisade-cells is such 
 as to expose them as fully as possible to the light ; they are dis- 
 posed on the surf ace- walls, both upper and lower, of the palisade- 
 cells (epistrophe). When, however, diffuse daylight is replaced 
 
 by direct sunlight, the 
 position of the corpuscles 
 is changed (see Fig. 469) 
 so that their margin, and 
 not their surface, is pre- 
 sented to the sun's rays ; 
 they are removed to the 
 lateral walls and towards 
 the inner end of the cell 
 (apostrophe). It is clear 
 that the elongated form 
 of the cells facilitates 
 this withdrawal of the 
 corpuscles from too in- 
 tense light, to light of a 
 degree of intensity which 
 promotes the assimilatory function to the utmost extent compatible 
 with a due economy of the chlorophyll. 
 
 The spongy portion of the mesophyll is the tissue especially 
 adapted to the transpiratory function. By means of the large 
 intercellular spaces which form a system of channels throughout 
 this tissue communicating with the external air by means of the 
 stornata, a very large cell-surface, from which transpiration can 
 readily take place, is brought into direct relation with the external 
 air. Transpiration takes place from the cells of the spongy 
 
 FIG. 469. (After Stahl). Sections of the phylloid 
 stem of Lemna trisulca, illustrating epistrophe and 
 apostrophe of the chloroplastids : A position in dif- 
 fuse daylight (epistrophe); B position in intense 
 sunlight (apostrophe). 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 687 
 
 mesophyll into the intercellular spaces, and the watery vapour 
 then escapes from the leaf by the stomata. 
 
 A brief consideration of the peculiarities of the leaves of aquatic plants will 
 further establish these points. The characteristic feature of submerged leaves 
 is that they are very much divided, and consequently present a relatively 
 large surface by which they can absorb carbon dioxide and oxygen, as well as 
 salts, from the water. The mesophyll of these leaves is not differentiated 
 into palisade- tissue or spongy tissue; for, in the first place, the light to which 
 these leaves are exposed is not intense, and, in the second, they do not tran- 
 spire. A peculiar feature of these leaves is that the chlorophyll- corpuscles 
 are contained principally in the epidermal cells. Floating leaves, on the other 
 hand, usually have broad oval or rounded lamina, a form which is evidently 
 favourable to the retention of their position on the surface of the water. The 
 epidermis of the upper surface is well-developed and possesses stomata ; whereas 
 the walls of the epidermal cells of the lower surface are thin and uncuti- 
 cularised, so that they can absorb water and substances in solution, and there 
 are no stomata. The mesophyll is differentiated into palisade and spongy 
 tissue. The palisade-layers are arranged in the characteristic fashion towards 
 the upper surface of the leaf ; and commonly there lies between the superior 
 epidermis and the palisade-tissue, a layer of aqueous tissue which serves to 
 protect the chlorophyll of the latter frorh exposure to too intense light. 
 Towards the lower surface, the mesophyll is channelled by large intercellular 
 spaces, the use of which is to facilitate the aeration of the plant. 
 
 The foregoing consideration of the anatomy of these three types 
 of foliage-leaves leads to the conclusion that the spongy tissue 
 of the mesophyll is that in which both the assimilatory and the 
 transpiratory processes can be most satisfactorily carried on ; that, 
 in fact, the amount of spongy mesophyll in a leaf may be taken as 
 an indication of the degree of its physiological activity. Clearly 
 the close arrangement of the cells in the palisade-tissue is not so 
 favourable for the absorption of carbon dioxide or for the exha- 
 lation of watery vapour, as is the loose arrangement of the cells in 
 the spongy tissue. The palisade-tissue is transpiratory and assi- 
 milatory tissue so adapted for action in intense light, that trans- 
 piration is diminished, and protection is afforded not only to the 
 chlorophyll in its own cells, but also to that in the cells of the 
 tissue which it covers. 
 
 In many xerophilous plants, more or less of the mesophyll 
 may be destitute of chlorophyll, the cells containing much 
 watery sap (see p. 164), so that the leaf serves as a reservoir of 
 water. 
 
 Leaves are adapted not only structurally, but also by their 
 irritabilities, to the performances of their functions. They are 
 
 V. s. B. Y Y 
 
688 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 sensitive to the directive action of light and of gravity and, in 
 the course of their growth they take up a definite position 
 termed, on account of the predominating influence of light in 
 determining it, the fixed light-position. The response of the dor- 
 siventral leaf to the directive action of gravity, is generally one 
 of diageotropism, that is it places its blade horizontal, with the 
 ventral surface uppermost; and similarly, its response to light is 
 to expose the upper surface of its blade at right angles to the 
 direction of the incident rays (diaheliotropism) . The response of 
 the isobilateral and of the radial leaf to the action of gravity is one 
 
 FIG. 470 (after Darwin). Shoots of Desmodium gyrans, with trifoliolate leaves: A leaves 
 in diurnal position ; B in nocturnal position. 
 
 of negative geotropism, so that they grow erect ; and to light, one 
 of positive heliotropism, as they tend to direct their apices towards 
 the source of light. 
 
 Changes in the external conditions act as stimuli, which, in many 
 cases, induce a movement of the foliage-leaves involving change 
 of position : most frequently these movements are performed 
 by growing leaves, but also sometimes by adult leaves with a 
 permanent motile mechanism. They have been observed in the 
 growing leaves (and cotyledons) of many plants (e.g. Cheno- 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 689 
 
 podium, Impafciens, Polvgonum, Limim, etc.), and in the adult 
 leaves of many Oxalidaceae and Leguminosse. The common 
 feature of these movements is that they serve to vary the area of 
 surface presented to the sky by the leaf. They are commonly 
 known as " sleep-movements," or nyctitropic movements, because 
 they are usually associated with the alternation of day and night. 
 With a falling temperature and a diminishing intensity of light 
 the leaves assume the "night-position," presenting a diminished sur- 
 face, generally only the edge, to the zenith, the leaflets of compound 
 leaves at the same time approaching each other, with the result that 
 they are protected from injury by cold in consequence of excessive 
 radiation of heat : with a rising temperature and an increasing 
 intensity of light, the leaves assume the " day-position," presenting 
 their upper surfaces to the 
 zenith. But the day-posi- 
 tion is frequently liable to 
 modification, with a view to 
 the reduction of transpira- 
 tion and to the protection of 
 the chlorophyll from the ac- 
 tion of too intense light, by 
 movements which diminish 
 the leaf-area exposed to the 
 direct rays of the sun ; 
 and so, in some cases, the 
 edge, and not the upper 
 surface, is presented to the sun : these movements are designated 
 " diurnal sleep " or paraheliotropism. 
 
 Some foliage-leaves, but only such as have a special motile 
 mechanism, respond by movement to the stimulus of a touch. This 
 is the case in the "sensitive plants," such as Mimosa pudica and 
 other species, Biophytum (Oxalis) seusitivum, JEscliynomene indica, 
 Neptunia oleracea : the leaflets of the pinnate leaves of these 
 plants close together when touched, or when the plant is shaken, 
 and they are thus protected to some extent from injury by hail, 
 rain, or even wind. Other instances of movement in response 
 to touch are afforded by the " carnivorous " genera, Dionsea and 
 Aldrovanda, in which, when an insect alights on the upper surface 
 of the expanded leaf and touches the sensitive hairs, the two 
 lateral halves of the blade suddenly close together, like a hinge, 
 with the midrib as the axis. 
 
 Fro. 471. Leaf of Oxalis by day (T) and by 
 night (N). In the latter, each leaflet is folded 
 inwards at right angles along its midrib, and is 
 also bent downwards. 
 
690 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 Sensitiveness to long-continued contact is manifested by the 
 petioles of various plants (e.g. Tropaeolum, Clematis) ; sometimes 
 
 A B 
 
 FIG. 472 (after Duchartre) . Leaves of Mimosa pudica: A normal diurnal position; 
 B position assumed on stimulation. 
 
 by the whole phyllopodium (Lygodium) ; in many cases leaves 
 possessing this sensitiveness are modified into leaf -tendrils (see p., 
 
 58 ; as in Cucurbitacese, etc.) ; 
 leaves of this kind serve as 
 organs of attachment for climb- 
 ing. 
 
 Foliage-leaves are sometimes 
 modified into pitchers or ascidia 
 (p. 57) : these serve the purpose 
 in some cases (e.g. Nepenthes) 
 of capturing insects and of 
 digesting and absorbing them : 
 in other cases (e.g. Dischidia) 
 they collect water and organic 
 detritus ; in Dischidia adven- 
 titious roots are developed, 
 which lie in the pitchers and 
 absorb water, together with 
 dissolved substances, there- 
 from. 
 
 Leaf-spines appear to be exclusively protective against the 
 attacks of herbivorous animals. 
 
 FIG. 473 (after Darwin). Petiole of Solanum 
 jasminoides clasping a stick. 
 
CHAPTER I. GENERAL PHYSIOLOGY. 691 
 
 (2). CatapJiyllary or Scaly Leaves (p. 58) serve to protect, 
 growing-points and young leaves of buds, and in this they are 
 assisted by the secreting-hairs (colleters, p. 144) which they 
 frequently bear : they sometimes serve as depositories of reserve 
 plastic materials (e.g. scales of Onion-bulb). 
 
 (3). Floral Leaves. 
 
 a. Hypsophyllary Leaves. The leaves included under this 
 head are the bracts (and bracteoles) and the perianth-leaves 
 (p. 59). 
 
 When green, the bracts perform the ordinary functions of 
 foliage-leaves : but when they are collected around a flower 
 (epicalyx) or an inflorescence (e.g. involucre of Composite, 
 Euphorbia, etc.) they serve to protect the floral organs during 
 their development. When highly-coloured (e.g. in Araceae, 
 Euphorbiaceae, Nyctaginaceae), they serve to attract insects to 
 visit the otherwise inconspicuous flowers. 
 
 The sepals, like the bracts, are commonly green, and then they 
 perform the ordinary functions of foliage-leaves, and also serve 
 to protect the other floral organs : when petaloid (e.g. many 
 Ranunculaceae and Liliales), they attract insects for the purpose of 
 cross-pollination. 
 
 The petals are brightly-coloured in most flowers, and it is their 
 special function to attract insects. Not uncommonly they are 
 specially modified as nectaries (e.g. Helleborus), and thus further 
 contribute to ensure the visits of insects. 
 
 The perianth-leaves (and sometimes also the bracts), are often 
 capable of performing movements leading to the opening and 
 closing of the flower or inflorescence : thus the flowers of the 
 Crocus, Tulip, and Poppy, and the inflorescence of the Daisy, open 
 under the influence of rising temperature and increasing intensity 
 of light, closing under the contrary conditions : the closing is a 
 protection of the essential floral organs against cold and wet ; it 
 is essentially similar to the nyctitropic movements of foliage- 
 leaves (see p. 689). 
 
 b. Sporophyllary Leaves. As already stated (p. 77) the sporo- 
 phylls are the essential organs of the flower, when they are 
 aggregated on a special shoot, and have, in any case, the function 
 of asexually producing the spores. They are more or less generally 
 modified in form and structure in connexion with this function ; 
 and in the many different forms of flowers these leaves present 
 remarkable special adaptations which mainly refer to the process 
 
692 PAET IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 of pollination (see p. 452), to the distribution of the seed, etc. 
 It is impossible to enter upon a further consideration of the 
 biology of the flower, but the phenomena of movement presented 
 by the essential floral organs deserve special mention. 
 
 A remarkable case of spontaneous movement is that of the 
 gynostemium of Stylidium (Candollea) adnatum, the object of 
 which is the scattering of the pollen, and it accordingly begins 
 when the anthers are about to dehisce : the gynostemium bends 
 over till it touches a gland on the anterior petal, and to this it 
 adheres until it straightens and frees itself from the stioky gland 
 with a jerk which scatters the pollen ; the movement is then 
 repeated. 
 
 Induced movements are more common. Thus the two lobes of 
 the stigma (e.g. Mimulus, Bignonia, Martynia), close together on 
 being touched : the movement doubtless ensures the adhesion of 
 the pollen brought by an insect. The stamens are irritable in 
 many plants. For instance, in Berberis, when an insect touches 
 the irritable base of one of the nearly horizontal stamens, the 
 stamen rises up on its point of attachment as on a hinge, and 
 strikes the insect with the anther, thus dusting it with pollen. 
 Again, the syngenesious stamens of Centaurea (p. 664) shorten 
 on stimulation by touch : the flower is protandrous ; consequently, 
 as the filaments contract, the pollen shed by the coherent anthers 
 is pushed out of the open end of the anther-tube by the style 
 within, and is removed by the insect. 
 
 CHAPTER II. 
 
 / 
 
 SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTEITIVE FUNCTIONS. 
 
 6. Absorption. The food of plants is absorbed, generally 
 speaking, either from the soil or from the air. 
 
 Plants which do not possess chlorophyll (e.g. Fungi) usually 
 obtain the whole of their food from the soil ; whereas plants which 
 do possess chlorophyll absorb from the air one of the most im- 
 portant constituents of their food, namely carbon dioxide. 
 
 In exceptional cases it is obtained from other sources; for 
 instance, parasitic plants absorb their food from the hosts upon 
 which they live, and the " insectivorous " plants absorb a portion, 
 at least, of their food, from the insects which are caught by their 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 693 
 
 specially adapted leaves. Submerged aquatic plants absorb their 
 food entirely or mainly from the water in which they live. 
 
 As already mentioned (p. 668), the food of plants is always 
 absorbed in the fluid form ; either as a liquid or as a gas. The 
 liquid food, consisting of a watery solution of various substances, 
 is absorbed from the soil most commonly by the roots, or, in the 
 absence of roots, by other members (shoots, leaves) which have 
 become specially adapted for the performance of this function ; 
 the gaseous food (C0 2 ) is absorbed from the air by the green 
 parts (shoot) of plants, and, in the more highly differentiated 
 forms, more especially by the leaves. 
 
 Absorption of Liquids. When an organ which is adapted for the 
 absorption of liquids is performing its function, two processes are 
 in operation, namely, the absorption of the water, and the absorp- 
 tion of the substances which the water holds in solution : it is 
 important to clearly distinguish between these two processes, for 
 though they are necessarily carried on simultaneously, yet the 
 water and the dissolved substances are not absorbed in any con- 
 stant proportion. The two processes, in fact, depend upon some- 
 what different conditions. The cells of the absorbent organ take 
 up the water in consequence of the presence in solution in the 
 cell-sap of osmotically active substances, such as organic acids and 
 acid salts, which attract water into the cells. The substances 
 in solution in the water are absorbed in virtue, first, of their 
 diffusibility, that is their power of passing through membranes, 
 and secondly, of the fact that the cell-sap in the interior of the 
 absorbing cells contains less of the substances in question than 
 does the water outside. Hence any indiffusible substance which 
 may be dissolved in the water will not be absorbed by the cells, 
 neither will any substance of which there is already an equivalent 
 quantity in solution in the sap of the cells, although the absorp- 
 tion of water may be actively taking place. These facts find 
 their general expression in the following statement which is 
 known as the Law of Absorption: for the watery solution of any 
 substance capable of being absorbed, there is a certain degree of 
 concentration at which the proportion of the amount of the sub- 
 stance absorbed to that of the water absorbed is the same as that 
 of the solution ; if the solution be more concentrated, the pro- 
 portion of water absorbed will be greater, and that of the sub- 
 stance less ; if the solution be more dilute, the proportion of the 
 substance absorbed will be greater, and that of the water less. 
 
694 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 When, as is usually the case, the liquid with which the absorbent 
 cells come into relation, is a solution of a number of different sub- 
 stances, these different substances are not all absorbed in the same 
 proportion. Supposing the absorbing organ to be equally poor in 
 all these substances. Then, in the first instance, the substances 
 would be absorbed in proportion to their diffusibility, the most 
 diffusible being absorbed the most rapidly. Subsequently, how- 
 ever, the relative amount of substances absorbed would be de- 
 termined by the extent to which, after absorption, they severally 
 were chemically altered in the metabolism of the plant. For when 
 a substance is chemically altered in the plant, it ceases to exist, 
 as such, in the sap of the cells ; hence, when a substance is 
 constantly being decomposed in the plant, it can be also con- 
 tantly absorbed. When, on the other hand, an absorbed sub- 
 stance does not undergo chemical change in the plant, it ac- 
 cumulates in the sap of the cells, and consequently the absorp- 
 tion of it from without eventually ceases. 
 
 This point can be determined with regard, at least, to the 
 mineral substances which a plant absorbs, by an analysis of the 
 ash which is left behind on incinerating the plant, that is, on 
 burning away the combustible organic matter. The ash will be 
 found to include all the mineral elements present in the soil or 
 water from which absorption is taking place, in so far as those 
 elements are present in the form of compounds which are soluble 
 and diffusible. The general constitution of the ash depends upon 
 the chemical nature of the soil, and upon the physical properties 
 of the substances which comprise it, as is proved by the fact that 
 the constitution of the ash of any given plant varies with the soil 
 in which it grows. But the relative proportion of the various 
 chemical elements in the ash depends upon the capacity of the 
 plant to chemically alter the various compounds which it absorbs, 
 as is proved by the fact that the constitution of the ash varies 
 widely in plants of different kinds grown in the same soil ; it is 
 the expression of the specific metabolic properties of the plant, or, 
 in other words, of the specific absorbent capacity of the plant. And 
 not only has each plant a specific absorbent capacity, but this 
 varies at different periods in its development, in harmony with 
 the variation which takes place in its metabolic processes. 
 
 A good illustration of the different specific absorbent capacities of plants is 
 afforded by a comparison of the amount of silica in the ash of different plants. 
 Thus, an analysis of meadow-hay and of pea-straw, grown under the same 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 695 
 
 conditions, showed that the former contained 27 per cent, of silica, and the 
 latter scarcely 7 per cent. This is due to the fact that the Grasses deposit 
 considerable quantities of silica in their cell-walls, whereas Peas are unable to 
 do this to anything like the same extent. 
 
 It not infrequently happens that chemical elements are found to 
 be present in the ash, which are known to be present in the 
 soil in the form of compounds which are insoluble in water. 
 These compounds are brought into solution by various means. 
 For instance, the soil usually contains carbon dioxide, which is 
 evolved from the decomposing animal or vegetable matter which 
 is commonly present, and from the absorbent organs themselves ; 
 and it is well known that various substances, such as calcium car- 
 bonate and certain silicates, which are insoluble in pure water, 
 are soluble in water charged with carbon dioxide. Again, tne sap 
 which fills the vacuoles and saturates the walls of root-hairs, has 
 an acid reaction, due to the presence of organic acid, and this acid 
 sap will dissolve many substances which are insoluble in pure 
 water. The solvent effect of this acid sap is well demonstrated by 
 means of the familiar experiment with a slab of marble. If a 
 highly-polished slab of marble be fixed in the bottom of a flower- 
 pot, and a plant be grown in the soil above it, the roots will come 
 into contact with the slab and will apply themselves to its surface. 
 On subsequently examining the slab of marble, it will be found to 
 have become corroded where the roots had been in contact with 
 it. The corrosion is due to the solution, by the acid sap of the 
 roots, of particles of the marble. 
 
 The activity of the absorption of water is dependent upon the 
 temperature. For example, the absorption of water by roots be- 
 gins at a minimum temperature ; it increases in activity as the 
 temperature rises to optimum ; any further rise of temperature is 
 attended by a diminished activity of absorption. 
 
 Absorption of Gases. The absorption of gases depends, like the 
 absorption of water and substances in solution, upon diffusion. 
 Supposing an absorbent cell, the sap of which holds, to begin with, 
 no gases in solution, to be brought into relation with a mixture of 
 gases, these gases will be dissolved at the surface in proportion to 
 their solubility and to the amount of each gas present in the mix- 
 ture, that is, the amount absorbed of each gas depends, in the first 
 instance, upon its solubility and its partial pressure. The relative 
 amount of each gas absorbed over a period of time will further 
 depend upon the extent to which it undergoes chemical alteration 
 
696 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 after absorption. For instance, plants absorb from the air 
 nitrogen, oxygen, and carbon dioxide under certain circumstances. 
 On account of the greater proportion of nitrogen in the air, this 
 gas will be, in the first instance, absorbed to a larger extent than 
 either of the others. But inasmuch as the nitrogen does not enter 
 into the metabolic processes of the plant, whereas oxygen and, 
 under certain circumstances, carbon dioxide, do so, the nitrogen 
 simply accumulates in the cell-sap, and the absorption of it will 
 soon cease, whereas the absorption of the oxygen and of the carbon 
 dioxide will continue. 
 
 Land-plants absorb gases, in the manner described above, at all 
 points of their surface ; by their shoots from the air, by their roots 
 from the gaseous mixture in the interstices of the soil ; the stomata 
 of the sub-aerial parts are of great importance in connexion with 
 this process. Submerged water-plants absorb, in solution, the 
 gases dissolved in the water. 
 
 The absorbed gases remain in solution in the cell-sap, so that 
 living cells do not contain babbles of gases. Moreover, gases 
 travel in the plant mainly by diffusion from cell to cell, though 
 their distribution may also be effected by means of the intercellular 
 spaces. 
 
 The particular gas which may be regarded as a food-material is 
 carbon dioxide. Although the amount of this gas to be found in 
 the air, or in solution in water, at any given moment, is usually 
 small, yet inasmuch as the supply is maintained, enough of it can 
 be obtained for the needs of the plant. The conditions of its 
 absorption are the following : First, it is only absorbed by those 
 cells which contain chlorophyll ; Secondly, it is only absorbed by 
 these cells when exposed to light of a certain intensity, the most 
 active rays being those of low refrangibility. 
 
 7. Transpiration. Every part of a plant which is exposed 
 to the air, except such as are covered by a thick layer of cork, is 
 continually exhaling watery vapour. This may be demonstrated 
 by placing a leafy branch under a bell-glass, when it will shortly 
 be observed that the internal surface becomes covered with drops 
 of water, the watery vapour exhaled by the branch having con- 
 densed upon the cold glass. Again, the drooping of cut flowers 
 or herbaceous branches is due to the loss of water by transpira- 
 tion. 
 
 It must be clearly understood that transpiration is not simply 
 evaporation, if it were so, then clearly equal amounts of water 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 697 
 
 would be evaporated in a given time by equal areas of water- 
 surface, and of living plant-surface. But this is not the case. 
 All observations show that the amount of water transpired from a 
 given area of living plant-surface in a given time, is only a small 
 fraction of that evaporated in the same time from an equal surface 
 of water. On the other hand, the evaporation from dead plant- 
 surface is as active, or even more so, than from a free surface of 
 water. Transpiration, whilst ultimately depending upon the 
 purely physical process of evaporation, is essentially evaporation 
 modified by the living substance, protoplasm, from and through 
 which it takes place, and is therefore a vital function. 
 
 The activity of transpiration is intimately connected with the 
 external conditions. It is dependent upon the hygrometric state 
 of the atmosphere, upon the temperature of the air, and especially 
 upon exposure to light. Naturally, the drier the atmosphere the 
 more active the transpiration; and, similarly, a rise of temperature 
 promotes transpiration. The effect of exposure to light is very 
 striking. On removing a plant from darkness to even feeble 
 light, its transpiration is markedly increased; but when it is re- 
 moved into bright sunlight it is increased severalfold. This effect 
 of light is especially marked in the case of plants, or parts of 
 plants, which contain chlorophyll. It is clear that light so acts 
 upon the protoplasm of the transpiring tissue as to facilitate the 
 evaporation of the water contained in the cells. 
 
 The activity of the transpiration from the surface of a plant 
 is inversely proportional to the development of the tegumentary 
 tissue. Thus, transpiration is rapid in the case of stems and 
 leaves in which cuticularisation or suberisation of the superficial 
 cell- walls has taken place to but a small extent or not at all, 
 whereas the transpiration of organs which, like the trunks of 
 many trees, are covered externally by layers of cork, or which, 
 like the stems and leaves of succulent plants, such as Cacti, Aloes, 
 Crassulaceae, etc., have a thick cuticle, is comparatively slight. 
 
 However, inasmuch as most aerial leaves and stems have a 
 more or less well-developed and cuticularised tegumentary tissue, 
 the transpiration from the external surface is insignificant. In 
 such cases the transpiration takes place mainly through the thin 
 uiicuticularised walls of the cells of the ground-tissue into the 
 intercellular spaces, and the watery vapour escapes from the 
 intercellular spaces into the external air by means of the stomata 
 and the lenticels. The stomata, especially, are organs for the 
 
698 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 regulation of transpiration. As already mentioned (p. 156), the 
 stomata open and close, their opening and closing being dependent 
 upon variations in the turgidity of the guard-cells. When the 
 guard-cells are highly turgid, they curve so as to separate from 
 each other in the middle line, thus opening the stoma ; when they 
 are flaccid, their free surfaces are brought into contact, and the 
 stoma is closed. It was held for a long time that the opening and 
 closing of the stomata depended mainly on whether or not the plant 
 was exposed to light; that the stomata opened in bright light 
 and closed in darkness; and that the more active transpiration 
 in light than in darkness was attributable to the condition of the 
 stomata. But it is now known that the opening or closing of the 
 stomata is not thus directly dependent on light, but is a function 
 of transpiration as affected by the hygrometric condition of the 
 air, and by the supply of water in the plant : so that when the 
 transpiration is normal, as determined by a certain relation exist- 
 ing between the hygrometric condition of the air and the supply 
 of water to the transpiring leaf, the stomata are open ; but when 
 transpiration becomes excessive, by the air becoming drier, or by 
 a diminution in the supply of water to the leaf, the stomata close, 
 even before any trace of flagging is shown by the leaf. Thus the 
 stomata act as regulators of transpiration, and their opening or 
 closing depends partly on external and partly on internal condi- 
 :ions. 
 
 The water lost by transpiration is supplied to the transpiring 
 organs from the roots. If the loss by transpiration is compensated 
 by the absorbent activity of the roots, the transpiring organs 
 remain fresh and turgid. But if, as is frequently the case on a 
 hot summer day, the loss of water by transpiration is greater than 
 the supply from the roots, the transpiring organs, more especially 
 the leaves, become flaccid and droop, and they are only restored 
 to the turgid condition in the evening when the temperature of 
 the air falls and the intensity of the light diminishes ; in a word, 
 when the external conditions become such as to lead to a diminu- 
 tion of the transpiration. 
 
 There is, however, besides the flaccidity of the herbaceous 
 members of the plant, another means of observing the effect of 
 transpiration upon the amount of water contained in the tissues. 
 If the stem, or a branch, of an actively transpiring plant be cut 
 through under mercury or some other liquid, it will be observed 
 that the liquid will at once make its way for a considerable 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 699 
 
 distance into the woody tissue of the cut stem or branch. This is 
 due to the fact that, in consequence of the withdrawal of water 
 from them, the gases in the vessels are at a lower pressure than 
 that of the atmosphere. This is termed the negative pressure in 
 the vascular tissue. 
 
 These various points can be readily observed in low-growing 
 plants, such as the cabbage. On a hot summer day the leaves 
 become flaccid, and the existence of a negative pressure in the 
 vessels of the stem can be ascertained. In the evening, when the 
 activity of transpiration is diminished, but active absorption of 
 water from the warm soil by the roots continues, the leaves 
 become turgid, and water gradually accumulates in the vascular 
 tissue. During the night this accumulation of water in the 
 vascular tissue goes on until it becomes quite fall, so that there 
 conies to be not only no negative pressure, but a positive 
 pressure. This positive pressure, were there no means of re- 
 lieving it, might become injurious to the tissues; but it is re- 
 lieved by the filtering of drops out of the closed terminations of 
 the vascular bundles in the leaves, these drops making their way 
 to the surface through openings over the ends of the bundles, 
 which are either the ordinary stomata, or the specially-modified 
 water-stomata. A row of such drops on the margin of the leaves 
 may be observed in many plants in the early morning. It 
 appears, then, that during the day the loss of water by transpira- 
 tion is greater than the supply by absorption, whereas during the 
 night the contrary is the case. 
 
 With regard to the physiological significance of transpiratio 
 it is important in that it causes a rapid current of liquid, th 
 transpiration-current, to flow through the plant from the roots to 
 the transpiring organs, more especially the leaves. This ensures 
 the distribution, not only of the absorbed water, but also of thd 
 substances absorbed in solution from the soil. It will be noticed 
 that the conditions which promote transpiration, namely, light 
 and warmth, are just those which are most favourable to the per- 
 formance of their anabolic processes by the organs which contain 
 chlorophyll. Thus, when the leaves are actively producing organic 
 substance, they are actively transpiring, and they are therefore 
 constantly receiving supplies of the substances absorbed from the 
 soil, substances some at least of which are essential to the 
 chemical processes in operation. Transpiration has, then, an 
 important bearing upon nutrition. There seems to be, in fact, an 
 
700 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 optimum activity of transpiration, that is to say, a certain activity 
 of transpiration which promotes to the utmost the formation of 
 organic substance ; so that if the average activity of transpiration 
 falls short of, or exceeds, this optimum, the nutrition of the plant 
 suffers, as shown by a diminished formation of organic substance. 
 
 8. Distribution of Water and other Substances. It is 
 clear that, when the plant -body is so far differentiated that only 
 certain parts of it are in a position to absorb water and substances 
 in solution from without, there must be a distribution of the ab- 
 sorbed substances from the absorbent surfaces to the other parts. 
 Further, when the plant-body is differentiated into parts which do, 
 and others which do not, contain chlorophyll, there must be a 
 distribution of the produced organic substance from the former to 
 the latter. 
 
 In plants of relatively low organisation, the distribution takes 
 place entirely by diffusion; by simple diffusion when the plant is 
 a ccenocyte ; by diffusion through the cell- walls, that is by osmosis, 
 when the plant is multicellular : and even in the highest plants 
 diffusion plays an important part. 
 
 With regard, first, to the distribution of water and substances 
 absorbed in solution from without, in the more highly organised 
 plants. In these plants, as already stated, the conducting tissue is 
 the wood or xylem of the vascular bundles, extending from the 
 roots, the absorbent organs, to the leaves, the transpiring organs. 
 
 With regard to the mechanism by which the water absorbed by 
 the roots is conveyed to the leaves, it must, in the first place, be 
 clearly understood that, as already mentioned (p. 678), the xylem 
 does not communicate directly with the atmosphere, but is a com- 
 pletely closed tissue-system. The mode in which water and sub- 
 stances in solution are introduced into this closed tissue-system in 
 the root is as follows : The root-hairs absorb water from the 
 soil; the absorbed water passes by osmosis from the root-hairs 
 into the adjacent cortical parenchymatous cells of the root ; these 
 cells become highly turgid, and when a certain degree of 
 turgidity is attained, the water escapes by filtration under 
 pressure from the innermost parenchymatous cells into the xylem- 
 vessels upon which they abut. The water is thus forced into the 
 xylem under considerable pressure, which is termed the root- 
 pressure. In the leaves, water is withdrawn from the xylem by 
 the adjacent cells which absorb it osmotically, and from these in 
 turn by those which are actually transpiring. 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 701 
 
 The Root- Pressure. The existence of the root-pressure can be 
 easily ascertained. It is manifested spontaneously by that exuda- 
 tion of drops on the margin of the leaves of low-growing plants 
 during the night, to which allusion has already been made (p. 699). 
 An artificial manifestation of it is induced in stems which are cut 
 across at a time when, owing to active absorption and feeble 
 transpiration, the plants are rich in water; drops exude from the 
 xylem-vessels at the cut surface of that part of a stem which is 
 still in connexion with the root. A familiar case of this is the 
 " bleeding " of certain shrubs and trees when pruned in the 
 spring. It is possible, in this way, to estimate both the activity 
 and the force of the root-pressure. By collecting the water which 
 exudes from the cut surface of the stem, the amount of water 
 absorbed by the root in a given time is determined ; and by 
 attaching a mercurial manometer to the cut surface of the stem 
 the force of the root-pressure can be measured. For instance, 
 3,025 cubic millimetres of liquid were collected from a Stinging 
 Nettle in 99 hours ; and the root-pressure required a column of 
 mercury 354 millimetres in height to counterbalance it : in other 
 words, the root-pressure of the Nettle was nearly half an 
 atmosphere, and was capable of supporting a column of water 
 about 15 feet high. 
 
 The essential point in the mechanism of the root-pressure is 
 the forcing of liquid by filtration under pressure from the paren- 
 chymatous cells into the xylem. The process is probably to 
 be explained somewhat in this way. When a certain degree of 
 turgidity is attained in the parenchymatous cells abutting on the 
 xylem, their motile protoplasm, undergoes a molecular change, in 
 consequence of which it becomes permeable and ceases to offer 
 resistance to the escape of the cell-sap ; consequently, under the 
 elastic contraction of the distended cell-walls, a portion of the cell- 
 sap is forced out of the cell. This molecular change in the state of 
 aggregation of the protoplasm of the parenchymatous cells probably 
 takes place at more or less regular intervals, so that there is a 
 sort of rhythmic pumping of liquid into the xylem of the root. 
 From this point of view, the root-pressure of a plant is simply the 
 expression of the force of the elastic contraction of the cell- walls 
 of the parenchymatous cells abutting on the xylem-bundles in the 
 root. 
 
 With regard to the external conditions which affect the root- 
 pressure, the most important is the temperature of the soil; a 
 
702 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 rise of temperature up to the optimum increases the root-pressure, 
 but any further rise causes it to diminish, and if the soil be 
 heated so as to kill the roots, the root-pressure altogether dis- 
 appears. In any case the force of the root-pressure is not 
 uniform, but varies ; and the more considerable variations occur 
 in such a way as to constitute a well-marked daily period. The 
 exact periodicity depends partly on the age of the plant, and 
 partly on the conditions under which it has been living : it 
 may be generally described as follows : The force of the root- 
 pressure is least during the early morning hours ; it then gradually 
 increases, reaching its maximum early in the afternoon, and then 
 it diminishes during the evening and night until the minimum 
 is attained early the following morning. Thus there is a period 
 of about twelve hours between the occurrence of the minima and 
 the maxima, and there can be no doubt that this periodicity has 
 been induced by the periodic changes in the external conditions 
 accompanying the alternation of day and night. 
 
 The liquid forced into the tracheal tissue is by no means pure 
 water; it holds various substances in solution, such as mineral salts 
 absorbed from the soil ; in the spring it is relatively rich in orgajiic 
 substances, such as proteids, sugar, acids, colouring- matters, etc., 
 derived from the reserves stored in the parenchymatous cells of 
 the root, which are being conveyed to the opening buds. 
 
 The Transpiration-Current. The mechanism by which, aftei- the 
 liquid has been forced into the xylem of the root, a sufficient 
 current is maintained through the stem of a lofty tree to supply 
 the actively transpiring leaves, is still one of the incompletely 
 solved problems of physiology. 
 
 It might be assumed that the transpiration- current is main- 
 tained simply by the root-pressure. There is no doubt that, in 
 low-growing plants (see p. 701), the root-pressure is sufficient to 
 force liquid to all parts of the plant ; and this is probably true also 
 of lofty trees. The objection is that no root-pressure can be de- 
 tected at any time in a great many plants, and that it can never 
 be detected in any plant at the time when transpiration is active, 
 when, on the contrary, there is negative pressure (p. 699) in the 
 vessels. Moreover, a transpiration- current is maintained for a 
 iime by entire plants whose roots have been killed by heat, as also 
 by cut-off shoots. 
 
 It has been suggested that the current is maintained by a 
 repetition of the root-pressure-action at various levels in the stem, 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 703 
 
 water being absorbed and then returned under pressure into the 
 vessels by the adjacent parenchymatous cells. This view, based 
 principally on anatomical facts, is supported by but little direct 
 evidence, although it has been ascertained in certain cases that 
 the parenchymatous cells of the stem are capable of forcing 
 liquid into the xylem : for instance, when a piece of a grass- 
 haulm is placed with its lower end in wet sand, drops of water 
 may be observed to exude from the upper cut surface after a 
 time. But in view of the fact that the transpiration- current can 
 be maintained through a considerable length of stem killed by heat, 
 as also of the fact that fatally poisonous solutions may be thus 
 conveyed upwards through the wood for a length of time which 
 ensures the death of all the adjacent parenchymatous cells, it is 
 difficult to see how this theory can be maintained. 
 
 It has also been suggested that the current is due to purely 
 physical causes, such as capillarity and the difference between 
 the pressure of the external atmosphere and the lower pressure of 
 the gases in the xylem of the plant, or the differences of pressure 
 of the gases in the lower and upper parts of the plant. With 
 regard to capillarity, it need only be pointed out that in 
 many cases {e.g. Coniferee) the conducting-tissue of the xylem 
 does not consist of continuous capillary tubes, but of closed 
 tracheids; here it is impossible for a column of water to be 
 raised by capillarity, and yet the current is maintained ; and 
 even in plants with continuous xylem-vessels, the force of capil- 
 larity would be altogether inadequate for the maintenance of the 
 current. With regard to the " gas-pressure-theory," it will suf- 
 fice to point out that, even if it were well-founded, it could only 
 account for the raising of water in the plant to a height of thirty- 
 two feet at the utmost ; but it is not well-founded, for inasmuch 
 as the xylem-system is air-tight, being shut off from all commu- 
 nication with the external air (see p. 678), the movement of fluids 
 within it is in no degree affected by the atmospheric pressure, 
 and the internal differences of gas-pressure are altogether in- 
 adequate. However, though neither capillarity nor differences of 
 pressure can be regarded as the active cause of the current, the 
 maintenance of the current is affected both by the capillarity of 
 the vascular tissue through which it travels, and by the varying 
 pressure of the gases which that tissue may contain. 
 
 Two facts have been made clear by the foregoing considerations : 
 first, that the water contained in the wood is readily mobile, a 
 
 v, s, B. z z 
 
704 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 fact which has been proved beyond question by special experi- 
 ments : second, that the only force remaining to which the move- 
 ment of the transpiration-current in the stem can be attributed, is 
 that of the osmotic absorption of water from the tracheal tissue 
 by the adjacent cells of the leaves when transpiration is going 
 on. In accordance with these facts it has been suggested that 
 the water travels molecularly through the substance of the 
 lignified cell-walls, the water taken up from the wood by the 
 transpiring leaves being at once replaced by fresh molecules 
 coming up from below. The merit of this view, known as the 
 " imbibition- theory," is that it overcomes the difficulty of account- 
 ing for the raising of water through the cavities of the trachea! 
 tissue; for the molecules of the water thus conceived of as being 
 held in the substance of the cell-walls will travel, like the mole- 
 cules of a gas, in the direction of least resistance, that is, towards 
 the transpiring organs. Moreover it is true that the transpiration- 
 current will only travel through wood the walls of which are 
 saturated with water. But it is objected to this theory that it 
 does not accord with the fact that any diminution or interruption 
 of the lumina of the vessels, by compression for instance, or by 
 section, diminishes or arrests the transpiration-current ; clearly 
 this ought not to be the case if the current travels exclusively in 
 the walls. Moreover it has been ascertained that the actually 
 conducting-tissue of the wood always contains water in its cavities 
 even when transpiration is most active, though bubbles of gas are 
 also present, at any rate in the wider vessels or tracheids. 
 
 The conclusions to be drawn as to the mechanism of the trans- 
 piration-current in lofty trees, may be stated as follows. In the 
 spring the wood is full of water forced into it by root-pressure. 
 When the leaves unfold, and begin to transpire, water is gradually 
 withdrawn from the conducting tracheal tissue, and the tissue is, at 
 any rate for the most part, occupied by a system of short columns 
 of water with intervening gas-bubbles, the columns of water being 
 in communication by delicate films along the cell-walls. If the 
 whole of the tracheal tissue be in this state, it is suggested that 
 as water is withdrawn from the upper part of the wood by the 
 transpiration of the leaves, a current is set up, the water travelling 
 along the cell-walls, between them and the gas-bubbles. But it 
 may be that a continuous system of tracheids completely filled 
 with water is maintained, and that it is through this that the 
 current travels. The conducting-tissue is supplied with water, 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 705 
 
 in the first instance, from that which fills the non-conducting 
 tissue of the wood (and the old wood or duramen, if present), and 
 ultimately by the root. It may be thought that the suction due 
 to transpiration would be incapable of maintaining the current; 
 but this difficulty is met by the consideration that the water is 
 held in position by the capillarity and the cellular structure of 
 the tracheidal tissue, and that the system of columns of water 
 and gas-bubbles does not move as a whole, since the latter cannot 
 pass the pit-membranes of tracheids. Moreover the force of 
 transpiratory suction is considerable, though it has not been 
 accurately measured. 
 
 The Distribution of Organic Plastic Substances. These substances 
 may be generally stated to consist of organic substances of two 
 kinds, nitrogenous and non-nitrogenous, and these are distributed 
 through different channels. 
 
 1. The nitrogenous substances travel, in plants or in parts of 
 plants which are not supplied with vascular tissue, in the form 
 of amides (see p. 707) by osmosis from cell to cell. But in 
 vascular plants it is known that they also travel in the sieve- 
 tissue from one member of the plant to another, in the form of 
 indi (fusible proteids. There is no evidence that the very slow 
 movement of the contents of the sieve-tubes is effected by any 
 special mechanism ; it appears to be simply induced by the de- 
 mand for these substances at any points, and it is doubtless 
 promoted by the swaying of the stem and branches. 
 
 2. The non-nitrogenous substances travel through the plant in 
 the form of glucose and maltose (see p. 708), in solution; they 
 travel by diffusion from cell to cell, and more especially in the 
 elongated parenchyraatous cells, forming the conducting -sheath, 
 which, in the leaf, consists of mesophyll-cells closely investing the 
 vascular bundles, and, in the stem, belongs to the inner cortex. 
 This layer is ' not the endodermis, but lies externally to it : the 
 endodermis frequently contains starch-grains, and is sometimes 
 termed the starch-sheath, but it is rather a depository than a con- 
 ducting-tissue. 
 
 The direction in which organic substances travel in the plant 
 seems to be determined simply by the demand for them. Just as 
 the water and the substances in solution absorbed by the roots 
 travel to the transpiring and assimilating organs, so the organic 
 substances produced in the assimilating organs travel in the 
 plant to those parts in which organic substance is either being 
 
706 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 used in growth, or is being stored up as reserve material. Tn a 
 Potato-plant, for example, part of the organic substance formed 
 in the leaves travels to the growing-points of the roots and of the 
 shoots, where it is required for the development of new leaves, 
 flowers, branches, etc., whilst the residue travels to the under- 
 ground shoots which are developing into tubers and are storing up 
 quantities of starch. Similarly, these organic substances travel 
 apparently by the same channels and in the form of the same 
 chemical compounds, from organs which serve as depositories of 
 reserve material, when these stores are drawn upon to supply the 
 growth of developing parts. For instance, when a Potato-tuber 
 begins to sprout, the starch, which is the principal reserve 
 material, is drawn upon, being gradually converted into sugar, 
 in which form it travels to the growing-points of the young 
 shoots and supplies a large proportion of the plastic material 
 necessary for their growth. 
 
 9. Metabolism. This subject will be subdivided into: 1, 
 Chemical Composition ; 2, Food of Plants ; 3, Anabolism ; 4, Cata- 
 bolism ; 5, Products of Metabolism ; 6, S apply and Expenditure of 
 Energy. 
 
 1. Chemical Composition. As a preliminary, a general account 
 of the chemical composition of plants will be given. 
 
 All parts of living plants contain a considerable quantity of 
 water : this forms not merely the principal constituent of the cell- 
 sap, but also saturates the cell-walls, the protoplasm, in short, all 
 organised structures; it is, in fact, one of the peculiarities of or- 
 ganised structures that minute particles of water are interposed 
 between the particles of solid matter of which they consist. By 
 heating to 100 or 110 C., all the water contained in any part of 
 a plant is expelled, and in consequence it will naturally lose 
 weight. The amount of this loss, that is, the quantity of contained 
 water, is very different in various plants ; ripe seeds dried in the 
 air contain from 12 to 15 per cent, of water, herbaceous plants 60 
 to 80 per cent., and many water-plants and Fungi as much as 
 95 per cent, of their whole weight. 
 
 The residue, which gives off no more water at a heat of 100 C., 
 the dry solid, consists of a great variety of chemical compounds ; 
 these are partly organic, that is to say, combinations of carbon 
 with other elements, and partly inorganic. These organic sub- 
 stances which occur in the living plant (with the exception of 
 salts of oxalic acid) all contain hydrogen. Some of them, such as 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 707 
 
 many oils, consist of these two elements only (carbon and hydro- 
 gen), but by far the greater number, including cellulose, starch?, 
 and sugar, as well as the vegetable acids and certain oils, contain 
 oxygen also. The proteid substances consist of carbon, hydrogen, 
 oxygen, nitrogen, sulphur, and sometimes phosphorus ; in other 
 bodies which contain nitrogen, as asparagin and many alkaloids, 
 there is no sulphur or phosphorus; from certain other alkaloids, 
 for instance nicotin, oxygen is also absent. 
 
 The commoner organic substances of which the plant-body 
 consists may, in the first instance, be divided into those which 
 do and those which do not contain nitrogen in their molecule. 
 
 The most important nitrogenous substances may be classified as follows : 
 
 1. Proteids : these are substances with a large molecule of complex constitu- 
 tion, to which no chemical formula has yet been assigned ; they may be soluble 
 or insoluble in water, and when soluble are mostly indiffusible ; they are gener- 
 ally of a viscid nature (like white of egg) and are rarely crystallisable. Of these 
 there are several varieties : 
 
 a. Insoluble Pruteids : do not dissolve even in dilute acids or alkalies : e.g. 
 
 coagulated proteid. 
 6. Albuminates : insoluble in water or solutions of neutral salts, but soluble 
 
 in dilute acids or alkalies, sometimes soluble in dilute alcohol : e.g. 
 
 gluten of wheat. 
 
 c. Globulins : insoluble in water, but soluble in solutions of neutral salts 
 
 (such as NaCl) and coagulated on boiling, sometimes crystallisable : 
 these enter largely into the composition of aleuron (see p. 112) ; the 
 crystalloids in the potato and in some aleuron-grains (e.g. Kicinus, 
 Bertholletia) consist of a kind of globulin (vitellin). 
 
 d. Albumins : soluble in water, coagulated on boiling : rare. 
 
 e. Albumoses : soluble in \sater, not coagulated on boiling, but precipitated by 
 
 a small quantity of nitric or acetic acid, and soluble in excess : a common 
 constituent of aleuron. 
 
 /. Peptones : soluble in water, not precipitated by boiling or by acids ; present 
 in germinating seeds. 
 
 2. Amides (or Amido-acids) : these substances are soluble in water, not 
 coagulated on boiling, diffusible, and crystallisable. Those commonly occurring 
 in plants are Asparagin (C 4 H 8 N 2 3 ), Leucin ( 12 H 26 N 2 4 ), Tyrosin (C 9 H n NO a ). 
 
 3. Alkaloids: these substances are, chemically, organic bases, occurring in 
 plants in combination with organic acids ; they are insoluble or but slightly 
 soluble in water, soluble in alcohol ; most of them are solid at ordinary tem- 
 peratures, and are crystalline, whilst others are liquid (Coniin, Nicotin) ; they 
 are generally poisonous. 
 
 The more familiar alkaloids are Coniin (C 8 H 15 N) from Conium ; Nicotin 
 (C 10 H 14 N 2 ) from Tobacco ; Morphin (C 17 H 19 N0 3 ), and other opium-alkaloids 
 from the Poppy ; Strychnin (C 21 H 22 N 2 2 ) from Slrychnos Nux vomica] Quiuin 
 (CgoH^NA) from the Cinchona ; Them (C 8 H 10 N 4 O 2 ) from Tea ; Theobromin 
 (C 7 H 8 N 4 O a ) from Theobroma Cacao. 
 
708 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 Some colouring-matter* are also nitrogenous (e.g. chlorophyll, and indigo 
 C 8 H 5 NO), as also some glucosides (see below). 
 The principal non-nitroyenuu* substances are : 
 
 1. Carbohydrates : substances consisting of C, H. and 0, the H and O being 
 present in the same proportions as in water (H 2 0) ; of these there are the 
 following classes : 
 
 a. Amyloses : general formula n (C 6 H 10 5 ) ; of these cellulose and starch are 
 
 the most common, the former entering largely into the composition of 
 cell- walls, the latter occurring as a reserve material in the form of starch- 
 grains ; they are neither of them soluble in water under ordinary circum- 
 stances : dextrin or amylin, a product of the action of diastase on starch, 
 is soluble in water but not crystallisable : inuliii occurs in many Com- 
 posite and allied orders (Campanulaceae, Lobeliaceas) in solution in the 
 cell-sap ; it is slightly soluble in cold water and is crystallisable. The 
 gums and mucilages also belong to this group. 
 
 b. Sucroses : C 12 H 22 U : soluble in water and crystallisable : cane-sugar 
 
 occurs in many plants (esp. Sugar-cane and Beetroot) ; maltose is the 
 chief product of the action of diastase on starch. 
 
 c. Glucoses : C 6 H 12 O 6 : soluble in water aud crystallisable : they occur in 
 
 fruits (grape-sugar). 
 
 The sucroses and glucoses are commonly known as sugars. 
 
 A substance termed Mannite (C 6 H 14 6 ) occurs in the cell- sap of Fraxinns 
 Oi-i'Us and some other plants : though not a carbohydrate, it is closely allied to 
 this group ; crystallisable, but not readily soluble in water. The glucoses are 
 derivatives (aldehydes) of mannite (an alcohol). 
 
 2. Organic Acids: these occur in the plant either free or, more commonly, 
 as neutral or acid salts in combination with organic or mineral bases ; some 
 are constituents of the fats and fixed oils (e.g. palmitic and oleic acids ; see 
 below): the more common are oxalic acid (H 2 C 2 4 ), malic acid (H 2 C 4 H 4 5 ), 
 tartaric acid (H 2 C 4 H 4 6 ), citric acid (H 3 C 6 H 5 7 ). 
 
 3. Glucusides : substances of complex constitution which owe their name to 
 the fact that they give rise, on decomposition, to glucose among other products: 
 such are amygdalin, C 2 oH 27 NO u (seeds, etc., of many Rosace) ; conifer in, 
 C 16 H 22 8 (coniferous wood) ; my rosin, or myronate of potash, KC 10 H 18 NS 2 10 
 (seeds of Mustard) ; salicin, Ci 2 H 18 7 (in bark of Willows and Poplars) ; yallu- 
 tannin, C 34 H 28 22 (in Oak-bark). 
 
 Though some of these substances (e.g. amygdalin and myrosin) contain 
 nitrogen, it is more convenient to classify them with the more numerous non- 
 nitrogenous glucosides. 
 
 4. Fats and Fixed Oil* : these substances, as they occur in the seeds and 
 fruits of plants, are mixture's of free fatty acid* with glycerin-compounds 
 (glycerides) of fatty acids; thus palm-oil is a mixture of palmitic and oleic 
 acids with their glyceridea palmitin, C 3 H 5 (C 1G H 31 O) 3 O 3 , which is a solid fat, 
 and olein, C 3 H 5 (C 18 H 33 0) 3 3 , which is a fluid fat or oil : olive-oil consists 
 chiefly of olein with some palmitin : castor-oil, of ricinolein (the glyceride of 
 ricinoleic acid) and stearin (the glyceride of stearic acid): linseed-oil, of linolein 
 (the glyceride of liuoleic acid) and palmitin. 
 
 5. Essential or Volatile Oils : these substances occur in various parts of 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 709 
 
 plants (flowers, fruit, etc.), and it is to them that the odours of plants are 
 chiefly due. They usually consist of a mixture of oxygenated compounds with 
 hydrocarbons of either the formula C 10 H 1G (terpenes) or C 15 H 24 : many of the 
 oxygenated compounds are solids held in solution in the liquid hydrocarbon ; 
 thus, turpentine (from Conifers) is a solution of resin (or abietic anhydride, 
 C U H 62 O 4 ) in the terpene called terebene ; camphor-oil consists of camphor 
 (C 10 Hi 6 O), a solid substance, dissolved in a terpene ; oil of cloves consists 
 chiefly of euyenol (C 10 H 12 2 ) with a hydrocarbon C 15 H 24 . Some essential oils 
 consist simply of a single substance the composition of which is various ; thus, 
 oil of bitter almonds is an oxygenated substance, C 7 H 6 (benzoic aldehyde); 
 oil of mustard is a sulphur-containing nitrogenous substance, C 3 H 5 ,NCS (allylie 
 isothiocyanate). 
 
 Allied to these hydrocarbons are the solid substances caoutchouc and gutta- 
 percha which occur in milky latex : they have the composition w(C 5 H 8 ). 
 
 The organic compounds can for the most part be resolved into 
 volatile products chiefly carbonic acid, water, and nitrogen by 
 exposure to great heat with free access of air, that is, by combus- 
 tion. The inorganic residue is a white, or, if the combustion is 
 imperfect, a grey powder, the ash. 
 
 As the result of chemical processes attending the combustion, 
 the sulphur and phosphorus previously contained in the organic 
 compounds appear as sulphates and phosphates in the ash, and the 
 carbonic acid formed during combustion combines with some of 
 the inorganic substances. These, therefore, must not be included 
 in an accurate estimate of the constituents of the ash. 
 
 The ash usually constitutes but a small percentage of the whole 
 dry solid of the plant. The amount of ash increases with the age 
 of the plant, or of any part of it, inasmuch as there is no appreci- 
 able excretion by the plant of the mineral substances absorbed. 
 The percentage of ash in the dry solid of the plant, or of any 
 organ, may vary widely at different times. The following analyses 
 of various portions of plants will give an idea of its amount and 
 composition : 
 
 1000 PARTS OF DRY SOLID MATTER CONTAIN : 
 
 
 
 
 j 
 
 oS 
 
 d 
 
 j 
 
 1 
 
 0) 
 
 f| 
 
 |a 
 
 o 
 
 A 
 
 o 
 
 
 
 
 ~4 
 
 
 
 do 
 
 3 
 
 I 
 
 X 
 
 cH 
 
 
 
 02 
 
 CO 
 
 
 
 Clover, in bloom 
 
 683 
 
 21-96 
 
 1-39 
 
 24-06 
 
 7-44 
 
 0-72 
 
 6-74 
 
 2-06 
 
 1-62 
 
 2-66 
 
 Wheat, grain . 
 
 19-7 
 
 6 14 ; 0-44 
 
 0-66 
 
 2-36 
 
 0-26 
 
 9-26 
 
 0-07 
 
 0-42 
 
 004 
 
 Wheat, straw . 
 
 53-7 
 
 7-33 0-74 
 
 3-OB 
 
 1-33 
 
 0-33 
 
 2-58 
 
 1-32 
 
 3H-25 
 
 090 
 
 Potato tubers . 
 
 37-7 
 
 22-76 0-99 
 
 097 
 
 1-77 
 
 0-45 
 
 653 
 
 245 
 
 0-80 
 
 1-17 
 
 Apples . . . 
 
 14-4 
 
 5-14 3-76 
 
 0.59 
 
 1-26 
 
 0-20 
 
 1-96 
 
 0-88 
 
 062 
 
 
 
 Peas (the seed) 
 
 273 
 
 11-41 
 
 0-26 
 
 1-36 
 
 2-17 
 
 0-16 
 
 9-95 
 
 0-95 
 
 0-24 
 
 0-42 
 
710 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 2. The Food of Plants. The constituents of the ash do not 
 form a merely accidental mixture ; it has been proved by experi- 
 ment that certain inorganic compounds are absolutely necessary 
 to the life of the plant. Those chemical elements which the 
 plant requires for its nutrition, and which must therefore be re- 
 garded as part of its food, are : 
 
 I. Non-metallic Elements : Carbon, hydrogen, oxygen, nitro- 
 gen, sulphur, phosphorus, and perhaps chlorine. It must, 
 however, be clearly understood that all these elements 
 also exist in the plant to some extent as inorganic com- 
 pounds, carbonates, nitrates, phosphates, sulphates, of the 
 metals mentioned below. 
 II. Metallic Elements : Potassium, calcium, magnesium, iron. 
 
 Besides these we find in the ash of many plants though they 
 cannot be regarded as essential to nutrition the following ele- 
 ments : sodium, lithium, manganese, silicon, iodine, bromine, and 
 in rare cases, also aluminium, copper, zinc, cobalt, nickel, stron- 
 tium, and barium. Fluorine must also exist in vegetables, for it 
 is found in a perceptible quantity in the dentine of animals which 
 feed directly or indirectly on vegetables. 
 
 The essential elements of the food will now be severally dis- 
 cussed. 
 
 Carton. Plants which possess chlorophyll obtain their carbon 
 mainly from the air (or, in the case of submerged plants, from the 
 water) in the form of carbon dioxide. The absorption of carbon 
 dioxide is, however, limited to those cells which actually contain 
 chlorophyll, and it can only go on even in those cells so long as 
 they are exposed to sufficiently intense light. 
 
 Although plants possessing chlorophyll can and do use carbon dioxide as 
 carbonaceous food, yet there is reason to believe that they may supplement this 
 by absorbing more complex carbon-compounds from the soil by their roots. 
 Thus, a remarkable case of symbiosis (see p. 273), has been observed in various 
 plants (especially trees belonging to Corylaceae and Fagacese) : the absorbent 
 region of the roots is more or less closely covered by a felt-work of fungus- 
 mycelium, the whole structure being termed mycorhiza : it is suggested, and the 
 suggestion is based principally on the fact that the development of the mycorhiza 
 is the more marked the richer the soil in decomposing organic matter (humus), 
 that the fungus promotes the absorption of the organic matter by the roots of 
 the tree. In certain other cases (e.g. Drosera, Dionaea, Utricularia, etc.), green 
 plants are provided with a special mechanism, in the form of modified leaves, 
 for obtaining a supply of organic carbon-compounds. Such plants are said to be 
 
CHAPTER IT. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 711 
 
 carnivorous. The case of Drosera may be selected for illustration. The upper 
 surface and the margin of a leaf of this plant bears numerous glandular appen- 
 dages, the tentacles (see Fig. 42, p. 66). The glands at the ends of the tentacles 
 continually excrete a viscid liquid. When an insect comes into contact with 
 one of the marginal glands, it sticks to it ; this stimulates the tentacle, and it 
 moves, curving inwards to the centre of the leaf, and gradually the other 
 marginal tentacles incurve over the insect (Fig. 42 B). The glands then secrete 
 an acid liquid containing a digestive ferment which acts upon and dissolves the 
 soft parts of the insect, and the products of this digestion are absorbed. 
 
 Plants which do not possess chlorophyll are incapable of using 
 carbon dioxide as carbonaceous food, but require more complex 
 carbon- compounds. Such plants are, all Fungi, and among the 
 higher plants, Cuscuta (Dodder), Orobanche (Broomrape), Neottia, 
 etc., though in some of these latter, a small, but altogether insig- 
 nificant quantity of chlorophyll has been detected. These plants 
 absorb the complex carbon-compounds which they require, either 
 from living animals and plants, or from the decaying remains of 
 animals and plants : in the former case they are termed parasites, 
 in the latter saprophytes. 
 
 The most common parasites are those which are nourished by other plants, 
 termed hosts, and each parasite has its own peculiar host, and possess peculiar 
 root-like organs, the hanstoria (see p. 66), by which they are attached to the 
 host and absorb their nutriment. They frequently have a prejudicial effect 
 upon the host, and sometimes cause malformations, such, for instance, as the 
 " witches' brooms " in the Silver Fir, which are produced by a parasitic rust- 
 fungus, the JEcidium elatinum. Less common are parasites on animals, such 
 as the Schizomycetes (Bacteria, etc.), which cause various diseases, and other 
 Fungi, like Entomophthora, which is parasitic on flies, and Cordyceps, which 
 is parasitic on caterpillars. 
 
 Some of these parasites, Cordyceps for instance, can live saprophytically to 
 some extent ; these are potential saprophytes. On the other hand, there are 
 potential parasites, that is, plants which can live almost as well parasitically as 
 saprophytically, such as Agaricus melleus, which grows equally on living trees 
 and on dead logs. 
 
 It is remarkable that certain plants which possess chlorophyll are nevertheless 
 parasitic in habit ; for instance, Viscum (the Mistletoe) which is parasitic on 
 various trees, Khinanthus (the Battle) and other Scrophulariaceae, also Thesium 
 (Bastard Toad-flax), which are attached to the roots of other plants by their 
 haustoria. The nutritive processes of these green parasites are not yet fully 
 understood, but it seems probable that they absorb from their hosts the sub- 
 stances which they should normally obtain from the soil, though in a somewhat 
 modified form. 
 
 The great majority of the saprophytes are Fungi, such as the various Agarics 
 which grow in the soil of woods (humus) which is formed by decayed leaves and 
 is rich in organic matter ; the Moulds and Yeasts which grow in saccharine 
 
712 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OP PLANTS. 
 
 juices, or fruits, etc. ; and Saprolegnia which attacks the corpses of animals. 
 S"ine of these Fungi, notably the Yeasts and ihe various kinds of Bacteria 
 (Schizomycetes), are peculiar in that th^y not only decompose the amount of 
 organic substance which they require for their nutrition, but they give rise to 
 widespread decompositions which are known as fermentation and putrefaction. 
 Amongst the higher plants there are many saprophytes which grow in soils rich 
 in humus : they may be almost destitute of chlorophyll (e.g. Monotropa ; 
 Neottia and some other Orchids) : or they may possess it in considerable 
 quantity (e.g. some Orchids; Pyrola; Ericaceae; Diapensiacese), in which case 
 they are probably only partially saprophytic ; plants of this kind grow mostly 
 in the leaf-soil of forests, or in peat on moors. 
 
 Hydrogen. The hydrogen of the plant is mainly absorbed in the 
 form of water (H 2 0), but it may also be absorbed in combination 
 with nitrogen as ammonia-compounds (NH 3 ), and also in com- 
 bination with carbon when complex carbon-compounds are 
 absorbed by the plant. 
 
 Oxygen is absorbed in combination with carbon, as C0 2 , and 
 with hydrogen, as H 2 0, and in many of the inorganic salts of the 
 food, such as sulphates, phosphates and nitrates, as well as in more 
 complex carbon-compounds. Oxygen is also absorbed uncombined, 
 in connexion with the catabolic processes, in respiration. 
 
 Nitrogen, which is an essential constituent of proteid substan- 
 ces, is only exceptionally assimilated in the free form ; although 
 it is present in large quantities in the atmosphere, a plant perishes 
 if the soil in which it grows contains no compounds of nitrogen. 
 Nitrates and compounds of ammonia are widely distributed, and 
 it is in this form that nitrogen is mainly taken up by plants ; it 
 seems probable that plants possessing chlorophyll absorb their 
 nitrogen in the form of nitrates only. 
 
 Although it is usual to manure green crops with ammonia-compounds (e.g. 
 sulphate of ammonia), the nitrogen is, nevertheless, absorbed in the form of 
 nitrates. For there exist in the soil certain Schizomycetes, termed Nitro- 
 bncteria, which oxidise the ammonia-compounds present to nitrites, and these 
 again to nitrates. This oxidising process is termed nitrification. 
 
 Nitrogen may be also absorbed, at any rate, by parasites, sapro- 
 phytes, and carnivorous plants, in the form of nitrogenous carbon- 
 compounds (see pp. 710, 692). 
 
 Although it is generally true that plants cannot assimilate uncombined nitro- 
 gen, nevertheless certain plants (Papilioneas, such as Peas, Beans, etc.) will 
 grow and flourish in a soil from which all traces of nitrogen-compounds have 
 been carefully removed. The nature of the means by which this result is at- 
 tained is not yet completely determined, but the principal facts are briefly as 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 713 
 
 follows. In the first place, the roots of these papilionaceous plants have been 
 found to bear peculiar gall-like outgrowths termed tubercle*, which seem to 
 be more numerous and larger the smaller the proportion of combine! nitrogen 
 contained in the soil. The tubercles are the result of the attack of a fuugus 
 which penetrates into the root through the root-hairs. The green plant ni\d 
 the fungus appear to exist in a state of symbiosis (p. 273), as in the case of the 
 rnycorhiza already mentioned, with the result that the green plant is adequately 
 supplied with combined nitrogen although growing in a soil from which such 
 compounds are originally absent. In explanation of these facts there can, first, 
 be no doubt that the supply of combined nitrogen obtained by the green plant 
 is ultimately derived from the free nitrogen of the atmosphere ; and, secondly, 
 that the supply is not obtained from the atmosphere directly by the leaves, but 
 indirectly by the roots through the soil. Nor can there be much doubt that the 
 tubercles are associated with the process of the assimilation of the free nitro- 
 gen : but it is a question whether this process takes place in the tubercle itself ; 
 or whether it is not carried on in the soil by a Sshizomycete, which may either 
 be derived from the tubercles, or be an independent organism. It seems prob- 
 able that the latter suggestion is nearer the truth. It is, in fact, known that 
 a bacterioid organism exists in the soil having the property of forming nitro- 
 genous compounds from free nitrogen in the presence of non-nitrogenous orgauic 
 substance (e.g. glucose). It may be that the development of this organism is 
 especially favoured by the presence of the tubercular roots of the Papilioneae 
 iu the soil, and that the nitrogenous substances which it produces are absorbed 
 by the roots after having undergone nitrification (see p. 712). 
 
 The tubercles are structures formed by the hypei trophy of the cortex of tbe 
 root, resulting from the attack of the fungus at various points : their cells are 
 rich in sugar and starch : the branches of the mycelium penetrate most of the 
 cells, and there bud off innumerable gemmules (sometimes called bacterioids). 
 The tubercle eventually becomes disorgauised ; the gemmules are then set 
 free into the soil, and are doubtless the means by which other roots become 
 attacked by the fungus. 
 
 Sulphur, which is a constituent of proteids and a few other 
 substances occurring in plants, such as oil of Mustard, is derived 
 from the sulphates of the soil. 
 
 Phosphorus is absorbed from the soil in the form of phosphates, 
 and enters into the composition of some of the proteid substances; 
 phosphates constitute a large proportion of the ash of seeds. 
 
 As regards Chlorine, it has been experimentally proved so far to 
 be indispensable in the case of one plant only, the Buckwheat 
 (Polygonum Fagopyrum). 
 
 Iron, though it is met with in very small quantities, is absolutely 
 necessary for the formation of chlorophyll. The leaves produced 
 by plants which are not supplied with iron during their growth, 
 are white so soon as their own store of iron is exhausted ; these 
 leaves, which are said to be chlorotic, become green in consequence 
 
714 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 of the formation of chlorophyll if the soil be supplied with iron, 
 or even if their surface is washed with a very weak solution of 
 iron. 
 
 Potassium is found in plants in the form of salts combined with 
 various organic acids, as tartaric acid, malic acid, and oxalic acid. 
 Unless the soil contains potassium-compounds, the assin ilation of 
 carbon dioxide by plants possessing chlorophyll does not go on, 
 as is shown by the fact that, under these circumstances, the plant 
 does not increase in dry weight. Potassium-salts are especially 
 abundant in those parts of the plant which are rich in carbo- 
 hydrates such as starch and sugar, as in potatoes, beet-roots, and 
 fruits. 
 
 Calcium and Magnesium have been shown to be necessary to the 
 normal development of plants : they are absorbed as nitrates, phos- 
 phates and sulphates, and thus serve as bases for the absorption 
 of these other important elements. Little is known as to their 
 direct use : they are of importance in neutralising the organic 
 acids (especially oxalic) formed in the plant : hence calcium, at 
 least, is of importance in connexion with the distribution of carbo- 
 hydrates in the plant. They occur in the plant as salts of lime 
 and magnesia in combination with both organic and inorganic 
 acids. 
 
 It has been discovered by experimental cultures, that a plant 
 can be perfectly nourished if it is supplied with all those elemen- 
 tary substances which have been enumerated as essential. This 
 might be done, for instance, by growing it in a watery solution of 
 either of the two following groups of chemical compounds : 
 
 1. 2. 
 
 Calcium nitrate Calcium nitrate 
 
 Potassium nitrate Ammonium nitrate 
 
 Potassium superphosphate Potassium sulphate 
 
 Magnesium sulphate Magnesium phosphate 
 
 Ferrous phosphate Ferrous chloride. 
 Sodium chloride. 
 
 In these two mixtures, as well as in others of the same aoids and 
 bases which might be formulated, all the essential elements are 
 included in forms suitable for absorption ; the proportion of mixed 
 salts should not, however, exceed about '3% by weight of the 
 liquid. 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 715 
 
 4 3125 
 
 FIG. 471. Water-cultures of Buckwheat (after Nobbe). 
 No.l. Plant grown in normal solution. 
 
 3. 
 4. 
 .. 6. 
 
 without potassium. 
 
 with sodium-salts instead of potassium. 
 
 without calcium. 
 
 without nitrates or salts of ammonia. 
 
 This method of experimental culture, which is known as water- 
 culture, has been of the greatest service in determining which are 
 
716 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 the essential mineral elements of the food, and of ascertaining the 
 physiological significance of these elements in the metabolism of 
 the plant. 
 
 The following is a brief account of the non-essential mineral 
 constituents of the food. 
 
 Silicon, is absorbed from the soil as silica (SiO 3 ) or as silicates. 
 It cannot be regarded as of nutritive importance, since plants 
 which are usually rich in silica can be brought to an apparently 
 normal development under conditions which render the absorption 
 of silica impossible. It is usually deposited in the cell-walls, as in 
 Diatoms, Equisetum, many Grasses, etc. 
 
 Iodine and Bromine are found in the many marine plants, 
 especially in Alga?, and are prepared from them ; it is not known 
 that they are of any value in the economy of the plant. 
 
 Sodium, being universally distributed, is found in plants. 
 
 Lithium occurs in the ash of several plants, particularly in 
 Tobacco. 
 
 Zinc, Copper, and other metals, though they are not commonly 
 present in the ash of plants, are nevertheless taken up by plants 
 from soils which are rich in them ; from this it appears that 
 plants may absorb substances which are not necessary and may 
 be even injurious. 
 
 3. Anabolism. Under this term are included all the chemical 
 processes going on in the plant which lead to the formation of 
 complex substances from simpler ones (p. 669). Of these, those 
 which are undergone by the food of the plant constitute assimi- 
 lation. 
 
 In the case of plants which contain chlorophyll, the first step 
 in the assimilation of the food is the construction of a carbon- 
 molecule which contains hydrogen and oxygen. The process may 
 be represented by the following equation 
 
 That some process of the kind takes place is proved by the fact 
 that when green plants are placed under the necessary conditions, 
 that is, when they are supplied with carbon dioxide, Avith water 
 and with salts from the soil, and are exposed to light, they gain in 
 weight in consequence of an increase in the amount of their dry 
 organic substance, and they give off oxygen. Moreover, the 
 volume of the free oxygen evolved is actually equal to that of the 
 carbon dioxide absorbed, as indicated in the equation. 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 717 
 
 There are three points connected with the performance of this 
 process which require special notice : the part played by the 
 mineral food, the action of light, the function of chlorophyll. 
 
 With regard to the first point, it appears that the process in 
 question cannot be performed unless potassium-salts are supplied 
 to the plant. There is no reason to believe that this metal takes 
 any direct part in the process ; but it has an indirect, though none 
 the less well-marked effect upon it (see p. 714). 
 
 The importance of exposure to light is briefly this. The 
 chemical process represented in the foregoing equation is one which 
 involves the doing of work ; for, from the simple and stable mole- 
 cules, C0 2 and PI 0, a more complex and less stable molecule CHoO 
 is produced. Work cannot be done without energy, and the plant 
 cannot evolve in itself the energy necessary. It avails itself, there- 
 fore, of the kinetic or radiant energy of the sun's rays. Hence 
 the importance of exposure to light is that the plant, by absorbing 
 the light-rays, obtains the energy required for the chemical work 
 which has to be done. 
 
 Next, as to the function of chlorophyll. The function of chloro- 
 phyll is to serve as the means by which the rays of light are 
 absorbed, and their energy made available for the performance of 
 fche chemical work by the protoplasm with which the chlorophyll 
 is associated. When light which has passed through a solution of 
 chlorophyll is examined with a spectroscope, the spectrum is seen 
 to present certain dark bands, known as absorption-bands, in the 
 red, yellow, green, blue, and violet, the band in the red being the 
 most conspicuous. These bands indicate that certain of the rays 
 of the solar spectrum do not pass through the chlorophyll, but are 
 arrested and converted into another form of energy. It is this 
 energy which, in the living plant, the chlorophyll places at the 
 disposal of the protoplasm for the construction of an organic 
 molecule out of carbon dioxide and water, as expressed in the fore- 
 going equation. Protoplasm without chlorophyll is incapable of 
 making use of the kinetic energy of the rays of light for the per- 
 formance of this chemical work. 
 
 The product of this process of carbon-assimilation is (as indi- 
 cated in the foregoing equation) a non-nitrogenous organic sub- 
 stance having the composition of a carbohydrate. A leaf which 
 is actively assimilating carbon under the influence of light is 
 generally found to contain relatively large quantities of carbo- 
 hydrate, in the form either of F^ugar or starch. 
 
718 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 The performance of this process can be readily demonstrated. 
 If a water-plant (e.g. a leaf of Potamogeton natans, or a portion of the 
 
 shoot of fjlodea canadensis) be 
 placed in water which holds 
 carbon dioxide in solution, and 
 be exposed to sunshine, it will 
 be seen that from the cut sur- 
 face of the leaf or stem bubbles 
 of gas are given off at regular 
 intervals (Fig. 475). These 
 consist of oxygen. 
 
 FIG. 475. Evolution of oxygen from a 
 
 water-plant (Elodea canadensis) : a the cut The relation of light and of chloro- 
 
 stem ; g a weight that keeps the stem in its h n to the evolution of oxygen by a 
 
 Burftce ** ^'^^ **** **** ** "* green plant is strikingly illustrated by 
 
 means of an aerobic Bacterium (Bac- 
 terium Termo), which is highly sensitive to tbe presence of oxygen. If a fila- 
 mentous Alga be placed under a cover-slip on a slide under the microscope, in 
 water containing numerous Bacteria, the Bacteria will be seen to collect along 
 the filament, attracted by the free oxygen which is being evolved. The same 
 preparation will serve to show which are the rays of light most active in the 
 process. If, instead of ordinary white light, a spectrum be reflected by the 
 mirror of the microscope on to the slide bearing the Alga and the Bacteria, the 
 Bacteria will not be distributed uniformly along the filament, as in white light, 
 but will aggregate at certain points (more especially in the red and in the 
 blue), which correspond with the principal absorption-bands of the chlorophyll- 
 spectrum. 
 
 The relation of light and of chlorophyll to the formation of organic sub- 
 stance by a green plant can be demonstrated by the starch-method. For 
 instance, if a leaf of a starch-forming plant, which has been exposed to bright 
 light for some hours, be removed, decolourised by alcohol and tested with iodine, 
 it will assume a dark blue colour, showing an abundant accumulation of 
 starch. If a leaf, still on the plant, be exposed, not to white light, but to a 
 spectrum, the starch will be found to have accumulated in these portions of the 
 leaf upon which have fallen the rays of light which correspond to the principal 
 absorption-bands of the chlorophyll-spectrum. 
 
 The process under consideration is one of fundamental impor- 
 tance. It is the great process in nature by which organic 
 substance is constructed, and in which kinetic energy absorbed 
 from without is converted into the potential energy of chemical 
 combination. For the energy of the rays of light which is used in 
 the construction of the organic substance is not lost, but is simply 
 converted into another form, and it can be recovered by undoing 
 the chemical work which has been performed. When a piece of 
 wood or of coal is burned, the heat and the light which are given 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 719 
 
 out represent the energy which was used by the plant in con- 
 structing the organic substance of which the wood and the coal 
 consist, and which exists in them as the potential energy of 
 chemical combination. To put the matter more definitely ; if the 
 organic substance which has been formed by a green plant under 
 the influence of light according to the equation, 
 
 be burned, the chemical process is precisely reversed, according 
 to the equation 
 
 CH 2 + 2 = C0 2 + H 2 0, 
 
 and precisely the same amount of energy is evolved in the kinetic 
 state in the second process, as was stored up in the potential state 
 in the first. 
 
 It is, generally speaking, only plants possessing chlorophyll 
 which can produce organic substance. Inasmuch, therefore, as 
 organisms, whether plants or animals, which do not possess chloro- 
 phyll require for their nutrition more or less complex organic 
 substances, they are entirely dependent for their food upon organ- 
 isms which do possess chlorophyll. 
 
 To this general rule exceptions are offered by certain Schizomycetes. Thus 
 some Bacteria (e.g. B. photometricum) contain a purple colouring-matter 
 (bacterio-purpurin), but no chlorophyll : they are, however, capable of forming 
 organic matter with evolution of oxygen when exposed to light ; the bacterio- 
 purpurin appears to perform essentially the same physical function as 
 ohlorophyll, though it does not absorb the same rays of light. Again, other 
 Bacteria, such as the Sulphur-bacteria (Sulphobacteria), the Iron-bacteria (Ftrro- 
 bacteria), and the nitrifying Bacteria (Nitrobacteria) produce organic substance, 
 although they possess no chlorophyll, and do so quite independently of light, 
 the necessary energy being obtained in other ways (see p. 731). 
 
 This process is also of great importance in another direction. 
 All living organisms, speaking generally, absorb free oxygen and 
 evolve carbon dioxide in respiration. Those organisms which 
 possess chlorophyll prevent the excessive accumulation of carbon 
 dioxide in the atmosphere, and keep up the supply of free oxygen, 
 in that, under the influence of light, they absorb the former gas 
 from the air, and replace it by an equal volume of the latter. 
 
 The characteristic difference between the anabolic capacity of 
 plants which do and of those which do not possess chlorophyll is 
 then this, that the former can produce, from carbon dioxide and 
 water, assimilable or plastic substances containing the elements 
 C, H, and 0, whereas the latter cannot produce these, but must 
 
 v. s. B. 3 A 
 
720 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 be supplied with them as food. From this point onwards the 
 anabolic processes in the two cases are, as far as is known, identi- 
 cal. From the simpler plastic substances containing C, H, and O, 
 whether they have been formed from C0 2 and H 3 O in the one case, 
 or have been absorbed as organic food from without in the other, 
 other more complex substances such as sugar, etc., are formed, 
 probably by the polymerisation or condensation of the simpler 
 molecules. Further, the nitrogen of the food, absorbed either as 
 nitrates or salts of ammonia, is worked into the anabolic processes, 
 so that nitrogenous organic substance is produced. Probably the 
 first formed nitrogenous substances are comparatively simple 
 crystallisable substances, such as asparagin and leucin, which 
 belong chemically to the amides (see p. 707). The next step is 
 doubtless the formation of those more complex nitrogenous sub- 
 stances, the proteids ; and here sulphur, and phosphorus in some 
 cases, is introduced into the molecule; and finally the series of 
 assimilatory processes concludes with the formation of molecules 
 of protoplasm. 
 
 Comparatively little is known as to the details of nitrogenous 
 anabolism ; but there is evidence to show that, in green plants, the 
 assimilation of the nitrates (see p. 712), and probably also of the 
 sulphates and phosphates, of the food can only go on in the pre- 
 sence of light ; and when it is borne in mind that these salts are, 
 like carbon dioxide, highly oxidised substances, it is not surprising 
 that the conditions for the reducing process in the one case should 
 obtain also in the others. And further, there is evidence to show 
 that the next step in nitrogenous anabolism, the production of 
 proteids from amides, is also dependent not merely upon exposure 
 to light, but upon the coincidence of this with the other conditions 
 necessary to the assimilatory function. For instance, asparagin 
 (whether formed anabolically or catabolically) will accumulate in 
 a shoot kept in the dark, although carbohydrates may also be abun- 
 dantly present : it will also accumulate if the shoot be exposed to 
 light, but in an atmosphere deprived of C0 2 : whereas it will not 
 accumulate in a shoot exposed to light under conditions which 
 enable the shoot to assimilate carbon dioxide. How and where 
 this formation of proteids from amides takes place is not accu- 
 rately known. But there is some evidence that, for instance, in 
 the leaf of a vascular plant, the process is carried on in the com- 
 panion-cells of the sieve-tissue or their physiological equivalents. 
 It appears that the amides formed in the green assimilating cells 
 
CHAPTER II.- SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 721 
 
 are collected into this tissue, and there undergo further anabolism 
 into the proteids to be found in the sieve-tubes. 
 
 Inasmuch as plants destitute of chlorophyll absorb their nitrogenous food in 
 the form of ammonia compounds (see p. 712) or of organic nitrogen-compounds, 
 it is intelligible that exposure to light is not an essential condition of their 
 nitrogenous assimilation. 
 
 These various assimilatory processes are not, however, carried 
 on simultaneously with equal activity. In plants which contain 
 chlorophyll, when under conditions favourable for carbon-assimi- 
 lation, the construction of non-nitrogenous organic substance from 
 C0 2 and H 2 appears to be the most active process, for an accumu- 
 lation of non-nitrogenous organic substance can be detected in 
 the green parts of these plants when assimilation is being carrie.d 
 on. Most commonly this excess of non-nitrogenous organic sub- 
 stance is accumulated in the form of starch -granules which are 
 formed in the chloroplastids ; less commonly in the form of sugar 
 which is held in solution in the cell-sap (e.g. leaves of Onion). 
 This excess of non -nitrogenous organic substance in the green 
 parts soon disappears, however, when, by withdrawal from the 
 influence of light, its further formation is arrested. For instance, 
 if a plant which has been exposed to light and whose leaves are 
 rich in starch, be placed in the dark for some hours, the starch 
 will then be found to have almost or entirely disappeared. 
 
 The organic substance resulting from the anabolism of the 
 plant, is partly used in the growth of the plant, in forming new 
 protoplasm, cell-walls, etc., and is partly stored up, in various 
 organs, in the form of reserve materials which serve either for the 
 growth of the plant itself at a subsequent period (roots, tubers, 
 etc.), or for the nutrition of new individuals in the early stages of 
 their growth (spores, seeds, etc.). 
 
 4. Catabolism. Under this term are included all the chemical 
 processes going on in the plant which lead to the formation of 
 simple substances from more complex ones. 
 
 The chief physiological importance of the catabolic processes is 
 this : that, inasmuch as- they consist in the decomposition of 
 relatively complex and unstable substances into others which are 
 relatively simple and stable, they necessarily involve a conversion 
 of potential into kinetic energy ; and it is by means of the kinetic 
 energy so evolved that the plant exhibits those phenomena, such as 
 growth, movement, etc., which characterise it as a living organism. 
 The degree of activity of life depends directly upon the degree of 
 
722 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 catabolic activity ; when catabolism ceases, life ceases ; the organ- 
 ism is dead. A good illustration of this is afforded by the scarcely 
 perceptible catabolism of seeds, bulbs, etc., when quiescent, and 
 their very active catabolism when they begin to germinate. 
 
 The catabolic processes of the plant are carried on either by the 
 living protoplasm itself, or by means of certain substances formed 
 by the protoplasm, which are termed unorganised ferments or 
 enzymes. 
 
 The catabolic processes carried on by the protoplasm are mainly 
 such as depend upon the absorption of free oxygen from without, 
 and are accompanied by an evolution of carbon dioxide ; in fact this 
 gaseous interchange between the plant and its environment, termed 
 Respiration, is the external manifestation of the performance of 
 these catabolic processes. The seat of these processes is the 
 protoplasm, and it is mainly the molecules of protoplasm that are 
 decomposed ; in other words, just as the construction of the pro- 
 toplasm-molecule is the ultimate result of anabolism, so the 
 decomposition of the protoplasm-molecule is the central fact of 
 catabolism. 
 
 The significance of the absorption of free oxygen in connexion 
 with catabolism appears to be this : the chemical decompositions 
 which constitute catabolism involve a certain expenditure of 
 energy, though the amount thus expended is very much less than 
 the amount evolved by the decompositions ; the smaller, then, the 
 the amount of the energy expended, the greater will be the amount 
 of available kinetic energy in the plant : now the entrance of free 
 oxygen into the decompositions facilitates their performance, so that, 
 under these circumstances, the largest amount of kinetic energy is 
 evolved at the smallest initial expenditure. 
 
 The reason, then, why most plants die when they are deprived 
 of free oxygen, is that they are unable to carry on, under these 
 circumstances, those catabolic processes by which the kinetic 
 energy essential to the maintenance of life is evolved; just as a 
 fire goes out, that is the oxidation of the coal stops, under the 
 same conditions. 
 
 Though it may be generally stated that living plants at all 
 times absorb free oxygen, and that the maintenance of life depends 
 upon a constant absorption of free oxygen, yet there are excep- 
 tions. There are, for instance, certain Fungi, such as Yeast and 
 Bacteria, which can live in the absence of free oxygen. They are 
 unable, under these conditions, to carry on what may be termed 
 
CHAPTER IT. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 723 
 
 the normal oxidative catabolic processes ; but they carry on other 
 processes of decomposition into which free oxygen does not enter, 
 provided that suitable material is accessible ; the processes are 
 termed fermentations. Thus, Bacteria cause putrefaction and 
 other similar fermentations in the most various organic substances 
 with which they happen to come into contact. Similarly Yeast is 
 the cause of the alcoholic fermentation of sugar, which may be re- 
 presented by the equation 
 
 These fermentative catabolic processes involve, like the oxida- 
 tive catabolic processes, an evolution of kinetic energy, but this 
 is, generally speaking, attained by a greater initial expenditure. 
 Yeast, for instance, certainly thrives better when it can obtain 
 free oxygen than when it cannot ; but many of the Bacteria have 
 become so completely adapted to a life based upon fermentative 
 catabolism, that they die if they come into relation with free 
 oxygen (anaerobid). 
 
 Yeast, Bacteria, and other plants which can excite fermentation 
 are termed organised ferments, inasmuch as they are complete 
 living organisms and as their power of exciting fermentation 
 depends upon their being alive, in contradistinction to the un- 
 organised ferments or enzymes already mentioned, which are not 
 organisms, but simply chemical substances which may be pre- 
 pared and kept under conditions which would be fatal to life. 
 The peculiar properties of the unorganised ferments can, however, 
 be very readily destroyed, as, for instance, by boiling or otherwise 
 heating. 
 
 The chief kinds of enzymes which have been found in plants 
 are : 
 
 1. Those that act on carbohydrates, converting the more 
 complex and less soluble carbohydrates into others of simpler 
 composition and greater solubility. 
 
 2. Those that act on fats, decomposing them into glycerin and 
 fatty acid. 
 
 3 Those that act on glucosides, glucose being a constant product. 
 
 4. Those that act on the more complex and less soluble proteids, 
 converting them into others which are more soluble and probably 
 less complex, or decomposing them into non-proteid nitrogenous 
 substances (amides, etc.). 
 
 The chemical action of some of these enzymes is illustrated by the following 
 equations : 
 
724 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 1. Conversion of starch into sugar (amylolytic enzyme, commonly termed 
 diastase) : 
 
 Starch. Maltose. Dextrin. 
 
 3 (C 6 H 10 5 ) + H 2 = C 12 H 22 O n + C 6 H 10 5 
 
 2. Conversion of cane-sugar into grape-sugar (invert enzyme) : 
 
 Cane-sugar. Dextrose. Lsevulose. 
 
 C 12 H. 22 O n + H 2 = C 6 H 12 6 + C 6 H 12 6 
 
 3. Action of fat-enzyme : 
 
 Olein. Oleic acid. Glycerin. 
 
 C 5 7H 10 40 6 + 3H 2 = 3C 18 H 34 2 -f C 3 H 8 3 
 
 4. Action of glucoside-euzyme; the instance takeu is the decomposition of 
 the glucoside amygdalin in the Bitter Almond by the ferment termed synaptase 
 or emulsin : 
 
 Anngdalin. Oil of bitter almonds. Prussic acid. Glucose. 
 C 20 H 27 NO n + 2H 2 = C 7 H 6 + HCN + 2(C 6 H ]2 6 ) 
 
 It will be noted that, in every case, the action of the ferment involves the 
 taking up of one or more molecules of water. 
 
 The action of the enzymes which act on proteids (proteolytic enzymes) can- 
 not be represented by equations, inasmuch as no formulae for the various 
 proteids have at present been arrived at. It may be generally stated that their 
 effect is, like those of the other forms, to induce decomposition with the assump- 
 tion of water. The proteolytic ferments, acting some in an acid medium, others 
 in an alkaline, convert the more complex proteids, such as globulins, into the 
 simpler peptone ; and further cause the decomposition of peptone into amides, 
 such as asparagin, leucin, and tyrosin. 
 
 The chief importance of the unorganised ferments in the 
 economy of the plant is that by their means the reserve materials, 
 which are accumulated to such a large extent in the form of 
 substances, such as starch, fat, cellulose, proteids of aleuron- 
 grains, which are either not soluble in water, or if soluble are 
 only slightly diffusible, are converted into substances, such as 
 amides and certain sugars, which are both readily soluble and 
 diffusible, and which can therefore travel osmotically from one 
 part to another. For instance, as mentioned above, the excess of 
 carbohydrate formed in the leaves when they are actively assimi- 
 lating, is commonly stored up in the form of starch. This carbo- 
 hydrate is eventually conveyed to other parts of the plant ; but, 
 since starch is insoluble, it cannot be conveyed in that form it is, 
 in fact, converted into maltose by an amylolytic ferment present 
 in the leaves, and it is in this form that non-nitrogenous organic 
 substance is conveyed away from the leaf where it has been 
 produced. Other striking illustrations of the importance of 
 ferment-action are to be found in the chemical changes going on 
 in germinating seeds, bulbs, tubers, etc. When a starchy seed, 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 725 
 
 or a starchy tuber like the potato, germinates, the starch -grains 
 are gradually dissolved, the starch being converted into maltose. 
 When the tuber of the Dahlia or Artichoke, which contains inulin 
 as the non-nitrogenous reserve material, germinates, the inulin 
 disappears and is gradually replaced by grape-sugar. When an 
 oily seed germinates, the oil-drops become less and less apparent, 
 as the oil is gradually decomposed by ferment-action into glycerin 
 and fatty acids ; the next step is the formation of carbohydrate 
 (sugar or starch), probably from the products of the decomposition, 
 of the oil, a process which involves the absorption and fixation of 
 oxygen, since carbohydrates contain a higher percentage of oxygen 
 than does any form of fat or oil ; and then, finally, any starch 
 so formed is converted into sugar. Similarly, the aleuron-grains 
 in a germinating seed gradually disappear, the indiff usible proteids 
 composing them being decomposed by the action of a proteolytic 
 enzyme into peptone, and then into amides, in which form they 
 are conveyed osniotically to the growing embryo. Finally, it is 
 obvious that the indiffusible proteids which are conveyed from 
 part to part in the sieve-tissue of vascular plants (see p. 705) 
 must eventually be distributed osniotically in the form of dif- 
 fusible compounds, probably amides, to the adjacent parenchy- 
 matous tissues, and it is probable, though not yet ascertained, that 
 here again a proteolytic enzyme is involved. 
 
 It is worthy of note that the chemical decompositions effected 
 by the agency of the enzymes do not involve either an absorption 
 of oxygen or an evolution of carbon dioxide, whereas this is the 
 case in the decompositions effected by the agency of living proto- 
 plasm. But to the latter general rule there are some exceptions. 
 Thus, it has been observed that succulent plants, such as Cactacese, 
 Crassulacese, etc., absorb free oxygen without exhaling any carbon 
 dioxide ; but it has further been found that, under these circum- 
 stances, there is an accumulation of organic acids (especially 
 malic) in the tissues. The explanation is this : that, owing to 
 some peculiarity in their catabolic process possibly to the im- 
 perfect aeration of their tissues instead of producing the very 
 simple substance carbonic acid, which would be exhaled in the 
 form of the gas CO 2 , these plants produce more complex, less 
 highly-oxidised carbon-acids, which are not volatile at ordinary 
 temperatures, and which therefore remain in the cells of the 
 plant : these acids (at least malic acid) subsequently undergo 
 decomposition under the influence of light with the formation of 
 
726 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 carbohydrates. Again, the decompositions effected by organised 
 ferments (e.g. alcoholic fermentation) commonly involve an evolu- 
 tion of carbon dioxide without any corresponding absorption of 
 oxygen. 
 
 Respiration. This term is applied to the gaseous interchange, 
 consisting in the absorption of free oxygen and the evolution of 
 carbon dioxide, which takes place (with but few exceptions) be- 
 tween the living plant and the atmosphere, and which may be 
 regarded as the external expression of the oxidative catabolic 
 process going on in the tissue of the plant. This gaseous inter- 
 change goes on over the whole surface of the body ; but in those 
 parts which possess stomata or lenticels, it is mainly conducted 
 through these apertures. 
 
 Respiration seems to be somewhat diminished under the in- 
 fluence of bright light; but its activity is promoted by arising 
 temperature, and to some extent by greater moistness of the air. 
 The relation to temperature is such that respiration takes place 
 at temperatures even slightly below 0C. ; that it increases in 
 intensity with a rise of temperature, but in greater proportion, 
 up to an optimum of 40-45 ; and then sinks as the temperature 
 further rises until the fatal degree is reached. 
 
 The relation of the volume of the gases absorbed and evolved 
 in respiration, that is, of oxygen and carbon dioxide, is a matter 
 of importance. It may be generally stated that the relation is 
 definite and constant for any given plant, or for any part of it, at 
 a given stage of development, all other conditions being constant : 
 the proportion c - may be unity, or less or more than unity, 
 according to the nature of the plant under experiment, and is 
 not affected either by temperature or by light. 
 
 As illustrating the possible extremes of variation in the proportion, the 
 following cases may be mentioned. In succulent plants, when in darkness, 
 (see p. 725) oxygen is absorbed, but no carbon dioxide is evolved : and on the 
 other hand, when Yeast and Bacteria, or germinating seeds, or parts of plants 
 (fruits, leaves, etc.), are kept in an atmosphere destitute of free oxygen, they 
 evolve carbon dioxide: again, at periods, such as a certain stage in the germi- 
 nation of seeds, the opening of buds and flowers, when the activity of respira- 
 tion is intense, the proportion ^ is at a maximum, though it rarely ex- 
 ceeds unity, that is, the evolution of C0 2 is relatively large ; whereas during 
 periods of more normal respiratory activity, the proportion of carbon dioxide 
 evolved is smaller. The variations in the proportion ^ are the expression 
 of the varying nature of the catabolic processes going on during different stages 
 in the life of the plant or of any of its parts. 
 
CHAPTEE II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 727 
 
 5. The Products of Metabolism. The relation between the 
 anabolism and the catabolism of the plant may be generally stated 
 thus, that the construction of organic substance in the former is 
 greater than the decomposition of it in the latter, so that on the 
 whole there is an accumulation of organic substance in the body of 
 the plant. The organic substance is accumulated to some extent 
 in the actual structure or fabric of the plant, as protoplasm and 
 cell- wall, and to some extent in the form of compounds which 
 may be present in some or all of the cells, but which do not 
 constitute any portion of the fabric. These compounds may or 
 may not be of nutritive value; in the former case they are termed 
 plastic products, in the latter waste-products, of metabolism (see p. 
 670.) 
 
 The most important of the plastic products are enumerated be- 
 low. They are all found accumulated as reserve materials in 
 various parts of plants, though some of them (e.g. amides, glucose, 
 maltose) are more especially the forms in which organic substance 
 is distributed throughout the plant. 
 
 Non-nitrogenous reserve materials : 
 
 o. Carbohydrates ; in solid granules, starch; in many seeds, and 
 
 tubers, 
 in thickened cell- walls, cellulose ; as in Date-seed, 
 
 Coffee-seed, Vegetable Ivory. 
 
 dissolved in cell-sap ; grape-sugar, as in the Onion 
 and in fruits ; cane-sugar, as in the Sugar-cane and 
 the Beetroot ; inulin, as in the Jerusalem Artichoke 
 and Dahlia. 
 
 6. Fats ; in drops in many seeds (Rape, Linseed, Castor-oil, Palm, etc.). 
 Nitrogenous reserve materials : 
 
 a. Proteids; in solid granules (aleuron; p. 112), in seeds, more espe- 
 cially oily seeds ; or in the cytoplasm (e.g. latex). 
 
 Z>. Amides ; asparagin, etc., in solution in the cell-sap of bulbs, tubers, 
 bulbous roots, etc. 
 
 With regard to the mode of formation of these substances, 
 some of them are certainly produced both synthetically and ana- 
 lytically, that is, both in anabolism and in catabolism, whereas 
 others are only produced in one or other of these ways. 
 
 Fats and Carbohydrates. There is some evidence that fats are formed in the 
 catabolism of protoplasm : that is, that in the decomposition of the proto- 
 plasmic molecule, fat is frequently one of the products : there is also reason to 
 believe that the purely reserve carbohydrates, starch, cane-sugar, and cellulose, 
 have a similar origin. The other sugars (glucose, maltose) may be formed 
 anabolically, but are also formed by enzymes from the reserve carbohydrates. 
 
728 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 Organic acids. It is scarcely possible to make any general statement as to 
 either the origin or the fate of these substances which are so largely present 
 in plants. They are probably formed maiuly by normal oxidative catabolic 
 processes, but the formation of some of them (e.g. oxalic acid) is at the same 
 time closely allied with certain anabolic processes in the plant : however, there 
 is no doubt that they are not, as was formerly held, ever formed synthetically. 
 The more complex acids may certainly be looked upon as plastic substances : 
 for, in succulent plants (see p. 725) it has been found that the malic acid, which 
 accumulates in the tissues during darkness, is decomposed by the green parts 
 in the light, with evolution of oxygen and formation of less highly oxidised 
 organic substance (carbohydrate). In fact, the process of assimilation of these 
 acids is essentially the same as that of carbon dioxide, the only difference being 
 that carbon dioxide is more highly oxidised than are these more complex acids, 
 but the conditions of the process are identical in the two cases. These organic 
 acids are of considerable physiological importance in effecting the decomposi- 
 tion of the salts (e.g. nitrates, sulphates, phosphates) absorbed from the soil. 
 
 Amides are formed both in anabolism (p. 720), and in catabolism (p. 725). 
 
 Proteids may all be formed in anabolism ; and the simpler forms (peptones) 
 in catabolism. It is a question whether or not the more complex proteids may 
 not be formed by dissociation of the molecule of protoplasm. 
 
 The waste-products are most probably all formed as the result of 
 catabolic processes ; though their formation is often associated, 
 both as to time and place, with active anabolism. They may be 
 classified into nitrogenous and non-nitrogenous. 
 
 The principal nitrogenous waste-products appear to be the 
 alkaloids (see p. 707). They are probably products of the nitro- 
 genous catabolism of plants ; and it is suggestive that they prin- 
 cipally occur deposited in the cells of deciduous parts, such as 
 leaves, seeds, bark, etc. 
 
 The principal non-nitrogenous waste-products are, water ; free 
 oxygen (green plants in light) ; carbon dioxide, and some other 
 highly oxidised carbon-acids, such as the oxalic ; resins and ethereal 
 oils, tannins, aromatic substances, etc. 
 
 Of these waste-products, some are retained in the cells of the 
 plant, whereas others are thrown off or excreted. The nitrogenous 
 waste-products are deposited either in cells or in the laticiferous 
 tissue: there is practically no excretion of such waste-prod acts by 
 plants. Similarly, those of the non-nitrogenous waste-products 
 which are not gaseous at ordinary temperatures, are retained by 
 the plant. For instance, oxalic acid is deposited in the form of 
 crystals of calcium oxalate either in the cavities or in the walls 
 of the cells (see pp. 108, 113) : the crystals may have either six 
 molecules of water of crystallisation, when they are quadratic; or 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 729 
 
 two molecules, when they are prismatic (raphides). The resins 
 and ethereal oils are usually excreted by the cells in which they are 
 formed, into intercellular spaces (resin-ducts, oil-glands, see p. 138): 
 the tannins are mostly stored in cells, dissolved in the cell-sap. 
 
 Some general idea may be formed as to the relation of these substances to 
 the catabolic processes by a consideration of the origin of oxalic acid and of 
 tannin in the plant : the matter has been more fully investigated with refer- 
 ence to these substances than to any others, and the results in these two cases 
 correspond in a remarkable manner. 
 
 In the first place, both these substances are abundantly formed in connexion 
 with active chemical change of the plastic substances (probably the nitro- 
 genous) supplying the demands of a growing part : for instance they are 
 abundant in seedlings, in developing shoots, roots, etc. This formation, which 
 is quite independent of light, is distinguished as primary, and the calcium 
 oxalate and the tannin thus formed remain permanently in the cells in which 
 they are formed : the primary calcium oxalate is characterised by the prismatic 
 form (raphides). A secondary formation of both these substances takes place in 
 green pans of plants exposed to light, in leaves for instance : they are formed 
 so abundantly under these circumstances that they must be continually trans- 
 ported (in solution by osmosis) from the seat of formation to other parts, for 
 instance, from the leaves to the stem. This secondary formation is associated, 
 not with the assimilation of carbon dioxide, but with the formation of 
 nitrogenous organic substance (see p. 720) : but though associated with this 
 anabolic activity, the actual process of formation of these two substances is 
 probably not synthetic, but analytic ; it is a catabolic process which necessarily 
 accompanies the anabolic. 
 
 The oxygen which is set free in connexion with the decomposi- 
 tion of C0 2 in the green parts under the influence of light, is 
 exhaled in the gaseous form ; this is also the case, for the most 
 part, with the watery vapour and the carbon dioxide produced in 
 catabolism. In some cases, however, some portion of the carbon 
 dioxide forms calcium carbonate, which is either deposited in the 
 solid form (e.g. cystoliths, see p. 108), or is excreted by means of 
 the chalk-glands (p. 137). 
 
 In some cases, substances of nutritive value are excreted by 
 plants, as for instance, the sugary liquid known as nectar by 
 special glands, the nectaries (see p. 679), of flowers, and the 
 digestive liquid poured out by the glands of the carnivorous plants. 
 This loss of substance is, however, compensated for by the advan- 
 tages gained by the excretion. The nectar attracts insects, and so 
 ensures cross-fertilisation, and the excretion of the carnivorous 
 plants results in the digestion of the entrapped insects (see p. 711). 
 
 The mechanism of excretion may be generally illustrated by 
 
730 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 reference to two cases : to the nectaries, and to the chalk-glands. 
 The former afford an example of that mode of excretion in which 
 the necessary force is supplied by the excreting cells themselves : 
 the latter, of that mode in which the necessary force is derived 
 from another source. Excretion by nectaries can be well observed 
 in the case of Fritillaria imperialis (Fritillary, or Crown Imperial). 
 At the base of each of the petals of the flower, there is an 
 oval depression which is the gland or nectary and is seen to be 
 occupied by a large drop of nectar. If the flower be cut off, and 
 the drop be removed from the nectary by means of blotting-paper, 
 it will be shortly replaced by a fresh drop. It is therefore clear 
 that in this case the excretion of the liquid is effected, not by the 
 root-pressure, for the flower is no longer in connexion with the 
 root, but by the cells themselves. The mechanism of excretion 
 seems to be this, that the cells of the nectary become turgid, and 
 when a certain degree of turgidity has been attained, filtration 
 under pressure (see p. 669) takes place, and liquid is pressed out. 
 Excretion by chalk-glands can be well observed in some of the 
 Saxifrages. The chalk-glands are here situated at the end of the 
 finer vascular bundles round the margin of the leaves, each gland 
 being at the bottom of a depression in the surface, and communi- 
 cating with the surface by two or three water-stomata (see p. 157). 
 So long as the leaf is in connexion with the rest of the plant, and 
 provided that transpiration is not too active, drops of water hold- 
 ing chalk in solution are poured out by these glands on to the 
 surface through the water-stomata. The excretion stops, however, 
 directly the leaf is removed, or the stem is cut through. In this 
 case the excretion clearly depends upon the root-pressure; the 
 gland itself has no excreting power, but it simply accumulates 
 the chalk which is then washed out by the current of water 
 forced through the gland by the root-pressure. 
 
 6. The Supply and the Expenditure of Energy. It has been 
 already insisted upon that a living organism must be supplied not 
 only with matter, but also with energy. The principal sources of 
 the supply of energy will now be briefly considered. 
 
 a. All plants absorb kinetic energy in the form of heat (see 
 p. 671). 
 
 6. Plants which possess chlorophyll absorb kinetic energy in the 
 form of light, the rays absorbed being those which correspond to 
 the absorption-bands of the chlorophyll-spectrum (see pp. 674 
 and 717). 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 731 
 
 c. Plants which do not possess chlorophyll are unable to absorb 
 kinetic energy in the form of light, but they obtain their supply 
 in other ways. For instance, it has been pointed out (p. 711) 
 that these plants require more or less complex carbon-compounds 
 as food : the significance of this fact is not only that these plants 
 are unable to produce these compounds for themselves from carbon 
 dioxide and water, but further, that these compounds represent 
 potential energy which, in the decomposition of these compounds 
 in the body of the plant, is evolved in the kinetic form : hence 
 these organic food-substances supply the plants not merely with 
 matter, but also with energy. 
 
 Plants without chlorophyll also obtain energy by yet other means. For 
 instance, when sugar is fermented by Yeast (see p. 723), there is a considerable 
 evolution of energy, and this is the true significance of the process from the 
 point of view of the Yeast-plant : similarly, Bacteria cause various putrefac- 
 tive and other fermentations which are attended by an evolution of energy. 
 In these cases it would appear that the plant avails itself of the kinetic energy 
 evolved in the fermentative process. 
 
 A few cases have been investigated among Schizomycetes in which the supply 
 of kinetic energy is obtained by oxidative processes: this occurs, for instance, 
 in the case of the nitrifying organisms (Nitrobacteria) which oxidise ammonia 
 compounds to nitrites, and nitrites to nitrates, in the soil : in the case of the 
 Sulphobacteria which oxidise hydrogen sulphide (H 2 S) with the formation of 
 sulphates : and iu the case of the Feirobacteria which oxidise ferrous to ferric 
 salts (see p. 719). 
 
 The energy obtained in any of these ways is of primary impor- 
 tance in the anabolism of the plant : it is concerned with the 
 building up of more and more complex organic compounds and 
 with the nutrition of the protoplasm ; and in as far as these coin- 
 pounds, such as carbohydrates, proteids, etc., accumulate in the 
 plant, in so far is potential energy accumulated likewise. But, 
 inasmuch as the catabolic processes are at the same time in con- 
 stant operation, there is going on in the plant a constant conversion 
 of potential into kinetic energy, a considerable proportion of which 
 is dissipated or lost to the plant. 
 
 Energy is most commonly dissipated in the form of hea,t, in a 
 few cases in the form of light, and also commonly in the form of 
 movement. The evolution of heat by plants is not usually 
 sufficient to cause the temperature of the plant-body to be higher 
 than that of the surrounding air. This is partly due to the fact 
 that the catabolic processes of plants are not generally very active, 
 and partly to the continual loss of heat by radiation and in con- 
 
732 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS, 
 
 nexion with transpiration. It is however easy, under appropriate 
 conditions, to demonstrate the evolution of heat. If a quantity of 
 seeds be made to germinate in a heap, they will be found to be 
 distinctly warm (Fig. 476). This happens on a large scale in the 
 process of malting barley. When a large 
 quantity of barley-grains are germinat- 
 ing on a malting-floor, they become quite 
 hot : they have, in fact, to be continually 
 turned to prevent overheating. The 
 conditions are here most favourable : 
 for the catabolic processes are extremely 
 active in germinating seeds, and there 
 is but little loss of heat by radiation 
 and transpiration. Similar observations 
 may be made with opening flower-buds, 
 the opening of the bud being also a 
 period of great catabolic activity. In 
 some cases, as in the Araceee, where the 
 inflorescence consists of a great number 
 of flowers which open simultaneously, 
 and which are protected by a large leaf, 
 the spathe, a rise of temperature as 
 much as 18 C. has been observed. 
 
 The few plants in which an evolution 
 of energy in the form of light has been 
 clearly established are all Fungi. It is 
 commonly termed phosphorescence. The 
 so-called phosphorescence of decaying 
 wood is due to the presence of the my- 
 celium of Agaricus melleus, and that of 
 putrifying meat and vegetables to Schi- 
 /omycetes of the nature of Micrococci. 
 Various other species of Agaricus have 
 been found to be luminous. 
 
 Movement of some kind is manifested 
 by all plants. All plants exhibit that 
 slow movement which is termed growth : 
 in many, there is a more or less well- 
 marked movement of the protoplasm in 
 the cell or cells of which the plant-body 
 consists, which is known as cyclosis, cir- 
 
 Fio. 476. Apparatus for de- 
 tecting the rise of temperature 
 in smp.ll opening flowers or ger- 
 minating seeds. The seeds are 
 heaped as closely as po-sible in 
 the funnel r which is inserted 
 into the mouth of a bottle con- 
 taining a solution of caustic 
 potash. This absorbs the car- 
 bon dioxide produced by respi- 
 ration. The whole is enclosed 
 in a glass vessel, and a delicate 
 theinjorneter is inserted through 
 the cotton wool which closes 
 the mouth. The bulb of the 
 thermometer is plunged in 
 among the seeds. The tempera- 
 ture in this apparatus will be 
 higher than in another arranged 
 in the same way for comparison, 
 and in which the flowers or 
 seeds are replaced by scraps of 
 paper, etc. 
 
CHAPTER II. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF THE NUTRITIVE FUNCTIONS. 733 
 
 culation, or rotation : some are capable of locomotion during the 
 whole or a portion, of their life, a peculiarity which is shared by 
 many reproductive cells, such as zoospores and spermatozoids : in 
 some cases, the floral or the foliage-leaves of the plant can perform 
 movements, as the foliage-leaves of the Sensitive Plant, of the 
 Telegraph-plant, of Dionce.a muscipula (Venus' Fly-trap), the 
 stamens of Berberis and of the Cynarese, or portions of leaves as 
 the tentacles of Drosera (Sun-dew, see p. 711). These movements 
 are considered in detail in the next chapter. 
 
 The connexion between these various forms of dissipation of 
 energy and the catabolic processes, is clearly demonstrated by the 
 fact that any change which prejudicially affects the activity of 
 catabolism, similarly affects the dissipation of energy. For 
 instance, in the absence of free oxygen, a condition which 
 diminishes catabolic activity in most cases, germina,ting seeds or 
 opening flowers cease to evolve heat ; the luminous Fungi cease to 
 emit light ; growth, and the other more conspicuous movements 
 are arrested : similar effects are produced by exposure to a low 
 temperature. 
 
 The main facts of the metabolism of the plant may be clearly 
 summed up in a general table of the income and expenditure, such 
 as the following. It may be explained that in this table account 
 is taken of only that portion of the water absorbed from without 
 which actually enters into the metabolism; the remainder, which 
 simply traverses the plant to be exhaled as vapour in transpiration, 
 is not considered. Under the head of " incidental losses " are 
 included the loss of organic substance connected with throwing 
 off reproductive cells, such as spores and spermatozoids, or other 
 reproductive organs such as seeds, bulbils, etc. ; and the loss 
 accompanying the shedding of leaves, etc., in the case of plants 
 which live through more than one period of growth. 
 
734 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 PLANT POSSESSING CHLOROPHYLL. 
 
 Income. 
 I. Matter. 
 
 Food ; viz. 
 
 Inorganic salts. 
 Carbon dioxide. 
 Water. 
 Free oxygen. 
 
 Expenditure. 
 1. Matter. 
 
 a. Accumulated. 
 
 Organic substance of tissues 
 (protoplasm, cell - walls, 
 etc.). 
 
 Eeserve materials (starch, 
 sugar, fats, proteids, etc.). 
 Unexcreted organic waste- 
 products (tannins, alka- 
 loids, acids, etc.). 
 Mineral matter of ash. 
 6. Dissipated. 
 
 Carbon dioxide") in respira- 
 Water > tion. 
 
 Free oxygen (evolved by greyi 
 
 parts in light). 
 Incidental losses (reproduc- 
 tion, etc.) 
 II. Energy. 
 
 a. Accumulated. 
 
 Potential energy of the 
 accumulated organic sub- 
 stance (see above). 
 6. Dissipated. 
 Heat. 
 
 Light (in some cases). 
 Movement (including growth). 
 Potential energy (in connex- 
 ion with the incidental 
 losses of organic substance, 
 as above). 
 
 In the case of plants which do not possess chlorophyll, the account must be 
 altered thus : 
 
 II. Energy. 
 Heat. 
 
 Light (absorbed by chloro- 
 phyll). 
 
 Income. 
 I. Matter. 
 
 Food; viz. 
 
 Inorganic Salts. 
 Organic matter. 
 Water. 
 
 Free oxygen (in most cases). 
 II. Energy. 
 Heat. 
 
 Potential energy of organic 
 food. 
 
 Expenditure. 
 
 Same as in plant possessing 
 chlorophyll, except that no 
 free oxygen is given off. 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 735 
 
 . CHAPTER III. 
 SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 
 
 10. Introductory. The movements to be specially con- 
 sidered here are such as may be characterized as vital ; that is, 
 they are essentially manifestations of the life of the protoplasm. 
 This statement is rendered necessary by the fact that movements 
 do occur in plants which are dependent upon purely physical 
 causes; instances of these are afforded by the rupture of pollen- 
 sacs and other sporangia, the twisting and untwisting of awns (as 
 in the fruits of Erodium, p. 612, and Stipa, p. 548), the bursting 
 of fruits (as in the Balsam, Impatiens Noli-me-tangere, and the 
 Squirting Cucumbers, such as Ecbalium, Momordica, and Elater- 
 ium). These movements may be due, in the simpler cases, either 
 to expansion and contraction of hygroscopic cell-walls resulting 
 from variations in the moisture of the air, or to the imbibition 
 with water and the consequent swelling-up of mucilaginous sub- 
 stances in the cells ; in the more complicated cases the movement 
 depends upon tensions set up between different layers of tissue in 
 consequence of unequal expansion. 
 
 The vital movements are either spontaneous or induced. In the 
 former case they are the result of causes operating in the or- 
 ganism itself ; in the latter, they are the result of causes acting 
 upon the organism from without. 
 
 The following are the principal phenomena of movement ex- 
 hibited by plants ; the streaming movement of protoplasm 
 (cyclosis) ; the expansion and contraction of contractile vacuoles ; 
 the locomotion of entire organisms ; the movements of cellular 
 members. 
 
 11. Automatism. The spontaneous movements may be 
 conveniently considered under the two heads of movements of 
 protoplasm, and movements of cellular members. 
 
 A. Movements of Protoplasm. Under this head are included 
 such spontaneous movements as can be directly observed in the 
 protoplasm. The first to be noted is the streaming movement, 
 which can be frequently observed either in naked protoplasm (e.g. 
 plasmodia of Myxomycetes), or in the protoplasm of ccenocytes 
 clothed by a cell- wall (e.g. hyphae of Fungi), or in that of cells 
 (e.g. leaf of Elodea and Yallisneria, internodal cells of Characese, 
 
 V. S. B. 3 B 
 
736 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 root-hairs of Trianea bogotensis, hairs of the stamens of Trades- 
 cantia, etc.). The movement takes place in the more fluid por- 
 tion of the protoplasm, and is made evident by the granules of 
 various kinds which are carried along by the currrent. The 
 direction of the movement varies somewhat according to circum- 
 stances : the current travels in one direction, and this simple 
 longitudinal movement is all that can be observed in plasmodia 
 and in hyphae ; but in cells, owing to their shortness, it can be 
 observed to travel up one long side, across the end, and down the 
 other side; and when the cytoplasm forms not merely a parietal 
 layer, but has strands traversing the vacuole (e.g. Fig. 46 D), 
 currents can be observed in these strands also. 
 
 The contractile vacuoles (see p. 102) are small, more or less 
 nearly spherical, cavities which make their appearance in the 
 protoplasm and then suddenly disappear. In their relatively 
 slow expansion (diastole), they become filled with cell-sa,p, which 
 is forced out on the sudden contraction (systole). They have 
 been exclusively found in motile organisms, such as Volvox, 
 Gonium, Eudorina, the plasmodia of Myxomycetes, the zoospores 
 of many Algae and of some Fungi. 
 
 In the second place the protoplasmic movements which involve 
 locomotion have to be considered. The simplest case of this is the 
 amoeboid movement exhibited, among plants, by the zoospores of 
 the Myxomycetes and of some Algae, and by the naked masses of 
 protoplasm which constitute the plasmodia of the Myxomycetes. 
 There is here no specialised motile organ, but any part of the 
 protoplasm may be protruded as a pseudopodium into which the 
 remainder of the protoplasm gradually flows, and thus locomotion 
 of the whole is effected. 
 
 The locomotory movements of most zoospores, of spermatozoids, 
 and of entire organisms such as Volvox, Pandorina, etc., among 
 Algae, is effected by means of specialised motile organs, which are 
 delicate protoplasmic filaments termed cilia (see p. 102) ; each 
 cell may have one, two, four, or many cilia (see Figs. 168, 177, 
 181, etc.). 
 
 Locomotion is also exhibited by other Algae, such as Diatoms, Oscillatorias, 
 etc., as also by some Sohizomycetes, but the mechanism is not fully under- 
 stood. 
 
 B. Movements of Cellular Members. Instances of the move- 
 ment of parts of plants consisting of one or more cells having a 
 cell-wall, are afforded by all growing members, and by some 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 737 
 
 specially modified mature members ; the movements of the latter 
 are termed movements of variation, those of the former, movements 
 of growth. 
 
 These two kinds of movements can be readily distinguished 
 from each other, inasmuch as the movements of variation are 
 rapid and can be easily observed, whereas the movements of 
 growth are slow and can only be followed by means of special 
 apparatus. 
 
 a. Movements of Variation. The majority of the movements of 
 variation are induced, a few only being spontaneous. Instances 
 of spontaneous movement are afforded by the rising and falling of 
 the lateral leaflets of the trifoliolate leaf of Desmodium gyrans, the 
 Telegraph-plant ; by the oscillation of the labellum of Megaclinium 
 falcatum, an African Orchid; by the bending upwards and down- 
 wards of the gynostemium of Stylidium (Candollea) adnatum 
 (see p. 692). It must, however, be pointed out that the power of 
 spontaneous movement may be possessed by plants though they do 
 not manifest it under ordinary circumstances. Thus the leaves 
 of the Sensitive Plant (Mimosa pudica) move spontaneously in 
 darkness, but they will not do so in the light. This is also true 
 of various Leguminosse and Oxalidaceee. 
 
 b. Movements of Growth. Before entering upon a description 
 of the movements of growth, a clear idea must be formed of what 
 growth really is. By growth is meant change of external form, 
 which is usually, though not necessarily, accompanied by increase 
 in bulk ; the change of form being rendered permanent by the 
 deposition of new substance : it is a function of embryonic proto- 
 plasm (see p. 16). 
 
 The growth of the plant-body takes place to a greater or less 
 extent in all three dimensions of space. For instance, when it 
 takes place equally in all three dimensions, a spherical body is 
 produced, as in Protococcus and Volvox. Occasionally it takes 
 place especially in two dimensions, the result being a flattened 
 body, such as a Fern-prothallus or an Ulva. More commonly, 
 however, it takes place especially in one direction, so that the 
 plant-body assumes an elongated form. An extreme case of this 
 is afforded by Spirogyra and other filamentous Algae. It is this 
 growth in length which has been more especially studied physio- 
 logically, and in what follows, "growth " may be taken to mean 
 " growth in length," unless there is some definite statement to the 
 contrary. 
 
738 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 The growth in length of the plant-body takes place at first 
 throughout its whole extent ; but at a later period it is limited, as 
 a rule, to particular regions (see p. 16). In the growing portion 
 of any member two regions may be distinguished : the formative 
 region, which is the growing-point proper: and the region of 
 elongation adjacent to it. In the formative region the construc- 
 tion of the new tissue from plastic substances takes place, as is 
 specially manifested in the formation of cell-walls accompany- 
 ing the cell-division going on in this region of a multicellular 
 growing-point ; but the amount of elongation is slight. In the 
 region of elongation, the formative processes have ceased : in 
 multicellular plants little or no cell-division takes place in this 
 region ; the cells are here fully formed, and they simply require 
 to increase in bulk, to grow in fact, in order to attain the mature 
 form. Beyond the region of elongation conies the portion of the 
 member which has already ceased to grow. It must be clearly 
 understood that each portion of the growing-point passes through 
 these three phases. For instance, in a multicellular apical grow- 
 ing-point, each cell is produced in the formative region ; and as in 
 consequence of the continued formation of younger cells in front 
 of it at the apex, it comes to lie at an increasing distance from 
 the apex, it passes through the stage of growth, to become an adult 
 tissue-element. 
 
 The movement of growth in length is altogether spontaneous. 
 It may be generally described as the travelling of the organic 
 apex in a line which is the continuation of the longitudinal axis 
 of the growing member. Both the rate and the direction of 
 growth are liable to variation, which may be either spontaneous 
 or induced. The induced variations are discussed in 12, p. 742. 
 
 Variations in the Bate of Growth. The rate of growth of a grow- 
 ing member, as also that of each of its constituent cells, is not 
 uniform. When a member begins to grow, its rate of growth is 
 at first slow ; it then accelerates, until a maximum rapidity is 
 attained ; after which it diminishes until growth ceases altogether. 
 This gradual rise and fall in the rate of growth, extending over 
 the whole of one period of growth, is termed the grand period of 
 growth. 
 
 This periodicity is manifested also in each cell of the growing 
 region. A young cell grows but slowly ; as it becomes older, 
 and is gradually removed from the growing-point, its rate of 
 growth increases up to a maximum ; as it becomes still older 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 
 
 789 
 
 and is still more remote, the rate of growth sinks, until finally 
 the adult stage is reached, and growth ceases. 
 
 Careful observation of growing members has shown that, in 
 addition to the spontaneous variation constituting the grand 
 period of growth, small irregular variations are constantly taking 
 place, which, since they are apparently spontaneous, are termed 
 irregular spontaneous variations. 
 
 Another point which must be taken into account is the energy 
 of growth ; that is, the relative capacity of different members for 
 growth in length. The differences in the energy of growth in 
 growing members manifest themselves in differences either in the 
 length of the grand period, or in the rate of growth ; in other 
 words, members may grow for a longer or shorter time, or they 
 may grow more or less rapidly. In any case the result is that 
 members attain different lengths. For instance, it is easy to 
 observe that the lower internodes of most stems remain short ; 
 that those above them are longer ; that 
 those of a certain part of the stem are the 
 longest ; and that the upper ones again are 
 short. In the same way the size of the 
 leaves attached to these various parts of 
 the stem increases from below to about 
 the middle, and then diminishes. 
 
 Variations in the Direction of Growth. 
 Although it is true, as stated above, that 
 the result of growth is, generally speaking, 
 that the apex of the growing member is 
 moved onwards in a line which is the con- 
 tinuation of the axis of the growing organ ; 
 yet, during the actual process of growth, 
 this relation of position is not maintained, 
 because the rate of growth is at no time 
 uniform throughout the transverse section 
 of the region of elongation. Suppose a 
 radial stem rising vertically from the soil ; 
 the longitudinal axis of the fully grown 
 portion of this stem is vertical, but this is 
 not true of the growing portion. If the 
 apex be looked down upon from above it will be seen to travel in 
 an orbit round the prolongation of the longitudinal axis of the fully 
 grown portion, in the manner indicated by the following diagram. 
 
 FIG. 477. The growing 
 primary root of the Pea in. 
 two stages. A The root is 
 marked by lines at equal dis- 
 tances. In -B the differences 
 in rapidity of growth are 
 perceptible : the uppermost 
 lines have not been sepa- 
 rated; the root has ceased 
 to grow here. The lowest 
 likewise are still close toge- 
 ther ; at the growing-point 
 elongation has not taken 
 place. In the intermediate 
 zone the elongation has been, 
 very great. 
 
740 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 Fie. 478. Diagram illustrating nutation of a cylindrical stem, as seen from above: 
 N, S, W, E, indicate the points of the compass. 
 
 The small upper circle divided into segments represents an ideal transverse section of 
 the natating region : the larger circle below represents the orbit of nutation, and the small 
 circles upon it represent different positions of the apex of the stem in its orbit ; the shaded 
 segment indicates always the position of one and the same side of the stem; the smull 
 circle in the centre of the orbit represents the position of the apex of the stem were it not 
 nutating, but were it in a straight line with the older parts which have ceased to grow. 
 Assuming, to begin with, that the rate of growth is uniform in all the segments of the 
 elongating region, then the position of the apex will coincide with the small circle in the 
 centre; but the growth is not uniform, being more active on one side than on the others, 
 say in segment 1; then segment 4 will be the region of least active growth, and, as a con. 
 sequence, the apex of the stem will be displaced southwards till it takes up a position / in 
 the orbit ; the wave of rapid growth then travels from segment 1 to segment 2, and the apex 
 travels from position I to II in the orbit, and so on, until the apex has completed its orbit 
 and returned to position I. It will be observed that the shaded segment always faces the 
 same side (south) in all positions in the orbit; nutation is thus not accompanied by 
 torsion, that is, by twisting of the member about its own axis. In this case the direction 
 of nutation is that of the sun, or of the Lands of a watch. 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 
 
 741 
 
 In this case, the stem being radially symmetrical, the orbit is 
 approximately circular ; but in cases in which the member tends 
 to be bilaterally symmetrical, one diameter of the orbit becomes 
 proportionally elongated, the orbit being then oval, or elliptic, 
 until, finally, when the bilateral symmetry is strongly marked, 
 the orbit becomes a straight line, the growing-point simply oscil- 
 lating from side to side. Whilst the growing-point is travelling 
 in its orbit, it is at the same time being raised upwards ; so that 
 it describes a path which is, according to the form of the orbit, a 
 
 PIG. 479. Illustration of the epinastic growth of the leaves of the Sunflower (Helianthug 
 annuus). A represents the position of the leaves when the plant is exposed to light; B 
 represents the position of the leaves when the plant has been kept in darkness for twenty- 
 four hours. In A the leaves are expanded in consequence of the directive (diaheliotropic) 
 action of the incident rays of light. In B the leaves, in the absence of light, had become 
 recurved in virtue of their inherent epinastic growth. 
 
 circular spiral, an elliptical spiral, or a zig-zag. These changes 
 of position are, however, not permanent ; for example, though the 
 growing-point may be travelling upwards in a spiral, the fully- 
 grown stem does not resemble a corkscrew, but is straight. 
 
742 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 These spontaneous changes in position of growing-points are 
 designated generally by the term Nutation. 
 
 All growing members nutate in a more or less marked manner ; 
 but the most conspicuous instances are afforded by slender struc- 
 tures, such as tendrils, and the internodes of twining stems. 
 
 A peculiar form of nutation is commonly exhibited by dorsiventral members, 
 Buch as leaves. In the early stages the one surface of the leaf grows much 
 faster than the other, thus leading to certain peculiar forms of vernation and 
 aestivation (see p. 60) ; in the later stages the other side grows the faster, and 
 so the expansion of the leaf is brought about. When it is the ventral sur- 
 face which is growing the faster, whether along the transverse or the longi- 
 tudinal axis of the leaf, it is said to be a case of cpinasty (Fig. 479) ; when the 
 dorsal surface, it is said to be a case of hyponasty. A striking example is afforded 
 by leaves having circinate vernation, as many Ferns, Drosera, etc.; this form of 
 vernation is due to the growth of the leaf being at first longitudinally hypo- 
 nastie. The convolute, involute, and conduplicate forms are all the result of 
 transverse hyponastic growth in the early stages of development of the leaf, 
 whereas the revolute form is the result of transverse epinastic growth. 
 
 12. Irritability (Induced Movements). All parts of plants 
 which can exhibit movement are also irritable ; that is, they 
 respond to the action of external agents either by a movement or 
 by a change in the rate or the direction of their movement. The 
 following are the principal causes, or stimuli, of movement, or 
 change of movement : 
 
 a. Mechanical ; contact or pressure ; 
 Z>. Variations of temperature ; 
 
 c. Variations in the intensity of light ; 
 
 d. Changes in the direction of incidence of the rays of light ; 
 
 e. Changes of position with regard to the line of action of 
 
 gravity (vertical) ; 
 /. Differences of degree of moisture in the surrounding medium. 
 
 a. Irritability to Mechanical Stimuli. This form of irritability 
 is most strikingly manifested by motile mature members, and less 
 markedly by certain growing members. 
 
 Irritability to contact is manifested by the following mature 
 motile members : by the leaves of the sensitive plants (see p. 689), 
 and by those of Dionsea and Drosera ; by the stamens of Berberis, 
 Mahonia, the Cynareea, and the Cistaceee; by tho lobes of the 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 743 
 
 stigma of Mimulus, Martynia, and Bignonia ; and by the style of 
 Goldfussia anisophylla. 
 
 The most familiar case is that of Mimosa pudica, the Sensitive Plant. The 
 leaf of this plant is bipinnate, consisting of a primary petiole bearing at its free 
 end four secondary petioles, upon which the leaflets or pinnae are inserted (see 
 Fig. 472). The primary petiole is articulated to the stem ; each secondary 
 petiole to the primary petiole ; and each pinna to the secondary petiole, by a 
 pulvinus. When stimulated, the pinnae fold together forwards and upwards : 
 the secondary petioles move sideways so as to come closer together and to lie 
 almost parallel ; and the primary petiole sinks downwards ; the pulvini act as 
 hinges upon which the various parts move. 
 
 It is only a few growing members which react perceptibly to 
 mechanical stimulation; such are tendrils, the petioles of leaf- 
 climbers (e.g. Tropaeolum, Lophospermum scandens, Maurandia, 
 Solanum jasminoides) , the stem of at least one stem-climber, 
 namely that of Cuscuta (Dodder), and roots. In these cases the 
 contact must be of relatively long duration, becoming, in fact 
 pressure. 
 
 It is still a question whether the internodes of all stem-climbers may not be 
 in some degree sensitive to contact ; but if so, they are sensitive only to long- 
 continued contact. 
 
 The irritability of growing members to mechanical stimulation 
 is, however, less marked than that of the mature motile members 
 mentioned above. Even in the most sensitive growing members, 
 such as tendrils, the resulting movement is comparatively slow. 
 The movement induced in these members is that they tend to 
 curve round the object with which they have come into contact. 
 The result of this is that fresh portions of the member come into 
 contact and are stimulated to curve, so that the member forms 
 coils round the object, and thus becomes firmly attached to it. In 
 the case of roots, when the growing-point is more or less injured 
 by pressure or otherwise, a curvature is induced of such a kind 
 that the injured side becomes convex, with the result that the 
 growing-point, and consequently the direction of growth, is de- 
 flected from the obstacle or other cause of injury. 
 
 b. Irritability to Variations of Temperature. Movement, like the 
 other functions (see p. 671), is affected by temperature, but this 
 influence is not stimulating but tonic : it does not induce move- 
 ment, but merely modifies the activity of movement (see p. 760). 
 A sudden variation of temperature may, however, act as a stimulus 
 and induce a movement. This kind of irritability has been de- 
 
744 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 tected in various leaves : for instance, a rise of temperature causes 
 certain flowers (e,g. Tulip, Crocus) to open, and a fall of tempera- 
 ture causes them to close : similarly a fall of temperature causes 
 the leaves of such plants as the Sensitive Plant and the Wood- 
 Sorrel (Oxalis Acetosella) to fold up, whereas a rise of temperature 
 causes them to expand (see Fig. 471). 
 
 c. Irritability to Variations in the Intensity of Light (Paratonio 
 Effect of Light ; p. 674). This is exhibited in a marked manner 
 by the majority of motile members, more especially leaves. When, 
 for instance, the intensity of the light is diminished, the perianth- 
 leaves of many flowers and the foliage-leaves and cotyledons of 
 many plants perform movements which are termed nyctitropic or 
 sleep-movements (see p. 689). Thus, the flowers close; and the 
 foliage-leaves change their position in various ways, assuming 
 what is known as the nocturnal position, so that they no longer 
 present the surface, but the margin of the blade to the sky. Con- 
 versely, when flowers or leaves which have assumed the nocturnal 
 position are exposed to light, or to brighter light than before, they 
 resume their normal expanded (diurnal) position. 
 
 Another remarkable manifestation of this irritability is that 
 movements of variation in some cases, and movements of growth 
 in most cases, are retarded or arrested by exposure to light of a 
 sufficient intensity. 
 
 In illustration of the effect of light upon movements of varia- 
 tion, it may be stated that certain members, such as the leaves 
 of the Sensitive Plant, which perform spontaneous movements of 
 variation, are unable to do so when exposed to bright light : 
 under this condition the leaves become fixed, as it were, in the 
 diurnal position. This is not, however, the case with all mature 
 motile members : for instance, the movement of the lateral leaf- 
 lets of the Telegraph-plant (Besmodium gyrans) continues even in, 
 bright sunlight. 
 
 The paratonic action of light on movements of growth is 
 strikingly exhibited in various ways. It is well demonstrated by 
 etiolated plants (see p. 674), that is, by plants which have been kept 
 in darkness for some considerable time. A characteristic feature of 
 etiolated shoots is the excessive length of their internodes, as com- 
 pared with those of a shoot which has been growing for the same 
 period exposed to the normal alternation of day and night. This 
 excessive elongation in darkness which occurs as a rule in all 
 radial and isobilateral members which usually grow exposed to 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 745 
 
 light is the result of the absence of the retarding paratonic action 
 of light. 
 
 The exceptions to this rule are the shoots of stem-climbers (Hop, etc.). The 
 stems of these plants have, under ordinary conditions, very long internodes ; 
 they seem to grow to the utmost even although they are exposed to light, and 
 they do not grow to any greater length in darkness. On account of this pecu- 
 liarity they have been termed " normally etiolated shoots." 
 
 The effect of the paratonic action of light can also be estimated 
 by direct measurement of the growing member. As the result of 
 a great number of comparative measurements, it has been found, 
 in regard to members of all kinds, that the rate of growth is more 
 rapid in darkness than in light. 
 
 An interesting demonstration of the relation of the rate of 
 growth to light, is afforded by the observation of the growth of 
 any member at given intervals every hour, or every two or three 
 hours during an entire day of twenty-four hours. By this means 
 it has been ascertained that a growing member exhibits a regular 
 daily periodicity in the variations in its rate of growth, which has 
 a direct relation to the alternation of day and night. 
 
 A general inspection of the tracings in Fig. 480 shows that the 
 rate of growth increases in darkness, and diminishes in the light. 
 This is more apparent in the 3-hour than in the 1-hour tracing, 
 for the latter is complicated by the registration of the spontaneous 
 variations in the rate of growth (see p. 739), whereas the former is 
 not, owing to the longer interval between the measurements. 
 
 It will be further noticed that the effect of a change from dark- 
 ness to light, or from light to darkness, is not manifested at once ; 
 but that after such a change, the rate of growth goes on, for a, 
 time, as it did before, until gradually it alters. In fact, a growing 
 member, though kept in continuous darkness, will exhibit a more 
 or less well-marked periodicity for several days. This is a good 
 instance of the general slowness of reaction which characterises 
 growing members. 
 
 But it must be borne in mind that variations of temperature 
 also affect the rate of growth. Hence, since the alternation of 
 day and night is accompanied by changes of temperature, the 
 forms of the tracings in the figure are not solely due to the influ- 
 ence of light, but also to some extent to that of temperature. 
 Speaking generally, it may be said that, as the intensity of the 
 light diminishes towards evening, the temperature falls. The 
 
746 
 
 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 former condition tends to accelerate growth, but the latter to 
 retard it. The actual rate of growth is the resultant of the 
 acceleration due to diminished light, and of the retardation due to 
 a falling temperature. Similarly, in the morning, the increasing 
 intensity of the light tends to retard growth, whereas the rising 
 temperature tends to accelerate it. The actual rate of growth is 
 the resultant of the retardation due to increased intensity of light, 
 and of the acceleration due to a rising temperature. 
 
 12, 
 
 Fia. 480. (After Sachs). Illustrating the daily periodicity of growth in length. 
 
 In Fig. 480 there is given a graphic representation of two complete daily 
 periods of growth as observed in a Dahlia-stem. The abscissae of the base-line 
 represent periods of two hours, and the divisions of the ordiuates represent units 
 of growth in length. The tracing marked lh is the result of hourly measure- 
 ments of the growing stem ; the tracing marked 3/t is the result of measure- 
 ments made every three hours. The variations of temperature have been also 
 taken into account, and are represented by the tracing marked t : the base-line 
 represents 12 R., and five of the divisions of the ordinates represent 1 K. : it 
 will be seen that the temperature varied between about 12.5 E. and 15.8 E. 
 The shaded spaces represent periods of darkness. 
 
 The paratonic action of light varies with its intensity : the more 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 
 
 747 
 
 intense the light the more marked the paratonic action. Exposure 
 to very intense light may entirely arrest growth for the time 
 being. 
 
 It has been found that the different rays of the spectrum are 
 not equally active ; the paratonic effect of the more highly refran- 
 gible rays (violet, indigo, blue) is far greater than that of the 
 rays of lower refrangibility (see Fig. 481). 
 
 d. Irritability to the Direction of Incidence of the rays of Light 
 (Heliotropism) . This kind of irritability is extremely common, 
 and generally manifests itself in the most striking manner. The 
 most active rays of light are those of high refrangibility (violet, 
 indigo, blue). 
 
 A remarkable example of this is afforded by the zoospores of 
 various plants (e.g. Ulothrix, Hsematococcas, Botrydium, etc.). 
 
 n 
 
 J3 C 
 
 G 
 
 Fio. 481 . (After Wiesner). Carve illustrating the relative heliotropic effect of rays of 
 different refrangibility. The letters A H in the base-line indicate the position of the 
 more important lines in the solar spectrum. The curves I, II, HI represent the degree of 
 curvature, uuder the influence of the different rays, presented by the Vetch, the Cress, and 
 the Willow respectively. The curve xy represents the relative effect of the different ray 8 
 in retarding growth ; it is greatest at y, and least at x. 
 
 When light falls obliquely upon them, these zoospores arrange 
 themselves in the water so that their long axes are parallel to the 
 direction of incidence of the rays ; this phenomenon is termed Photo- 
 taxis. Moreover, the direction of their movement is also determined 
 by the direction of incidence of the light. They move in the line 
 of incidence, but they may move either towards or away from the 
 source of light ; the direction depending partly on the intensity of 
 the light, and partly on the degree of irritability of the zoospore. 
 When a zoospore moves towards a source of light, it is said to be 
 positively phototactic ; when away from it, negatively phototactic. 
 
748 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS, 
 
 Another important case is the change of position of the chlorophyll - 
 corpuscles in the cells (see p. 686). 
 
 Motile cellular members, whether mature or growing, are, as a 
 rule, sensitive to the directive influence of the incident rays of 
 light. Among mature motile members, foliage-leaves are those 
 which most markedly respond to the directive or heliotropic influ- 
 ence of light ; among growing members, it is more especially stems 
 and leaves which are sensitive, but roots have in many cases been 
 found to be so. All these irritable members take up a definite 
 position, the light-position (p. 688), with reference to the direction 
 of incidence of the rays of light. Members capable of performing 
 movements of variation can, if necessary, change their light- 
 position, whereas the light-position of other members can only be 
 changed so long as they are growing. 
 
 The particular position which the member assumes under the 
 heliotropic influence of light, depends upon its organisation. Three 
 classes of members, namely the dorsi ventral, the isobilateral, and 
 the radial, have therefore to be considered. 
 
 It may be generally stated of dorsiventral members, that, for a 
 certain mean intensity of light, their light-position is such that 
 the morphologically upper (ventral) surface is directed towards 
 the source of light, and lies in a plane perpendicular to the 
 direction of incidence of the rays : that is, they are diaheliotropic. 
 
 It must, however, be borne in mind that the position of dorsiventral mem- 
 bers with regard to light may not, in nature, always be found to be exactly that 
 described above, because other directive influences are in operation which 
 interfere with the effect of light. When, by appropriate arrangements, the 
 effect of the other influences is removed, and light alone is acting, the truth of 
 the above statement will be demonstrated. 
 
 The case of motile foliage-leaves may be taken first in illustra- 
 tion, such as those of the Sensitive Plant, Robinia, Scarlet Runner, 
 etc. When these leaves are exposed to light of sufficient intensity 
 to cause them to assume the diurnal position (see p. 689), their 
 upper (ventral) surfaces are at right angles to the direction of 
 incidence of the rays. If, on the one hand, the light to which 
 they are exposed becomes less intense than this, they will manifest 
 no sensibility to its direction of incidence, but will merely assume 
 the nocturnal position. If, on the other hand, the light becomes 
 more intense, then the leaves will alter their position so that the 
 blades will present their edge, instead of their ventral surface, to 
 the incident rays (paraheliotropism, see p. 689). 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 749 
 
 In the case of foliage-leaves and other dorsiventral members 
 which cannot execute movements of variation, the light-position is 
 assumed in the course of development, and is fixed. Since it 
 cannot be altered in relation to variations in the intensity of the 
 incident rajs, the position assumed is determined by the most 
 frequent direction of incidence of the rays of suitable intensity. 
 For instance, the fixed light-position of the foliage- leaves of plants 
 growing free in the open, is usually not such that the ventral 
 surface is horizontal, facing the zenith ; but such that it is directed 
 towards that quarter of the sky from which, not the brightest 
 sunlight, but the brightest diffuse daylight, falls perpendicularly 
 upon it. In fact, it is not unusual to find that the fixed light- 
 position of leaves, when the light is of high average intensity, is 
 such that the surfaces are vertical, so that the margin is pre- 
 sented to the zenith. Under these circumstances both surfaces 
 are equally exposed to light, and the structure of the leaf becomes 
 more or less isobilateral (see pp. 164, 686). 
 
 A most remarkable instance of a fixed light-position with vertical surfaces, 
 is afforded by the so called " Compass -plants," Silphium laciniatum, and 
 Lactuca Scariola. The surfaces of the leaves of these plants are not only 
 vertical when fully exposed to bright light, but they place themselves in a 
 vertical plane which more or less nearly coincides with the meridian of the 
 locality, the surfaces of the leaves facing east and west. It is this relation of 
 the fixed light-position of the leaves to the points of the compass which sug- 
 gested the name " Compass-plants." 
 
 The fact that the ultimate position of dorsiventral leaves is 
 mainly determined by light, is demonstrated by removing them 
 whilst still growing, and therefore capable of a change of posi- 
 tion from its influence. In darkness these leaves take up an 
 altogether different position (see Fig. 479), becoming curved in 
 various ways ; when again exposed to light they resume their 
 previous diaheliotropic position. 
 
 With reference now to radial members, it may be generally 
 stated that the essential feature of their response to the directive 
 influence of light is that they tend to place their long axes in the 
 direction of incidence of the brightest light falling upon them. 
 Whereas in the case of dorsiventral members the important point 
 is the relation of the morphologically upper surface to the direction 
 of the incident rays ; in the case of radial members the important 
 point is the relation of the long axis to the direction of the incident 
 rays. 
 
750 PART IY. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 An exact coincidence between the direction of the long axis of the member 
 and that of the incident rays is, however, not always attained in nature, on 
 account of the antagonistic action of other directive influences. This point is 
 more fully discussed on p. 757. 
 
 It must be mentioned that, inasmuch as there are no radial 
 members which are both heliotropically irritable and capable of 
 performing movements of variation, all that is here said refers to 
 growing radial members. 
 
 In illustration, the case of a radial member which has been 
 grown in the dark may be taken, and it may be assumed to 
 be vertical. Light is allowed to fall upon it from one side ; the 
 effect is a gradual curvature of the member, as it continues to 
 grow, so that its long axis comes to coincide more or less nearly 
 with the direction of the incident rays. 
 
 But the curvature may be in one of two directions ; it may be 
 either such that the apex of the member comes to point towards 
 the source of light, or such that it points in the opposite direction. 
 When the former is the case the member is said to be positively 
 heliotropic ; when the latter, it is said to be negatively heliotropic. 
 
 The nature of the curvature, whether positive or negative, 
 depends upon the specific irritability of the member. Thus, gene- 
 rally speaking, primary shoots, including such forms as the stems 
 of Chara and Nitella, the peduncles of flowers, the stipes of the 
 larger Fungi, and the gonidiophores of Moulds, as also radial 
 leaves such as those of the Onion, are positively heliotropic. 
 Negative heliotropism has been observed in many roots, especially 
 aerial roots, and in the root-hairs of Marchantia. With regard to 
 shoots, the hypocotyl of Yiscum, the Mistletoe, is negatively helio- 
 tropic. 
 
 Although the relation between the external symmetry of the 
 member and its heliotropic irritability is generally that indicated 
 above, yet there are exceptions : all dorsiventral members are dia- 
 heliotropic ; but not all radial members are positively or negatively 
 heliotropic, for some of them are diaheliotropic. It seems that 
 continual exposure to intense light falling on one side induces at 
 least physiological dorsiventrality in some radial members (e.g. 
 shoots of Ivy and Tropseolum). 
 
 It is frequently stated that exposure to intense light causes a reversal of 
 heliotropic properties in radial members; for instance, that a shoot which is 
 positively heliotropic in moderately intense light becomes negatively heliotropic 
 in very intense light. The true explanation of such cases is probably this, that 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 751 
 
 under the influence of intense unilateral illumination, the radial organ becomes 
 physiologically dorsiveutral ; it is then diaheliotropic (not negatively helio- 
 tropic) in place of being positively heliotropic, and any curvature which it may 
 present is due to epinasty or hyponasty. 
 
 The flattened, typically isobilateral, leaves of various Monocoty- 
 ledons, such as those of Iris, appear to be positively heliotropic. 
 
 e. Irrit ability to the Directive Influence of Gravity (Geotropism). 
 
 The effects of the stimulating directive action of gravity must 
 be clearly distinguished from those which are due to the mere 
 weight of the parts. It is only the former which are referred to 
 by the term geotropism. The geotropic curvatures are effected 
 with considerable force, and will take place even against consider- 
 able resistance ; for instance, it has been observed that the pri- 
 mary roots of seedlings will curve downward into mercury. 
 
 Geotropic irritability is manifested by various members, such as 
 stems, leaves, and roots. The phenomena of geotropism in the 
 three categories of members, the dorsiventral, the radial, and the 
 isobilateral, will now be studied. 
 
 With regard to dorsiventral members, it appears that many 
 leaves, both growing and motile, lateral shoots of Conifers and of 
 many dicotyledonous shrubs, runners, etc., which are dorsiventral, 
 take up such a position, when acted upon solely by gravity, that 
 their longitudinal axis is horizontal that is, at right angles to the 
 line of action of gravity, the vertical and that their morphologi- 
 cally superior surface is directed upwards. If these members are 
 moved out of this position so that their long axis is not horizontal, 
 they curve until it is so ; or if they be so moved that the nor- 
 mally upper surface faces downwards, they twist until it faces up- 
 wards. These members behave in respect to the line of action of 
 gravity just as they do to the direction of the incident rays of 
 light. They are diageotropic, just as they are diaheliotropic. 
 
 It is a familiar fact that at all points of the earth's surface typi- 
 cal radial members, such as primary shoots and roots, grow with 
 their long axis vertical, but with this difference, that the direction 
 of growth of the primary shoots is away from the centre of the 
 earth, whereas that of the primary roots is towards the centre of 
 the earth. It can be readily demonstrated (by Knight's machine, 
 Fig. 483) that this vertical direction of growth is due to the force 
 of gravity, that it is, in fact, a phenomenon of geotropism. But 
 the effect produced is precisely opposite in the two cases ; primary 
 shoots grow in a direction opposed to that of the action of gravity, 
 
 v. s. B. 3 c 
 
752 PAftT IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 they are negatively geotropic ; primary roots grow in the same direc- 
 tion as that of the action of gravity, they are positively geotropic. 
 
 If these members be moved 
 out of their normal position, 
 they will return to it by 
 
 = P**X w ^^ performing geotropic cur- 
 
 QJ) ^\ vature (Fig. 482). 
 
 The principle of Knight's ma- 
 chine is to expose growing plants 
 to the action of centrifugal force, 
 
 FIG. 482. Geotropic curvature of a Pea- seedling 
 
 placed horizontally. The thicker outline indicates gether with gravity (A). 
 
 the original positions of the primary shoot and object of it is to demonstrate 
 
 root ; the shoot s has curved upwards in the that gravity is the directive force 
 
 course of its growth, the root w has curved which determines the relative 
 
 The bud at the apex of the shoot _,. . , 
 
 directions of growth of shoots 
 
 and roots ; the line of reasoning 
 being, that if the direction of growth of roots and shoots can be affected by a 
 known physical force, such as the centrifugal force of a rapidly rotating wheel, in 
 a manner analogous to that observable in nature, it may be concluded that the 
 natural direction of growth of these members is the result of the action of a 
 physical force, and this force is doubtless that of gravity. In Fig. A, the seed- 
 lings have been grown on a rapidly rotating horizontal wheel, and exposed 
 consequently to the action both of gravity and of centrifugal force : the result 
 is, that the primary roots and shoots still grow in diametrically opposite direc- 
 tions, but the line of growth is not vertical, as in nature, but oblique; hence it 
 follows that the direction of growth of both root and shoot has been affected by 
 the centrifugal force. In B, the seedlings have been grown on a rapidly rota- 
 ting vertical wheel : in consequence of the continuous change in position with 
 regard to the vertical, it is obvious that, in this experiment, the directive action 
 of gravity is eliminated, for all parts of the seedlings are acted upon by gravity 
 for successive equal times in opposite directions: the only force iu action is the 
 centrifugal force, with the result that the primary shoots have grown towards 
 the centre of the wheel, in a direction contrary to that of the line of action of 
 the centrifugal force, whilst the primary roots have grown outwards, away 
 'from the centre of the wheel, in the same direction as the action of the centri- 
 fugal force. It is clear from these facts (1) that a purely physical force can 
 determine the direction of growth of roots and shoots : (2) that the physical 
 force employed (centrifugal force) affects primary roots and shoots in a precisely 
 contrary manner: and it may be concluded that since the phenomena produced 
 by the action of centrifugal force in these experiments are quite analogous to 
 those observable in nature, the cause of the natural phenomena is also a purely 
 physical force, and the force of gravity is the one which meets all the necessary 
 conditions. 
 
 Another mode of experimental proof is by means of a machine termed a 
 clinostat. This machine differs from Knight's machine in that the rotation of 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 
 
 753 
 
 the plant is very slow, so that no centrifugal force is set up. The principle of 
 it is that, by slowly rotating a plant by means of a vertical wheel either (as in 
 Fig. 483 B) with the long axis of the plant in the plane of the wheel, or with the 
 
 PIG. 483 (after Knight). Diagrams illustrating experiments with Knight's machine. A 
 Wheel rotating horizontally on a vertical axis; B, wheel rotating vertically on a horizontal 
 
754 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 long axis of the plant perpendicular to the plane of the wheel, each part is ex- 
 posed for successive equal times to the action of gravity in precisely opposite 
 directions, so that the directive action of gravity neutralises itself. The result 
 is that a stem or root with its long axis horizontal remains perfectly straight 
 when rotated on the clinostat, provided that other disturbing influences (light, 
 etc.) are excluded ; and the fact that the empirical results given by the machine 
 exactly correspond to what would be theoretically anticipated on the hypothesis 
 that gravity is the active directive force in geotropic curvature, is strong con- 
 firmatory evidence of the conclusions to be drawn from experiments with 
 Knight's machine. 
 
 The geotropic influence of gravity is greatest when the radial 
 member is in a horizontal position; that is, the curvature into the 
 normal position then takes place with the greatest rapidity. But 
 the visible effect is the more marked, the further the member is 
 removed from its normal position ; for instance, when a primary 
 shoot is turned upside down, a curvature of 180 has to be per- 
 formed in order that the apex may again point upwards. 
 
 In addition to the primary shoots of seedlings, the following radial members 
 are negatively geotropic ; the stipes of Mushrooms, the gonidiophores of Moulds, 
 the stems of Characese, the stalks of the receptacles of Liverworts, the peduncles 
 of many flowers, the setse of Mosses, etc. Also isobilateral leaves, such as those 
 of Iris ; when placed horizontally in darkness, whether flat or edgeways, they 
 curve upwards. 
 
 In addition to the primary roots of seedlings, the following radial members 
 are positively geotropic ; the hyphae of Fungi which penetrate into the sub- 
 stratum, the root-like filaments of Vaucheria, and other Algse, the rhizoids of 
 Muscineae, the rhizomes of Yucca filamentosa and of Cordyline rubra, etc. 
 
 An instance of the absence of geotropic irritability in a growing member is 
 afforded by the hypocotyl of the Mistletoe. 
 
 The degree of geotropic irritability is not the same in all radial 
 members. It may be generally stated that the lateral branches 
 both of shoots and roots are less irritable than primary shoots and 
 roots. For instance, the secondary branches of roots grow, not 
 vertically downwards, but obliquely outwards and downwards, in 
 the soil. 
 
 All radial members are not, however, either positively or nega- 
 tively geotropic ; some, such as the rhizomes of Heliocharis palustris, 
 Sparganium ramosum, and Scirpus maritimus, are diageotropic. 
 
 It has been observed in some cases that the nature of the geo- 
 tropic irritability of a member may change in the course of its 
 development. For instance, the peduncle of the Poppy is posi- 
 tively geotropic whilst the flower is in the bud, but negatively 
 geotropic during flowering and fruiting. Again, the flowers of 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 755 
 
 the Daffodil are negatively geotropic when in the bud, but they 
 become diageotropic as they open. 
 
 /. Irrit ability to Differences in the degree of Moisture in the sur- 
 rounding Medium (Hydrotropism). 
 
 Irritability of this kind is especially characteristic of earth-roots 
 which possess it in a high degree. It can be readily demon- 
 strated by a well-known experiment. Peas or Beans are made to 
 germinate in a sieve full of damp sawdust, the sieve being sus- 
 pended in a slanting position. The primary roots grow down- 
 wards through the sawdust, and escape into the air (which is 
 kept moist). At first they grow vertically downwards in conse- 
 quence of their positive geotropism, but they soon curve up- 
 wards towards the moist surface. They do this in virtue of their 
 hydrotropic irritability, and it is clear that they are positively 
 hydrotropic. 
 
 g. Irritability of other kinds. It has been ascertained by experi- 
 ment that members of various kinds may be stimulated to curva- 
 ture by other causes, such as differences of temperature on the 
 two sides, galvanic currents, the flowing of currents of water, and 
 by the presentation of various chemical substances; but these 
 various phenomena are not of such immediate importance to the 
 well-being of the plant as those which have been described above 
 in detail. 
 
 The stimulating action of certain chemical substances (chemio- 
 taxis) is, however, of some importance in connexion with the 
 reproductive processes. It had been frequently observed that the 
 motile male cells (spermatozoids) of plants possessing them 
 appeared to be attracted to the female organ, fertilisation being 
 thus ensured; but the cause of this has only recently been as- 
 certained, and only in certain cases. It appears that the female 
 organ, when it is fit for fertilisation, excretes into the surround- 
 ing water a substance which attracts the male cells. In Ferns 
 and Selaginella this substance is a compound of malic acid ; in 
 Mosses it is cane-sugar. 
 
 13. Localisation of Irritability. Among members which 
 perform movements of variation, there are many instances of well- 
 defined localisation of irritability. Thus, in the Sensitive Plant, 
 no movement ensues when the upper side of the pulvinus of the 
 primary petiole is touched, but only when the sensitive hairs on 
 the under side of the pulvinus are touched ; and, in the leaflets, 
 it is the upper side of the pulvinus which is sensitive. In Drosera, 
 
756 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 the irritability of the tentacles is localised in the terminal gland. 
 In Dionsea, movement only ensues when the irritable hairs on the 
 upper surface of the leaf are touched. 
 
 Among growing organs, tendrils offer well-marked localisation 
 of irritability. In most tendrils the lower or basal part is either 
 not at all sensitive, or is sensitive only to prolonged contact. 
 Most tendrils have their tips slightly hooked, and their irritability 
 is localised in the concavity of this curvature. The tendrils of 
 Coboea scandens and of Cissus discolor are irritable on all sides ; in 
 those of Mutisia the inferior and lateral surfaces are irritable, but 
 not the superior. The irritability of the root to the pressure of 
 obstacles (see pp. 683, 743) is localised in the tip. 
 
 The foregoing examples sufficiently prove the localisation of 
 irritability to mechanical stimulation : and the question arises 
 whether or not irritability to other stimuli is also localised. It 
 has been ascertained that this is the case, in connexion with 
 heliotropism and geotropism, at least in certain plants. Thus, the 
 heliotropic irritability (i.e. sensitiveness to the directive influence 
 of light) of the cotyledons of certain Grasses, though riot abso- 
 lutely confined to the tip, has been found to reside especially in 
 that part, and the same is the case with the primary shoot of 
 many dicotyledonous seedlings and with young shoots of various 
 plants. The geotropic irritability of roots also resides in the tip, 
 and this appears to be also true of other members. 
 
 14. Transmission of Stimuli. The most striking instances 
 of this are offered by motile leaves, such as those of the Sensitive 
 plant and of Drosera. If the terminal pair of leaflets of a pinna 
 of the leaf of the Sensitive Plant be irritated, not only will they 
 fold up, but each of the other pairs of leaflets of the same pinna 
 will fold up in succession ; if the stimulus is sufficiently strong, 
 its effect may extend to other pinnae causing their leaflets to fold 
 up, or to the secondary petioles causing them to converge, or even 
 to the main petiole which then sinks downward (see Fig. 472). 
 Stimulation of one leaf, if sufficiently powerful, will cause move- 
 ment in another. In the case of Drosera, stimulation of the central 
 tentacles of a leaf causes the inflexion of the marginal tentacles. 
 
 In so far as heliotropic and geotropic irritability is localised in 
 the tips of growing members, these must also afford instances of 
 transmission of stimuli. The stimulus acts upon the irritable tip, 
 and the impulse is transmitted to the region in which the curva- 
 ture takes place. 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 757 
 
 The means by which, stimuli are transmitted is a matter which 
 is still under discussion ; but it appears that the means of trans- 
 mission is not the same in all cases. Whilst in some, such as 
 tendrils and the leaves of Drosera, the stimulus is probably trans- 
 mitted by means of the delicate protoplasmic filaments which con- 
 nect the protoplasm of adjacent cells (see p. 91) ; in others, for 
 instance Mimosa pudica, the stimulus is transmitted as a dis- 
 turbance of the hydrostatic equilibrium of the cells : it would, in 
 fact, appear that whilst the former means of transmission suffices 
 for a short distance, the latter is necessary when the distance to 
 be traversed is considerable. In Mimosa pudica there appears to 
 be a special tissue along which the stimulus is conducted : it be- 
 longs to the bast, and consists of large elongated cells with pitted 
 cellulose walls. 
 
 The Latent Period. It has been observed, more especially with 
 regard to the heliotropic and other curvatures of radial growing 
 organs, that the curvature does not become apparent for some con- 
 siderable time after the stimulus has begun to act. This interval 
 is the Latent Period. For instance, it has been ascertained that 
 the primary shoots of Bean-seedlings do not begin to curve helio- 
 tropically for two hours after an exposure of one hour to unilateral 
 illumination. 
 
 When, however, the stimulus to curvature has acted for a 
 sufficient time, the curvature will eventually take place even 
 though the stimulus has ceased to act : the conditions of curvature 
 have been induced, that is, even before the curvature can be 
 observed. 
 
 In explanation, it may be suggested that, in growing members, 
 the stimulus is conveyed but slowly from the seat of irritability 
 to the seat of curvature ; and it is obvious that the curvature of a 
 growing cellular member is a process which, on mechanical grounds 
 in relation with the rate of growth, cannot be effected rapidly. 
 
 15. Combined Effects of different Stimuli. Inasmuch 
 as it is commonly the case that the motile members, whether 
 growing or mature, are irritable to stimuli of various kinds, it is 
 clear that the assumption by them of any particular position is 
 the resultant effect of the stimuli which may be acting simul- 
 taneously. The phenomena in question are strikingly manifested 
 by growing members, and it is to these that the following account 
 especially refers. 
 
 According to the position assumed in the course of their growth 
 
758 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 under the influence of various external directive influences, plant- 
 members may be conveniently classified into those which have 
 their long axis vertical, and those which have their long axis 
 oblique or horizontal, the former are distinguished as orthotropic, 
 the latter as plagiotropic. Most radial and isobilateral members 
 are orthotropic ; all dorsi ventral, and some radial members, are 
 plagiotropic. For instance, radial primary shoots and roots are 
 orthotropic; all dorsiventral leaves, etc., are plagiotropic; lateral 
 branches of shoots and roots, even though radial, are plagiotropic. 
 
 The directive influences which mainly determine the direction 
 of growth of radial primary shoots are gravity and the direction 
 of the incident rays of light, and the shoots themselves are nega- 
 tively geotropic and positively heliotropic. If only the conditions 
 are such that each side of the shoot receives an equal amount of 
 light, as when the plant grows quite in the open, no heliotropic 
 curvature takes place, and the shoot grows erect. But when one 
 side of the plant is shaded, as when it grows by the side of a hedge, 
 the shoot in most cases curves heliotropically out of the vertical. 
 This curvature is the resultant effect of the negative geotropism 
 of the shoot which tends to keep it straight, and its positive helio- 
 tropism which tends to make it curve more than it actually does. 
 Unilateral illumination usually causes some degree of curvature 
 in shoots, because, as a rule, their heliotropic irritability is higher 
 than their geotropic irritability. Exceptions to this rule have 
 been found in the inflorescences of Verbascum and Dipsaeus, 
 which remain erect even when one side is shaded. 
 
 Similarly, the influences which ordinarily determine the direc- 
 tion of growth of radial primary roots, are gravity and the distri- 
 bution of moisture in the soil. If the soil is uniformly moist, the 
 root grows vertically downwards under the influence of gravity; 
 but if the soil is not uniformly moist, the root will curve out of 
 the vertical towards the moister area, because its hydrotropic is 
 greater than its geotropic irritability. 
 
 The conditions which determine the plagiotropic position of 
 most radial lateral branches of shoots are these : they are nega- 
 tively geotropic, and they are diaheliotropic, at least in intense 
 light. In darkness they grow erect, in virtue of their negative 
 geotropism. Some radial subterranean rhizomes are, however, dia- 
 geotropic (see p. 754). The oblique growth of lateral roots is 
 simply due to their feeble geotropic irritability. 
 
 The conditions which determine the plagiotropic position of 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 759 
 
 dorsiventral members are these : they are both diageotropio and 
 diaheliotropic. But inasmuch as their heliotropic is higher than 
 their geotropic irritability, their ultimate position is that in which 
 the incident rays of appropriate intensity fall nearly or exactly 
 at right angles upon the upper surface. 
 
 It will be observed that, as a rule, in growing members which 
 are heliotropically irritable, this irritability is higher than any 
 other ; consequently the ultimate position assumed by the mem- 
 ber is mainly determined by the direction of the incident rays of 
 light, and it is termed, therefore, a light-position (see p. 748), 
 although other directive influences may have contributed to its 
 assumption. 
 
 The most remarkable case of combined effects is afforded by the 
 growth of twining stems. A twining stem, at its first develop- 
 ment, is straight, but after it has come to consist of two or three 
 internodes its apex hangs over to one side, for the stem is not 
 sufficiently rigid to support its own weight. It then exhibits cir- 
 cumnutation in a marked manner. If once it comes into contact 
 with a more or less vertical support of appropriate thickness, it 
 twines round it. 
 
 The analysis of the phenomenon of twining is still a matter of 
 discussion. The main facts are the following. Twining stems are 
 strongly negatively geotropic ; this is proved by the fact that they 
 will not twine round very oblique or horizontal supports. Again, 
 contact with a support interferes mechanically with the circumnu- 
 tation of the stem, and causes it to take place in an orbit of which 
 the support is the axis. Finally, a twining stem usually undergoes 
 torsion, that is, a twisting about its own axis, and this has been 
 suggested as an essential factor in the process of twining ; but there 
 is not evidence to support this suggestion. 
 
 The commonly accepted explanation of twining is that it is 
 due to the negative geotropism of the stem, combined with its cir- 
 cumnutation modified by contact with the support; but it is 
 doubtful if this explanation is adequate. It has been suggested, 
 with some show of reason, that twining stems are irritable, like 
 tendrils, though in a less degree, to continuous contact with a sup- 
 port. It is admitted that the stem of the Dodder (see pp. 685, 
 743) is thus irritable. If this be so, then the irritability of twining 
 stems is the most important factor in the process. 
 
 In order to investigate independently the degree and the kind of geotropio 
 and heliotropic irritability of a member, it is necessary to be able to exclude 
 
760 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 the directive influence of light and of gravity. The influence of light can be 
 easily climated by performing the experiments in darkness, or by rotating the 
 plant so that each part of the member under observation is exposed for equal 
 lengths of time to rays of light falling upon it in all directions, so that the helio- 
 tropic effect is the same on all sides, and no curvature is produced. The influ- 
 ence of gravity can likewise be eliminated by slowly rotating the plant, so that 
 each side of the organ is placed for equal times successively in all possible 
 positions with respect to the vertical; the geotropic effect is therefore the 
 same on all sides, and no curvature is produced. The instrument used for this 
 purpose is the cliuostat (see p. 752). 
 
 16. Conditions of Movement. Inasmuch as the move- 
 ments under consideration are vital, they can only take place 
 when the external conditions are favourable to the life of the 
 plant. The following conditions are essential ; a moderate tem- 
 perature, extremes of heat and cold arrest movement ; a supply of 
 water, all movements are arrested by drought ; a supply of free 
 oxygen, in the case of aerobiotic plants (p. 722) ; and, in some 
 cases, exposure to light of a certain intensity. 
 
 The importance of exposure to light as a condition of movement 
 requires special consideration. It has been ascertained to be 
 essential to movements of the most different kind. For instance, 
 a Bacterium (Bacterium photometricuin) has been found to be 
 motile only when exposed to light. Again, various movements of 
 variation, such as those of the foliage-leaves of Mimosa, etc., do 
 not take place unless the plant either is, or recently has been, 
 exposed to light. But the most important case is the arrest 
 of growth of dorsiventral members when kept in darkness. For 
 example, if a potato-tuber sprouts in a dark chamber, the produced 
 shoots have excessively elongated internodes (see p. 674), but very 
 small leaves ; the growth of the leaves is arrested in darkness. 
 On the other hand, intense light retards movement (e.g. its action 
 on growth) or altogether arrests it (e.g. arrest of spontaneous 
 movement of the leaves of the Sensitive Plant). 
 
 What is exactly the influence of light in promoting movement 
 is not understood, but it is termed the phototonic influence (p. 
 674) : it induces, that is, a particular condition, the condition of 
 phototonus, in the protoplasm, without which movement is im- 
 possible. It appears that the rays of low refrangibility (red- 
 yellow) are most favourable for the phototonic condition. 
 
 Irritability also depends upon the above essential conditions : 
 in fact, induced movements are more rapidly arrested by un- 
 favourable conditions than are spontaneous movements. For 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 761 
 
 instance, when a Sensitive Plant is kept in continuous darkness, 
 the leaves first lose their power of responding to stimuli, and 
 later their spontaneous movements cease. 
 
 Irritability may also be abolished by special means. For in- 
 stance, exposure to the vapour of chloroform or ether destroys the 
 irritability of the leaves of the Sensitive Plant. Again, it may be 
 abolished by repeated stimulation, the interval between the stimu- 
 lations being very short. This has been observed in the case of 
 the leaves of the Sensitive Plant and of Dionsea. 
 
 17. Mechanism of the Movements. The ultimate factor 
 in the mechanism of the vital movements of plants, whether spon- 
 taneous or induced, is the mntility of the protoplasm (see p. 670). 
 
 Though the intimate mechanism of the motility of protoplasm 
 is not fully understood, yet a consideration of the mechanism of 
 the movements described above will be instructive. With regard 
 to the streaming movement of the protoplasm, it is probably due 
 to wave-like contractions and expansions of the protoplasm. The 
 mechanism of the movements of the contractile vacuoles appears 
 to be this : the systole of the vacuole is due to the sudden active 
 contraction of the protoplasm, the contained liquid being expelled; 
 the diastole, to the active but gradual expansion of the protoplasm, 
 the cavity of the vacuole, as it enlarges, being filled with liquid. 
 The protrusion and retraction of pseudopodia in amoeboid move- 
 ment may be accounted for in the same way ; the protrusion is 
 probably analogous to the diastole of the contractile vacuole, the 
 retraction to the systole. A similar explanation may be offered 
 of ciliary movement. 
 
 The movements of cellular members take place in a definite 
 region, which may be distinguished as the motile region ; this is, 
 in growing members, the region of elongation (see p. 738) ; and, in 
 mature members, is a more or less well-marked region of motile 
 tissue which may constitute a distinct motile organ (e.g. pulvinus 
 of a motile leaf). The movements depend essentially upon varia- 
 tions in bulk of the cells, and these, in turn, upon variations in 
 turgidity (see p. 668). It is clear that if the turgidity, that is 
 the hydrostatic pressure of the cell-contents, increases, the cell 
 will expand provided that the wall be extensible ; and conversely, 
 that if the turgidity diminishes, the cell will shrink, provided the 
 wall be elastic. Movement can only take place when the eel - 
 walls possess these physical properties : hence, the pulvinus of 
 mature motile leaves consists mainly of parenchymatous cells with 
 
762 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 unlignified walls, the lignified tissue being reduced as much as 
 possible : similarly, in the elongating region of growing-members 
 the cell-walls are thin and unlignified. But whilst the movements 
 of variation (p. 737) are the result of a sudden loss of turgidity, 
 which is either spontaneous or the effect of stimulation, the move- 
 ment of growth depends upon the maintenance of turgidity, and 
 the variations in the rate of growth (see p. 738) are the expression 
 of variations in the degree of turgidifcy. 
 
 Brief allusion may here be made to the controversy as to the mechanics of 
 growth of the cell-wall. The two conflicting theories are (1) the theory of 
 intussusception, according to which the growth of the cell-wall is due to the 
 intercalation of new particles (micella;) of solid suhstance between the already 
 existing particles of the wall ; and (2) the theory of apposition, according to 
 which the growth of the cell-wall is due to the repeated deposition of layers of 
 substance on the internal surface of the original wall. Neither of these theories 
 gives a completely satisfactory explanation of all the phenomena of growth of 
 the cell-wall, nor are they mutually exclusive. It seems that the growth in 
 surface of the cell- wall can be most satisfactorily explained on the intussus- 
 ception-theory, and the growth in thickness on the apposition-theory. Both 
 theories, as generally stated, seem to involve the assumption that the growth in 
 surface of the cell-wall is dependent upon the turgidity of the cell : but this 
 assumption is not necessary to the intussusception-theory, and it is probably 
 even inadmissible. 
 
 The following instances will serve to illustrate the foregoing 
 considerations. 
 
 A simple case is offered by the induced movement of the stamens 
 of the Cynareae (p. 692). When at rest, the cells of the filaments 
 are expanded in the direction of their length, and are turgid ; on 
 stimulation, the cells suddenly shorten and become flaccid, having 
 lost a portion of their cell-sap. The expanded state is regained by 
 the gradual expansion of the cells, turgidity being restored by the 
 absorption of water. 
 
 In the foregoing case, all the cells of the motile portion are 
 affected ; but in many cases some only of the cells are affected. 
 Thus, in the case of the leaf of the Sensitive Plant, the primary 
 petiole, when at rest, stands out nearly at right angles to the stem 
 (Fig. 472, p. 690) : on stimulation, it sinks downwards so as to 
 form an acute angle with the internode below its insertion. The 
 mechanism is this : when at rest, the cells of the pulvinus are all 
 turgid, and they support the petiole in its normal position: on 
 stimulation, the cells of the lower portion of the pulvinus lose 
 their turgidity, water escaping from them into the intercellular 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 763 
 
 spaces ; these cells, being flaccid, are unable to counteract the 
 downward pressure of the still turgid cells of the upper half of the 
 pulvinus, and to support the weight of the leaf ; consequently the 
 primary petiole sinks downwards. The same mechanism obtains 
 in the movements of the leaflets and of the secondary petioles ; the 
 only difference being that, in the pulvinus of a leaflet, it is the 
 cells of the upper half of the pulvinus which lose their turgidity 
 on stimulation, so the leaflet is raised upwards ; and, in the pul- 
 vinus of the secondary petiole, it is the cells of the inner half 
 which lose their turgidity, so the secondary petioles approach the 
 middle line. This account is also applicable to all side-to-side 
 movements, such as that of the leaf of Dionsea, and that of the 
 stamens of Berberis and Mahonia. 
 
 The heliotropic or other curvatures taking place in the elonga- 
 ting region of growing cellular members, are due to the shortening 
 of the cells on the side becoming concave, and to the elongation of 
 the cells on the side becoming convex. The mechanism of the 
 curvature seems to depend in this case not so much upon a differ- 
 ence of turgidity between the cells of the two sides as upon a 
 difference in its effect : whereas turgidity induces the usual longi- 
 tudinal elongation of the cells of the convex side, it induces longi- 
 tudinal shortening in the cells of the concave side in consequence 
 of extension in the other dimensions. 
 
 Turgidity is then the main factor in the mechanism of the move- 
 ments of cellular members ; its mechanical importance is further 
 strikingly illustrated by the great rigidity of turgid members, and 
 by the great force, equivalent in some cases to twenty times the 
 atmospheric pressure, which they develope in opposition to ex- 
 ternal resistance, as when the roots of trees cause the splitting of 
 walls or of pavements. Although one essential factor in turgidity 
 (see p. 668) is the purely physical osmotic activity of substances 
 in the cell-sap, it must not be forgotten that it also depends upon 
 the resistance offered by the protoplasm to nitration under pres- 
 sure : so that the maintenance of turgidity is after all a vital act. 
 The maintenance of turgidity appears, in fact, to depend upon a 
 certain state of molecular aggregation of the protoplasm lining 
 the cell-wall, in which it offers resistance to the escape of the 
 cell-sap ; whereas in the flaccid condition the state of molecular 
 aggregation of the protoplasm is such that it readily permits the 
 escape of the cell-sap under the elastic pressure of the cell- wall. 
 
 Whilst the fundamental mechanism of the movement of mature 
 
764 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 motile members and that of growing members is essentially the 
 same, there is this secondary difference between the two cases. 
 The change of position which is the result of the movement of 
 mature members, is reversible ; they can return to their former 
 position : the change of position, curvature for instance, of growing 
 members is reversible only so long as it has not been rendered 
 permanent by actual deposition of substance. Thus the changes of 
 .position due to the nutation (p. 741) of growing members are only 
 temporary, for they are of brief duration ; but changes of position 
 due to some directive influence acting for a considerable time 
 become permanent, for instance, the light-positions (p. 748) assumed 
 by growing members. 
 
 The general conclusion to be drawn from the consideration of 
 the phenomena of movement is that motile protoplasm may be in 
 one of two states of aggregation ; either in the state of relaxation, 
 or in the state of contraction ; and that it is capable of passing from 
 the one state to the other: in fact the term " motility " simply 
 means the property in virtue of which the protoplasm can thus 
 change its state of aggregation. In the case of cellular members, 
 the state of contraction is that in which the protoplasm is imper- 
 meable to the cell-cap, and the cell is turgid ; whereas the state 
 of relaxation is that in which the protoplasm is permeable to the 
 cell-cap, and the cell is consequently flaccid. The state of con- 
 traction may be regarded as the normal condition : the state of 
 relaxation is a more or less sudden deviation from this condition, 
 the result of the action of internal or external causes ; of internal 
 causes, as in the case of the spontaneous movements ; of external 
 causes, as in the case of the induced movements. 
 
 This account of the mechanism of the movement of cellular members applies 
 equally to the production of the root-pressure (see p. 701) and to the opening 
 and closiug of the stomata (see p. 698). 
 
 The ultimate point to be considered is the conception to be 
 formed as to the nature of the change of state of the protoplasm. 
 It has been ascertained, in the more striking cases of induced 
 movements, such as those of the leaves of the Sensitive Plant, that 
 the change of state of the protoplasm of the stimulated cells of the 
 pulvinus is accompanied by a rise of temperature, and by certain 
 electrical phenomena : and it is probable that all movements as- 
 sociated with sudden change in the state of aggregation of proto- 
 plasm are attended by a dissipation of energy in the form of heat 
 and electricity : this indicates that it is intimately connected with 
 
CHAPTER III. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF MOVEMENT. 765 
 
 some catabolic process. It appears probable that the sudden 
 change of state of the protoplasm is determined by the explosive 
 decomposition of some complex substance. In the spontaneous 
 or automatic movements, the decomposition takes place spon- 
 taneously ; in the induced movements, the decomposition is de- 
 termined by the action of the stimulus. During the gradual 
 resumption of the normal condition, a process of anabolism pro- 
 bably goes on which leads to the formation of a fresh quantity 
 of the decomposable substance, in consequence of which the proto- 
 plasm again becomes irritable and capable of undergoing another 
 sudden change of state. 
 
 The effect of various external conditions, such as exposure to 
 light, long-continued darkness, deprivation of oxygen, etc., in 
 retarding or inhibiting movement, may be ascribed generally to 
 an interference with the motilitv of the protoplasm, that is, to an 
 interference with some condition upon which change in its state of 
 aggregation depends. For instance, the retardation of the rate of 
 growth by light, is the result of a diminished degree of turgidity 
 as is proved by the diminution of the tissue-tensions ; arid this 
 lower level of turgidity in growing cells when exposed to light is 
 probably to be attributed to a modification of the molecular 
 constitution of their protoplasm. The arrest of movements of 
 variation by darkness is probably to be ascribed to the sup- 
 pression of the chemical processes active in the formation of sub- 
 stances upon the presence of which the sudden passage of the 
 protoplasm from the state of contraction to that of relaxation 
 depends : and it may be that the phototonic effect of light (see 
 p. 760) is due to its influence in promoting these chemical pro- 
 cesses. 
 
 In conclusion, the mechanical work done in connexion with 
 movement remains to be considered, especially in relation to 
 cellular members. In the movement of such a member, the work 
 is done by those cells whose protoplasm is in a state of contrac- 
 tion, not by those whose protoplasm is in a state of relaxation. 
 This is a point of special physiological interest ; and, on analogy 
 with animals, this is what might be assumed to be the case. For 
 instance, the great force which can be exerted by a root (see p. 
 763) is the outcome of the turgidity of its cells, that is, of the 
 contracted condition of their protoplasm. Similarly, in the induced 
 movement of the leaf of a Sensitive Plant, the work is done, not 
 by the flaccid, but by the still turgid cells of the pulvinus j and 
 
766 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 the leaf is eventually raised to its normal position by the gradual 
 resumption of turgidity, that is, of the contracted condition of the 
 protoplasm, by those cells of the pulvinus which had become 
 flaccid as the result of the assumption of the relaxed state on 
 stimulation. In a word, the contracted state is that in which 
 alone motile protoplasm is capable of doing mechanical work. 
 
 CHAPTER IV. 
 SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF EEPKODUCTION. 
 
 18. Introductory. It has been already stated (see pp. 3, 
 67, 670) that reproduction consists essentially in the throwing 
 off by the individual of a portion of its protoplasm which does 
 not merely grow but developes into a new organism ; and that two 
 modes of reproduction, vegetative multiplication and spore-reproduc- 
 tion may be conveniently distinguished, though they are not 
 absolutely distinct. 
 
 Reproduction has been considered so far mainly from the 
 morphological standpoint, and it now remains to discuss it from 
 the physiological point of view. The most important general 
 consideration is that reproduction is a function of embryonic, as 
 distinguished from adult, protoplasm. But it must not be over- 
 looked that all embryonic protoplasm is not necessarily reproduc- 
 tive : and it is interesting to trace the differences in this respect, 
 presented by various kinds of embryonic protoplasm. To begin 
 with, there is no doubt that the merismatic cells of the cambium 
 are embryonic (see p. 18) ; but they are not at all reproductive, for 
 they cannot give rise to a new member, still less to a new organ- 
 ism ; they can only add to the bulk of the body of which they form 
 part, by the development of new tissue. Again, the protoplasm 
 of a growing-point is embryonic, but it is only imperfectly repro- 
 ductive ; it possesses this property to the extent that it not only 
 contributes to the increase of the member to which it belongs, 
 but also developes new members. Finally, the protoplasm of a 
 reproductive cell, such as a spore, is embryonic and is completely 
 reproductive; for it does not in any degree contribute to the bulk 
 of the parent-organism, but gives rise to a new individual. 
 
 Whilst the embryonic character of cytoplasm is probably 
 dependent upon the presence of a large proportion of kinoplasm 
 (see p. 95), there is at present no means of distinguishing by 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF REPRODUCTION. 767 
 
 inspection between merely histogenic and truly reproductive 
 cytoplasm. 
 
 19. Vegetative Multiplication. This mode of reproduc- 
 tion is distinguished as vegetative, because it is carried on by the 
 vegetative organs of the plant, and, in the simpler cases, it is not 
 distinguishable from the ordinary processes of growth ; though, 
 in its higher forms it approximates to reproduction by spores. 
 The simpler cases refered to are those of unicellular organisms : 
 these, when they have reached by growth their characteristic 
 limit of size, undergo cell-division, with the result that each new 
 cell constitutes a new individual : here, multiplication is effected 
 by a purely vegetative process, which, in a multicellular plant, 
 would merely result in an increase in the number of the cells of 
 which the individual consists. Much the same thing occurs in 
 higher plants when (as in many Bryophyta, and in rhizomatous 
 Pteridophyta and Phanerogamia) the main shoots die away, and 
 the isolated lateral branches constitute new independent in- 
 dividuals. Something of a similar kind also takes place in the arti- 
 ficial multiplication of plants by means of cuttings : in many plants, 
 but by no means all, if a shoot be cut off and be kept under 
 favourable circumstances with its cut end in suitable soil, the 
 cutting will complete its segmentation by the development of 
 roots, and will then be a new individual. Not uncommonly, 
 certain parts of the body may become more or less specially 
 modified to effect vegetative propagation: for instance buds 
 become developed into bulbs or into bulbils (see p. 68), or portions 
 of the stem or the root become tuberous. But the specialisation 
 which may be regarded as the highest of all, because it approaches 
 most nearly to spore-reproduction, and involves the entire develop- 
 ment of all the the new members, is that of gemmae in which the 
 vegetative reproductive body is not merely a modified member of 
 the parent, but is a special development consisting in some cases 
 of only a single cell {e.g. gemmse of some Algae and Liverworts, 
 p. 67; oidium-cells of Fungi, p. 274). Something of the same 
 kind occurs amongst the higher plants, such as some Ferns, 
 Bryophyllum, etc., where an entirely new structure, a bud, is 
 developed on the leaf, and produces stem, leaves and roots ; it is 
 in this way that Begonias are artificially propagated. 
 
 An interesting artificial mode of vegetative propagation is that known as graft- 
 ing or budding, in which a young shoot or a bud, termed the scion, of one plant 
 is inserted into the stem of another, though allied plant, the stock. Generally 
 V. S. B, 3D 
 
768 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 speaking, though the scion and the stock grow together so as to form one plant, 
 they do not affect each other, the scion retaining its own peculiar chaiacters 
 (e.g. grafting of fruit-trees, budding of roses). But it is affirmed that in some 
 cases the scion and stock do mutually effect- each other, giving rise to shoots 
 which present a mixture of their respective characters : such are termed graft- 
 hybrids. 
 
 An important fact connected with vegetative reproduction is 
 that it is associated with a rejuvenescence of the protoplasm. For 
 example, when an adult cell of a unicellular plant, such as Pleuro- 
 coccus (Fig. 166, p. 236) divides, it gives rise, not to adult cells, 
 but to young ones : and a cutting produces a young plant, not an 
 old one. 
 
 The relation of vegetative reproduction to the alternation of 
 generations is of importance. In the lower plants (e.g. Thallo- 
 phyta and Bryophyta) where the gametophyte is the conspicuous 
 generation, it is this generation which multiplies itself vegeta- 
 tively, although vegetative reproduction of a somewhat different 
 kind has been artificially induced in the sporophyte of some Mosses 
 (p. 362) ; but in the Phanerogamia it is exclusively the sporophyte 
 which thus multiplies itself. In the Pteridophyta, whilst vegeta- 
 tive multiplication of the sporophyte is common, the gametophyte 
 still retains this capacity in certain cases (some Ferns, p. 403 ; 
 Lycopodium, p. 425). Vegetative multiplication does not, as a 
 rule, affect the alternation of generations, each generation pro- 
 ducing its like : the exceptions are afforded by cases of apogamy 
 and apospory (see p. 87), in which the one generation is developed 
 vegetatively from the other ; that is, vegetative propagation 
 replaces spore-formation. 
 
 20. Spore-Reproduction (see p. 68). The highest degree 
 of reproductive capacity is that possessed by spores. Though 
 they are single cells, they are nevertheless capable, each by it- 
 self, of giving rise to a plant-body which, as in the higher plants, 
 may present complete morphological and histological differentia- 
 tion. 
 
 The transition from vegetative propagation, through the unicel- 
 lular gemmee, to the simpler forms of spore-reproduction is so 
 gradual that it is difficult in many cases to distinguish them. 
 But there is one fact which may often serve as a criterion, and 
 that is that, at least in the lower plants, the spores are much more 
 resistent to unfavourable external conditions, such as drought and 
 extremes of temperature, than are gemmae. This is due partly 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF REPRODUCTION. 769 
 
 no doubt to the firmer cell- wall of spores, bat mainly to a differ- 
 ence in the condition of the protoplasm in the two cases : for 
 gemmae are especially adapted for rapid propagation under 
 favourable conditions. In fact the main object attained by spore- 
 reproduction is the maintenance of the species through a period 
 of conditions which would be fatal to the life of the individual 
 plant. 
 
 In Phanerogams, in which the conditions of spore-formation are peculiar 
 (see p. 431), the function of maintaining the species through a period of un- 
 favourable conditions is transferred to the seeds which, like the spores of lower 
 plants, have a great capacity for endurance. 
 
 Most plants, and probably all, produce spores ; and from the 
 physiological point of view there are two modes of origin of spores 
 (p. 69) : they are developed either asexuall// or sexually . In the 
 lowest plants (e.g. Cyanophycese, Schizomycetes, etc.), as also in 
 others which have become sexually degenerate (Fungi, such as 
 the ^Ecidiomycetes and Basidiomycetes), spores are only produced 
 asexually : whereas in sexual plants there is a sexual formation of 
 spores, either exclusively (some Algae, such as the Conjugatae, the 
 Fucaceae, and the Charoideae), or, as is more commonly the case, 
 together with asexual spore-formation. In the higher sexual 
 plants (Bryophyta, Pteridophyta, Phanerogamia) asexual spore- 
 formation is entirely restricted to the sporophyte ; whilst in the 
 lower plants in which an alternation of generation can be traced 
 (e.g. most Algae and Fungi) the gametophyte retains the capacity 
 of multiplying itself by the asexual formation of spores which are 
 distinguished as gonidia (see p. 220). The essential difference 
 between gonidia and asexually-produced spores is emphasised by 
 the fact that whereas the former serve merely to reproduce the 
 organism producing them, that is the gametophyte, or some form 
 of it when it is polymorphic, so that the alternation of generations 
 is unaffected, the latter only give rise to the antithetic form in the 
 alternation of generations, that is, to the gametophyte. 
 
 The retention by the gametophyte of the lower plants of the 
 capacity for reproduction by gonidia is of special interest in that 
 it throws light upon the course of evolution of sexual from 
 primitive asexual forms. Thus, the lowest Algae are asexual, 
 reproducing themselves solely by asexually produced spores often 
 of the nature of zoospores. But in the course of evolution (see 
 p. 226) some of these zoospores developed into sexual reproductive 
 
770 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 cells (gametes), whilst others remained simply zoospores ; so that 
 the plant becomes a gametophyte still possessing the capacity of 
 reproducing itself asexually by zoogonidia, though in some forms 
 (Conjugate, Fucacese, Charoidese) this capacity has entirely 
 disappeared. 
 
 The evolution of the entirely asexual sporophyte is to be traced 
 to the advantage gained by the development of more than a 
 single organism from the sexually-produced spore, that is, by poly- 
 embryony. Thus in Vaucheria and Chara the oospore gives rise 
 directly to a single sexual individual, and the oospore is all that 
 represents the sporophyte in the life-history of these Algge ; and 
 this applies also to Fucus, but here a multiplication of individuals 
 is attained by the development of eight oospheres in the oogonium. 
 A rudimentary form of polyembryouy is presented by the Desmids 
 where the zygospore gives rise to two individuals. It is more 
 marked in such plants as Sphaeroplea and (Edogonium, where the 
 oospore gives rise to several (28) zoospores from each of which 
 a new sexual individual is developed : here the oospore and its 
 zoospores represent the sporophyte. The sporophyte first makes 
 its appearance as a distinct cellular organism in Coleochaste 
 (p. 250), and from this point onwards its further evolution can 
 be readily traced through the sporogonium of the Bryophytato 
 the Pteridophyta and Phanerogamia where it is the predominant 
 form in the life-history. The sporophyte is thus essentially gamo- 
 genic, that is, it is developed as the result of a sexual process 
 (p. 69). 
 
 Whilst in the majority of cases the sporophyte is developed from a sexually- 
 produced spore, it is sometimes developed from the fertilised female organ ; 
 this is the case in plants in which there are either no differentiated gametes 
 (e.g. Eremascus, p. 297), or no differentiated female gamete (e.g. Khodophycese, 
 p. 269) ; but it is still the product of a sexual process. In some cases of 
 sexual degeneration (e.g. apogamous Ferns, p. 378 ; Ascomycetes, p. 298) the 
 sporophyte is developed vegetatively (p. 87). 
 
 The sexual formation of spores is the result of the fusion of 
 two sexual reproductive cells or gametes, neither of which is, as a 
 rule, capable by itself of developing into a new individual ; 
 though, in some of the lower plants in which sexual differentia- 
 tion is incomplete (e.g. Ulothrix, Ectocarpus; see p. 226) the 
 gametes may germinate independently. The act of fusion is a 
 sexual process, and the result is a cell (oospore or zygospore, p. 
 80) which proves itself to be a spore by developing into a new 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF REPRODUCTION. 771 
 
 individual which, in all plants presenting alternation of genera- 
 tions, is the sporophyte. 
 
 In some cases the spore is formed from a gamete without any sexual 
 process, that is, parthenogeneticall'j (p. 87) ; this applies to the imperfectly 
 sexual gametes of Ulothrix and Ectocarpus mentioned above, whence it follows 
 that there can be both male and female parthenogenesis ; to the azygospores 
 of some Zygomycetes (pp. 288, 290) ; to the oospores developed in the oogonia 
 of the Saproleguiaceae (p. 291), and to that of Chara crinita (p. 254). 
 
 It has been ascertained, in plants other than the Thallophyta, 
 that the nucleus of the sexually-produced spore contains twice as 
 many chromosomes (p. 119) as does that of either of the gametes ; 
 for instance, if the number of chromosomes in the nucleus of the 
 gamete be twelve, that in the nucleus of the oospore will be 
 twenty-four; and since the sporophyte is developed from the 
 oospore, the number of chromosomes in the nucleus of each of its 
 cells is also twenty- four, and is twice as great as that in the 
 nucleus of the cells of the gametophyte. Bat, since the gameto- 
 phyte is agamogenic, being developed from the asexually-produced 
 spores of the sporophyte, the question arises as to how this 
 reduced number of chromosomes is arrived at. It is simply due 
 to the fact that when the nucleus of a spore-mother-cell is about 
 to divide, the fibrillar network breaks up into only half the 
 number of chromosomes characteristic of the sporophyte (for 
 instance, twelve instead of twenty-four) ; hence the spore, when 
 formed, contains the reduced number of chromosomes character- 
 istic of the gametophyte and is, in fact, the first term of that 
 generation. 
 
 These points have not yet been fully investigated in the Thallophyta, in 
 which group various special questions arise. For instance, as already pointed 
 out, in many of these plants the gametophyte is directly developed from the 
 sexually-produced spore, and yet there can be little doubt that the nuclei of 
 the gametophyte each contain only half the number of chromosomes present 
 in the nucleus of this spore; for, were it otherwise, each sexual act would 
 involve the doubling of the number of the chromosomes in the nuclei of the 
 succeeding generation, and by continued repetition of the process the number 
 would become indefinitely large. It seems probable that a reduction in the 
 number of the chromosomes takes place early in the germination of the 
 sexually-produced spore. Thus it has been observed in certain Desmids that 
 the nucleus of the germinating zygospore divides into four, but the product is 
 only two new individuals each with a single nucleus ; and similarly, that the 
 nucleus of the zygospore of Spirogyra divides into four, yet the unicellular 
 embryo contains but a single nucleus. Then there is the further question as 
 to the number of chromosomes in the nuclei of the gonidia and in those of 
 
772 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 parthenogenetically produced spores; and the phenomena of apogamy and 
 apospory in the higher plants also require investigation from this point of 
 
 21. Sexual Reproduction. The sexual process consists 
 typically, though not exclusively (see pp. 225, 275) in the fusion of 
 two gametes, that is, of two sexual reproductive cells, and it is to 
 this typical case only that reference is here made. 
 
 The process consists essential ly in the fusion of the homologous 
 parts of the gametes. In the Phanerogams, in which the process 
 has been most minutely investigated, it is briefly as follows : 
 The male gamete, being smaller and more active than the female, 
 enters the latter (see Figs. 298, 302) ; then the centrospheres of 
 the two gametes fuse, and then their nuclei, male nucleus (or 
 pronucleus) with female nucleus (or pronucleus), to form the 
 nucleus of the oospore, and with that the process is complete. 
 But the fusion of the nuclei is not accompanied by any fusion of 
 their respective chromosomes ; these remain distinct, so that there 
 are twice as many of them as in the nucleus of either gamete: 
 but when the oospore begins to germinate, the first division of its 
 nucleus takes place in such wise that each half receives an equal 
 number of chromosomes derived from each of the sexual nuclei. 
 No doubt the process is essentially the same in all other cases. 
 
 The first question which naturally arises is as to the nature of 
 sexuality ; the question, namely, as to what difference, if any, can 
 be observed between a gamete and an asexually-produced spore. 
 To this question no answer can at present be given ; no difference 
 can be detected between a gamete and a spore; in all plants in 
 which the matter has been investigated, in a Fern, for instance, 
 it is now known that the number of chromosomes in the nucleus is 
 the same in the gamete as in the spore. 
 
 It was thought that there was an essential observable difference between 
 a gamete and a spore, of this nature, that the nucleus of the gamete contained 
 fewer chromosomes than did that of the spore. It had been observed in many 
 cases that, as part of the development of a gamete, a portion of the proto- 
 plasm of the mother-cell was thrown off as a polar body (see p. 82), and it was 
 concluded that this involved the reduction by half in the number of chromo- 
 somes in the nucleus of the gamete, and thus caused it to differ materially 
 from a spore. But this view is no longer tenable in face of the fact that the 
 reduced number of chromosomes in the nucleus is characteristic, not on'y of 
 the gametes, but also of the whole gametophyte, and in fact of the spore itself 
 also (see p. 771). The polar bodies can now only be regarded as sister-cells of 
 the gametes and as equivalent to them, though not functional. 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF REPRODUCTION". 773 
 
 It must not, however, be concluded that because there is no 
 observable difference between a gamete and an asexually-produced 
 spore, there is no difference whatever between them ; on the 
 contrary it is clear that they differ widely, since the former 
 cannot (except in the rare cases of parthenogenesis), whilst the 
 latter can, develope into a new organism. 
 
 The second question is as to the nature of sex : what is the 
 difference, if any, between a male and a female gamete ? In 
 some cases there is a marked external difference ; for instance, in 
 the Pteridophyta, Bryophyta, and many Algae, the female gamete 
 is a large motionless oosphere, whilst the male gamete is a small 
 actively-swimming spermatozoid. But this marked difference is 
 not essential, it is merely adaptive ; it is an adaptation to a more 
 or less aquatic mode of life or, at least, of fertilisation. Moreover, 
 it is obviously inapplicable in explanation of the many cases in 
 which the two conjugating gametes are externally quite similar 
 (isogamous plants, see p. 80). Nor has minute microscopic in- 
 vestigation brought to light any distinguishing criterion. Bat it 
 must not be concluded on this account that there is no difference 
 between a male and a female gamete; it is obvious that there is 
 an essential physiological difference between them. For, were it 
 otherwise, it would be impossible to account for such a fact, for 
 instance, as that even where, as in many Algae, the gametes are 
 all extruded into the water, fusion never takes place between two 
 male or two female gametes, but only between a male and a 
 female. 
 
 Brief allusion may be made to the means by which the sexual 
 process is ensured. It might be thought that the most effectual 
 means would be the development of the male and female organs 
 in close propinquity on the same individual. No doubt this is 
 the case, but the result is to ensure the less advantageous mode 
 of the process, the mode of self-fertilisation ; in fact, in many 
 cases in which the male and female organs are thus developed close 
 together as in monoecious plants (p. 86), self-fertilisation is pre- 
 vented by dichogamy (for instance, the prothallia of Ferns, p. 
 399). The real problem is, then, to ensure a sexual process 
 between two gametes derived from distinct individuals. The end 
 is attained either directly, by bringing the diverse gametes 
 together; or indirectly, by bringing the spores together, and 
 consequently also the gametophytes. 
 
 The method of bringing the two gametes together is essenti- 
 
774 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 ally connected with the aquatic mode of fertilisation. It has 
 been observed and investigated in plants in which, whilst the 
 oosphere is motionless and remains in the female organ, the 
 spermatozoids are free-swimming; and it is among the most 
 striking phenomena of chemiotaxis (see p. 755). In various 
 Mosses and Ferns it has been ascertained that, on the opening of 
 the archegonium, the mncilage which is extruded includes some 
 substance which diffuses into the water and attracts to the 
 archegonium any spermatozoid that may be present ; in Mosses 
 the substance in question is cane-sugar ; in the Ferns, a salt of 
 malic acid. 
 
 The method of bringing the spores together, so that they may 
 germinate near each other, is especially characteristic of hetero- 
 sporous plants, and more particularly of those which grow erect on 
 dry land. It is thus most strikingly exhibited by the Phanero- 
 gams, where the microspores are carried by the wind or by insects 
 into such a position that they germinate in proximity to the 
 macrospores (see p. 452). But it is not confined to land-plants, 
 for it occurs, as the result of a remarkable adaptation, in Azolla 
 (see p. 411). Nor is it exclusively restricted to heterosporous 
 plants, for cross-fertilisation in the Ferns and Mosses is largely 
 dependent upon the propinquity of a number of gametophytes 
 developed from spores shed without being scattered. 
 
 Sexual Affinity. This term is used to express the fact that a 
 certain relationship must exist between any two gametes of oppo- 
 site sex in order that a sexual process may take place between 
 them ; when the limit is overstepped in the direction of either a 
 too close or a too remote relationship, the process will either not 
 take place at all, or the offspring will be few and feeble. 
 
 The most fertile sexual process is that taking place between the 
 gametes of different individuals of the same species. It has been 
 proved that the offspring of such cross-fertilisation have the 
 advantage in vigour and fertility over the progeny of one of the 
 same plants when self-fertilised. It has, in fact, been proved 
 that in many Phanerogams the pollen of a flower is incapable 
 of fertilising the oospheres of its own ovules ; and that the pollen 
 from another flower of the same plant is only slightly, if at all, 
 more potent.' 
 
 A sexual process may also take place between the gametes of 
 varieties of the same species ; of distinct species of the same 
 genus ; and even of species belonging to different genera. Such 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF EEPEODDCTION. 775 
 
 a process is known as hybridisation, and the progeny as hybrids, 
 the hybrid being distinguished as a variety- hybrid, species-hybrid, 
 or genus-hybrid, according to circumstances (see p. 457). 
 
 Hybridisation has been but imperfectly investigated in the Thallophyta, but 
 it is known to take place between Fucus serratus $ and F. vesiculosus $ : in 
 the Mosses some species-hybrids are known, and a few genus-hybrids (between 
 the allied genera Physcomitrium and Fnnaria ; F. hygrometrica $ X P. 
 pyriforme $ ) : in the Ferns variety-hybrids are common, and several species- 
 hybrids are known : in Phanerogams variety-hybrids and species-hybrids are 
 common, and several genus-hybrids are known (e.g. between Verbascum and 
 Celsia ; Brassica and Eaphanus ; Galium and Asperula ; Campanula and 
 Phyteuma; Gymnadenia and Nigritella ; Epiphyllum, Cereus,andPhyllocactus). 
 Species-hybrids are usually designated by a combination of the specific names 
 of their parents ; as, for instance, Digitalis purpureo-lutea, the hybrid resulting 
 from the fertilisation of D. lutea with pollen of D. purpnrea. When it is desired 
 to state accurately which is the male and which the female, such an expression 
 as Verbascum Lychnitix ? x phceniceum $ is used. 
 
 Hybridisation is by no means equally common in all families ; 
 thus, among Phanerogams, whilst it is common in such orders as 
 the CompositjB, Scrophulariaceae, Polygonaceae, Salicaceae, and Or- 
 chidaceae, it is comparatively rare in the Cruciferae and Labiatse, 
 and quite exceptional in the Umbelliferse and Leguminosee. And 
 within the limits of any one natural order the capacity for hybridi- 
 sation is not the same in all genera ; thus, in the Geraniacese, the 
 genus Pelargonium possesses it in a high degree, whilst Geranium 
 and Erodium do not; in the Caryophyllacese, Dianthus readily 
 hybridises, but Silene does not ; and in the Iridaceoe the same 
 contrast exists between Gladiolus and Crocus ; and the same 
 applies to the various species of any given genus. Nor are all 
 hybridisations equally fertile as estimated, in Phanerogams, by 
 the number of sound seeds produced, and by the vigour and 
 fertility of the resulting hybrid-plants ; the general rule being 
 that the more remote the two species hybridised, the more delicate 
 and the less fertile will be the offspring, and in fact many hybrids 
 are altogether sterile ; in any case they are more fertile with 
 pollen from one of the parent-forms than with that of other 
 similar hybrids. It is only when the relation between the parents 
 is such as to ensure the appropriate degree of sexual affinity that 
 the product of the union is a vigorous and fertile progeny. 
 
 It is the rule that hybridisation is reciprocal that is, that if the 
 oospheres of a species A can be duly fertilised by the male 
 gametes of a species B, the oospheres of the species B are equally 
 
776 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 susceptible of fertilisation by the male gametes of the species A. 
 Bat this is by no means always the case. Thus Mirabilis Julapa 
 can be fertilised by the pollen of M. longiflora, but the converse 
 crossing has not yet been effected ; similarly the cross Nymplidea 
 ccerulea ? x N. capensis <$ has taken place, but not the cross N. 
 capensis ? x N. coerulea ; and th e cross Fucus vesiculosus ? x F. 
 serratus <, but not F. serratus ? x F. vesiculosus $. It also 
 happens that even -when hybridisation is reciprocal, the one union 
 (A ? x B $ ) is more fertile than the other (B ? x A $ ) ; thus 
 the cross Dianthus barbatus ? x D. superbus is more fertile 
 than the cross D. superbus ? x D barbatus <$ ; and again Digitalis 
 lutea $ x D. ambigua $ than D. ambigua ? x D. lutea . 
 
 These cases of non-reciprocal, or of imperfectly reciprocal hybridisation, seem 
 to be at variance with the statement that fertile hybridisation is dependent upon 
 sexual affiuity ; for if this be true, why is it that the cross A ? x B $ should 
 succeed, but not the cross B $ x A <J , the sexual affinity being necessarily the 
 same in both cases ? The failure of the cross in these cases may be ascribed 
 to purely mecbanical causes ; for instance, whilst MiraHlis Jala-pa is fertilised 
 by the pollen of M. longiftnra, M. longiflora cannot be fertilised by the pollen 
 of M. Jalapa, probably because the pollen-tubes of the latter are unable to 
 grow long enough to rrach from the stigma to the ovule of the former species. 
 All these cases require further investigation. 
 
 Effects of the Sexual Process. The sexual process is not always 
 limited in its effect to the production of a spore which will give rise 
 to a new individual. For instance, when the female cell is borne 
 by the parent at the time of fertilisation, the act of fertilisation in- 
 duces a more or less marked growth and change in the adjacent 
 organs and tissues of the parent, leading to the formation of a 
 fruit (see pp. 88, 528). But further than this, it has been occasion- 
 ally observed in Phanerogams that the constitution of the mother- 
 plant is somewhat modified in consequence of pollination by an- 
 other form. For instance, in the Maize, whilst the grains in the 
 fruit-spike of the mother- plant usually have the colouration peculiar 
 to the mother, from whatever source the pollen may have been 
 derived, it sometimes happens that when a plant whose grains are 
 normally yellow or white is pollinated from another variety whose 
 grains are brown or blue, the resulting grains are brown or blue. 
 It is well known that, in Orchids, the pollination of the stigma 
 acts as a stimulus to the development of the ovary and ovules : 
 and in some cases it appears that even fertile seeds may be pro- 
 duced simply by the influence of pollination, the mother-plant 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF REPRODUCTION. 777 
 
 being stimulated to produce seeds without any sexual process, that 
 is, parthenogenetically (pseud ogamy}. 
 
 Somewhat analogous to these phenomena are those presented by the so- 
 called graft-hybrids (see p. 768), in which scion and stock seem to mutually 
 affect each other. For instance, the Bizzaria-Orange is a tree which bears 
 branches and fruits characteristic of Citrus Aurantium and C. medica, and of an 
 intermediate form, and is stated to be a graft hybrid of these two species; 
 similarly Cytisus Adami is a plant possessing characters intermediate between 
 those of Cytisus Laburnum and C. purpureus, and is stated to be a graft-hybrid 
 of C. purpureus on C. Laburnum ; but since the evidence that these plauts 
 really are graft-hybrids is inconclusive, it is unnecessary to consider them 
 further. 
 
 22. Heredity and Variation. The term heredity is used 
 to express the fact that an organism inherits in some degree the 
 characters of its parent or parents. The degree of heredity that 
 is the degree of resemblance between offspring and parents varies 
 widely, inasmuch as not all the characteristics of the parent are 
 hereditary in all modes of reproduction. The highest degree of 
 resemblance is attained by means of vegetative propagation : by 
 this means the peculiar features of the individual may be exactly 
 reproduced in the offspring, and consequently it is extensively 
 made use of in horticulture (e.g. propagation by cuttings and 
 bulbs ; budding of Roses ; grafting of fruit-trees, and of ornamental 
 trees and shrubs with variegated or otherwise abnormal foliage, 
 etc.) to perpetuate some specially valuable peculiarity of a plant, 
 and to multiply the number of individuals possessing it. Such a 
 high degree of resemblance between parents and offspring cannot be 
 attained by means of sexual reproduction, for many of the peculiar 
 characteristics of the parents are not transmitted by this means. 
 The plants resulting from a sexual process between two individuals 
 of the same variety or species present, not so much the character- 
 istics of the parents, as the characters of the variety or species. 
 
 The phenomena of heredity in connexion with sexual reproduc- 
 tion are especially striking in the case of hybrids, though the 
 result of the crossing of species or varieties, as shown by the 
 characters of the progeny, is by no means always the same. 
 Whilst it is true, as a rule, that hybrids are intermediate in 
 character between the species or varieties to which their parents 
 respectively belong, this is by no means always the case ; for some 
 hybrids resemble the one parent more than the other, either in 
 external form and colour, or in properties such as resistance to 
 
778 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 cold, time of flowering and fruiting, etc. : in facf, when, for 
 instance, a number of seeds are produced by hybridisation, none of 
 the resulting seedlings may be intermediate in character between 
 the two parents, but some may quite resemble the one parent, and 
 the remainder the other. When the hybrids are intermediate in 
 character, the blending of the parental features may manifest 
 itself in different degrees ; it may be slight, as for instance when 
 a hybrid of parents with differently coloured flowers, bears flowers 
 of the two distinct colours : or more intimate, as when in such a 
 case the hybrid bears flowers with blotches or stripes of the two 
 colours ; or complete, as when in the same case the flowers of the 
 hybrid are of a tint intermediate between the colours of the 
 parental flowers. The same peculiarities are presented, of course, 
 by other structures ; for instance, as regards the colour, size, 
 flavour of fruits, the size and shape of leaves, etc. 
 
 One of the most remarkable aspects of heredity in plants is its 
 relation to the alternation of generations. When the life-history 
 of a plant presents a regular alternation of sporophyte and gameto- 
 phyte, it is the alternate, and not the successive, generations 
 which resemble each other; sporophyte resembling sporophyte, 
 gametophyte resembling gametophyte. The hereditary character- 
 istics of the sporophyte, for instance, are not presented by the 
 gametophyte, which, though it springs from it, is commonly an 
 altogether dissimilar organism, but are transmitted through the 
 gametophyte to the succeeding gamogenic sporophyte. This is 
 not only obviously the case in plants, such as Ferns, in which the 
 alternate generations are distinct organisms ; but it is equally 
 true of the plants, such as Bryophytes and Phanerogams, in which 
 the alternate generations remain more or less intimately connected. 
 
 Variation is the term used to express the fact that an organism 
 may differ more or less widely from its parent or parents, present- 
 ing often some new characters, when it is termed a variety. 
 
 It is in connexion with sexual reproduction that variation is 
 most frequently manifested. It may, in fact, be generally stated 
 that variation is more frequent and more marked, the more re- 
 mote (within the limits of sexual affinity) the relationship between 
 the two parents : thus variation is most common in the offspring 
 of individuals of different species ; frequent in the offspring of 
 two individuals of different varieties of the same species; least 
 common in the offspring of two individuals of the same species or 
 variety. 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF REPRODUCTION. 779 
 
 It would seem natural to carry this rule further, applying it to 
 the case of asexual reproduction so as to lead up to the conclusion 
 that variation does not occur at all in plants produced asexually ; 
 that variation is, in fact, necessarily associated with the sexual 
 process ; a conclusion which has met with a certain measure of 
 acceptance. Bat it is a question whether this conclusion can be 
 fairly drawn when all the facts of reproduction in plants are duly 
 taken into account. Considering, first, the fact of asexual repro- 
 duction by means of gonidia, which is so common among the 
 Thallophytes, and which in some Fungi (e.g. Basidiomycetes and 
 many others), is the only known mode of reproduction, it is in- 
 conceivable, in the face of the vast number of families, genera, and 
 species of the plants under consideration, that variation has not 
 taken place among them, although they present no indications of 
 sexuality. Then there are the facts of bud-variation to be con- 
 sidered. Bud- variation is the term used to express the fact that 
 shoots, whether reproductive or vegetative, are sometimes de- 
 veloped, which differ in some striking manner from the other 
 normal shoots of the plant ; these varying shoots are known as 
 *' sports " : for instance, many varieties of Rose are known to have 
 arisen in this way, such as the Moss-rose from the Provence rose 
 (Rosa centifolia). The varieties arising in this way can, as a rule, 
 only be propagated vegetatively, by cuttings, grafts, etc., but oc- 
 casionally they come true from seed. Here again variation seems 
 to occur independently of sexual reproduction. 
 
 With regard to the causes of variation, it would appear that the 
 capacity for variation, or variability, is increased (a) by sexual 
 reproduction, and (6) by external conditions, more particularly 
 high nutrition, as is shown by the fact that bud- variation, for 
 instance, is rare in wild plants but comparatively common in 
 cultivated plants. The character of the variation has also to be 
 considered. There is no doubt that variation is often the mani- 
 festation, not of a new character, but of an old ancestral character 
 which had become dormant : this is especially true of the varia- 
 tions of sexually-produced plants, but it is also true in many cases 
 of bud- variation: this kind of variation is termed reversion. But 
 there seem to be many cases of variation, and more particularly 
 of bud- variation, which cannot be attributed to reversion, and in 
 which the direction of variation does not appear to be traceable to 
 any determining external causes : such variations seem to be 
 altogether fortuitous. 
 
780 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 The Origin of Species. From the foregoing statements relating 
 to heredity and variation, it is possible to draw conclusions not 
 only as to the maintenance of existing species, but also as to the 
 evolution of new species. 
 
 It is clear that new forms may arise in either of two ways : 
 either, first, as the result of the crossing of distinct varieties or 
 species; many recognized species and varieties are probably of 
 hybrid origin : or, second, as the result of variation. The forms 
 thus produced will exist, for a time at any rate, provided that 
 they are capable of reproducing themselves, either vegetatively 
 (e.g. by tubers, bulbs, etc.), or sexually (by seeds, etc.) But their 
 persistence for any long period depends upon their success in the 
 straggle for existence. They have to compete for their life with 
 their parents and with any other closely similar new forms which 
 may have also been developed : if they are successful, they will 
 persist, and their competitors will, some or all of them, die out. 
 The degree of their success depends essentially upon the degree 
 of their adaptation to the circumstances amidst which they have 
 to live. If they excel any of their competitors in the combination 
 of qualities (such as hardiness, time of flowering or fruiting, fer- 
 tility, etc.) which adapt them to the prevailing conditions of life, 
 they will persist and the others will disappear. This condition 
 of struggle constitutes Natural Selection, for the survivors of the 
 struggle are, as it were, selected by the fact of their survival. 
 
 At first all new forms, however produced, appear as what may 
 be termed varieties of their parent species : but, if they possess 
 the requisite reproductive capacity, and if they are successful in 
 the struggle for existence, they eventually become isolated by the 
 disappearance of many of the allied forms, including perhaps the 
 parent forms, and remain as distinct species. Thus in some genera 
 of flowering plants, the recognised species are few and distinct ; 
 whilst in many genera (e.g. Rubus, Hieracium) the greatest diffi- 
 culty is experienced in distinguishing the species and varieties, 
 because the process of isolation by natural selection has not yet 
 been sufficiently operative. 
 
 23. The Theory of Reproduction. The theory of re- 
 production is extremely simple in connexion with the more 
 primitive modes of vegetative propagation. When, for instance, 
 a unicellular organism divides into two, it is easy to understand 
 that the two new organisms will resemble each other and the 
 parent from which they have sprung, because the parental cell 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF REPRODUCTION. 781 
 
 divided into two exactly similar parts. Again, when a plant is 
 propagated by a bulb or a cutting, it is still easy to understand 
 that the resulting plant will resemble, as it usually does in detail, 
 the plant which produced the bulb or from which the cutting was 
 taken. But when a plant, a Mushroom for example, is developed 
 from a single minute reproductive cell, representing but an in- 
 finitesimal proportion of the protoplasm of the parent plant, it is 
 not easy to understand how the parental characters can be trans- 
 mitted to the offspring by such apparently inadequate means. 
 The bulk of the structure by which reproduction is effected, would 
 seem to be an expression of the fact that the bulkier reproductive 
 structure (bulb, tuber, etc.) is but a vegetative structure imper- 
 fectly differentiated for the purpose of reproduction, but which, 
 at the same time, ensures a close individual resemblance between 
 parent and offspring: whilst a single minute reproductive cell, 
 on the other hand, such as the gonidium of a Mushroom, though a 
 less efficient instrument of heredity, is much more highly specialised 
 for the work of reproduction. 
 
 If it be asked in what does this specialisation consist, no satis- 
 factory reply can be given at present ; as already pointed out (see 
 p. 766) there is no method by which reproductive capacity can be 
 analysed or determined. It is, however, generally agreed that 
 the transmission of hereditary characters is intimately associated 
 with the nucleus of the reproductive cell, and especially with the 
 fibrillar network (see p. 96) of the nucleus. But the fact that 
 this is so still remains unexplained, as also the fact that repro- 
 ductive cells differ so widely in their properties from vegetative 
 cells, although many attempts at an explanation have been made, 
 such as the theory of Pangenesis and that of Germ-plasm. 
 
 Whilst the ultimate facts of reproduction thus remain unex- 
 plained, the proximate facts of sexual reproduction can be ren- 
 dered intelligible. It has been already pointed out (p. 770) that a 
 gamete is incapable by itself of giving rise to a new individual; 
 but that by the fusion of two gametes of opposite sexes a spore is 
 formed, possessing twice as many chromosomes in its nucleus as 
 did the gametes, from which a new individual may be developed. 
 The nuclei of the new individual (in view of the strict equality in 
 the process of mitotic division, p. 118) must all contain chromosomes 
 derived from both the gametes which had fused in the sexual 
 process ; and if, as seems probable, the transmission of hereditary 
 characters is associated with the nuclear chromosomes, the char- 
 
782 PART IV. THE PHYSIOLOGY OF PLANTS. 
 
 acters of the individual will be those transmitted to it by the 
 chromosomes of the gametes. Consequently, if the gametes were 
 derived from two distinct individuals, the characters of the new 
 individual will be those of its two parents. In this way the more 
 obvious phenomena of heredity can be traced to a material basis, 
 and are thereby rendered more comprehensible. 
 
 But what is true of the new individual, applies likewise to its 
 parents : the characters which each parent transmits to the off- 
 spring are those which it has itself received from its two parents, 
 and so on : hence the characters inherited by any individual are to 
 be regarded as belonging rather to the race than to its immediate 
 progenitors. This conception also can be traced to a material 
 basis. It has been suggested that the discoid segments (con- 
 sisting of linin and chromatin, p. 96) of which the nuclear chro- 
 mosomes consist, each represent, in a gamete, substance derived 
 from a number of ancestors, the whole chromosome representing 
 many ancestors, and the chromosomes together all the ancestors 
 whose substance still persists in the gamete and will be trans- 
 mitted by the gametes to the next generation. The term id is 
 used to designate one of these material units which seem to con- 
 stitute the physical basis of heredity. 
 
 Applying these considerations to the elucidation of the repro- 
 ductive process in a plant, such as a Fern, whose life-history pre- 
 sents antithetic alternation of generations, it would appear that 
 the sudden reduction by half of the number of the nuclear chromo- 
 somes which attends the initiation of the gametophyte (see p. 771) 
 is to be attributed to the fusion of the ids in pairs : and further, 
 that it is not until this stage that a real fusion of the nuclear 
 substance of the gametes actually takes place. 
 
 The phenomena of heredity as manifested in the products of 
 sexual reproduction may be accounted for in connexion with this 
 fusion of the parental ids. When, for instance, in hybridisation, all 
 the parental ids exert their full influence, the offspring is precisely 
 intermediate in character: but when, from some cause which 
 cannot now be explained, some of the ids are paralysed or neu- 
 tralized, the offspring resembles one parent more than the other. 
 The character of the hybrid too, whether blended or blotched, may 
 be referred to some such cause. 
 
 Turning now to the phenomena of variation : this may be ac- 
 counted for, when it depends on reversion, on the assumption that 
 some of the ancestral ids which have remained neutralized and 
 
CHAPTER IV. SPECIAL PHYSIOLOGY OF REPRODUCTION. 783 
 
 ineffective for generations, are, as it were, set free in consequence 
 of some fresh crossing or of some important change in the con- 
 ditions of life, so that the latent ancestral characters now reveal 
 themselves. It is scarcely possible to offer any satisfactory ex- 
 planation of variation due to other causes, but there is one point 
 which, in conclusion, demands special consideration ; that is, 
 whether or not variations which are the result of the influence 
 of the external conditions, can be transmitted to the offspring. 
 There is no doubt that they can be transmitted by means of 
 vegetative propagation. But the real question is as to whether 
 or not they can be transmitted through the sexual process ; as 
 to whether or not the ids in the gamete of an individual can 
 transmit not only the ancestral characters, but also characters 
 which presented themselves apparently for the first time in the 
 individual itself. The weight of opinion is at present in favour of 
 the view that such acquired characters cannot be so transmitted ; 
 but in the face of the fact that some variations apparently of this 
 nature (e.g. doubling of flowers, variegation of leaves) are often 
 transmitted in this way, it cannot be conceded that this view is 
 conclusively established. 
 
 v. S.B. SB 
 
INDEX. 
 
 PART I. CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 Abele, 586. 
 
 Abies, 465, 468 (Fig. 296), 
 
 483 (Fig. 305), 484. 
 Abietineffi, 403, 483. 
 Abolboda, 5>6. 
 Abronia, 588. 
 Abuta, 5^5. 
 
 Acacia, 636, 638 (Fig. 437). 
 Acanthaceaa, 575, 646. 
 Acanthus, 646. 
 Acaulon, 308. 
 Acer, 610 (Fig. 418). 
 Aceraceae, 574, 616. 
 Aceras. 566. 
 Acetabularia, 239 (Fig. 
 
 170). 
 
 Acbillea, 664 (Fig. 466). 
 Achimenes, 646. 
 Achlya, 293 (Fig. 204), 
 
 294. 
 Aconitum, 496, 512, 521 
 
 (Fig. 335), 592 (Fig. 
 
 397). 
 
 Acorus,536,539 (Fig. 348). 
 Acrocarpas (Musci), 370. 
 Acrogynae (Hepaticae),347, 
 
 352. 
 
 Acrosticheae, 390, 405. 
 Acrostichurn, 405. 
 Actaea, 593. 
 Actinostrobinae, 486. 
 Actinostrobus, 486. 
 Adder's-tongue Fern, 382. 
 Adhatoda, 646. 
 Adiantum, 390, 397 (Fig. 
 
 263), 400 (F,g. 266), 
 
 405. 
 
 Adlumia, 601. 
 Adonis, 592. 
 Adoxa, 519, 659. 
 ^Ecidiomycetes, 275, 280, 
 
 303. 
 
 jEcidium, 308. 
 J^gopodium, 625. 
 JSsculus, 509, 616 (Fig. 
 
 417). 
 
 ^tbalium, 284. 
 yEthusa, 625. 
 Agapanthus, 510, 558. 
 Aguricinae, 312, 316. 
 Agaricus, 275, 311 (Fig. 
 
 219), 317 (Fig. 222). 
 Agathis, 479, 483. 
 Afiathosma, 614. 
 Agave, 568. 
 Agavoideae, 568. 
 Aglaozonia, 261. 
 A^opyrum, 550. 
 Agriraonia, 633. 
 Agrostideae, 548. 
 Agrostis, 548. 
 Aigeiros, 586. 
 Ailanthus, 615. 
 Aira, 549. 
 
 AizoacesB, 573, 600. 
 Ajax, 568. 
 Ajuga, 643. 
 Ajugoideae, 643. 
 Akebia, 595. 
 Alaria, 257. 
 Alchemilla, 633. 
 Alder, 580. 
 Aldrovanda, 608. 
 Aletris, 559. 
 Aletroideee, 559. 
 Alp, 217, 221 
 Alicularia, 347, 352. 
 Alisina, 444 (Fig. 287), 502, 
 
 554 (Fig. 360). 
 Alismaeeae, 502. 538, 554. 
 Alismales, 533, 538, 553. 
 Alkanet, 650. 
 Allamanda, 651. 
 All-good, 587. 
 Allioideae. 558. 
 Allinm, 493, 496, 517,558. 
 Allosorus, 405. 
 All- seed, 600. 
 Allspice, 594. 
 Almond-tree, 633. 
 Alnus, 528, 580 (Fig. 383), 
 
 581 (Fig. 384). 
 786 
 
 Alocasia, 541. 
 Aloe, 558. 
 Aloidella, 359. 
 Aloina, 359. 
 Alopecurus, 546, 548. 
 Alpine Rose, 655. 
 Alpinia, 562 (Fig. 367). 
 Alsinese, 599. 
 Alsophila, 391. 405. 
 Alstroameria, 492, 510, 563. 
 Althaea, 502, 6 LI (Fig. 413). 
 Althenia, 553. 
 Alyssineae, 605. 
 Alyssum, 605. 
 Amanita, 312, 317 (Fig. 
 
 222). 
 Amarantaceaa, 494, 513, 
 
 573, 587. 
 
 Amarantus, 514, 587. 
 Amaryllidaceae, 493, 538, 
 
 567. 
 
 Amaryllidoideae, 567. 
 Amaryllis, 510, 567. 
 Amelanchier. 635. 
 Amentales, 528, 573, 579, 
 
 580 (Fig. 382). 
 American Aloe, 568. 
 Ammi, 625. 
 Ammineae, 625. 
 Amomales, 538, 561. 
 Amorpha, 636. 
 Amorphophallus, 533, 540. 
 Ampelidaceae, 498, 501, 
 
 574, 619. 
 Ampelopsis, 619. 
 Amphibolis, 553. 
 Amsonia, 651. 
 Amygdalus, 632. 
 Amyium Marantae, 563. 
 Anabaeua, 232 (Fig. 165), 
 
 412. 
 
 Anacamptodon, 371. 
 Anacardiaceaa, 526. 574, 
 
 617. 
 
 Anacardium, 509. 
 Anacharis, 560. 
 
786 
 
 INDEX, PART I. 
 
 Anacrogynse, 347, 351. 
 Anadyomene, 242. 
 Anagallis, 531, 653. 
 Anamirta, 595. 
 Ananas, 561. 
 Anaptychia, 320 (Fig. 
 
 226). 
 
 Anchusa, 650 (Fig. 450). 
 Ancylistacese. 287, 290. 
 Ancylistes, 291. 
 Andrachne, 621. 
 Andresea, 332, 354, 365 
 
 (Fig. 249). 
 Andreseacese, 328, 330, 
 
 363, 3,5. 
 Androcryphia, 343, 347, 
 
 851. 
 
 Andromeda, 655. 
 Andropogon, 548. 
 Andropogonese, 548. 
 Aneimia, 388, 406. 
 Anelaterese, 351. 
 Auemone, 494, 513, 592 
 
 (Fig. 397). 
 Anemone, 591. 
 Aneura, 343. 351. 
 Angelica, 626. 
 Angeliceee, 625. 
 Augiopteris, 375, 383. 
 AngiospermsB, 217, 462, 
 
 48y. 
 
 Angreecum, 567. 
 Angustiseptas, 605. 
 Annatto, 606. 
 Anomospermum, 595. 
 Antennaria, 664. 
 Anthemidese. 664. 
 Anthemis, 664. 
 Anthericum. 558. 
 Anthoceros, 330 (Fig. 238), 
 
 352 (Fig. 246). 
 AnthocerotacesB, 329, 331, 
 
 335 (Fig. 23U), 336, 
 
 352, 
 
 Anthostema, 622. 
 Anthoxanthum, 548. 
 Anthriscus, 626. 
 Anthurium, 540. 
 Anthyllis, 636. 
 Antiaria, 578. 
 Antirrhinum, 644. 
 Antirrhoidese, 644. 
 Anychia 513 (Fig. 328). 
 Apera, 548. 
 Aphanomyces, 294. 
 Apiocystis. 236. 
 Apium, 625, 626. 
 Aplanes, 293, 294. 
 Apocynaceee, 526, 527,575. 
 
 651. 
 Apodya, 294. 
 
 Apogon, 569. 
 Aponogeton, 554. 
 Aponogetonese, 554. 
 Apple-tree, 634. 
 Apricot, 633. 
 Aquifoliaceae, 574, 619. 
 Aquilegia, 502, 593 (Fig. 
 
 898). 
 
 Arabidese, 604. 
 Aracese, 512, 518, 538, 539. 
 Arachis, 637. 
 Arales, 538, 539. 
 Araliacese, 574, 626. 
 Araucaria, 465, 482. 
 Araucarineffi, 467, 483. 
 Arbor Vitas, 486. 
 Arbntoidese, 655. 
 Arbutus, 655. 
 Arceuthos, 486. 
 Archangelica, 626. 
 Arcbegoniata, 218. 
 ArchidiacesB, 363, 366. 
 Archidium, 330, 361, 367. 
 Arctium, 664. 
 Arctostaphylos, 655. 
 Arcyria, 284 (Fig. 198), 
 
 285. 
 
 Ardisia, 654. 
 Areca, 544 (Fig. 352). 
 Arenaria, 599. 
 Aria, 635. 
 
 Arisarum, 539, 541. 
 Aristea, 569. 
 Aristinse, 569. 
 Aristolochia, 456 (Fig. 
 
 293), 514, 518, 588. 
 Aristolochiacete, 520, 573, 
 
 588. 
 
 Arm*-ria, 654. 
 Armillaria, 312 
 Arnica, 662 (Fig. 464), 663. 
 Arnoseris, 665. 
 Aroidese, 541. 
 Arrhenatherum, 549. 
 Arrow-grass, 554. 
 Arrow-head, 555. 
 Arrow-root, 562, 563. 
 Artemisia, 663 (Fig. 466), 
 
 664. 
 
 Arthrocladia, 257, 259. 
 Artichoke, 664. 
 Artocarpns, 577. 
 Arum, 515, 539 (Fig. 349). 
 Arundinaria, 550. 
 Asarabacca, 588. 
 Asarales, 573, 588. 
 Asarum, 588 (Fig. 394). 
 Asclepiadacese, 517, 575, 
 
 651. 
 Asclepias, 501, 651 (Fig. 
 
 452). 
 
 Ascobolus, 276, 303. 
 Ascolichenes, 320. 
 Ascomycetes, 274, 280, 
 
 294. 
 
 Ascophyllum, 266. 
 Asb, 652. 
 
 Asparagoideas, 558. 
 Asparagus. 558. 
 Aspen, 586. 
 
 Asperococcns, 257, 259. 
 Asperula, 658. 
 Asphodeloidese, 558. 
 Asphodelus, 558. 
 Aspidiese, 405. 
 Aspidistra, 559. 
 Aspidium, 390, 391 (Fig. 
 
 258), 405. 
 Aspleniese, 405, 
 Aspleuium, 389 (Fig. 257), 
 
 390, 405. 
 Aster, 663. 
 Asterales, 575, 660. 
 Asterocephalus, 661. 
 Asteroidese, 663, 664. 
 Astilbe, 639. 
 Astomum, 368. 
 Astragalus, 522, 636. 
 Astrantia, 625. 
 Astroporse, 342. 
 Athrotaxis, 485. 
 Athyrium, 405. 
 Atragene, 591. 
 Atrichum, 362, 370. 
 Atriplex, 587. 
 Atropa, 648 (Fig. 449). 
 Aucuba, 626. 
 Aulacomnium, 357, 370. 
 Aurantiese, 614. 
 Auricularia, 315. 
 Auriculariese, 812, 315. 
 Auteupuccinia, 307. 
 Auteu-uromyces, 307. 
 Autobasidiomycetes, 312, 
 
 315. 
 
 Autumn Crocus, 558. 
 Avena,548(Fig.356),549. 
 Avenese, 548. 
 Aveus, 634. 
 Averrhoa, 613. 
 Awl-wort, 605. 
 Aytonia, 342. 
 Azalea, 655. 
 Azolla, 406, 410, 415. 
 
 Bacillus, 281 (Fig. 197), 
 
 282. 
 
 Bacteriacese, 282. 
 Bacterium, 281 (Fig. 196), 
 
 282. 
 
 Badhamia, 285. 
 Bseomycese, 322. 
 
CLASSIFICATCON AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 787 
 
 Balanopliora, 590. 
 Balanophoraceae, 519, 573, 
 
 590. 
 
 Ballota, 643. 
 Balm, 643. 
 
 Balsaminaceae, 574, 613. 
 Bamboo, 550. 
 Bamboo Palm, 543. 
 Bambusa, 545 (Fig. 353), 
 
 550. 
 
 Bambuseae, 550. 
 Banana, 562. 
 Baneberry, 593. 
 Bangia, 268, 272. 
 Bangiaceee, 267, 272. 
 Banyan, 678. 
 Baptisia, 636. 
 Barbarea, 604. 
 Barberry, 305, 595. 
 Barbula, 359, 370. 
 Barley, 550. 
 Barosma, 614. 
 Bartsia, 645. 
 Basidiolichenes, 320. 
 Basidiomycetes, 274, 280, 
 
 310. 
 
 Bastard Toad-flax, 589. 
 Batatas, 647. 
 Batrachospermum, 268, 
 
 272. 
 
 Battarea, 319. 
 Bauhinia, 637. 
 Bean, 637. 
 Bearberry, 655. 
 Bed- straw, 658. 
 Beech, 583. 
 Bee Orchis, 566. 
 Beetroot, 587. 
 Beggiatoa, 282. 
 Begonia, 627. 
 Begoniaceae, 574, 627. 
 Belladonna Lily, 567. 
 Bellis, f 63. 
 Bent-Grass, 548. 
 Berb-ridac<ae, 502, 520, 
 
 573, 595. 
 Berberis, 498 (Fig. 311), 
 
 595. 
 
 Bergenia, 639 (Fig. 439). 
 Bermudiana, 5o9. 
 Bertholletia, 631. 
 Beta, 587. 
 Betel-Palm, 544. 
 Betony, 643. 
 Betula, 528, 581. 
 Betulaceffi, 513, 573, 580. 
 Bidens, 664. 
 Bignoniaceffi, 575, 646. 
 Bi'. berry, 656. 
 Bindweed, 647. 
 Binuclearia, 247. 
 
 Biophytum, 613. 
 Hiota, 46(5, 486 (Fig. 306). 
 Birch, 581. 
 Bird-Cherry, 633. 
 Bird's-foot Trefoil, 636. 
 Bird's nest, K5H. 
 Bird's-nest Orchid, 567. 
 Birthwort, 588. 
 Bistort, 598. 
 Bitter or Seville Orange, 
 
 615. 
 
 Bittersweet, 649. 
 Bixa, 606. 
 Bixacese, 573, 606. 
 Blackberry, 634. 
 Black Bryony, 560. 
 Black Pine, 48F. 
 Black Poplar, 586. 
 Black Tborn, 633. 
 Bladder Fern, 405. 
 Bladder Senna, 636. 
 Blaeberry, 656. 
 Blasia, 343, 347, 351. 
 Blechnum, 390, 405. 
 Bletia, 564. 
 Blinks, 600. 
 Blue bell, 556. 
 Blue-bottle, 664. 
 Blue-eyed Grass, 569. 
 Blyttia, 348, 351. 
 Bog-Asphodel, 558. 
 Bog-bean, 651. 
 Bog-Myrtle, 584. 
 Bog-Orchis, 567. 
 Bog-Bush, 551. 
 Bohnieria, 577. 
 Boleius, 312, 316. 
 Bonapartea, 568. 
 Bonnemaisonia, 272. 
 Bonnemaisoniaceae, 272. 
 Borage, 650. 
 Boraginaceae, 490, 508, 
 
 575, 649. 
 
 Boraginou\eae, 650. 
 Borago, 650. 
 Borassinse, 543. 
 Borassus, 543. 
 Borecole, 604. 
 Borneo Camphor, 609. 
 Boschia, 336. 
 Boswellia, 615 
 Botrychium, 374, 381, 
 
 382 (Fig. 255). 
 BotrydieaB, 240. 
 Botrydium, 239 (Fig. 171). 
 Botryococcns, 236 
 Bougainvillea, 588. 
 Bouvardia, 659. 
 Bovista, 318. 
 Bowenia, 481. 
 Bowiea, 558. 
 
 Box, 623. 
 
 Brachypodium, 549. 
 Brachythecium, 371. 
 Bracken, 405. 
 Brasenia, 594. 
 Brassica, 603 (Fig. 407). 
 Brassiceae, 604. 
 Brazil Nut, 631. 
 Bread-fruit, 578. 
 Bremia, 292 
 Bridelia 621. 
 Briza, 549. 
 Broccoli, 604. 
 Brodicea. 558. 
 Brome-Grass, 549. 
 Bromeliaceae, 538, 561. 
 Bromus, 549. 
 Brookweed, 654. 
 Broom, 636. 
 Broomrape, 646. 
 Broussonetia, 578. 
 Browallia. 649. 
 Bruchia, 368. 
 Bruchiacese, 368. 
 Brugrnansia, 589. 
 Brnguiera, 632. 
 Brussels-sprouts, 604. 
 Bryaceae, 370. 
 Bryineaa, 330, 355, 363, 
 
 3rt7. 
 
 Bryonia, 516. 628. 
 Bryophyta. 217, 324. 
 Bryopsis, 240. 
 Bryuin, 359, 370. 
 Buck-bean, 651. 
 Buckthorn, 618. 
 Buckwheat, 598. 
 Bulbochaete, 249. 
 Bulgaria, 303. 
 Bulgarieee, 303. 
 Bullace, 633. 
 Bulrush, 542, 551. 
 Bupleurum, 625. 
 Burdock. 664. 
 Bur-reed, 542. 
 Burseraceae, 574, 615. 
 Butcher's Broom, 558. 
 Butomaceae, 502, 538, 555. 
 Butomopsis, 555. 
 Butomus, 502, 525 (Fig. 
 
 338), 554 (Fig. 36u), 
 
 555 (Fig. 361). 
 Butter-bur, 664. 
 Buttercup, 592. 
 Butterfly Orchis, 566. 
 Butterwort, 647. 
 Buxaceae, 574, 622. 
 Buxbaumia, 370. 
 Buxbaumiaceae, 370. 
 Buxus, 515, 623. 
 Byblis, 608. 
 
INDEX, PAKT I. 
 
 Cabbage, 604. 
 Cabornba, 594. 
 Cabombeae, 594. 
 Cactacero, 574, 628. 
 Caeoma. 308. 
 Caesalpinia, 637. 
 Casalpiuieae, 637. 
 Cakile, 605. 
 Cakilineffi, 605. 
 Calabar Beau, 637. 
 Caladium, 541. 
 Calamagrostis, 548. 
 Calamintba, 642. 
 Calamus, 544. 
 Caltnthe, 564. 
 Calceolaria, t44. 
 Calendulese, 664. 
 Calendula, 664. 
 Calicieae, 322. 
 Calla, 540. 
 Callistemou, 631. 
 Callittephns, 663. 
 Callithamnion, *67, 272. 
 Callitrichaceie, 574, 623. 
 Callitriche. 623. 
 Callitris, 486. 
 Calloideae, 540. 
 Callnna, 655. 
 Calobryum, 351. 
 Calocera, 313. 315. 
 Calochortus, 556. 
 Calosphseria, 302. 
 Calostoma, 318. 
 
 Calothamnus, 631 (Fig. 
 431). 
 
 Caltha, 502, 593. 
 
 Calyranthaceae, 520, 573, 
 594. 
 
 Calycauthus, 496, 594. 
 
 Calyciflor, 574, 623. 
 
 Calypogeia, 345, 352. 
 
 Caiystegia, 647. 
 
 Caiuassia, 556. 
 
 Camelina, 605. 
 
 Camelmeee. 605. 
 
 Camellia, 494, 609. 
 
 Campanales, 575, 656. 
 
 Campanula, 498 (Fig. 312), 
 657 (Figs. 456, 457). 
 
 Campanulacese, 498, 508, 
 575, 656. 
 
 Campion, 599. 
 
 Campyloapermeae 625,626. 
 
 Canada-balsam, 484. 
 
 Candytuft, 605 
 
 Canna, 506, 519, 563 (Fig. 
 368). 
 
 Cannabinaceee, 496, 515, 
 573, 578. 
 
 Cannabis, 578. 
 
 Cannaceee, 562. 
 
 Canterbury-bell, 657. 
 Cantliarellus, 317. 
 Caoutchouc, 578, 622. 
 Caper, 605. 
 Capparidacese, 526, 573, 
 
 605. 
 
 Capparis, 605 (Fig. 408). 
 Caprifoliacese, 510, 575, 
 
 659 (Fig. 460). 
 Capsella, 443 (Fig. 286), 
 
 605. 
 
 Capsicum, 649. 
 Caragana. 636. 
 Carallia. 632. 
 Car^pa, 615. 
 Caraway, 626. 
 Cardamine, 604. 
 Cardamom, 562. 
 Carduus, 664. 
 Carex. 515, 551 (Fig. 358). 
 Carica, 627. 
 Caricoideee 551. 
 Carlina, 664. 
 Carline Thistle, 664. 
 Carludovica, 542. 
 Carnation, 599. 
 Carob-tree, 637. 
 Carpinus, 528, 582, 583 
 
 (Fig. 387). 
 Carponait.ra, 257. 
 Carrot, 626. 
 Carthamup, 664. 
 Carum, 529 (Fig. 341), 625 
 
 (Figs. 426, 427). 
 Carya, 584. 
 Caryocedrus, 4^6. 
 Caryophyllaceae, 494, 573, 
 
 599. 
 
 Caryophyilales, 573, 598. 
 Cassava, 622. 
 Cassia, 637 (Fig. 436). 
 Cassytha, 596. 
 Castagnea. 257. 
 Castanea, 583. 
 Castor- oil Plant, 622. 
 Casuarina, 489, 528, 585. 
 Casuarinaceee, 573, 585. 
 Catalpa, 646. 
 Catchfly, 599. 
 Catenella, 272. 
 Catmint, 643. 
 Cat's Ear, 665. 
 Cat's-tail Grass, 548. 
 Caucalineee, 626. 
 Caucalis, 626. 
 Caulacanthus, 272. 
 Caulerpa, 225 (Fig. 162), 
 
 240. 
 
 CaulerpeaB, 240. 
 Cauliflower, 604. 
 Cedar, 484. 
 
 Cedrela, 615. 
 Cedrus, 463. 484. 
 Celandine, 601. 
 Celascraceaj, 526, 574. 618. 
 Celastrales, 574, 618. 
 Celery, 626. 
 Celosia, 587. 
 Celsia, 644. 
 Celtis, 5L5, 579. 
 Cembra, 485. 
 Centaurea. 664. 
 Centaury, 651. 
 Ceutiantlius, 660 (Fig. 
 
 462). 
 
 Centrolepidaeeae, 552. 
 Cephaelis, 659. 
 Cephalanthera, 566. 
 Cephalautliereee, 566. 
 Cephalideee, 289. 
 Cephalotaceae, 574, 640. 
 Cephalotaxus. 466, 487. 
 Tephalotus, 640. 
 Ceramiacese, 272. 
 Ceramium, 272. 
 Cerastium, 503, 599. 
 Cerasus, 633. 
 Ceratium. 285. 
 Ceratopteris, 393. 
 Ceratodon, 330 (Fig. 238), 
 
 370. 
 
 Ceratonia, 637. 
 Ceratophyllacese 573, 598. 
 CeratophyJlum. i>98. 
 Ceratozamia. 471 481. 
 Cercis, 511 (Fig. 327), 637. 
 Cereus, 629- 
 Cerinthe, 496. 
 Ceropegia, 652. 
 Ceroxylinaa, 544. 
 CestreEe, 6<9. 
 Cestrum, 649. 
 Ceteraih, 405. 
 Cetraria, 322. 
 Cbeerophyllum, e^G. 
 Chsetocladiese, 287, 289. 
 ChsBtocladium, 289. 
 Chsetomium, 276, '298, 301. 
 Clisetornorpha, 241. 
 Chsetophora, 248. 
 ChsetophoracesB, 243, 247. 
 Chsetopteris. 224 (Fig 160), 
 
 257, 259. 
 
 Chamsecyparis, 486. 
 Chamsedorea, 543 (Fig. 
 
 351). 
 
 Chamselauciess, 631. 
 Cbamseorchis, 566. 
 Chamserops, 543. 
 Chamomile, 664. 
 Champia, 272. 
 Chantransia, 268, 272. 
 
CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 789 
 
 Chara, 251 (Fig. 180), 253 
 
 (Fig. 181), 255 (Fig. 
 
 183). 
 
 Characeae, 251. 
 Characium, 236. 
 Chareas, 255. 
 Charlock, 605. 
 Charoideee, 236, 251. 
 Chasmanthera, 595. 
 Chaste Tree, 643. 
 Cheilanthes, 391, 405. 
 Oheiranthus, 604. 
 Chelidouium,601(Fig.404). 
 Chelone, 644. 
 Chenopodiaceae, 496, 513, 
 
 573, 587. 
 Chenopodiales, 57jO, 573, 
 
 586. 
 ChenoT'odium, 586 (Fig. 
 
 392). 
 
 Cherrv Lanrel, 633. 
 Chervil, 626. 
 Chickweed, 599. 
 Chickweed Winter-green, 
 
 654. 
 
 Chicory, 665. 
 Chili Pepper, 649. 
 Chiloscyphus, 343. 
 Chimonanthus, 594. 
 China Aster, 663. 
 Chinese Yew, 4*7. 
 Chionanthus, 652. 
 Chionodoxa, 556. 
 Chives, 558. 
 
 Chlamydomonadaceae,237. 
 Chlamydoinonas, 237. 
 Chlora, 65 1 . 
 
 Chloraii thacese, 573, 576. 
 Chloride, 549. 
 Chlorochytrium, 236. 
 Chlorococcum, 236. 
 Chlorophyceae, 221, 234, 
 
 321. 
 
 Chlorophytum, 558. 
 Chlorosphaera, 236. 
 Chocolate, 611. 
 Chomiocarpon, 343. 
 Chondriopsis, 268, 272. 
 Chondrus, 272. 
 Chorda, 257, 259. 
 Chordaria, 257. 
 Choristocarpeae, 257. 
 Choristocarpus, 257, 259. 
 Christmas Kose, 593. 
 Chromophyton, 2>7. 
 Chroococcaceae, 233, 321. 
 Chroolepus, 247. 
 Chrozophora, 621. 
 Chrysanthemum, 664. 
 Chrysobalaneae, 635. 
 Oirysodium, 390. 
 
 Chrysomyxa, 307 (Fig. 
 
 217). 
 
 Chrysosplenium, 639. 
 Chylocladia, 272. 
 Cbytridiaceae, 278, 285. 
 Cibotium, 391, 405. 
 Cicendia, 651. 
 Cichoriese, 665. 
 Cichoriurn, 493, 665. 
 Cicuta, 625, 626. 
 Cinchona, 659. 
 Cinohoneae, 659. 
 Cinnamoinum, 596 (Fig. 
 
 400). 
 
 Cinquefoil, 634. 
 Circaea, 630. 
 Cissampelos, 595. 
 Cistacese, 573, 606. 
 Cistus, 606. 
 Citrou, 615. 
 Citrullus, 628. 
 Citrus, 614, 6 15 (Fig. 416). 
 Cladochytrieae, 287. 
 Cladonia, 320, 321. 
 Cladophora, 241 (Fig. 172). 
 Cladophoraceae, 238, 241. 
 Cladophorese, 241. 
 Cladostephus, 257,259 (Fig. 
 
 185), 260 (Fig. 186). 
 Cladothrichiesa, 282. 
 Cladothrix, 282. 
 Cladrastis, 636. 
 Clarkia, 507. 
 Clary, 643. 
 Classification of Algae, 221. 
 
 of Angiospermae, 533. 
 
 of Ascomycetes, 300. 
 
 of Basidiomycetes, 315. 
 
 of Bry<phyta, 332. 
 
 of Chlorophyceae, 235. 
 
 of Coniferae', 483. 
 
 of Dicotyledones, 573. 
 
 of Filicinae, 381. 
 
 of Fungi, 280. 
 
 of Gynmospermge, 480. 
 
 of Hepaticae, 336. 
 
 of Lichenes, 320. 
 
 of Monocotyledones,538. 
 
 of Musci, 363. 
 
 of Phaeophycese, 257. 
 
 of Phanerogamia, 462. 
 
 of Phycomycetes, 285, 
 290. 
 
 of Plants, 216. 
 
 of Pteridophyta, 378. 
 
 of Ehodophyceae, 272. 
 Clathrus, 3,9. 
 Clavaria, 315 (Fig. 221). 
 Clavariese, 312, 315. 
 Claviceps, 274, 301, 302 
 (Fig. 212). 
 
 Cleistocarpaj, 361, 368. 
 Clematis, 502, 591. 
 Cleome, 495. 
 Clevea, 336. 
 Climacium, 371. 
 Closterium, 244 (Figs. 173, 
 
 174). 
 
 Clostridium, 282. 
 Clover, 636. 
 Club Moss, 421. 
 Club Bush, 551. 
 Clusia, 494, 496. 
 Clusiacere, 573, 609. 
 Cluster Narcissus, 508. 
 Cluster Pine, 485. 
 Cluytia, 621. 
 Cnicus, 664. 
 Cobsea, 648. 
 Coccaceae, 282. 
 Coccoloba, 598. 
 Cocculus, 502, 516. 
 Coccus, 281 (Fig. 196). 
 Cochlearia, 605. 
 Cock's Comb, 587. 
 Cock's Foot Grass, 549. 
 Coco -nut Palm, 544. 
 Cocos, 544. 
 Codieae, 240. 
 Codium, 240. 
 Codonieae, 351. 
 Coelastrum, 242. 
 Ccelospermeae, 625, 626. 
 Coenogonium, 321. 
 Coffea, 659. 
 Coffee, 659. 
 Coffee tree, 659. 
 Coix, 547. 
 Cola, 611. 
 Colchiceae, 558. 
 Colchicoidese, 556. 
 Colchicum, 557 (Fig. 363), 
 
 558. 
 
 Coleanthus, 547. 
 Coleochsete, 249, 250 (Fig. 
 
 179). 
 
 Coleochsetaceas, 243, 249. 
 Coleosporium, 307. 
 Coleus, 642. 
 Collabium, 564. 
 Collema, 275, 298 (Fig. 
 
 208), 321 (Fig. 228). 
 Collemaceaa. 320. 
 Colignonia, 588. 
 Colocasia, 541. 
 Colocasioideee, 541. 
 Colpomenia, 257, 259, 262. 
 Colt's Foot, 664. 
 Columbine, 593. 
 Columnea, 646. 
 Colutea, 636. 
 Colymbea, 475, 482. 
 
790 
 
 INDEX, PART I. 
 
 Colza, 605. 
 Comnrum, 495, 634. 
 Comfrey, 650. 
 Commelyna, 510 (Fig.325), 
 
 512, 556. 
 Commelynaceee, 492, 538, 
 
 556. 
 
 Commelynales, 538, 555. 
 Commiphora, 615. 
 Common Basil, 642. 
 Common Bugloss, 650. 
 Composites (Marchantia- 
 
 ceffi) 343. 
 Composite, 489, 575, 662 
 
 (Fig. 465), 663 (Fig. 
 
 466). 
 
 Conferva. 247. 
 Confervoideee, 236, 243, 
 
 321. 
 
 Conidiophoree, 289. 
 Conifer, 463, 480, 481. 
 Coniophora, 316. 
 Conium, 626 (Fig. 426). 
 Conjugates, 243, 244. 
 Conocephalus, 343. 
 Conopodium, 625. 
 Convailaria, 558. 
 Convolvulacesa, 575, 647. 
 Convolvulus, 514 (Fig. 
 
 329), 647. 
 
 Copper Beech, 583. 
 Coprinus 312, 317. 
 Cora, 320, 321. 
 Corallina, 272. 
 Corallinaceffi, 268, 272. 
 Corallorhiza, 567. 
 Coral Boot, 567. 
 Corbularia, 568. 
 Corchorus, 610. 
 Cordyceps, 276, 294, 301. 
 Cordyline, 558. 
 Coreopsis. 664. 
 Coriandrese, 626. 
 Coriandrum,626 (Fig.426). 
 Cork-oak, 583. 
 CornacesB, 574, 626. 
 Corn Cockle, 599. 
 Cornel, 626, 
 Corn Flag, 569. 
 Corn-flower, 664. 
 Cornish Heath, 655. 
 Cornish Moneywort, 645. 
 Corn-salad, 661. 
 Cornus, 501, 626. 
 Coronilla, 637. 
 Corrigiola, 600. 
 Corsinia, 336, 342. 
 Corsiniese, 340 342. 
 Corticium, 316. 
 Cortinarius, 317. 
 Corydalis, 511, 570, 602. 
 
 Corylacees, 573, 581. 
 Corylus, 528, 582 (Figs. 
 
 385, 386). 
 Coryphinse, 543. 
 Cotinus, 618. 
 Cotoneaster, 634. 
 Cotton, 612. 
 Cotton-Grass, 551. 
 Couch-Grass, 550. 
 Cowberry, 656. 
 Cow-Parsley, 626. 
 Cow-Parsnip, 626. 
 Cowslip, 653. 
 Cow-tree 578. 
 Cow-Wheat, 645. 
 Crakeberry, 623. 
 Crambe, 605. 
 Cranberry, 656. 
 Cranes'-bill, 612. 
 Crassula, 640. 
 Crassulacee, 492, 574, 640. 
 Crattegus, 634. 
 Craterellus, 316. 
 Craterocolla, 313, 315. 
 Creeping Bugle, 643. 
 Crenothrix, 282. 
 Crepis, 665. 
 Cress, 605. 
 Crinum, 567. 
 Cristatella, 526. 
 Crithmum, 625, 626. 
 Crocoidese. 568. 
 Crocus, 568. 
 Cronartium, 307. 
 Cross-leaved Heath, 655. 
 Croton, 622. 
 Crotoneee, 621. 
 Crowfoot, 592. 
 Crown Imperial, 556. 
 Crucibulum, 318. 
 Cruciferse 489, 495, 573, 
 
 602 (Fig. 406). 
 Cryptogamia, 218. 
 Cryptogramme, 405. 
 Cryptomeria, 466, 486. 
 Cryptonemia, 272. 
 Cryptoneminse, 270, 272. 
 Cubebs, 576. 
 Cuckoo-pint, 541. 
 Cucubalus, 599. 
 Cucumber, 628. 
 Cucumis, 628 (Fig. 428). 
 Cucurbita, 516, 628 (Fig. 
 
 428). 
 Cucurbitace, 516, 574, 
 
 627. 
 
 Cudweed, 664. 
 Cunninghamia, 465, 485. 
 Cuphea, 631. 
 Cupressus, 466, 486. 
 Cupressinee, 486. 
 
 Cupressinea;, 466, 486. 
 
 Cupuliferee, 273. 
 
 Curare, 651. 
 
 Curcuri a, 562. 
 
 Currant, 640. 
 
 Cusr.uta, 647, 648 (Fig. 
 
 448). 
 
 Cut-grass, 548. 
 Cutleria, 257. 261. 
 Cutleriaceie, 257, 259. 
 Cyanophycete. 221, 231, 
 
 321. 
 
 Cyathea, 390, 405. 
 Cyatheacese, 379, 381, 391, 
 
 405. 
 
 Cyathodium, 338. 
 Cyathus, 313, 318 (Fig. 
 
 224). 
 
 Cycadaceee, 463, 480. 
 Cycas, 465, 480, 481 (Fig. 
 
 303). 
 
 Cyclamen, 653. 
 Cyclanthera, 627. 
 Cyclanthaceffi, 538, 542. 
 Cydonia, 634. 
 Cymodocea, 553. 
 Cymodoceae, 553. 
 Cynara, 664. 
 Cynareee, 664. 
 Cynodon, 549. 
 Cynoglossum, 650. 
 Cynomorium, 590. 
 Cyperace, 512, 538, 550. 
 Cyperus, 551. 
 Cyphella, 316. 
 Cypress, 486. 
 Cypripedium ,504, 564 (Fig. 
 
 369), 565 (Fig. 372). 
 Cypripediinse, 566. 
 Cystopteris, 391, 405. 
 Cystopus, 292. 
 Cystoseira, 266. 
 Cytinacese, 573, 589. 
 Cytinete, 589. 
 Cytinus, 589. 
 Cytisus, 636, 777. 
 
 Daboecia, 655. 
 Dacrydium, 466, 487. 
 Dacryomyces, 313, 315. 
 Dacryomycetes, 312, 315. 
 Dacryomitra, 315. 
 Dactylis, 549. 
 Dffidalea, 316. 
 Daffodil. 568. 
 Dahlia, 664. 
 Daisy, 663 
 Dalbergieee, 637. 
 Daltonia, 371. 
 Damasoninm, 555. 
 Dame's Violet, 604. 
 
CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 791 
 
 Dammara. 465. 483. 
 
 Damson, 633. 
 
 Danaea, 383. 
 
 Dandelion, 665. 
 
 Banewort, 659. 
 
 Daphne, 514, 620 (Fig.423). 
 
 Diirlingtonia, 607. 
 
 Darnel, 549. 
 
 Dasya, 267, 268 (Fig. 193), 
 
 272. 
 
 Dasycladeae, 240. 
 Dasycladus, 240. 
 Dasylirion, 558. 
 Date, 534 (Fig. 345). 
 Date Palm. 543. 
 Datura, 509, 648, 649. 
 Datureae, 649. 
 Daucineee, 626. 
 Daucus, 625, 626. 
 Davallia, 389 (Fig. 257), 
 
 390, 405. 
 Davalliese, 405. 
 Deadly Nightshade, 649. 
 Dead kettle, 643. 
 Delesseria, 272. 
 Delesseriaceae, 272. 
 Delphinium, 496, 513 (Fig. 
 
 328), 593. 
 Dendrobium, 567. 
 Dendroceros, 352. 
 Dentaria, 604. 
 Derbesia, 238. 
 Derbesieee. 240. 
 Desmarestia, 224 (Fig. 
 
 160), 257. 
 
 Desmarestieae, 257, 259. 
 Desmidiese, 244. 
 Desmids, 245. 
 Desmodium, 637. 
 Desvauxiaceae, 552. 
 Deutzia, 639. 
 Dewberry, 634. 
 Diacalpe, 391. 
 Diandrae, 566. 
 Dianthus, 515 (Fig. 330), 
 
 599. 
 
 Diapensia, 656. 
 Diapensiaceae. 575, 656. 
 Diarrhena, 547. 
 Diatomaceae, 257, 258. 
 Diatrype, 302. 
 Dicentra, 508, 602 (Fig. 
 
 405). 
 
 Dicksonia, 390, 405. 
 Dicotyledones, 462, 533, 
 
 570. 
 
 Dicranacese, 370.. 
 Dicranella, 370. 
 Dicranum, 370. 
 Dictamnus, 510, 614 (Fig. 
 
 415). 
 
 Dictyonema, 320, 321. 
 Dictyopteris, 262. 
 Dictyosiphon, 257. 
 Dictyosiphoneae, 257, 259. 
 Dictyosphaeria, 242. 
 Dictyosphaerium, 236. 
 Dictyosteliaceas, 285. 
 Dictyota. 262. 
 Dictyotaceae, 257, 262. 
 Dictyuchus, 294. 
 Didymium, 284 (Fig. 198). 
 Diervilla, 660. 
 Digitalis, 644. 
 Dijjitaria. 547. 
 Dionaea, 608. 
 Dioon, 481. 
 Dioscoreaceae, 533, 538, 
 
 560. 
 
 Dioscorea, 560. 
 Dioscoreales, 538, 560. 
 Diosmeae, 614. 
 Diospyros, 653. 
 Diotis, 664. 
 Dipholis, 496. 
 Dipladenia, 526, 651. 
 Diplocolobete, 604. 
 Diplomitrieae, 348, 351. 
 Diplotaxis, 605. 
 Dipsacese, 575, 661. 
 Dipsacus, 4y4, 661. 
 Dipterix, 637. 
 Dipterocarpaceae, 573, 609. 
 Disciflorae, 574, 612. 
 Discolichenes, 320. 
 Discomycetes, 302. 
 Discosporangium, 257. 
 Dissodon, 370. 
 Diuris, 563. 
 Dock, 598. 
 Dodder, 647. 
 Dog's Mercury, 622. 
 Dog's-tooth Grass, 549. 
 Dog's-tooth Violet, 556. 
 Dog- Violet, 607. 
 Doronicum, 663. 
 Dothideaceae, 301. 
 D mm Palm, 543. 
 Draba, 603 (Fig. 407), 605. 
 Dracunculus, 541. 
 Dracaena, 535, 558. 
 Dracaenoideae, 558. 
 Dragon's Tree, 558. 
 Draparnaldia, 247. 
 Dropwort. 632. 
 Drosera, 608. 
 Droseracete, 573, 608. 
 Drosophyllum, 608. 
 Dry as, 634. 
 Dryobalauops, 609. 
 Dry Rot, 316. 
 Duck-weed, 541. 
 
 Dudresnaya, 271, 272. 
 Dumoiitia, 272. 
 Dnmoutiaceae, 272. 
 Dumortiera, 337, 343. 
 Durra, 548. 
 Duvalia, 337, 342. 
 Dwarf Elder, 659. 
 Dwarf Wheat, 550. 
 Dyer's Weed, 606. 
 
 Earth-almond, 637. 
 Ebenaceae, 575, 653. 
 Ehenales. 575, 653. 
 Ebony, 653. 
 Eccremocarpus, 646. 
 Echeveria, 640. 
 Echinocactus, 629. 
 Echinocloa, 547. 
 Echinophora, 626. 
 Echinops, 664. 
 Echinopsis, 629. 
 Echium, 496, 511, 650. 
 Ectocarpaceje, 257, 259. 
 Ectocarpese, 257. 
 Ectocarpus, 257, 259, 261 
 
 (Fig. 187). 
 Eglantine, 632. 
 Ehretoidese, 650. 
 Eichhornia, 559. 
 Elachista, 257. 
 Elachisteae, 257. 
 Elaeagnaceae. 574, 620. 
 Elaeagnus, 620 (Fig. 424). 
 Elais, 544. 
 Elaphomyces, 301. 
 Elaphoglossum, 405. 
 Elatereae, 351. 
 Elatinnceae, 573, 609. 
 Elatine, 609. 
 Elder, 659. 
 Elecampane, 664. 
 Eletteria. 562. 
 Elm, 579. 
 Elodea, 493, 560. 
 Eluteria, 621. 
 Elymus, 550. 
 Elyna, 552. 
 Emericella, 320. 
 EmpetrHceae, 574, 623. 
 Empetrum, 515, 623. 
 Kmpleurum, 614. 
 Encalypta, 370. 
 Encalyptaceae, 370. 
 Encephalartos, 464, 481. 
 Enchanter's Nightshade, 
 
 630. 
 
 Encoaliaceae, 257, 259. 
 Endive, 665. 
 Endocarpon, 320, 321. 
 En-lophylleffl, 306. 
 Endophyllum, 307. 
 
792 
 
 INDEX, PART I. 
 
 Endosphaera, 236. 
 Endospoiv 88, 285. 
 English Wheat, 550. 
 Enteroinorpha, 248. 
 Entomophthoraceaa, 285, 
 
 289. 
 
 Entyloma, 308. 
 Epacridaceae, 575, 655. 
 Ephebe, 320, 321. 
 Ephedra, 463, 471, 488. 
 Ephemeraceae, 368. 
 Ephemerum, 330, 354, 365 
 
 (Fig. 249), 368 (Fig. 
 
 250). 
 
 Epichloe, 301. 
 Epilobium 507, 521 (Fig. 
 
 334), 629 (FiR. 429). 
 Epimedium, 497, 595. 
 Epipactis, 457 (Fig. 294), 
 
 566. 
 
 Epipogium, 563, 566. 
 Equisetaeeae, 379, 380, 416. 
 Equisetinae, 217, 372, 379, 
 
 416. 
 Equisetum,391 (Fig. 259), 
 
 4l6(Fig.271),4l7(Fig. 
 
 272), 419 (Fi. 273). 
 Eranthis, 526, 593. 
 Eremascus, 297 (Fig. 206), 
 
 300. 
 
 Eremocarpus, 621. 
 Eretnosphaera, 236. 
 Eremurus. 558. 
 Ergot, 295 302. 
 Erica, 517 655 (Fig. 455). 
 Ericacese, 503, 520, 575, 
 
 655. 
 
 Ericules, 575, 654. 
 Ericoideae, 655. 
 Erigeron, 663. 
 Eriobotrya, 635. 
 Eriocaulon, 552. 
 Eriocaulonaceae 538, 552. 
 Eriogonum, 597. 
 Eriophorum. 551. 
 Erodium, 612. 
 Erophila, 605. 
 Eryngium, 625. 
 Erysimum, 604. 
 Erysipheae, 276, 294, 299 
 
 (Fig. 209), 301. 
 Erythraea, 650 (Fig. 451). 
 Erythrouium, 556. 
 Erythrotrichia, 272. 
 Erythroxylaceae, 574, 613. 
 Erythroxylon, 613. 
 Escallonia, 640. 
 Escbsclioltzia, 601. 
 Euastrum, 244 (Fig. 174). 
 Eu-callitriche, 623. 
 Eucalyptus, 631. 
 
 Eucharis, 568. 
 Euchrysomyxa. 306. 
 Euchylium, 321. 
 Eucoieosporinm, 306. 
 Eudavallia. 405. 
 Eudorina, 237. 
 Eudorineae, 237. 
 Eugenia, 631. 
 Eunaycetozoa, 285. 
 Euonymus, 618. 
 Eupatorieae, 663. 
 Eupatorium, 663. 
 Euphorbia, 515, 621 (Fig. 
 
 425). 
 Euphorbiaceae, 493, 570, 
 
 574, 621. 
 
 Euphorbieas, 492, 621. 
 Euphorbiales, 574, 620. 
 Euphrasia, 645. 
 Eupodium, 383. 
 Eurhynchium, 371. 
 Euriccia, 342. 
 Eurotium, 295, 301 (Fig. 
 
 211). 
 
 Eusagus, 543. 
 Eusporaugiatae, 379, 381. 
 Eustrobus, 485. 
 Eutsuga, 4*4. 
 Evening Prim ose, 629. 
 Everuia, 321. 
 Exidia, 313. 315. 
 Exoascus, 300. 
 Exobasidium, 313, 316. 
 Exosporeee, 285. 
 Eyebright, 645. 
 
 Fabronia. 371. 
 Fabroniacese, 371. 
 Fagaceae, 573, 582. 
 Fagopyrum. 598. 
 Fagraea, 6f 1. 
 Fagus, 583. 
 False Oat-grass, 549. 
 Fatsia, 626. 
 Feather-grass, 548. 
 Fepatella, 337, 343. 
 Fenugreek, 636. 
 Ferns. 376, 378, 381. 
 Fern-Eoyal. 406. 
 Fescue-grass, 549. 
 Festuca, 547, 549. 
 Festuceae, 549. 
 Fetid Yew, 487. 
 Feuillea, 515, 516. 
 Ficoideee, 600. 
 Ficus, 578 (Fig. 379). 
 Field Poppy, 601. 
 Fig, 578. 
 Fi wort, 645. 
 Filago, 664. 
 Filices, 380, 388. 
 
 Filicina?, 217, 372 , 378,381. 
 Filicinae Eusporangiatae, 
 
 379, 381. 
 Filicinae Leptosporangi- 
 
 atse, 379, 381, 388. 
 Fimbriaria, 336, 342. 
 Fir, 481. 
 
 Fissidens, 355, 370. 
 Fissidentaceae, 370. 
 Fistulina, 313. 
 Fitzroya, 486. 
 Flag, 569. 
 Flax, 613. 
 Flax Dodder, 647. 
 Fleabaue, 664. 
 Florideas, 272. 
 Flowering Bush, 555. 
 Fly Orchis, 566. 
 Foeniculum,624(Fig. 426), 
 
 625. 
 
 Fontinalaceae, 371. 
 Fontinalis, 355, 369 (Fig. 
 
 252), 371. 
 
 Fool's-Parsley, 626. 
 Forget-me-not, 650. 
 Forsteronia, 546. 
 Forsythia, 652. 
 Fossombronia, 343, 351. 
 Fouquiera, 609. 
 Fourcroya, 568. 
 Foxglove, 644. 
 Foxtail-grass, 548. 
 Fragaria, 634. 
 Francoa, 507. 
 Frankenia, 609. 
 Frankeniaceaa, 609. 
 Frankincense-tree, 485. 
 Fraxineae, 652. 
 Fraxinus, 652 (Fig. 453). 
 Freesia, 569. 
 French Bean, 637. 
 Freycinetia, 541. 
 Fritillaria, 556. 
 Frog's Bit, 560. 
 Frullania, 343, 346 (Fig. 
 
 245),352. 
 
 Fucaceae, 257, 266. 
 Fuchsia, 507, 508 (Fig. 
 
 323), 629 (Fig. 429). 
 Fucus, 263 (Fig. 188), 264 
 
 (Figs. 189, 190, 191). 
 Fuligo, 285. 
 Fumaria, 511, 601. 
 Fumariaceae, 511,518, 573, 
 
 601. 
 
 Fumitory, 602. 
 Funaria, 325 (Fig. 232), 
 
 326 (Fig. 233), 328 
 
 (Figs. 236, 237), 369 
 
 (Fig. 251), 370 (Fig. 
 
 253). 
 
CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 793 
 
 FunariaceEe, 370. 
 Fungi, 217, 220. 273. 
 Funicularia, 3^2. 
 PurcelUria, 272. 
 Furze, 636. 
 
 Gagea, 497, 558. 
 Gaillardia, 604. 
 Galactodeudron, 578. 
 Galantbus, 493, 567. 
 Galax, 656. 
 Galegesp, 626. 
 Galeopsis, 643. 
 Galiugale, 551. 
 Galinsoga. 664. 
 Galiutn, 658. 
 Galtonia, 556. 
 Gamop^talse, 575, 641. 
 Garlic, 55S. 
 Gasteria, 558. 
 Gusterolichenes, 320. 
 Gasteromycetes, 312, 317. 
 Gaultheria, 655. 
 Gean, 633. 
 Geaster, 318. 
 Geissorhiza, 569. 
 Gelidiaceaj, 270, 272. 
 Geli.iium, 272. 
 jrelsemium, 651. 
 Genista, 636. 
 Genisteae, 636. 
 Gentian, 650. 
 Gentiana, 509 (Fig. 324), 
 
 650. 
 Gentianacess, 508, 575, 
 
 650. 
 
 Gentianales, 575, 650. 
 Gentianeae, 650. 
 Geocalyceae, 348, 352. 
 Geocalyx, 348. 
 Georgia, 370. 
 Georgiacese, 367, 370. 
 Geraniaceae, 503, 574, 612. 
 Geraniales, 574, 612. 
 Gesneraceae, 526, 575, 646. 
 Geum, 495, 634. 
 Geranium, 492, 612 (Fig. 
 
 414). 
 
 Gigartina, 272. 
 Gigartinaceae, 270, 272. 
 Gigartininas, 272. 
 Gilia, 648. 
 Ginger, 562. 
 Ginkgo,449(Fig.290),463, 
 
 471, 482, 487. 
 Githago, 599. 
 Giraudia, 257, 259. 
 Gladiolus, 510, 5G9. 
 Gladioleae, 569. 
 Glass- Wort, 587. 
 Glaucium, 601. 
 
 Glaux, 504, 653. 
 Gleditschia, 637. 
 Gieicheuia, 405. 
 Gleicheniacese, 379, 390, 
 
 405. 
 
 Globba, 562. 
 Globbeae, 562. 
 Globe-flower, 593. 
 Globe-Thistle, 661. 
 Globularia, 643. 
 GlobulariacesB 575, 643. 
 Gloeocapsa, 232 (Fig. 163). 
 Gloeosiphouia, 268, 272. 
 GloeosiphoniaceaB, 272. 
 Gloriosa, 557. 
 Gloxinia, 512, 646. 
 Glumales, 537, 538, 545. 
 Glumiflorae, 538, 545. 
 Glyceria, 549. 
 Glycine, 637. 
 Glycyrrbiza, 636. 
 Glvptostrobus, 463, 486. 
 Gnaphalium, 664. 
 Gnetaceae, 463, 480, 488. 
 Gnetum, 463, 488. 
 Gnidia, 620. 
 Goafs-beard, 665. 
 Golden Bod, 663. 
 Gold-of-pleasure, 605. 
 Gonatonema, 246. 
 Gonium, 237. 
 Goodyera, 567. 
 Gooseberry, 640. 
 Goose-foot, 587. 
 Gorse, 636. 
 Gossypium, 612. 
 Gout-Weed, 626. 
 Gracilaria, 272. 
 Graminacese, 512, 538, 
 
 545. 
 
 Granateae, 632. 
 Graudinia, 316. 
 Grape-Hyacinth, 556. 
 Grape-Viue, 619- 
 Graphidese, 322 (Fig. 231). 
 Graphis, 320, 323 (Fig. 
 
 231). 
 
 Grasses, 545. 
 Grass of Parnassus, 639. 
 Grass-Wrack, 553. 
 Grateloupia, 268, 272. 
 Grateloupiaceae, 272. 
 Gratiola, 644. 
 Great Burnet, 633. 
 Green- weed, 636. 
 Grevillea, 586. 
 Griffithsia, 272. 
 Grimaldia, 337, 342. 
 Grimmia, 370. 
 Grimm iaceae, 370. 
 Gromwell, 650. 
 
 Ground Ivy, 643. 
 Ground-nut, 637. 
 Groundsel, 663. 
 Gmbbia. 519. 
 Guaiacum, 614. 
 Guarea, 615. 
 Guelder Hose, 659, 
 Guepinia, 315. 
 Gunuera, 630. 
 Gutta-percha. 653. 
 Guttiferae, 609. 
 Guttiferales, 573. 608. 
 Guttulineae, 285. 
 Gyuinadeuia, 565 (Fig. 
 
 371). 
 
 Gymuadenieae, .^66. 
 Gymnoasceas, 300. 
 Gymnoascus, 294, 300. 
 Gymnogranime, 395. 
 Gymnogrongrus, 272. 
 Gymnomitrieae, 352. 
 Gymnomitrium, 352. 
 Gymnospermae, 217, 463. 
 Gymnosporangium, 307. 
 Gymnostomum, 369, 370. 
 Gynandropsis, 495. 
 Gynerium, 549. 
 Gyrocepbalus, 315. 
 Gyromitra, 303. 
 Gyrophora, 322. 
 
 Habenaria, 566. 
 Haemadoraceae, 504. 
 Haemanthus, 493. 
 Haematococcus, 237. 
 Haematoxylon, 637. 
 Hair-grass, 549. 
 Halarachnion, 268. 
 Halesia, 653. 
 Halidrys, 266. 
 Halirneda, 238, 240. 
 Halophila, 493, 504,520, 
 
 560. 
 
 Halophileffl, 560. 
 Haloragidaceae, 574, 630. 
 Halosphaara, 236. 
 Halymeuia, 268, 272. 
 Hamamelidaceae, 574, 641. 
 Hamamelis, 508, 641. 
 Haplomitrieaa, 351. 
 Haplornitrium, 333, 344, 
 
 351. 
 
 Haplospora, 262. 
 Hard Fern, 405. 
 Hard Wheat, 550. 
 Hare-bell, 657. 
 Hart's-tongue Fern, 405. 
 Havers, 549. 
 Hawk's-beard, 665. 
 Hawkbit, 665. 
 Hawkweed, 665. 
 
794 
 
 INDEX, PART I. 
 
 Hawthorn, 634. 
 Hazel, 581. 
 Heart's-ease, 606. 
 Heather, 655. 
 Hedera, 626. 
 Hedge-Mustard, 604. 
 Hedwigium, 370. 
 Hedychieae, 562. 
 Hedycbium, 562 (Fig. 
 
 367). 
 
 Hedysarere, 636 
 Helenioideae, 664. 
 Helenium, 664. 
 Heliamphora, 607. 
 Heiiunthemum, 606. 
 Helianthoideee, 664. 
 Heliaothus, 664. 
 Heliconia, 562. 
 Heliconieae, 561. 
 Heliotropium, 650. 
 Hellebore, 593. 
 HeUeborines, 566. 
 Helleborus, 593 (Fig. 397). 
 Helminthocladiaceae, 267, 
 
 272. 
 
 Helminthora, 272 
 Helminthostachys, 381. 
 Helvella, 303. 
 HelvelJacese, 303. 
 Hemerocallis, 492, 558. 
 Hemitelia, 391, 405. 
 Hemlock, 626. 
 Hemlock Fir, 484. 
 Hemp, 578. 
 Hemp Agrimony, 663. 
 Hemp-Nettle, 643. 
 Hemp tree, 643. 
 Henbane, 649. 
 Hepatic, 217, 324, 333. 
 Heppia, 321. 
 Heracleum, 510 (Fig. 326), 
 
 626 (Fig. 426). 
 Herb Christopher, 593. 
 Herb Paris, 659. 
 Herb Robert, 612. 
 Herminium, 566. 
 Herniaria, 600. 
 Hesperis, 604. 
 Heteropuccinia, 306. 
 Heteruromyces, 306. 
 Heuchera, 639. 
 Hexapogon 569. 
 Hibiscesj, 532, 611. 
 Hibiscus, 611. 
 Hickory, 584. 
 Hieracium, 665. 
 Hildenbrandtia, 272. 
 Himanthalia, 84, 266 (Fig. 
 
 192). 
 
 Hippocrepis, 637. 
 Hippophae, 515, 620. 
 
 Hippuris, 630 (Fig. 430). 
 Hirtelliuae, 635. 
 Holcus, 549. 
 Holly, 619. 
 Holly Fern, 405. 
 Hollyhock, 612. 
 Holosteum, 599. 
 Honesty, 605. 
 Honey-grass, 549. 
 Honeysuckle, 660. 
 Hookeria, 371. 
 Hookeriaceee. 371. 
 Hooped- Petticoat Daffodil, 
 
 568. 
 
 Hop, 578 (Fig. 380). 
 Hordeae, 549. 
 Hordeum, 550. 
 Horehound, 643. 
 Hormidium, 247. 
 Hormotila, 236. 
 Hornbeam, 315, 582. 
 Horned Pondweed, 553. 
 Horned Poppy, 601. 
 Horse Chestnut. 616. 
 Horse-radish, 605. 
 Horse-shoe Vetch, 637. 
 Horse-tail, 416. 
 Hoteia, 639. 
 Hottonia, t>54. 
 Hound's-tongue, 650. 
 House-leek, 640. 
 Houttuynia, 576. 
 Hoya, 652. 
 Humulus, 578 (Fig. 380). 
 
 Flura, 621. 
 
 Hutchinsia, COS. 
 
 Hyacinth, 556 (Fig. 362). 
 
 Hyacinthns, 556. 
 
 Hydnangium, 317. 
 
 Hydneae, 312, 316. 
 
 Hydnora, 589. 
 
 Hydnoreae, 589. 
 
 Hydnum, 316 (Fig. 221). 
 
 Hydral^s, 538, 560. 
 
 Hydrangea, 639. 
 
 Hydrangeas, 639. 
 
 Hydrilleae, 560. 
 
 Hydrocharidacea3,493,538 
 5*0. 
 
 Hydrocharis. 560. 
 
 Hydrocleis, 555. 
 
 Hydrocotyle, 625. 
 
 Hydrocotyleae. 625. 
 
 Hydrodictyace, 238, 242. 
 
 Hydrodictyon, 242. 
 
 Hydropterideae, 375, 379, 
 380, 406. 
 
 Hydrurus, 257. 
 
 H.ylocomiuiri, 371. 
 
 Hymenogaster, 313, 317. 
 
 Hymenogastre, 317. 
 
 Hymenolepis, 392. 
 Hymei olichenes, 320. 
 Hyrnenomycetes, 312,315. 
 Hynieuophyliace, 379, 
 
 381, 390, 404. 
 Hymenophyllum, 390, 404. 
 Hymenophyton, 351. 
 Hymenostomum, 3(>9 370. 
 Hyoscyamus, 509, 649. 
 Hypecoum, 601. 
 Hypenantron, 342. 
 Hypericaeeae, 518, 573, 
 
 608. 
 
 Hypericum, 608 (Fig. 411). 
 Hyphaene, 543. 
 Hypnace, 371. 
 Hypnea, 272. 
 Hypnnm, 359, 371. 
 Hypocheeris, rt65. 
 Hypochnus, 316. 
 Hypochytrieae, 286. 
 Hypocreace, 301. 
 Hypoxidoide, 568. 
 Hypoxylon, 301. 
 H\ ssop, 643. 
 Hvssopus, 643. 
 Hystenmginm, 317. 
 Hysterium, 278. 
 
 Iberis, 605. 
 
 Iceland Moss, 322. 
 
 [lex, 50-5, 619. 
 
 lllecebrace, 600. 
 
 Illecebrum, fOO. 
 
 Illicie83, 594. 
 
 Illicium, 529 (Fig. 340), 
 
 594. 
 
 Impatiens, 510, 614. 
 Imperatoria, 626. 
 Indian Cress, 614. 
 Indigo, 63. 
 Indigofera, 636. 
 Innla, 664. 
 Inuloideae, 664. 
 [pecachuana 659. 
 Iridaceaa, 492, 501, 538, 
 
 5f)8. 
 
 Fridinee, 569. 
 Iridioidesa 569. 
 Iridsea. 272. 
 Iris, 568 (Fig. 373). 
 Irish Heath, 655. 
 Isatideoe. 605. 
 Isatis, 603 (Fig. 407), 605. 
 Isnardia, 506, 030. 
 [soetacece. H79, 380, 384. 
 Isoetes, 373, 385 (Fig. 
 
 256. 
 
 Fsonandra, 504, 653. 
 Ithyphallus, 319. 
 Ivy, 626. 
 
CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 795 
 
 Ixia, 569. 
 
 Lady's Tresses, 567. 
 
 Ixieae, 569. 
 
 Lagenidiuui, 290. 
 
 Ixioidesa, 569. 
 
 Lamb's-lettuce, 661. 
 
 
 Lamb's Succory, 665. 
 
 Jacob's Ladder, 648. 
 
 Lamiales, 575, 641. 
 
 Jalap, 588. 
 
 Laminaria, 223 (Fig. 
 
 Jambosa, 631 (Fig. 432). 
 
 159), 257. 
 
 Jasione, 657. 
 
 Laminariaceae 257, 259. 
 
 Jasmineae, 652. 
 
 Lamium, 642 (Fig. 443), 
 
 Jasminum, 506 (Fig. 320), 
 
 643. 
 
 653. 
 
 Lamprothamnus, 255. 
 
 Jatropba, 621. 
 
 Landolpbia. 651. 
 
 Jerusalem Artichoke, 664. 
 
 Lapageria, 559. 
 
 Jointed Pipewort, 5o2. 
 
 Lapeyrousia, 569. 
 
 Jonquil, 568. 
 
 Lapsana, 665. 
 
 Jubulese, 350, 352. 
 
 Larch, 484. 
 
 Judas-tree, 637. 
 
 Lardizalheae, 595. 
 
 Ju^landacese, 573, 584. -. 
 
 Larix, 463. 484. 
 
 Juglans, 515, 584 (Fig. 
 
 Larkspur, 593. 
 
 389). 
 
 Lasioideae, 540. 
 
 Juncaceae, 492, 538, 559. 
 
 Lastraea, 405. 
 
 Juncaginacese, 520, 538, 
 
 Lathraea, 646. 
 
 554. 
 
 Lathyrus, 637. 
 
 Jnncus, 559. 
 
 Latiseptae, 605. 
 
 June Berry, 635. 
 
 Laudatea, 320. 
 
 Jungermanuia, 352. 
 
 Lauraceae, 519, 573, 596. 
 
 Jurjgermanniaceae, 325, 
 
 Laurencia, 272. 
 
 336, 343. 
 
 Laurocerasus, 633. 
 
 Jungermannieffl, 352. 
 
 Laurustinus, 659. 
 
 Juniper, 486. 
 
 Laurus, 596 (Fig. 400). 
 
 Juniperinas, 486. 
 
 Lavandula, 642. 
 
 Junipmis, 464, 477 (Fig. 
 
 Lavatera, 502. 
 
 302), 4^6 (Fig. 307). 
 
 Lavender, 642. 
 
 Jnsticia, 646. 
 
 Lecanora, 322. 
 
 Jute, 610. 
 
 Lecanoreaa, 322. 
 
 
 Lecidea, 320, 322. 
 
 Kalmia, 655. 
 
 Lecideaceaa, 322. 
 
 Kaultussia, 383. 
 
 Lecythidaceae, 631. 
 
 Kauri Gum-tree, 483. 
 
 Lecythidese, 631. 
 
 Kerri*, 632. 
 
 Leek, 558. 
 
 Kidney-Vetch, 636. 
 
 Leersia, 548. 
 
 Knapweed. 664. 
 
 Leguminosffi, 506, 574, 635. 
 
 Knautia, 661. 
 
 Lejeunia, 344, 352. 
 
 Knawel, 600. 
 
 Lemanea, 268, 271, 272. 
 
 Kniphofia, 558. 
 
 Lemaneaceee, 267, 272. 
 
 Knot-grass, 593. 
 
 Lemua, 541 (Fig. 350). 
 
 Kobresia. 552. 
 
 Lemuacese, 537, 538, 541. 
 
 Kceleria, 549. 
 
 Lemon, 615. 
 
 Koenigia, 598. 
 
 Lempholemma, 321. 
 
 Kobl-rabi, 604. 
 
 Lennoacese, 656. 
 
 
 Lens, 637. 
 
 Labiatifloree, 6fi4. 
 
 Lentibulariaceee, 575, 644 
 
 LabiataB, 5iO, 518, 575, 
 
 (Fig. 444), 647. 
 
 642. 
 
 Lentil, 637. 
 
 Lachenalia, 556. 
 
 Lenzites, 313, 317. 
 
 Lactarius, '274, 317. 
 
 Leontodon, 665. 
 
 Lactuca, 665. 
 
 Leonurus, 643. 
 
 Ladies' Fingers, 636. 
 
 Lepidinese, 605. 
 
 Lady Fern, 405. 
 
 Lepidium, 605. 
 
 Lady's Mantle, (133. 
 
 Lepidocaryinge, 543. 
 
 Lady's Slipper, 566. 
 
 Lepidozia, 344, 352. 
 
 Lepigonum, 599. 
 Lepiota, 312, 317. 
 Leptodon, 371. 
 Leptogium, 321. 
 Leptogonuiu, 593. 
 Leptolegnia, 293. 
 Leptophyllis, 272. 
 Leptopuccinia, 307. 
 Leptospermero, 631. 
 Leptosporangiataa, 379, 
 
 381, 388. 
 
 Leptothrichieee, 282. 
 Leptotlirix, 281, 282. 
 Leptouromyces, 307. 
 Leskea, 371. 
 Lesser Celandine, 593. 
 Lesser Dodder, 647. 
 Lettuce, 665. 
 Leuce, 585. 
 Leucobryaceae, 370. 
 Leucobryum, 367, 570. 
 Leucodon, 371. 
 Leucojuui, 493, 567. 
 Leuconostoc, 282. 
 Leucostegia, 405. 
 Lewisia, 600. 
 
 Leycesteria, 659 (Fig. 460). 
 Libertia, 669. 
 Libocedrus, 486. 
 Lichenes, 273, 319. 
 Lichina, 320, 321. 
 Liguum Vitae, 614. 
 Ligulitioras, 665. 
 Ligusticurn, 625. 
 Ligustrum, 652. 
 Lilac, 652. 
 Lilaea, 554. 
 Liliaceae, 538, 556. 
 Liliales, 538, 556. 
 Lilioideae, 556. 
 Liliuin, 505 (Fig. 319), 508 
 
 (Fig. 322), 517 (Fig. 
 
 331), 523 (Fig. 337J 
 
 556. 
 
 Lily, 499 (Fig. 313), 556. 
 Lily of the Valley, 558. 
 Lime, 615. 
 Lime-tree, 610. 
 Limnantbemum, 651. 
 Limnocharis, 555. 
 Limosella, 644. 
 Linacese, 496, 574, 613. 
 Linaria, 511, 614. 
 Ling, 655. 
 Liunaea, 660. 
 Linum, 613. 
 Liparidinse, 567. 
 Liparis, 563, 567. 
 Liquidambar, 641. 
 Liriodendron, 594. 
 Listera, 567. 
 
796 
 
 INDEX, PART I. 
 
 Lithoderma, 262. 
 Lithophyllum, 272. 
 Lithospermum, 650. 
 Lithothamnion, 272. 
 Litorella, 646. 
 Liverworts, 324,332. 
 Lloydia, 556. 
 Lobelia, 511, 657 (Figs. 
 
 457, 458). 
 
 Lobeliacese, 575, 657. 
 Loganiacese, 575, 651. 
 Loiseleuria, 655. 
 Lolium, 549. 
 Lornaria, 405. 
 Lombardy Poplar, 586. 
 Lomentacese, 605. 
 Loinentaria. 272. 
 Lonicera, 659 (Fig. 461). 
 Lonicereas, 6tiO.. 
 Loosestrife, 630. 
 Lophocolea 343, 352. 
 Lophopbytnm, 590. 
 Loquat, 635. 
 
 Lorauthace8e,525,573,589. 
 Loranthus, 590. 
 Lords and Ladies, 541. 
 Loteaj, 636. 
 
 Lotus, 594, 635 (Fig. 435). 
 Lousewort, 645. 
 Lucerne, 636. 
 Luc'ima, 504. 
 Limaria, 605. 
 Lung-wort, 650 
 Lunularia, 337, 343. 
 Lupinus, 636. 
 Luziola, 547. 
 Luzula, 559. 
 Luzuriagoideffi, 559. 
 Lychnis, 491, 503, 599 
 
 (Fig. 403). 
 Lycium, 649. 
 Lyciiothamiius, 255. 
 Lycoperdeae, 318. 
 Lycoperdou, 318 (Fig. 
 
 2^4). 
 
 Lycopersicum, 649. 
 Lycopodiacese, 374, 380, 
 
 421. 
 Lycopodin, 217, 372, 379, 
 
 421. 
 Lycopodium,421 (Fig.274), 
 
 422 (Fig. 275), 423 
 
 (Fig. 276). 
 Lycopsis, 650. 
 Lycopus, 642. 
 Lygodium, 389, 390, 406. 
 Lyrae-grass, 550. 
 Lysimacbia, 653. 
 Lythraceae, 574, 630. 
 Lythrum, 630. 
 Mace, 597. 
 
 Maclura, 578. 
 Macrocystis, 262. 
 Macrozamia, 48L 
 Madder, 658. 
 Madotbeca, 350, 352. 
 Magnolia, 496, 594. 
 Magnoliaceas, 573, 593. 
 Magnolieffl, 594. 
 Mahogany. 615. 
 Mahonia, 509, 595. 
 Maianthemum, 558, 559. 
 Maiden-hair Fern, 405. 
 Maiden-hair Tree, 487. 
 Maize, 5 17. 
 Malaxis 567. 
 Male Fern, 405. 
 Mallow, 611. 
 Malopeaa, 532, 611. v 
 Malpighiacese, 509. 
 Malus, 634. 
 Malva, 611 (Fig. 413). 
 Malvaceffi, 520, 573, 611. 
 Malvales, 573, 609. 
 Malveaa, 532. 
 Mamillaria, 629. 
 Mandarin Orange, 615. 
 Manglesia, 586 (Fig. 391). 
 Mangold, 587. 
 Mangrove, 632. 
 Manihot, 622 
 Manna-ash, 652. 
 Man Orchis, 666. 
 Maple, 571 (Fig. 375), 616. 
 Maranta, 563. 
 MarantacesD, 533, 538, 562. 
 Marasrnius, 317. 
 Marattia, 383. 
 Marattiaceaa, 374,379,380, 
 
 381, 383. 
 Marchantia,326 (Fig. 234), 
 
 327 (Fig. 235), 335 
 
 (Fig. 239), 337 (Fig. 
 
 240), 339 (Fig. 241), 
 
 343. 
 Marcbantiaceas, 329, 334, 
 
 336, 341. 
 
 Marchantieee, 336, 342. 
 Mare's tail, 630. 
 Mariposa Lily, 556. 
 Marjoram, 642. 
 Marrubium, 643. 
 Marsh Andromeda, 655. 
 Marsh Cinquefoil, 634. 
 Marsh-mallow, 612. 
 Marsh-marigold, 593. 
 Marsh-famphire, 587. 
 Marsilea, 409 (Fig. 269). 
 Marsileacese, 379, 381, 415. 
 Marsupella, 352. 
 Marvel of Peru, 588. 
 Massaria, 302. 
 
 Mastigobryum, 344, 352. 
 Mat grass, 550. 
 Matricaria, 664. 
 Matthiola, 604. 
 Manrandia, 644. 
 Mauri tia, 543. 
 May, 634. 
 Mavdeffi, 547. 
 Meadow-grass, 549. 
 Meadow-rue, 591. 
 Meadow Saffron, 558. 
 Meadow-sweet, 632. 
 Mecouopsis, 601. 
 Medicago, 636. 
 Medlar, 634. 
 Meesia, 359, 370. 
 Melaleuca, 631. 
 Mela n i psora, 306 (Fig. 
 
 216). 
 
 Melampyrum, 615. 
 Melanogaster, 3L7. 
 Melanospora, 276 301. 
 Melanthioidese, 556. 
 Melia, 615. 
 Meliacese, 574, 615. 
 Melica, 545, 549. 
 Melic-grass, 549. 
 Melilotus. 636. 
 Melissa, 643. 
 MelisineBB, 643. 
 Melittis, 643. 
 Melobesia, 267, 272. 
 Melon, 628. 
 Meuispprmaceae, 502, 516, 
 
 573, 595 (Fig. 399). 
 Menispermales, 573, 594. 
 Menispermum, 5tf5. 
 Mentba, 642. 
 Meutboideas, 642. 
 Menyantheas, 651. 
 Menyanthes,509 (Fig. 324), 
 
 651. 
 
 Mercurialis, 515, 622. 
 Menziesia, 655. 
 Mertensia, 650. 
 Merulius, 316. 
 Mesembryanthemum, 600. 
 Mesocarpete 246. 
 Mesogloea, 257. 
 vi esogloeeee, 257. 
 Mespilus, 634. 
 Metrosideros, 631. 
 Metroxylon, 543. 
 Metzgeria, 344 (Fig. 243), 
 
 351. 
 
 MetzgeriesB, 351. 
 Meum, 625. 
 Micbauxia, 498, 657. 
 Microcachrys, 487. 
 Microcycas, 481. 
 Microspongium, 257. 
 
CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 797 
 
 Micro*pora, 247. 
 Microtea, 587. 
 Microthaumion. 247. 
 Mignonette, 606. 
 MikJeella, 368. 
 Mildew, 294, 301. 
 Milfoil, 664. 
 Milium, 548. 
 Milkwort. 617. 
 Milla, 558. 
 Millet, 547. 
 Millet-grass, 548. 
 Millet-seed, 548. 
 Mimosa, 506 (Fig. 321), 
 
 638. 
 
 Mimosese, 637. 
 Mimulus, 644. 
 Mimusops, 496. 
 Mint, 642. 
 Mirabilis, 509, 588. 
 Miscbococcus, 236. 
 Mistletoe, 590. 
 Mniaceee. 370. 
 Mnium, 370. 
 Mock Orange, 639. 
 Moenchia, 599. 
 Moh.ia, 391 (Fig. 259), 
 
 406. 
 
 Molinia, 549. 
 Monadineee, 285. 
 Monandrae, 566. 
 Monardese, 643. 
 Monk's hood, 593. 
 Monoblepharis, 275, 292. 
 Monochlamyde8e,573, 575. 
 Monoclea, 348. 
 Monocotyledones, 217,462, 
 
 533. 
 
 Monogramme, 401. 
 Monospora, 267, 272. 
 Monostroma, 248. 
 Monotropa, 570, 656. 
 Monotropeas, 656 
 Monstera, 533, 540. 
 Monsteroideee, 540. 
 Montbretia, 569. 
 Montia, 600. 
 Moon-wort, 383. 
 Moor-grass 549. 
 Moraceee, 573, 577. 
 Morchella, 303. 
 Morell, 303. 
 Morello Cherry, 633. 
 Morkia, 348, 351. 
 Mortierella, 289. 
 Mortierelleee, 289. 
 Morus, 502, 577. 
 Moschatel, 659. 
 Mosses, 324, 333, 354. 
 Mother-wort, 643. 
 Mougeotia, 246. 
 
 MouM, 273, 294. 
 Mountain Ash, 634. 
 Mountain Avens, 634. 
 Mountain Sorrel, 598. 
 Mouse-tail, 592. 
 Mucor, 287 (Fig. 199), 
 
 288 (Fig. 200). 
 Mucoracese. 287, 289. 
 Mucorinee 278, 285, 287. 
 Mudwort, 644. 
 Muehlenbeckia, 598. 
 Mulberry, 577. 
 Mullein, 644. 
 
 Musa, 507, 562 (Fig 366). 
 Musaceaj, 533, 538, 561. 
 Muscari, 556 
 Musci,2l7, 324,333, 354. 
 Musciuese, 324. 
 Museae, 561. 
 Mushroom, 310. 
 Musk, 644. 
 Musk Orchis, 566. 
 Musschia, 657. 
 Mustard, 605. 
 Mutisia. 665. 
 Mutisiese, 665. 
 Mycochytridineae, 286. 
 Mycorhiza, 273. 
 Myosotis, 650. 
 Myosurus, 592. 
 Myrica, 584. 
 Myricaceae, 573, 584. 
 Mmcaria, 609. 
 Myrinia, 371. 
 Myrionema, 257, 259. 
 Myrionemeas, 257. 
 Myriophyllum, 630. 
 Myriotrichia, 257. 
 Myriotrichese, 257. 
 M \ristica, 596 (Fig. 401). 
 Myristicacese, 573, 596. 
 Myrrh, 615. 
 Myrrhis, 626. 
 Myrsinaceee, 575, 654. 
 Myrtace, 518, 574, 631. 
 Myrtales, 574, 629. 
 Myrteee, 631. 
 Myrtle, 631. 
 Myrtus, 631. 
 Mystropetalon, 590. 
 Myxochytridineae. 286. 
 Myxomycetes, 274, 280, 
 
 283. 
 Myzocytium, 291. 
 
 Naccaria, 272. 
 Naiadaceaa, 520, 533, 553. 
 Naiadeae, 553. 
 Naias, 489, 526, 553. 
 Nandina, 502, 595. 
 Nanomitrium, 368. 
 
 Narcissales, 538. 567. 
 Narcissus, 493, 568. 
 Nardia, 352. 
 NaHus, 550. 
 Narthecinm, 558. 
 Nasturtium, 604, 614. 
 Navew, 604. 
 Neckera, 371. 
 Neckeraceas, 371. 
 Nectria, 301. 
 Neesiella, 342. 
 Nelumbieas, 594. 
 Nelumbium, 594. 
 Nemaliou, 269 (Fig. 194), 
 
 272. 
 
 NemalioninaB, 272. 
 Nemastoma, 268, 272. 
 Nemastomaceee, 272. 
 Neotmea, 566. 
 Neottia, 564, 567. 
 Neottiinae, 566. 
 Nepeuthaceas, 573, 607. 
 Nepenthes, 608. 
 Nepeta, 643. 
 Nepetese, 643. 
 Nephrodiuni, 389(Fig.257), 
 
 391, 405. 
 Nereocystis, 262. 
 Nerium, 526, 527, 651. 
 New Zealand Flax, 558. 
 Nicotiaua, 514 (Fig. 329), 
 
 649. 
 
 Nidularia, 318. 
 Nidulariese. 318. 
 Nigella, 593. 
 Nigritella, 563, 566. 
 Nipa, 544. 
 Nipplewort, 665. 
 Nitella, 255. 
 Nitellese, 255. 
 Nitophyllum, 272. 
 Nopalea, 629. 
 Nostoc, 252 (Figs. 164, 
 
 165). 
 
 Nostocaceaa 233, 321. 
 Noteroclada, 351. 
 Notochlsena, 392. 
 Notorhizeaa, 604. 
 Nothoscordum, 558. 
 Notothylas, 352. 
 Nucumentaceee, 605. 
 Nuphar, 594. 
 Nutmeg, 597. 
 Nux Vomica, 651. 
 Nyctaginaceae, 494, 573, 
 
 588. 
 
 Nyctalis, 313, 317. 
 Nymph sea, 524,594. 
 Nymp eeaceffi, 570, 573, 
 
 594. 
 Nymphaeinee, 594. 
 
798 
 
 INDEX, PART I. 
 
 Oak, 303, 582. 
 Oat, 549. 
 Oat-grass, 5 '9. 
 Ocblandra, 5 17. 
 Ocimoideee, 642. 
 Ociiuum, 642. 
 Octaviana 313, 317. 
 Odontia, 316. 
 (EdogouiacesB, 243, 248. 
 (Edotfonium, 249 (Fig. 
 
 178). 
 
 (Enanthe, 625. 
 (Enothera, 629. 
 Oil Palin, 544. 
 Old Man's Beard, 591. 
 Olea, 508, 652. 
 Oleacese, 501, 575, 652. 
 Oleiueee, 652. 
 Olfersia, 405. 
 Olibanum, 615. 
 Oligoporus, 313. 
 Olive, 652. 
 Olpidiopsis, 286. 
 Olpidium, 286. 
 Omphalaria, 321. 
 Onagraceee, 506, 520, 574, 
 
 629. 
 
 Oncidiinse, 564. 
 Oncidium, 567. 
 Oncocyclus, 569. 
 Onion, 553. 
 Onobrychis, 637. 
 Onoclea, 390, 405. 
 Onouis, 636. 
 Onopordoa, 664. 
 Oocardium 236. 
 Oocystis, 236. 
 Oomycetes, 276, 280, 290. 
 Opegrapha, 321. 
 Operculatae. 342. 
 Ophioglossaceee, 374, 379, 
 
 381. 
 
 Opbioglossum, 374, 381. 
 Opbiopogon, 559. 
 Opbiopogonoideaa, 559. 
 Ophrydinee, 566. 
 Opbrys, 566. 
 Opuntia. 629. 
 Orache, 587. 
 Orange. 615. 
 Orchidaceee, 501, 511, 538, 
 
 563. 
 
 Orchidales, 538, 563. 
 Origanum, 642. 
 Orcbis, 56 1 (Figs. 370, 
 
 371), 566. 
 
 Ornithogalum, 556. 
 Ornitbopteris, 392. 
 OrobanchaceaB, 575, 646. 
 Orobanche, 646. 
 Orobus, 637. 
 
 Orontium, 533, 540. 
 Orpine, 640. 
 Ortboclada, 547. 
 Orthoploceee, 604. 
 Orthospermese, 625. 
 Orthotrichaceffi, 370. 
 Ortbotricbum, 359, 362, 
 
 370. 
 
 Oryza, 548. 
 Oryze, 548. 
 Oscillaria, 231 (Fig. 164). 
 Oscillariacese 233. 
 Osmanthus, 652. 
 Osmunda, 388, 394 (Fig. 
 
 261), 406. 
 Osmundaceee, 379, 381, 
 
 406. 
 
 Ostr.va, 582. 
 Ouvirandra, 554. 
 Oxalidacete, 496, 574, 613. 
 Oxalis, 613. 
 Ox-eye Daisy, 664. 
 Oxlip, 653. 
 Oxycedrus, 486. 
 Oxycoccos, 656. 
 Oxymitra, 336, 342. 
 Oxyria, 598. 
 
 Pacbygone, 595. 
 Pachygoneae, 595. 
 Padina, 263. 
 Peeonia, 521, 593. 
 Pseonieee, 593. 
 Paigle, 653. 
 Palaqnium, 653. 
 Pallavicinia, 351. 
 Palm, 543. 
 Palmaceffi, 538, 542. 
 Palmales, 538, 542. 
 Palmella, 236. 
 Palmodactylon, 236. 
 Palmodict.yon, 236. 
 Palmophyllum, 236. 
 Palmyra," 543. 
 Pampas Grass, 549. 
 Pancratium, 568. 
 Pandanace, 515, 538, 
 
 541. 
 
 Pandanus, 541. 
 Pandorina, 237 (Fig. 167). 
 Pandorinese, 237. 
 Panicese, 547. 
 Panicoide, 547. 
 Panicum, 546 (Fig. 354). 
 Pannaria, 321. 
 Pansy, 606. 
 Panus, 317. 
 Papaver, 601. 
 Papaveracees, 501, 573, 
 
 600. 
 Papaw, 627. 
 
 Papayacese, 574, 627. 
 Paper Mulberry, 578. 
 Papilionese, 511, 518, 635. 
 Papyrus, 551. 
 Pariana, 547, 550. 
 Parietales, 573, 600. 
 Parietaria, 577. 
 Paris, 559 (Fig. 364). 
 Parlour Palm, 559. 
 Parmelia, 321. 
 Parnas>ia, 526, 639 (Fig. 
 
 440). 
 
 Parnasfeif SB, 639. 
 Paronychieae, 512, 600. 
 Parrot'ia, 641. 
 Parsley, 626. 
 Parsley Fern, 405. 
 Parsnip, 626. 
 Passiflora, 627. 
 Pussifloraceffi, 574, 627. 
 Passiflora) es, 574, 626. 
 Passion Flower, 627. 
 Pastinaca, 626. 
 Patchouli, 642. 
 Patersonia, 569. 
 Paulownia, 644. 
 Pea, 637. 
 Peach, 633. 
 Pearl-wort, 599. 
 Pear-tree, 634. 
 Pediastrum, 242. 
 Pedicularis, 645. 
 Pelargonium, 510, 612. 
 Pellia, 332, 351. 
 Peltigera, 320, 321. 
 Peltolepis, 338, 342. 
 Pelvetia, 266. 
 Penicillium, 278, 296 (Fig. 
 
 205), 301. 
 Penny-cress, 605. 
 Pentstemon, 644. 
 Peony, 593. 
 
 Peperomia, 576 (Fig. 376). 
 Peplis, 630. 
 Pepper, 576. 
 Periploca, 652. 
 PerisporiacesB, 301. 
 Perisporieffi, 301. 
 Periwinkle, 651. 
 Peronospora, 278, 292. 
 Peronosporacese, 278, 291. 
 Persimmon, 653. 
 Personales, 575, 643. 
 Pertusaria, 320. 
 Peruvian Lily, 568. 
 Petaloide, 538, 553. 
 Petalophyllum, 343, 347, 
 
 351. 
 
 Petasites, 492, 663. 
 Petrocelis, 272. 
 Petroselinum, 625. 
 
CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 799 
 
 Petunia, 509 (Fig.324),649. 
 Peucedaneaa, 626. 
 Peucedanum, 626. 
 Peyssonnelia, 272. 
 Peziza, 299, 303 (Fig. 213). 
 Pezizaceee, 303 (Fig. 213). 
 Phacidiese, 303. 
 Phacotus, 237. 
 Pheeogaroae, 257,262. 
 Pheeopbycese, 221, 255. 
 Pheeophila, 248. 
 Phseosporeee, 257, 258. 
 Pbajiinffl, 564. 
 Phalarideae, 548. 
 Pbalaris, 548. 
 Phalloideaa, 313, 319. 
 Phallus, 319 (Fig. 225). 
 Pbanerogamia, 217, 431. 
 Phascacea9, 3(58. 
 Phascum, 330, 368. 
 Phaseoleaj, 637. 
 Pbaseolus, 637. 
 Pheasant's Eye, 592. 
 Pheasant's Eye Narcissus, 
 
 568. 
 
 Phegopteris, 405. 
 Philadelpbeae. 6*9. 
 Philadelphus, 506, 639. 
 Pbillyrea, 652. 
 Philodeudroidese, 540. 
 Phlebia, 313. 
 Phleum, 548. 
 Phlox, 648. 
 Phoenix, 534 (Fig. 345), 
 
 543, 544 (Fig. 352). 
 Pholiota, 313. 
 Phormiutu, 558. 
 Photinia, 635. 
 Phragmicoma, 347, 352. 
 PhraKmidiopsis, 307. 
 Pbragmidium, 307. 
 Phragmites, 549. 
 Pbucagrostis, 553. 
 Phycoehromaceffi, 221,231. 
 Phycomyces, 289. 
 Phycomycetes, 275, 280, 
 
 285. 
 
 Phyllantbeaa, 621. 
 Phyllanthus, 622. 
 Phylliscium, 321. 
 Phyllitis, 257, *62. 
 Phyllobium, 236. 
 Phyllocactus, 629. 
 Phyllocladus, 463, 487. 
 Phyllodoce, 655. 
 Pbyllog ossum, 421. 
 Phyllophora, 272. 
 Phyllosiphoi,, 238, 240. 
 Phyllosiphonese, 240. 
 Pbyllospadix, 553. 
 Physalis, 649. 
 V. S. B 
 
 Pbyscia, 321. 
 Physcomitrella, 368. 
 Pbyscomitrellacea3, 368. 
 Physcomitrium, 370. 
 Physoderma, 310. 
 Physoschoenus, 553. 
 Physospermum, 626. 
 Physostigma, 637. 
 Physurea3, 567. 
 Pbytelephantinaa, 544. 
 Phytelephas, 544. 
 Pbyteuma, 657. 
 Phytolacca, 587 (Fig. 393). 
 Phytolaccace, 513, 573, 
 
 587. 
 Phytophthora. 291 (Figs. 
 
 201, 202, 203), 292. 
 Phytophysa, 240. 
 Picea. 472 (Fig. 298), 473 
 
 (Fig. 299), 476 (Fig. 
 
 301), 484. 
 Picris, 665. 
 Pilacre, 315. 
 Pilacreae, 312, 315. 
 Pilobolus, 289. 
 Pilostyles, 589. 
 Pilularia, 406, 410, 415. 
 Pimpernel, 653. 
 Pimpinella, 625. 
 Pinaster, 485. 
 Pine, 485. 
 Pinea, 485. 
 
 Pine-apple, 561 (Fig. 365). 
 Pinguicula, 647. 
 Pink, 599. 
 
 Pinnularia, 258 (Fig. 184). 
 Pinoidese, 483. 
 Pinus, 468 (Fig. 297), 475 
 
 (Fig. 300), 482 (Fig. 
 
 304), 485. 
 Piper, 526, 576. 
 Piperacese, 573, 576. 
 Piperales, 573, 576. 
 Piptocephalidese, 287. 
 Piptocephalis, 289. 
 Pistacia, 618. 
 Pistachio-Kernel, 618. 
 Pistia, 541. 
 Pistillaria, 315. 
 Pistioideffi, 541. 
 Pisum, 637. 
 Pithophora, 241. 
 Pittosporacese, 574, 640. 
 Pittosporum, 641. 
 Plagiochasma, 336, 342. 
 Plagiochila,346 (Fig. 244), 
 
 352. 
 
 Plane, 638. 
 
 Planoblastro, 291, 292. 
 Plantaginaceffi, 575, 645. 
 Plantago, 646 (Fig. 446). 
 
 Plantain, 562, 646. 
 Plasmodiophoreee, 285. 
 Plataimceas, 574, 638. 
 Platanus, 638 (Fig. 438). 
 Platycerium, 389, 405. 
 Platycodon, 657. 
 Platyphylleae, 352. 
 Pleospora, 276, 278, 301. 
 Pleuridium, 368. 
 Pleurocarpee, 371. 
 Pleurocladia, 262. 
 Pleurococcaceas, 236. 
 Pleurococcus, 236 (Fig. 
 
 166). 
 
 Pleurorhizeee, 604. 
 Plocamium, 267, 272. 
 Plumbagiuacese, 575, 654. 
 Plumbago, 654. 
 Plume-thistle, 664. 
 Poa, 549. 
 Podalyrieffi, 636. 
 Podocarpe, 469, 487. 
 Podocarpus, 465, 487. 
 Podophyllum, 595. 
 Podosphffira, 298. 
 Podostemaceae, 574, 641. 
 Pogonatum, 370. 
 Pogoniris, 569. 
 Pogostemon, 642. 
 Poinsettia, 493. 622. 
 Poletaoniacese, 575, 648. 
 Polemoniales, 575, 647. - 
 Polemonium, 648. 
 Polybotrya, 390, 405. 
 Polycarpeae, 600. 
 Polycarpon, 600. 
 Polychidium, 321. 
 Polygala, 617 (Fig. 419) 
 Polygalaceaj, 520, 574, 61 1 . 
 Polygonace, 501, 573, 
 
 597. 
 
 Polygonatum, 558. 
 Polygonum. 489,500,597 
 
 (Fig. 402). 
 Polyides, 272. 
 Polypetalffi, 573, 591. 
 Polyphagus, 286. 
 Polypodiaceas, 379, 381, 
 
 391, 404. 
 
 Polypodies, 391, 405. 
 Polypodium, 388, 389 (Fig. 
 
 257), 400 (Fig. 267), 
 
 405. 
 
 Polyporese, 312, 316. 
 Polyporus, 313, 316 (Fig. 
 
 221). 
 
 Polysaccum, 318. 
 Polysipbonia, 224 (Fig. 
 
 161), 268, 272. 
 Polystigma, 296, bOl. 
 Polytrichaceae, 357, 370. 
 3 F 
 
800 
 
 INDEX, PART I. 
 
 Polytrichum, 359, 371 
 
 (Fig. 254). 
 
 Poraese, 634 (Fig. 433). 
 Pomegranate, 632. 
 Pondweed, 554. 
 Pontederia, 559. 
 Pontederiacese, 538, 559. 
 Pooideae, 548. 
 Poplar, 585. 
 Poppy, 601. 
 Populus, 585. 
 Porocyphus, 321. 
 Porotbelium, 316. 
 Porphyra, 272. 
 Porphyrinae, 272. 
 Portugal Laurel, 633. 
 Portulaca, 600. 
 Portulacese, 573, 600. 
 Posidonia, 553. 
 Posidoniese, 553. 
 Potamogeton, 554. 
 Potamogetoneas, 553. 
 Potato Plant, 649. 
 Potentilla, 495, 634. 
 Potentilles3,633(Fig.433). 
 Poteriese, 633. 
 Poterium, 633. 
 Pothoideae, 540. 
 Pothos, 540. 
 Pot Marigold, 664. 
 Pottia, 370. 
 Pottiaceee, 370. 
 Preissia, 336, 343. 
 Prickly Samphire, 626. 
 Primrose, 653. 
 Primula, 508 (Fig. 322), 
 
 654 (Fig 454). 
 Primulaceaa, 489, 504, 575, 
 
 653. 
 
 Priraulales, 575, 653. 
 Privet, 652. 
 Prosopanche, 589. 
 Prosopis, 589. 
 Protea, 586. 
 
 Proteaceae, 513, 573, 586. 
 Proteales, 573, 586. 
 Protobasidiomycetes, 312, 
 
 315. 
 
 Protococcacese, 236, 321. 
 Protococcoidero, 235, 236. 
 Protomyces, 308. 
 Pruneee, 632 (Fig. 433). 
 Prunella, 643. 
 Prunophora, 633. 
 Prunus, 632. 
 Psalliota, 312, 317. 
 Psathyrella, 313. 
 Pseudocallitriche, 623. 
 Pseudolarix, 484. 
 Pseudoneura, 348. 
 Pseu do solan ea3, 644. 
 
 Pseudostrobus, 485. 
 Pseudotsuga. 484. 
 Psilotaceffi, 375, 3RO, 425. 
 Psilotum, 373, 425. 
 Ptelea, 515, 614. 
 Pteridese, 405. 
 Pteridium, 405. 
 Pteridopbyta, 217, 372. 
 Pteris, 389 (Fig. 257), 397 
 
 (Fig. 262), 398 (Fig. 
 
 264), 405. 
 Pterocladia, 272. 
 Pterostegia, 598. 
 Ptilideae, 352. 
 Ptilidium, 352. 
 Ptilota, 272. 
 Puccinia, 278, 304 (Figs. 
 
 214, 215). 
 Pucciniopsis, 307. 
 Puffball, 310, 318. 
 Pulicaria, 664. 
 Pulmonaria, 650. 
 Pumpkin, 628. 
 Punctaria, 257. 
 Punctariese, 257. 
 Punica, 632. 
 Punicaceae, 632. 
 Purple Beech, 583. 
 Purslane, 600. 
 Pycnophycus, 266. 
 Pylaiella, 257, 259. 
 P.yrenolichenes, 320. 
 Pyrenomycetes, 301. 
 Pyrola, 655 (Fig. 455), 656. 
 Pyrolacese, 503, 575, 656. 
 Pyronema, 276, 298 (Fig. 
 
 207). 
 
 Pyrus, 634. 
 Pythium, 291, 292. 
 
 Quaking-grass, 549. 
 Queltia, 568. 
 Quercus, 583 (Fig. 388). 
 Quillaieae, 635. 
 Quince, 634. 
 
 Eacoblenna, 321. 
 
 Eacodium, 321. 
 
 Eacomitrium, 370. 
 
 Eadiola, 613. 
 
 Eadish, 605. 
 
 Eadula, 335 (Fig. 239), 
 
 343, 352. 
 Eafflesia, 589. 
 Eafflesiese, 589. 
 Eamalina, 322. 
 Eameya, 595. 
 Eamondia, 646. 
 Eampion, 657. 
 Eanales, 573, 591. 
 Eanunculacero, 573, 591. 
 
 Eanunculus, 592 (Fig. 
 
 397). 
 
 Eapa, 604. 
 Eape, 605. 
 Eaphanese, 605. 
 Raphanus, 603 (Fig. 407), 
 
 604. 
 
 Eaphia, 543. 
 Eaphiolepis, 635. 
 Easpberry, 634. 
 Eattle, 645. 
 Eavenala, 561. 
 Eeaumuria, 609. 
 Eeboulia, 337, 342. 
 Eed-wood ine, 485. 
 Eeed, 549. 
 Eeed-grass, 548. 
 Eeed-mace, 542. 
 Eeindeer Moss, 322. 
 Eeseda, 507, 511, 606. 
 Eesedacese, 573. 606. 
 Eest-harrow, 636. 
 Eestiacese, 538, 552. 
 Eestiales, 538, 552. 
 Ehamnacese, 498, 501, 574, 
 
 618. 
 
 Ehamnus, 618 (Fig. 421). 
 Eheum, 598. 
 Ehinanthoidese, 644. 
 Ehinanthus, 645. 
 Ehinopetalum, 511. 
 Khipidonema, 320, 321. 
 Ehipsalis, 628. 
 Ehizocarpse, 379, 406. 
 Ebizoclonium, 241. 
 Ebizomorpha, 314. 
 Ehizophora, 632. 
 Ehizophoracese, 574. 632. 
 lihizophyllidacese, 272. 
 Ehizophyllis, 272. 
 Ehizopogon, 317, 318 (Fig. 
 
 224). 
 
 Ehodocbiton, 644. 
 Ehododendroidese, 655. 
 Ehododendron, 655. 
 Ehodomela, 272. 
 Ehodomelacese, 272. 
 Ehodophyceee, 221, 267. 
 Ehodophyllidaceee, 272. 
 Ehodophyllis, 272. 
 Ehodoraceaa, 503. 
 Ehodotypus, 632. 
 Ehodymenia, 272. 
 Ehodymeniaceea. 272. 
 Ehodymeninse, 272. 
 Rhubarb, 598. 
 Ehus, 618 (Fig. 420). 
 Ehytiphlcea, 272. 
 Ehytisma, 303. 
 Eibes, 509 (Fig. 324), 640 
 
 (Fig. 441). 
 
CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 801 
 
 Bibesiacese, 508. 
 Bibesiese, 524, 640. 
 Bibwort, 646. 
 Eiccardia, 351. 
 Kiccia, 335 (Fig. 239), 342 
 
 (Fig. 242). 
 
 Biccieaa, 329, 336, 341. 
 Eicciella, 342. 
 Bicciocarpus, 336, 341. 
 Bice-plant, 548. 
 Bichardia, 490, 541. 
 Bicinus, 516, 519 (Fig. 
 
 333), 622. 
 
 Biella, 343. 344, 351. 
 Biellese, 351. 
 BivulariaceaB, 233, 321. 
 Bobinia, 636. 
 Boccella, 321. 
 Bock-rose, 606. 
 Bodgersia, 639. 
 Bcestelia, 309. 
 Eomulea, 568. 
 Boridulu, 608. 
 Rosa, 503 (Fig. 316), 632. 
 Eosaceas, 495, 570,574, 632. 
 Bosales. 574, 632. 
 Bose, 632. 
 
 Boseffi, 632 (Fig. 433). 
 Bosemary, 643. 
 Bosmarinus, 643. 
 Bowan-tree, 634. 
 Eubia, 658 (Fig. 459). 
 Bubiaceae, 575, 658. 
 Bubiales, 575, 658. 
 Bubus, 633 (Fig. 434). 
 Budbeckia, 664. 
 Bue, 614. 
 Buellia, 646. 
 Eumex, 516, 598. 
 Buppia, 554. 
 Buscus, 558. 
 Bnsh 559. 
 
 Bussula, 318 (Fig. 223). 
 Bust, 273, 303. 
 Buta, 614. 
 Butecese, 503, 526, 574, 
 
 614. 
 
 Buteee. 510, 614. 
 Bye, 550. 
 Eye-grass, 549. 
 
 Sabina, 486. 
 Saccharomyces, 300 (Fig. 
 
 210). 
 
 Saccharomycetes, 300. 
 Saccbarura, 548. 
 Saccogyna, 347, 352. 
 Safflower, 664. 
 Saffron Crocus, 568. 
 Sagina, 599. 
 Sagittaria, 555. 
 
 Sago, 543. 
 Sainfoin, 637. 
 Salad Burnet, 633. 
 Salicacese, 512, 573, 585. 
 Salicornia, 587. 
 Salisburia, 487. 
 Salix, 585 (Fig. 390). 
 Sallow, 585. 
 Salpiglossidese, 649. 
 Salpiglossis, 649. 
 Salsafy, 665. 
 Salsola, 587. 
 Salt-wort, 587. 
 Salvia, 519, 642, 643. 
 Salvinia, 373. 408 (Fig. 
 
 268), 415 (Fig. 270). 
 Salviuiacese, 379, 381, 
 
 406, 412, 415. 
 Sambucese, 659. 
 Sambucus, 659. 
 Samolus, 654. 
 Samphire, 626. 
 Sandal-wood, 589. 
 Sand-wort. 599. 
 Sanguisorba. 504, 633. 
 Sanicula, 625. 
 SaniculeaB, 625. 
 Sansevieria, 5-39. 
 Santalaceae, 525, 573, 
 
 589. 
 
 Santalales, 573, 589. 
 Santalum, 589. 
 Sapindaceae, 527, 574, 
 
 616. 
 
 Sapindales, 574, 615. 
 Sapindus, 616. 
 Saponaria, 599. 
 Sapotacea, 496, 004,575, 
 
 653. 
 
 Saprolegnia, 294. 
 Saprolegoiaeea, 275, 279, 
 
 290, 293. 
 Sarcina, 282. 
 Sarcophyte, 519, 590. 
 Sarcoscyphus, 352. 
 Sargassum, 266. 
 Sarothamnus, 636. 
 Sarracenia, 607 (Fig. 
 
 410). 
 
 Sarraceniaceee, 573, 607. 
 Sarraceniales, 573, 607. 
 Sarsaparilla, 559. 
 Satureia, 642. 
 Satureine, 642. 
 Saururaceae, 573, 576. 
 Saussurea, 664. 
 Sauteria, 336, 342. 
 Savia, 621. 
 Savoy-cabbage, 604. 
 Saw-wort, 664. 
 Saxegotbea, 487. 
 
 Saxifraga, 509 (Fig. 324) r 
 
 639. 
 Saxifragacero, 501, 508, 
 
 574, 638. 
 
 Saxifragales, 574, 638. 
 Saxifragese, 638. 
 Scabiosa, 662 (Fig. 463). 
 ScandiceeB. 626. 
 Scandix, 626. 
 Scapania, 343, 352. 
 Scaphospora, 262 
 Scarborough Lily, 567. 
 Scarlet-runner, 637. 
 Scenedesmus, 236. 
 Scheuchzeria, 554. 
 Schistostega, 355, 369, 370. 
 Schistostegaceae, 370. 
 Schizaea, 389, 406. 
 Schizaeaceffl, 379, 381, 
 
 391, 406. 
 
 Schizanthus, 649. 
 Schizomycetes, 233, 274, 
 
 280. 
 
 Schizopepon, 516. 
 Schizophyta, 233, 283. 
 Schizostylis, 569. 
 Schizymenia, 272. 
 Schlerochloa, 549. 
 Schoenus, 551. 
 Schollera, 656. 
 Sciadium, 236. 
 Sciadopitys, 463, 485. 
 Scilla, 556. 
 Scilleffi, 556. 
 Scinaia, 272. 
 Scindapsus, 533, 540. 
 Scirpoideaa, 492, 550. 
 Scirpus, 551 (Fig. 357). 
 Scitaminese, 533, 538, 561. 
 Scleranthus, 504, 600. 
 Scleroderma, 318. 
 Sclerodermeae, 318. 
 Sclerotinieee, 274. 
 Scolopendrium, 391, 392 
 
 (Fig. 260), 405. 
 Scorpion-grass, 650. 
 Scorzonera, 665. 
 Scots Pine, 485. 
 Scottish Asphodel, 557. 
 Screw-pine, 542. 
 Scrophularia, 645. 
 Scrophulariacese, 501, 506, 
 
 575, 644 (Fig. 444), 
 645 (Fig. 445). 
 
 Scurvy-grass, 605. 
 Scutellaria, 643. 
 Scutellarie, 643. 
 Scytonema, 321. 
 Scytonemacese, 233, 821. 
 Scytonemese, 233. 
 Scytosiphon, 257, 259. . 
 
802 
 
 INDEX, FART I. 
 
 Scytosiphoneae, 257. 
 Sea-blite, 587. 
 Sea-buckthorn, 620. 
 Sea-bugloss, 650. 
 Sea-heath, 609. 
 Sea-kale, 605. 
 Sea-lavender, 654. 
 Sea-milkwort, 654. 
 Sea-purslane, 599. 
 Sea-rocket, 605. 
 Sebacina, 313, 315. 
 Secale, 550. 
 Sedge, 552. 
 Sedum, 505 (Fig. 318), 
 
 507, 640 (Fig. 442). 
 Selaginella, 427 (Fig. 
 
 277), 4>8 (Fig. 278), 
 
 429 (Fig. 279). 
 Selaginellaceae, 374, 380, 
 
 426. 
 
 Seligeria, 370. 
 Seligeriacese, 370. 
 Si j mpervivum, 640. 
 Sendtnera, 352. 
 Senebiera, 605. 
 Senecio, 663. 
 Senecionideaa, 663. 
 Sensitive Plant, 638. 
 Sequoia, 466, 485. 
 Serapiadese, 566. 
 Serratula, 664. 
 Service-tree, 635. 
 Seseli, 625. 
 Seselinese, 625. 
 Sesleria, 549. 
 Shaddock, 615. 
 Shalot, 558. 
 Sheep's-bit, 657. 
 Shepherd's Purse, 605. 
 Sherardia, 658. 
 Shield Fern, 405. 
 Shortia, 656. 
 Sibbaldia 634. 
 Sibthorpia, 645. 
 Sideroxylon, 504. 
 Silaus, 625. 
 Silene, 504, 599. 
 Sileneae, 599. 
 Siler, 625. 
 Siliculosae, 605. 
 SiliquosjB, 604. 
 Silver Fir, 484. 
 Silver-weed, 634. 
 Simarubaceee, 574, 615. 
 Simethis, 558. 
 Sinapis, 605. 
 Sinningia, 646. 
 Siphoblastae, 291, 292. 
 Siphonacese, 238. 
 Siphonia, 622. 
 Siphouocladus, 242. 
 
 Siphonoideae, 235, 238. 
 Sirogonium, 245. 
 Sirosiphon, 321. 
 Sirosiphoneae, 233. 
 Sison, 625. 
 Sistostrema, 316. 
 Sisymbriese, 604, 
 Sisymbrium, 604. 
 Sisyrinchiuaa, 569. 
 Sisyriuchium, 569. 
 Sium, 625. 
 Skullcap, 643. 
 Sloe, 633. 
 Small Eeed, 548. 
 Smilacoideae, 559. 
 Smilax, 536, 559. 
 Smut, 273, 303, 308. 
 Smyruieae, 626. 
 Smyrmum, 626. 
 Snake's Head, 556. 
 Snapdragon 644. 
 Snowberry, 660. 
 Snowdrop, 567. 
 Snowdrop-tree, 653. 
 Soap-wort, 599. 
 Solanaceae, 575, 648. 
 Solaneae, 649. 
 Solanum, 649. 
 Soldanella, 653. 
 Solidago, 663. 
 Solomon's Seal, 558. 
 Sonchus, 665. 
 Sophoreae, 636. 
 Sorastrum, 242. 
 Sorbus, 634. 
 Sordaria, 276, 301. 
 Sorophoreae, 285. 
 Sorrel, 598. 
 Sow-bread, 653. 
 Sow-thistle, 665. 
 Spadiciflora), 538, 539. 
 Spanish Chestnut, 583. 
 Spanish Iris, 569. 
 Sparassis, 315. 
 Sparaxis, 569. 
 Sparganium, 542. 
 Spartiua, 549. 
 Spearwort, 593. 
 Specularia, 657. 
 Speedwell, 645. 
 Spelt, 550. 
 Spergula, 503 (Fig. 317), 
 
 599. 
 
 Spergularia, 599. 
 Spermaphyta, 431. 
 Spermatochneae, 257. 
 Spermatochnus, 257, 259. 
 Spermothamnion,270(Fig. 
 
 195), 272. 
 
 Sphacelaria, 257, 259. 
 Sphacelarieae, 257, 259. 
 
 Sphaerella, 301. 
 Sphaeriaceae, 301. 
 Sphaerita, 286. 
 Sphaerobolus, 318. 
 Sphaerocarpus, 330 (Fig* 
 
 238), 343, 351. 
 Sphaerococcacess, 272. 
 Sphffirococcus, 272. 
 Sphaerophorus, 322. 
 Sphasroplea, 241. 
 Sphaeropleaa, 241. 
 Sphagnaceaa, 328, 330, 
 
 363. 
 Sphagnum, 364 (Figs. 247, 
 
 248). 
 
 Spider Orchis, 566. 
 Spilonema, 321. 
 Spinach, 537. 
 Spinacia, 587. 
 Spindle-tree, 618. 
 Spiraea, 632. 
 Spiraeeas, 632. 
 Spirantheaa, 566. 
 Spiranthes, 567. 
 Spirillum, 281 (Fig. 196). 
 Spirocbaete, 281. 
 Spirogyra, 245 (Fig. 175). 
 Spirolobeaa, 604. 
 Splachnacesa. 370. 
 Splachnum, 356, 370. 
 Sporangiophorae, 289. 
 Sporochneae, 257, 259. 
 Sporochnus, 257. 
 Sporochytrieae, 286. 
 Sporodinia, 289. 
 Spring Snowflake, 567. 
 Spruce Fir, 484. 
 Spurge, 622. 
 Spurrey, 599. 
 Squamariaceae, 269,272. 
 Squinancy-wort, 658. 
 Stachydeae. 643. 
 Stachys, 643. 
 Stangeria, 465, 481. 
 Stapelia, 652. 
 Staphylea, 618. 
 Staphyleacete, 574, 618. 
 Star Anise, 594. 
 Star Daffodil, 568. 
 Star-fruit, 555. 
 Star-grass, 559. 
 Star of Bethlehem, 556. 
 Statice, 654. 
 Staurastrum, 244. 
 Stegocarpae, 361, 368. 
 Stellaria, 509, 599. 
 Stellatae, 658. 
 Stemonitis, 285. 
 Stenolobeae, 621. 
 Stephanosphaera, 237. 
 Sterculiaceae, 573, 610 
 
CLASSIFICATION AND NOMENCLATURE. 
 
 803 
 
 Sterculiese, 611. 
 Sterenm, 816. 
 Sternbergia, 567. 
 Sticta, 320. 322 (Figs. 
 
 229, 230). 
 Stictyosiphon, 257. 
 Stigeocloniurn, 247. 
 Stilophora, 257. 
 Stilophorese, 257. 
 Stinging Nettle, 577. 
 Stipa, 545, 548. 
 Stitch-wort, 599. 
 St. Dabeoc's Heath, 655. 
 St. John's Wort, 608. 
 Stocks, 604. 
 Stone Pine, 485. 
 Stork's-bill, 612. 
 Strap-wort, 600. 
 Stratioteee, 560. 
 Stratiotes, 560. 
 Strawberry, 634. 
 Strawberry-tree, 655. 
 Streblonema, 257. 
 Strelitzia, 561. 
 Streptocarpus, 646. 
 Streptosolen, 649. 
 Striaria, 257, 259. 
 Striarieee, '257. 
 Strobus, 485. 
 Struvea, 242. 
 Strychnos, 651. 
 Sturmia. 567. 
 Stylidium, 518. 
 Stypocaulon, 224 (Fig. 
 
 160), 257. 
 
 Styraceas, 575, 653. 
 Styrax, 653. 
 Suaeda, 587. 
 Subularia, 605. 
 Succisa, 661. 
 Su ar-cane, 548. 
 Sugar Piue, 485. 
 Sumach, 618. 
 Summer Savory, 642. 
 Summer Snowflake, 567. 
 Sundew, 608. 
 Sunflower, 664. 
 Sweet Basil, 642. 
 Sweet Bay, 596. 
 Sweet Briar. 632. 
 Sweet Flag, 540. 
 Sweet Orange, 615. 
 Sweet Potato, 647. 
 Swietenia, 615. 
 Sycamore, 616. 
 Sychnosepalum, 502, 595. 
 Symphoricarpus, 660. 
 Sympliyogyua, 345, 351. 
 Symphytum, 650. 
 Symplocarpus, 533, 540. 
 Syncephalis, 289. 
 
 Synchytrium, 236. 
 Syngeneticee, 257. 
 Syriuga, 652. 
 Syringese, 652. 
 
 Tacamahaca, 586. 
 Taccaceee. 538, 560. 
 Tseda, 485. 
 Tagetes, 664. 
 Tamaricacese, 573, 609. 
 Tamarindus, 637. 
 Tamarisk, 609. 
 Tamarix, 609. 
 Tamus, 560. 
 Tanacetum, 663 (Fig. 466), 
 
 664. 
 
 Tansy, 664. 
 Taon'ia, 263. 
 Tapioca, 622 
 Taraxacum, 663 (Fig. 466), 
 
 665. 
 
 Targionia, 336, 342. 
 TavgionifB, 342. 
 Tassel Poudweed, 554. 
 Taxese, 467, 487. 
 Taxodineae, 466, 485. 
 Taxodium, 463, 486. 
 Taxoidese, 467, 482, 487. 
 Taxus, 463, 487 (Fig. 
 
 308). 
 
 Tavloria, 370. 
 Tea, 609. 
 Teak-tree, 643. 
 Teazle, 661. 
 Tecorna, 646. 
 Tectona, 643. 
 Teesdalia, 605. 
 Telegraph-plant, 637. 
 Tenagocharis, 555. 
 Ternstrcenaia. 496. 
 Terustroemiacese, 573, 609. 
 Tesselina, 342. 
 Tetraphis, 370. 
 Tetraspora, 236. 
 Tetrodontium, 370. 
 Tetroncium, 554. 
 Teucrium, 643. 
 ThjilamifloruB, 573, 591. 
 Thalictrum, 591. 
 Thallophyta, 217. 220. 
 Thamnidium, 289. 
 Thea, 609. 
 Thelephora, 316. 
 Thelephorese, 312, 316. 
 Thelidium, 321. 
 Theobroma, 611. 
 Theophrasta, 654. 
 Thermopsis, 636. 
 Thesinm, 589, 590 (Fig. 
 
 395). 
 Thistle, 664. 
 
 Thlaspi, 603 (Fig. 407), 
 
 6C5. 
 
 Thlaspideee, 605. 
 Thorn-apple, 649. 
 Thrift, 654. 
 Thuidiaceee, 371. 
 Thuidium, 356, 371. 
 Thuja, 463, 486 (Fig. 
 
 306). 
 
 Thujopsis, 486. 
 Thujopsidinge, 486. 
 Thunbergia, 646. 
 Thyme, 642. 
 Tbymeleeaceea, 513, 574, 
 
 619. 
 
 Thymus, 642. 
 Tiarella, 639. 
 Tiger Flower, 569. 
 Tiger-lily, 556. 
 Tigridia, 569. 
 Tigridinae, 569. 
 Tilia, 610 (Fig. 412). 
 Tiliaceae. 573, 609. 
 Tillaea, 640. 
 Tilletia, 308 (Fig. 218). 
 Tilopteridaceae, 257, 262. 
 Tilopteris, 262. 
 Timothy-grass, 548. 
 Tmesipteris, 373, 425. 
 Toad-flax, 644. 
 Toadstool, 310. 
 Tobacco-plant, 649. 
 Toddalieae, 614. 
 Todea, 406. 
 Tofieldia, 558. 
 Tolypella, 254 (Fig. 182). 
 Tolypellopsis, 255. 
 Tomato, 649. 
 Tomentella, 313. 
 Tonka Bean, 637. 
 Tordylium, 626. 
 Torilis, 626. 
 Torreya, 463, 487. 
 Tortula, 370. 
 Tradescantia, 512, 556. 
 Tragopotron, 665. 
 Trapa, 630. 
 Treacle mustard, 604. 
 Tree-fern. 405. 
 Tree of Heaven, 615. 
 Tremella, 312 (Fig. 220). 
 Tremellineae, 312, 315. 
 Trentepohlia, 248, 321. 
 Trichocolea, 344, 352. 
 Trichomanes, 373, 389 
 
 (Fig. 257), 404. 
 TrichomanoideaB, 352. 
 Trichonema, 568. 
 Trichospheeria, 302. 
 Trichostomum, 370. 
 Tricycla, 588. 
 
804 
 
 INDEX, PART I. 
 
 Trientalis, 654. 
 Trifolieae, 6*6. 
 Trifolium, 636. 
 Triglochin, 554 (Fig. 359). 
 Trigonella, 636. 
 Trillium, 559. 
 Trinia, 625. 
 Triphragmium, 307. 
 Triticum, 535 (Fig. 346), 
 
 550. 
 
 Triionia, 569. 
 Trollius, 496, 519, 593. 
 Tropteolaceee, 574, 614. 
 Tropoluui,513 (Fig. 328), 
 
 614. 
 
 Truffle, 301. 
 Tsuga, 466, 484. 
 Tuberaceae, 301. 
 Tubulitiorse, 662. 
 Tuburoinia, 308. 
 Tulip, 556. 
 Tulipa, 556. 
 Tulipese, 556. 
 Tulip-tree, 594. 
 Tulostoma, 313, 317, 319. 
 Turk's Cap Lily, 656. 
 Turmeric, 562. 
 Turnip, 605. 
 Tussilago, 664. 
 Tutsans, 608. 
 Twayblade, 567. 
 Typha, 542. 
 
 Typbaceae, 537, 538, 542. 
 Typhula, 275, 316. 
 
 Udotea, 240. 
 Ulex, 636. 
 Ulmaceae, 573, 579. 
 Ulmus, 579 (Fig. 381). 
 Ulocolla, 313. 
 Ulothricaceae, 243, 246. 
 Ulothrix, 247 (Figs. 176, 
 
 my; 
 
 Ulva, 2l8u 
 Ulvneea}, 243, 248. 
 Umbellales, 574, 623. 
 Umbellif eras, 491, 508, 570, 
 
 574, 624. 
 Uinbilicaria, 322. 
 Uinbraculnm, 315, 351. 
 Umbrella Pine, 485. 
 Uncinula, 299 (Fig. 209). 
 Uredineae, 303, 305 (Fig. 
 
 215), 310. 
 Uredo, 308. 
 Urocystis, 310. 
 Uromyces, 307. 
 Uromycopsis, 307. 
 Urospora, 241. 
 Urtica 502, 577 (Figs. 377, 
 
 378). 
 
 Urticaceaa, 573, 577. 
 Urticales, 572, 573, 576. 
 Usuea, 323 (Kig. 230). 
 Ustilaginese, 287, 303, 308. 
 Ustilago, 309 (Fig. 218). 
 Utricularia, 647 (Fig. 447). 
 Uvularia, 557. 
 
 Vacciniaceaa, 575, 656. 
 Vaccinium, 517 (Fig. 332), 
 
 655 (Fig. 455), 656. 
 Valerian, 660 (Fig. 462). 
 Valeriana, 512, 660. 
 Valerianaceae, 512, 575, 
 
 660. 
 
 Valerianella, 492, 661. 
 Valisneria, 515, 560. 
 Valisneriese, 560. 
 Vallota, 567. 
 Valonia, 242. 
 Valonieae, 242. 
 Vampyrelleae, 285. 
 Vauda, 567. 
 Vanilla. 567. 
 
 Vascular Cryptogams, 372. 
 Vaucheria, 239 (Fig. 169). 
 VaucherieaB, 240. 
 Venus' Fly-trap, 608. 
 Venus' Looking-glass, 657. 
 Veratrum, 515, 557. 
 Verbascum, 644. 
 Verbena, 643. 
 Verbenaceae, 575, 643. 
 Vernal grass, 548. 
 Veronica, 506, 644 (Figs. 
 
 444, 445). 
 Verrucaria, 320. 
 Verrucarieae, 321, 323. 
 Vervain, 643. 
 Vetch, 637. 
 Viburnum, 659. 
 Vicia, 511 (Fig. 327), 571 
 
 (Fig. 374), 637. 
 Vicieae, 637. 
 Victoria, 594. 
 Vidalia, 272. 
 Villarsia, 651. 
 Vinca, 509 (Fig. 324), 526, 
 
 651. 
 
 Viola, 517, 606 (Fig. 409). 
 Violaceae, 524, 573, 606. 
 Violet, 606. 
 Viper's Bugloss, 650. 
 Virgilia, 636. 
 Virginian Creeper, 619. 
 Viscaria, 503 (Fig. 317). 
 Viscum, 515, 590 (Fig. 
 
 396). 
 
 Vitex, 643. 
 
 Vitis, 526, 619 (Fig. 422). 
 Vittaria, 401. 
 
 Voitia,'368. 
 Voitiaceae, 368. 
 Volvaria, 317. 
 Volvocaceae, 237. 
 Volvocoideae, 235, 237. 
 Volvox, 238 (Fig. 168). 
 
 Wahlenbergia, 657. 
 Wall-flower, 604. 
 Wall-Pellitory, 577. 
 Wall-Hue, 405. 
 Walnut, 584. 
 Water-Chestnut, 630. 
 Water-cress, 604. 
 Water Crowfoot, 592. 
 Water-Hemlock, 626. 
 Water-Lily, 594. 
 Water Lobelia, 658. 
 Water Melon, 628. 
 Water-Milfoil, 630. 
 Water-Pepper, 609. 
 Water Plantain, 554. 
 Water-Purslane, 631. 
 Water-Soldier, 560. 
 Water- Violet, 654. 
 Waterwort, 609. 
 Watsonia, 569. 
 Watsonieae, 569. 
 Waxflower, 652. 
 Webera, 370. 
 Weeping Willow, 585. 
 Weigelia, 660. 
 Weisia, 370. 
 Weisiaceae, 370. 
 Wellingtonia, 485. 
 Welwitschia, 463, 488. 
 Weymouth Pine, 485. 
 Wheat, 535 (Fig. 346), 546 
 
 (Fig. 355). 
 Whin, 636. 
 White Beam, 635. 
 White Poplar, 585. 
 White Spruce, 484. 
 White Thorn, 634. 
 Whitlow-grass, 605. 
 Whortleberry, 656. 
 Wild Balsam, 614. 
 Wild Garlic, 558. 
 Wild Oats, 549. 
 Wild Parsnip, 626. 
 Wild Plum, 633. 
 Wild Rosemary, 655. 
 Wild Sage, 6l3. 
 Willow, 585. 
 Willow Herb, 629. 
 Winter Aconite, 593. 
 Winter Cherry. 649. 
 Winter-green, 655. 
 Wistaria, 637. 
 Witch-hazel, 641. 
 Woad, 605. 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 805 
 
 Wolffia, 541. 
 Wolf's-bane, 593. 
 Wood Germander, 643. 
 Wood Lily, 559. 
 Woodruff, 658. 
 Woodsia, 391, 405. 
 Wood-sorrel, 613. 
 Woody Nightshade, 649. 
 Wormwood, 664. 
 Woundwort, 643. 
 Wrangelia. 271, 272. 
 Wych Elm, 579. 
 
 Xanthorrsea, 558. 
 Xenodochus, 307. 
 Xiphion, 569. 
 Xylaria, 276, 301. 
 Xylophylla, 622. 
 Xyridaceae, 538, 555. 
 
 Xyris, 556. 
 
 Yam, 560. 
 
 Yarrow, 664. 
 
 Yeast, 273, 300 (Fig. 210). 
 
 Yellow Flag, 569. 
 
 Yellow Loosestrife, 654. 
 
 Yellow Monkey-flower, 
 
 644. 
 
 Yellow Kocket, 604. 
 Yellow Welsh Poppy, 601. 
 Yew, 487. 
 Yucca, 535, 558. 
 
 Zamia, 481. 
 Zanardinia, 257, 261. 
 Zannichellia, 553. 
 Zannichellieae, 553. 
 Zantedeschia, 541. 
 
 Zanthoxyleee, 614. 
 Zanthoxylum, 614. 
 Zea, 515 ,536 (Fig. 347), 547. 
 Zephyranthes, 567. 
 Zingiber, 562. 
 Zingiberaceee, 538, 562. 
 Zingiberese, 562. 
 Zinnia, 664. 
 Zonaria, 263. 
 Zostera, 515, 553. 
 Zosterese, 553. 
 Zygnema, 245 (Fig. 174). 
 Zygnemese, 244. 
 Zygodon, 370. 
 Zygogonium, 246. 
 Zygomycetes, 275, 280, 
 
 285. 
 Zygophyllaceae, 503, 574, 
 
 614. 
 
 PAET II. MOBPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 Abietic anhydride, 709. 
 Absorption, 667, 668, 692. 
 
 law of, 693. 
 
 of gases, 695. 
 
 of liquids, 693. 
 Accumbent, 604. 
 Acheiie, 530. 
 Achlamydeous, 512. 
 Acicular, 463. 
 Acids, organic, 708, 728. 
 Acrocarpous, 356. 
 Acropetal development of members, 
 
 23, 45, 52, 62, 497. 
 
 Acropetal development of tissue, 177. 
 Acrotonous 564. 
 Actinomorphic symmetry, 507. 
 Acuminate, 54. 
 Acute, 54. 
 
 Acyclic flower, 496 (Fig. 311), 592. 
 Adhesion, 36, 518. 
 Adnate, 516. 
 Adventitious members, 19,21, 189, 223, 
 
 396. 
 
 .Ecidiospore, 305. 
 Ecidium, 276. 303 (Fig. 214). 
 Aerial roots, 63, 158, 209, 682. 
 Estivation, 59. 
 Agamogenic, 771. 
 Air-bladders, 266. 
 Air-cavity, 156 (Fig. 120), 165. 
 Air-chamber, 130, 165, 338 (Fig. 241). 
 Alffi, 617 (Fig. 419), 635 (Fig. 435). 
 Albuminates, 707. 
 Albumins, 707. 
 Albuminous seed, 458. 
 
 Albumoses, 707. 
 
 Alburnum, 199, 677. 
 
 Aleuron, 112 (Figs. 68, 69), 459, 707, 
 
 727. 
 
 Aldehydes, 708. 
 Alkaloids, 707, 728. 
 Allylic isothiocyanate, 709. 
 Alternation of generations, 3, 217, 
 
 220, 230, 289, 324, 372, 431. 
 Aluminium, 710. 
 Ambisporangiate flower, 77, 432, 494, 
 
 515. 
 
 Amentum, 493, 579. 
 Amides, 707, 720, 725, 727. 
 Ammonia, 712, 721. 
 Amoeboid movement, 69, 283. 
 
 stage, 283. 
 
 Amphigastria, 64, 334. 
 Amphithecium, 189, 331 (Fig. 239), 
 
 360. 
 
 Amplexicaul, 47. 
 Amygdalin, 708, 724. 
 Amylin, 708. 
 Amylolytic enzyme, 724. 
 Amyloplastie, 98. 
 Amyloses, 708. 
 Anabolism, 667, 669, 716. 
 Anaerobia, 723. 
 Analogous, 2. 
 Anatomy, 89. 
 
 Anatropous ovule, 437 (Fig. 284). 
 Androeeium, 494, 516. 
 Androgynous, 338. 
 Androphyte, 3. 
 Androspore, 249. 
 
806 
 
 INDEX, PART II. 
 
 Anemophilous, 453, 471. 
 Angiocarpous gonidiophore, 312. 
 Augustiseptal silicula, 604 (Fig. 407). 
 Aunual plants, 461. 
 
 rings, 197 (Fig. 149), 207. 
 shoots, b9. 
 
 Annular vessels, 104 (Fig. 58). 
 Annulus. 310 (Fig. 222), 368 (Fig. 251), 
 
 393 (Fig. 258). 
 Anterior, 499. 
 Anthela, 493. 
 
 Anther, 432 (Fig. 281), 516. 
 Antheridial cell, 448 (Fig. 289). 
 Antheridiophore, 84, 337, 363, 376. 
 Antheridium, 3, 83, 189 ; 229, 235, 238 
 
 (Figs. 168, 169), 248 (Figs. 178, 
 
 179), 253 (Fig. 181), 266 (Fig. 
 
 191), 268 (Figs. 194, 195) : 3<26 
 
 (Figs. 233, 234) : 376 (Fig. 266), 
 
 413 (Fig. 270) : 450. 
 Anthocyanin, 114. 
 Anthophore, 494, 599 (Fig. 403). 
 Anticlinal, 145. 
 Antipetilous, 498. 
 Antipodal cells. 451 (Fig. 292). 
 Antisepalous, 498. 
 Apex, 7, 17. 
 Apical cell, 18 (Figs. 7, 8), 147 (Figs. 
 
 112, 113, 114). 
 
 Aplanogamete, 225, 256, 291. 
 Apocarpous, 521, 529 (Fig. 340). 
 Apogamy, 87, 378, 768, 772. 
 Apophysis of Moss-capsule, 361. 
 
 of Pinus, 485. 
 
 Apospory, 87, 363, 378, 768, 772. 
 Apostrophe, 686 (Fig. 469). 
 Apothecium, 299. 
 Apposition, growth by, 762. 
 Aqueous tissue, 161, 164. 
 Archegoniophore, 84, 337 (Fig. 240), 
 
 363, 376, 402. 414. 
 Archegonium, 3,83, 2L8 ; 326 (Fig. 235) ; 
 
 376, 400 (Fig. 267), 415 (Fig. 
 
 270); 452, 476 (Figs. 301, 302). 
 Archesporium, 73, 189, 331, 360, 393, 
 
 433, 437. 
 
 Archicarp, 83, 220, 276, 296 (Fig. 207). 
 Aril (or arillus), 459, 470, 437 (Fig. 
 
 308), 594, 596 (Fig. 401), 621. 
 Arillode, 459, 618. 
 Arista, 546. 
 
 Arrangement of lateral members, 23. 
 Ascidium, 57 (Fig. 37), 607 (Fig. 410), 
 
 Ot/(J 
 
 Ascocarp, 75, 88, 275, 294 (Figs. 206, 
 
 209, 211). 
 
 Ascogenous hyphse, 299 (Fig. 211). 
 Ascogonium, 277, 296 (Figs. 208, 211). 
 Ascospore, 278, 298 (Figs. 209, 211). 
 Ascus, 88, 278, 298 (Figs. 206, 209, 
 
 Asexual formation of spores, 69, 769. 
 
 reproductive cells, 2, 68. 
 
 reproductive organs, 70. 
 Ash, 694, 709. 
 Asparagin, 707, 724, 727. 
 Assimilation, 667, 674, 716. 
 Asymmetry, 13, 512 (Fi. 328). 
 Auricula, 347 (Fig. 245). 
 Auriculate, 48 (Fig. 29). 
 Autcecious, 307. 
 Automatism, 667, 670. 
 Autumn- wood, 198 (Fig. 150). 
 Auxospore, 258. 
 Awn, 461, 546 (Fig. 355), 612. 
 Axial cylinder, 171, 682. 
 Axial placentation, 525. 
 Axil, 81. 
 
 Axillary branching, 31. 
 Axile placentation, 524 (Fig. 338). 
 Axis, 7, 23, 27 (Fig. 15). 
 Azygospore, 246, 288, 290, 771. 
 
 Bacca, 532. 
 
 Bacterioids, 713. 
 
 Balsam, 138. 
 
 Bark, 211 (Fig. 156). 
 
 Basal wall, 15, 329, 340, 360, 372, 383, 
 
 397, 419, 424, 429, 442. 
 Base, 7. 
 Basidiogonidium, 278, 312 (Figs. 219, 
 
 220, 223). 
 
 Basidium, 311 (Figs. 219, 220, 223). 
 Basifixed anther, 516. 
 Basipetal development, 23. 
 Basitonous, 564. 
 Bast, 170 (Fig. 133), 181, 199 
 hard, 199. 
 soft, 199. 
 Bastard, 457. 
 
 Bast-fibres, 133, 181, 199 (Fig. 148). 
 Benzoic aldehyde, 709. 
 Berry, 532. 
 
 Biciliate cells, 102, 326, 380. 
 Biennial plants, 462. 
 Bifurcation, 33. 
 Bijugate, 52, 407. 
 Bilabiate, 511, 641. 
 Bilateral symmetry, 8. 
 Bilocular anther, 519. 
 Bipinnate, 52. 
 Biseriate perianth, 512. 
 Bisexual, 87. 
 Biternate, 53. 
 Blade of leaf, 45, 49. 
 Bleeding, 701. 
 Bloom on plants, 155. 
 Body, 1, 89. 
 
 septate or unseptate, 89, 220, 
 
 222, 273. 
 Bordered pits, 104 (Figs. 62, 63), 129 
 
 (Fig. 88), 204. 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY, 
 
 807 
 
 Bostrychoid dichotomy, 33 (Fig. 18). 
 Bostryx, 36, 492. 
 Bract, 59, 79, 493. 
 
 function of, 691. 
 Bracteole, 79, 493. 
 Branches, adventitious, 21, 190, 345. 
 
 development of, 184, 186. 
 Branching, 5. 
 
 axillary, 31. 
 
 diuhotomous, 19 (Fig. 8), 33. 
 
 extra-axillary, 31. 
 
 lateral, 19, 34. 
 
 of leaf, 51, 186. 
 
 of root. 62, 186 (Fig. 142). 
 
 of shoot, 31, 184. 
 
 Branch-systems, 32 (Figs. 18, 19, 20). 
 Bromine, 716. 
 Bud, 20 (Fig. 9), 31, 59. 
 
 adventitious, 190. 
 Budding, 767. 
 Bud-scales, 20, 59. 
 Bulb, 40 (Fig. 22), 68. 
 Bulbil, 40, 68, 254, 355, 425. 
 Bundle, vascular, 170. 
 
 bicollateral, 175. 
 
 cauline, 171. 
 
 closed, 177. 
 
 collateral, 174. 
 
 common, 171. 
 
 concentric, 173, 175 (Fig. 134). 
 
 conjoint, 170. 
 
 cortical, 173. 
 
 medullary, 173. 
 
 open, 177. 
 
 phloem-, 137, 173, 175. 
 
 xylem-, 175. 
 
 longitudinal course of, 171. 
 
 structure of, 180. 
 
 termination of, 183. 
 Bundle-sheath (endodermis), 182 (Fig. 
 
 139). 
 Bursicula, 565. 
 
 Calcium, 714. 
 
 carbonate, 108, 729. 
 
 oxalate, 108 (Fig. 65), 113 (Figs. 
 
 71, 72): primary and secondary, 
 
 729. 
 Callus, 21, 190, 214 (Fig. 158). 
 
 of sieve-tubes, 136 (Figs. 97, 99). 
 Calyculus (epicalyx), 496. 
 Calyptra, 88, 328 (Fig. 237), 333, 362, 
 
 364 (Fig. 248), 371 (Fig. 254), 
 
 425. 
 
 Calyx, 79, 494. 
 Cambium, 177, 181 (Fig. 139), 191 
 
 (Figs. 143, 145), 194, 198 (Fig. 
 
 149), 202. 
 
 Cambium-ring, 191 (Fig. 144), 200, 204. 
 Campanulate, 514. 
 Campylotropous ovule, 437 (Fig. 284). 
 
 Cane-sugar, 70S, 724, 727. 
 Caoutchouc, 709. 
 Capillitium, 284 (Fig. 198), 319. 
 Capitate hairs, 64. 
 Capitulate raceme, 491. 
 Capitulum of Charoideae, 252. 
 
 inflorescence, 490 (Fig. 309), 661 
 
 (Fig. 466). 
 Capsule of Bryophyta, 71, 329, 334, 
 
 360 (Figs. 248-254). 
 Capsule, a fruit, 531 (Figs. 342, 343). 
 Carbohydrates, 708, 727. 
 Carbon, 710. 
 Carbonaceous food, 273. 
 Carbon dioxide, absorption of, 710, 716. 
 
 evolution of, 725, 726, 728. 
 Carcerule, 530, 532, 611 (Fig. 413). 
 Carina, 635 (Fig. 435). 
 Carinal cavity, 153, 418 (Fig. 273). 
 Carnivorous plants, 689, 710, 729. 
 Carpel, 78, 432, 468, 521. 
 Carpellary flower, 432, 515. 
 Carpogamy, 225, 275. 
 Carpogonium, 228, 268 (Fig. 194). 
 Carpophore, 523 (Fig. 3il). 
 Carposporangium, 88, 230, 269 (Figs. 
 
 194, 195). 
 
 Carpospore, 69, 229, 267, 271. 
 Caruncle, 460, 621. 
 Caryopsis, 530, 545. 
 Catabolism, 667, 669, 721. 
 Cataphyllary leaves (Cataphylls), 58, 
 
 373, 417, 691. 
 
 Catkin, 493, 581 (Figs. 384-389). 
 Caudicle, 564. 
 Caulicle, 412. 
 
 Cauline vascular bundles, 171, 206, 683. 
 Cell, 4, 89, 93 (Fig. 46). 
 Cell-contents, 108. 
 Cell division, 119 (Fig. 78). 
 Cell-formation, 114 (Figs. 74-85). 
 Cell-plate, 123 (Figs. 81-83). 
 Cell-sap, 93, 113. 
 Cell-wall, 90, 93, 103, 105. 
 
 growth of, 103, 762. 
 Cellular structure, 90. 
 Cellulose, 93, 103, 106, 708, 727. 
 Centrosome, 97. 
 Centrosphere, 95, 97 (Fig. 49). 
 Chalaza, 436 (Fig. 284). 528. 
 Chalazogamic fertilisation, 528. 
 Chalk-glands, 137 (Fig. 100), 730. 
 Chambered fibres, 133. 
 
 ovary, 522 (Fig. 336). 
 Chemical composition of plants, 706. 
 Chemical effects of light, 673, 717. 
 Chemiotaxis, 755, 774. 
 Chlamydogonidium, 274, 289, 313. 
 Chlorine, 713. 
 Chlorophyll, 97. 
 
 -corpuscle, 100. 
 
INDEX, PART II. 
 
 Chlorophyll, development of, 673. 
 
 fuuctiou of, 717. 
 
 -spectrum of, 717. 
 Chloroplastids, 97 (Figs. 50, 52, 53). 
 
 functions of, 98. 
 
 movements of, 686 (Fig. 469). 
 Chloroplastin, 97. 
 Chlorotic, 713. 
 Chromatin, 96. 
 
 Chromatophore, 97 (Fig 3 . 54, 55). 
 Chromoplastid, 97, 101 (Fig. 56). 
 Chromosomes, 119, 771, 781. 
 Cincinnal dichotomy, 33. 
 Cincinnus, 36, 492. 
 Cilium, 69, 102, 115 (Figs. 74, 75), 
 
 736. 
 
 Circinate vernation, 60, 390, 480, 742. 
 Circulation of protoplasm, 733. 
 Citric acid, 708. 
 Classification, 216. 
 Claw, 514 (Fig. 330). 
 Cleistogamous flowers, 453, 607, 613. 
 Cleistothecium, 299 (Fig. 209). 
 Climbing plants, 43, 685, 743, 759. 
 Clinostat, 752, 760. 
 Closed vascular bundles, 177. 
 Cobalt, 710. 
 Coccus, 529, 611, 621. 
 Coenobium, 92, 222, 243. 
 Ccenocyte, 69, 90, 99 (Fig. 53), 142. 
 Cohesion, 36 (Fig. 21), 514, 518, 521. 
 Coleoptile, 535 (Fig. 346). 
 Coleorhiza, 446, 535 (Fig. 346). 
 Collateral vascular bundles, 173 (Fig. 
 
 133). 
 
 Collenchyma, 132 (Fig. 91), 160. 
 Colleter, 144, 691. 
 Colony, 222. 
 Colouring-matters, 708. 
 Columella, 284, 331, 361 (Figs. 251, 
 
 253). 
 
 Column, 495. 
 
 Combined effects of stimuli, 757. 
 Common bundles, 171, 206. 
 Companion-cell, 137 (Fig. 97), 679. 
 Compass-plants, 749. 
 Compound inflorescences, 490, 492. 
 Compound leaves, 52. 
 Concentric arrangement of bundles 
 
 175 (Fig. 134). 
 
 Conceptacle, 85, 264, (Figs. 189, 190). 
 Conditions of movement. 760. 
 Conducting tissue of style, 523. 
 
 -sheath, 705. 
 
 Conduplicate vernation. 60, 407, 742. 
 Cone, 77, 417, 422, 427, 467, 482 
 
 (Figs. 304, 305). 
 Conical root, 63. 
 Coniferin, 708. 
 Coniin, 7U7. 
 Conjoint bundle, 170. 
 
 Conjugation, 80, 118 (Fig. 76), 237 
 
 (Fig. 167), 244 (Fig. 173), 215 
 
 (Fig. 175). 
 
 Conjunctive tissue, 151, 166, 200. 
 Connate, 48 (Fig. 29). 
 Connective, 516. 
 Contact-stimuli, 742. 
 Contorted vernation, 60. 
 Contractile vacuoles, 736. 
 Contraction of protoplasm, 764. 
 Convolute vernation, 60, 742. 
 Copper, 716. 
 Cordate, 54. 
 Cork, 210 (Fig. 155). 
 Corm, 40, 68. 
 Cormophyte, 5. 
 Corolla, 79, 494. 
 Corona, 66, 515. 
 
 of Characess, 252. 
 Cortex, 159, 207, 213. 
 Corymb, 493. 
 Costee, 624. 
 Cotyledon, 16, 45, 57, 372, 444 (Figs. 
 
 286, 287), 475 (Fig. 300), 533, 
 
 570 (Fig. 374). 
 Crenate, 54. 
 Cross-fertilisation, 774. 
 Cross-pollination, 453. 
 Cruciate tetragonidia, 267. 
 Crystalloids, 111 (Fig. 68), 707. 
 Crystals, 108 (Fig. 65), 113 (Figs. 71, 
 
 72). 
 
 Culm, 44. 
 Cupule, 66, 328, 337 (Fig. 240), 340, 
 
 360. 
 of Phanerogams, 528, 583 (Figs. 
 
 387, 388). 
 Cuticle, 155. 
 
 Cuticularisation of cell-wall, 106, 132. 
 Cutin, 106. 
 Cyathium, 622. 
 Cycle, 26. 
 Cyclic flower, 496. 
 Cyclosis, 251, 732. 
 Cyme, 492. 
 
 helicoid, 36, 492. 
 scorpioid, 36, 492. 
 Cymose branching, 34 (Fig. 19). 
 
 inflorescence, 492. 
 Cypsela, 530. 
 Cystidium, 312 (Fig. 223). 
 Cystocarp, 75, 88, 226, 267 (Fig. 194). 
 (Jystolith, 108 (Fig. 66), 577, 729. 
 Cyto-hyaloplasm, 95. 
 Cytoplasm, 95, 117. 
 Cytoplastin, 95. 
 
 Daily periodicity of growth, 745 (Fig. 
 
 480). 
 
 Day-position, 689. 
 Deciduous, 22. 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 809 
 
 Decussate arrangement of leaves, 25. 
 Deferred shoots, 32. 
 Definite inflorescences, 492. 
 Definitive nucleus, 451. 
 Dehiscence of anther, 520. 
 
 of fruits, 531. 
 
 of sporangium, 74. 
 Dehiscent fruits, 460, 531. 
 Dentate, 54. 
 
 Dermatogen, 146 (Fig. 110), 149, 154. 
 Desmogen, primary, 151, 176. 
 
 secondary, 202, 203 (Fig. 153). 
 Development of body. 13. 
 
 of branches of roots, 186. 
 
 of leaves, 185. 
 
 of secondary members, 184. 
 
 of hairs, 188. 
 
 of emergences, 188. 
 
 of reproductive organs, 188. 
 
 of adventitious members, 189. 
 Dextrin, 708, 724. 
 Dextrose, 72 i. 
 Diadelphous, 518. 
 Diageotropism, 685, 688, 751. 
 Diagonal plane of flower, 499. 
 Diagram, floral, 498. 
 Diaheliotropism, 685, 688, 748. 
 Diaphragm, 414, 430. 
 Diarch stele, 179, 386, 428. 
 Diastase, 724. 
 Diastole, 736. 
 Dichasial cyme, 492. 
 Dichasium, 35 (Fig. 20), 492. 
 Dichlamydeous, 512. 
 Dichogamy, 454. 
 Dichotomy, 19 (Fig. 8), 33 (Fig. 18), 
 
 184 (Fig. 140). 
 Diclinous, 87, 325, 358. 
 Dicyclic, 501. 
 Didynamous, 518. 
 Differentiation of tissues, 92, 175, 177, 
 
 202. 
 
 Digestive sac, 188. 
 Digitate, 381. 
 Dimorphic plant, 3. 
 Dimorphism, 455. 
 Dioecious, 86, 325. 
 Diplotegium, 531. 
 Diplostemonous, 501. 
 Directive effect of light, 674, 747 (Fig. 
 481). 
 
 of gravity, 751. 
 Disc, 526. 
 
 Dissected leaves, 54. 
 Dissemination of seed, 460. 
 Dissepiment, 522. 
 
 false or spurious, 522, 603. 
 Dissimilar secondary members, 31. 
 Dissipation of energy, 731. 
 Distichous arrangement, 29 (Fig. 16). 
 Distractile anther, 517 (Fig. 331). 
 
 Distribution of water and other sub- 
 stances, 700. 
 of organic plastic substances, 705. 
 
 Diurnal and nocturnal positions, 689 
 (Figs, 470, 471). 
 
 Diurnal sleep of leaves, 689. 
 
 Divergence, 24. 
 
 Dormant buds, 32. 
 
 Dorsal suture, 521. 
 
 Dursifixed anther, 517 (Fig. 331. 
 
 Dorsiveutral arrangement, 29 (Fig. 17). 
 
 Dorsiventrality, 9 (Fig. 2), 11 (Fig. 3), 
 13, 510 (Figs. 326, 327). 
 
 Double flowers, 502. 
 
 Drepanium, 36, 492. 
 
 Drupe, 532 (Fig. 344). 
 
 Drupel, 532. 
 
 Duct, 139. 
 
 Duplication, 501. 
 
 Duramen, 199, 677. 
 
 Dwarf-males, 249 (Fig. 178). 
 
 Dwarf -shoots, 39. 
 
 Ectoplasm, 95. 
 
 Egg-apparatus, 451 (Fig. 292). 
 
 E later, 74, 331, 418. 
 
 Elementary constituents of the food 
 of plants, 710. 
 
 Eleutheropetalous, 514. 
 
 Eleutherophyllous, 514. 
 
 Eleutherosepalous, 514. 
 
 Emarginate, 54. 
 
 Embryo, 13. 
 
 Embryo-cell, 441. 
 
 Embryogeny, 13. 
 
 heteroblastic, 14, 254, 271. 
 holoblastic, 13, 441. 
 homoblastic, 13. 
 meroblastic, 13, 254, 441, 471. 
 of Bryophyta, 329, 334, 360: of 
 Charoideee, 254 (Fig. 182): of 
 Gymnosperms, 471 (Figs. 298, 
 299) : of Phanerogams, 440 
 (Dicotyledons, Fig. 286; Mono- 
 cotyledons, Fig. 287) : of Pteri- 
 dophyta, 372, 397 (Figs. 262, 
 263, 264), 412, 423 (Figs. 275, 
 276), 429. 
 
 Embryonal tubes, 472 (Fig. 299). 
 
 Embryonic branches, 68, 255. 
 
 Embryo-sac, 70,438(Figs.2bo,291,292). 
 
 Emergences, 64, 66, 188. 
 
 Emulsin, 724. 
 
 Enantioblastic, 552. 
 
 Endocarp, 460, 529 (Fig. 344). 
 
 Endodermis, 132, 152, 159, 165 (Fig. 
 127), 166 (Figs. 128, 129), 678. 
 
 Endogenous development, 21, 186, 345. 
 
 Endoperidium, 318. 
 
 Eudopbytic, 233. 
 
 Endopleura, 459. 
 
810 
 
 JNDEX, PART II. 
 
 Endosperm, 450 (Fig. 291), 451. 
 
 ruminated, 595, 597. 
 Endospore, 69, 117, 300. 
 Endothecium, 189, 331, 360. 
 Energid, 90, 94, 122. 
 Energy, of growth, 739. 
 
 absorption of, 717, 730. 
 
 dissipation of, 731. 
 
 expenditure of, 730. 
 
 kinetic, 671, 717, 730. 
 
 potential, 718, 731. 
 
 supply of, 730. 
 Ensiform, 49, 536. 
 Entire, 51, 54. 
 Entomophilous, 454. 
 Enzyme, 669, 722. 724. 
 Epibasal cell, 15, 329, 372. 
 Epiblast, 534 (Fig. 346). 
 Epiblema, 154, 682 
 Epicalyx, 79, 494,496, 591. 
 Epicarp, 529 (Fig. 344). 
 Epicotyl, 446. 
 Epidermis, 132 (Fig. 91), 145 (Fig J 09), 
 
 149, 154. 
 
 Epigean cotyledons, 446. 
 Epigynous, 495 (Fig. 310). 
 Epinasty, 60, 742 (Fig. 479). 
 Epipetalous, 518. 
 Epiphragm, 369. 
 Epiphyllous, 518. 
 Epiplasm, 299, 300, 410. 
 Epipodium, 45, 49. 
 Episporium (Epispore), 292, 410. 
 Epistrophe, 686 (Fig. 469). 
 Equitant, 60. 
 
 Erect ovule, 525 (Fig. 338). 
 Erythrophyll, 114. 
 Etaerio, 532. 
 
 Etiolated plants, 674, 744. 
 Etiolin, 673. 
 Eucarpic. 286. 
 Encyclic. 500. 
 Eugenol, 709. 
 Eusporangiate, 73, 375. 
 Evolution of oxygen from water- 
 plants, 718 (Fig. 475). 
 Exalbuminous seed, 458. 
 Excipulum, 320. 
 Excreted waste products, 728. 
 Excretion, 730. 
 Exine, 69, 117, 418. 
 Exodermis, 160. 
 Exogenous development, 20. 
 Exoperidium, 318. 
 Exospore, 69, 117, 300, 365. 
 Expansion of protoplasm, 764. 
 Exstipulate, 47. 
 External conditions, 671. 
 Extra-axillary branching, 81. 
 Extra-floral nectaries, 138, 679. 
 Extra-seminal development, 440, 446. 
 
 Extra -stelar tissue, 146, 159, 207. 
 Extrorse, 520. 
 Eye-spot, 102. 
 
 False dichotomy, 35 (Fig. 20), 184. 
 
 foot, 331, 350, 362. 
 
 fruits, 458, 528. 
 Fascicle, 493. 
 Fascicular cambium, 191. 
 Fats, 111, 708, 727. 
 Fat-enzyme, 724. 
 Feeder, 14, 430. 
 Female organ, 83. 
 
 pronucleus, 458. 
 Ferment, organised, 723. 
 
 unorganised, 669, 722, 724. 
 Fermentation, alcoholic, 282, 300, 723. 
 
 butyric, 232. 
 
 lactic. 282. 
 
 Ferrobacteria, 719, 731. 
 Fertilisation, 80, 225, 457, 527. 
 Fibres, 132. 
 
 chambered, 133. 
 
 woody, 196. 
 Fibrous cells, 133, 196. 
 
 root, 63. 
 
 Fibro vascular bundle, 170. 
 Filament, 432, 516. 
 Filiform apparatus, 452. 
 Filtration under pressure, 669, 701. 
 Fixed light-position, 688. 
 
 oils, 708. 
 Flagellum, 345. 
 Flanks, 9. 
 Floral diagram, 498. 
 
 formula, 500. 
 
 leaves, 59, 494, 691. 
 Flower, 42, 76, 431, 467, 494. 
 
 accessory organs of, 526. 
 
 ambisporangiate, 77, 515. 
 
 irregular, 510. 
 
 macrosporangiate, 77, 515. 
 
 microsporangiate, 77, 515. 
 
 monosporangiate, 77, 515. 
 
 opening and closing of, 744. 
 
 regular, 507. 
 
 reproductive organs of, 515. 
 
 symmetry of, 507. 
 
 phyllotaxy of, 496. 
 Fluorine, 710.' 
 
 Foliage-leaves, 56, 162 (Fig. 125), 685. 
 Follicle. 531. 
 Food-bodies, 679. 
 Food of plants, 710. 
 Foot, 14, 330 (Fig. 239), 372 (Fig. 
 
 264). 
 Form of leaves, 56. 
 
 root, 63. 
 
 stems, 44. 
 
 Forms of tissue, 131. 
 Formation of chlorophyll, 673. 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 811 
 
 Formation of tissue in consequence of 
 
 injury, 213. 
 Formative region, 738. 
 Fovea, 384 (Fig. 256). 
 Foveola, 384. 
 
 Fragmentation of nucleus, 96 (Fig. 48). 
 Free cell-formation, 119. 
 Freezing, effects of, 672 (Fig. 467). 
 Fruit, 88, 458, 479, 528, 776. 
 
 dehiscence of, 531. 
 
 dry dehiscent, 531. 
 
 dry indehisceut, 529. 
 
 succulent, 532. 
 Frustule, 258 (Fig. 184). 
 Function of chlorophyll, 717. 
 Functions of the members, 680. 
 
 of plants, 666. 
 
 of the tissues, 674. 
 Fundamental tissue, 144, 159. 
 Funicle, 72, 437. 
 Funiculus, 318. 
 Fusiform root, 63. 
 
 Galeate, 641. 
 
 Gallotannin, 708. 
 
 Gametanpum, 80, 83, 227, 260 (Fig. 
 
 186), 276. 
 
 Gametes, 2, 80, 225. 
 Gametophore, 80, 85 (Fig. 44), 325, 
 
 334, 337 (Fig. 240), 363, 382, 
 
 401. 
 
 Gametophyll, 80, 85, 260 (Fig. 1R6). 
 Gametophyte, 2, 69, 171, 217, 220, 279, 
 
 324, 375, 447. 
 Gamodesmic, 170. 
 Gamogenic, 770. 
 Gamopetalous, 514. 
 Gamophyllous, 514. 
 Gamosepalous, 514. 
 Gamostelic, 152. 
 Gemmse, 12 (Fig. 4), 67, 274, 340, 378, 
 
 426, 761. 
 
 Gemmation, 67, 125. 274, 239. 
 Generations, alternation of, 3, 217. 
 Genetic spiral, 26 (Fig. 15). 
 Generative cell, 448 (Fig. 289), 477. 
 Genus, 218. 
 
 Geotropism, 751 (Fig. 482). 
 negative, 685, 752. 
 positive, 682 752. 
 Germination of seed, 441. 
 Glands, 137, 140 (Fig. 101). 
 Glandular hairs, 143 (Fig. 108). 
 Glandular tissue, 137, 679. 
 Glans, 530. 
 Gleba. 317. 
 
 Glohoid, 111 (Fig. 68). 
 Globulin, 112, 707. 
 Glochidia, 410. 
 Glomerule. 49J. 
 Glucoses. 708. 
 
 Glucoside, 708. 
 
 Glucoside-enzyme, 724. 
 
 Glume, 493, 545 (Figs. 354, 355). 
 
 Glycerin, 724. 
 
 Glycogen, 299. 
 
 Gonidangium, 70, 122 (Fig.79) , 230, 277. 
 
 Gonidiophore, 75. 278, 310. 
 
 Gonidium, 3, 69, 75, 220, 229, 277. 
 
 Gonophore, 494, 627. 
 
 Graft-hybrids, 768, 777. 
 
 Grafting, 767. 
 
 Grand period of growth, 738. 
 
 Grape-sugar, 724, 727. 
 
 Ground-tissue, 144, 159. 
 
 Growing-point, 16. 20 (Figs. 8, 9), 146 
 
 (Fig. 110), 150 (Fig. 115). 
 Growth, 16, 737. 
 
 in length, 737. 
 
 in thickness of cell-wall, 103. 
 
 in thickness of stem and root, 191. 
 
 of cell-wall, 103. 
 
 of leaf, 46. 
 
 of starch-grains, 109. 
 
 sliding, 2 )3. 
 Guard-cplls of stomata, 156 (Fig. 119), 
 
 698. 
 
 Gum, 138, 708. 
 Gum-resin-ducts, 138. 
 Gutta-percha, 709. 
 Gymnocarpous gonidiophore, 312. 
 Gynandrosporous, 249. 
 Gynandrous, 518, 563. 
 Gynaeceum, 494, 521. 
 Gynobasic style, 523, 642. 
 Gynophore, 495, 605 (Fig. 408), 627. 
 Gynophyte, 3. 
 
 Gynostemium, 457 (Fig. 294), 495, 
 563, 692. 
 
 Hairs, 23, 64 (Fig. 40), 143 (Fig. 108), 
 159 (Fig. 122), 188. 
 
 internal, 133. 
 Hapteron, 66, 223. 
 Hastate, 54. 
 Haulm, 44. 
 
 Haustorium, 66, 188, 274, 711. 
 Heart-wood, 199. 
 Heat, influence of, 671. 
 
 production of, 731 (Fig. 476). 
 Helicoid cyme, 36, 492. 
 
 dichotomy, 33 (Fig. 18). 
 Heliotropism, 674, 747. 
 
 negative, 682. 
 
 positive, 685. 
 Hemiangiocarpous, 312. 
 Hemicyclic, 496. 
 Heredity, 777. 
 
 Hermaphrodite, 87, 432, 515. 
 Heteroblastic embryogeny, 13 (Fig. 5), 
 
 255 (Fig. 183), 263, 271, 324. 
 Heterochlainydeous, 512. 
 
812 
 
 INDEX, PART II. 
 
 Heteroclinous, 358. 
 Heterocyclic, 500. 
 Heterocyst, 232 (Fig. 164). 
 Heteroecism, 304. 
 Heterogamy, 80, 225, 275. 
 Heteromerous lichen-thallus, 321. 
 
 floral whorls, 500. 
 Heterophylly, 57, 390, 427, 463, 486 
 
 (Fig. 306). 
 
 Heterosporous, 70, 375, 380, 431. 
 Heterostylism, 455. 
 Hilum, 437. 
 
 Histological differentiation, 92. 
 Histology, 89. 
 
 of Gymnosperm, 464. 
 
 of Phanerogamia, 440. 
 
 of Pteridophyta, 374, 396, 412, 
 418, 422, 426, 428. 
 
 of the development of secondary 
 
 members, 184. 
 
 Holoblastic embryogeny, 13, 441. 
 Holocarpic, 286, 290. 
 Homoblastic embryogeny, 13. 
 Homochlamydeous, 512. 
 Homoiomerous lichen-thallus, 321. 
 Homology, 1. 
 
 Homosporous, 70, 375, 380. 
 Hook-climbers, 685. 
 Hormogonium, 232 (Fig. 165). 
 Host, 711. 
 Humus, 710. 
 Hybrid, 457, 775. 
 Hybridisation, 457, 775. 
 Hydrogen, 710, 712. 
 Hydrotropism, positive, 683. 
 Hymenial layer. 299, 310. 
 Hymenophore, 310, 316 (Figs. 221, 222). 
 Hymenium, 310 (Figs. 219, 223). 
 Hypha, 92, 273. 
 Hypobasal cell, 15, 329, 372. 
 Hypocotyl, 446. 
 Hypoderma, 160. 
 Hypogean cotyledons, 446. 
 Hypogynous, 495 (Fig. 310). 
 Hypouasty, 60, 742. 
 Hypophysis, 444. 
 Hypopodium, 45. 
 Hypsophylls, 59, 76, 431. 
 Hypsophyllary leaves, 57 (Fig. 36), 59, 
 76, 691. 
 
 Ice, formation of, 672 (Fig. 467). 
 
 Id, 782. 
 
 Imbibition theory, 704. 
 
 Imparipinnate, 52 (Fig. 32). 
 
 Incubous leaves, 346 (Fig. 245). 
 
 Incumbent, 604. 
 
 Indefinite inflorescences, 490. 
 
 In dehiscent fruits, 460. 
 
 Indigo, 708. 
 
 Induced movements, 742. 
 
 Indusium, 72 374, 391. 
 
 inferum. 391. 
 
 laterale, 391. 
 
 superum, 391. 
 Inferior ovary, 495. 
 Inflorescence, 76, 431, 490. 
 Infundibuliform, 514. 
 Initial cells, 145. 
 Innate, 516. 
 
 Innovation, 39, 356, 370. 
 Innovation-shoot, 36, 43. 
 Inorganic ash of plants, 709. 
 Inorganic compounds, 706. 
 Insertion of leaves, 21. 
 Integument, 72. 
 Intercalary growing-point, 17 (Fig. 7), 
 
 22 (Fig. 10). 
 Intercalary growth, 223 (Fig. 159), 224, 
 
 (Fig. 160). 
 Intercellular spaces, 130 (Fig. 89). 
 
 lysigenous, 130. 
 
 schizogenous, 130. 
 
 substance, 128. 
 Interfascicular cambium, 191. 
 
 conjunctive tissue, 166, 170. 
 Internal hairs, 133. 
 Internode, 21. 
 Interruptedly pinnate, 52. 
 Interstitial growth, 16. 
 Intine, 69, 117, 434. 
 Intra-semiual development, 440. 
 Intra-stelar tissue, 151, 166. 
 Introrse, 520. 
 Intussusception, 762. 
 Inulin, 114 (Fig. 73), 708. 
 Invert-enzyme, 724. 
 Involucel, 491. 
 Involucral leaves, 357. 
 
 scales, 338. 
 Involucre, 79, 325, 338, 491 (Fig. 309), 
 
 691. 
 
 Iodine, 716. 
 Iron, 713. 
 Irregular spontaneous variations in 
 
 rate of growth, 739. 
 Irritability, 667, 670, 742, 755. 
 
 conditions of, 760. 
 
 localisation of, 755. 
 
 to differences in the degree of 
 moisture in the surrounding 
 medium (hydrotropism), 755. 
 
 to direction of incidence of the 
 rays of light (heliotropism),747. 
 
 to mechanical stimuli, 742. 
 
 to the directive influence of gravity 
 (geotropism), 751 (Fig. 482). 
 
 to variations in the intensity of 
 light, 744. 
 
 to variations of temperature, 743. 
 Isobilateral arrangement, 29. 
 
 symmetry, 8, 508. 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 813 
 
 Isocyclic, 500. 
 Isogamy, 80, 225, 275. 
 Isomerous, 500. 
 
 Juga primaria, 624. 
 Juga secundaria, 625. 
 
 Karyokinesis, 118. 
 Kinetic energy, 668, 730. 
 Knight's machine, 752 (Fig. 483). 
 Kinoplasm, 95, 119. 
 Kinoplasmic spindle, 119, 124 (Fig. 
 82). 
 
 Labellum, 456 (Fig. 294), 562, 563 
 
 (Fig. 370). 
 Lsevulose, 724. 
 Lamella, 310 (Fig. 219). 
 Lamina, 45, 49. 
 Lanceolate, 54. 
 Latent period, 757. 
 Lateral branching, 19, 34. 
 
 buds, 20. 
 
 members, development of, 185 
 (Fig. 141). 
 
 plane of flower, 499. 
 Latex, 141, 680. 
 
 Laticiferous coenocytes (cells), 142 
 (Figs. 106, 107). 
 
 tissue, functions of, 680. 
 
 vessels, 141 (Fig. 105). 
 Latiseptal silicula, 604 (Fig. 407). 
 Law of absorption, 693. 
 
 of cambial division, 193. 
 Leaf, 5, 6, 45 (Figs. 27-31). 
 
 apex of, 54. 
 
 -base, 45, 54. 
 
 -blade, 45, 49. 
 
 cataphyllary, 58. 
 
 compound, 52. 
 
 coriaceous, 56. 
 
 epipodium, 45, 49. 
 
 fall of, 23, 56. 
 
 floral, 59. 
 
 functions of, 685. 
 
 form of, 56. 
 
 herbaceous, 56. 
 
 hypopodium, 45. 
 
 margin of, 54. 
 
 hypsophyllary, 59. 
 
 mesopodium, 45, 48. 
 
 minute structure of, 163 (Fig. 125), 
 164 (Fig. 126), 685. 
 
 oblique, 49. 
 
 outline of, 54. 
 
 phyllopodium, 45. 
 
 pitchered, 57 (Fig. 37), 607 (Fig. 
 410), 640, 690. 
 
 prefloration, 60. 
 
 primordial, 45. 
 
 -scar, 23. 
 
 Leaf, segmentation of, 53 (Fig. 32). 
 
 -spine, 58 (Fig. 38), 690. 
 
 sporophyllary, 59, 70, 76. 
 
 -stalk, 45. 
 
 succulent, 56. 
 
 -tendrils, 49 (Fig. 28), 58, 628, 646. 
 
 -traces, 171. 
 
 venation of, 54. 
 
 vernation of, 59. 
 
 -wing, 45. 
 Leaflet, 52. 
 Leafy shoot, 5, 38. 
 
 annual, 39. 
 
 creeping, 42. 
 
 dwarf-, 39. 
 Legume, 531. 
 Lenticels, 212 (Fig. 157). 
 Leptosporangiate, 73, 375. 
 Leucin, 707. 
 
 Leucoplastid, 97, 98 (Fig. 51). 
 Life-history, 2, 217, 230, 278, 324, 378 
 
 431. 
 Light, chemical effects of, 673. 
 
 mechanical effects of, 674. 
 Light-position, 688, 748, 759. 
 Lignification of cell-wall, 107. 
 Lignin, 107. 
 
 Ligulate corolla, 661 (Figs. 464, 466). 
 Ligule, 48 (Fig. 28), 66, 384 (Fig. 256), 
 
 427. 
 
 Limb, 515 (Fig. 330). 
 Linear, 54. 
 Linin, 96. 
 Linolein, 708. 
 Lithium, 710, 716. 
 Lobed, 52. 
 
 Localisation of irritabilitv, 755. 
 Loculicidal, 531 (Fig. 343). 
 Loculus, 522. 
 Lodicule, 545. 
 Lomentaceous, 531. 
 Lomentum, 531. 
 Longitudinal axis, 7. 
 
 section, 7. 
 Lysigenous, 130, 138. 
 
 Macrosporangiate flower, 77, 432, 515. 
 Macrosporangiurn, 71, 375, 433, 470, 
 
 489, 524. 
 
 Macrospore, 70, 375, 438, 526. 
 Macrosporophyll, 78, 375, 432, 521. 
 Macrosporophyllary flower, 78. 
 Macrozoogonidium, 226. 
 Magnesium, 714. 
 Male organ, 83. 
 
 pronucleus, 457. 
 
 reproductive cells, 81. 
 Malic acid, 708. 
 Maltose, 708, 724, 727. 
 Mannite, 708. 
 Manubrium, 252 (Fig. 181). . 
 
814 
 
 INDEX, PART II. 
 
 Marginal growing-point, 18. 
 Massula, of Azolla. 410. 
 
 of Orchids, 564. 
 Mastigopod-stage, 283. 
 Mechanical effects of light, 673. 
 Mechanical work of movements, 765. 
 Mechanism of the movements, 761. 
 Median plane of flower, 499. 
 Medulla, 151, 169. 
 Medullary bundles, 173. 
 conjunctive tissue, 166. 
 phloem-bundles, 173. 
 rays, 152. 167 (Fig. 130), 201 
 
 (Fig. 152). 
 sheath, 179. 
 
 Members, 2, 5, 225 (Fig. 162). 
 Mericarp, 529 (Fig. 341). 
 Meristele, 158, 182. 
 Meristem, 131, 145, 204. 
 Meroblastic embryogeny, 13, 441, 471. 
 Mesocarp, 529 (Fig. 344). 
 Mesophyll, 162, 685. 
 Mesopodium, 45, 48. 
 Metabolism, 667, 669, 706. 
 Metallic elements of food, 710. 
 Metaxin, 97. 
 Microcysts, 275, 285. 
 Micropyle, 436. 
 
 Microsporangiate flower, 77, 432, 515. 
 Microsporangium, 71, 375, 408 (Fig. 
 
 268), 433, 469, 489, 519. 
 Microspore, 70, 375, 434. 
 Microsporophyll, 78, 375, 432. 
 Microsporophyllary flower, 78. 
 Microzoogonidium, 226. 
 Middle lamella, 129 (Fig. 87), 132. 
 Midrib, 51. 
 Mineral matters in cell-wall, 108 (Fig. 
 
 65), 695. 
 Mitotic nuclear division, 97, 118 (Figs. 
 
 77, 78, 81, 82, 83). 
 Monadelphous, 518. 
 Monarch bundle, 179. 
 Monocarpic (Fungi), 286, 290. 
 Monocarpous, 461. 
 Monochlamydeous, 513. 
 Monoclinous, 87, 325, 358, 432. 
 Monocyclic, 501. 
 Monoecious, 86, 325, 432. 
 Mouomerous ovary, 521. 
 Monopodial branch-system, 34. 
 Monopodium, 34. 
 Monosiphonous, 259, 267. 
 Monosporacgiate flower, 77, 432, 515. 
 Monostely, 146, 152. 
 Monosymmetrical, 10, 508. 
 Morphin, 707. 
 Morphology, 1. 
 
 of adult shoot of, Andreeeace 365, 
 Anthocerotacese 352, Archidiacese 
 366, Jimgermanniaceffl 343, 
 
 Marchantiacese 336, Sphagnacera 
 363. 
 Morphology of Algae, 222. 
 
 of extra -stelar fundamental tissue, 
 
 159. 
 of primary tegumentary tissue, 
 
 154. 
 of reproductive organs, 67. 
 
 asexual, 70 ; of AngiospermEe, 
 489 ; of Gymnosperni8e,467. 
 sexual, 80. 
 of the tissue-systems, 144, 151, 
 
 159, 166. 
 
 of vegetative organs, 37, 38,44,45, 
 61; of Gymnospermse, 453. 
 special,. of members, 37. 
 Morphological differentiation, 2. 
 Motile region, 761. 
 Motility of protoplasm, 667, 670, 761, 
 
 764. 
 
 Movements, conditions of, 760. 
 induced, 742. 
 mechanism of, 761. 
 of cellular members, 735, 736. 
 of growth, 737. 
 of protoplasm, 735. 
 of variation, 737. 
 spontaneous, 735. 
 Mucilage, 708. 
 
 conveision of cell-wall into, 107, 
 
 158. 
 
 secretion of, 141, 143, 680. 
 Mucro, 53 (Fig. 32). 
 Mucronate, 54. 
 Multijugate, 52. 
 Multilateral arrangement, 26 (Fig. 13). 
 
 symmetry, 8. 
 
 Multilocular ovary, 522 (Fig. 336). 
 Mycelium, 273. 
 Mycorhiza, 273, 710. 
 Myrmecophilous plants, 679. 
 Myrosin, 708. 
 Myronate of potash, 708. 
 Myxopod-stage, 283. 
 
 Napiform root, 63. 
 
 Natural selection, 780. 
 
 Neck canal-cell, 327 (Fig. 235), 377. 
 
 Nectary, 138, 526, 729. 
 
 Negative geotropism. 685. 
 
 heliotropism, 682, 750. 
 
 pressure, 699. 
 Nicotin, 707. 
 Night-position, 689. 
 Nitrates, 712. 
 Nitrification, 712. 
 Nitrobacteria, 712, 719, 731. 
 Nitrogen, 710. 
 Nitrogenous organic substances, 707. 
 
 reserve material, 727. 
 Node, 21, 46. 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 815 
 
 Non-metallic elements of food, 710. 
 Non-nitrogenous organic substances, 
 
 708. 
 
 reserve material, 727. 
 Nucellus, 436, 526. 
 Nuclear disc, 119 (Fig. 77). 
 division, direct, 96 (Fig. 48). 
 
 indirect, 97, 118 (Figs. 
 
 77, 78, 82). 
 
 Nucleo-hyaloplasm, 95. 
 Nucleolus, 93. 
 
 Nucleus, 89, 93, 95, 96 (Fig. 47). 
 Nut, 530. 
 
 Nutation, 742 (Fig. 478). 
 Nutritive properties of protoplasm, 
 
 667. 
 Nyctitropic movements, 689 (Fig. 471). 
 
 Obcordate, 54. 
 
 Obdiplostemonous, 503 (Fig. 317). 
 Oblique leaf, 49. 
 
 plane of flower, 499. 
 
 zygomorphy, 10. 
 Obovate, 54. 
 Obtuse, 54. 
 
 Ocrea, 48, 597 (Fig. 402). 
 Octant-wall, 329, 372. 
 Oidium-cells, 274, 289, 313, 767. 
 Oil-drops, 111, 459. 
 Oils, fixed, 708. 
 
 volatile, 708. 
 Oily seeds, 112, 459, 725. 
 Oleic acid, 708, 724. 
 Olein, 708, 724. 
 Oligomery, 501. 
 Oligotaxy, 504. 
 
 Ooblastema-filaments, 270, 299. 
 Oogamy, 225, 275. 
 
 Oogonium, 83, 220, 228, 238 (Figs. 168. 
 
 169), 249 (Fig. 178), 253 (Fig. 
 
 181), 266 (Fig. 190), 276, 291 
 
 (Fig. 202). 
 
 Oosphere, 3, 81, 116, 225, 265 (Figs. 
 
 190, 191), 277, 326, 377, 452. 
 Oospore, 3, 118,225, 275, 334, 377, 458. 
 Opening and closing of flowers, 744. 
 Operculum, 331, 341, 361, 368 (Fig. 
 
 253). 
 
 Opposite members, 25. 
 Optimum-temperature, 671. 
 Orbicular, 536. 
 Organs, 2. 
 
 reproductive, 67, 188. 
 
 vegetative, 37. 
 Organic acids, 708, 728. 
 Organised ferments, 723. 
 Origin of species, 780. 
 Orthostichy, 25, 26 (Figs. 14, 15). 
 Orthotropic members, 758. 
 Orthotropous ovule, 437 (Fig. 284). 
 Osmosis, 668, 700. 
 V. S. B. 
 
 Ovary, 79, 433, 495. 
 
 Ovate, 54. 
 
 Ovule, 71, 189, 433. 
 
 anatropous, 437 (Fig. 284). 
 
 ascending, 525. 
 
 campylotropous, 437 (Fig. 284). 
 
 erect, 525. 
 
 horizontal, 525. 
 
 orthotropous, 437 (Fig. 284), 525 
 (Fig. 338). 
 
 pendulous, 525. 
 
 suspended, 525. 
 Oxalic acid, 708, 729. 
 Oxygen, 710, 712. 
 
 absorption of, 722, 726. 
 
 evolution of, 716 (Fig. 470 1. 
 
 Palea of Composites, 662. 
 of Ferns, 395. 
 of Grasses, 545. 
 
 Palisade-tissue, 163 (Fig. 125), 686. 
 Palmate, 50 (Fig. 30). 
 Palmatifid, 53 (Fig. 32). 
 Palmijie-fteidt 708. 
 Palmitin, 708. 
 Panicle, 493. 
 Pappus, 460, 660 (Fig. 462), 661 (Figs. 
 
 464, 466). 
 Paracorolla, 515, 
 Paraheliotropism, 689, 748. 
 Paralinin, 95. 
 Paramylon, 111. 
 Paraphysis, 264 (Fig. 190), 299, 311, 
 
 358, 392, 425. 
 
 Parasites, iJ73, 589, 647, 711. 
 Parastichy, 27. 
 
 Paratonic effect of light, 674, 744. 
 Parenchyma, 131, 163 (Fig. 125). 
 
 functions of, 676. 
 Paripinnate, 52 (Fig. 32), 407. 
 Parthenogenesis, 87, 246, 771. 
 Partite, 54. 
 Passage-cells, 162. 
 Pedate, 50 (Fig. 30), 381. 
 Pedicel, 77, 490. 
 Pedicellate, 77. 
 Peduncle, 77. 
 Peg, 14. 
 Peloria, 512. 
 Peltate, 51 (Fig. 31). 
 Pentacyclic, 502. 
 Pentamerous, 500. 
 Peptones, 707, 725. 
 Perfoliate, 48 (Fig. 29). 
 Perianth, 76, 432. 
 
 -leaves, 79, 494, 691. 
 Periblem, 146. 
 Pericambium, 167. 
 Pericarp, 112 (Fig. 70), 271, 529 (Fig. 
 
 344). 
 Perichastial leaves, 85, 357. 
 
816 
 
 INDEX, PART II. 
 
 Perichaetium, 85, 336. 
 
 Periclinal, 145. 
 
 Pericycle, 151, 168 (Figs. 130, 131). 
 
 Periderm, 132, 208, 210 (Fig. 155). 
 
 Peridiolum, 318. 
 
 Peridium, 312. 
 
 Perigynium of Carex, 552. 
 
 of Liverworts, 338 (Fig. 235). 
 Perigynous, 495 (Fig. 310). 
 Perinium, 118, 292, 410. 
 Periodicity of growth, 738, 745 (Fig. 
 
 480). 
 
 Periplasm, 291. 
 Perisperm, 440, 458 (Fig. 295), 561, 
 
 594, 599. 
 
 Peristome, 361, 368 (Fig. 252). 
 Perithecium, 295, 299. 
 Permanent tissue, 131. 
 Personate, 511. 
 Petal, 79, 494, 691. 
 Petaloid, 79. 
 Petiole, 45, 48, 690. 
 Petiole-climbers, 591, 614, 690 (Fig. 
 
 473), 743. 
 
 Phelloderm, 208, 213. 
 Phellogen, 208. 
 Phloem, 170, 181. 
 Phloem-islands, 205. 
 Phosphorescence, 732. 
 Phosphorus, 713. 
 Phototaxis, 747. 
 
 Phototonic effect of light, 674, 760, 765. 
 Phototonus, 674, 760. 
 Phycocyanin, 221. 
 Phycoerythrin, 99, 221. 
 Phycophsein, 221. 
 Phycoxanthin, 99. 
 Phylloclade, 45 (Fig. 26). 
 Phyllode, 49. 
 Phylloid branches, 684. 
 Phyllopodium, 45. 
 
 Phyllotaxis, 27. 
 
 of flower, 496. 
 
 Physical functions of tissues, 674. 
 Physiology, 666. 
 Physiological differentiation, 2. 
 Pileus, 310 (Figs. 221, 222). 
 Piliferous layer, 158. 
 Pinna, 52. 
 
 Pinnate, 50 (Fig. 30). 
 Pinnule, 52. 
 Pistil, 521. 
 Pitcher, 690. 
 
 Pith, 151, 166 (Fig. 130), 169. 
 Pitted wall, 105 (Figs. 59, 61), 128 
 Placenta, 72, 374, 390, 408, 436, 524. 
 Placental scale, 469. 
 Placentation, 524 (Fig. 338) 
 
 axial, 525. 
 
 axile or axillary, 524. 
 
 basal, 525. 
 
 Placentation, free-central, 525. 
 
 marginal, 524. 
 
 parietal, 524. 
 
 superficial, 524. 
 Plagiotropic members, 758. 
 Plane of symmetry of flower, 507. 
 Planogametes, 81, 225, 247 (Figs. 176, 
 
 177), 261 (Fig. 187). 
 Plasmodium, 89, 274, 283 (Fig. 198). 
 Plastic products, 670, 727. 
 Plastid, 95, 97. 
 Pleiochasium, 35. 
 Pleiomery, 501. 
 Pleiotaxy, 502. 
 Plerome, 146 (Fig. 110). 
 Pleurocarpous, 356. 
 Pleurogvnous stigma, 524. 
 Plumule, 20, 446. 
 Pod, 531. 
 Podium, 33. 
 
 Polar bodies, 82, 772. . 
 Pollen-chamber, 470. 
 
 development of, 125 (Fig. 85). 
 
 -grain, 70, 434 (Fig. 282), 447 
 (Fig. 288), 520. 
 
 -sac, 71, 189, 433 (Fig. 281). 
 
 -tetrads, 434, 564. 
 
 -tube, 14, 86, 435 (Fig. 283), 449 
 
 (Fig. 289, 290), 457, 527. 
 Pollination, 452, 774. 
 Pollinium, 434, 456 (Fig. 294), 564, 
 
 651 (Fitf. 452). 
 Pollinodium, 83, 276, 291 (Fig. 202) 
 
 296 (Fig. 207). 
 Polyadelphous, 518. 
 Polyandrous, 518. 
 Polyaxial, 489. 
 Polycarpic (Fungi), 286. 
 Polycarpous, 462. 
 Polycyclic, 502 (Fig. 316). 
 Polyembryony, 441, 471, 770. 
 Polygamous, 358, 432, 515. 
 Polyhedron -stage, 242. 
 Polymerous, 522. 
 
 Polymorphism, 2, 4, 231, 244, 278 
 Polypetalous corolla, 514. 
 Polyphyllous, 514. 
 Polysepalous calyx, 514. 
 Polystely, 146, 152. 
 Poly symmetrical, 9, 507. 
 Polysiphonous, 259. 267. 
 Pome, 528. 
 Pore, 339 (Fig. 241). 
 Porous capsule, 532 (Fig. 342). 
 Positive geotropism, 682. 
 
 heliotropism, 685, 750. 
 
 hydrotropism, 683, 755. 
 Posterior, 499. 
 Potassium, 714, 717. 
 Potential energy, 668, 718, 731 
 
 gamptophyte, 3, 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 817 
 
 Potential parasites, 711. 
 
 saprophytes, 711. 
 Prefloration, 59. 
 Prefoliation, 59. 
 Prickle, 66 (Fig. 41). 
 Primary bast, 181. 
 bundle, 180. 
 
 differentiation of, 175. 
 desmogen, 151, 176. 
 cortex, 160, 207, 213. 
 members, 15. 
 meristern, 145. 
 root, 15, 373. 
 shoot, 15. 
 wood, 176, 180. 
 Primordial cell, 94. 
 Procambium, 151, 176. 
 Procarp, 83, 220, 225, 228, 268 (Figs. 
 
 194, 195). 
 
 Products of metabolism, 670, 727. 
 Progressive succession, 23. 
 Proliferation, 76. 
 
 Promycelium, 279, 289 (Fig. 200), 305 
 
 (Fig. 215), 307 (Figs. 217, 218). 
 
 Prophyllum, 79, 493, 505 (Figs. 519, 
 
 520). 
 Prosenchyma, 131 (Fig. 90), 132, 190, 
 
 196. 
 
 Protandrous, 454. 
 Proteids, 707, 720, 724, 727. 
 Proteid crystalloids, 112, 707. 
 grains, 112 (Figs. 68-70). 
 Proteolytic enzyme, 680, 724. 
 Prothallium, 372, 375, 397 (Figs. 263- 
 265), 413 (Fig. 270), 423 (Fig. 
 276), 428 (Fig. 278), 448 (Figs. 
 289, 290), 450 (Figs. 291, 292). 
 Protocorm, 421, 424. 
 Protogynous, 454. 
 Protonema, 14, 324 (Fig. 232), 333, 
 
 354, 365 (Fig. 249). 
 Protophloem, 167 (Fig. 130), 176. 
 Protoplasm, 4, 89, 93, 95. 
 
 continuity of, 91 (Fig. 45). 
 properties of, 667, 764. 
 Protoxylem, 167 (Fig. 130), 176 (Fig. 
 
 135). 
 
 Pseudaxis, 33, 35, 492. 
 Pseudo-bulb, 44. 
 Pseudoearp, 458, 528. 
 Pseudogamy, 777. 
 
 Pseudo monocotyledonons embryo,445. 
 Pseudo-plasmodium, 283. 
 Pseudopodium, 69, 283. 
 
 of Bryophyta, 328, 357, 362, 364 
 
 (Fig. 248) 
 
 Pulvinus, 46, 755, 761. 
 Pycnidium, 75, 278, 296. 
 Pyrenoid, 100 (Figs 54, 55), 241, 244, 
 
 353. 
 Pyrenin, 96. 
 
 Pyxidium, 531 (Fig. 342), 653. 
 
 Quadrant-wall, 329, 372. 
 Quadrilocular anther, 519. 
 Quincuncial, 60. 
 Quinin, 707. 
 
 Eaceme, 490. 
 
 Racemose inflorescences, 490 (Fig. 
 
 309J. 
 Radial arrangement, of members, 21 
 
 (Figs. 11-15). 
 longitudinal section, 7. 
 of bundles, 175. 
 symmetry, 8, 9 (Fig. 2), 507. 
 Eadiant umbel, 624. 
 Eadicle, 446. 
 Eamenta, 395. 
 Eaphe, 437 (Fig. 284). 
 Eaphides, 113 (Fig. 72), 729. 
 Eate of growth, 738, 745 (Fig. 480 j. 
 Eeceptacle, 76, 85, 268, 325, 357, 494. 
 Eeceptive spot, 102, 116, 227. 
 Eeciprocal hybridisation, 775. 
 Regular flower, 507. 
 Region of elongation, 738, 761. 
 Rejuvenescence of cells, 115 (Fig. 74). 
 Eeplum, 531 (Fig. 342), 603. 
 Eeproduction, 67, 670, 766. 
 Reproductive organs, 67. 
 asexual, 70. 
 sexual, 79. 
 
 property of protoplasm, 667. 
 Reserve materials, 727. 
 Eesin, 709, 728. 
 Eesin-ducts, 140 (Fig. 102), 466. 
 
 -sac, 140 (Fig. 104). 
 Eespiration, 669, 722, 726. 
 Eesupinate, 511, 563. 
 Eetardation of growth by light, 674. 
 Reticulate vessels, 104. 
 Retinaculum, 456, 565. 
 Reversion, 779. 
 Rhachis, 76. 
 Rhipidium, 36. 
 Rhizine, 274, 322 (Fig. 229). 
 Rhizogenic cells, 187, 373, 395. 
 Rhizoid, 324, 355. 
 Rhizome, 42 (Fig. 23). 
 Rhizophore, 427. 
 Rib, 51. 
 Ricinolein, 708. 
 Ring, 79, 417 (Fig. 272). 
 Rise of temperature in germinating 
 
 seeds, 732 (Fig. 476). 
 Roots, 5, 7, 61 (Fig. 39). 
 adventitious, 62, 189. 
 aerial, 63, 155 (Fig. 117), 682. 
 branching of, 62, 186 (Fig. 142). 
 functions of, 680. 
 primary, 62. 
 
818 
 
 INDEX, PART II. 
 
 Boots, structure of, 61, 146 (Figs. Ill, 
 
 114, 115), 154, 161, 165 (Figs. 
 
 127, 129, 131), 177 (Figs. 135, 
 
 136), 187 (Fig. 142). 
 Boot-cap, 61, 147 (Fig. Ill), 211, 682. 
 Boot -hairs, 65, 158 (Fig. 123), 681 
 
 (Fig. 468). 
 
 Boot-pressure, 700, 764. 
 Boot-tubercles, 713. 
 Bostellum, 456 (Fig. 294), 564. 
 Botate, 514 (Fig. 329). 
 Botation of protoplasm, 733. 
 Buminated endosperm, 595, 597. 
 Bunner, 42. 
 
 Sac, 139, 140 (Fig. 103). 
 
 Sagittate, 54. 
 
 Salicin, 708. 
 
 Samara, 531, 579 (Fig. 381), 616 (Fig. 
 
 418). 
 
 Saprophyte, 273, 283, 293, 310, 656, 711. 
 Scalariform vessels, 104. 
 Scaly leaves, 58. 
 Scape, 493. 
 
 Schizocarp, 529 (Fig. 341). 
 Schizogenous, 130, 139. 
 Schizostely, 152 (Fig. 116). 
 Scion, 767. 
 
 Sclerenchyma, 132, 160, 196. 
 Sclerenchymatous tissue, function of, 
 
 676. 
 
 Sclerotic cells, 133 (Figs. 92, 93). 
 Sclerotium, 68, 275, 285, 295 (Fig. 
 
 212). 
 Scorpioid cyme, 36, 492. 
 
 dichotomy, 33, (Fig. 18). 
 Scutellum, 533 (Fig. 346). 
 Scutiform leaf, 412. 
 Secondary bast, 192, 199. 
 
 conjunctive tissue, 200. 
 
 cortical tissue, 213. 
 
 desmogen, 202. 
 
 extra-stelar tissue, 207. 
 
 members, 19 (Fig. 7). 
 
 sclerenchyma, 196. 
 
 stelar tissue, abnormal, 204. 
 normal, 191. 
 
 tegumentary tissue, 208. 
 
 tissues, differentiation of, 202. 
 
 tracheal tissue, 194. 
 
 wood, 194 (Fig. 148). 
 
 wood-parenchyma, 195. 
 Secretion, 137, 143 (Fig. 108). 
 Secretum, 137, 143. 
 Sectile pollinium, 564. 
 Seed, 74, 88, 218, 431, 458 (Fig. 295). 
 Segmentation of apical cell, 148 (Figs 
 
 112-115). 
 
 Segmentation of body, 5. 
 Self-pollination, 453. 
 Semi-amplexicaul, 47. 
 
 Sensitive petiole, 690 (Fig. 473). 
 
 plant, 689 (Fig. 472), 742, 756. 
 Sepal, 79, 494, 691. 
 Septate body, 89, 273. 
 Septicidal dehiscence, 531 (Fig. 343) 
 Septifragal dehiscence, 531. 
 Septum, 121, 133, 197. 
 Serrate, 52, 54.- 
 
 Sessile, 49 (Fig. 28), 77, 490, 517. 
 Seta, 75, 330, 334, 360. 
 
 of Carex, 551. 
 Sex, 773. 
 Sexual affinity, 774. 
 
 generation, 3. 
 
 organs, 86. 
 
 process, 3, 69, 275, 770, 776. 
 
 reproduction, 80, 225, 275, 772. 
 Sexuality, 772. 
 Shield, 252. 
 
 Shoot, 5, 6, 41 (Fig. 22), 184. 
 Sieve-plates, 136 (Fig. 97), 199. 
 
 -tissue, 135 (Figs. 97, 98), 678. 
 
 -tubes, 136 (Fig. 97), 199. 
 Silicon, 710, 716. 
 Silicula, 531, 604 (Fig. 407). 
 Siliqua, 531 (Fig. 342), 604 (Fig. 407). 
 Simple gonidiophore, 278. 
 
 leaf, 52. 
 
 inflorescences, 490. 
 
 sporophores, 278. 
 Simultaneous whorls, 24, 
 Sleep-movements, 689. 
 Sliding growth, 203. 
 Sodium, 710, 716. 
 Soft bast, 199. 
 
 Soredium, 68, 321 (Fig. 227). 
 Sorosis, 528, 561. 
 
 Sorus, 71. 75, 85, 307, 374, 390 (Figs. 
 257, 260), 432. 
 
 bisexual, 87. 
 
 unisexual, 87. 
 Spadix, 490. 
 Spathe, 79, 490. 
 Species, 218. 
 
 Specific absorbent capacity, 694. 
 Spermatium, 81, 116, 228, 268, 277, 
 
 297, 305. 
 
 Spermatozoid, 3, 81, 115, 227 (Figs. 
 190, 191), 326 (Figs. 223, 224), 
 377, 400 (Fig. 266). 
 Spermogonium, 85, 276, 297, 305, 320 
 
 (Fig. 226). 
 
 Sphserocrystal, 114 (Fig. 73). 
 Spicate capitulum, 492. 
 
 raceme, 492. 
 Spicular cells, 467. 
 Spike, 490 (Fig. 309). 
 Spikelet, 490. 
 Spine, 59 (Fig. 38), 161. 
 Spiral arrangement, 27 (Fig. 15). 
 
 vessels, 104 (Fig. 58). 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 819 
 
 Spongy- parenchyma, 162 (Fig. 125), 
 
 686. 
 
 Spontaneous movement, 670, 692. 
 Sporangium, 70, 189, 230, 278, 374, 
 
 433. 
 
 Spore, 2, 122 (Fig. 80), 126, 229, 375, 
 434, 438, 671. 
 
 asexually produced*; 69. 
 
 development of, 125 (Fig. 84). 
 
 -reproduction, 68, 768. 
 
 -sac, 361. 
 
 sexually produced, 69. 
 Sporidium, 300, 305 (Figs. 215, 217, 
 
 218). 
 
 Sporocarp, 407 (Fig. 269). 
 Sporogonium, 324, 332, 360, 369 (Figs. 
 
 251, 253). 
 
 Sporophore, 70, 75, 278. 
 Sporophyll, 59, 70, 77, 432. 
 Sporophyllary leaves, 691. 
 Sporophyte, 2, 69, 217, 298. 
 Sport, 779. 
 Spur, 511. 
 Spurious fruit, 528. 
 
 tissue, 92. 
 
 whorl, 24. 
 
 Squamulse intravaginales, 536. 
 Stamen, 78, 432. 
 Staminate flower, 78, 432, 515. 
 Staminodium or staminode, 518, 
 Starch, 109, 708, 717, 724, 727. 
 
 -grains, 98 (Fig. 51), 109 (Fig. 67). 
 
 -sheath, 705. 
 
 -stars, 68, 255. 
 Stearin, 708. 
 Stele, 146, 151, 
 Stem, 5, 6. 
 
 function of, 683. 
 
 herbaceous, 44. 
 
 monostelic, 146, 173. 
 
 polystelic, 146, 173. 
 
 -tendril, 43 (Fig. 24), 619. 
 
 trunk, 44. 
 
 twining, 43 (Fig. 24), 647. 
 
 winged, 44. 
 Stereom, 133, 144, 161 (Fig. 121), 170, 
 
 676. 
 
 Sterigma, 75, 276, 289, 296 (Fig. 205), 
 301 (Fig. 211), 305 (Figs. 215, 
 217), 312 (Figs. 219, 220, 223). 
 Stichidium, 75, 268 (Fig. 193). 
 Stigma, 433, 523 (Fig. 337). 
 Stimulus, 670. 
 Stipe, 310. 
 Stipel, 48. 
 
 Stipule, 47 (Fig. 28). 
 Stock, 767. 
 Stolon, 42. 
 
 Stomata, 155 (Fig. 118), 156 (Fig. 119), 
 157 (Fig. 120). 
 
 function of, 698, 764. 
 
 Stomium, 395. 
 
 Stratification of cell- wall, 105 (Fig. 
 
 60). 
 
 Streaming of protoplasm, 735. 
 Striation of cell- wall, 106 (Fig. 64). 
 Stroma, 295, 301 (Fig. 212). 
 Strophiole, 460. 
 Strychnin, 707. 
 Style, 433, 523 (Fig. 337). 
 Stylogonidium, 278. 
 Sub-hymenial layer, 311 (Fig. 219). 
 Subtending leaf, 31. 
 Successive whorls, 24. 
 Succulent fruits, 529, 532. 
 Succulent plants, catabolism of, 725. 
 Succubous leaves, 346 (Fig. 244). 
 Sucroses, 708. 
 Sugars, 708. 
 
 Sulphobacteria, 719, 731. 
 Sulphur, 710, 713. 
 Superior ovary, 495. 
 Superposed members, 25, 497. 
 Supply of energy, 717, 730. 
 Suppression, 505. 
 Suspensor, 14, 372, 424 (Figs. 275, 
 
 278, 279), 441 (Figs. 286, 287). 
 Syconus, 528, 578 (Fig. 379). 
 Symbiosis, 273, 319, 347, 412, 710, 713. 
 Symmetry of body, 8 (Figs. 1-4). 
 
 of flower, 507 (Figs. 322-328). 
 Sympodium, 33, 36. 
 Synandrium, 518, 539. 
 Synangium, 72, 375, 383. 
 Synaptase, 724. 
 
 Syncarpous, 521 (Fig. 335), 529. 
 Syncyte, 91, 118, 129, 141. 
 Synergidse, 451 (Fig. 292). 
 Syngenesious anthers, 518. 
 Systems of classification, 216. 
 Systole, 736. 
 
 Tangential longitudinal section, 7. 
 
 Tannin, 708, 729. 
 
 Tapetum, 73, 385, 393, 410, 433, 438, 
 
 519. 
 
 Tap-root, 62, 464. 
 Tartaric acid, 708. 
 Tegumentary tissue, 144. 
 
 function of, 675. 
 
 primary, 153. 
 
 secondary, 208. 
 
 -system, 144. 
 Teleutogonidium, 278, 305 (FigP. 214- 
 
 217), 314. 
 Teleutospore, 278. 
 Temperature, 671. 
 
 Tendril, 43 (Fig. 24), 58, 619, 685, 743. 
 Tentacle, 66 (Figs. 42, 43), 711. 
 Terebene, 709. 
 Terminal bud, 20. 
 Ternate, 53 (Fig. 32). 
 
820 
 
 INDEX, PART II. 
 
 Terpenes, 709. 
 
 Testa, 459. 
 
 Tetracyclic, 501. 
 
 Tetrarch, 179. 
 
 Tetradynamous, 513, 602. 
 
 Tetragonidangium, 75, 230. 
 
 Tetragonidium, 69, 230, 267. 
 
 Tetraspore, 263. 
 
 Thalloid shoot, 5, 38. 
 
 Thallophyte, 5. 
 
 Thallus, 5, 37, 184, 220, 222. 
 
 Theca of Bryophyta, 71, 75, 360, 369 
 
 (Fig. 252). 
 
 Thecffi of anther, 516. 
 Thein, 707. 
 Theobromin, 707. 
 Theory of apposition, 762. 
 
 of intussusception, 762. 
 
 of reproduction, 780. 
 Thorn, 44 (Fig. 25), 684. 
 Tissue, 91, 128. 
 
 aqueous, 161, 164. 
 
 conjunctive, 151, 200. 
 
 cuticularised, 132 (Fig. 91). 
 
 embryonic, 131. 
 
 extra-stelar, 159, 207. 
 
 formation of, 121, 123, 128. 
 
 forms of, 92, 131. 
 
 functions of, 674. 
 
 glandular, 137 (Fig. 100), 204, 679. 
 
 ground-, 144 (Fig. 109), 159. 
 
 heterogeneous, 92. 
 
 homogeneous, 92. 
 
 intra-stelar, 159, 166, 191. 
 
 sclerenchymatous, 132 (Fig. 94), 
 676. 
 
 secondary, 191 (Figs. 143-158). 
 
 sieve-, 135 (Figs. 97-99), 181, 
 678. 
 
 spurious, 92. 
 
 -systems, 144. 
 
 tegumentary, 144 (Fig. 109), 153, 
 160, 208, 675. 
 
 thick- walled parenchymatous, 132. 
 
 thin-walled parenchymatous, 131 
 (Fig. 91). 
 
 tracheal, 133 (Fig. 95), 170, 677. 
 
 vascular, 170. 
 Torsion, 12. 
 
 of twining stems, 759. 
 Torus of bordered pit, 129 (Fig. 88). 
 
 of flower, 77, 494. 
 Trabeculse, 71, 385 (Fig. 256). 
 Trachea, 134 (Fig. 95), 180, 194, 203. 
 Tracheal tissue, 133, 170. 677. 
 Tracheid, 134 (Fig. 95), 200 (Fig. 151), 
 
 203 (Fig. 153). 
 Trama, 311 (Fig. 219). 
 Transfusion-tissue, 169, 465. 
 Transition from root to stem, 179. 
 Transmission of stimuli, 756. 
 
 Transpiration, 669, 686, 696. 
 
 -current, 699, 702. 
 Transverse section, 7. 
 Trichogyne, 84, 228, 250 (Fig. 179), 
 268 (Figs. 194, 195), 296 (Figs. 
 207, 208). 
 
 Trichothallic growth, 223. 
 Trichophore, 270 (Fig. 195). 
 Trimorphic flowers, 455, 630. 
 Tripinnate, 52. 
 Truncate, 54. 
 Trunk, 44. ^ 
 
 Tuber, 41 (Fig. 22), 505 (Fig. 371). 
 Tubercles of roots, 713. 
 Tuberous root, 63, 683. 
 Turgescence, 668. 
 Turgid, 668. 
 Turgidity, 668. 
 Twining of climbing-stems, 43, 75'J. 
 
 of tendrils, 743. 
 Turpentine, 708. 
 Tyloses, 135 (Fig. 96). 
 Tyrosin, 707, 724. 
 
 Umbel, 491 (Fig. 309), 625. 
 
 Umbellule, 491. 
 
 Umbo, 485. 
 
 Uni axial, 39, 489. 
 
 Unijugate, 52. 
 
 Unilocular ovary, 522. 
 
 sporangium, 71. 
 Unisexual, 87, 432, 515. 
 Unorganised ferments, 669, 722. 
 Unseptate body, 89, 222, 238, 273. 
 Uredogonidium, 278, 305 (Figs. 214, 
 
 216), 314. 
 Uredospore, 278. 
 Urn, 368. 
 Utriculus, 551 (Fig. 358). 
 
 Vacuole, 93 (Fig. 46), 113. 
 
 contractile, 102, 736. 
 Vaginula, 330, 362. 
 Vallecular cavities, 153 (Fig. 116), 418 
 Valve of Diatoms, 258. 
 
 of fruits, 531. 
 Valvular dehiscence of anther, 520, 
 
 596 (Fig. 400). 
 Variability, 779. 
 Variation, 777. 
 
 in direction of growth, 739. 
 
 in rate of growth, 738. 
 Variety, 218, 778. 
 
 Vascular bundles, 170, 172 (Fige. 132- 
 139), 194 (Fig. 146). 
 
 tissue-system, 144, 170. 
 Vegetative cell, 387, 430, 448 (Figs. 
 289, 290). 
 
 organs, 37. 
 
 reproduction, 67, 767. 
 
 reproductive organs, 13, 767. 
 
MORPHOLOGY, ANATOMY, AND PHYSIOLOGY. 
 
 821 
 
 Velamen, 134, 155 (Fig. 117), 682. 
 Velum, 72, 311, 312 (Fig. 222), 38 i 
 
 (Fig. 256). 
 Venation, free, 55 (Fig. 33). 
 
 furcate, 55. 
 
 parallel, 55 (Fig. 34). 
 
 reticulate, 55 (Fig. 35). 
 Venter, 326, 376. 
 Ventral canal-cell, 82, 117, 326, 377. 
 
 scales, 334, 336, 340, 342. 
 
 suture, 522. 
 Vernation, 59, 742. 
 Versatile anther, 517 (Fig. 331). 
 Verticillaster, 493, 642. 
 Vessel, 134. 
 
 Vexillum, 635 (Fig. 435). 
 Vital functions of the tissues, 671. 
 Vittaj, 625 (Fig. 426). 
 Volatile oils, 708. 
 Volva, 312, 319. 
 
 Wart, 66. 
 
 Waste products, 670, 727* 728. 
 Water-culture, 715 (Fig. 474). 
 Water, absorption of, 693. 
 
 distribution of, 700. 
 -stoma, 138 (Fig. 100), 157 (Fig. 
 121), 730. 
 
 Wax, 155. 
 
 Whorl, 23 (Fig. 11), 25 (Fig. 12), 496. 
 
 Wings of fiuits, 531, 617. 
 
 of leaf, 45. 
 
 Witches' brooms, 711. 
 Wood, 170 (Figs. 126, 130, 133, 134, 
 
 137), 194, 677. 
 
 Wood-parenchyma, 132, 195. 
 Woody fibre, 196 (Fig. 148). 
 Woronin's hypha, 298. 
 
 Xerophilous plants, 628, 675, 687. 
 Xylem, 170 (Figs. 127, 139, 146, 147). 
 677. 
 
 Zinc, 716. 
 
 Zonate tetragonidia, 267. 
 
 Zoocyst, 285. 
 
 Zooglcea-stage, 281 (Fig. 197). 
 
 Zoogonidium, 69, 115 (Figs. 74, 75), 
 
 226, 243, 283, 286, 291 (Figs. 
 
 203, 204). 
 Zoospore, 69, 229, 247 (Figs. 176. 
 
 178). 
 
 Zygomorphic symmetry, 8, 10, 508. 
 Zygospore, 80, 118 (Fig. 76), 220, 225, 
 
 229, 242, 244 (Figs. 173, 175, 
 
 176). 
 
 Butlei & Tanner, The Selwood Printing Works, Frorne, and London, 
 
' 
 
" A ' A. A A 
 
 
 AAM 
 
 ; n^A ^ .\ A A .,- ,' 
 
 mimm 
 
 nu n^^ ' ^ n >AA\AX 
 
 
 f, M MM mm^ ' i 1 
 
 ^ : ;^^ 
 
 ^S:^::^ 
 
 ii^iliilftlllil 
 
mm m 
 
 GENERAL LIBRARY - U.C. BERKELEY 
 
 BODDSESDM1 
 
 
 'A n >* P 'A V 
 
 w^f 
 
 w^ii 
 
 r I s /? A ! 
 
 d- ^ ^' 
 
 . AM 
 
 A-AA'^